BLEAK HOUSE

by Charles Dickens




PREFACE


A Chancery judge once had the kindness to inform me, as one of a 
company of some hundred and fifty men and women not labouring under 
any suspicions of lunacy, that the Court of Chancery, though the 
shining subject of much popular prejudice (at which point I thought 
the judge's eye had a cast in my direction), was almost immaculate.  
There had been, he admitted, a trivial blemish or so in its rate of 
progress, but this was exaggerated and had been entirely owing to 
the "parsimony of the public," which guilty public, it appeared, 
had been until lately bent in the most determined manner on by no 
means enlarging the number of Chancery judges appointed--I believe 
by Richard the Second, but any other king will do as well.

This seemed to me too profound a joke to be inserted in the body of 
this book or I should have restored it to Conversation Kenge or to 
Mr. Vholes, with one or other of whom I think it must have 
originated.  In such mouths I might have coupled it with an apt 
quotation from one of Shakespeare's sonnets:

"My nature is subdued
To what it works in, like the dyer's hand:
Pity me, then, and wish I were renewed!"

But as it is wholesome that the parsimonious public should know 
what has been doing, and still is doing, in this connexion, I 
mention here that everything set forth in these pages concerning 
the Court of Chancery is substantially true, and within the truth.  
The case of Gridley is in no essential altered from one of actual 
occurrence, made public by a disinterested person who was 
professionally acquainted with the whole of the monstrous wrong 
from beginning to end.  At the present moment (August, 1853) there 
is a suit before the court which was commenced nearly twenty years 
ago, in which from thirty to forty counsel have been known to 
appear at one time, in which costs have been incurred to the amount 
of seventy thousand pounds, which is A FRIENDLY SUIT, and which is 
(I am assured) no nearer to its termination now than when it was 
begun.  There is another well-known suit in Chancery, not yet 
decided, which was commenced before the close of the last century 
and in which more than double the amount of seventy thousand pounds 
has been swallowed up in costs.  If I wanted other authorities for 
Jarndyce and Jarndyce, I could rain them on these pages, to the 
shame of--a parsimonious public.

There is only one other point on which I offer a word of remark.  
The possibility of what is called spontaneous combustion has been 
denied since the death of Mr. Krook; and my good friend Mr. Lewes 
(quite mistaken, as he soon found, in supposing the thing to have 
been abandoned by all authorities) published some ingenious letters 
to me at the time when that event was chronicled, arguing that 
spontaneous combustion could not possibly be.  I have no need to 
observe that I do not wilfully or negligently mislead my readers 
and that before I wrote that description I took pains to 
investigate the subject.  There are about thirty cases on record, 
of which the most famous, that of the Countess Cornelia de Baudi 
Cesenate, was minutely investigated and described by Giuseppe 
Bianchini, a prebendary of Verona, otherwise distinguished in 
letters, who published an account of it at Verona in 1731, which he 
afterwards republished at Rome.  The appearances, beyond all 
rational doubt, observed in that case are the appearances observed 
in Mr. Krook's case.  The next most famous instance happened at 
Rheims six years earlier, and the historian in that case is Le Cat, 
one of the most renowned surgeons produced by France.  The subject 
was a woman, whose husband was ignorantly convicted of having 
murdered her; but on solemn appeal to a higher court, he was 
acquitted because it was shown upon the evidence that she had died 
the death of which this name of spontaneous combustion is given.  I 
do not think it necessary to add to these notable facts, and that 
general reference to the authorities which will be found at page 
30, vol. ii.,* the recorded opinions and experiences of 
distinguished medical professors, French, English, and Scotch, in 
more modern days, contenting myself with observing that I shall not 
abandon the facts until there shall have been a considerable 
spontaneous combustion of the testimony on which human occurrences 
are usually received.

In Bleak House I have purposely dwelt upon the romantic side of 
familiar things.


1853


* Another case, very clearly described by a dentist, occurred at 
the town of Columbus, in the United States of America, quite 
recently.  The subject was a German who kept a liquor-shop aud was 
an inveterate drunkard.



CHAPTER I

In Chancery


London.  Michaelmas term lately over, and the Lord Chancellor 
sitting in Lincoln's Inn Hall.  Implacable November weather.  As 
much mud in the streets as if the waters had but newly retired from 
the face of the earth, and it would not be wonderful to meet a 
Megalosaurus, forty feet long or so, waddling like an elephantine 
lizard up Holborn Hill.  Smoke lowering down from chimney-pots, 
making a soft black drizzle, with flakes of soot in it as big as 
full-grown snowflakes--gone into mourning, one might imagine, for 
the death of the sun.  Dogs, undistinguishable in mire.  Horses, 
scarcely better; splashed to their very blinkers.  Foot passengers, 
jostling one another's umbrellas in a general infection of ill 
temper, and losing their foot-hold at street-corners, where tens of 
thousands of other foot passengers have been slipping and sliding 
since the day broke (if this day ever broke), adding new deposits 
to the crust upon crust of mud, sticking at those points 
tenaciously to the pavement, and accumulating at compound interest.

Fog everywhere.  Fog up the river, where it flows among green aits 
and meadows; fog down the river, where it rolls deified among the 
tiers of shipping and the waterside pollutions of a great (and 
dirty) city.  Fog on the Essex marshes, fog on the Kentish heights.  
Fog creeping into the cabooses of collier-brigs; fog lying out on 
the yards and hovering in the rigging of great ships; fog drooping 
on the gunwales of barges and small boats.  Fog in the eyes and 
throats of ancient Greenwich pensioners, wheezing by the firesides 
of their wards; fog in the stem and bowl of the afternoon pipe of 
the wrathful skipper, down in his close cabin; fog cruelly pinching 
the toes and fingers of his shivering little 'prentice boy on deck.  
Chance people on the bridges peeping over the parapets into a 
nether sky of fog, with fog all round them, as if they were up in a 
balloon and hanging in the misty clouds.

Gas looming through the fog in divers places in the streets, much 
as the sun may, from the spongey fields, be seen to loom by 
husbandman and ploughboy.  Most of the shops lighted two hours 
before their time--as the gas seems to know, for it has a haggard 
and unwilling look.

The raw afternoon is rawest, and the dense fog is densest, and the 
muddy streets are muddiest near that leaden-headed old obstruction, 
appropriate ornament for the threshold of a leaden-headed old 
corporation, Temple Bar.  And hard by Temple Bar, in Lincoln's Inn 
Hall, at the very heart of the fog, sits the Lord High Chancellor 
in his High Court of Chancery.

Never can there come fog too thick, never can there come mud and 
mire too deep, to assort with the groping and floundering condition 
which this High Court of Chancery, most pestilent of hoary sinners, 
holds this day in the sight of heaven and earth.

On such an afternoon, if ever, the Lord High Chancellor ought to be 
sitting her--as here he is--with a foggy glory round his head, 
softly fenced in with crimson cloth and curtains, addressed by a 
large advocate with great whiskers, a little voice, and an 
interminable brief, and outwardly directing his contemplation to 
the lantern in the roof, where he can see nothing but fog.  On such 
an afternoon some score of members of the High Court of Chancery 
bar ought to be--as here they are--mistily engaged in one of the 
ten thousand stages of an endless cause, tripping one another up on 
slippery precedents, groping knee-deep in technicalities, running 
their goat-hair and horsehair warded heads against walls of words 
and making a pretence of equity with serious faces, as players 
might.  On such an afternoon the various solicitors in the cause, 
some two or three of whom have inherited it from their fathers, who 
made a fortune by it, ought to be--as are they not?--ranged in a 
line, in a long matted well (but you might look in vain for truth 
at the bottom of it) between the registrar's red table and the silk 
gowns, with bills, cross-bills, answers, rejoinders, injunctions, 
affidavits, issues, references to masters, masters' reports, 
mountains of costly nonsense, piled before them.  Well may the 
court be dim, with wasting candles here and there; well may the fog 
hang heavy in it, as if it would never get out; well may the 
stained-glass windows lose their colour and admit no light of day 
into the place; well may the uninitiated from the streets, who peep 
in through the glass panes in the door, be deterred from entrance 
by its owlish aspect and by the drawl, languidly echoing to the 
roof from the padded dais where the Lord High Chancellor looks into 
the lantern that has no light in it and where the attendant wigs 
are all stuck in a fog-bank!  This is the Court of Chancery, which 
has its decaying houses and its blighted lands in every shire, 
which has its worn-out lunatic in every madhouse and its dead in 
every churchyard, which has its ruined suitor with his slipshod 
heels and threadbare dress borrowing and begging through the round 
of every man's acquaintance, which gives to monied might the means 
abundantly of wearying out the right, which so exhausts finances, 
patience, courage, hope, so overthrows the brain and breaks the 
heart, that there is not an honourable man among its practitioners 
who would not give--who does not often give--the warning, "Suffer 
any wrong that can be done you rather than come here!"

Who happen to be in the Lord Chancellor's court this murky 
afternoon besides the Lord Chancellor, the counsel in the cause, 
two or three counsel who are never in any cause, and the well of 
solicitors before mentioned?  There is the registrar below the 
judge, in wig and gown; and there are two or three maces, or petty-
bags, or privy purses, or whatever they may be, in legal court 
suits.  These are all yawning, for no crumb of amusement ever falls 
from Jarndyce and Jarndyce (the cause in hand), which was squeezed 
dry years upon years ago.  The short-hand writers, the reporters of 
the court, and the reporters of the newspapers invariably decamp 
with the rest of the regulars when Jarndyce and Jarndyce comes on.  
Their places are a blank.  Standing on a seat at the side of the 
hall, the better to peer into the curtained sanctuary, is a little 
mad old woman in a squeezed bonnet who is always in court, from its 
sitting to its rising, and always expecting some incomprehensible 
judgment to be given in her favour.  Some say she really is, or 
was, a party to a suit, but no one knows for certain because no one 
cares.  She carries some small litter in a reticule which she calls 
her documents, principally consisting of paper matches and dry 
lavender.  A sallow prisoner has come up, in custody, for the half-
dozenth time to make a personal application "to purge himself of 
his contempt," which, being a solitary surviving executor who has 
fallen into a state of conglomeration about accounts of which it is 
not pretended that he had ever any knowledge, he is not at all 
likely ever to do.  In the meantime his prospects in life are 
ended.  Another ruined suitor, who periodically appears from 
Shropshire and breaks out into efforts to address the Chancellor at 
the close of the day's business and who can by no means be made to 
understand that the Chancellor is legally ignorant of his existence 
after making it desolate for a quarter of a century, plants himself 
in a good place and keeps an eye on the judge, ready to call out 
"My Lord!" in a voice of sonorous complaint on the instant of his 
rising.  A few lawyers' clerks and others who know this suitor by 
sight linger on the chance of his furnishing some fun and 
enlivening the dismal weather a little.

Jarndyce and Jarndyce drones on.  This scarecrow of a suit has, in 
course of time, become so complicated that no man alive knows what 
it means.  The parties to it understand it least, but it has been 
observed that no two Chancery lawyers can talk about it for five 
minutes without coming to a total disagreement as to all the 
premises.  Innumerable children have been born into the cause; 
innumerable young people have married into it; innumerable old 
people have died out of it.  Scores of persons have deliriously 
found themselves made parties in Jarndyce and Jarndyce without 
knowing how or why; whole families have inherited legendary hatreds 
with the suit.  The little plaintiff or defendant who was promised 
a new rocking-horse when Jarndyce and Jarndyce should be settled 
has grown up, possessed himself of a real horse, and trotted away 
into the other world.  Fair wards of court have faded into mothers 
and grandmothers; a long procession of Chancellors has come in and 
gone out; the legion of bills in the suit have been transformed 
into mere bills of mortality; there are not three Jarndyces left 
upon the earth perhaps since old Tom Jarndyce in despair blew his 
brains out at a coffee-house in Chancery Lane; but Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce still drags its dreary length before the court, 
perennially hopeless.

Jarndyce and Jarndyce has passed into a joke.  That is the only 
good that has ever come of it.  It has been death to many, but it 
is a joke in the profession.  Every master in Chancery has had a 
reference out of it.  Every Chancellor was "in it," for somebody or 
other, when he was counsel at the bar.  Good things have been said 
about it by blue-nosed, bulbous-shoed old benchers in select port-
wine committee after dinner in hall.  Articled clerks have been in 
the habit of fleshing their legal wit upon it.  The last Lord 
Chancellor handled it neatly, when, correcting Mr. Blowers, the 
eminent silk gown who said that such a thing might happen when the 
sky rained potatoes, he observed, "or when we get through Jarndyce 
and Jarndyce, Mr. Blowers"--a pleasantry that particularly tickled 
the maces, bags, and purses.

How many people out of the suit Jarndyce and Jarndyce has stretched 
forth its unwholesome hand to spoil and corrupt would be a very 
wide question.  From the master upon whose impaling files reams of 
dusty warrants in Jarndyce and Jarndyce have grimly writhed into 
many shapes, down to the copying-clerk in the Six Clerks' Office 
who has copied his tens of thousands of Chancery folio-pages under 
that eternal heading, no man's nature has been made better by it.  
In trickery, evasion, procrastination, spoliation, botheration, 
under false pretences of all sorts, there are influences that can 
never come to good.  The very solicitors' boys who have kept the 
wretched suitors at bay, by protesting time out of mind that Mr. 
Chizzle, Mizzle, or otherwise was particularly engaged and had 
appointments until dinner, may have got an extra moral twist and 
shuffle into themselves out of Jarndyce and Jarndyce.  The receiver 
in the cause has acquired a goodly sum of money by it but has 
acquired too a distrust of his own mother and a contempt for his 
own kind.  Chizzle, Mizzle, and otherwise have lapsed into a habit 
of vaguely promising themselves that they will look into that 
outstanding little matter and see what can be done for Drizzle--who 
was not well used--when Jarndyce and Jarndyce shall be got out of 
the office.  Shirking and sharking in all their many varieties have 
been sown broadcast by the ill-fated cause; and even those who have 
contemplated its history from the outermost circle of such evil 
have been insensibly tempted into a loose way of letting bad things 
alone to take their own bad course, and a loose belief that if the 
world go wrong it was in some off-hand manner never meant to go 
right.

Thus, in the midst of the mud and at the heart of the fog, sits the 
Lord High Chancellor in his High Court of Chancery.

"Mr. Tangle," says the Lord High Chancellor, latterly something 
restless under the eloquence of that learned gentleman.

"Mlud," says Mr. Tangle.  Mr. Tangle knows more of Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce than anybody.  He is famous for it--supposed never to have 
read anything else since he left school.

"Have you nearly concluded your argument?"

"Mlud, no--variety of points--feel it my duty tsubmit--ludship," is 
the reply that slides out of Mr. Tangle.

"Several members of the bar are still to be heard, I believe?" says 
the Chancellor with a slight smile.

Eighteen of Mr. Tangle's learned friends, each armed with a little 
summary of eighteen hundred sheets, bob up like eighteen hammers in 
a pianoforte, make eighteen bows, and drop into their eighteen 
places of obscurity.

"We will proceed with the hearing on Wednesday fortnight," says the 
Chancellor.  For the question at issue is only a question of costs, 
a mere bud on the forest tree of the parent suit, and really will 
come to a settlement one of these days.

The Chancellor rises; the bar rises; the prisoner is brought 
forward in a hurry; the man from Shropshire cries, "My lord!"  
Maces, bags, and purses indignantly proclaim silence and frown at 
the man from Shropshire.

"In reference," proceeds the Chancellor, still on Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce, "to the young girl--" 

"Begludship's pardon--boy," says Mr. Tangle prematurely.  "In 
reference," proceeds the Chancellor with extra distinctness, "to 
the young girl and boy, the two young people"--Mr. Tangle crushed--
"whom I directed to be in attendance to-day and who are now in my 
private room, I will see them and satisfy myself as to the 
expediency of making the order for their residing with their 
uncle."

Mr. Tangle on his legs again.  "Begludship's pardon--dead."

"With their"--Chancellor looking through his double eyeglass at the 
papers on his desk--"grandfather."

"Begludship's pardon--victim of rash action--brains."

Suddenly a very little counsel with a terrific bass voice arises, 
fully inflated, in the back settlements of the fog, and says, "Will 
your lordship allow me?  I appear for him.  He is a cousin, several 
times removed.  I am not at the moment prepared to inform the court 
in what exact remove he is a cousin, but he IS a cousin.

Leaving this address (delivered like a sepulchral message) ringing 
in the rafters of the roof, the very little counsel drops, and the 
fog knows him no more.  Everybody looks for him.  Nobody can see 
him.

"I will speak with both the young people," says the Chancellor 
anew, "and satisfy myself on the subject of their residing with 
their cousin.  I will mention the matter to-morrow morning when I 
take my seat."

The Chancellor is about to bow to the bar when the prisoner is 
presented.  Nothing can possibly come of the prisoner's 
conglomeration but his being sent back to prison, which is soon 
done.  The man from Shropshire ventures another remonstrative "My 
lord!" but the Chancellor, being aware of him, has dexterously 
vanished.  Everybody else quickly vanishes too.  A battery of blue 
bags is loaded with heavy charges of papers and carried off by 
clerks; the little mad old woman marches off with her documents; 
the empty court is locked up.  If all the injustice it has 
committed and all the misery it has caused could only be locked up 
with it, and the whole burnt away in a great funeral pyre--why so 
much the better for other parties than the parties in Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce!



CHAPTER II

In Fashion


It is but a glimpse of the world of fashion that we want on this 
same miry afternoon.  It is not so unlike the Court of Chancery but 
that we may pass from the one scene to the other, as the crow 
flies.  Both the world of fashion and the Court of Chancery are 
things of precedent and usage: oversleeping Rip Van Winkles who 
have played at strange games through a deal of thundery weather; 
sleeping beauties whom the knight will wake one day, when all the 
stopped spits in the kitchen shall begin to turn prodigiously!

It is not a large world.  Relatively even to this world of ours, 
which has its limits too (as your Highness shall find when you have 
made the tour of it and are come to the brink of the void beyond), 
it is a very little speck.  There is much good in it; there are 
many good and true people in it; it has its appointed place.  But 
the evil of it is that it is a world wrapped up in too much 
jeweller's cotton and fine wool, and cannot hear the rushing of the 
larger worlds, and cannot see them as they circle round the sun.  
It is a deadened world, and its growth is sometimes unhealthy for 
want of air.

My Lady Dedlock has returned to her house in town for a few days 
previous to her departure for Paris, where her ladyship intends to 
stay some weeks, after which her movements are uncertain.  The 
fashionable intelligence says so for the comfort of the Parisians, 
and it knows all fashionable things.  To know things otherwise were 
to be unfashionable.  My Lady Dedlock has been down at what she 
calls, in familiar conversation, her "place" in Lincolnshire.  The 
waters are out in Lincolnshire.  An arch of the bridge in the park 
has been sapped and sopped away.  The adjacent low-lying ground for 
half a mile in breadth is a stagnant river with melancholy trees 
for islands in it and a surface punctured all over, all day long, 
with falling rain.  My Lady Dedlock's place has been extremely 
dreary.  The weather for many a day and night has been so wet that 
the trees seem wet through, and the soft loppings and prunings of 
the woodman's axe can make no crash or crackle as they fall.  The 
deer, looking soaked, leave quagmires where they pass.  The shot of 
a rifle loses its sharpness in the moist air, and its smoke moves 
in a tardy little cloud towards the green rise, coppice-topped, 
that makes a background for the falling rain.  The view from my 
Lady Dedlock's own windows is alternately a lead-coloured view and 
a view in Indian ink.  The vases on the stone terrace in the 
foreground catch the rain all day; and the heavy drops fall--drip, 
drip, drip--upon the broad flagged pavement, called from old time 
the Ghost's Walk, all night.  On Sundays the little church in the 
park is mouldy; the oaken pulpit breaks out into a cold sweat; and 
there is a general smell and taste as of the ancient Dedlocks in 
their graves.  My Lady Dedlock (who is childless), looking out in 
the early twilight from her boudoir at a keeper's lodge and seeing 
the light of a fire upon the latticed panes, and smoke rising from 
the chimney, and a child, chased by a woman, running out into the 
rain to meet the shining figure of a wrapped-up man coming through 
the gate, has been put quite out of temper.  My Lady Dedlock says 
she has been "bored to death."

Therefore my Lady Dedlock has come away from the place in 
Lincolnshire and has left it to the rain, and the crows, and the 
rabbits, and the deer, and the partridges and pheasants.  The 
pictures of the Dedlocks past and gone have seemed to vanish into 
the damp walls in mere lowness of spirits, as the housekeeper has 
passed along the old rooms shutting up the shutters.  And when they 
will next come forth again, the fashionable intelligence--which, 
like the fiend, is omniscient of the past and present, but not the 
future--cannot yet undertake to say.

Sir Leicester Dedlock is only a baronet, but there is no mightier 
baronet than he.  His family is as old as the hills, and infinitely 
more respectable.  He has a general opinion that the world might 
get on without hills but would be done up without Dedlocks.  He 
would on the whole admit nature to be a good idea (a little low, 
perhaps, when not enclosed with a park-fence), but an idea 
dependent for its execution on your great county families.  He is a 
gentleman of strict conscience, disdainful of all littleness and 
meanness and ready on the shortest notice to die any death you may 
please to mention rather than give occasion for the least 
impeachment of his integrity.  He is an honourable, obstinate, 
truthful, high-spirited, intensely prejudiced, perfectly 
unreasonable man.

Sir Leicester is twenty years, full measure, older than my Lady.  
He will never see sixty-five again, nor perhaps sixty-six, nor yet 
sixty-seven.  He has a twist of the gout now and then and walks a 
little stiffly.  He is of a worthy presence, with his light-grey 
hair and whiskers, his fine shirt-frill, his pure-white waistcoat, 
and his blue coat with bright buttons always buttoned.  He is 
ceremonious, stately, most polite on every occasion to my Lady, and 
holds her personal attractions in the highest estimation.  His 
gallantry to my Lady, which has never changed since he courted her, 
is the one little touch of romantic fancy in him.

Indeed, he married her for love.  A whisper still goes about that 
she had not even family; howbeit, Sir Leicester had so much family 
that perhaps he had enough and could dispense with any more.  But 
she had beauty, pride, ambition, insolent resolve, and sense enough 
to portion out a legion of fine ladies.  Wealth and station, added 
to these, soon floated her upward, and for years now my Lady 
Dedlock has been at the centre of the fashionable intelligence and 
at the top of the fashionable tree.

How Alexander wept when he had no more worlds to conquer, everybody 
knows--or has some reason to know by this time, the matter having 
been rather frequently mentioned.  My Lady Dedlock, having 
conquered HER world, fell not into the melting, but rather into the 
freezing, mood.  An exhausted composure, a worn-out placidity, an 
equanimity of fatigue not to be ruffled by interest or satisfaction, 
are the trophies of her victory.  She is perfectly well-bred.  
If she could be translated to heaven to-morrow, she might be 
expected to ascend without any rapture.

She has beauty still, and if it be not in its heyday, it is not yet 
in its autumn.  She has a fine face--originally of a character that 
would be rather called very pretty than handsome, but improved into 
classicality by the acquired expression of her fashionable state.  
Her figure is elegant and has the effect of being tall.  Not that 
she is so, but that "the most is made," as the Honourable Bob 
Stables has frequently asserted upon oath, "of all her points."  
The same authority observes that she is perfectly got up and 
remarks in commendation of her hair especially that she is the 
best-groomed woman in the whole stud.

With all her perfections on her head, my Lady Dedlock has come up 
from her place in Lincolnshire (hotly pursued by the fashionable 
intelligence) to pass a few days at her house in town previous to 
her departure for Paris, where her ladyship intends to stay some 
weeks, after which her movements are uncertain.  And at her house 
in town, upon this muddy, murky afternoon, presents himself an old-
fashioned old gentleman, attorney-at-law and eke solicitor of the 
High Court of Chancery, who has the honour of acting as legal 
adviser of the Dedlocks and has as many cast-iron boxes in his 
office with that name outside as if the present baronet were the 
coin of the conjuror's trick and were constantly being juggled 
through the whole set.  Across the hall, and up the stairs, and 
along the passages, and through the rooms, which are very brilliant 
in the season and very dismal out of it--fairy-land to visit, but a 
desert to live in--the old gentleman is conducted by a Mercury in 
powder to my Lady's presence.

The old gentleman is rusty to look at, but is reputed to have made 
good thrift out of aristocratic marriage settlements and 
aristocratic wills, and to be very rich.  He is surrounded by a 
mysterious halo of family confidences, of which he is known to be 
the silent depository.  There are noble mausoleums rooted for 
centuries in retired glades of parks among the growing timber and 
the fern, which perhaps hold fewer noble secrets than walk abroad 
among men, shut up in the breast of Mr. Tulkinghorn.  He is of what 
is called the old school--a phrase generally meaning any school 
that seems never to have been young--and wears knee-breeches tied 
with ribbons, and gaiters or stockings.  One peculiarity of his 
black clothes and of his black stockings, be they silk or worsted, 
is that they never shine.  Mute, close, irresponsive to any 
glancing light, his dress is like himself.  He never converses when 
not professionaly consulted.  He is found sometimes, speechless but 
quite at home, at corners of dinner-tables in great country houses 
and near doors of drawing-rooms, concerning which the fashionable 
intelligence is eloquent, where everybody knows him and where half 
the Peerage stops to say "How do you do, Mr. Tulkinghorn?"  He 
receives these salutations with gravity and buries them along with 
the rest of his knowledge.

Sir Leicester Dedlock is with my Lady and is happy to see Mr. 
Tulkinghorn.  There is an air of prescription about him which is 
always agreeable to Sir Leicester; he receives it as a kind of 
tribute.  He likes Mr. Tulkinghorn's dress; there is a kind of 
tribute in that too.  It is eminently respectable, and likewise, in 
a general way, retainer-like.  It expresses, as it were, the 
steward of the legal mysteries, the butler of the legal cellar, of 
the Dedlocks.

Has Mr. Tulkinghorn any idea of this himself?  It may be so, or it 
may not, but there is this remarkable circumstance to be noted in 
everything associated with my Lady Dedlock as one of a class--as 
one of the leaders and representatives of her little world.  She 
supposes herself to be an inscrutable Being, quite out of the reach 
and ken of ordinary mortals--seeing herself in her glass, where 
indeed she looks so.  Yet every dim little star revolving about 
her, from her maid to the manager of the Italian Opera, knows her 
weaknesses, prejudices, follies, haughtinesses, and caprices and 
lives upon as accurate a calculation and as nice a measure of her 
moral nature as her dressmaker takes of her physical proportions.  
Is a new dress, a new custom, a new singer, a new dancer, a new 
form of jewellery, a new dwarf or giant, a new chapel, a new 
anything, to be set up?  There are deferential people in a dozen 
callings whom my Lady Dedlock suspects of nothing but prostration 
before her, who can tell you how to manage her as if she were a 
baby, who do nothing but nurse her all their lives, who, humbly 
affecting to follow with profound subservience, lead her and her 
whole troop after them; who, in hooking one, hook all and bear them 
off as Lemuel Gulliver bore away the stately fleet of the majestic 
Lilliput.  "If you want to address our people, sir," say Blaze and 
Sparkle, the jewellers--meaning by our people Lady Dedlock and the 
rest--"you must remember that you are not dealing with the general 
public; you must hit our people in their weakest place, and their 
weakest place is such a place."  "To make this article go down, 
gentlemen," say Sheen and Gloss, the mercers, to their friends the 
manufacturers, "you must come to us, because we know where to have 
the fashionable people, and we can make it fashionable."  "If you 
want to get this print upon the tables of my high connexion, sir," 
says Mr. Sladdery, the librarian, "or if you want to get this dwarf 
or giant into the houses of my high connexion, sir, or if you want 
to secure to this entertainment the patronage of my high connexion, 
sir, you must leave it, if you please, to me, for I have been 
accustomed to study the leaders of my high connexion, sir, and I 
may tell you without vanity that I can turn them round my finger"--
in which Mr. Sladdery, who is an honest man, does not exaggerate at 
all.

Therefore, while Mr. Tulkinghorn may not know what is passing in 
the Dedlock mind at present, it is very possible that he may.

"My Lady's cause has been again before the Chancellor, has it, Mr. 
Tulkinghorn?" says Sir Leicester, giving him his hand.

"Yes.  It has been on again to-day," Mr. Tulkinghorn replies, 
making one of his quiet bows to my Lady, who is on a sofa near the 
fire, shading her face with a hand-screen.

"It would be useless to ask," says my Lady with the dreariness of 
the place in Lincolnshire still upon her, "whether anything has 
been done."

"Nothing that YOU would call anything has been done to-day," 
replies Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"Nor ever will be," says my Lady.

Sir Leicester has no objection to an interminable Chancery suit.  
It is a slow, expensive, British, constitutional kind of thing.  To 
be sure, he has not a vital interest in the suit in question, her 
part in which was the only property my Lady brought him; and he has 
a shadowy impression that for his name--the name of Dedlock--to be 
in a cause, and not in the title of that cause, is a most 
ridiculous accident.  But he regards the Court of Chancery, even if 
it should involve an occasional delay of justice and a trifling 
amount of confusion, as a something devised in conjunction with a 
variety of other somethings by the perfection of human wisdom for 
the eternal settlement (humanly speaking) of everything.  And he is 
upon the whole of a fixed opinion that to give the sanction of his 
countenance to any complaints respecting it would be to encourage 
some person in the lower classes to rise up somewhere--like Wat 
Tyler.

"As a few fresh affidavits have been put upon the file," says Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, "and as they are short, and as I proceed upon the 
troublesome principle of begging leave to possess my clients with 
any new proceedings in a cause"--cautious man Mr. Tulkinghorn, 
taking no more responsibility than necessary--"and further, as I 
see you are going to Paris, I have brought them in my pocket."

(Sir Leicester was going to Paris too, by the by, but the delight 
of the fashionable intelligence was in his Lady.)

Mr. Tulkinghorn takes out his papers, asks permission to place them 
on a golden talisman of a table at my Lady's elbow, puts on his 
spectacles, and begins to read by the light of a shaded lamp.

"'In Chancery.  Between John Jarndyce--'"

My Lady interrupts, requesting him to miss as many of the formal 
horrors as he can.

Mr. Tulkinghorn glances over his spectacles and begins again lower 
down.  My Lady carelessly and scornfully abstracts her attention.  
Sir Leicester in a great chair looks at the file and appears to 
have a stately liking for the legal repetitions and prolixities as 
ranging among the national bulwarks.  It happens that the fire is 
hot where my Lady sits and that the hand-screen is more beautiful 
than useful, being priceless but small.  My Lady, changing her 
position, sees the papers on the table--looks at them nearer--looks 
at them nearer still--asks impulsively, "Who copied that?"

Mr. Tulkinghorn stops short, surprised by my Lady's animation and 
her unusual tone.

"Is it what you people call law-hand?" she asks, looking full at 
him in her careless way again and toying with her screen.

"Not quite.  Probably"--Mr. Tulkinghorn examines it as he speaks--
"the legal character which it has was acquired after the original 
hand was formed.  Why do you ask?"

"Anything to vary this detestable monotony.  Oh, go on, do!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn reads again.  The heat is greater; my Lady screens 
her face.  Sir Leicester dozes, starts up suddenly, and cries, "Eh?  
What do you say?"

"I say I am afraid," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, who had risen hastily, 
"that Lady Dedlock is ill."

"Faint," my Lady murmurs with white lips, "only that; but it is 
like the faintness of death.  Don't speak to me.  Ring, and take me 
to my room!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn retires into another chamber; bells ring, feet 
shuffle and patter, silence ensues.  Mercury at last begs Mr. 
Tulkinghorn to return.

"Better now," quoth Sir Leicester, motioning the lawyer to sit down 
and read to him alone.  "I have been quite alarmed.  I never knew 
my Lady swoon before.  But the weather is extremely trying, and she 
really has been bored to death down at our place in Lincolnshire."



CHAPTER III

A Progress


I have a great deal of difficulty in beginning to write my portion 
of these pages, for I know I am not clever.  I always knew that.  I 
can remember, when I was a very little girl indeed, I used to say 
to my doll when we were alone together, "Now, Dolly, I am not 
clever, you know very well, and you must be patient with me, like a 
dear!"  And so she used to sit propped up in a great arm-chair, 
with her beautiful complexion and rosy lips, staring at me--or not 
so much at me, I think, as at nothing--while I busily stitched away 
and told her every one of my secrets.

My dear old doll!  I was such a shy little thing that I seldom 
dared to open my lips, and never dared to open my heart, to anybody 
else.  It almost makes me cry to think what a relief it used to be 
to me when I came home from school of a day to run upstairs to my 
room and say, "Oh, you dear faithful Dolly, I knew you would be 
expecting me!" and then to sit down on the floor, leaning on the 
elbow of her great chair, and tell her all I had noticed since we 
parted.  I had always rather a noticing way--not a quick way, oh, 
no!--a silent way of noticing what passed before me and thinking I 
should like to understand it better.  I have not by any means a 
quick understanding.  When I love a person very tenderly indeed, it 
seems to brighten.  But even that may be my vanity.

I was brought up, from my earliest remembrance--like some of the 
princesses in the fairy stories, only I was not charming--by my 
godmother.  At least, I only knew her as such.  She was a good, 
good woman!  She went to church three times every Sunday, and to 
morning prayers on Wednesdays and Fridays, and to lectures whenever 
there were lectures; and never missed.  She was handsome; and if 
she had ever smiled, would have been (I used to think) like an 
angel--but she never smiled.  She was always grave and strict.  She 
was so very good herself, I thought, that the badness of other 
people made her frown all her life.  I felt so different from her, 
even making every allowance for the differences between a child and 
a woman; I felt so poor, so trifling, and so far off that I never 
could be unrestrained with her--no, could never even love her as I 
wished.  It made me very sorry to consider how good she was and how 
unworthy of her I was, and I used ardently to hope that I might 
have a better heart; and I talked it over very often with the dear 
old doll, but I never loved my godmother as I ought to have loved 
her and as I felt I must have loved her if I had been a better 
girl.

This made me, I dare say, more timid and retiring than I naturally 
was and cast me upon Dolly as the only friend with whom I felt at 
ease.  But something happened when I was still quite a little thing 
that helped it very much.

I had never heard my mama spoken of.  I had never heard of my papa 
either, but I felt more interested about my mama.  I had never worn 
a black frock, that I could recollect.  I had never been shown my 
mama's grave.  I had never been told where it was.  Yet I had never 
been taught to pray for any relation but my godmother.  I had more 
than once approached this subject of my thoughts with Mrs. Rachael, 
our only servant, who took my light away when I was in bed (another 
very good woman, but austere to me), and she had only said, 
"Esther, good night!" and gone away and left me.

Although there were seven girls at the neighbouring school where I 
was a day boarder, and although they called me little Esther 
Summerson, I knew none of them at home.  All of them were older 
than I, to be sure (I was the youngest there by a good deal), but 
there seemed to be some other separation between us besides that, 
and besides their being far more clever than I was and knowing much 
more than I did.  One of them in the first week of my going to the 
school (I remember it very well) invited me home to a little party, 
to my great joy.  But my godmother wrote a stiff letter declining 
for me, and I never went.  I never went out at all.

It was my birthday.  There were holidays at school on other 
birthdays--none on mine.  There were rejoicings at home on other 
birthdays, as I knew from what I heard the girls relate to one 
another--there were none on mine.  My birthday was the most 
melancholy day at home in the whole year.

I have mentioned that unless my vanity should deceive me (as I know 
it may, for I may be very vain without suspecting it, though indeed 
I don't), my comprehension is quickened when my affection is.  My 
disposition is very affectionate, and perhaps I might still feel 
such a wound if such a wound could be received more than once with 
the quickness of that birthday.

Dinner was over, and my godmother and I were sitting at the table 
before the fire.  The clock ticked, the fire clicked; not another 
sound had been heard in the room or in the house for I don't know 
how long.  I happened to look timidly up from my stitching, across 
the table at my godmother, and I saw in her face, looking gloomily 
at me, "It would have been far better, little Esther, that you had 
had no birthday, that you had never been born!"

I broke out crying and sobbing, and I said, "Oh, dear godmother, 
tell me, pray do tell me, did Mama die on my birthday?"

"No," she returned.  "Ask me no more, child!"

"Oh, do pray tell me something of her.  Do now, at last, dear 
godmother, if you please!  What did I do to her?  How did I lose 
her?  Why am I so different from other children, and why is it my 
fault, dear godmother?  No, no, no, don't go away.  Oh, speak to 
me!"

I was in a kind of fright beyond my grief, and I caught hold of her 
dress and was kneeling to her.  She had been saying all the while, 
"Let me go!"  But now she stood still.

Her darkened face had such power over me that it stopped me in the 
midst of my vehemence.  I put up my trembling little hand to clasp 
hers or to beg her pardon with what earnestness I might, but 
withdrew it as she looked at me, and laid it on my fluttering 
heart.  She raised me, sat in her chair, and standing me before 
her, said slowly in a cold, low voice--I see her knitted brow and 
pointed finger--"Your mother, Esther, is your disgrace, and you 
were hers.  The time will come--and soon enough--when you will 
understand this better and will feel it too, as no one save a woman 
can.  I have forgiven her"--but her face did not relent--"the wrong 
she did to me, and I say no more of it, though it was greater than 
you will ever know--than any one will ever know but I, the 
sufferer.  For yourself, unfortunate girl, orphaned and degraded 
from the first of these evil anniversaries, pray daily that the 
sins of others be not visited upon your head, according to what is 
written.  Forget your mother and leave all other people to forget 
her who will do her unhappy child that greatest kindness.  Now, 
go!"

She checked me, however, as I was about to depart from her--so 
frozen as I was!--and added this, "Submission, self-denial, 
diligent work, are the preparations for a life begun with such a 
shadow on it.  You are different from other children, Esther, 
because you were not born, like them, in common sinfulness and 
wrath.  You are set apart."

I went up to my room, and crept to bed, and laid my doll's cheek 
against mine wet with tears, and holding that solitary friend upon 
my bosom, cried myself to sleep.  Imperfect as my understanding of 
my sorrow was, I knew that I had brought no joy at any time to 
anybody's heart and that I was to no one upon earth what Dolly was 
to me.

Dear, dear, to think how much time we passed alone together 
afterwards, and how often I repeated to the doll the story of my 
birthday and confided to her that I would try as hard as ever I 
could to repair the fault I had been born with (of which I 
confessedly felt guilty and yet innocent) and would strive as I 
grew up to be industrious, contented, and kind-hearted and to do 
some good to some one, and win some love to myself if I could.  I 
hope it is not self-indulgent to shed these tears as I think of it.  
I am very thankful, I am very cheerful, but I cannot quite help 
their coming to my eyes.

There! I have wiped them away now and can go on again properly.

I felt the distance between my godmother and myself so much more 
after the birthday, and felt so sensible of filling a place in her 
house which ought to have been empty, that I found her more 
difficult of approach, though I was fervently grateful to her in my 
heart, than ever.  I felt in the same way towards my school 
companions; I felt in the same way towards Mrs. Rachael, who was a 
widow; and oh, towards her daughter, of whom she was proud, who 
came to see her once a fortnight!  I was very retired and quiet, 
and tried to be very diligent.

One sunny afternoon when I had come home from school with my books 
and portfolio, watching my long shadow at my side, and as I was 
gliding upstairs to my room as usual, my godmother looked out of 
the parlour-door and called me back.  Sitting with her, I found--
which was very unusual indeed--a stranger.  A portly, important-
looking gentleman, dressed all in black, with a white cravat, large 
gold watch seals, a pair of gold eye-glasses, and a large seal-ring 
upon his little finger.

"This," said my godmother in an undertone, "is the child."  Then 
she said in her naturally stern way of speaking, "This is Esther, 
sir."

The gentleman put up his eye-glasses to look at me and said, "Come 
here, my dear!"  He shook hands with me and asked me to take off my 
bonnet, looking at me all the while.  When I had complied, he said, 
"Ah!" and afterwards "Yes!"  And then, taking off his eye-glasses 
and folding them in a red case, and leaning back in his arm-chair, 
turning the case about in his two hands, he gave my godmother a 
nod.  Upon that, my godmother said, "You may go upstairs, Esther!"  
And I made him my curtsy and left him.

It must have been two years afterwards, and I was almost fourteen, 
when one dreadful night my godmother and I sat at the fireside.  I 
was reading aloud, and she was listening.  I had come down at nine 
o'clock as I always did to read the Bible to her, and was reading 
from St. John how our Saviour stooped down, writing with his finger 
in the dust, when they brought the sinful woman to him.

"'So when they continued asking him, he lifted up himself and said 
unto them, He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a 
stone at her!'"

I was stopped by my godmother's rising, putting her hand to her 
head, and crying out in an awful voice from quite another part of 
the book, "'Watch ye, therefore, lest coming suddenly he find you 
sleeping.  And what I say unto you, I say unto all, Watch!'"

In an instant, while she stood before me repeating these words, she 
fell down on the floor.  I had no need to cry out; her voice had 
sounded through the house and been heard in the street.

She was laid upon her bed.  For more than a week she lay there, 
little altered outwardly, with her old handsome resolute frown that 
I so well knew carved upon her face.  Many and many a time, in the 
day and in the night, with my head upon the pillow by her that my 
whispers might be plainer to her, I kissed her, thanked her, prayed 
for her, asked her for her blessing and forgiveness, entreated her 
to give me the least sign that she knew or heard me.  No, no, no.  
Her face was immovable.  To the very last, and even afterwards, her 
frown remained unsoftened.

On the day after my poor good godmother was buried, the gentleman 
in black with the white neckcloth reappeared.  I was sent for by 
Mrs. Rachael, and found him in the same place, as if he had never 
gone away.

"My name is Kenge," he said; "you may remember it, my child; Kenge 
and Carboy, Lincoln's Inn."

I replied that I remembered to have seen him once before.

"Pray be seated--here near me.  Don't distress yourself; it's of no 
use.  Mrs. Rachael, I needn't inform you who were acquainted with 
the late Miss Barbary's affairs, that her means die with her and 
that this young lady, now her aunt is dead--"

"My aunt, sir!"

"It is really of no use carrying on a deception when no object is 
to be gained by it," said Mr. Kenge smoothly, "Aunt in fact, though 
not in law.  Don't distress yourself!  Don't weep!  Don't tremble!  
Mrs. Rachael, our young friend has no doubt heard of--the--a--
Jarndyce and Jarndyce."

"Never," said Mrs. Rachael.

"Is it possible," pursued Mr. Kenge, putting up his eye-glasses, 
"that our young friend--I BEG you won't distress yourself!--never 
heard of Jarndyce and Jarndyce!"

I shook my head, wondering even what it was.

"Not of Jarndyce and Jarndyce?" said Mr. Kenge, looking over his 
glasses at me and softly turning the case about and about as if he 
were petting something.  "Not of one of the greatest Chancery suits 
known?  Not of Jarndyce and Jarndyce--the--a--in itself a monument 
of Chancery practice.  In which (I would say) every difficulty, 
every contingency, every masterly fiction, every form of procedure 
known in that court, is represented over and over again?  It is a 
cause that could not exist out of this free and great country.  I 
should say that the aggregate of costs in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, 
Mrs. Rachael"--I was afraid he addressed himself to her because I 
appeared inattentive"--amounts at the present hour to from SIX-ty 
to SEVEN-ty THOUSAND POUNDS!" said Mr. Kenge, leaning back in his 
chair.

I felt very ignorant, but what could I do?  I was so entirely 
unacquainted with the subject that I understood nothing about it 
even then.

"And she really never heard of the cause!" said Mr. Kenge.  
"Surprising!"

"Miss Barbary, sir," returned Mrs. Rachael, "who is now among the 
Seraphim--"

"I hope so, I am sure," said Mr. Kenge politely.

"--Wished Esther only to know what would be serviceable to her.  
And she knows, from any teaching she has had here, nothing more."

"Well!" said Mr. Kenge.  "Upon the whole, very proper.  Now to the 
point," addressing me.  "Miss Barbary, your sole relation (in fact 
that is, for I am bound to observe that in law you had none) being 
deceased and it naturally not being to be expected that Mrs. 
Rachael--"

"Oh, dear no!" said Mrs. Rachael quickly.

"Quite so," assented Mr. Kenge; "--that Mrs. Rachael should charge 
herself with your maintenance and support (I beg you won't distress 
yourself), you are in a position to receive the renewal of an offer 
which I was instructed to make to Miss Barbary some two years ago 
and which, though rejected then, was understood to be renewable 
under the lamentable circumstances that have since occurred.  Now, 
if I avow that I represent, in Jarndyce and Jarndyce and otherwise, 
a highly humane, but at the same time singular, man, shall I 
compromise myself by any stretch of my professional caution?" said 
Mr. Kenge, leaning back in his chair again and looking calmly at us 
both.

He appeared to enjoy beyond everything the sound of his own voice.  
I couldn't wonder at that, for it was mellow and full and gave 
great importance to every word he uttered.  He listened to himself 
with obvious satisfaction and sometimes gently beat time to his own 
music with his head or rounded a sentence with his hand.  I was 
very much impressed by him--even then, before I knew that he formed 
himself on the model of a great lord who was his client and that he 
was generally called Conversation Kenge.

"Mr. Jarndyce," he pursued, "being aware of the--I would say, 
desolate--position of our young friend, offers to place her at a 
first-rate establishment where her education shall be completed, 
where her comfort shall be secured, where her reasonable wants 
shall be anticipated, where she shall be eminently qualified to 
discharge her duty in that station of life unto which it has 
pleased--shall I say Providence?--to call her."

My heart was filled so full, both by what he said and by his 
affecting manner of saying it, that I was not able to speak, though 
I tried.

"Mr. Jarndyce," he went on, "makes no condition beyond expressing 
his expectation that our young friend will not at any time remove 
herself from the establishment in question without his knowledge 
and concurrence.  That she will faithfully apply herself to the 
acquisition of those accomplishments, upon the exercise of which 
she will be ultimately dependent.  That she will tread in the paths 
of virtue and honour, and--the--a--so forth."

I was still less able to speak than before.

"Now, what does our young friend say?" proceeded Mr, Kenge.  "Take 
time, take time!  I pause for her reply.  But take time!"

What the destitute subject of such an offer tried to say, I need 
not repeat.  What she did say, I could more easily tell, if it were 
worth the telling.  What she felt, and will feel to her dying hour, 
I could never relate.

This interview took place at Windsor, where I had passed (as far as 
I knew) my whole life.  On that day week, amply provided with all 
necessaries, I left it, inside the stagecoach, for Reading.

Mrs. Rachael was too good to feel any emotion at parting, but I was 
not so good, and wept bitterly.  I thought that I ought to have 
known her better after so many years and ought to have made myself 
enough of a favourite with her to make her sorry then.  When she 
gave me one cold parting kiss upon my forehead, like a thaw-drop 
from the stone porch--it was a very frosty day--I felt so miserable 
and self-reproachful that I clung to her and told her it was my 
fault, I knew, that she could say good-bye so easily!

"No, Esther!" she returned.  "It is your misfortune!"

The coach was at the little lawn-gate--we had not come out until we 
heard the wheels--and thus I left her, with a sorrowful heart.  She 
went in before my boxes were lifted to the coach-roof and shut the 
door.  As long as I could see the house, I looked back at it from 
the window through my tears.  My godmother had left Mrs. Rachael 
all the little property she possessed; and there was to be a sale; 
and an old hearth-rug with roses on it, which always seemed to me 
the first thing in the world I had ever seen, was hanging outside 
in the frost and snow.  A day or two before, I had wrapped the dear 
old doll in her own shawl and quietly laid her--I am half ashamed 
to tell it--in the garden-earth under the tree that shaded my old 
window.  I had no companion left but my bird, and him I carried 
with me in his cage.

When the house was out of sight, I sat, with my bird-cage in the 
straw at my feet, forward on the low seat to look out of the high 
window, watching the frosty trees, that were like beautiful pieces 
of spar, and the fields all smooth and white with last night's 
snow, and the sun, so red but yielding so little heat, and the ice, 
dark like metal where the skaters and sliders had brushed the snow 
away.  There was a gentleman in the coach who sat on the opposite 
seat and looked very large in a quantity of wrappings, but he sat 
gazing out of the other window and took no notice of me.

I thought of my dead godmother, of the night when I read to her, of 
her frowning so fixedly and sternly in her bed, of the strange 
place I was going to, of the people I should find there, and what 
they would be like, and what they would say to me, when a voice in 
the coach gave me a terrible start.

It said, "What the de-vil are you crying for?"

I was so frightened that I lost my voice and could only answer in a 
whisper, "Me, sir?"  For of course I knew it must have been the 
gentleman in the quantity of wrappings, though he was still looking 
out of his window.

"Yes, you," he said, turning round.

"I didn't know I was crying, sir," I faltered.

"But you are!" said the gentleman.  "Look here!"  He came quite 
opposite to me from the other corner of the coach, brushed one of 
his large furry cuffs across my eyes (but without hurting me), and 
showed me that it was wet.

"There!  Now you know you are," he said.  "Don't you?"

"Yes, sir," I said.

"And what are you crying for?" said the genfleman, "Don't you want 
to go there?"

"Where, sir?"

"Where?  Why, wherever you are going," said the gentleman.

"I am very glad to go there, sir," I answered.

"Well, then!  Look glad!" said the gentleman.

I thought he was very strange, or at least that what I could see of 
him was very strange, for he was wrapped up to the chin, and his 
face was almost hidden in a fur cap with broad fur straps at the 
side of his head fastened under his chin; but I was composed again, 
and not afraid of him.  So I told him that I thought I must have 
been crying because of my godmother's death and because of Mrs. 
Rachael's not being sorry to part with me.

"Confound Mrs. Rachael!" said the gentleman.  "Let her fly away in 
a high wind on a broomstick!"

I began to be really afraid of him now and looked at him with the 
greatest astonishment.  But I thought that he had pleasant eyes, 
although he kept on muttering to himself in an angry manner and 
calling Mrs. Rachael names.

After a little while he opened his outer wrapper, which appeared to 
me large enough to wrap up the whole coach, and put his arm down 
into a deep pocket in the side.

"Now, look here!" he said.  "In this paper," which was nicely 
folded, "is a piece of the best plum-cake that can be got for 
money--sugar on the outside an inch thick, like fat on mutton 
chops.  Here's a little pie (a gem this is, both for size and 
quality), made in France.  And what do you suppose it's made of?  
Livers of fat geese.  There's a pie!  Now let's see you eat 'em."

"Thank you, sir," I replied; "thank you very much indeed, but I 
hope you won't be offended--they are too rich for me."

"Floored again!" said the gentleman, which I didn't at all 
understand, and threw them both out of window.

He did not speak to me any more until he got out of the coach a 
little way short of Reading, when he advised me to be a good girl 
and to be studious, and shook hands with me.  I must say I was 
relieved by his departure.  We left him at a milestone.  I often 
walked past it afterwards, and never for a long time without 
thinking of him and half expecting to meet him.  But I never did; 
and so, as time went on, he passed out of my mind.

When the coach stopped, a very neat lady looked up at the window 
and said, "Miss Donny."

"No, ma'am, Esther Summerson."

"That is quite right," said the lady, "Miss Donny."

I now understood that she introduced herself by that name, and 
begged Miss Donny's pardon for my mistake, and pointed out my boxes 
at her request.  Under the direction of a very neat maid, they were 
put outside a very small green carriage; and then Miss Donny, the 
maid, and I got inside and were driven away.

"Everything is ready for you, Esther," said Miss Donny, "and the 
scheme of your pursuits has been arranged in exact accordance with 
the wishes of your guardian, Mr. Jarndyce."

"Of--did you say, ma'am?"

"Of your guardian, Mr. Jarndyce," said Miss Donny.

I was so bewildered that Miss Donny thought the cold had been too 
severe for me and lent me her smelling-bottle.

"Do you know my--guardian, Mr. Jarndyce, ma'am?" I asked after a 
good deal of hesitation.

"Not personally, Esther," said Miss Donny; "merely through his 
solicitors, Messrs. Kenge and Carboy, of London.  A very superior 
gentleman, Mr. Kenge.  Truly eloquent indeed.  Some of his periods 
quite majestic!"

I felt this to be very true but was too confused to attend to it.  
Our speedy arrival at our destination, before I had time to recover 
myself, increased my confusion, and I never shall forget the 
uncertain and the unreal air of everything at Greenleaf (Miss 
Donny's house) that afternoon!

But I soon became used to it.  I was so adapted to the routine of 
Greenleaf before long that I seemed to have been there a great 
while and almost to have dreamed rather than really lived my old 
life at my godmother's.  Nothing could be more precise, exact, and 
orderly than Greenleaf.  There was a time for everything all round 
the dial of the clock, and everything was done at its appointed 
moment.

We were twelve boarders, and there were two Miss Donnys, twins.  It 
was understood that I would have to depend, by and by, on my 
qualifications as a governess, and I was not only instructed in 
everything that was taught at Greenleaf, but was very soon engaged 
in helping to instruct others.  Although I was treated in every 
other respect like the rest of the school, this single difference 
was made in my case from the first.  As I began to know more, I 
taught more, and so in course of time I had plenty to do, which I 
was very fond of doing because it made the dear girls fond of me.  
At last, whenever a new pupil came who was a little downcast and 
unhappy, she was so sure--indeed I don't know why--to make a friend 
of me that all new-comers were confided to my care.  They said I 
was so gentle, but I am sure THEY were!  I often thought of the 
resolution I had made on my birthday to try to be industrious, 
contented, and true-hearted and to do some good to some one and win 
some love if I could; and indeed, indeed, I felt almost ashamed to 
have done so little and have won so much.

I passed at Greenleaf six happy, quiet years.  I never saw in any 
face there, thank heaven, on my birthday, that it would have been 
better if I had never been born.  When the day came round, it 
brought me so many tokens of affectionate remembrance that my room 
was beautiful with them from New Year's Day to Christmas.

In those six years I had never been away except on visits at 
holiday time in the neighbourhood.  After the first six months or 
so I had taken Miss Donny's advice in reference to the propriety of 
writing to Mr. Kenge to say that I was happy and grateful, and with 
her approval I had written such a letter.  I had received a formal 
answer acknowledging its receipt and saying, "We note the contents 
thereof, which shall be duly communicated to our client."  After 
that I sometimes heard Miss Donny and her sister mention how 
regular my accounts were paid, and about twice a year I ventured to 
write a similar letter.  I always received by return of post 
exactly the same answer in the same round hand, with the signature 
of Kenge and Carboy in another writing, which I supposed to be Mr. 
Kenge's.

It seems so curious to me to be obliged to write all this about 
myself!  As if this narrative were the narrative of MY life!  But 
my little body will soon fall into the background now.

Six quiet years (I find I am saying it for the second time) I had 
passed at Greenleaf, seeing in those around me, as it might be in a 
looking-glass, every stage of my own growth and change there, when, 
one November morning, I received this letter.  I omit the date.


Old Square, Lincoln's Inn

Madam,

Jarndyce and Jarndyce

Our clt Mr. Jarndyce being abt to rece into his house, under an 
Order of the Ct of Chy, a Ward of the Ct in this cause, for whom he 
wishes to secure an elgble compn, directs us to inform you that he 
will be glad of your serces in the afsd capacity.

We have arrngd for your being forded, carriage free, pr eight 
o'clock coach from Reading, on Monday morning next, to White Horse 
Cellar, Piccadilly, London, where one of our clks will be in 
waiting to convey you to our offe as above.

We are, Madam, Your obedt Servts,

Kenge and Carboy

Miss Esther Summerson


Oh, never, never, never shall I forget the emotion this letter 
caused in the house!  It was so tender in them to care so much for 
me, it was so gracious in that father who had not forgotten me to 
have made my orphan way so smooth and easy and to have inclined so 
many youthful natures towards me, that I could hardly bear it.  Not 
that I would have had them less sorry--I am afraid not; but the 
pleasure of it, and the pain of it, and the pride and joy of it, 
and the humble regret of it were so blended that my heart seemed 
almost breaking while it was full of rapture.

The letter gave me only five days' notice of my removal.  When 
every minute added to the proofs of love and kindness that were 
given me in those five days, and when at last the morning came and 
when they took me through all the rooms that I might see them for 
the last time, and when some cried, "Esther, dear, say good-bye to 
me here at my bedside, where you first spoke so kindly to me!" and 
when others asked me only to write their names, "With Esther's 
love," and when they all surrounded me with their parting presents 
and clung to me weeping and cried, "What shall we do when dear, 
dear Esther's gone!" and when I tried to tell them how forbearing 
and how good they had all been to me and how I blessed and thanked 
them every one, what a heart I had!

And when the two Miss Donnys grieved as much to part with me as the 
least among them, and when the maids said, "Bless you, miss, 
wherever you go!" and when the ugly lame old gardener, who I 
thought had hardly noticed me in all those years, came panting 
after the coach to give me a little nosegay of geraniums and told 
me I had been the light of his eyes--indeed the old man said so!--
what a heart I had then!

And could I help it if with all this, and the coming to the little 
school, and the unexpected sight of the poor children outside 
waving their hats and bonnets to me, and of a grey-haired gentleman 
and lady whose daughter I had helped to teach and at whose house I 
had visited (who were said to be the proudest people in all that 
country), caring for nothing but calling out, "Good-bye, Esther.  
May you be very happy!"--could I help it if I was quite bowed down 
in the coach by myself and said "Oh, I am so thankful, I am so 
thankful!" many times over!

But of course I soon considered that I must not take tears where I 
was going after all that had been done for me.  Therefore, of 
course, I made myself sob less and persuaded myself to be quiet by 
saying very often, "Esther, now you really must!  This WILL NOT 
do!" I cheered myself up pretty well at last, though I am afraid I 
was longer about it than I ought to have been; and when I had 
cooled my eyes with lavender water, it was time to watch for 
London.

I was quite persuaded that we were there when we were ten miles 
off, and when we really were there, that we should never get there.  
However, when we began to jolt upon a stone pavement, and 
particularly when every other conveyance seemed to be running into 
us, and we seemed to be running into every other conveyance, I 
began to believe that we really were approaching the end of our 
journey.  Very soon afterwards we stopped.

A young gentleman who had inked himself by accident addressed me 
from the pavement and said, "I am from Kenge and Carboy's, miss, of 
Lincoln's Inn."

"If you please, sir," said I.

He was very obliging, and as he handed me into a fly after 
superintending the removal of my boxes, I asked him whether there 
was a great fire anywhere?  For the streets were so full of dense 
brown smoke that scarcely anything was to be seen.

"Oh, dear no, miss," he said.  "This is a London particular."

I had never heard of such a thing.

"A fog, miss," said the young gentleman.

"Oh, indeed!" said I.

We drove slowly through the dirtiest and darkest streets that ever 
were seen in the world (I thought) and in such a distracting state 
of confusion that I wondered how the people kept their senses, 
until we passed into sudden quietude under an old gateway and drove 
on through a silent square until we came to an odd nook in a 
corner, where there was an entrance up a steep, broad flight of 
stairs, like an entrance to a church.  And there really was a 
churchyard outside under some cloisters, for I saw the gravestones 
from the staircase window.

This was Kenge and Carboy's.  The young gentleman showed me through 
an outer office into Mr. Kenge's room--there was no one in it--and 
politely put an arm-chair for me by the fire.  He then called my 
attention to a little looking-glass hanging from a nail on one side 
of the chimney-piece.

"In case you should wish to look at yourself, miss, after the 
journey, as you're going before the Chancellor.  Not that it's 
requisite, I am sure," said the young gentleman civilly.

"Going before the Chancellor?" I said, startled for a moment.

"Only a matter of form, miss," returned the young gentleman.  "Mr. 
Kenge is in court now.  He left his compliments, and would you 
partake of some refreshment"--there were biscuits and a decanter of 
wine on a small table--"and look over the paper," which the young 
gentleman gave me as he spoke.  He then stirred the fire and left 
me.

Everything was so strange--the stranger from its being night in the 
day-time, the candles burning with a white flame, and looking raw 
and cold--that I read the words in the newspaper without knowing 
what they meant and found myself reading the same words repeatedly.  
As it was of no use going on in that way, I put the paper down, 
took a peep at my bonnet in the glass to see if it was neat, and 
looked at the room, which was not half lighted, and at the shabby, 
dusty tables, and at the piles of writings, and at a bookcase full 
of the most inexpressive-looking books that ever had anything to 
say for themselves.  Then I went on, thinking, thinking, thinking; 
and the fire went on, burning, burning, burning; and the candles 
went on flickering and guttering, and there were no snuffers--until 
the young gentleman by and by brought a very dirty pair--for two 
hours.

At last Mr. Kenge came.  HE was not altered, but he was surprised 
to see how altered I was and appeared quite pleased.  "As you are 
going to be the companion of the young lady who is now in the 
Chancellor's private room, Miss Summerson," he said, "we thought it 
well that you should be in attendance also.  You will not be 
discomposed by the Lord Chancellor, I dare say?"

"No, sir," I said, "I don't think I shall," really not seeing on 
consideration why I should be.

So Mr. Kenge gave me his arm and we went round the corner, under a 
colonnade, and in at a side door.  And so we came, along a passage, 
into a comfortable sort of room where a young lady and a young 
gentleman were standing near a great, loud-roaring fire.  A screen 
was interposed between them and it, and they were leaning on the 
screen, talking.

They both looked up when I came in, and I saw in the young lady, 
with the fire shining upon her, such a beautiful girl!  With such 
rich golden hair, such soft blue eyes, and such a bright, innocent, 
trusting face!

"Miss Ada," said Mr. Kenge, "this is Miss Summerson."

She came to meet me with a smile of welcome and her hand extended, 
but seemed to change her mind in a moment and kissed me.  In short, 
she had such a natural, captivating, winning manner that in a few 
minutes we were sitting in the window-seat, with the light of the 
fire upon us, talking together as free and happy as could be.

What a load off my mind!  It was so delightful to know that she 
could confide in me and like me!  It was so good of her, and so 
encouraging to me!

The young gentleman was her distant cousin, she told me, and his 
name Richard Carstone.  He was a handsome youth with an ingenuous 
face and a most engaging laugh; and after she had called him up to 
where we sat, he stood by us, in the light of the fire, talking 
gaily, like a light-hearted boy.  He was very young, not more than 
nineteen then, if quite so much, but nearly two years older than 
she was.  They were both orphans and (what was very unexpected and 
curious to me) had never met before that day.  Our all three coming 
together for the first time in such an unusual place was a thing to 
talk about, and we talked about it; and the fire, which had left 
off roaring, winked its red eyes at us--as Richard said--like a 
drowsy old Chancery lion.

We conversed in a low tone because a full-dressed gentleman in a 
bag wig frequenfly came in and out, and when he did so, we could 
hear a drawling sound in the distance, which he said was one of the 
counsel in our case addressing the Lord Chancellor.  He told Mr. 
Kenge that the Chancellor would be up in five minutes; and 
presently we heard a bustle and a tread of feet, and Mr. Kenge said 
that the Court had risen and his lordship was in the next room.

The gentleman in the bag wig opened the door almost directly and 
requested Mr. Kenge to come in.  Upon that, we all went into the 
next room, Mr. Kenge first, with my darling--it is so natural to me 
now that I can't help writing it; and there, plainly dressed in 
black and sitting in an arm-chair at a table near the fire, was his 
lordship, whose robe, trimmed with beautiful gold lace, was thrown 
upon another chair.  He gave us a searching look as we entered, but 
his manner was both courtly and kind.

The gentleman in the bag wig laid bundles of papers on his 
lordship's table, and his lordship silently selected one and turned 
over the leaves.

"Miss Clare," said the Lord Chancellor.  "Miss Ada Clare?"

Mr. Kenge presented her, and his lordship begged her to sit down 
near him.  That he admired her and was interested by her even I 
could see in a moment.  It touched me that the home of such a 
beautiful young creature should be represented by that dry, 
official place.  The Lord High Chancellor, at his best, appeared so 
poor a substitute for the love and pride of parents.

"The Jarndyce in question," said the Lord Chancellor, still turning 
over leaves, "is Jarndyce of Bleak House."

"Jarndyce of Bleak House, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.

"A dreary name," said the Lord Chancellor.

"But not a dreary place at present, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.

"And Bleak House," said his lordship, "is in--"

"Hertfordshire, my lord."

"Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House is not married?" said his lordship.

"He is not, my lord," said Mr. Kenge.

A pause.

"Young Mr. Richard Carstone is present?" said the Lord Chancellor, 
glancing towards him.

Richard bowed and stepped forward.

"Hum!" said the Lord Chancellor, turning over more leaves.

"Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House, my lord," Mr. Kenge observed in a low 
voice, "if I may venture to remind your lordship, provides a 
suitable companion for--"

"For Mr. Richard Carstone?" I thought (but I am not quite sure) I 
heard his lordship say in an equally low voice and with a smile.

"For Miss Ada Clare.  This is the young lady.  Miss Summerson."

His lordship gave me an indulgent look and acknowledged my curtsy 
very graciously.

"Miss Summerson is not related to any party in the cause, I think?"

"No, my lord."

Mr. Kenge leant over before it was quite said and whispered.  His 
lordship, with his eyes upon his papers, listened, nodded twice or 
thrice, turned over more leaves, and did not look towards me again 
until we were going away.

Mr. Kenge now retired, and Richard with him, to where I was, near 
the door, leaving my pet (it is so natural to me that again I can't 
help it!) sitting near the Lord Chancellor, with whom his lordship 
spoke a little part, asking her, as she told me afterwards, whether 
she had well reflected on the proposed arrangement, and if she 
thought she would be happy under the roof of Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak 
House, and why she thought so?  Presently he rose courteously and 
released her, and then he spoke for a minute or two with Richard 
Carstone, not seated, but standing, and altogether with more ease 
and less ceremony, as if he still knew, though he WAS Lord 
Chancellor, how to go straight to the candour of a boy.

"Very well!" said his lordship aloud.  "I shall make the order.  
Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House has chosen, so far as I may judge," and 
this was when he looked at me, "a very good companion for the young 
lady, and the arrangement altogether seems the best of which the 
circumstances admit."

He dismissed us pleasantly, and we all went out, very much obliged 
to him for being so affable and polite, by which he had certainly 
lost no dignity but seemed to us to have gained some.

When we got under the colonnade, Mr. Kenge remembered that he must 
go back for a moment to ask a question and left us in the fog, with 
the Lord Chancellor's carriage and servants waiting for him to come 
out.

"Well!" said Richard Carstone.  "THAT'S over!  And where do we go 
next, Miss Summerson?"

"Don't you know?" I said.

"Not in the least," said he.

"And don't YOU know, my love?" I asked Ada.

"No!" said she.  "Don't you?"

"Not at all!" said I.

We looked at one another, half laughing at our being like the 
children in the wood, when a curious little old woman in a squeezed 
bonnet and carrying a reticule came curtsying and smiling up to us 
with an air of great ceremony.

"Oh!" said she.  "The wards in Jarndyce!  Ve-ry happy, I am sure, 
to have the honour!  It is a good omen for youth, and hope, and 
beauty when they find themselves in this place, and don't know 
what's to come of it."

"Mad!" whispered Richard, not thinking she could hear him.

"Right!  Mad, young gentleman," she returned so quickly that he was 
quite abashed.  "I was a ward myself.  I was not mad at that time," 
curtsying low and smiling between every little sentence.  "I had 
youth and hope.  I believe, beauty.  It matters very little now.  
Neither of the three served or saved me.  I have the honour to 
attend court regularly.  With my documents.  I expect a judgment.  
Shortly.  On the Day of Judgment.  I have discovered that the sixth 
seal mentioned in the Revelations is the Great Seal.  It has been 
open a long time!  Pray accept my blessing."

As Ada was a little frightened, I said, to humour the poor old 
lady, that we were much obliged to her.

"Ye-es!" she said mincingly.  "I imagine so.  And here is 
Conversation Kenge.  With HIS documents!  How does your honourable 
worship do?"

"Quite well, quite well!  Now don't be troublesome, that's a good 
soul!" said Mr. Kenge, leading the way back.

"By no means," said the poor old lady, keeping up with Ada and me.  
"Anything but troublesome.  I shall confer estates on both--which 
is not being troublesome, I trust?  I expect a judgment.  Shortly.  
On the Day of Judgment.  This is a good omen for you.  Accept my 
blessing!"

She stopped at the bottom of the steep, broad flight of stairs; but 
we looked back as we went up, and she was still there, saying, 
still with a curtsy and a smile between every little sentence, 
"Youth.  And hope.  And beauty.  And Chancery.  And Conversation 
Kenge!  Ha!  Pray accept my blessing!"



CHAPTER IV

Telescopic Philanthropy


We were to pass the night, Mr. Kenge told us when we arrived in his 
room, at Mrs. Jellyby's; and then he turned to me and said he took 
it for granted I knew who Mrs. Jellyby was.

"I really don't, sir," I returned.  "Perhaps Mr. Carstone--or Miss 
Clare--"

But no, they knew nothing whatever about Mrs. Jellyby.  "In-deed!  
Mrs. Jellyby," said Mr. Kenge, standing with his back to the fire 
and casting his eyes over the dusty hearth-rug as if it were Mrs. 
Jellyby's biography, "is a lady of very remarkable strength of 
character who devotes herself entirely to the public.  She has 
devoted herself to an extensive variety of public subjects at 
various times and is at present (until something else attracts her) 
devoted to the subject of Africa, with a view to the general 
cultivation of the coffee berry--AND the natives--and the happy 
settlement, on the banks of the African rivers, of our 
superabundant home population.  Mr. Jarndyce, who is desirous to 
aid any work that is considered likely to be a good work and who is 
much sought after by philanthropists, has, I believe, a very high 
opinion of Mrs. Jellyby."

Mr. Kenge, adjusting his cravat, then looked at us.

"And Mr. Jellyby, sir?" suggested Richard.

"Ah!  Mr. Jellyby," said Mr. Kenge, "is--a--I don't know that I can 
describe him to you better than by saying that he is the husband of 
Mrs. Jellyby."

"A nonentity, sir?" said Richard with a droll look.

"I don't say that," returned Mr. Kenge gravely.  "I can't say that, 
indeed, for I know nothing whatever OF Mr. Jellyby.  I never, to my 
knowledge, had the pleasure of seeing Mr. Jellyby.  He may be a 
very superior man, but he is, so to speak, merged--merged--in the 
more shining qualities of his wife."  Mr. Kenge proceeded to tell 
us that as the road to Bleak House would have been very long, dark, 
and tedious on such an evening, and as we had been travelling 
already, Mr. Jarndyce had himself proposed this arrangement.  A 
carriage would be at Mrs. Jellyby's to convey us out of town early 
in the forenoon of to-morrow.

He then rang a little bell, and the young gentleman came in.  
Addressing him by the name of Guppy, Mr. Kenge inquired whether 
Miss Summerson's boxes and the rest of the baggage had been "sent 
round."  Mr. Guppy said yes, they had been sent round, and a coach 
was waiting to take us round too as soon as we pleased.

"Then it only remains," said Mr. Kenge, shaking hands with us, "for 
me to express my lively satisfaction in (good day, Miss Clare!) the 
arrangement this day concluded and my (GOOD-bye to you, Miss 
Summerson!) lively hope that it will conduce to the happiness, the 
(glad to have had the honour of making your acquaintance, Mr. 
Carstone!) welfare, the advantage in all points of view, of all 
concerned!  Guppy, see the party safely there."

"Where IS 'there,' Mr. Guppy?" said Richard as we went downstairs.

"No distance," said Mr. Guppy; "round in Thavies Inn, you know."

"I can't say I know where it is, for I come from Winchester and am 
strange in London."

"Only round the corner," said Mr. Guppy.  "We just twist up 
Chancery Lane, and cut along Holborn, and there we are in four 
minutes' time, as near as a toucher.  This is about a London 
particular NOW, ain't it, miss?"  He seemed quite delighted with it 
on my account.

"The fog is very dense indeed!" said I.

"Not that it affects you, though, I'm sure," said Mr. Guppy, 
putting up the steps.  "On the contrary, it seems to do you good, 
miss, judging from your appearance."

I knew he meant well in paying me this compliment, so I laughed at 
myself for blushing at it when he had shut the door and got upon 
the box; and we all three laughed and chatted about our 
inexperience and the strangeness of London until we turned up under 
an archway to our destination--a narrow street of high houses like 
an oblong cistern to hold the fog.  There was a confused little 
crowd of people, principally children, gathered about the house at 
which we stopped, which had a tarnished brass plate on the door 
with the inscription JELLYBY.

"Don't be frightened!" said Mr. Guppy, looking in at the coach-
window.  "One of the young Jellybys been and got his head through 
the area railings!"

"Oh, poor child," said I; "let me out, if you please!"

"Pray be careful of yourself, miss.  The young Jellybys are always 
up to something," said Mr. Guppy.

I made my way to the poor child, who was one of the dirtiest little 
unfortunates I ever saw, and found him very hot and frightened and 
crying loudly, fixed by the neck between two iron railings, while a 
milkman and a beadle, with the kindest intentions possible, were 
endeavouring to drag him back by the legs, under a general 
impression that his skull was compressible by those means.  As I 
found (after pacifying him) that he was a little boy with a 
naturally large head, I thought that perhaps where his head could 
go, his body could follow, and mentioned that the best mode of 
extrication might be to push him forward.  This was so favourably 
received by the milkman and beadle that he would immediately have 
been pushed into the area if I had not held his pinafore while 
Richard and Mr. Guppy ran down through the kitchen to catch him 
when he should be released.  At last he was happily got down 
without any accident, and then he began to beat Mr. Guppy with a 
hoop-stick in quite a frantic manner.

Nobody had appeared belonging to the house except a person in 
pattens, who had been poking at the child from below with a broom; 
I don't know with what object, and I don't think she did.  I 
therefore supposed that Mrs. Jellyby was not at home, and was quite 
surprised when the person appeared in the passage without the 
pattens, and going up to the back room on the first floor before 
Ada and me, announced us as, "Them two young ladies, Missis 
Jellyby!"  We passed several more children on the way up, whom it 
was difficult to avoid treading on in the dark; and as we came into 
Mrs. Jellyby's presence, one of the poor little things fell 
downstairs--down a whole flight (as it sounded to me), with a great 
noise.

Mrs. Jellyby, whose face reflected none of the uneasiness which we 
could not help showing in our own faces as the dear child's head 
recorded its passage with a bump on every stair--Richard afterwards 
said he counted seven, besides one for the landing--received us 
with perfect equanimity.  She was a pretty, very diminutive, plump 
woman of from forty to fifty, with handsome eyes, though they had a 
curious habit of seeming to look a long way off.  As if--I am 
quoting Richard again--they could see nothing nearer than Africa!

"I am very glad indeed," said Mrs. Jellyby in an agreeable voice, 
"to have the pleasure of receiving you.  I have a great respect for 
Mr. Jarndyce, and no one in whom he is interested can be an object 
of indifference to me."

We expressed our acknowledgments and sat down behind the door, 
where there was a lame invalid of a sofa.  Mrs. Jellyby had very 
good hair but was too much occupied with her African duties to 
brush it.  The shawl in which she had been loosely muffled dropped 
onto her chair when she advanced to us; and as she turned to resume 
her seat, we could not help noticing that her dress didn't nearly 
meet up the back and that the open space was railed across with a 
lattice-work of stay-lace--like a summer-house.

The room, which was strewn with papers and nearly filled by a great 
writing-table covered with similar litter, was, I must say, not 
only very untidy but very dirty.  We were obliged to take notice of 
that with our sense of sight, even while, with our sense of 
hearing, we followed the poor child who had tumbled downstairs: I 
think into the back kitchen, where somebody seemed to stifle him.

But what principally struck us was a jaded and unhealthy-looking 
though by no means plain girl at the writing-table, who sat biting 
the feather of her pen and staring at us.  I suppose nobody ever 
was in such a state of ink.  And from her tumbled hair to her 
pretty feet, which were disfigured with frayed and broken satin 
slippers trodden down at heel, she really seemed to have no article 
of dress upon her, from a pin upwards, that was in its proper 
condition or its right place.

"You find me, my dears," said Mrs. Jellyby, snuffing the two great 
office candles in tin candlesticks, which made the room taste 
strongly of hot tallow (the fire had gone out, and there was 
nothing in the grate but ashes, a bundle of wood, and a poker), 
"you find me, my dears, as usual, very busy; but that you will 
excuse.  The African project at present employs my whole time.  It 
involves me in correspondence with public bodies and with private 
individuals anxious for the welfare of their species all over the 
country.  I am happy to say it is advancing.  We hope by this time 
next year to have from a hundred and fifty to two hundred healthy 
families cultivating coffee and educating the natives of 
Borrioboola-Gha, on the left bank of the Niger."

As Ada said nothing, but looked at me, I said it must be very 
gratifying.

"It IS gratifying," said Mrs. Jellyby.  "It involves the devotion 
of all my energies, such as they are; but that is nothing, so that 
it succeeds; and I am more confident of success every day.  Do you 
know, Miss Summerson, I almost wonder that YOU never turned your 
thoughts to Africa."

This application of the subject was really so unexpected to me that 
I was quite at a loss how to receive it.  I hinted that the 
climate--

"The finest climate in the world!" said Mrs. Jellyby.

"Indeed, ma'am?"

"Certainly.  With precaution," said Mrs. Jellyby.  "You may go into 
Holborn, without precaution, and be run over.  You may go into 
Holborn, with precaution, and never be run over.  Just so with 
Africa."

I said, "No doubt."  I meant as to Holborn.

"If you would like," said Mrs. Jellyby, putting a number of papers 
towards us, "to look over some remarks on that head, and on the 
general subject, which have been extensively circulated, while I 
finish a letter I am now dictating to my eldest daughter, who is my 
amanuensis--"

The girl at the table left off biting her pen and made a return to 
our recognition, which was half bashful and half sulky.

"--I shall then have finished for the present," proceeded Mrs. 
Jellyby with a sweet smile, "though my work is never done.  Where 
are you, Caddy?"

"'Presents her compliments to Mr. Swallow, and begs--'" said Caddy.

"'And begs,'" said Mrs. Jellyby, dictating, "'to inform him, in 
reference to his letter of inquiry on the African project--' No, 
Peepy!  Not on my account!"

Peepy (so self-named) was the unfortunate child who had fallen 
downstairs, who now interrupted the correspondence by presenting 
himself, with a strip of plaster on his forehead, to exhibit his 
wounded knees, in which Ada and I did not know which to pity most--
the bruises or the dirt.  Mrs. Jellyby merely added, with the 
serene composure with which she said everything, "Go along, you 
naughty Peepy!" and fixed her fine eyes on Africa again.

However, as she at once proceeded with her dictation, and as I 
interrupted nothing by doing it, I ventured quietly to stop poor 
Peepy as he was going out and to take him up to nurse.  He looked 
very much astonished at it and at Ada's kissing him, but soon fell 
fast asleep in my arms, sobbing at longer and longer intervals, 
until he was quiet.  I was so occupied with Peepy that I lost the 
letter in detail, though I derived such a general impression from 
it of the momentous importance of Africa, and the utter 
insignificance of all other places and things, that I felt quite 
ashamed to have thought so little about it.

"Six o'clock!" said Mrs. Jellyby.  "And our dinner hour is 
nominally (for we dine at all hours) five!  Caddy, show Miss Clare 
and Miss Summerson their rooms.  You will like to make some change, 
perhaps?  You will excuse me, I know, being so much occupied.  Oh, 
that very bad child!  Pray put him down, Miss Summerson!"

I begged permission to retain him, truly saying that he was not at 
all troublesome, and carried him upstairs and laid him on my bed.  
Ada and I had two upper rooms with a door of communication between.  
They were excessively bare and disorderly, and the curtain to my 
window was fastened up with a fork.

"You would like some hot water, wouldn't you?" said Miss Jellyby, 
looking round for a jug with a handle to it, but looking in vain.

"If it is not being troublesome," said we.

"Oh, it's not the trouble," returned Miss Jellyby; "the question 
is, if there IS any."

The evening was so very cold and the rooms had such a marshy smell 
that I must confess it was a little miserable, and Ada was half 
crying.  We soon laughed, however, and were busily unpacking when 
Miss Jellyby came back to say that she was sorry there was no hot 
water, but they couldn't find the kettle, and the boiler was out of 
order.

We begged her not to mention it and made all the haste we could to 
get down to the fire again.  But all the little children had come 
up to the landing outside to look at the phenomenon of Peepy lying 
on my bed, and our attention was distracted by the constant 
apparition of noses and fingers in situations of danger between the 
hinges of the doors.  It was impossible to shut the door of either 
room, for my lock, with no knob to it, looked as if it wanted to be 
wound up; and though the handle of Ada's went round and round with 
the greatest smoothness, it was attended with no effect whatever on 
the door.  Therefore I proposed to the children that they should 
come in and be very good at my table, and I would tell them the 
story of Little Red Riding Hood while I dressed; which they did, 
and were as quiet as mice, including Peepy, who awoke opportunely 
before the appearance of the wolf.

When we went downstairs we found a mug with "A Present from 
Tunbridge Wells" on it lighted up in the staircase window with a 
floating wick, and a young woman, with a swelled face bound up in a 
flannel bandage blowing the fire of the drawing-room (now connected 
by an open door with Mrs. Jellyby's room) and choking dreadfully.  
It smoked to that degree, in short, that we all sat coughing and 
crying with the windows open for half an hour, during which Mrs. 
Jellyby, with the same sweetness of temper, directed letters about 
Africa.  Her being so employed was, I must say, a great relief to 
me, for Richard told us that he had washed his hands in a pie-dish 
and that they had found the kettle on his dressing-table, and he 
made Ada laugh so that they made me laugh in the most ridiculous 
manner.

Soon after seven o'clock we went down to dinner, carefully, by Mrs. 
Jellyby's advice, for the stair-carpets, besides being very 
deficient in stair-wires, were so torn as to be absolute traps.  We 
had a fine cod-fish, a piece of roast beef, a dish of cutlets, and 
a pudding; an excellent dinner, if it had had any cooking to speak 
of, but it was almost raw.  The young woman with the flannel 
bandage waited, and dropped everything on the table wherever it 
happened to go, and never moved it again until she put it on the 
stairs.  The person I had seen in pattens, who I suppose to have 
been the cook, frequently came and skirmished with her at the door, 
and there appeared to be ill will between them.

All through dinner--which was long, in consequence of such 
accidents as the dish of potatoes being mislaid in the coal skuttle 
and the handle of the corkscrew coming off and striking the young 
woman in the chin--Mrs. Jellyby preserved the evenness of her 
disposition.  She told us a great deal that was interesting about 
Borrioboola-Gha and the natives, and received so many letters that 
Richard, who sat by her, saw four envelopes in the gravy at once.  
Some of the letters were proceedings of ladies' committees or 
resolutions of ladies' meetings, which she read to us; others were 
applications from people excited in various ways about the 
cultivation of coffee, and natives; others required answers, and 
these she sent her eldest daughter from the table three or four 
times to write.  She was full of business and undoubtedly was, as 
she had told us, devoted to the cause.

I was a little curious to know who a mild bald gentleman in 
spectacles was, who dropped into a vacant chair (there was no top 
or bottom in particular) after the fish was taken away and seemed 
passively to submit himself to Borriohoola-Gha but not to be 
actively interested in that settlement.  As he never spoke a word, 
he might have been a native but for his complexion.  It was not 
until we left the table and he remained alone with Richard that the 
possibility of his being Mr. Jellyby ever entered my head.  But he 
WAS Mr. Jellyby; and a loquacious young man called Mr. Quale, with 
large shining knobs for temples and his hair all brushed to the 
back of his head, who came in the evening, and told Ada he was a 
philanthropist, also informed her that he called the matrimonial 
alliance of Mrs. Jellyby with Mr. Jellyby the union of mind and 
matter.

This young man, besides having a great deal to say for himself 
about Africa and a project of his for teaching the coffee colonists 
to teach the natives to turn piano-forte legs and establish an 
export trade, delighted in drawing Mrs. Jellyby out by saving, "I 
believe now, Mrs. Jellyby, you have received as many as from one 
hundred and fifty to two hundred letters respecting Africa in a 
single day, have you not?" or, "If my memory does not deceive me, 
Mrs. Jellyby, you once mentioned that you had sent off five 
thousand circulars from one post-office at one time?"--always 
repeating Mrs. Jellyby's answer to us like an interpreter.  During 
the whole evening, Mr. Jellyby sat in a corner with his head 
against the wall as if he were subject to low spirits.  It seemed 
that he had several times opened his mouth when alone with Richard 
after dinner, as if he had something on his mind, but had always 
shut it again, to Richard's extreme confusion, without saying 
anything.

Mrs. Jellyby, sitting in quite a nest of waste paper, drank coffee 
all the evening and dictated at intervals to her eldest daughter.  
She also held a discussion with Mr. Quale, of which the subject 
seemed to be--if I understood it--the brotherhood of humanity, and 
gave utterance to some beautiful sentiments.  I was not so 
attentive an auditor as I might have wished to be, however, for 
Peepy and the other children came flocking about Ada and me in a 
corner of the drawing-room to ask for another story; so we sat down 
among them and told them in whispers "Puss in Boots" and I don't 
know what else until Mrs. Jellyby, accidentally remembering them, 
sent them to bed.  As Peepy cried for me to take him to bed, I 
carried him upstairs, where the young woman with the flannel 
bandage charged into the midst of the little family like a dragon 
and overturned them into cribs.

After that I occupied myself in making our room a little tidy and 
in coaxing a very cross fire that had been lighted to burn, which 
at last it did, quite brightly.  On my return downstairs, I felt 
that Mrs. Jellyby looked down upon me rather for being so 
frivolous, and I was sorry for it, though at the same time I knew 
that I had no higher pretensions.

It was nearly midnight before we found an opportunity of going to 
bed, and even then we left Mrs. Jellyby among her papers drinking 
coffee and Miss Jellyby biting the feather of her pen.

"What a strange house!" said Ada when we got upstairs.  "How 
curious of my cousin Jarndyce to send us here!"

"My love," said I, "it quite confuses me.  I want to understand it, 
and I can't understand it at all."

"What?" asked Ada with her pretty smile.

"All this, my dear," said I.  "It MUST be very good of Mrs. Jellyby 
to take such pains about a scheme for the benefit of natives--and 
yet--Peepy and the housekeeping!"

Ada laughed and put her arm about my neck as I stood looking at the 
fire, and told me I was a quiet, dear, good creature and had won 
her heart.  "You are so thoughtful, Esther," she said, "and yet so 
cheerful!  And you do so much, so unpretendingly!  You would make a 
home out of even this house."

My simple darling!  She was quite unconscious that she only praised 
herself and that it was in the goodness of her own heart that she 
made so much of me!

"May I ask you a question?" said I when we had sat before the fire 
a little while.

"Five hundred," said Ada.

"Your cousin, Mr. Jarndyce.  I owe so much to him.  Would you mind 
describing him to me?"

Shaking her golden hair, Ada turned her eyes upon me with such 
laughing wonder that I was full of wonder too, partly at her 
beauty, partly at her surprise.

"Esther!" she cried.

"My dear!"

"You want a description of my cousin Jarndyce?"

"My dear, I never saw him."

"And I never saw him!" returned Ada.

Well, to be sure!

No, she had never seen him.  Young as she was when her mama died, 
she remembered how the tears would come into her eyes when she 
spoke of him and of the noble generosity of his character, which 
she had said was to be trusted above all earthly things; and Ada 
trusted it.  Her cousin Jarndyce had written to her a few months 
ago--"a plain, honest letter," Ada said--proposing the arrangement 
we were now to enter on and telling her that "in time it might heal 
some of the wounds made by the miserable Chancery suit."  She had 
replied, gratefully accepting his proposal.  Richard had received a 
similar letter and had made a similar response.  He HAD seen Mr. 
Jarndyce once, but only once, five years ago, at Winchester school.  
He had told Ada, when they were leaning on the screen before the 
fire where I found them, that he recollected him as "a bluff, rosy 
fellow."  This was the utmost description Ada could give me.

It set me thinking so that when Ada was asleep, I still remained 
before the fire, wondering and wondering about Bleak House, and 
wondering and wondering that yesterday morning should seem so long 
ago.  I don't know where my thoughts had wandered when they were 
recalled by a tap at the door.

I opened it softly and found Miss Jellyby shivering there with a 
broken candle in a broken candlestick in one hand and an egg-cup in 
the other.

"Good night!" she said very sulkily.

"Good night!" said I.

"May I come in?" she shortly and unexpectedly asked me in the same 
sulky way.

"Certainly," said I.  "Don't wake Miss Clare."

She would not sit down, but stood by the fire dipping her inky 
middle finger in the egg-cup, which contained vinegar, and smearing 
it over the ink stains on her face, frowning the whole time and 
looking very gloomy.

"I wish Africa was dead!" she said on a sudden.

I was going to remonstrate.

"I do!" she said "Don't talk to me, Miss Summerson.  I hate it and 
detest it.  It's a beast!"

I told her she was tired, and I was sorry.  I put my hand upon her 
head, and touched her forehead, and said it was hot now but would 
be cool tomorrow.  She still stood pouting and frowning at me, but 
presently put down her egg-cup and turned softly towards the bed 
where Ada lay.

"She is very pretty!" she said with the same knitted brow and in 
the same uncivil manner.

I assented with a smile.

"An orphan.  Ain't she?"

"Yes."

"But knows a quantity, I suppose?  Can dance, and play music, and 
sing?  She can talk French, I suppose, and do geography, and 
globes, and needlework, and everything?"

"No doubt," said I.

"I can't," she returned.  "I can't do anything hardly, except 
write.  I'm always writing for Ma.  I wonder you two were not 
ashamed of yourselves to come in this afternoon and see me able to 
do nothing else.  It was like your ill nature.  Yet you think 
yourselves very fine, I dare say!"

I could see that the poor girl was near crying, and I resumed my 
chair without speaking and looked at her (I hope) as mildly as I 
felt towards her.

"It's disgraceful," she said.  "You know it is.  The whole house is 
disgraceful.  The children are disgraceful.  I'M disgraceful.  Pa's 
miserable, and no wonder!  Priscilla drinks--she's always drinking.  
It's a great shame and a great story of you if you say you didn't 
smell her today.  It was as bad as a public-house, waiting at 
dinner; you know it was!"

"My dear, I don't know it," said I.

"You do," she said very shortly.  "You shan't say you don't.  You 
do!"

"Oh, my dear!" said I.  "If you won't let me speak--"

"You're speaking now.  You know you are.  Don't tell stories, Miss 
Summerson."

"My dear," said I, "as long as you won't hear me out--"

"I don't want to hear you out."

"Oh, yes, I think you do," said I, "because that would be so very 
unreasonable.  I did not know what you tell me because the servant 
did not come near me at dinner; but I don't doubt what you tell me, 
and I am sorry to hear it."

"You needn't make a merit of that," said she.

"No, my dear," said I.  "That would be very foolish."

She was still standing by the bed, and now stooped down (but still 
with the same discontented face) and kissed Ada.  That done, she 
came softly back and stood by the side of my chair.  Her bosom was 
heaving in a distressful manner that I greatly pitied, but I 
thought it better not to speak.

"I wish I was dead!" she broke out.  "I wish we were all dead.  It 
would be a great deal better for us.

In a moment afterwards, she knelt on the ground at my side, hid her 
face in my dress, passionately begged my pardon, and wept.  I 
comforted her and would have raised her, but she cried no, no; she 
wanted to stay there!

"You used to teach girls," she said, "If you could only have taught 
me, I could have learnt from you!  I am so very miserable, and I 
like you so much!"

I could not persuade her to sit by me or to do anything but move a 
ragged stool to where she was kneeling, and take that, and still 
hold my dress in the same manner.  By degrees the poor tired girl 
fell asleep, and then I contrived to raise her head so that it 
should rest on my lap, and to cover us both with shawls.  The fire 
went out, and all night long she slumbered thus before the ashy 
grate.  At first I was painfully awake and vainly tried to lose 
myself, with my eyes closed, among the scenes of the day.  At 
length, by slow degrees, they became indistinct and mingled.  I 
began to lose the identity of the sleeper resting on me.  Now it 
was Ada, now one of my old Reading friends from whom I could not 
believe I had so recently parted.  Now it was the little mad woman 
worn out with curtsying and smiling, now some one in authority at 
Bleak House.  Lastly, it was no one, and I was no one.

The purblind day was feebly struggling with the fog when I opened 
my eyes to encounter those of a dirty-faced little spectre fixed 
upon me.  Peepy had scaled his crib, and crept down in his bed-gown 
and cap, and was so cold that his teeth were chattering as if he 
had cut them all.



CHAPTER V

A Morning Adventure


Although the morning was raw, and although the fog still seemed 
heavy--I say seemed, for the windows were so encrusted with dirt 
that they would have made midsummer sunshine dim--I was 
sufficiently forewarned of the discomfort within doors at that 
early hour and sufficiently curious about London to think it a good 
idea on the part of Miss Jellyby when she proposed that we should 
go out for a walk.

"Ma won't be down for ever so long," she said, "and then it's a 
chance if breakfast's ready for an hour afterwards, they dawdle so.  
As to Pa, he gets what he can and goes to the office.  He never has 
what you would call a regular breakfast.  Priscilla leaves him out 
the loaf and some milk, when there is any, overnight.  Sometimes 
there isn't any milk, and sometimes the cat drinks it.  But I'm 
afraid you must be tired, Miss Summerson, and perhaps you would 
rather go to bed."

"I am not at all tired, my dear," said I, "and would much prefer to 
go out."

"If you're sure you would," returned Miss Jellyby, "I'll get my 
things on."

Ada said she would go too, and was soon astir.  I made a proposal 
to Peepy, in default of being able to do anything better for him, 
that he should let me wash him and afterwards lay him down on my 
bed again.  To this he submitted with the best grace possible, 
staring at me during the whole operation as if he never had been, 
and never could again be, so astonished in his life--looking very 
miserable also, certainly, but making no complaint, and going 
snugly to sleep as soon as it was over.  At first I was in two 
minds about taking such a liberty, but I soon reflected that nobody 
in the house was likely to notice it.

What with the bustle of dispatching Peepy and the bustle of getting 
myself ready and helping Ada, I was soon quite in a glow.  We found 
Miss Jellyby trying to warm herself at the fire in the writing-
room, which Priscilla was then lighting with a smutty parlour 
candlestick, throwing the candle in to make it burn better.  
Everything was just as we had left it last night and was evidently 
intended to remain so.  Below-stairs the dinner-cloth had not been 
taken away, but had been left ready for breakfast.  Crumbs, dust, 
and waste-paper were all over the house.  Some pewter pots and a 
milk-can hung on the area railings; the door stood open; and we met 
the cook round the corner coming out of a public-house, wiping her 
mouth.  She mentioned, as she passed us, that she had been to see 
what o'clock it was.

But before we met the cook, we met Richard, who was dancing up and 
down Thavies Inn to warm his feet.  He was agreeably surprised to 
see us stirring so soon and said he would gladly share our walk.  
So he took care of Ada, and Miss Jellyby and I went first.  I may 
mention that Miss Jellyby had relapsed into her sulky manner and 
that I really should not have thought she liked me much unless she 
had told me so.

"Where would you wish to go?" she asked.

"Anywhere, my dear," I replied.

"Anywhere's nowhere," said Miss Jellyby, stopping perversely.

"Let us go somewhere at any rate," said I.

She then walked me on very fast.

"I don't care!" she said.  "Now, you are my witness, Miss 
Summerson, I say I don't care-but if he was to come to our house 
with his great, shining, lumpy forehead night after night till he 
was as old as Methuselah, I wouldn't have anything to say to him.  
Such ASSES as he and Ma make of themselves!"

"My dear!" I remonstrated, in allusion to the epithet and the 
vigorous emphasis Miss Jellyby set upon it.  "Your duty as a child--"

"Oh!  Don't talk of duty as a child, Miss Summerson; where's Ma's 
duty as a parent?  All made over to the public and Africa, I 
suppose!  Then let the public and Africa show duty as a child; it's 
much more their affair than mine.  You are shocked, I dare say!  
Very well, so am I shocked too; so we are both shocked, and there's 
an end of it!"

She walked me on faster yet.

"But for all that, I say again, he may come, and come, and come, 
and I won't have anything to say to him.  I can't bear him.  If 
there's any stuff in the world that I hate and detest, it's the 
stuff he and Ma talk.  I wonder the very paving-stones opposite our 
house can have the patience to stay there and be a witness of such 
inconsistencies and contradictions as all that sounding nonsense, 
and Ma's management!"

I could not but understand her to refer to Mr. Quale, the young 
gentleman who had appeared after dinner yesterday.  I was saved the 
disagreeable necessity of pursuing the subject by Richard and Ada 
coming up at a round pace, laughing and asking us if we meant to 
run a race.  Thus interrupted, Miss Jellyby became silent and 
walked moodily on at my side while I admired the long successions 
and varieties of streets, the quantity of people already going to 
and fro, the number of vehicles passing and repassing, the busy 
preparations in the setting forth of shop windows and the sweeping 
out of shops, and the extraordinary creatures in rags secretly 
groping among the swept-out rubbish for pins and other refuse.

"So, cousin," said the cheerful voice of Richard to Ada behind me.  
"We are never to get out of Chancery!  We have come by another way 
to our place of meeting yesterday, and--by the Great Seal, here's 
the old lady again!"

Truly, there she was, immediately in front of us, curtsying, and 
smiling, and saying with her yesterday's air of patronage, "The 
wards in Jarndyce!  Ve-ry happy, I am sure!"

"You are out early, ma'am," said I as she curtsied to me.

"Ye-es!  I usually walk here early.  Before the court sits.  It's 
retired.  I collect my thoughts here for the business of the day," 
said the old lady mincingly.  "The business of the day requires a 
great deal of thought.  Chancery justice is so ve-ry difficult to 
follow."

"Who's this, Miss Summerson?" whispered Miss Jellyby, drawing my 
arm tighter through her own.

The little old lady's hearing was remarkably quick.  She answered 
for herself directly.

"A suitor, my child.  At your service.  I have the honour to attend 
court regularly.  With my documents.  Have I the pleasure of 
addressing another of the youthful parties in Jarndyce?" said the 
old lady, recovering herself, with her head on one side, from a 
very low curtsy.

Richard, anxious to atone for his thoughtlessness of yesterday, 
good-naturedly explained that Miss Jellyby was not connected with 
the suit.

"Ha!" said the old lady.  "She does not expect a judgment?  She 
will still grow old.  But not so old.  Oh, dear, no!  This is the 
garden of Lincoln's Inn.  I call it my garden.  It is quite a bower 
in the summer-time.  Where the birds sing melodiously.  I pass the 
greater part of the long vacation here.  In contemplation.  You 
find the long vacation exceedingly long, don't you?"

We said yes, as she seemed to expect us to say so.

"When the leaves are falling from the trees and there are no more 
flowers in bloom to make up into nosegays for the Lord Chancellor's 
court," said the old lady, "the vacation is fulfilled and the sixth 
seal, mentioned in the Revelations, again prevails.  Pray come and 
see my lodging.  It will be a good omen for me.  Youth, and hope, 
and beauty are very seldom there.  It is a long, long time since I 
had a visit from either."

She had taken my hand, and leading me and Miss Jellyby away, 
beckoned Richard and Ada to come too.  I did not know how to excuse 
myself and looked to Richard for aid.  As he was half amused and 
half curious and all in doubt how to get rid of the old lady 
without offence, she continued to lead us away, and he and Ada 
continued to follow, our strange conductress informing us all the 
time, with much smiling condescension, that she lived close by.

It was quite true, as it soon appeared.  She lived so close by that 
we had not time to have done humouring her for a few moments before 
she was at home.  Slipping us out at a little side gate, the old 
lady stopped most unexpectedly in a narrow back street, part of 
some courts and lanes immediately outside the wall of the inn, and 
said, "This is my lodging.  Pray walk up!"

She had stopped at a shop over which was written KROOK, RAG AND 
BOTTLE WAREHOUSE.  Also, in long thin letters, KROOK, DEALER IN 
MARINE STORES.  In one part of the window was a picture of a red 
paper mill at which a cart was unloading a quantity of sacks of old 
rags.  In another was the inscription BONES BOUGHT.  In another, 
KITCHEN-STUFF BOUGHT.  In another, OLD IRON BOUGHT.  In another, 
WASTE-PAPER BOUGHT.  In another, LADIES' AND GENTLEMEN'S WARDROBES 
BOUGHT.  Everything seemed to be bought and nothing to be sold 
there.  In all parts of the window were quantities of dirty 
bottles--blacking bottles, medicine bottles, ginger-beer and soda-
water bottles, pickle bottles, wine bottles, ink bottles; I am 
reminded by mentioning the latter that the shop had in several 
little particulars the air of being in a legal neighbourhood and of 
being, as it were, a dirty hanger-on and disowned relation of the 
law.  There were a great many ink bottles.  There was a little 
tottering bench of shabby old volumes outside the door, labelled 
"Law Books, all at 9d."  Some of the inscriptions I have enumerated 
were written in law-hand, like the papers I had seen in Kenge and 
Carboy's office and the letters I had so long received from the 
firm.  Among them was one, in the same writing, having nothing to 
do with the business of the shop, but announcing that a respectable 
man aged forty-five wanted engrossing or copying to execute with 
neatness and dispatch: Address to Nemo, care of Mr. Krook, within.  
There were several second-hand bags, blue and red, hanging up.  A 
little way within the shop-door lay heaps of old crackled parchment 
scrolls and discoloured and dog's-eared law-papers.  I could have 
fancied that all the rusty keys, of which there must have been 
hundreds huddled together as old iron, had once belonged to doors 
of rooms or strong chests in lawyers' offices.  The litter of rags 
tumbled partly into and partly out of a one-legged wooden scale, 
hanging without any counterpoise from a beam, might have been 
counsellors' bands and gowns torn up.  One had only to fancy, as 
Richard whispered to Ada and me while we all stood looking in, that 
yonder bones in a corner, piled together and picked very clean, 
were the bones of clients, to make the picture complete.

As it was still foggy and dark, and as the shop was blinded besides 
by the wall of Lincoln's Inn, intercepting the light within a 
couple of yards, we should not have seen so much but for a lighted 
lantern that an old man in spectacles and a hairy cap was carrying 
about in the shop.  Turning towards the door, he now caught sight 
of us.  He was short, cadaverous, and withered, with his head sunk 
sideways between his shoulders and the breath issuing in visible 
smoke from his mouth as if he were on fire within.  His throat, 
chin, and eyebrows were so frosted with white hairs and so gnarled 
with veins and puckered skin that he looked from his breast upward 
like some old root in a fall of snow.

"Hi, hi!" said the old man, coming to the door.  "Have you anything 
to sell?"

We naturally drew back and glanced at our conductress, who had been 
trying to open the house-door with a key she had taken from her 
pocket, and to whom Richard now said that as we had had the 
pleasure of seeing where she lived, we would leave her, being 
pressed for time.  But she was not to be so easily left.  She 
became so fantastically and pressingly earnest in her entreaties 
that we would walk up and see her apartment for an instant, and was 
so bent, in her harmless way, on leading me in, as part of the good 
omen she desired, that I (whatever the others might do) saw nothing 
for it but to comply.  I suppose we were all more or less curious; 
at any rate, when the old man added his persuasions to hers and 
said, "Aye, aye!  Please her!  It won't take a minute!  Come in, 
come in!  Come in through the shop if t'other door's out of order!" 
we all went in, stimulated by Richard's laughing encouragement and 
relying on his protection.

"My landlord, Krook," said the little old lady, condescending to 
him from her lofty station as she presented him to us.  "He is 
called among the neighbours the Lord Chancellor.  His shop is 
called the Court of Chancery.  He is a very eccentric person.  He 
is very odd.  Oh, I assure you he is very odd!"

She shook her head a great many times and tapped her forehead with 
her finger to express to us that we must have the goodness to 
excuse him, "For he is a little--you know--M!" said the old lady 
with great stateliness.  The old man overheard, and laughed.

"It's true enough," he said, going before us with the lantern, 
"that they call me the lord chancellor and call my shop Chancery.  
And why do you think they call me the Lord Chancellor and my shop 
Chancery?"

"I don't know, I am sure!" said Richard rather carelessly.

"You see," said the old man, stopping and turning round, "they--Hi!  
Here's lovely hair!  I have got three sacks of ladies' hair below, 
but none so beautiful and fine as this.  What colour, and what 
texture!"

"That'll do, my good friend!" said Richard, strongly disapproving 
of his having drawn one of Ada's tresses through his yellow hand.  
"You can admire as the rest of us do without taking that liberty."

The old man darted at him a sudden look which even called my 
attention from Ada, who, startled and blushing, was so remarkably 
beautiful that she seemed to fix the wandering attention of the 
little old lady herself.  But as Ada interposed and laughingly said 
she could only feel proud of such genuine admiration, Mr. Krook 
shrunk into his former self as suddenly as he had leaped out of it.

"You see, I have so many things here," he resumed, holding up the 
lantern, "of so many kinds, and all as the neighbours think (but 
THEY know nothing), wasting away and going to rack and ruin, that 
that's why they have given me and my place a christening.  And I 
have so many old parchmentses and papers in my stock.  And I have a 
liking for rust and must and cobwebs.  And all's fish that comes to 
my net.  And I can't abear to part with anything I once lay hold of 
(or so my neighbours think, but what do THEY know?) or to alter 
anything, or to have any sweeping, nor scouring, nor cleaning, nor 
repairing going on about me.  That's the way I've got the ill name 
of Chancery.  I don't mind.  I go to see my noble and learned 
brother pretty well every day, when he sits in the Inn.  He don't 
notice me, but I notice him.  There's no great odds betwixt us.  We 
both grub on in a muddle.  Hi, Lady Jane!"

A large grey cat leaped from some neighbouring shelf on his 
shoulder and startled us all.

"Hi!  Show 'em how you scratch.  Hi!  Tear, my lady!" said her 
master.

The cat leaped down and ripped at a bundle of rags with her 
tigerish claws, with a sound that it set my teeth on edge to hear.

"She'd do as much for any one I was to set her on," said the old 
man.  "I deal in cat-skins among other general matters, and hers 
was offered to me.  It's a very fine skin, as you may see, but I 
didn't have it stripped off!  THAT warn't like Chancery practice 
though, says you!"

He had by this time led us across the shop, and now opened a door 
in the back part of it, leading to the house-entry.  As he stood 
with his hand upon the lock, the little old lady graciously 
observed to him before passing out, "That will do, Krook.  You mean 
well, but are tiresome.  My young friends are pressed for time.  I 
have none to spare myself, having to attend court very soon.  My 
young friends are the wards in Jarndyce."

"Jarndyce!" said the old man with a start.

"Jarndyce and Jarndyce.  The great suit, Krook," returned his 
lodger.

"Hi!" exclaimed the old man in a tone of thoughtful amazement and 
with a wider stare than before.  "Think of it!"

He seemed so rapt all in a moment and looked so curiously at us 
that Richard said, "Why, you appear to trouble yourself a good deal 
about the causes before your noble and learned brother, the other 
Chancellor!"

"Yes," said the old man abstractedly.  "Sure!  YOUR name now will 
be--"

"Richard Carstone."

"Carstone," he repeated, slowly checking off that name upon his 
forefinger; and each of the others he went on to mention upon a 
separate finger.  "Yes.  There was the name of Barbary, and the 
name of Clare, and the name of Dedlock, too, I think."

"He knows as much of the cause as the real salaried Chancellor!" 
said Richard, quite astonished, to Ada and me.

"Aye!" said the old man, coming slowly out of his abstraction.  
"Yes!  Tom Jarndyce--you'll excuse me, being related; but he was 
never known about court by any other name, and was as well known 
there as--she is now," nodding slightly at his lodger.  "Tom 
Jarndyce was often in here.  He got into a restless habit of 
strolling about when the cause was on, or expected, talking to the 
little shopkeepers and telling 'em to keep out of Chancery, 
whatever they did.  'For,' says he, 'it's being ground to bits in a 
slow mill; it's being roasted at a slow fire; it's being stung to 
death by single bees; it's being drowned by drops; it's going mad 
by grains.'  He was as near making away with himself, just where 
the young lady stands, as near could be."

We listened with horror.

"He come in at the door," said the old man, slowly pointing an 
imaginary track along the shop, "on the day he did it--the whole 
neighbourhood had said for months before that he would do it, of a 
certainty sooner or later--he come in at the door that day, and 
walked along there, and sat himself on a bench that stood there, 
and asked me (you'll judge I was a mortal sight younger then) to 
fetch him a pint of wine.  'For,' says he, 'Krook, I am much 
depressed; my cause is on again, and I think I'm nearer judgment 
than I ever was.'  I hadn't a mind to leave him alone; and I 
persuaded him to go to the tavern over the way there, t'other side 
my lane (I mean Chancery Lane); and I followed and looked in at the 
window, and saw him, comfortable as I thought, in the arm-chair by 
the fire, and company with him.  I hadn't hardly got back here when 
I heard a shot go echoing and rattling right away into the inn.  I 
ran out--neighbours ran out--twenty of us cried at once, 'Tom 
Jarndyce!'"

The old man stopped, looked hard at us, looked down into the 
lantern, blew the light out, and shut the lantern up.

"We were right, I needn't tell the present hearers.  Hi!  To be 
sure, how the neighbourhood poured into court that afternoon while 
the cause was on!  How my noble and learned brother, and all the 
rest of 'em, grubbed and muddled away as usual and tried to look as 
if they hadn't heard a word of the last fact in the case or as if 
they had--Oh, dear me!--nothing at all to do with it if they had 
heard of it by any chance!"

Ada's colour had entirely left her, and Richard was scarcely less 
pale.  Nor could I wonder, judging even from my emotions, and I was 
no party in the suit, that to hearts so untried and fresh it was a 
shock to come into the inheritance of a protracted misery, attended 
in the minds of many people with such dreadful recollections.  I 
had another uneasiness, in the application of the painful story to 
the poor half-witted creature who had brought us there; but, to my 
surprise, she seemed perfectly unconscious of that and only led the 
way upstairs again, informing us with the toleration of a superior 
creature for the infirmities of a common mortal that her landlord 
was "a little M, you know!"

She lived at the top of the house, in a pretty large room, from 
which she had a glimpse of Lincoln's Inn Hall.  This seemed to have 
been her principal inducement, originally, for taking up her 
residence there.  She could look at it, she said, in the night, 
especially in the moonshine.  Her room was clean, but very, very 
bare.  I noticed the scantiest necessaries in the way of furniture; 
a few old prints from books, of Chancellors and barristers, wafered 
against the wall; and some half-dozen reticles and work-bags, 
"containing documents," as she informed us.  There were neither 
coals nor ashes in the grate, and I saw no articles of clothing 
anywhere, nor any kind of food.  Upon a shelf in an open cupboard 
were a plate or two, a cup or two, and so forth, but all dry and 
empty.  There was a more affecting meaning in her pinched 
appearance, I thought as I looked round, than I had understood 
before.

"Extremely honoured, I am sure," said our poor hostess with the 
greatest suavity, "by this visit from the wards in Jarndyce.  And 
very much indebted for the omen.  It is a retired situation.  
Considering.  I am limited as to situation.  In consequence of the 
necessity of attending on the Chancellor.  I have lived here many 
years.  I pass my days in court, my evenings and my nights here.  I 
find the nights long, for I sleep but little and think much.  That 
is, of course, unavoidable, being in Chancery.  I am sorry I cannot 
offer chocolate.  I expect a judgment shortly and shall then place 
my establishment on a superior footing.  At present, I don't mind 
confessing to the wards in Jarndyce (in strict confidence) that I 
sometimes find it difficult to keep up a genteel appearance.  I 
have felt the cold here.  I have felt something sharper than cold.  
It matters very little.  Pray excuse the introduction of such mean 
topics."

She partly drew aside the curtain of the long, low garret window 
and called our attention to a number of bird-cages hanging there, 
some containing several birds.  There were larks, linnets, and 
goldfinches--I should think at least twenty.

"I began to keep the little creatures," she said, "with an object 
that the wards will readily comprehend.  With the intention of 
restoring them to liberty.  When my judgment should be given.  Ye-
es!  They die in prison, though.  Their lives, poor silly things, 
are so short in comparison with Chancery proceedings that, one by 
one, the whole collection has died over and over again.  I doubt, 
do you know, whether one of these, though they are all young, will 
live to be free!  Ve-ry mortifying, is it not?"

Although she sometimes asked a question, she never seemed to expect 
a reply, but rambled on as if she were in the habit of doing so 
when no one but herself was present.

"Indeed," she pursued, "I positively doubt sometimes, I do assure 
you, whether while matters are still unsettled, and the sixth or 
Great Seal still prevails, I may not one day be found lying stark 
and senseless here, as I have found so many birds!"

Richard, answering what he saw in Ada's compassionate eyes, took 
the opportunity of laying some money, softly and unobserved, on the 
chimney-piece.  We all drew nearer to the cages, feigning to 
examine the birds.

"I can't allow them to sing much," said the little old lady, "for 
(you'll think this curious) I find my mind confused by the idea 
that they are singing while I am following the arguments in court.  
And my mind requires to be so very clear, you know!  Another time, 
I'll tell you their names.  Not at present.  On a day of such good 
omen, they shall sing as much as they like.  In honour of youth," a 
smile and curtsy, "hope," a smile and curtsy, "and beauty," a smile 
and curtsy.  "There!  We'll let in the full light."

The birds began to stir and chirp.

"I cannot admit the air freely," said the little old lady--the room 
was close, and would have been the better for it--"because the cat 
you saw downstairs, called Lady Jane, is greedy for their lives.  
She crouches on the parapet outside for hours and hours.  I have 
discovered," whispering mysteriously, "that her natural cruelty is 
sharpened by a jealous fear of their regaining their liberty.  In 
consequence of the judgment I expect being shortly given.  She is 
sly and full of malice.  I half believe, sometimes, that she is no 
cat, but the wolf of the old saying.  It is so very difficult to 
keep her from the door."

Some neighbouring bells, reminding the poor soul that it was half-
past nine, did more for us in the way of bringing our visit to an 
end than we could easily have done for ourselves.  She hurriedly 
took up her little bag of documents, which she had laid upon the 
table on coming in, and asked if we were also going into court.  On 
our answering no, and that we would on no account detain her, she 
opened the door to attend us downstairs.

"With such an omen, it is even more necessary than usual that I 
should be there before the Chancellor comes in," said she, "for he 
might mention my case the first thing.  I have a presentiment that 
he WILL mention it the first thing this morning"

She stopped to tell us in a whisper as we were going down that the 
whole house was filled with strange lumber which her landlord had 
bought piecemeal and had no wish to sell, in consequence of being a 
little M.  This was on the first floor.  But she had made a 
previous stoppage on the second floor and had silently pointed at a 
dark door there.

"The only other lodger," she now whispered in explanation, "a law-
writer.  The children in the lanes here say he has sold himself to 
the devil.  I don't know what he can have done with the money.  
Hush!"

She appeared to mistrust that the lodger might hear her even there, 
and repeating "Hush!" went before us on tiptoe as though even the 
sound of her footsteps might reveal to him what she had said.

Passing through the shop on our way out, as we had passed through 
it on our way in, we found the old man storing a quantity of 
packets of waste-paper in a kind of well in the floor.  He seemed 
to be working hard, with the perspiration standing on his forehead, 
and had a piece of chalk by him, with which, as he put each 
separate package or bundle down, he made a crooked mark on the 
panelling of the wall.

Richard and Ada, and Miss Jellyby, and the little old lady had gone 
by him, and I was going when he touched me on the arm to stay me, 
and chalked the letter J upon the wall--in a very curious manner, 
beginning with the end of the letter and shaping it backward.  It 
was a capital letter, not a printed one, but just such a letter as 
any clerk in Messrs. Kenge and Carboy's office would have made.

"Can you read it?" he asked me with a keen glance.

"Surely," said I.  "It's very plain."

"What is it?"

"J."

With another glance at me, and a glance at the door, he rubbed it 
out and turned an "a" in its place (not a capital letter this 
time), and said, "What's that?"

I told him.  He then rubbed that out and turned the letter "r," and 
asked me the same question.  He went on quickly until he had formed 
in the same curious manner, beginning at the ends and bottoms of 
the letters, the word Jarndyce, without once leaving two letters on 
the wall together.

"What does that spell?" he asked me.

When I told him, he laughed.  In the same odd way, yet with the 
same rapidity, he then produced singly, and rubbed out singly, the 
letters forming the words Bleak House.  These, in some 
astonishment, I also read; and he laughed again.

"Hi!" said the old man, laying aside the chalk.  "I have a turn for 
copying from memory, you see, miss, though I can neither read nor 
write."

He looked so disagreeable and his cat looked so wickedly at me, as 
if I were a blood-relation of the birds upstairs, that I was quite 
relieved by Richard's appearing at the door and saying, "Miss 
Summerson, I hope you are not bargaining for the sale of your hair.  
Don't be tempted.  Three sacks below are quite enough for Mr. Krook!"

I lost no time in wishing Mr. Krook good morning and joining my 
friends outside, where we parted with the little old lady, who gave 
us her blessing with great ceremony and renewed her assurance of 
yesterday in reference to her intention of settling estates on Ada 
and me.  Before we finally turned out of those lanes, we looked 
back and saw Mr. Krook standing at his shop-door, in his 
spectacles, looking after us, with his cat upon his shoulder, and 
her tail sticking up on one side of his hairy cap like a tall 
feather.

"Quite an adventure for a morning in London!" said Richard with a 
sigh.  "Ah, cousin, cousin, it's a weary word this Chancery!"

"It is to me, and has been ever since I can remember," returned 
Ada.  "I am grieved that I should be the enemy---as I suppose I am
--of a great number of relations and others, and that they should be 
my enemies--as I suppose they are--and that we should all be 
ruining one another without knowing how or why and be in constant 
doubt and discord all our lives.  It seems very strange, as there 
must be right somewhere, that an honest judge in real earnest has 
not been able to find out through all these years where it is."

"Ah, cousin!" said Richard.  "Strange, indeed!  All this wasteful, 
wanton chess-playing IS very strange.  To see that composed court 
yesterday jogging on so serenely and to think of the wretchedness 
of the pieces on the board gave me the headache and the heartache 
both together.  My head ached with wondering how it happened, if 
men were neither fools nor rascals; and my heart ached to think 
they could possibly be either.  But at all events, Ada--I may call 
you Ada?"

"Of course you may, cousin Richard."

"At all events, Chancery will work none of its bad influences on 
US.  We have happily been brought together, thanks to our good 
kinsman, and it can't divide us now!"

"Never, I hope, cousin Richard!" said Ada gently.

Miss Jellyby gave my arm a squeeze and me a very significant look.  
I smiled in return, and we made the rest of the way back very 
pleasantly.

In half an hour after our arrival, Mrs. Jellyby appeared; and in 
the course of an hour the various things necessary for breakfast 
straggled one by one into the dining-room.  I do not doubt that 
Mrs. Jellyby had gone to bed and got up in the usual manner, but 
she presented no appearance of having changed her dress.  She was 
greatly occupied during breakfast, for the morning's post brought a 
heavy correspondence relative to Borrioboola-Gha, which would 
occasion her (she said) to pass a busy day.  The children tumbled 
about, and notched memoranda of their accidents in their legs, 
which were perfect little calendars of distress; and Peepy was lost 
for an hour and a half, and brought home from Newgate market by a 
policeman.  The equable manner in which Mrs. Jellyby sustained both 
his absence and his restoration to the family circle surprised us 
all.

She was by that time perseveringly dictating to Caddy, and Caddy 
was fast relapsing into the inky condition in which we had found 
her.  At one o'clock an open carriage arrived for us, and a cart 
for our luggage.  Mrs. Jellyby charged us with many remembrances to 
her good friend Mr. Jarndyce; Caddy left her desk to see us depart, 
kissed me in the passage, and stood biting her pen and sobbing on 
the steps; Peepy, I am happy to say, was asleep and spared the pain 
of separation (I was not without misgivings that he had gone to 
Newgate market in search of me); and all the other children got up 
behind the barouche and fell off, and we saw them, with great 
concern, scattered over the surface of Thavies Inn as we rolled out 
of its precincts.



CHAPTER VI

Quite at Home


The day had brightened very much, and still brightened as we went 
westward.  We went our way through the sunshine and the fresh air, 
wondering more and more at the extent of the streets, the 
brilliancy of the shops, the great traffic, and the crowds of 
people whom the pleasanter weather seemed to have brought out like 
many-coloured flowers.  By and by we began to leave the wonderful 
city and to proceed through suburbs which, of themselves, would 
have made a pretty large town in my eyes; and at last we got into a 
real country road again, with windmills, rick-yards, milestones, 
farmers' waggons, scents of old hay, swinging signs, and horse 
troughs: trees, fields, and hedge-rows.  It was delightful to see 
the green landscape before us and the immense metropolis behind; 
and when a waggon with a train of beautiful horses, furnished with 
red trappings and clear-sounding bells, came by us with its music, 
I believe we could all three have sung to the bells, so cheerful 
were the influences around.

"The whole road has been reminding me of my name-sake Whittington," 
said Richard, "and that waggon is the finishing touch.  Halloa!  
What's the matter?"

We had stopped, and the waggon had stopped too.  Its music changed 
as the horses came to a stand, and subsided to a gentle tinkling, 
except when a horse tossed his head or shook himself and sprinkled 
off a little shower of bell-ringing.

"Our postilion is looking after the waggoner," said Richard, "and 
the waggoner is coming back after us.  Good day, friend!"  The 
waggoner was at our coach-door.  "Why, here's an extraordinary 
thing!" added Richard, looking closely at the man.  "He has got 
your name, Ada, in his hat!"

He had all our names in his hat.  Tucked within the band were three 
small notes--one addressed to Ada, one to Richard, one to me.  
These the waggoner delivered to each of us respectively, reading 
the name aloud first.  In answer to Richard's inquiry from whom 
they came, he briefly answered, "Master, sir, if you please"; and 
putting on his hat again (which was like a soft bowl), cracked his 
whip, re-awakened his music, and went melodiously away.

"Is that Mr. Jarndyce's waggon?" said Richard, calling to our post-
boy.

"Yes, sir," he replied.  "Going to London."

We opened the notes.  Each was a counterpart of the other and 
contained these words in a solid, plain hand.


"I look forward, my dear, to our meeting easily and without 
constraint on either side.  I therefore have to propose that we 
meet as old friends and take the past for granted.  It will be a 
relief to you possibly, and to me certainly, and so my love to you.

John Jarndyce"


I had perhaps less reason to be surprised than either of my 
companions, having never yet enjoyed an opportunity of thanking one 
who had been my benefactor and sole earthly dependence through so 
many years.  I had not considered how I could thank him, my 
gratitude lying too deep in my heart for that; but I now began to 
consider how I could meet him without thanking him, and felt it 
would be very difficult indeed.

The notes revived in Richard and Ada a general impression that they 
both had, without quite knowing how they came by it, that their 
cousin Jarndyce could never bear acknowledgments for any kindness 
he performed and that sooner than receive any he would resort to 
the most singular expedients and evasions or would even run away.  
Ada dimly remembered to have heard her mother tell, when she was a 
very little child, that he had once done her an act of uncommon 
generosity and that on her going to his house to thank him, he 
happened to see her through a window coming to the door, and 
immediately escaped by the back gate, and was not heard of for 
three months.  This discourse led to a great deal more on the same 
theme, and indeed it lasted us all day, and we talked of scarcely 
anything else.  If we did by any chance diverge into another 
subject, we soon returned to this, and wondered what the house 
would be like, and when we should get there, and whether we should 
see Mr. Jarndyce as soon as we arrived or after a delay, and what 
he would say to us, and what we should say to him.  All of which we 
wondered about, over and over again.

The roads were very heavy for the horses, but the pathway was 
generally good, so we alighted and walked up all the hills, and 
liked it so well that we prolonged our walk on the level ground 
when we got to the top.  At Barnet there were other horses waiting 
for us, but as they had only just been fed, we had to wait for them 
too, and got a long fresh walk over a common and an old battle-
field before the carriage came up.  These delays so protracted the 
journey that the short day was spent and the long night had closed 
in before we came to St. Albans, near to which town Bleak House 
was, we knew.

By that time we were so anxious and nervous that even Richard 
confessed, as we rattled over the stones of the old street, to 
feeling an irrational desire to drive back again.  As to Ada and 
me, whom he had wrapped up with great care, the night being sharp 
and frosty, we trembled from head to foot.  When we turned out of 
the town, round a corner, and Richard told us that the post-boy, 
who had for a long time sympathized with our heightened 
expectation, was looking back and nodding, we both stood up in the 
carriage (Richard holding Ada lest she should be jolted down) and 
gazed round upon the open country and the starlight night for our 
destination.  There was a light sparkling on the top of a hill 
before us, and the driver, pointing to it with his whip and crying, 
"That's Bleak House!" put his horses into a canter and took us 
forward at such a rate, uphill though it was, that the wheels sent 
the road drift flying about our heads like spray from a water-mill.  
Presently we lost the light, presently saw it, presently lost it, 
presently saw it, and turned into an avenue of trees and cantered 
up towards where it was beaming brightly.  It was in a window of 
what seemed to be an old-fashioned house with three peaks in the 
roof in front and a circular sweep leading to the porch.  A bell 
was rung as we drew up, and amidst the sound of its deep voice in 
the still air, and the distant barking of some dogs, and a gush of 
light from the opened door, and the smoking and steaming of the 
heated horses, and the quickened beating of our own hearts, we 
alighted in no inconsiderable confusion.

"Ada, my love, Esther, my dear, you are welcome.  I rejoice to see 
you!  Rick, if I had a hand to spare at present, I would give it 
you!"

The gentleman who said these words in a clear, bright, hospitable 
voice had one of his arms round Ada's waist and the other round 
mine, and kissed us both in a fatherly way, and bore us across the 
hall into a ruddy little room, all in a glow with a blazing fire.  
Here he kissed us again, and opening his arms, made us sit down 
side by side on a sofa ready drawn out near the hearth.  I felt 
that if we had been at all demonstrative, he would have run away in 
a moment.

"Now, Rick!" said he.  "I have a hand at liberty.  A word in 
earnest is as good as a speech.  I am heartily glad to see you.  
You are at home.  Warm yourself!"

Richard shook him by both hands with an intuitive mixture of 
respect and frankness, and only saying (though with an earnestness 
that rather alarmed me, I was so afraid of Mr. Jarndyce's suddenly 
disappearing), "You are very kind, sir!  We are very much obliged 
to you!" laid aside his hat and coat and came up to the fire.

"And how did you like the ride?  And how did you like Mrs. Jellyby, 
my dear?" said Mr. Jarndyce to Ada.

While Ada was speaking to him in reply, I glanced (I need not say 
with how much interest) at his face.  It was a handsome, lively, 
quick face, full of change and motion; and his hair was a silvered 
iron-grey.  I took him to be nearer sixty than fifty, but he was 
upright, hearty, and robust.  From the moment of his first speaking 
to us his voice had connected itself with an association in my mind 
that I could not define; but now, all at once, a something sudden 
in his manner and a pleasant expression in his eyes recalled the 
gentleman in the stagecoach six years ago on the memorable day of 
my journey to Reading.  I was certain it was he.  I never was so 
frightened in my life as when I made the discovery, for he caught 
my glance, and appearing to read my thoughts, gave such a look at 
the door that I thought we had lost him.

However, I am happy to say he remained where he was, and asked me 
what I thought of Mrs. Jellyby.

"She exerts herself very much for Africa, sir," I said.

"Nobly!" returned Mr. Jarndyce.  "But you answer like Ada."  Whom I 
had not heard.  "You all think something else, I see."

"We rather thought," said I, glancing at Richard and Ada, who 
entreated me with their eyes to speak, "that perhaps she was a 
little unmindful of her home."

"Floored!" cried Mr. Jarndyce.

I was rather alarmed again.

"Well!  I want to know your real thoughts, my dear.  I may have 
sent you there on purpose."

"We thought that, perhaps," said I, hesitating, "it is right to 
begin with the obligations of home, sir; and that, perhaps, while 
those are overlooked and neglected, no other duties can possibly be 
substituted for them."

"The little Jellybys," said Richard, coming to my relief, "are 
really--I can't help expressing myself strongly, sir--in a devil of 
a state."

"She means well," said Mr. Jarndyce hastily.  "The wind's in the 
east."

"It was in the north, sir, as we came down," observed Richard.

"My dear Rick," said Mr. Jarndyce, poking the fire, "I'll take an 
oath it's either in the east or going to be.  I am always conscious 
of an uncomfortable sensation now and then when the wind is blowing 
in the east."

"Rheumatism, sir?" said Richard.

"I dare say it is, Rick.  I believe it is.  And so the little Jell
--I had my doubts about 'em--are in a--oh, Lord, yes, it's 
easterly!" said Mr. Jarndyce.

He had taken two or three undecided turns up and down while 
uttering these broken sentences, retaining the poker in one hand 
and rubbing his hair with the other, with a good-natured vexation 
at once so whimsical and so lovable that I am sure we were more 
delighted with him than we could possibly have expressed in any 
words.  He gave an arm to Ada and an arm to me, and bidding Richard 
bring a candle, was leading the way out when he suddenly turned us 
all back again.

"Those little Jellybys.  Couldn't you--didn't you--now, if it had 
rained sugar-plums, or three-cornered raspberry tarts, or anything 
of that sort!" said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Oh, cousin--" Ada hastily began.

"Good, my pretty pet.  I like cousin.  Cousin John, perhaps, is 
better."

"Then, cousin John--" Ada laughingly began again.

"Ha, ha!  Very good indeed!" said Mr. Jarndyce with great 
enjoyment.  "Sounds uncommonly natural.  Yes, my dear?"

"It did better than that.  It rained Esther."

"Aye?" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "What did Esther do?"

"Why, cousin John," said Ada, clasping her hands upon his arm and 
shaking her head at me across him--for I wanted her to be quiet--
"Esther was their friend directly.  Esther nursed them, coaxed them 
to sleep, washed and dressed them, told them stories, kept them 
quiet, bought them keepsakes"--My dear girl!  I had only gone out 
with Peepy after he was found and given him a little, tiny horse!--
"and, cousin John, she softened poor Caroline, the eldest one, so 
much and was so thoughtful for me and so amiable!  No, no, I won't 
be contradicted, Esther dear!  You know, you know, it's true!"

The warm-hearted darling leaned across her cousin John and kissed 
me, and then looking up in his face, boldly said, "At all events, 
cousin John, I WILL thank you for the companion you have given me."  
I felt as if she challenged him to run away.  But he didn't.

"Where did you say the wind was, Rick?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.

"In the north as we came down, sir."

"You are right.  There's no east in it.  A mistake of mine.  Come, 
girls, come and see your home!"

It was one of those delightfully irregular houses where you go up 
and down steps out of one room into another, and where you come 
upon more rooms when you think you have seen all there are, and 
where there is a bountiful provision of little halls and passages, 
and where you find still older cottage-rooms in unexpected places 
with lattice windows and green growth pressing through them.  Mine, 
which we entered first, was of this kind, with an up-and-down roof 
that had more corners in it than I ever counted afterwards and a 
chimney (there was a wood fire on the hearth) paved all around with 
pure white tiles, in every one of which a bright miniature of the 
fire was blazing.  Out of this room, you went down two steps into a 
charming little sitting-room looking down upon a flower-garden, 
which room was henceforth to belong to Ada and me.  Out of this you 
went up three steps into Ada's bedroom, which had a fine broad 
window commanding a beautiful view (we saw a great expanse of 
darkness lying underneath the stars), to which there was a hollow 
window-seat, in which, with a spring-lock, three dear Adas might 
have been lost at once.  Out of this room you passed into a little 
gallery, with which the other best rooms (only two) communicated, 
and so, by a little staircase of shallow steps with a number of 
corner stairs in it, considering its length, down into the hall.  
But if instead of going out at Ada's door you came back into my 
room, and went out at the door by which you had entered it, and 
turned up a few crooked steps that branched off in an unexpected 
manner from the stairs, you lost yourself in passages, with mangles 
in them, and three-cornered tables, and a native Hindu chair, which 
was also a sofa, a box, and a bedstead, and looked in every form 
something between a bamboo skeleton and a great bird-cage, and had 
been brought from India nobody knew by whom or when.  From these 
you came on Richard's room, which was part library, part sitting-
room, part bedroom, and seemed indeed a comfortable compound of 
many rooms.  Out of that you went straight, with a little interval 
of passage, to the plain room where Mr. Jarndyce slept, all the 
year round, with his window open, his bedstead without any 
furniture standing in the middle of the floor for more air, and his 
cold bath gaping for him in a smaller room adjoining.  Out of that 
you came into another passage, where there were back-stairs and 
where you could hear the horses being rubbed down outside the 
stable and being told to "Hold up" and "Get over," as they slipped 
about very much on the uneven stones.  Or you might, if you came 
out at another door (every room had at least two doors), go 
straight down to the hall again by half-a-dozen steps and a low 
archway, wondering how you got back there or had ever got out of 
it.

The furniture, old-fashioned rather than old, like the house, was 
as pleasantly irregular.  Ada's sleeping-room was all flowers--in 
chintz and paper, in velvet, in needlework, in the brocade of two 
stiff courtly chairs which stood, each attended by a little page of 
a stool for greater state, on either side of the fire-place.  Our 
sitting-room was green and had framed and glazed upon the walls 
numbers of surprising and surprised birds, staring out of pictures 
at a real trout in a case, as brown and shining as if it had been 
served with gravy; at the death of Captain Cook; and at the whole 
process of preparing tea in China, as depicted by Chinese artists.  
In my room there were oval engravings of the months--ladies 
haymaking in short waists and large hats tied under the chin, for 
June; smooth-legged noblemen pointing with cocked-hats to village 
steeples, for October.  Half-length portraits in crayons abounded 
all through the house, but were so dispersed that I found the 
brother of a youthful officer of mine in the china-closet and the 
grey old age of my pretty young bride, with a flower in her bodice, 
in the breakfast-room.  As substitutes, I had four angels, of Queen 
Anne's reign, taking a complacent gentleman to heaven, in festoons, 
with some difficulty; and a composition in needlework representing 
fruit, a kettle, and an alphabet.  All the movables, from the 
wardrobes to the chairs and tables, hangings, glasses, even to the 
pincushions and scent-bottles on the dressing-tables, displayed the 
same quaint variety.  They agreed in nothing but their perfect 
neatness, their display of the whitest linen, and their storing-up, 
wheresoever the existence of a drawer, small or large, rendered it 
possible, of quantities of rose-leaves and sweet lavender.  Such, 
with its illuminated windows, softened here and there by shadows of 
curtains, shining out upon the starlight night; with its light, and 
warmth, and comfort; with its hospitable jingle, at a distance, of 
preparations for dinner; with the face of its generous master 
brightening everything we saw; and just wind enough without to 
sound a low accompaniment to everything we heard, were our first 
impressions of Bleak House.

"I am glad you like it," said Mr. Jarndyce when he had brought us 
round again to Ada's sitting-room.  "It makes no pretensions, but 
it is a comfortable little place, I hope, and will be more so with 
such bright young looks in it.  You have barely half an hour before 
dinner.  There's no one here but the finest creature upon earth--a 
child."

"More children, Esther!" said Ada.

"I don't mean literally a child," pursued Mr. Jarndyce; "not a 
child in years.  He is grown up--he is at least as old as I am--but 
in simplicity, and freshness, and enthusiasm, and a fine guileless 
inaptitude for all worldly affairs, he is a perfect child."

We felt that he must be very interesting.

"He knows Mrs. Jellyby," said Mr. Jarndyce.  "He is a musical man, 
an amateur, but might have been a professional.  He is an artist 
too, an amateur, but might have been a professional.  He is a man 
of attainments and of captivating manners.  He has been unfortunate 
in his affairs, and unfortunate in his pursuits, and unfortunate in 
his family; but he don't care--he's a child!"

"Did you imply that he has children of his own, sir?" inquired 
Richard.

"Yes, Rick!  Half-a-dozen.  More!  Nearer a dozen, I should think.  
But he has never looked after them.  How could he?  He wanted 
somebody to look after HIM.  He is a child, you know!" said Mr. 
Jarndyce.

"And have the children looked after themselves at all, sir?" 
inquired Richard.

"Why, just as you may suppose," said Mr. Jarndyce, his countenance 
suddenly falling.  "It is said that the children of the very poor 
are not brought up, but dragged up.  Harold Skimpole's children 
have tumbled up somehow or other.  The wind's getting round again, 
I am afraid.  I feel it rather!"

Richard observed that the situation was exposed on a sharp night.

"It IS exposed," said Mr. Jarndyce.  "No doubt that's the cause.  
Bleak House has an exposed sound.  But you are coming my way.  Come 
along!"

Our luggage having arrived and being all at hand, I was dressed in 
a few minutes and engaged in putting my worldly goods away when a 
maid (not the one in attendance upon Ada, but another, whom I had 
not seen) brought a basket into my room with two bunches of keys in 
it, all labelled.

"For you, miss, if you please," said she.

"For me?" said I.

"The housekeeping keys, miss."

I showed my surprise, for she added with some little surprise on 
her own part, "I was told to bring them as soon as you was alone, 
miss.  Miss Summerson, if I don't deceive myself?"

"Yes," said I.  "That is my name."

"The large bunch is the housekeeping, and the little bunch is the 
cellars, miss.  Any time you was pleased to appoint tomorrow 
morning, I was to show you the presses and things they belong to."

I said I would be ready at half-past six, and after she was gone, 
stood looking at the basket, quite lost in the magnitude of my 
trust.  Ada found me thus and had such a delightful confidence in 
me when I showed her the keys and told her about them that it would 
have been insensibility and ingratitude not to feel encouraged.  I 
knew, to be sure, that it was the dear girl's kindness, but I liked 
to be so pleasantly cheated.

When we went downstairs, we were presented to Mr. Skimpole, who was 
standing before the fire telling Richard how fond he used to be, in 
his school-time, of football.  He was a little bright creature with 
a rather large head, but a delicate face and a sweet voice, and 
there was a perfect charm in him.  All he said was so free from 
effort and spontaneous and was said with such a captivating gaiety 
that it was fascinating to hear him talk.  Being of a more slender 
figure than Mr. Jarndyce and having a richer complexion, with 
browner hair, he looked younger.  Indeed, he had more the 
appearance in all respects of a damaged young man than a well-
preserved elderly one.  There was an easy negligence in his manner 
and even in his dress (his hair carelessly disposed, and his 
neckkerchief loose and flowing, as I have seen artists paint their 
own portraits) which I could not separate from the idea of a 
romantic youth who had undergone some unique process of 
depreciation.  It struck me as being not at all like the manner or 
appearance of a man who had advanced in life by the usual road of 
years, cares, and experiences.

I gathered from the conversation that Mr. Skimpole had been 
educated for the medical profession and had once lived, in his 
professional capacity, in the household of a German prince.  He 
told us, however, that as he had always been a mere child in point 
of weights and measures and had never known anything about them 
(except that they disgusted him), he had never been able to 
prescribe with the requisite accuracy of detail.  In fact, he said, 
he had no head for detail.  And he told us, with great humour, that 
when he was wanted to bleed the prince or physic any of his people, 
he was generally found lying on his back in bed, reading the 
newspapers or making fancy-sketches in pencil, and couldn't come.  
The prince, at last, objecting to this, "in which," said Mr. 
Skimpole, in the frankest manner, "he was perfectly right," the 
engagement terminated, and Mr. Skimpole having (as he added with 
delightful gaiety) "nothing to live upon but love, fell in love, 
and married, and surrounded himself with rosy cheeks."  His good 
friend Jarndyce and some other of his good friends then helped him, 
in quicker or slower succession, to several openings in life, but 
to no purpose, for he must confess to two of the oldest infirmities 
in the world: one was that he had no idea of time, the other that 
he had no idea of money.  In consequence of which he never kept an 
appointment, never could transact any business, and never knew the 
value of anything!  Well!  So he had got on in life, and here he 
was!  He was very fond of reading the papers, very fond of making 
fancy-sketches with a pencil, very fond of nature, very fond of 
art.  All he asked of society was to let him live.  THAT wasn't 
much.  His wants were few.  Give him the papers, conversation, 
music, mutton, coffee, landscape, fruit in the season, a few sheets 
of Bristol-board, and a little claret, and he asked no more.  He 
was a mere child in the world, but he didn't cry for the moon.  He 
said to the world, "Go your several ways in peace!  Wear red coats, 
blue coats, lawn sleeves; put pens behind your ears, wear aprons; 
go after glory, holiness, commerce, trade, any object you prefer; 
only--let Harold Skimpole live!"

All this and a great deal more he told us, not only with the utmost 
brilliancy and enjoyment, but with a certain vivacious candour--
speaking of himself as if he were not at all his own affair, as if 
Skimpole were a third person, as if he knew that Skimpole had his 
singularities but still had his claims too, which were the general 
business of the community and must not be slighted.  He was quite 
enchanting.  If I felt at all confused at that early time in 
endeavouring to reconcile anything he said with anything I had 
thought about the duties and accountabilities of life (which I am 
far from sure of), I was confused by not exactly understanding why 
he was free of them.  That he WAS free of them, I scarcely doubted; 
he was so very clear about it himself.

"I covet nothing," said Mr. Skimpole in the same light way.  
"Possession is nothing to me.  Here is my friend Jarndyce's 
excellent house.  I feel obliged to him for possessing it.  I can 
sketch it and alter it.  I can set it to music.  When I am here, I 
have sufficient possession of it and have neither trouble, cost, 
nor responsibility.  My steward's name, in short, is Jarndyce, and 
he can't cheat me.  We have been mentioning Mrs. Jellyby.  There is 
a bright-eyed woman, of a strong will and immense power of business 
detail, who throws herself into objects with surprising ardour!  I 
don't regret that I have not a strong will and an immense power of 
business detail to throw myself into objects with surprising 
ardour.  I can admire her without envy.  I can sympathize with the 
objects.  I can dream of them.  I can lie down on the grass--in 
fine weather--and float along an African river, embracing all the 
natives I meet, as sensible of the deep silence and sketching the 
dense overhanging tropical growth as accurately as if I were there.  
I don't know that it's of any direct use my doing so, but it's all 
I can do, and I do it thoroughly.  Then, for heaven's sake, having 
Harold Skimpole, a confiding child, petitioning you, the world, an 
agglomeration of practical people of business habits, to let him 
live and admire the human family, do it somehow or other, like good 
souls, and suffer him to ride his rocking-horse!"

It was plain enough that Mr. Jarndyce had not been neglectful of 
the adjuration.  Mr. Skimpole's general position there would have 
rendered it so without the addition of what he presently said.

"It's only you, the generous creatures, whom I envy," said Mr. 
Skimpole, addressing us, his new friends, in an impersonal manner.  
"I envy you your power of doing what you do.  It is what I should 
revel in myself.  I don't feel any vulgar gratitude to you.  I 
almost feel as if YOU ought to be grateful to ME for giving you the 
opportunity of enjoying the luxury of generosity.  I know you like 
it.  For anything I can tell, I may have come into the world 
expressly for the purpose of increasing your stock of happiness.  I 
may have been born to be a benefactor to you by sometimes giving 
you an opportunity of assisting me in my little perplexities.  Why 
should I regret my incapacity for details and worldly affairs when 
it leads to such pleasant consequences?  I don't regret it 
therefore."

Of all his playful speeches (playful, yet always fully meaning what 
they expressed) none seemed to be more to the taste of Mr. Jarndyce 
than this.  I had often new temptations, afterwards, to wonder 
whether it was really singular, or only singular to me, that he, 
who was probably the most grateful of mankind upon the least 
occasion, should so desire to escape the gratitude of others.

We were all enchanted.  I felt it a merited tribute to the engaging 
qualities of Ada and Richard that Mr. Skimpole, seeing them for the 
first time, should he so unreserved and should lay himself out to 
be so exquisitely agreeable.  They (and especially Richard) were 
naturally pleased; for similar reasons, and considered it no common 
privilege to be so freely confided in by such an attractive man.  
The more we listened, the more gaily Mr. Skimpole talked.  And what 
with his fine hilarious manner and his engaging candour and his 
genial way of lightly tossing his own weaknesses about, as if he 
had said, "I am a child, you know!  You are designing people 
compared with me" (he really made me consider myself in that light) 
"but I am gay and innocent; forget your worldly arts and play with 
me!" the effect was absolutely dazzling.

He was so full of feeling too and had such a delicate sentiment for 
what was beautiful or tender that he could have won a heart by that 
alone.  In the evening, when I was preparing to make tea and Ada 
was touching the piano in the adjoining room and softly humming a 
tune to her cousin Richard, which they had happened to mention, he 
came and sat down on the sofa near me and so spoke of Ada that I 
almost loved him.

"She is like the morning," he said.  "With that golden hair, those 
blue eyes, and that fresh bloom on her cheek, she is like the 
summer morning.  The birds here will mistake her for it.  We will 
not call such a lovely young creature as that, who is a joy to all 
mankind, an orphan.  She is the child of the universe."

Mr. Jarndyce, I found, was standing near us with his hands behind 
him and an attentive smile upon his face.

"The universe," he observed, "makes rather an indifferent parent, I 
am afraid."

"Oh! I don't know!" cried Mr. Skimpole buoyantly.

"I think I do know," said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Well!" cried Mr. Skimpole.  "You know the world (which in your 
sense is the universe), and I know nothing of it, so you shall have 
your way.  But if I had mine," glancing at the cousins, "there 
should be no brambles of sordid realities in such a path as that.  
It should be strewn with roses; it should lie through bowers, where 
there was no spring, autumn, nor winter, but perpetual summer.  Age 
or change should never wither it.  The base word money should never 
be breathed near it!"

Mr. Jarndyce patted him on the head with a smile, as if he had been 
really a child, and passing a step or two on, and stopping a 
moment, glanced at the young cousins.  His look was thoughtful, but 
had a benignant expression in it which I often (how often!) saw 
again, which has long been engraven on my heart.  The room in which 
they were, communicating with that in which he stood, was only 
lighted by the fire.  Ada sat at the piano; Richard stood beside 
her, bending down.  Upon the wall, their shadows blended together, 
surrounded by strange forms, not without a ghostly motion caught 
from the unsteady fire, though reflecting from motionless objects.  
Ada touched the notes so softly and sang so low that the wind, 
sighing away to the distant hills, was as audible as the music.  
The mystery of the future and the little clue afforded to it by the 
voice of the present seemed expressed in the whole picture.

But it is not to recall this fancy, well as I remember it, that I 
recall the scene.  First, I was not quite unconscious of the 
contrast in respect of meaning and intention between the silent 
look directed that way and the flow of words that had preceded it.  
Secondly, though Mr. Jarndyce's glance as he withdrew it rested for 
but a moment on me, I felt as if in that moment he confided to me--
and knew that he confided to me and that I received the confidence
--his hope that Ada and Richard might one day enter on a dearer 
relationship.

Mr. Skimpole could play on the piano and the violoncello, and he 
was a composer--had composed half an opera once, but got tired of 
it--and played what he composed with taste.  After tea we had quite 
a little concert, in which Richard--who was enthralled by Ada's 
singing and told me that she seemed to know all the songs that ever 
were written--and Mr. Jarndyce, and I were the audience.  After a 
little while I missed first Mr. Skimpole and afterwards Richard, 
and while I was thinking how could Richard stay away so long and 
lose so much, the maid who had given me the keys looked in at the 
door, saying, "If you please, miss, could you spare a minute?"

When I was shut out with her in the hall, she said, holding up her 
hands, "Oh, if you please, miss, Mr. Carstone says would you come 
upstairs to Mr. Skimpole's room.  He has been took, miss!"

"Took?" said I. 

"Took, miss.  Sudden," said the maid.

I was apprehensive that his illness might be of a dangerous kind, 
but of course I begged her to be quiet and not disturb any one and 
collected myself, as I followed her quickly upstairs, sufficiently 
to consider what were the best remedies to be applied if it should 
prove to be a fit.  She threw open a door and I went into a 
chamber, where, to my unspeakable surprise, instead of finding Mr. 
Skimpole stretched upon the bed or prostrate on the floor, I found 
him standing before the fire smiling at Richard, while Richard, 
with a face of great embarrassment, looked at a person on the sofa, 
in a white great-coat, with smooth hair upon his head and not much 
of it, which he was wiping smoother and making less of with a 
pocket-handkerchief.

"Miss Summerson," said Richard hurriedly, "I am glad you are come.  
You will be able to advise us.  Our friend Mr. Skimpole--don't be 
alarmed!--is arrested for debt."

"And really, my dear Miss Summerson," said Mr. Skimpole with his 
agreeable candour, "I never was in a situation in which that 
excellent sense and quiet habit of method and usefulness, which 
anybody must observe in you who has the happiness of being a 
quarter of an hour in your society, was more needed."

The person on the sofa, who appeared to have a cold in his head, 
gave such a very loud snort that he startled me.

"Are you arrested for much, sir?" I inquired of Mr. Skimpole.

"My dear Miss Summerson," said he, shaking his head pleasantly, "I 
don't know.  Some pounds, odd shillings, and halfpence, I think, 
were mentioned."

"It's twenty-four pound, sixteen, and sevenpence ha'penny," 
observed the stranger.  "That's wot it is."

"And it sounds--somehow it sounds," said Mr. Skimpole, "like a 
small sum?"

The strange man said nothing but made another snort.  It was such a 
powerful one that it seemed quite to lift him out of his seat.

"Mr. Skimpole," said Richard to me, "has a delicacy in applying to 
my cousin Jarndyce because he has lately--I think, sir, I 
understood you that you had lately--"

"Oh, yes!" returned Mr. Skimpole, smiling.  "Though I forgot how 
much it was and when it was.  Jarndyce would readily do it again, 
but I have the epicure-like feeling that I would prefer a novelty 
in help, that I would rather," and he looked at Richard and me, 
"develop generosity in a new soil and in a new form of flower."

"What do you think will be best, Miss Summerson?" said Richard, 
aside.

I ventured to inquire, generally, before replying, what would 
happen if the money were not produced.

"Jail," said the strange man, coolly putting his handkerchief into 
his hat, which was on the floor at his feet.  "Or Coavinses."

"May I ask, sir, what is--"

"Coavinses?" said the strange man.  "A 'ouse."

Richard and I looked at one another again.  It was a most singular 
thing that the arrest was our embarrassment and not Mr. Skimpole's.  
He observed us with a genial interest, but there seemed, if I may 
venture on such a contradiction, nothing selfish in it.  He had 
entirely washed his hands of the difficulty, and it had become 
ours.

"I thought," he suggested, as if good-naturedly to help us out, 
"that being parties in a Chancery suit concerning (as people say) a 
large amount of property, Mr. Richard or his beautiful cousin, or 
both, could sign something, or make over something, or give some 
sort of undertaking, or pledge, or bond?  I don't know what the 
business name of it may be, but I suppose there is some instrument 
within their power that would settle this?"

"Not a bit on it," said the strange man.

"Really?" returned Mr. Skimpole.  "That seems odd, now, to one who 
is no judge of these things!"

"Odd or even," said the stranger gruffly, "I tell you, not a bit on 
it!"

"Keep your temper, my good fellow, keep your temper!" Mr. Skimpole 
gently reasoned with him as he made a little drawing of his head on 
the fly-leaf of a book.  "Don't be ruffled by your occupation.  We 
can separate you from your office; we can separate the individual 
from the pursuit.  We are not so prejudiced as to suppose that in 
private life you are otherwise than a very estimable man, with a 
great deal of poetry in your nature, of which you may not be 
conscious.

The stranger only answered with another violent snort, whether in 
acceptance of the poetry-tribute or in disdainful rejection of it, 
he did not express to me.

"Now, my dear Miss Summerson, and my dear Mr. Richard," said Mr. 
Skimpole gaily, innocently, and confidingly as he looked at his 
drawing with his head on one side, "here you see me utterly 
incapable of helping myself, and entirely in your hands!  I only 
ask to be free.  The butterflies are free.  Mankind will surely not 
deny to Harold Skimpole what it concedes to the butterflies!"

"My dear Miss Summerson," said Richard in a whisper, "I have ten 
pounds that I received from Mr. Kenge.  I must try what that will 
do."

I possessed fifteen pounds, odd shillings, which I had saved from 
my quarterly allowance during several years.  I had always thought 
that some accident might happen which would throw me suddenly, 
without any relation or any property, on the world and had always 
tried to keep some little money by me that I might not be quite 
penniless.  I told Richard of my having this little store and 
having no present need of it, and I asked him delicately to inform 
Mr. Skimpole, while I should be gone to fetch it, that we would 
have the pleasure of paying his debt.

When I came back, Mr. Skimpole kissed my hand and seemed quite 
touched.  Not on his own account (I was again aware of that 
perplexing and extraordinary contradiction), but on ours, as if 
personal considerations were impossible with him and the 
contemplation of our happiness alone affected him.  Richard, 
begging me, for the greater grace of the transaction, as he said, 
to settle with Coavinses (as Mr. Skimpole now jocularly called 
him), I counted out the money and received the necessary 
acknowledgment.  This, too, delighted Mr. Skimpole.

His compliments were so delicately administered that I blushed less 
than I might have done and settled with the stranger in the white 
coat without making any mistakes.  He put the money in his pocket 
and shortly said, "Well, then, I'll wish you a good evening, miss.

"My friend," said Mr. Skimpole, standing with his back to the fire 
after giving up the sketch when it was half finished, "I should 
like to ask you something, without offence."

I think the reply was, "Cut away, then!"

"Did you know this morning, now, that you were coming out on this 
errand?" said Mr. Skimpole.

"Know'd it yes'day aft'noon at tea-time," said Coavinses.

"It didn't affect your appetite?  Didn't make you at all uneasy?"

"Not a hit," said Coavinses.  "I know'd if you wos missed to-day, 
you wouldn't be missed to-morrow.  A day makes no such odds."

"But when you came down here," proceeded Mr. Skimpole, "it was a 
fine day.  The sun was shining, the wind was blowing, the lights 
and shadows were passing across the fields, the birds were 
singing."

"Nobody said they warn't, in MY hearing," returned Coavinses.

"No," observed Mr. Skimpole.  "But what did you think upon the 
road?"

"Wot do you mean?" growled Coavinses with an appearance of strong 
resentment.  "Think!  I've got enough to do, and little enough to 
get for it without thinking.  Thinking!" (with profound contempt).

"Then you didn't think, at all events," proceeded Mr. Skimpole, "to 
this effect: 'Harold Skimpole loves to see the sun shine, loves to 
hear the wind blow, loves to watch the changing lights and shadows, 
loves to hear the birds, those choristers in Nature's great 
cathedral.  And does it seem to me that I am about to deprive 
Harold Skimpole of his share in such possessions, which are his 
only birthright!'  You thought nothing to that effect?"

"I--certainly--did--NOT," said Coavinses, whose doggedness in 
utterly renouncing the idea was of that intense kind that he could 
only give adequate expression to it by putting a long interval 
between each word, and accompanying the last with a jerk that might 
have dislocated his neck.

"Very odd and very curious, the mental process is, in you men of 
business!" said Mr. Skimpole thoughtfully.  "Thank you, my friend.  
Good night."

As our absence had been long enough already to seem strange 
downstairs, I returned at once and found Ada sitting at work by the 
fireside talking to her cousin John.  Mr. Skimpole presently 
appeared, and Richard shortly after him.  I was sufficiently 
engaged during the remainder of the evening in taking my first 
lesson in backgammon from Mr. Jarndyce, who was very fond of the 
game and from whom I wished of course to learn it as quickly as I 
could in order that I might be of the very small use of being able 
to play when he had no better adversary.  But I thought, 
occasionally, when Mr. Skimpole played some fragments of his own 
compositions or when, both at the piano and the violoncello, and at 
our table, he preserved with an absence of all effort his 
delightful spirits and his easy flow of conversation, that Richard 
and I seemed to retain the transferred impression of having been 
arrested since dinner and that it was very curious altogether.

It was late before we separated, for when Ada was going at eleven 
o'clock, Mr. Skimpole went to the piano and rattled hilariously 
that the best of all ways to lengthen our days was to steal a few 
hours from night, my dear!  It was past twelve before he took his 
candle and his radiant face out of the room, and I think he might 
have kept us there, if he had seen fit, until daybreak.  Ada and 
Richard were lingering for a few moments by the fire, wondering 
whether Mrs. Jellyby had yet finished her dictation for the day, 
when Mr. Jarndyce, who had been out of the room, returned.

"Oh, dear me, what's this, what's this!" he said, rubbing his head 
and walking about with his good-humoured vexation.  "What's this 
they tell me?  Rick, my boy, Esther, my dear, what have you been 
doing?  Why did you do it?  How could you do it?  How much apiece 
was it?  The wind's round again.  I feel it all over me!"

We neither of us quite knew what to answer.

"Come, Rick, come!  I must settle this before I sleep.  How much 
are you out of pocket?  You two made the money up, you know!  Why 
did you?  How could you?  Oh, Lord, yes, it's due east--must be!"

"Really, sir," said Richard, "I don't think it would be honourable 
in me to tell you.  Mr. Skimpole relied upon us--"

"Lord bless you, my dear boy!  He relies upon everybody!" said Mr. 
Jarndyce, giving his head a great rub and stopping short.

"Indeed, sir?"

"Everybody!  And he'll be in the same scrape again next week!" said 
Mr. Jarndyce, walking again at a great pace, with a candle in his 
hand that had gone out.  "He's always in the same scrape.  He was 
born in the same scrape.  I verily believe that the announcement in 
the newspapers when his mother was confined was 'On Tuesday last, 
at her residence in Botheration Buildings, Mrs. Skimpole of a son 
in difficulties.'"

Richard laughed heartily but added, "Still, sir, I don't want to 
shake his confidence or to break his confidence, and if I submit to 
your better knowledge again, that I ought to keep his secret, I 
hope you will consider before you press me any more.  Of course, if 
you do press me, sir, I shall know I am wrong and will tell you."

"Well!" cried Mr. Jarndyce, stopping again, and making several 
absent endeavours to put his candlestick in his pocket.  "I--here!  
Take it away, my dear.  I don't know what I am about with it; it's 
all the wind--invariably has that effect--I won't press you, Rick; 
you may be right.  But really--to get hold of you and Esther--and 
to squeeze you like a couple of tender young Saint Michael's 
oranges!  It'll blow a gale in the course of the night!"

He was now alternately putting his hands into his pockets as if he 
were going to keep them there a long time, and taking them out 
again and vehemently rubbing them all over his head.

I ventured to take this opportunity of hinting that Mr. Skimpole, 
being in all such matters quite a child--

"Eh, my dear?" said Mr. Jarndyce, catching at the word.

Being quite a child, sir," said I, "and so different from other 
people--"

"You are right!" said Mr. Jarndyce, brightening.  "Your woman's wit 
hits the mark.  He is a child--an absolute child.  I told you he 
was a child, you know, when I first mentioned him."

Certainly! Certainly! we said.

"And he IS a child.  Now, isn't he?" asked Mr. Jarndyce, 
brightening more and more.

He was indeed, we said.

"When you come to think of it, it's the height of childishness in 
you--I mean me--" said Mr. Jarodyce, "to regard him for a moment as 
a man.  You can't make HIM responsible.  The idea of Harold 
Skimpole with designs or plans, or knowledge of consequences!  Ha, 
ha, ha!"

It was so delicious to see the clouds about his bright face 
clearing, and to see him so heartily pleased, and to know, as it 
was impossible not to know, that the source of his pleasure was the 
goodness which was tortured by condemning, or mistrusting, or 
secretly accusing any one, that I saw the tears in Ada's eyes, 
while she echoed his laugh, and felt them in my own.

"Why, what a cod's head and shoulders I am," said Mr. Jarndyce, "to 
require reminding of it!  The whole business shows the child from 
beginning to end.  Nobody but a child would have thought of 
singling YOU two out for parties in the affair!  Nobody but a child 
would have thought of YOUR having the money!  If it had been a 
thousand pounds, it would have been just the same!" said Mr. 
Jarndyce with his whole face in a glow.

We all confirmed it from our night's experience.

"To be sure, to be sure!" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "However, Rick, 
Esther, and you too, Ada, for I don't know that even your little 
purse is safe from his inexperience--I must have a promise all 
round that nothing of this sort shall ever be done any more.  No 
advances!  Not even sixpences."

We all promised faithfully, Richard with a merry glance at me 
touching his pocket as if to remind me that there was no danger of 
OUR transgressing.

"As to Skimpole," said Mr. Jarndyce, "a habitable doll's house with 
good board and a few tin people to get into debt with and borrow 
money of would set the boy up in life.  He is in a child's sleep by 
this time, I suppose; it's time I should take my craftier head to 
my more worldly pillow.  Good night, my dears.  God bless you!"

He peeped in again, with a smiling face, before we had lighted our 
candles, and said, "Oh! I have been looking at the weather-cock.  I 
find it was a false alarm about the wind.  It's in the south!" And 
went away singing to himself.

Ada and I agreed, as we talked together for a little while 
upstairs, that this caprice about the wind was a fiction and that 
he used the pretence to account for any disappointment he could not 
conceal, rather than he would blame the real cause of it or 
disparage or depreciate any one.  We thought this very 
characteristic of his eccentric gentleness and of the difference 
between him and those petulant people who make the weather and the 
winds (particularly that unlucky wind which he had chosen for such 
a different purpose) the stalking-horses of their splenetic and 
gloomy humours.

Indeed, so much affection for him had been added in this one 
evening to my gratitude that I hoped I already began to understand 
him through that mingled feeling.  Any seeming inconsistencies in 
Mr. Skimpole or in Mrs. Jellyby I could not expect to be able to 
reconcile, having so little experience or practical knowledge.  
Neither did I try, for my thoughts were busy when I was alone, with 
Ada and Richard and with the confidence I had seemed to receive 
concerning them.  My fancy, made a little wild by the wind perhaps, 
would not consent to be all unselfish, either, though I would have 
persuaded it to be so if I could.  It wandered back to my 
godmother's house and came along the intervening track, raising up 
shadowy speculations which had sometimes trembled there in the dark 
as to what knowledge Mr. Jarndyce had of my earliest history--even 
as to the possibility of his being my father, though that idle 
dream was quite gone now.

It was all gone now, I remembered, getting up from the fire.  It was 
not for me to muse over bygones, but to act with a cheerful spirit 
and a grateful heart.  So I said to myself, "Esther, Esther, Esther!  
Duty, my dear!" and gave my little basket of housekeeping keys such 
a shake that they sounded like little bells and rang me hopefully to 
bed.



CHAPTER VII

The Ghost's Walk


While Esther sleeps, and while Esther wakes, it is still wet weather 
down at the place in Lincolnshire.  The rain is ever falling--drip, 
drip, drip--by day and night upon the broad flagged terrace-
pavement, the Ghost's Walk.  The weather is so very bad down in 
Lincolnshire that the liveliest imagination can scarcely apprehend 
its ever being fine again.  Not that there is any superabundant life 
of imagination on the spot, for Sir Leicester is not here (and, 
truly, even if he were, would not do much for it in that 
particular), but is in Paris with my Lady; and solitude, with dusky 
wings, sits brooding upon Chesney Wold.

There may be some motions of fancy among the lower animals at 
Chesney Wold.  The horses in the stables--the long stables in a 
barren, red-brick court-yard, where there is a great bell in a 
turret, and a clock with a large face, which the pigeons who live 
near it and who love to perch upon its shoulders seem to be always 
consulting--THEY may contemplate some mental pictures of fine 
weather on occasions, and may be better artists at them than the 
grooms.  The old roan, so famous for cross-country work, turning his 
large eyeball to the grated window near his rack, may remember the 
fresh leaves that glisten there at other times and the scents that 
stream in, and may have a fine run with the hounds, while the human 
helper, clearing out the next stall, never stirs beyond his 
pitchfork and birch-broom.  The grey, whose place is opposite the 
door and who with an impatient rattle of his halter pricks his ears 
and turns his head so wistfully when it is opened, and to whom the 
opener says, "'Woa grey, then, steady!  Noabody wants you to-day!" 
may know it quite as well as the man.  The whole seemingly 
monotonous and uncompanionable half-dozen, stabled together, may 
pass the long wet hours when the door is shut in livelier 
communication than is held in the servants' hall or at the Dedlock 
Arms, or may even beguile the time by improving (perhaps corrupting) 
the pony in the loose-box in the corner.

So the mastiff, dozing in his kennel in the court-yard with his 
large head on his paws, may think of the hot sunshine when the 
shadows of the stable-buildings tire his patience out by changing 
and leave him at one time of the day no broader refuge than the 
shadow of his own house, where he sits on end, panting and growling 
short, and very much wanting something to worry besides himself and 
his chain.  So now, half-waking and all-winking, he may recall the 
house full of company, the coach-houses full of vehicles, the 
stables fall of horses, and the out-buildings full of attendants 
upon horses, until he is undecided about the present and comes forth 
to see how it is.  Then, with that impatient shake of himself, he 
may growl in the spirit, "Rain, rain, rain!  Nothing but rain--and 
no family here!" as he goes in again and lies down with a gloomy 
yawn.

So with the dogs in the kennel-buildings across the park, who have 
their resfless fits and whose doleful voices when the wind has been 
very obstinate have even made it known in the house itself--
upstairs, downstairs, and in my Lady's chamber.  They may hunt the 
whole country-side, while the raindrops are pattering round their 
inactivity.  So the rabbits with their self-betraying tails, 
frisking in and out of holes at roots of trees, may be lively with 
ideas of the breezy days when their ears are blown about or of those 
seasons of interest when there are sweet young plants to gnaw.  The 
turkey in the poultry-yard, always troubled with a class-grievance 
(probably Christmas), may be reminiscent of that summer morning 
wrongfully taken from him when he got into the lane among the felled 
trees, where there was a barn and barley.  The discontented goose, 
who stoops to pass under the old gateway, twenty feet high, may 
gabble out, if we only knew it, a waddling preference for weather 
when the gateway casts its shadow on the ground.

Be this as it may, there is not much fancy otherwise stirring at 
Chesney Wold.  If there be a little at any odd moment, it goes, 
like a little noise in that old echoing place, a long way and 
usually leads off to ghosts and mystery.

It has rained so hard and rained so long down in Lincolnshire that 
Mrs. Rouncewell, the old housekeeper at Chesney Wold, has several 
times taken off her spectacles and cleaned them to make certain 
that the drops were not upon the glasses.  Mrs. Rouncewell might 
have been sufficiently assured by hearing the rain, but that she is 
rather deaf, which nothing will induce her to believe.  She is a 
fine old lady, handsome, stately, wonderfully neat, and has such a 
back and such a stomacher that if her stays should turn out when 
she dies to have been a broad old-fashioned family fire-grate, 
nobody who knows her would have cause to be surprised.  Weather 
affects Mrs. Rouncewell little.  The house is there in all 
weathers, and the house, as she expresses it, "is what she looks 
at."  She sits in her room (in a side passage on the ground floor, 
with an arched window commanding a smooth quadrangle, adorned at 
regular intervals with smooth round trees and smooth round blocks 
of stone, as if the trees were going to play at bowls with the 
stones), and the whole house reposes on her mind.  She can open it 
on occasion and be busy and fluttered, but it is shut up now and 
lies on the breadth of Mrs. Rouncewell's iron-bound bosom in a 
majestic sleep.

It is the next difficult thing to an impossibility to imagine 
Chesney Wold without Mrs. Rouncewell, but she has only been here 
fifty years.  Ask her how long, this rainy day, and she shall 
answer "fifty year, three months, and a fortnight, by the blessing 
of heaven, if I live till Tuesday."  Mr. Rouncewell died some time 
before the decease of the pretty fashion of pig-tails, and modestly 
hid his own (if he took it with him) in a corner of the churchyard 
in the park near the mouldy porch.  He was born in the market-town, 
and so was his young widow.  Her progress in the family began in 
the time of the last Sir Leicester and originated in the still-room.

The present representative of the Dedlocks is an excellent master.  
He supposes all his dependents to be utterly bereft of individual 
characters, intentions, or opinions, and is persuaded that he was 
born to supersede the necessity of their having any.  If he were to 
make a discovery to the contrary, he would be simply stunned--would 
never recover himself, most likely, except to gasp and die.  But he 
is an excellent master still, holding it a part of his state to be 
so.  He has a great liking for Mrs. Rouncewell; he says she is a 
most respectable, creditable woman.  He always shakes hands with 
her when he comes down to Chesney Wold and when he goes away; and 
if he were very ill, or if he were knocked down by accident, or run 
over, or placed in any situation expressive of a Dedlock at a 
disadvantage, he would say if he could speak, "Leave me, and send 
Mrs. Rouncewell here!" feeling his dignity, at such a pass, safer 
with her than with anybody else.

Mrs. Rouncewell has known trouble.  She has had two sons, of whom 
the younger ran wild, and went for a soldier, and never came back.  
Even to this hour, Mrs. Rouncewell's calm hands lose their 
composure when she speaks of him, and unfolding themselves from her 
stomacher, hover about her in an agitated manner as she says what a 
likely lad, what a fine lad, what a gay, good-humoured, clever lad 
he was!  Her second son would have been provided for at Chesney 
Wold and would have been made steward in due season, but he took, 
when he was a schoolboy, to constructing steam-engines out of 
saucepans and setting birds to draw their own water with the least 
possible amount of labour, so assisting them with artful 
contrivance of hydraulic pressure that a thirsty canary had only, 
in a literal sense, to put his shoulder to the wheel and the job 
was done.  This propensity gave Mrs. Rouncewell great uneasiness.  
She felt it with a mother's anguish to be a move in the Wat Tyler 
direction, well knowing that Sir Leicester had that general 
impression of an aptitude for any art to which smoke and a tall 
chimney might be considered essential.  But the doomed young rebel 
(otherwise a mild youth, and very persevering), showing no sign of 
grace as he got older but, on the contrary, constructing a model of 
a power-loom, she was fain, with many tears, to mention his 
backslidings to the baronet.  "Mrs. Rouncewell," said Sir 
Leicester, "I can never consent to argue, as you know, with any one 
on any subject.  You had better get rid of your boy; you had better 
get him into some Works.  The iron country farther north is, I 
suppose, the congenial direction for a boy with these tendencies."  
Farther north he went, and farther north he grew up; and if Sir 
Leicester Dedlock ever saw him when he came to Chesney Wold to 
visit his mother, or ever thought of him afterwards, it is certain 
that he only regarded him as one of a body of some odd thousand 
conspirators, swarthy and grim, who were in the habit of turning 
out by torchlight two or three nights in the week for unlawful 
purposes.

Nevertheless, Mrs. Rouncewell's son has, in the course of nature 
and art, grown up, and established himself, and married, and called 
unto him Mrs. Rouncewell's grandson, who, being out of his 
apprenticeship, and home from a journey in far countries, whither 
he was sent to enlarge his knowledge and complete his preparations 
for the venture of this life, stands leaning against the chimney-
piece this very day in Mrs. Rouncewell's room at Chesney Wold.

"And, again and again, I am glad to see you, Watt!  And, once 
again, I am glad to see you, Watt!" says Mrs. Rouncewell.  "You are 
a fine young fellow.  You are like your poor uncle George.  Ah!"  
Mrs. Rouncewell's hands unquiet, as usual, on this reference.

"They say I am like my father, grandmother."

"Like him, also, my dear--but most like your poor uncle George!  
And your dear father."  Mrs. Rouncewell folds her hands again.  "He 
is well?"

"Thriving, grandmother, in every way."

"I am thankful!"  Mrs. Rouncewell is fond of her son but has a 
plaintive feeling towards him, much as if he were a very honourable 
soldier who had gone over to the enemy.

"He is quite happy?" says she.

"Quite."

"I am thankful!  So he has brought you up to follow in his ways and 
has sent you into foreign countries and the like?  Well, he knows 
best.  There may be a world beyond Chesney Wold that I don't 
understand.  Though I am not young, either.  And I have seen a 
quantity of good company too!"

"Grandmother," says the young man, changing the subject, "what a 
very pretty girl that was I found with you just now.  You called 
her Rosa?"

"Yes, child.  She is daughter of a widow in the village.  Maids are 
so hard to teach, now-a-days, that I have put her about me young.  
She's an apt scholar and will do well.  She shows the house 
already, very pretty.  She lives with me at my table here."

"I hope I have not driven her away?"

"She supposes we have family affairs to speak about, I dare say.  
She is very modest.  It is a fine quality in a young woman.  And 
scarcer," says Mrs. Rouncewell, expanding her stomacher to its 
utmost limits, "than it formerly was!"

The young man inclines his head in acknowledgment of the precepts 
of experience.  Mrs. Rouncewell listens.

"Wheels!" says she.  They have long been audible to the younger 
ears of her companion.  "What wheels on such a day as this, for 
gracious sake?"

After a short interval, a tap at the door.  "Come in!"  A dark-
eyed, dark-haired, shy, village beauty comes in--so fresh in her 
rosy and yet delicate bloom that the drops of rain which have 
beaten on her hair look like the dew upon a flower fresh gathered.

"What company is this, Rosa?" says Mrs. Rouncewell.

"It's two young men in a gig, ma'am, who want to see the house--
yes, and if you please, I told them so!" in quick reply to a 
gesture of dissent from the housekeeper.  "I went to the hall-door 
and told them it was the wrong day and the wrong hour, but the 
young man who was driving took off his hat in the wet and begged me 
to bring this card to you."

"Read it, my dear Watt," says the housekeeper.

Rosa is so shy as she gives it to him that they drop it between 
them and almost knock their foreheads together as they pick it up.  
Rosa is shyer than before.

"Mr. Guppy" is all the information the card yields.

"Guppy!" repeats Mrs. Rouncewell, "MR. Guppy!  Nonsense, I never 
heard of him!"

"If you please, he told ME that!" says Rosa.  "But he said that he 
and the other young gentleman came from London only last night by 
the mail, on business at the magistrates' meeting, ten miles off, 
this morning, and that as their business was soon over, and they 
had heard a great deal said of Chesney Wold, and really didn't know 
what to do with themselves, they had come through the wet to see 
it.  They are lawyers.  He says he is not in Mr. Tulkinghorn's 
office, but he is sure he may make use of Mr. Tulkinghorn's name if 
necessary."  Finding, now she leaves off, that she has been making 
quite a long speech, Rosa is shyer than ever.

Now, Mr. Tulkinghorn is, in a manner, part and parcel of the place, 
and besides, is supposed to have made Mrs. Rouncewell's will.  The 
old lady relaxes, consents to the admission of the visitors as a 
favour, and dismisses Rosa.  The grandson, however, being smitten 
by a sudden wish to see the house himself, proposes to join the 
party.  The grandmother, who is pleased that he should have that 
interest, accompanies him--though to do him justice, he is 
exceedingly unwilling to trouble her.

"Much obliged to you, ma'am!" says Mr. Guppy, divesting himself of 
his wet dreadnought in the hall.  "Us London lawyers don't often 
get an out, and when we do, we like to make the most of it, you 
know."

The old housekeeper, with a gracious severity of deportment, waves 
her hand towards the great staircase.  Mr. Guppy and his friend 
follow Rosa; Mrs. Rouncewell and her grandson follow them; a young 
gardener goes before to open the shutters.

As is usually the case with people who go over houses, Mr. Guppy 
and his friend are dead beat before they have well begun.  They 
straggle about in wrong places, look at wrong things, don't care 
for the right things, gape when more rooms are opened, exhibit 
profound depression of spirits, and are clearly knocked up.  In 
each successive chamber that they enter, Mrs. Rouncewell, who is as 
upright as the house itself, rests apart in a window-seat or other 
such nook and listens with stately approval to Rosa's exposition.  
Her grandson is so attentive to it that Rosa is shyer than ever--
and prettier.  Thus they pass on from room to room, raising the 
pictured Dedlocks for a few brief minutes as the young gardener 
admits the light, and reconsigning them to their graves as he shuts 
it out again.  It appears to the afflicted Mr. Guppy and his 
inconsolable friend that there is no end to the Dedlocks, whose 
family greatness seems to consist in their never having done 
anything to distinguish themselves for seven hundred years.

Even the long drawing-room of Chesney Wold cannot revive Mr. 
Guppy's spirits.  He is so low that he droops on the threshold and 
has hardly strength of mind to enter.  But a portrait over the 
chimney-piece, painted by the fashionable artist of the day, acts 
upon him like a charm.  He recovers in a moment.  He stares at it 
with uncommon interest; he seems to be fixed and fascinated by it.

"Dear me!" says Mr. Guppy.  "Who's that?"

"The picture over the fire-place," says Rosa, "is the portrait of 
the present Lady Dedlock.  It is considered a perfect likeness, and 
the best work of the master."

"'Blest," says Mr. Guppy, staring in a kind of dismay at his 
friend, "if I can ever have seen her.  Yet I know her!  Has the 
picture been engraved, miss?"

"The picture has never been engraved.  Sir Leicester has always 
refused permission."

"Well!" says Mr. Guppy in a low voice.  "I'll be shot if it ain't 
very curious how well I know that picture!  So that's Lady Dedlock, 
is it!"

"The picture on the right is the present Sir Leicester Dedlock.  
The picture on the left is his father, the late Sir Leicester."

Mr. Guppy has no eyes for either of these magnates.  "It's 
unaccountable to me," he says, still staring at the portrait, "how 
well I know that picture!  I'm dashed," adds Mr. Guppy, looking 
round, "if I don't think I must have had a dream of that picture, 
you know!"

As no one present takes any especial interest in Mr. Guppy's 
dreams, the probability is not pursued.  But he still remains so 
absorbed by the portrait that he stands immovable before it until 
the young gardener has closed the shutters, when he comes out of 
the room in a dazed state that is an odd though a sufficient 
substitute for interest and follows into the succeeding rooms with 
a confused stare, as if he were looking everywhere for Lady Dedlock 
again.

He sees no more of her.  He sees her rooms, which are the last 
shown, as being very elegant, and he looks out of the windows from 
which she looked out, not long ago, upon the weather that bored her 
to death.  All things have an end, even houses that people take 
infinite pains to see and are tired of before they begin to see 
them.  He has come to the end of the sight, and the fresh village 
beauty to the end of her description; which is always this: "The 
terrace below is much admired.  It is called, from an old story in 
the family, the Ghost's Walk."

"No?" says Mr. Guppy, greedily curious.  "What's the story, miss?  
Is it anything about a picture?"

"Pray tell us the story," says Watt in a half whisper.

"I don't know it, sir."  Rosa is shyer than ever.

"It is not related to visitors; it is almost forgotten," says the 
housekeeper, advancing.  "It has never been more than a family 
anecdote."

"You'll excuse my asking again if it has anything to do with a 
picture, ma'am," observes Mr. Guppy, "because I do assure you that 
the more I think of that picture the better I know it, without 
knowing how I know it!"

The story has nothing to do with a picture; the housekeeper can 
guarantee that.  Mr. Guppy is obliged to her for the information 
and is, moreover, generally obliged.  He retires with his friend, 
guided down another staircase by the young gardener, and presently 
is heard to drive away.  It is now dusk.  Mrs. Rouncewell can trust 
to the discretion of her two young hearers and may tell THEM how 
the terrace came to have that ghostly name.

She seats herself in a large chair by the fast-darkening window and 
tells them: "In the wicked days, my dears, of King Charles the 
First--I mean, of course, in the wicked days of the rebels who 
leagued themselves against that excellent king--Sir Morbury Dedlock 
was the owner of Chesney Wold.  Whether there was any account of a 
ghost in the family before those days, I can't say.  I should think 
it very likely indeed."

Mrs. Rouncewell holds this opinion because she considers that a 
family of such antiquity and importance has a right to a ghost.  
She regards a ghost as one of the privileges of the upper classes, 
a genteel distinction to which the common people have no claim.

"Sir Morbury Dedlock," says Mrs. Rouncewell, "was, I have no 
occasion to say, on the side of the blessed martyr.  But it IS 
supposed that his Lady, who had none of the family blood in her 
veins, favoured the bad cause.  It is said that she had relations 
among King Charles's enemies, that she was in correspondence with 
them, and that she gave them information.  When any of the country 
gentlemen who followed his Majesty's cause met here, it is said 
that my Lady was always nearer to the door of their council-room 
than they supposed.  Do you hear a sound like a footstep passing 
along the terrace, Watt?"

Rosa draws nearer to the housekeeper.

"I hear the rain-drip on the stones," replies the young man, "and I 
hear a curious echo--I suppose an echo--which is very like a 
halting step."

The housekeeper gravely nods and continues: "Partly on account of 
this division between them, and partly on other accounts, Sir 
Morbury and his Lady led a troubled life.  She was a lady of a 
haughty temper.  They were not well suited to each other in age or 
character, and they had no children to moderate between them.  
After her favourite brother, a young gentleman, was killed in the 
civil wars (by Sir Morbury's near kinsman), her feeling was so 
violent that she hated the race into which she had married.  When 
the Dedlocks were about to ride out from Chesney Wold in the king's 
cause, she is supposed to have more than once stolen down into the 
stables in the dead of night and lamed their horses; and the story 
is that once at such an hour, her husband saw her gliding down the 
stairs and followed her into the stall where his own favourite 
horse stood.  There he seized her by the wrist, and in a struggle 
or in a fall or through the horse being frightened and lashing out, 
she was lamed in the hip and from that hour began to pine away."

The housekeeper has dropped her voice to a little more than a 
whisper.

"She had been a lady of a handsome figure and a noble carriage.  
She never complained of the change; she never spoke to any one of 
being crippled or of being in pain, but day by day she tried to 
walk upon the terrace, and with the help of the stone balustrade, 
went up and down, up and down, up and down, in sun and shadow, with 
greater difficulty every day.  At last, one afternoon her husband 
(to whom she had never, on any persuasion, opened her lips since 
that night), standing at the great south window, saw her drop upon 
the pavement.  He hastened down to raise her, but she repulsed him 
as he bent over her, and looking at him fixedly and coldly, said, 
'I will die here where I have walked.  And I will walk here, though 
I am in my grave.  I will walk here until the pride of this house 
is humbled.  And when calamity or when disgrace is coming to it, 
let the Dedlocks listen for my step!'

Watt looks at Rosa.  Rosa in the deepening gloom looks down upon 
the ground, half frightened and half shy.

"There and then she died.  And from those days," says Mrs. 
Rouncewell, "the name has come down--the Ghost's Walk.  If the 
tread is an echo, it is an echo that is only heard after dark, and 
is often unheard for a long while together.  But it comes back from 
time to time; and so sure as there is sickness or death in the 
family, it will be heard then."

"And disgrace, grandmother--" says Watt.

"Disgrace never comes to Chesney Wold," returns the housekeeper.

Her grandson apologizes with "True.  True."

"That is the story.  Whatever the sound is, it is a worrying 
sound," says Mrs. Rouncewell, getting up from her chair; "and what 
is to be noticed in it is that it MUST BE HEARD.  My Lady, who is 
afraid of nothing, admits that when it is there, it must be heard.  
You cannot shut it out.  Watt, there is a tall French clock behind 
you (placed there, 'a purpose) that has a loud beat when it is in 
motion and can play music.  You understand how those things are 
managed?"

"Pretty well, grandmother, I think."

"Set it a-going."

Watt sets it a-going--music and all.

"Now, come hither," says the housekeeper.  "Hither, child, towards 
my Lady's pillow.  I am not sure that it is dark enough yet, but 
listen!  Can you hear the sound upon the terrace, through the 
music, and the beat, and everything?"

"I certainly can!"

"So my Lady says."



CHAPTER VIII

Covering a Multitude of Sins


It was interesting when I dressed before daylight to peep out of 
window, where my candles were reflected in the black panes like two 
beacons, and finding all beyond still enshrouded in the 
indistinctness of last night, to watch how it turned out when the 
day came on.  As the prospect gradually revealed itself and 
disclosed the scene over which the wind had wandered in the dark, 
like my memory over my life, I had a pleasure in discovering the 
unknown objects that had been around me in my sleep.  At first they 
were faintly discernible in the mist, and above them the later 
stars still glimmered.  That pale interval over, the picture began 
to enlarge and fill up so fast that at every new peep I could have 
found enough to look at for an hour.  Imperceptibly my candles 
became the only incongruous part of the morning, the dark places in 
my room all melted away, and the day shone bright upon a cheerful 
landscape, prominent in which the old Abbey Church, with its 
massive tower, threw a softer train of shadow on the view than 
seemed compatible with its rugged character.  But so from rough 
outsides (I hope I have learnt), serene and gentle influences often 
proceed.

Every part of the house was in such order, and every one was so 
attentive to me, that I had no trouble with my two bunches of keys, 
though what with trying to remember the contents of each little 
store-room drawer and cupboard; and what with making notes on a 
slate about jams, and pickles, and preserves, and bottles, and 
glass, and china, and a great many other things; and what with 
being generally a methodical, old-maidish sort of foolish little 
person, I was so busy that I could not believe it was breakfast-
time when I heard the bell ring.  Away I ran, however, and made 
tea, as I had already been installed into the responsibility of the 
tea-pot; and then, as they were all rather late and nobody was down 
yet, I thought I would take a peep at the garden and get some 
knowledge of that too.  I found it quite a delightful place--in 
front, the pretty avenue and drive by which we had approached (and 
where, by the by, we had cut up the gravel so terribly with our 
wheels that I asked the gardener to roll it); at the back, the 
flower-garden, with my darling at her window up there, throwing it 
open to smile out at me, as if she would have kissed me from that 
distance.  Beyond the flower-garden was a kitchen-garden, and then 
a paddock, and then a snug little rick-yard, and then a dear little 
farm-yard.  As to the house itself, with its three peaks in the 
roof; its various-shaped windows, some so large, some so small, and 
all so pretty; its trellis-work, against the southfront for roses 
and honey-suckle, and its homely, comfortable, welcoming look--it 
was, as Ada said when she came out to meet me with her arm through 
that of its master, worthy of her cousin John, a bold thing to say, 
though he only pinched her dear cheek for it.

Mr. Skimpole was as agreeable at breakfast as he had been 
overnight.  There was honey on the table, and it led him into a 
discourse about bees.  He had no objection to honey, he said (and I 
should think he had not, for he seemed to like it), but he 
protested against the overweening assumptions of bees.  He didn't 
at all see why the busy bee should be proposed as a model to him; 
he supposed the bee liked to make honey, or he wouldn't do it--
nobody asked him.  It was not necessary for the bee to make such a 
merit of his tastes.  If every confectioner went buzzing about the 
world banging against everything that came in his way and 
egotistically calling upon everybody to take notice that he was 
going to his work and must not be interrupted, the world would be 
quite an unsupportable place.  Then, after all, it was a ridiculous 
position to be smoked out of your fortune with brimstone as soon as 
you had made it.  You would have a very mean opinion of a 
Manchester man if he spun cotton for no other purpose.  He must say 
he thought a drone the embodiment of a pleasanter and wiser idea.  
The drone said unaffectedly, "You will excuse me; I really cannot 
attend to the shop!  I find myself in a world in which there is so 
much to see and so short a time to see it in that I must take the 
liberty of looking about me and begging to be provided for by 
somebody who doesn't want to look about him."  This appeared to Mr. 
Skimpole to be the drone philosophy, and he thought it a very good 
philosophy, always supposing the drone to be willing to be on good 
terms with the bee, which, so far as he knew, the easy fellow 
always was, if the consequential creature would only let him, and 
not be so conceited about his honey!

He pursued this fancy with the lightest foot over a variety of 
ground and made us all merry, though again he seemed to have as 
serious a meaning in what he said as he was capable of having.  I 
left them still listening to him when I withdrew to attend to my 
new duties.  They had occupied me for some time, and I was passing 
through the passages on my return with my basket of keys on my arm 
when Mr. Jarndyce called me into a small room next his bed-chamber, 
which I found to be in part a little library of books and papers 
and in part quite a little museum of his boots and shoes and hat-
boxes.

"Sit down, my dear," said Mr. Jarndyce.  "This, you must know, is 
the growlery.  When I am out of humour, I come and growl here."

"You must be here very seldom, sir," said I.

"Oh, you don't know me!" he returned.  "When I am deceived or 
disappointed in--the wind, and it's easterly, I take refuge here.  
The growlery is the best-used room in the house.  You are not aware 
of half my humours yet.  My dear, how you are trembling!"

I could not help it; I tried very hard, but being alone with that 
benevolent presence, and meeting his kind eyes, and feeling so 
happy and so honoured there, and my heart so full--

I kissed his hand.  I don't know what I said, or even that I spoke.  
He was disconcerted and walked to the window; I almost believed 
with an intention of jumping out, until he turned and I was 
reassured by seeing in his eyes what he had gone there to hide.  He 
gently patted me on the head, and I sat down.

"There!  There!" he said.  "That's over.  Pooh!  Don't be foolish."

"It shall not happen again, sir," I returned, "but at first it is 
difficult--"

"Nonsense!" he said.  "It's easy, easy.  Why not?  I hear of a good 
little orphan girl without a protector, and I take it into my head 
to be that protector.  She grows up, and more than justifies my 
good opinion, and I remain her guardian and her friend.  What is 
there in all this?  So, so!  Now, we have cleared off old scores, 
and I have before me thy pleasant, trusting, trusty face again."

I said to myself, "Esther, my dear, you surprise me!  This really 
is not what I expected of you!"  And it had such a good effect that 
I folded my hands upon my basket and quite recovered myself.  Mr. 
Jarndyce, expressing his approval in his face, began to talk to me 
as confidentially as if I had been in the habit of conversing with 
him every morning for I don't know how long.  I almost felt as if I 
had.

"Of course, Esther," he said, "you don't understand this Chancery 
business?"

And of course I shook my head.

"I don't know who does," he returned.  "The lawyers have twisted it 
into such a state of bedevilment that the original merits of the 
case have long disappeared from the face of the earth.  It's about 
a will and the trusts under a will--or it was once.  It's about 
nothing but costs now.  We are always appearing, and disappearing, 
and swearing, and interrogating, and filing, and cross-filing, and 
arguing, and sealing, and motioning, and referring, and reporting, 
and revolving about the Lord Chancellor and all his satellites, and 
equitably waltzing ourselves off to dusty death, about costs.  
That's the great question.  All the rest, by some extraordinary 
means, has melted away."

"But it was, sir," said I, to bring him back, for he began to rub 
his head, "about a will?"

"Why, yes, it was about a will when it was about anything," he 
returned.   "A certain Jarndyce, in an evil hour, made a great 
fortune, and made a great will.  In the question how the trusts 
under that will are to be administered, the fortune left by the 
will is squandered away; the legatees under the will are reduced to 
such a miserable condition that they would be sufficiently punished 
if they had committed an enormous crime in having money left them, 
and the will itself is made a dead letter.  All through the 
deplorable cause, everything that everybody in it, except one man, 
knows already is referred to that only one man who don't know it to 
find out--all through the deplorable cause, everybody must have 
copies, over and over again, of everything that has accumulated 
about it in the way of cartloads of papers (or must pay for them 
without having them, which is the usual course, for nobody wants 
them) and must go down the middle and up again through such an 
infernal country-dance of costs and fees and nonsense and 
corruption as was never dreamed of in the wildest visions of a 
witch's Sabbath.  Equity sends questions to law, law sends 
questions back to equity; law finds it can't do this, equity finds 
it can't do that; neither can so much as say it can't do anything, 
without this solicitor instructing and this counsel appearing for 
A, and that solicitor instructing and that counsel appearing for B; 
and so on through the whole alphabet, like the history of the apple 
pie.  And thus, through years and years, and lives and lives, 
everything goes on, constantly beginning over and over again, and 
nothing ever ends.  And we can't get out of the suit on any terms, 
for we are made parties to it, and MUST BE parties to it, whether 
we like it or not.  But it won't do to think of it!  When my great 
uncle, poor Tom Jarndyce, began to think of it, it was the 
beginning of the end!"

"The Mr. Jarndyce, sir, whose story I have heard?"

He nodded gravely.  "I was his heir, and this was his house, 
Esther.  When I came here, it was bleak indeed.  He had left the 
signs of his misery upon it."

"How changed it must be now!" I said.

"It had been called, before his time, the Peaks.  He gave it its 
present name and lived here shut up, day and night poring over the 
wicked heaps of papers in the suit and hoping against hope to 
disentangle it from its mystification and bring it to a close.  In 
the meantime, the place became dilapidated, the wind whistled 
through the cracked walls, the rain fell through the broken roof, 
the weeds choked the passage to the rotting door.  When I brought 
what remained of him home here, the brains seemed to me to have 
been blown out of the house too, it was so shattered and ruined."

He walked a little to and fro after saying this to himself with a 
shudder, and then looked at me, and brightened, and came and sat 
down again with his hands in his pockets.

"I told you this was the growlery, my dear.  Where was I?"

I reminded him, at the hopeful change he had made in Bleak House.

"Bleak House; true.  There is, in that city of London there, some 
property of ours which is much at this day what Bleak House was 
then; I say property of ours, meaning of the suit's, but I ought to 
call it the property of costs, for costs is the only power on earth 
that will ever get anything out of it now or will ever know it for 
anything but an eyesore and a heartsore.  It is a street of 
perishing blind houses, with their eyes stoned out, without a pane 
of glass, without so much as a window-frame, with the bare blank 
shutters tumbling from their hinges and falling asunder, the iron 
rails peeling away in flakes of rust, the chimneys sinking in, the 
stone steps to every door (and every door might be death's door) 
turning stagnant green, the very crutches on which the ruins are 
propped decaying.  Although Bleak House was not in Chancery, its 
master was, and it was stamped with the same seal.  These are the 
Great Seal's impressions, my dear, all over England--the children 
know them!"

"How changed it is!" I said again.

"Why, so it is," he answered much more cheerfully; "and it is 
wisdom in you to keep me to the bright side of the picture."  (The 
idea of my wisdom!)  "These are things I never talk about or even 
think about, excepting in the growlery here.  If you consider it 
right to mention them to Rick and Ada," looking seriously at me, 
"you can.  I leave it to your discretion, Esther."

"I hope, sir--" said I.

"I think you had better call me guardian, my dear."

I felt that I was choking again--I taxed myself with it, "Esther, 
now, you know you are!"--when he feigned to say this slightly, as 
if it were a whim instead of a thoughtful tenderness.  But I gave 
the housekeeping keys the least shake in the world as a reminder to 
myself, and folding my hands in a still more determined manner on 
the basket, looked at him quietly.

"I hope, guardian," said I, "that you may not trust too much to my 
discretion.  I hope you may not mistake me.  I am afraid it will be 
a disappointment to you to know that I am not clever, but it really 
is the truth, and you would soon find it out if I had not the 
honesty to confess it."

He did not seem at all disappointed; quite the contrary.  He told 
me, with a smile all over his face, that he knew me very well 
indeed and that I was quite clever enough for him.

"I hope I may turn out so," said I, "but I am much afraid of it, 
guardian."

"You are clever enough to be the good little woman of our lives 
here, my dear," he returned playfully; "the little old woman of the 
child's (I don't mean Skimpole's) rhyme:


     'Little old woman, and whither so high?'
     'To sweep the cobwebs out of the sky.'


You will sweep them so neatly out of OUR sky in the course of your 
housekeeping, Esther, that one of these days we shall have to 
abandon the growlery and nail up the door."

This was the beginning of my being called Old Woman, and Little Old 
Woman, and Cobweb, and Mrs. Shipton, and Mother Hubbard, and Dame 
Durden, and so many names of that sort that my own name soon became 
quite lost among them.

"However," said Mr. Jarndyce, "to return to our gossip.  Here's 
Rick, a fine young fellow full of promise.  What's to be done with 
him?"

Oh, my goodness, the idea of asking my advice on such a point!

"Here he is, Esther," said Mr. Jarndyce, comfortably putting his 
hands into his pockets and stretching out his legs.  "He must have 
a profession; he must make some choice for himself.  There will be 
a world more wiglomeration about it, I suppose, but it must be 
done."

"More what, guardian?" said I.

"More wiglomeration," said he.  "It's the only name I know for the 
thing.  He is a ward in Chancery, my dear.  Kenge and Carboy will 
have something to say about it; Master Somebody--a sort of 
ridiculous sexton, digging graves for the merits of causes in a 
back room at the end of Quality Court, Chancery Lane--will have 
something to say about it; counsel will have something to say about 
it; the Chancellor will have something to say about it; the 
satellites will have something to say about it; they will all have 
to be handsomely feed, all round, about it; the whole thing will be 
vastly ceremonious, wordy, unsatisfactory, and expensive, and I 
call it, in general, wiglomeration.  How mankind ever came to be 
afflicted with wiglomeration, or for whose sins these young people 
ever fell into a pit of it, I don't know; so it is."

He began to rub his head again and to hint that he felt the wind.  
But it was a delightful instance of his kindness towards me that 
whether he rubbed his head, or walked about, or did both, his face 
was sure to recover its benignant expression as it looked at mine; 
and he was sure to turn comfortable again and put his hands in his 
pockets and stretch out his legs.

"Perhaps it would be best, first of all," said I, "to ask Mr. 
Richard what he inclines to himself."

"Exactly so," he returned.  "That's what I mean!  You know, just 
accustom yourself to talk it over, with your tact and in your quiet 
way, with him and Ada, and see what you all make of it.  We are 
sure to come at the heart of the matter by your means, little 
woman."

I really was frightened at the thought of the importance I was 
attaining and the number of things that were being confided to me.  
I had not meant this at all; I had meant that he should speak to 
Richard.  But of course I said nothing in reply except that I would 
do my best, though I feared (I realty felt it necessary to repeat 
this) that he thought me much more sagacious than I was.  At which 
my guardian only laughed the pleasantest laugh I ever heard.

"Come!" he said, rising and pushing back his chair.  "I think we 
may have done with the growlery for one day!  Only a concluding 
word.  Esther, my dear, do you wish to ask me anything?"

He looked so attentively at me that I looked attentively at him and 
felt sure I understood him.

"About myself, sir?" said I.

"Yes."

"Guardian," said I, venturing to put my hand, which was suddenly 
colder than I could have wished, in his, "nothing!  I am quite sure 
that if there were anything I ought to know or had any need to 
know, I should not have to ask you to tell it to me.  If my whole 
reliance and confidence were not placed in you, I must have a hard 
heart indeed.  I have nothing to ask you, nothing in the world."

He drew my hand through his arm and we went away to look for Ada.  
From that hour I felt quite easy with him, quite unreserved, quite 
content to know no more, quite happy.

We lived, at first, rather a busy life at Bleak House, for we had 
to become acquainted with many residents in and out of the 
neighbourhood who knew Mr. Jarndyce.  It seemed to Ada and me that 
everybody knew him who wanted to do anything with anybody else's 
money.  It amazed us when we began to sort his letters and to 
answer some of them for him in the growlery of a morning to find 
how the great object of the lives of nearly all his correspondents 
appeared to be to form themselves into committees for getting in 
and laying out money.  The ladies were as desperate as the 
gentlemen; indeed, I think they were even more so.  They threw 
themselves into committees in the most impassioned manner and 
collected subscriptions with a vehemence quite extraordinary.  It 
appeared to us that some of them must pass their whole lives in 
dealing out subscription-cards to the whole post-office directory--
shilling cards, half-crown cards, half-sovereign cards, penny 
cards.  They wanted everything.  They wanted wearing apparel, they 
wanted linen rags, they wanted money, they wanted coals, they 
wanted soup, they wanted interest, they wanted autographs, they 
wanted flannel, they wanted whatever Mr. Jarndyce had--or had not.  
Their objects were as various as their demands.  They were going to 
raise new buildings, they were going to pay off debts on old 
buildings, they were going to establish in a picturesque building 
(engraving of proposed west elevation attached) the Sisterhood of 
Mediaeval Marys, they were going to give a testimonial to Mrs. 
Jellyby, they were going to have their secretary's portrait painted 
and presented to his mother-in-law, whose deep devotion to him was 
well known, they were going to get up everything, I really believe, 
from five hundred thousand tracts to an annuity and from a marble 
monument to a silver tea-pot.  They took a multitude of titles.  
They were the Women of England, the Daughters of Britain, the 
Sisters of all the cardinal virtues separately, the Females of 
America, the Ladies of a hundred denominations.  They appeared to 
be always excited about canvassing and electing.  They seemed to 
our poor wits, and according to their own accounts, to be 
constantly polling people by tens of thousands, yet never bringing 
their candidates in for anything.  It made our heads ache to think, 
on the whole, what feverish lives they must lead.

Among the ladies who were most distinguished for this rapacious 
benevolence (if I may use the expression) was a Mrs. Pardiggle, who 
seemed, as I judged from the number of her letters to Mr. Jarndyce, 
to be almost as powerful a correspondent as Mrs. Jellyby herself.  
We observed that the wind always changed when Mrs. Pardiggle became 
the subject of conversation and that it invariably interrupted Mr. 
Jarndyce and prevented his going any farther, when he had remarked 
that there were two classes of charitable people; one, the people 
who did a little and made a great deal of noise; the other, the 
people who did a great deal and made no noise at all.  We were 
therefore curious to see Mrs. Pardiggle, suspecting her to be a 
type of the former class, and were glad when she called one day 
with her five young sons.

She was a formidable style of lady with spectacles, a prominent 
nose, and a loud voice, who had the effect of wanting a great deal 
of room.  And she really did, for she knocked down little chairs 
with her skirts that were quite a great way off.  As only Ada and I 
were at home, we received her timidly, for she seemed to come in 
like cold weather and to make the little Pardiggles blue as they 
followed.

"These, young ladies," said Mrs. Pardiggle with great volubility 
after the first salutations, "are my five boys.  You may have seen 
their names in a printed subscription list (perhaps more than one) 
in the possession of our esteemed friend Mr. Jarndyce.  Egbert, my 
eldest (twelve), is the boy who sent out his pocket-money, to the 
amount of five and threepence, to the Tockahoopo Indians.  Oswald, 
my second (ten and a half), is the child who contributed two and 
nine-pence to the Great National Smithers Testimonial.  Francis, my 
third (nine), one and sixpence halfpenny; Felix, my fourth (seven), 
eightpence to the Superannuated Widows; Alfred, my youngest (five), 
has voluntarily enrolled himself in the Infant Bonds of Joy, and is 
pledged never, through life, to use tobacco in any form."

We had never seen such dissatisfied children.  It was not merely 
that they were weazened and shrivelled--though they were certainly 
that to--but they looked absolutely ferocious with discontent.  At 
the mention of the Tockahoopo Indians, I could really have supposed 
Eghert to be one of the most baleful members of that tribe, he gave 
me such a savage frown.  The face of each child, as the amount of 
his contribution was mentioned, darkened in a peculiarly vindictive 
manner, but his was by far the worst.  I must except, however, the 
little recruit into the Infant Bonds of Joy, who was stolidly and 
evenly miserable.

"You have been visiting, I understand," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "at 
Mrs. Jellyby's?"

We said yes, we had passed one night there.

"Mrs. Jellyby," pursued the lady, always speaking in the same 
demonstrative, loud, hard tone, so that her voice impressed my 
fancy as if it had a sort of spectacles on too--and I may take the 
opportunity of remarking that her spectacles were made the less 
engaging by her eyes being what Ada called "choking eyes," meaning 
very prominent--"Mrs. Jellyby is a benefactor to society and 
deserves a helping hand.  My boys have contributed to the African 
project--Egbert, one and six, being the entire allowance of nine 
weeks; Oswald, one and a penny halfpenny, being the same; the rest, 
according to their little means.  Nevertheless, I do not go with 
Mrs. Jellyby in all things.  I do not go with Mrs. Jellyby in her 
treatment of her young family.  It has been noticed.  It has been 
observed that her young family are excluded from participation in 
the objects to which she is devoted.  She may be right, she may be 
wrong; but, right or wrong, this is not my course with MY young 
family.  I take them everywhere."

I was afterwards convinced (and so was Ada) that from the ill-
conditioned eldest child, these words extorted a sharp yell.  He 
turned it off into a yawn, but it began as a yell.

"They attend matins with me (very prettily done) at half-past six 
o'clock in the morning all the year round, including of course the 
depth of winter," said Mrs. Pardiggle rapidly, "and they are with 
me during the revolving duties of the day.  I am a School lady, I 
am a Visiting lady, I am a Reading lady, I am a Distributing lady; 
I am on the local Linen Box Committee and many general committees; 
and my canvassing alone is very extensive--perhaps no one's more 
so.  But they are my companions everywhere; and by these means they 
acquire that knowledge of the poor, and that capacity of doing 
charitable business in general--in short, that taste for the sort 
of thing--which will render them in after life a service to their 
neighbours and a satisfaction to themselves.  My young family are 
not frivolous; they expend the entire amount of their allowance in 
subscriptions, under my direction; and they have attended as many 
public meetings and listened to as many lectures, orations, and 
discussions as generally fall to the lot of few grown people.  
Alfred (five), who, as I mentioned, has of his own election joined 
the Infant Bonds of Joy, was one of the very few children who 
manifested consciousness on that occasion after a fervid address of 
two hours from the chairman of the evening."

Alfred glowered at us as if he never could, or would, forgive the 
injury of that night.

"You may have observed, Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "in 
some of the lists to which I have referred, in the possession of 
our esteemed friend Mr. Jarndyce, that the names of my young family 
are concluded with the name of O. A. Pardiggle, F.R.S., one pound.  
That is their father.  We usually observe the same routine.  I put 
down my mite first; then my young family enrol their contributions, 
according to their ages and their little means; and then Mr. 
Pardiggle brings up the rear.  Mr. Pardiggle is happy to throw in 
his limited donation, under my direction; and thus things are made 
not only pleasant to ourselves, but, we trust, improving to 
others."

Suppose Mr. Pardiggle were to dine with Mr. Jellyby, and suppose 
Mr. Jellyby were to relieve his mind after dinner to Mr. Pardiggle, 
would Mr. Pardiggle, in return, make any confidential communication 
to Mr. Jellyby?  I was quite confused to find myself thinking this, 
but it came into my head.

"You are very pleasantly situated here!" said Mrs. Pardiggle.

We were glad to change the subject, and going to the window, 
pointed out the beauties of the prospect, on which the spectacles 
appeared to me to rest with curious indifference.

"You know Mr. Gusher?" said our visitor.

We were obliged to say that we had not the pleasure of Mr. Gusher's 
acquaintance.

"The loss is yours, I assure you," said Mrs. Pardiggle with her 
commanding deportment.  "He is a very fervid, impassioned speaker-
full of fire!  Stationed in a waggon on this lawn, now, which, from 
the shape of the land, is naturally adapted to a public meeting, he 
would improve almost any occasion you could mention for hours and 
hours!  By this time, young ladies," said Mrs. Pardiggle, moving 
back to her chair and overturning, as if by invisible agency, a 
little round table at a considerable distance with my work-basket 
on it, "by this time you have found me out, I dare say?"

This was really such a confusing question that Ada looked at me in 
perfect dismay.  As to the guilty nature of my own consciousness 
after what I had been thinking, it must have been expressed in the 
colour of my cheeks.

"Found out, I mean," said Mrs. Pardiggle, "the prominent point in 
my character.  I am aware that it is so prominent as to be 
discoverable immediately.  I lay myself open to detection, I know.  
Well!  I freely admit, I am a woman of business.  I love hard work; 
I enjoy hard work.  The excitement does me good.  I am so 
accustomed and inured to hard work that I don't know what fatigue 
is."

We murmured that it was very astonishing and very gratifying, or 
something to that effect.  I don't think we knew what it was 
either, but this is what our politeness expressed.

"I do not understand what it is to be tired; you cannot tire me if 
you try!" said Mrs. Pardiggle.  "The quantity of exertion (which is 
no exertion to me), the amount of business (which I regard as 
nothing), that I go through sometimes astonishes myself.  I have 
seen my young family, and Mr. Pardiggle, quite worn out with 
witnessing it, when I may truly say I have been as fresh as a 
lark!"

If that dark-visaged eldest boy could look more malicious than he 
had already looked, this was the time when he did it.  I observed 
that he doubled his right fist and delivered a secret blow into the 
crown of his cap, which was under his left arm.

"This gives me a great advantage when I am making my rounds," said 
Mrs. Pardiggle.  "If I find a person unwilling to hear what I have 
to say, I tell that person directly, 'I am incapable of fatigue, my 
good friend, I am never tired, and I mean to go on until I have 
done.'  It answers admirably!  Miss Summerson, I hope I shall have 
your assistance in my visiting rounds immediately, and Miss Clare's 
very soon."

At first I tried to excuse myself for the present on the general 
ground of having occupations to attend to which I must not neglect.  
But as this was an ineffectual protest, I then said, more 
particularly, that I was not sure of my qualifications.  That I was 
inexperienced in the art of adapting my mind to minds very 
differently situated, and addressing them from suitable points of 
view.  That I had not that delicate knowledge of the heart which 
must be essential to such a work.  That I had much to learn, 
myself, before I could teach others, and that I could not confide 
in my good intentions alone.  For these reasons I thought it best 
to be as useful as I could, and to render what kind services I 
could to those immediately about me, and to try to let that circle 
of duty gradually and naturally expand itself.  All this I said 
with anything but confidence, because Mrs. Pardiggle was much older 
than I, and had great experience, and was so very military in her 
manners.

"You are wrong, Miss Summerson," said she, "but perhaps you are not 
equal to hard work or the excitement of it, and that makes a vast 
difference.  If you would like to see how I go through my work, I 
am now about--with my young family--to visit a brickmaker in the 
neighbourhood (a very bad character) and shall be glad to take you 
with me.  Miss Clare also, if she will do me the favour."

Ada and I interchanged looks, and as we were going out in any case, 
accepted the offer.  When we hastily returned from putting on our 
bonnets, we found the young family languishing in a corner and Mrs. 
Pardiggle sweeping about the room, knocking down nearly all the 
light objects it contained.  Mrs. Pardiggle took possession of Ada, 
and I followed with the family.

Ada told me afterwards that Mrs. Pardiggle talked in the same loud 
tone (that, indeed, I overheard) all the way to the brickmaker's 
about an exciting contest which she had for two or three years 
waged against another lady relative to the bringing in of their 
rival candidates for a pension somewhere.  There had been a 
quantity of printing, and promising, and proxying, and polling, and 
it appeared to have imparted great liveliness to all concerned, 
except the pensioners--who were not elected yet.

I am very fond of being confided in by children and am happy in 
being usually favoured in that respect, but on this occasion it 
gave me great uneasiness.  As soon as we were out of doors, Egbert, 
with the manner of a little footpad, demanded a shilling of me on 
the ground that his pocket-money was "boned" from him.  On my 
pointing out the great impropriety of the word, especially in 
connexion with his parent (for he added sulkily "By her!"), he 
pinched me and said, "Oh, then!  Now!  Who are you!  YOU wouldn't 
like it, I think?  What does she make a sham for, and pretend to 
give me money, and take it away again?  Why do you call it my 
allowance, and never let me spend it?"  These exasperating 
questions so inflamed his mind and the minds of Oswald and Francis 
that they all pinched me at once, and in a dreadfully expert way--
screwing up such little pieces of my arms that I could hardly 
forbear crying out.  Felix, at the same time, stamped upon my toes.  
And the Bond of Joy, who on account of always having the whole of 
his little income anticipated stood in fact pledged to abstain from 
cakes as well as tobacco, so swelled with grief and rage when we 
passed a pastry-cook's shop that he terrified me by becoming 
purple.  I never underwent so much, both in body and mind, in the 
course of a walk with young people as from these unnaturally 
constrained children when they paid me the compliment of being 
natural.

I was glad when we came to the brickmaker's house, though it was 
one of a cluster of wretched hovels in a brick-field, with pigsties 
close to the broken windows and miserable little gardens before the 
doors growing nothing but stagnant pools.  Here and there an old 
tub was put to catch the droppings of rain-water from a roof, or 
they were banked up with mud into a little pond like a large dirt-
pie.  At the doors and windows some men and women lounged or 
prowled about, and took little notice of us except to laugh to one 
another or to say something as we passed about gentlefolks minding 
their own business and not troubling their heads and muddying their 
shoes with coming to look after other people's.

Mrs. Pardiggle, leading the way with a great show of moral 
determination and talking with much volubility about the untidy 
habits of the people (though I doubted if the best of us could have 
been tidy in such a place), conducted us into a cottage at the 
farthest corner, the ground-floor room of which we nearly filled.  
Besides ourselves, there were in this damp, offensive room a woman 
with a black eye, nursing a poor little gasping baby by the fire; a 
man, all stained with clay and mud and looking very dissipated, 
lying at full length on the ground, smoking a pipe; a powerful 
young man fastening a collar on a dog; and a bold girl doing some 
kind of washing in very dirty water.  They all looked up at us as 
we came in, and the woman seemed to turn her face towards the fire 
as if to hide her bruised eye; nobody gave us any welcome.

"Well, my friends," said Mrs. Pardiggle, but her voice had not a 
friendly sound, I thought; it was much too businesslike and 
systematic.  "How do you do, all of you?  I am here again.  I told 
you, you couldn't tire me, you know.  I am fond of hard work, and 
am true to my word."

"There an't," growled the man on the floor, whose head rested on 
his hand as he stared at us, "any more on you to come in, is 
there?"

"No, my friend," said Mrs. Pardiggle, seating herself on one stool 
and knocking down another.  "We are all here."

"Because I thought there warn't enough of you, perhaps?" said the 
man, with his pipe between his lips as he looked round upon us.

The young man and the girl both laughed.  Two friends of the young 
man, whom we had attracted to the doorway and who stood there with 
their hands in their pockets, echoed the laugh noisily.

"You can't tire me, good people," said Mrs. Pardiggle to these 
latter.  "I enjoy hard work, and the harder you make mine, the 
better I like it."

"Then make it easy for her!" growled the man upon the floor.  "I 
wants it done, and over.  I wants a end of these liberties took 
with my place.  I wants an end of being drawed like a badger.  Now 
you're a-going to poll-pry and question according to custom--I know 
what you're a-going to be up to.  Well!  You haven't got no 
occasion to be up to it.  I'll save you the trouble.  Is my 
daughter a-washin?  Yes, she IS a-washin.  Look at the water.  
Smell it!  That's wot we drinks.  How do you like it, and what do 
you think of gin instead!  An't my place dirty?  Yes, it is dirty--
it's nat'rally dirty, and it's nat'rally onwholesome; and we've had 
five dirty and onwholesome children, as is all dead infants, and so 
much the better for them, and for us besides.  Have I read the 
little book wot you left?  No, I an't read the little book wot you 
left.  There an't nobody here as knows how to read it; and if there 
wos, it wouldn't be suitable to me.  It's a book fit for a babby, 
and I'm not a babby.  If you was to leave me a doll, I shouldn't 
nuss it.  How have I been conducting of myself?  Why, I've been 
drunk for three days; and I'da been drunk four if I'da had the 
money.  Don't I never mean for to go to church?  No, I don't never 
mean for to go to church.  I shouldn't be expected there, if I did; 
the beadle's too gen-teel for me.  And how did my wife get that 
black eye?  Why, I give it her; and if she says I didn't, she's a 
lie!"

He had pulled his pipe out of his mouth to say all this, and he now 
turned over on his other side and smoked again.  Mrs. Pardiggle, 
who had been regarding him through her spectacles with a forcible 
composure, calculated, I could not help thinking, to increase his 
antagonism, pulled out a good book as if it were a constable's 
staff and took the whole family into custody.  I mean into 
religious custody, of course; but she really did it as if she were 
an inexorable moral policeman carrying them all off to a station-
house.

Ada and I were very uncomfortable.  We both felt intrusive and out 
of place, and we both thought that Mrs. Pardiggle would have got on 
infinitely better if she had not had such a mechanical way of 
taking possession of people.  The children sulked and stared; the 
family took no notice of us whatever, except when the young man 
made the dog bark, which he usually did when Mrs. Pardiggle was 
most emphatic.  We both felt painfully sensible that between us and 
these people there was an iron barrier which could not be removed 
by our new friend.  By whom or how it could be removed, we did not 
know, but we knew that.  Even what she read and said seemed to us 
to be ill-chosen for such auditors, if it had been imparted ever so 
modestly and with ever so much tact.  As to the little book to 
which the man on the floor had referred, we acqulred a knowledge of 
it afterwards, and Mr. Jarndyce said he doubted if Robinson Crusoe 
could have read it, though he had had no other on his desolate 
island.

We were much relieved, under these circumstances, when Mrs. 
Pardiggle left off.

The man on the floor, then turning his bead round again, said 
morosely, "Well!  You've done, have you?"

"For to-day, I have, my friend.  But I am never fatigued.  I shall 
come to you again in your regular order," returned Mrs. Pardiggle 
with demonstrative cheerfulness.

"So long as you goes now," said he, folding his arms and shutting 
his eyes with an oath, "you may do wot you like!"

Mrs. Pardiggle accordingly rose and made a little vortex in the 
confined room from which the pipe itself very narrowly escaped.  
Taking one of her young family in each hand, and telling the others 
to follow closely, and expressing her hope that the brickmaker and 
all his house would be improved when she saw them next, she then 
proceeded to another cottage.  I hope it is not unkind in me to say 
that she certainly did make, in this as in everything else, a show 
that was not conciliatory of doing charity by wholesale and of 
dealing in it to a large extent.

She supposed that we were following her, but as soon as the space 
was left clear, we approached the woman sitting by the fire to ask 
if the baby were ill.

She only looked at it as it lay on her lap.  We had observed before 
that when she looked at it she covered her discoloured eye with her 
hand, as though she wished to separate any association with noise 
and violence and ill treatment from the poor little child.

Ada, whose gentle heart was moved by its appearance, bent down to 
touch its little face.  As she did so, I saw what happened and drew 
her back.  The child died.

"Oh, Esther!" cried Ada, sinking on her knees beside it.  "Look 
here!  Oh, Esther, my love, the little thing!  The suffering, 
quiet, pretty little thing!  I am so sorry for it.  I am so sorry 
for the mother.  I never saw a sight so pitiful as this before!  
Oh, baby, baby!"

Such compassion, such gentleness, as that with which she bent down 
weeping and put her hand upon the mother's might have softened any 
mother's heart that ever beat.  The woman at first gazed at her in 
astonishment and then burst into tears.

Presently I took the light burden from her lap, did what I could to 
make the baby's rest the prettier and gentler, laid it on a shelf, 
and covered it with my own handkerchief.  We tried to comfort the 
mother, and we whispered to her what Our Saviour said of children.  
She answered nothing, but sat weeping--weeping very much.

When I turned, I found that the young man had taken out the dog and 
was standing at the door looking in upon us with dry eyes, but 
quiet.  The girl was quiet too and sat in a corner looking on the 
ground.  The man had risen.  He still smoked his pipe with an air 
of defiance, but he was silent.

An ugly woman, very poorly clothed, hurried in while I was glancing 
at them, and coming straight up to the mother, said, "Jenny!  
Jenny!"  The mother rose on being so addressed and fell upon the 
woman's neck.

She also had upon her face and arms the marks of ill usage.  She 
had no kind of grace about her, but the grace of sympathy; but when 
she condoled with the woman, and her own tears fell, she wanted no 
beauty.  I say condoled, but her only words were "Jenny!  Jenny!"  
All the rest was in the tone in which she said them.

I thought it very touching to see these two women, coarse and 
shabby and beaten, so united; to see what they could be to one 
another; to see how they felt for one another, how the heart of 
each to each was softened by the hard trials of their lives.  I 
think the best side of such people is almost hidden from us.  What 
the poor are to the poor is little known, excepting to themselves 
and God.

We felt it better to withdraw and leave them uninterrupted.  We 
stole out quietly and without notice from any one except the man.  
He was leaning against the wall near the door, and finding that 
there was scarcely room for us to pass, went out before us.  He 
seemed to want to hide that he did this on our account, but we 
perceived that be did, and thanked him.  He made no answer.

Ada was so full of grief all the way home, and Richard, whom we 
found at home, was so distressed to see her in tears (though he 
said to me, when she was not present, how beautiful it was too!), 
that we arranged to return at night with some little comforts and 
repeat our visit at the brick-maker's house.  We said as little as 
we could to Mr. Jarndyce, but the wind changed directly.

Richard accompanied us at night to the scene of our morning 
expedition.  On our way there, we had to pass a noisy drinking-
house, where a number of men were flocking about the door.  Among 
them, and prominent in some dispute, was the father of the little 
child.  At a short distance, we passed the young man and the dog, 
in congenial company.  The sister was standing laughing and talking 
with some other young women at the corner of the row of cottages, 
but she seemed ashamed and turned away as we went by.

We left our escort within sight of the brickmaker's dwelling and 
proceeded by ourselves.  When we came to the door, we found the 
woman who had brought such consolation with her standing there 
looking anxiously out.

"It's you, young ladies, is it?" she said in a whisper.  "I'm a-
watching for my master.  My heart's in my mouth.  If he was to 
catch me away from home, he'd pretty near murder me."

"Do you mean your husband?" said I.

"Yes, miss, my master.  Jennys asleep, quite worn out.  She's 
scarcely had the child off her lap, poor thing, these seven days 
and nights, except when I've been able to take it for a minute or 
two."

As she gave way for us, she went softly in and put what we had 
brought near the miserable bed on which the mother slept.  No 
effort had been made to clean the room--it seemed in its nature 
almost hopeless of being clean; but the small waxen form from which 
so much solemnity diffused itself had been composed afresh, and 
washed, and neatly dressed in some fragments of white linen; and on 
my handkerchief, which still covered the poor baby, a little bunch 
of sweet herbs had been laid by the same rough, scarred hands, so 
lightly, so tenderly!

"May heaven reward you!" we said to her.  "You are a good woman."

"Me, young ladies?" she returned with surprise.  "Hush!  Jenny, 
Jenny!"

The mother had moaned in her sleep and moved.  The sound of the 
familiar voice seemed to calm her again.  She was quiet once more.

How little I thought, when I raised my handkerchief to look upon 
the tiny sleeper underneath and seemed to see a halo shine around 
the child through Ada's drooping hair as her pity bent her head--
how little I thought in whose unquiet bosom that handkerchief would 
come to lie after covering the motionless and peaceful breast!  I 
only thought that perhaps the Angel of the child might not be all 
unconscious of the woman who replaced it with so compassionate a 
hand; not all unconscious of her presently, when we had taken 
leave, and left her at the door, by turns looking, and listening in 
terror for herself, and saying in her old soothing manner, "Jenny, 
Jenny!"



CHAPTER IX

Signs and Tokens


I don't know how it is I seem to be always writing about myself.  I 
mean all the time to write about other people, and I try to think 
about myself as little as possible, and I am sure, when I find 
myself coming into the story again, I am really vexed and say, 
"Dear, dear, you tiresome little creature, I wish you wouldn't!" 
but it is all of no use.  I hope any one who may read what I write 
will understand that if these pages contain a great deal about me, 
I can only suppose it must be because I have really something to do 
with them and can't be kept out.

My darling and I read together, and worked, and practised, and 
found so much employment for our time that the winter days flew by 
us like bright-winged birds.  Generally in the afternoons, and 
always in the evenings, Richard gave us his company.  Although he 
was one of the most restless creatures in the world, he certainly 
was very fond of our society.

He was very, very, very fond of Ada.  I mean it, and I had better 
say it at once.  I had never seen any young people falling in love 
before, but I found them out quite soon.  I could not say so, of 
course, or show that I knew anything about it.  On the contrary, I 
was so demure and used to seem so unconscious that sometimes I 
considered within myself while I was sitting at work whether I was 
not growing quite deceitful.

But there was no help for it.  All I had to do was to be quiet, and 
I was as quiet as a mouse.  They were as quiet as mice too, so far 
as any words were concerned, but the innocent manner in which they 
relied more and more upon me as they took more and more to one 
another was so charming that I had great difficulty in not showing 
how it interested me.

"Our dear little old woman is such a capital old woman," Richard 
would say, coming up to meet me in the garden early, with his 
pleasant laugh and perhaps the least tinge of a blush, "that I 
can't get on without her.  Before I begin my harum-scarum day--
grinding away at those books and instruments and then galloping up 
hill and down dale, all the country round, like a highwayman--it 
does me so much good to come and have a steady walk with our 
comfortable friend, that here I am again!"

"You know, Dame Durden, dear," Ada would say at night, with her 
head upon my shoulder and the firelight shining in her thoughtful 
eyes, "I don't want to talk when we come upstairs here.  Only to 
sit a little while thinking, with your dear face for company, and 
to hear the wind and remember the poor sailors at sea--"

Ah!  Perhaps Richard was going to be a sailor.  We had talked it 
over very often now, and there was some talk of gratifying the 
inclination of his childhood for the sea.  Mr. Jarndyce had written 
to a relation of the family, a great Sir Leicester Dedlock, for his 
interest in Richard's favour, generally; and Sir Leicester had 
replied in a gracious manner that he would be happy to advance the 
prospects of the young gentleman if it should ever prove to be 
within his power, which was not at all probable, and that my Lady 
sent her compliments to the young gentleman (to whom she perfectly 
remembered that she was allied by remote consanguinity) and trusted 
that he would ever do his duty in any honourable profession to 
which he might devote himself.

"So I apprehend it's pretty clear," said Richard to me, "that I 
shall have to work my own way.  Never mind!  Plenty of people have 
had to do that before now, and have done it.  I only wish I had the 
command of a clipping privateer to begin with and could carry off 
the Chancellor and keep him on short allowance until he gave 
judgment in our cause.  He'd find himself growing thin, if he 
didn't look sharp!"

With a buoyancy and hopefulness and a gaiety that hardly ever 
flagged, Richard had a carelessness in his character that quite 
perplexed me, principally because he mistook it, in such a very odd 
way, for prudence.  It entered into all his calculations about 
money in a singular manner which I don't think I can better explain 
than by reverting for a moment to our loan to Mr. Skimpole.

Mr. Jarndyce had ascertained the amount, either from Mr. Skimpole 
himself or from Coavinses, and had placed the money in my hands 
with instructions to me to retain my own part of it and hand the 
rest to Richard.  The number of little acts of thoughtless 
expenditure which Richard justified by the recovery of his ten 
pounds, and the number of times he talked to me as if he had saved 
or realized that amount, would form a sum in simple addition.

"My prudent Mother Hubbard, why not?" he said to me when he wanted, 
without the least consideration, to bestow five pounds on the 
brickmaker.  "I made ten pounds, clear, out of Coavinses' 
business."

"How was that?" said I.

"Why, I got rid of ten pounds which I was quite content to get rid 
of and never expected to see any more.  You don't deny that?"

"No," said I.

"Very well!  Then I came into possession of ten pounds--"

"The same ten pounds," I hinted.

"That has nothing to do with it!" returned Richard.  "I have got 
ten pounds more than I expected to have, and consequently I can 
afford to spend it without being particular."

In exactly the same way, when he was persuaded out of the sacrifice 
of these five pounds by being convinced that it would do no good, 
he carried that sum to his credit and drew upon it.

"Let me see!" he would say.  "I saved five pounds out of the 
brickmaker's affair, so if I have a good rattle to London and back 
in a post-chaise and put that down at four pounds, I shall have 
saved one.  And it's a very good thing to save one, let me tell 
you: a penny saved is a penny got!"

I believe Richard's was as frank and generous a nature as there 
possibly can be.  He was ardent and brave, and in the midst of all 
his wild restlessness, was so gentle that I knew him like a brother 
in a few weeks.  His gentleness was natural to him and would have 
shown itself abundantly even without Ada's influence; but with it, 
he became one of the most winning of companions, always so ready to 
be interested and always so happy, sanguine, and light-hearted.  I 
am sure that I, sitting with them, and walking with them, and 
talking with them, and noticing from day to day how they went on, 
falling deeper and deeper in love, and saying nothing about it, and 
each shyly thinking that this love was the greatest of secrets, 
perhaps not yet suspected even by the other--I am sure that I was 
scarcely less enchanted than they were and scarcely less pleased 
with the pretty dream.

We were going on in this way, when one morning at breakfast Mr. 
Jarndyce received a letter, and looking at the superscription, 
said, "From Boythorn?  Aye, aye!" and opened and read it with 
evident pleasure, announcing to us in a parenthesis when he was 
about half-way through, that Boythorn was "coming down" on a visit.  
Now who was Boythorn, we all thought.  And I dare say we all 
thought too--I am sure I did, for one--would Boythorn at all 
interfere with what was going forward?

"I went to school with this fellow, Lawrence Boythorn," said Mr. 
Jarndyce, tapping the letter as he laid it on the table, "more than 
five and forty years ago.  He was then the most impetuous boy in 
the world, and he is now the most impetuous man.  He was then the 
loudest boy in the world, and he is now the loudest man.  He was 
then the heartiest and sturdiest boy in the world, and he is now 
the heartiest and sturdiest man.  He is a tremendous fellow."

"In stature, sir?" asked Richard.

"Pretty well, Rick, in that respect," said Mr. Jarndyce; "being 
some ten years older than I and a couple of inches taller, with his 
head thrown back like an old soldier, his stalwart chest squared, 
his hands like a clean blacksmith's, and his lungs!  There's no 
simile for his lungs.  Talking, laughing, or snoring, they make the 
beams of the house shake."

As Mr. Jarndyce sat enjoying the image of his friend Boythorn, we 
observed the favourable omen that there was not the least 
indication of any change in the wind.

"But it's the inside of the man, the warm heart of the man, the 
passion of the man, the fresh blood of the man, Rick--and Ada, and 
little Cobweb too, for you are all interested in a visitor--that I 
speak of," he pursued.  "His language is as sounding as his voice.  
He is always in extremes, perpetually in the superlative degree.  
In his condemnation he is all ferocity.  You might suppose him to 
be an ogre from what he says, and I believe he has the reputation 
of one with some people.  There!  I tell you no more of him 
beforehand.  You must not be surprised to see him take me under his 
protection, for he has never forgotten that I was a low boy at 
school and that our friendship began in his knocking two of my head 
tyrant's teeth out (he says six) before breakfast.  Boythorn and 
his man," to me, "will be here this afternoon, my dear."

I took care that the necessary preparations were made for Mr. 
Boythorn's reception, and we looked forward to his arrival with 
some curiosity.  The afternoon wore away, however, and he did not 
appear.  The dinner-hour arrived, and still he did not appear.  The 
dinner was put back an hour, and we were sitting round the fire 
with no light but the blaze when the hall-door suddenly burst open 
and the hall resounded with these words, uttered with the greatest 
vehemence and in a stentorian tone: "We have been misdirected, 
Jarndyce, by a most abandoned ruffian, who told us to take the 
turning to the right instead of to the left.  He is the most 
intolerable scoundrel on the face of the earth.  His father must 
have been a most consummate villain, ever to have such a son.  I 
would have had that fellow shot without the least remorse!"

"Did he do it on purpose?" Mr. Jarndyce inquired.

"I have not the slightest doubt that the scoundrel has passed his 
whole existence in misdirecting travellers!" returned the other.  
"By my soul, I thought him the worst-looking dog I had ever beheld 
when he was telling me to take the turning to the right.  And yet I 
stood before that fellow face to face and didn't knock his brains 
out!"

"Teeth, you mean?" said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Ha, ha, ha!" laughed Mr. Lawrence Boythorn, really making the 
whole house vibrate.  "What, you have not forgotten it yet!  Ha, 
ha, ha!  And that was another most consummate vagabond!  By my 
soul, the countenance of that fellow when he was a boy was the 
blackest image of perfidy, cowardice, and cruelty ever set up as a 
scarecrow in a field of scoundrels.  If I were to meet that most 
unparalleled despot in the streets to-morrow, I would fell him like 
a rotten tree!"

"I have no doubt of it," said Mr. Jarndyce.  "Now, will you come 
upstairs?"

"By my soul, Jarndyce," returned his guest, who seemed to refer to 
his watch, "if you had been married, I would have turned back at 
the garden-gate and gone away to the remotest summits of the 
Himalaya Mountains sooner than I would have presented myself at 
this unseasonable hour."

"Not quite so far, I hope?" said Mr. Jarndyce.

"By my life and honour, yes!" cried the visitor.  "I wouldn't be 
guilty of the audacious insolence of keeping a lady of the house 
waiting all this time for any earthly consideration.  I would 
infinitely rather destroy myself--infinitely rather!"

Talking thus, they went upstairs, and presently we heard him in his 
bedroom thundering "Ha, ha, ha!" and again "Ha, ha, ha!" until the 
flattest echo in the neighbourhood seemed to catch the contagion 
and to laugh as enjoyingly as he did or as we did when we heard him 
laugh.

We all conceived a prepossession in his favour, for there was a 
sterling quality in this laugh, and in his vigorous, healthy voice, 
and in the roundness and fullness with which he uttered every word 
he spoke, and in the very fury of his superlatives, which seemed to 
go off like blank cannons and hurt nothing.  But we were hardly 
prepared to have it so confirmed by his appearance when Mr. 
Jarndyce presented him.  He was not only a very handsome old 
gentleman--upright and stalwart as he had been described to us--
with a massive grey head, a fine composure of face when silent, a 
figure that might have become corpulent but for his being so 
continually in earnest that he gave it no rest, and a chin that 
might have subsided into a double chin but for the vehement 
emphasis in which it was constantly required to assist; but he was 
such a true gentleman in his manner, so chivalrously polite, his 
face was lighted by a smile of so much sweetness and tenderness, 
and it seemed so plain that he had nothing to hide, but showed 
himself exactly as he was--incapable, as Richard said, of anything 
on a limited scale, and firing away with those blank great guns 
because he carried no small arms whatever--that really I could not 
help looking at him with equal pleasure as he sat at dinner, 
whether he smilingly conversed with Ada and me, or was led by Mr. 
Jarndyce into some great volley of superlatives, or threw up his 
head like a bloodhound and gave out that tremendous "Ha, ha, ha!"

"You have brought your bird with you, I suppose?" said Mr. 
Jarndyce.

"By heaven, he is the most astonishing bird in Europe!" replied the 
other.  "He IS the most wonderful creature!  I wouldn't take ten 
thousand guineas for that bird.  I have left an annuity for his 
sole support in case he should outlive me.  He is, in sense and 
attachment, a phenomenon.  And his father before him was one of the 
most astonishing birds that ever lived!"

The subject of this laudation was a very little canary, who was so 
tame that he was brought down by Mr. Boythorn's man, on his 
forefinger, and after taking a gentle flight round the room, 
alighted on his master's head.  To hear Mr. Boythorn presently 
expressing the most implacable and passionate sentiments, with this 
fragile mite of a creature quietly perched on his forehead, was to 
have a good illustration of his character, I thought.

"By my soul, Jarndyce," he said, very gently holding up a bit of 
bread to the canary to peck at, "if I were in your place I would 
seize every master in Chancery by the throat tomorrow morning and 
shake him until his money rolled out of his pockets and his bones 
rattled in his skin.  I would have a settlement out of somebody, by 
fair means or by foul.  If you would empower me to do it, I would 
do it for you with the greatest satisfaction!"  (All this time the 
very small canary was eating out of his hand.)

"I thank you, Lawrence, but the suit is hardly at such a point at 
present," returned Mr. Jarndyce, laughing, "that it would be 
greatly advanced even by the legal process of shaking the bench and 
the whole bar."

"There never was such an infernal cauldron as that Chancery on the 
face of the earth!" said Mr. Boythorn.  "Nothing but a mine below 
it on a busy day in term time, with all its records, rules, and 
precedents collected in it and every functionary belonging to it 
also, high and low, upward and downward, from its son the 
Accountant-General to its father the Devil, and the whole blown to 
atoms with ten thousand hundredweight of gunpowder, would reform it 
in the least!"

It was impossible not to laugh at the energetic gravity with which 
he recommended this strong measure of reform.  When we laughed, he 
threw up his head and shook his broad chest, and again the whole 
country seemed to echo to his "Ha, ha, ha!"  It had not the least 
effect in disturbing the bird, whose sense of security was complete 
and who hopped about the table with its quick head now on this side 
and now on that, turning its bright sudden eye on its master as if 
he were no more than another bird.

"But how do you and your neighbour get on about the disputed right 
of way?" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "You are not free from the toils of 
the law yourself!"

"The fellow has brought actions against ME for trespass, and I have 
brought actions against HIM for trespass," returned Mr. Boythorn.  
"By heaven, he is the proudest fellow breathing.  It is morally 
impossible that his name can be Sir Leicester.  It must be Sir 
Lucifer."

"Complimentary to our distant relation!" said my guardian 
laughingly to Ada and Richard.

"I would beg Miss Clare's pardon and Mr. Carstone's pardon," 
resumed our visitor, "if I were not reassured by seeing in the fair 
face of the lady and the smile of the gentleman that it is quite 
unnecessary and that they keep their distant relation at a 
comfortable distance."

"Or he keeps us," suggested Richard.

"By my soul," exclaimed Mr. Boythorn, suddenly firing another 
volley, "that fellow is, and his father was, and his grandfather 
was, the most stiff-necked, arrogant imbecile, pig-headed numskull, 
ever, by some inexplicable mistake of Nature, born in any station 
of life but a walking-stick's!  The whole of that family are the 
most solemnly conceited and consummate blockheads!  But it's no 
matter; he should not shut up my path if he were fifty baronets 
melted into one and living in a hundred Chesney Wolds, one within 
another, like the ivory balls in a Chinese carving.  The fellow, by 
his agent, or secretary, or somebody, writes to me 'Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet, presents his compliments to Mr. Lawrence 
Boythorn, and has to call his attention to the fact that the green 
pathway by the old parsonage-house, now the property of Mr. 
Lawrence Boythorn, is Sir Leicester's right of way, being in fact a 
portion of the park of chesney Wold, and that Sir Leicester finds 
it convenient to close up the same.'  I write to the fellow, 'Mr. 
Lawrence Boythorn presents his compliments to Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet, and has to call HIS attention to the fact that he 
totally denies the whole of Sir Leicester Dedlock's positions on 
every possible subject and has to add, in reference to closing up 
the pathway, that he will be glad to see the man who may undertake 
to do it.'  The fellow sends a most abandoned villain with one eye 
to construct a gateway.  I play upon that execrable scoundrel with 
a fire-engine until the breath is nearly driven out of his body.  
The fellow erects a gate in the night.  I chop it down and burn it 
in the morning.  He sends his myrmidons to come over the fence and 
pass and repass.  I catch them in humane man traps, fire split peas 
at their legs, play upon them with the engine--resolve to free 
mankind from the insupportable burden of the existence of those 
lurking ruffians.  He brings actions for trespass; I bring actions 
for trespass.  He brings actions for assault and battery; I defend 
them and continue to assault and batter.  Ha, ha, ha!"

To hear him say all this with unimaginable energy, one might have 
thought him the angriest of mankind.  To see him at the very same 
time, looking at the bird now perched upon his thumb and softly 
smoothing its feathers with his forefinger, one might have thought 
him the gentlest.  To hear him laugh and see the broad good nature 
of his face then, one might have supposed that he had not a care in 
the world, or a dispute, or a dislike, but that his whole existence 
was a summer joke.

"No, no," he said, "no closing up of my paths by any Dedlock!  
Though I willingly confess," here he softened in a moment, "that 
Lady Dedlock is the most accomplished lady in the world, to whom I 
would do any homage that a plain gentleman, and no baronet with a 
head seven hundred years thick, may.  A man who joined his regiment 
at twenty and within a week challenged the most imperious and 
presumptuous coxcomb of a commanding officer that ever drew the 
breath of life through a tight waist--and got broke for it--is not 
the man to be walked over by all the Sir Lucifers, dead or alive, 
locked or unlocked.  Ha, ha, ha!"

"Nor the man to allow his junior to be walked over either?" said my 
guardian.

"Most assuredly not!" said Mr. Boythorn, clapping him on the 
shoulder with an air of protection that had something serious in 
it, though he laughed.  "He will stand by the low boy, always.  
Jarndyce, you may rely upon him!  But speaking of this trespass--
with apologies to Miss Clare and Miss Summerson for the length at 
which I have pursued so dry a subject--is there nothing for me from 
your men Kenge and Carboy?"

"I think not, Esther?" said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Nothing, guardian."

"Much obliged!" said Mr. Boythorn.  "Had no need to ask, after even 
my slight experience of Miss Summerson's forethought for every one 
about her."  (They all encouraged me; they were determined to do 
it.)  "I inquired because, coming from Lincolnshire, I of course 
have not yet been in town, and I thought some letters might have 
been sent down here.  I dare say they will report progress to-
morrow morning."

I saw him so often in the course of the evening, which passed very 
pleasantly, contemplate Richard and Ada with an interest and a 
satisfaction that made his fine face remarkably agreeable as he sat 
at a little distance from the piano listening to the music--and he 
had small occasion to tell us that he was passionately fond of 
music, for his face showed it--that I asked my guardian as we sat 
at the backgammon board whether Mr. Boythorn had ever been married.

"No," said he.  "No."

"But he meant to be!" said I.

"How did you find out that?" he returned with a smile.  "Why, 
guardian," I explained, not without reddening a little at hazarding 
what was in my thoughts, "there is something so tender in his 
manner, after all, and he is so very courtly and gentle to us, and
--"

Mr. Jarndyce directed his eyes to where he was sitting as I have 
just described him.

I said no more.

"You are right, little woman," he answered.  "He was all but 
married once.  Long ago.  And once."

"Did the lady die?"

"No--but she died to him.  That time has had its influence on all 
his later life.  Would you suppose him to have a head and a heart 
full of romance yet?"

"I think, guardian, I might have supposed so.  But it is easy to 
say that when you have told me so."

"He has never since been what he might have been," said Mr. 
Jarndyce, "and now you see him in his age with no one near him but 
his servant and his little yellow friend.  It's your throw, my 
dear!"

I felt, from my guardian's manner, that beyond this point I could 
not pursue the subject without changing the wind.  I therefore 
forbore to ask any further questions.  I was interested, but not 
curious.  I thought a little while about this old love story in the 
night, when I was awakened by Mr. Boythorn's lusty snoring; and I 
tried to do that very difficult thing, imagine old people young 
again and invested with the graces of youth.  But I fell asleep 
before I had succeeded, and dreamed of the days when I lived in my 
godmother's house.  I am not sufficiently acquainted with such 
subjects to know whether it is at all remarkable that I almost 
always dreamed of that period of my life.

With the morning there came a letter from Messrs. Kenge and Carboy 
to Mr. Boythorn informing him that one of their clerks would wait 
upon him at noon.  As it was the day of the week on which I paid the 
bills, and added up my books, and made all the household affairs as 
compact as possible, I remained at home while Mr. Jarndyce, Ada, and 
Richard took advantage of a very fine day to make a little 
excursion, Mr. Boythorn was to wait for Kenge and Carboy's clerk and 
then was to go on foot to meet them on their return.

Well!  I was full of business, examining tradesmen's books, adding 
up columns, paying money, filing receipts, and I dare say making a 
great bustle about it when Mr. Guppy was announced and shown in.  I 
had had some idea that the clerk who was to be sent down might be 
the young gentleman who had met me at the coach-office, and I was 
glad to see him, because he was associated with my present 
happiness.

I scarcely knew him again, he was so uncommonly smart.  He had an 
entirely new suit of glossy clothes on, a shining hat, lilac-kid 
gloves, a neckerchief of a variety of colours, a large hot-house 
flower in his button-hole, and a thick gold ring on his little 
finger.  Besides which, he quite scented the dining-room with 
bear's-grease and other perfumery.  He looked at me with an 
attention that quite confused me when I begged him to take a seat 
until the servant should return; and as he sat there crossing and 
uncrossing his legs in a corner, and I asked him if he had had a 
pleasant ride, and hoped that Mr. Kenge was well, I never looked at 
him, but I found him looking at me in the same scrutinizing and 
curious way.

When the request was brought to him that he would go up-stairs to 
Mr. Boythorn's room, I mentioned that he would find lunch prepared 
for him when he came down, of which Mr. Jarndyce hoped he would 
partake.  He said with some embarrassment, holding the handle of the 
door, '"Shall I have the honour of finding you here, miss?"  I 
replied yes, I should be there; and he went out with a bow and 
another look.

I thought him only awkward and shy, for he was evidently much 
embarrassed; and I fancied that the best thing I could do would be 
to wait until I saw that he had everything he wanted and then to 
leave him to himself.  The lunch was soon brought, but it remained 
for some time on the table.  The interview with Mr. Boythorn was a 
long one, and a stormy one too, I should think, for although his 
room was at some distance I heard his loud voice rising every now 
and then like a high wind, and evidently blowing perfect broadsides 
of denunciation.

At last Mr. Guppy came back, looking something the worse for the 
conference.  "My eye, miss," he said in a low voice, "he's a 
Tartar!"

"Pray take some refreshment, sir," said I.

Mr. Guppy sat down at the table and began nervously sharpening the 
carving-knife on the carving-fork, still looking at me (as I felt 
quite sure without looking at him) in the same unusual manner.  The 
sharpening lasted so long that at last I felt a kind of obligation 
on me to raise my eyes in order that I might break the spell under 
which he seemed to labour, of not being able to leave off.

He immediately looked at the dish and began to carve.

"What will you take yourself, miss?  You'll take a morsel of 
something?"

"No, thank you," said I.

"Shan't I give you a piece of anything at all, miss?" said Mr. 
Guppy, hurriedly drinking off a glass of wine.

"Nothing, thank you," said I.  "I have only waited to see that you 
have everything you want.  Is there anything I can order for you?"

"No, I am much obliged to you, miss, I'm sure.  I've everything that 
I can require to make me comfortable--at least I--not comfortable--
I'm never that."  He drank off two more glasses of wine, one after 
another.

I thought I had better go.

"I beg your pardon, miss!" said Mr. Guppy, rising when he saw me 
rise.  "But would you allow me the favour of a minute's private 
conversation?"

Not knowing what to say, I sat down again.

"What follows is without prejudice, miss?" said Mr. Guppy, anxiously 
bringing a chair towards my table.

"I don't understand what you mean," said I, wondering.

"It's one of our law terms, miss.  You won't make any use of it to 
my detriment at Kenge and Carboy's or elsewhere.  If our 
conversation shouldn't lead to anything, I am to be as I was and am 
not to be prejudiced in my situation or worldly prospects.  In 
short, it's in total confidence."

"I am at a loss, sir," said I, "to imagine what you can have to 
communicate in total confidence to me, whom you have never seen but 
once; but I should be very sorry to do you any injury."

"Thank you, miss.  I'm sure of it--that's quite sufficient."  All 
this time Mr. Guppy was either planing his forehead with his 
handkerchief or tightly rubbing the palm of his left hand with the 
palm of his right.  "If you would excuse my taking another glass of 
wine, miss, I think it might assist me in getting on without a 
continual choke that cannot fail to be mutually unpleasant."

He did so, and came back again.  I took the opportunity of moving 
well behind my table.

"You wouldn't allow me to offer you one, would you miss?" said Mr. 
Guppy, apparently refreshed.

"Not any," said I.

"Not half a glass?" said Mr. Guppy.  "Quarter?  No!  Then, to 
proceed.  My present salary, Miss Summerson, at Kenge and Carboy's, 
is two pound a week.  When I first had the happiness of looking upon 
you, it was one fifteen, and had stood at that figure for a 
lengthened period.  A rise of five has since taken place, and a 
further rise of five is guaranteed at the expiration of a term not 
exceeding twelve months from the present date.  My mother has a 
little property, which takes the form of a small life annuity, upon 
which she lives in an independent though unassuming manner in the 
Old Street Road.  She is eminently calculated for a mother-in-law.  
She never interferes, is all for peace, and her disposition easy.  
She has her failings--as who has not?--but I never knew her do it 
when company was present, at which time you may freely trust her 
with wines, spirits, or malt liquors.  My own abode is lodgings at 
Penton Place, Pentonville.  It is lowly, but airy, open at the back, 
and considered one of the 'ealthiest outlets.  Miss Summerson!  In 
the mildest language, I adore you.  Would you be so kind as to allow 
me (as I may say) to file a declaration--to make an offer!"

Mr. Guppy went down on his knees.  I was well behind my table and 
not much frightened.  I said, "Get up from that ridiculous position 
lmmediately, sir, or you will oblige me to break my implied promise 
and ring the bell!"

"Hear me out, miss!" said Mr. Guppy, folding his hands.

"I cannot consent to hear another word, sir," I returned, "Unless 
you get up from the carpet directly and go and sit down at the table 
as you ought to do if you have any sense at all."

He looked piteously, but slowly rose and did so.

"Yet what a mockery it is, miss," he said with his hand upon his 
heart and shaking his head at me in a melancholy manner over the 
tray, "to be stationed behind food at such a moment.  The soul 
recoils from food at such a moment, miss."

"I beg you to conclude," said I; "you have asked me to hear you out, 
and I beg you to conclude."

"I will, miss," said Mr. Guppy.  "As I love and honour, so likewise 
I obey.  Would that I could make thee the subject of that vow before 
the shrine!"

"That is quite impossible," said I, "and entirely out of the 
question."

"I am aware," said Mr. Guppy, leaning forward over the tray and 
regarding me, as I again strangely felt, though my eyes were not 
directed to him, with his late intent look, "I am aware that in a 
worldly point of view, according to all appearances, my offer is a 
poor one.  But, Miss Summerson!  Angel!  No, don't ring--I have been 
brought up in a sharp school and am accustomed to a variety of 
general practice.  Though a young man, I have ferreted out evidence, 
got up cases, and seen lots of life.  Blest with your hand, what 
means might I not find of advancing your interests and pushing your 
fortunes!  What might I not get to know, nearly concerning you?  I 
know nothing now, certainly; but what MIGHT I not if I had your 
confidence, and you set me on?"

I told him that he addressed my interest or what he supposed to be 
my interest quite as unsuccessfully as he addressed my inclination, 
and he would now understand that I requested him, if he pleased, to 
go away immediately.

"Cruel miss," said Mr. Guppy, "hear but another word!  I think you 
must have seen that I was struck with those charms on the day when I 
waited at the Whytorseller.  I think you must have remarked that I 
could not forbear a tribute to those charms when I put up the steps 
of the 'ackney-coach.  It was a feeble tribute to thee, but it was 
well meant.  Thy image has ever since been fixed in my breast.  I 
have walked up and down of an evening opposite Jellyby's house only 
to look upon the bricks that once contained thee.  This out of to-
day, quite an unnecessary out so far as the attendance, which was 
its pretended object, went, was planned by me alone for thee alone.  
If I speak of interest, it is only to recommend myself and my 
respectful wretchedness.  Love was before it, and is before it."

"I should be pained, Mr. Guppy," said I, rising and putting my hand 
upon the bell-rope, "to do you or any one who was sincere the 
injustice of slighting any honest feeling, however disagreeably 
expressed.  If you have really meant to give me a proof of your good 
opinion, though ill-timed and misplaced, I feel that I ought to 
thank you.  I have very little reason to be proud, and I am not 
proud.  I hope," I think I added, without very well knowing what I 
said, "that you will now go away as if you had never been so 
exceedingly foolish and attend to Messrs. Kenge and Carboy's 
business."

"Half a minute, miss!" cried Mr. Guppy, checking me as I was about 
to ring.  "This has been without prejudice?"

"I will never mention it," said I, "unless you should give me future 
occasion to do so."

"A quarter of a minute, miss!  In case you should think better at 
any time, however distant--THAT'S no consequence, for my feelings 
can never alter--of anything I have said, particularly what might I 
not do, Mr. William Guppy, eighty-seven, Penton Place, or if 
removed, or dead (of blighted hopes or anything of that sort), care 
of Mrs. Guppy, three hundred and two, Old Street Road, will be 
sufficient."

I rang the bell, the servant came, and Mr. Guppy, laying his written 
card upon the table and making a dejected bow, departed.  Raising my 
eyes as he went out, I once more saw him looking at me after he had 
passed the door.

I sat there for another hour or more, finishing my books and 
payments and getting through plenty of business.  Then I arranged my 
desk, and put everything away, and was so composed and cheerful that 
I thought I had quite dismissed this unexpected incident.  But, when 
I went upstairs to my own room, I surprised myself by beginning to 
laugh about it and then surprised myself still more by beginning to 
cry about it.  In short, I was in a flutter for a little while and 
felt as if an old chord had been more coarsely touched than it ever 
had been since the days of the dear old doll, long buried in the 
garden.



CHAPTER X

The Law-Writer


On the eastern borders of Chancery Lane, that is to say, more 
particularly in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street, Mr. Snagsby, law-
stationer, pursues his lawful calling.  In the shade of Cook's 
Court, at most times a shady place, Mr. Snagsby has dealt in all 
sorts of blank forms of legal process; in skins and rolls of 
parchment; in paper--foolscap, brief, draft, brown, white, whitey-
brown, and blotting; in stamps; in office-quills, pens, ink, India-
rubber, pounce, pins, pencils, sealing-wax, and wafers; in red tape 
and green ferret; in pocket-books, almanacs, diaries, and law lists; 
in string boxes, rulers, inkstands--glass and leaden--pen-knives, 
scissors, bodkins, and other small office-cutlery; in short, in 
articles too numerous to mention, ever since he was out of his time 
and went into partnership with Peffer.  On that occasion, Cook's 
Court was in a manner revolutionized by the new inscription in fresh 
paint, PEFFER AND SNAGSBY, displacing the time-honoured and not 
easily to be deciphered legend PEFFER only.  For smoke, which is the 
London ivy, had so wreathed itself round Peffer's name and clung to 
his dwelling-place that the affectionate parasite quite overpowered 
the parent tree.

Peffer is never seen in Cook's Court now.  He is not expected there, 
for he has been recumbent this quarter of a century in the 
churchyard of St. Andrews, Holborn, with the waggons and hackney-
coaches roaring past him all the day and half the night like one 
great dragon.  If he ever steal forth when the dragon is at rest to 
air himself again in Cook's Court until admonished to return by the 
crowing of the sanguine cock in the cellar at the little dairy in 
Cursitor Street, whose ideas of daylight it would be curious to 
ascertain, since he knows from his personal observation next to 
nothing about it--if Peffer ever do revisit the pale glimpses of 
Cook's Court, which no law-stationer in the trade can positively 
deny, he comes invisibly, and no one is the worse or wiser.

In his lifetime, and likewise in the period of Snagsby's "time" of 
seven long years, there dwelt with Peffer in the same law-
stationering premises a niece--a short, shrewd niece, something too 
violently compressed about the waist, and with a sharp nose like a 
sharp autumn evening, inclining to be frosty towards the end.  The 
Cook's Courtiers had a rumour flying among them that the mother of 
this niece did, in her daughter's childhood, moved by too jealous a 
solicitude that her figure should approach perfection, lace her up 
every morning with her maternal foot against the bed-post for a 
stronger hold and purchase; and further, that she exhibited 
internally pints of vinegar and lemon-juice, which acids, they held, 
had mounted to the nose and temper of the patient.  With whichsoever 
of the many tongues of Rumour this frothy report originated, it 
either never reached or never influenced the ears of young Snagsby, 
who, having wooed and won its fair subject on his arrival at man's 
estate, entered into two partnerships at once.  So now, in Cook's 
Court, Cursitor Street, Mr. Snagsby and the niece are one; and the 
niece still cherishes her figure, which, however tastes may differ, 
is unquestionably so far precious that there is mighty little of it.

Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby are not only one bone and one flesh, but, to 
the neighbours' thinking, one voice too.  That voice, appearing to 
proceed from Mrs. Snagsby alone, is heard in Cook's Court very 
often.  Mr. Snagsby, otherwise than as he finds expression through 
these dulcet tones, is rarely heard.  He is a mild, bald, timid man 
with a shining head and a scrubby clump of black hair sticking out 
at the back.  He tends to meekness and obesity.  As he stands at his 
door in Cook's Court in his grey shop-coat and black calico sleeves, 
looking up at the clouds, or stands behind a desk in his dark shop 
with a heavy flat ruler, snipping and slicing at sheepskin in 
company with his two 'prentices, he is emphatically a retiring and 
unassuming man.  From beneath his feet, at such times, as from a 
shrill ghost unquiet in its grave, there frequently arise 
complainings and lamentations in the voice already mentioned; and 
haply, on some occasions when these reach a sharper pitch than 
usual, Mr. Snagsby mentions to the 'prentices, "I think my little 
woman is a-giving it to Guster!"

This proper name, so used by Mr. Snagsby, has before now sharpened 
the wit of the Cook's Courtiers to remark that it ought to be the 
name of Mrs. Snagsby, seeing that she might with great force and 
expression be termed a Guster, in compliment to her stormy 
character.  It is, however, the possession, and the only possession 
except fifty shillings per annum and a very small box indifferently 
filled with clothing, of a lean young woman from a workhouse (by 
some supposed to have been christened Augusta) who, although she was 
farmed or contracted for during her growing time by an amiable 
benefactor of his species resident at Tooting, and cannot fail to 
have been developed under the most favourable circumstances, "has 
fits," which the parish can't account for.

Guster, really aged three or four and twenty, but looking a round 
ten years older, goes cheap with this unaccountable drawback of 
fits, and is so apprehensive of being returned on the hands of her 
patron saint that except when she is found with her head in the 
pail, or the sink, or the copper, or the dinner, or anything else 
that happens to be near her at the time of her seizure, she is 
always at work.  She is a satisfaction to the parents and guardians 
of the 'prentices, who feel that there is little danger of her 
inspiring tender emotions in the breast of youth; she is a 
satisfaction to Mrs. Snagsby, who can always find fault with her; 
she is a satisfaction to Mr. Snagsby, who thinks it a charity to 
keep her.  The law-stationer's establishment is, in Guster's eyes, a 
temple of plenty and splendour.  She believes the little drawing-
room upstairs, always kept, as one may say, with its hair in papers 
and its pinafore on, to be the most elegant apartment in 
Christendom.  The view it commands of Cook's Court at one end (not 
to mention a squint into Cursitor Street) and of Coavinses' the 
sheriff's officer's backyard at the other she regards as a prospect 
of unequalled beauty.  The portraits it displays in oil--and plenty 
of it too--of Mr. Snagsby looking at Mrs. Snagsby and of Mrs. 
Snagsby looking at Mr. Snagsby are in her eyes as achievements of 
Raphael or Titian.  Guster has some recompenses for her many 
privations.

Mr. Snagsby refers everything not in the practical mysteries of the 
business to Mrs. Snagsby.  She manages the money, reproaches the 
tax-gatherers, appoints the times and places of devotion on Sundays, 
licenses Mr. Snagsby's entertainments, and acknowledges no 
responsibility as to what she thinks fit to provide for dinner, 
insomuch that she is the high standard of comparison among the 
neighbouring wives a long way down Chancery Lane on both sides, and 
even out in Holborn, who in any domestic passages of arms habitually 
call upon their husbands to look at the difference between their 
(the wives') position and Mrs. Snagsby's, and their (the husbands') 
behaviour and Mr. Snagsby's.  Rumour, always flying bat-like about 
Cook's Court and skimming in and out at everybody's windows, does 
say that Mrs. Snagsby is jealous and inquisitive and that Mr. 
Snagsby is sometimes worried out of house and home, and that if he 
had the spirit of a mouse he wouldn't stand it.  It is even observed 
that the wives who quote him to their self-willed husbands as a 
shining example in reality look down upon him and that nobody does 
so with greater superciliousness than one particular lady whose lord 
is more than suspected of laying his umbrella on her as an 
instrument of correction.  But these vague whisperings may arise 
from Mr. Snagsby's being in his way rather a meditative and poetical 
man, loving to walk in Staple Inn in the summer-time and to observe 
how countrified the sparrows and the leaves are, also to lounge 
about the Rolls Yard of a Sunday afternoon and to remark (if in good 
spirits) that there were old times once and that you'd find a stone 
coffin or two now under that chapel, he'll be bound, if you was to 
dig for it.  He solaces his imagination, too, by thinking of the 
many Chancellors and Vices, and Masters of the Rolls who are 
deceased; and he gets such a flavour of the country out of telling 
the two 'prentices how he HAS heard say that a brook "as clear as 
crystial" once ran right down the middle of Holborn, when Turnstile 
really was a turnstile, leading slap away into the meadows--gets 
such a flavour of the country out of this that he never wants to go 
there.

The day is closing in and the gas is lighted, but is not yet fully 
effective, for it is not quite dark.  Mr. Snagsby standing at his 
shop-door looking up at the clouds sees a crow who is out late skim 
westward over the slice of sky belonging to Cook's Court.  The crow 
flies straight across Chancery Lane and Lincoln's Inn Garden into 
Lincoln's Inn Fields.

Here, in a large house, formerly a house of state, lives Mr. 
Tulkinghorn.  It is let off in sets of chambers now, and in those 
shrunken fragments of its greatness, lawyers lie like maggots in 
nuts.  But its roomy staircases, passages, and antechambers still 
remain; and even its painted ceilings, where Allegory, in Roman 
helmet and celestial linen, sprawls among balustrades and pillars, 
flowers, clouds, and big-legged boys, and makes the head ache--as 
would seem to be Allegory's object always, more or less.  Here, 
among his many boxes labelled with transcendent names, lives Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, when not speechlessly at home in country-houses where 
the great ones of the earth are bored to death.  Here he is to-day, 
quiet at his table.  An oyster of the old school whom nobody can 
open.

Like as he is to look at, so is his apartment in the dusk of the 
present afternoon.  Rusty, out of date, withdrawing from attention, 
able to afford it.  Heavy, broad-backed, old-fashioned, mahogany-
and-horsehair chairs, not easily lifted; obsolete tables with 
spindle-legs and dusty baize covers; presentation prints of the 
holders of great titles in the last generation or the last but one, 
environ him.  A thick and dingy Turkey-carpet muffles the floor 
where he sits, attended by two candles in old-fashioned silver 
candlesticks that give a very insufficient light to his large room.  
The titles on the backs of his books have retired into the binding; 
everything that can have a lock has got one; no key is visible.  
Very few loose papers are about.  He has some manuscript near him, 
but is not referring to it.  With the round top of an inkstand and 
two broken bits of sealing-wax he is silently and slowly working out 
whatever train of indecision is in his mind.  Now tbe inkstand top 
is in the middle, now the red bit of sealing-wax, now the black bit.  
That's not it.  Mr. Tulkinghorn must gather them all up and begin 
again.

Here, beneath the painted ceiling, with foreshortened Allegory 
staring down at his intrusion as if it meant to swoop upon him, and 
he cutting it dead, Mr. Tulkinghorn has at once his house and 
office.  He keeps no staff, only one middle-aged man, usually a 
little out at elbows, who sits in a high pew in the hall and is 
rarely overburdened with business.  Mr. Tulkinghorn is not in a 
common way.  He wants no clerks.  He is a great reservoir of 
confidences, not to be so tapped.  His clients want HIM; he is all 
in all.  Drafts that he requires to be drawn are drawn by special-
pleaders in the temple on mysterious instructions; fair copies that 
he requires to be made are made at the stationers', expense being no 
consideration.  The middle-aged man in the pew knows scarcely more 
of the affairs of the peerage than any crossing-sweeper in Holborn.

The red bit, the black bit, the inkstand top, the other inkstand 
top, the little sand-box.  So!  You to the middle, you to the right, 
you to the left.  This train of indecision must surely be worked out 
now or never.  Now!  Mr. Tulkinghorn gets up, adjusts his 
spectacles, puts on his hat, puts the manuscript in his pocket, goes 
out, tells the middle-aged man out at elbows, "I shall be back 
presently."  Very rarely tells him anything more explicit.

Mr. Tulkinghorn goes, as the crow came--not quite so straight, but 
nearly--to Cook's Court, Cursitor Street.  To Snagsby's, Law-
Stationer's, Deeds engrossed and copied, Law-Writing executed in all 
its branches, &c., &c., &c.

It is somewhere about five or six o'clock in the afternoon, and a 
balmy fragrance of warm tea hovers in Cook's Court.  It hovers about 
Snagsby's door.  The hours are early there: dinner at half-past one 
and supper at half-past nine.  Mr. Snagsby was about to descend into 
the subterranean regions to take tea when he looked out of his door 
just now and saw the crow who was out late.

"Master at home?"

Guster is minding the shop, for the 'prentices take tea in the 
kitchen with Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby; consequently, the robe-maker's 
two daughters, combing their curls at the two glasses in the two 
second-floor windows of the opposite house, are not driving the two 
'prentices to distraction as they fondly suppose, but are merely 
awakening the unprofitable admiration of Guster, whose hair won't 
grow, and never would, and it is confidently thought, never will.

"Master at home?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.

Master is at home, and Guster will fetch him.  Guster disappears, 
glad to get out of the shop, which she regards with mingled dread 
and veneration as a storehouse of awful implements of the great 
torture of the law--a place not to be entered after the gas is 
turned off.

Mr. Snagsby appears, greasy, warm, herbaceous, and chewing.  Bolts a 
bit of bread and butter.  Says, "Bless my soul, sir!  Mr. 
Tulkinghorn!"

"I want half a word with you, Snagsby."

"Certainly, sir!  Dear me, sir, why didn't you send your young man 
round for me?  Pray walk into the back shop, sir."  Snagsby has 
brightened in a moment.

The confined room, strong of parchment-grease, is warehouse, 
counting-house, and copying-office.  Mr. Tulkinghorn sits, facing 
round, on a stool at the desk.

"Jarndyce and Jarndyce, Snagsby."

"Yes, sir."  Mr. Snagsby turns up the gas and coughs behind his 
hand, modestly anticipating profit.  Mr. Snagsby, as a timid man, is 
accustomed to cough with a variety of expressions, and so to save 
words.

"You copied some affidavits in that cause for me lately."

"Yes, sir, we did."

"There was one of them," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, carelessly feeling--
tight, unopenable oyster of the old school!--in the wrong coat-
pocket, "the handwriting of which is peculiar, and I rather like.  
As I happened to be passing, and thought I had it about me, I looked 
in to ask you--but I haven't got it.  No matter, any other time will 
do.  Ah! here it is!  I looked in to ask you who copied this."

'"Who copied this, sir?" says Mr. Snagsby, taking it, laying it flat 
on the desk, and separating all the sheets at once with a twirl and 
a twist of the left hand peculiar to lawstationers.  "We gave this 
out, sir.  We were giving out rather a large quantity of work just 
at that time.  I can tell you in a moment who copied it, sir, by 
referring to my book."

Mr. Snagsby takes his book down from the safe, makes another bolt of 
the bit of bread and butter which seemed to have stopped short, eyes 
the affidavit aside, and brings his right forefinger travelling down 
a page of the book, "Jewby--Packer--Jarndyce."

"Jarndyce!  Here we are, sir," says Mr. Snagsby.  "To be sure!  I 
might have remembered it.  This was given out, sir, to a writer who 
lodges just over on the opposite side of the lane."

Mr. Tulkinghorn has seen the entry, found it before the law-
stationer, read it while the forefinger was coming down the hill.

"WHAT do you call him?  Nemo?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "Nemo, sir.  
Here it is.  Forty-two folio.  Given out on the Wednesday night at 
eight o'clock, brought in on the Thursday morning at half after 
nine."

"Nemo!" repeats Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "Nemo is Latin for no one."

"It must be English for some one, sir, I think," Mr. Snagsby submits 
with his deferential cough.  "It is a person's name.  Here it is, 
you see, sir!  Forty-two folio.  Given out Wednesday night, eight 
o'clock; brought in Thursday morning, half after nine."

The tail of Mr. Snagsby's eye becomes conscious of the head of Mrs. 
Snagsby looking in at the shop-door to know what he means by 
deserting his tea.  Mr. Snagsby addresses an explanatory cough to 
Mrs. Snagsby, as who should say, "My dear, a customer!"

"Half after nine, sir," repeats Mr. Snagsby.  "Our law-writers, who 
live by job-work, are a queer lot; and this may not be his name, but 
it's the name he goes by.  I remember now, sir, that he gives it in 
a written advertisement he sticks up down at the Rule Office, and 
the King's Bench Office, and the Judges' Chambers, and so forth.  
You know the kind of document, sir--wanting employ?"

Mr. Tulkinghorn glances through the little window at the back of 
Coavinses', the sheriff's officer's, where lights shine in 
Coavinses' windows.  Coavinses' coffee-room is at the back, and the 
shadows of several gentlemen under a cloud loom cloudily upon the 
blinds.  Mr. Snagsby takes the opportunity of slightly turning his 
head to glance over his shoulder at his little woman and to make 
apologetic motions with his mouth to this effect: "Tul-king-horn--
rich--in-flu-en-tial!"

"Have you given this man work before?" asks Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"Oh, dear, yes, sir!  Work of yours."

"Thinking of more important matters, I forget where you said he 
lived?"

"Across the lane, sir.  In fact, he lodges at a--" Mr. Snagsby makes 
another bolt, as if the bit of bread and buffer were insurmountable 
"--at a rag and bottle shop."

"Can you show me the place as I go back?"

"With the greatest pleasure, sir!"

Mr. Snagsby pulls off his sleeves and his grey coat, pulls on his 
black coat, takes his hat from its peg.  "Oh! Here is my little 
woman!" he says aloud.  "My dear, will you be so kind as to tell one 
of the lads to look after the shop while I step across the lane with 
Mr. Tulkinghorn?  Mrs. Snagsby, sir--I shan't be two minutes, my 
love!"

Mrs. Snagsby bends to the lawyer, retires behind the counter, peeps 
at them through the window-blind, goes softly into the back office, 
refers to the entries in the book still lying open.  Is evidently 
curious.

"You will find that the place is rough, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, 
walking deferentially in the road and leaving the narrow pavement to 
the lawyer; "and the party is very rough.  But they're a wild lot in 
general, sir.  The advantage of this particular man is that he never 
wants sleep.  He'll go at it right on end if you want him to, as 
long as ever you like."

It is quite dark now, and the gas-lamps have acquired their full 
effect.  Jostling against clerks going to post the day's letters, 
and against counsel and attorneys going home to dinner, and against 
plaintiffs and defendants and suitors of all sorts, and against the 
general crowd, in whose way the forensic wisdom of ages has 
interposed a million of obstacles to the transaction of the 
commonest business of life; diving through law and equity, and 
through that kindred mystery, the street mud, which is made of 
nobody knows what and collects about us nobody knows whence or how--
we only knowing in general that when there is too much of it we find 
it necessary to shovel it away--the lawyer and the law-stationer 
come to a rag and bottle shop and general emporium of much 
disregarded merchandise, lying and being in the shadow of the wall 
of Lincoln's Inn, and kept, as is announced in paint, to all whom it 
may concern, by one Krook.

"This is where he lives, sir," says the law-stationer.

"This is where he lives, is it?" says the lawyer unconcernedly.  
"Thank you."

"Are you not going in, sir?"

"No, thank you, no; I am going on to the Fields at present.  Good 
evening.  Thank you!"  Mr. Snagsby lifts his hat and returns to his 
little woman and his tea.

But Mr. Tulkinghorn does not go on to the Fields at present.  He 
goes a short way, turns back, comes again to the shop of Mr. Krook, 
and enters it straight.  It is dim enough, with a blot-headed candle 
or so in the windows, and an old man and a cat sitting in the back 
part by a fire.  The old man rises and comes forward, with another 
blot-headed candle in his hand.

"Pray is your lodger within?"

"Male or female, sir?" says Mr. Krook.

"Male.  The person who does copying."

Mr. Krook has eyed his man narrowly.  Knows him by sight.  Has an 
indistinct impression of his aristocratic repute.

"Did you wish to see him, sir?"

"Yes."

"It's what I seldom do myself," says Mr. Krook with a grin.  "Shall 
I call him down?  But it's a weak chance if he'd come, sir!"

"I'll go up to him, then," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"Second floor, sir.  Take the candle.  Up there!"  Mr. Krook, with 
his cat beside him, stands at the bottom of the staircase, looking 
after Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "Hi-hi!" he says when Mr. Tulkinghorn has 
nearly disappeared.  The lawyer looks down over the hand-rail.  The 
cat expands her wicked mouth and snarls at him.

"Order, Lady Jane!  Behave yourself to visitors, my lady!  You know 
what they say of my lodger?" whispers Krook, going up a step or two.

"What do they say of him?"

"They say he has sold himself to the enemy, but you and I know 
better--he don't buy.  I'll tell you what, though; my lodger is so 
black-humoured and gloomy that I believe he'd as soon make that 
bargain as any other.  Don't put him out, sir.  That's my advice!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn with a nod goes on his way.  He comes to the dark 
door on the second floor.  He knocks, receives no answer, opens it, 
and accidentally extinguishes his candle in doing so.

The air of the room is almost bad enough to have extinguished it if 
he had not.  It is a small room, nearly black with soot, and grease, 
and dirt.  In the rusty skeleton of a grate, pinched at the middle 
as if poverty had gripped it, a red coke fire burns low.  In the 
corner by the chimney stand a deal table and a broken desk, a 
wilderness marked with a rain of ink.  In another corner a ragged 
old portmanteau on one of the two chairs serves for cabinet or 
wardrobe; no larger one is needed, for it collapses like the cheeks 
of a starved man.  The floor is bare, except that one old mat, 
trodden to shreds of rope-yarn, lies perishing upon the hearth.  No 
curtain veils the darkness of the night, but the discoloured 
shutters are drawn together, and through the two gaunt holes pierced 
in them, famine might be staring in--the banshee of the man upon the 
bed.

For, on a low bed opposite the fire, a confusion of dirty patchwork, 
lean-ribbed ticking, and coarse sacking, the lawyer, hesitating just 
within the doorway, sees a man.  He lies there, dressed in shirt and 
trousers, with bare feet.  He has a yellow look in the spectral 
darkness of a candle that has guttered down until the whole length 
of its wick (still burning) has doubled over and left a tower of 
winding-sheet above it.  His hair is ragged, mingling with his 
whiskers and his beard--the latter, ragged too, and grown, like the 
scum and mist around him, in neglect.  Foul and filthy as the room 
is, foul and filthy as the air is, it is not easy to perceive what 
fumes those are which most oppress the senses in it; but through the 
general sickliness and faintness, and the odour of stale tobacco, 
there comes into the lawyer's mouth the bitter, vapid taste of 
opium.

"Hallo, my friend!" he cries, and strikes his iron candlestick 
against the door.

He thinks he has awakened his friend.  He lies a little turned away, 
but his eyes are surely open.

"Hallo, my friend!" he cries again.  "Hallo!  Hallo!"

As he rattles on the door, the candle which has drooped so long goes 
out and leaves him in the dark, with the gaunt eyes in the shutters 
staring down upon the bed.



CHAPTER XI

Our Dear Brother


A touch on the lawyer's wrinkled hand as he stands in the dark room, 
irresolute, makes him start and say, "What's that?"

"It's me," returns the old man of the house, whose breath is in his 
ear.  "Can't you wake him?"

"No."

"What have you done with your candle?"

"It's gone out.  Here it is."

Krook takes it, goes to the fire, stoops over the red embers, and 
tries to get a light.  The dying ashes have no light to spare, and 
his endeavours are vain.  Muttering, after an ineffectual call to 
his lodger, that he will go downstairs and bring a lighted candle 
from the shop, the old man departs.  Mr. Tulkinghorn, for some new 
reason that he has, does not await his return in the room, but on 
the stairs outside.

The welcome light soon shines upon the wall, as Krook comes slowly 
up with his green-eyed cat following at his heels.  "Does the man 
generally sleep like this?" inquired the lawyer in a low voice.  
"Hi!  I don't know," says Krook, shaking his head and lifting his 
eyebrows.  "I know next to nothing of his habits except that he 
keeps himself very close."

Thus whispering, they both go in together.  As the light goes in, 
the great eyes in the shutters, darkening, seem to close.  Not so 
the eyes upon the bed.

"God save us!" exclaims Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "He is dead!"  Krook drops 
the heavy hand he has taken up so suddenly that the arm swings over 
the bedside.

They look at one another for a moment.

"Send for some doctor!  Call for Miss Flite up the stairs, sir.  
Here's poison by the bed!  Call out for Flite, will you?" says 
Krook, with his lean hands spread out above the body like a 
vampire's wings.

Mr. Tulkinghorn hurries to the landing and calls, "Miss Flite!  
Flite!  Make haste, here, whoever you are!  Flite!"  Krook follows 
him with his eyes, and while he is calling, finds opportunity to 
steal to the old portmanteau and steal back again.

"Run, Flite, run!  The nearest doctor!  Run!"  So Mr. Krook 
addresses a crazy little woman who is his female lodger, who appears 
and vanishes in a breath, who soon returns accompanied by a testy 
medical man brought from his dinner, with a broad, snuffy upper lip 
and a broad Scotch tongue.

"Ey!  Bless the hearts o' ye," says the medical man, looking up at 
them after a moment's examination.  "He's just as dead as Phairy!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn (standing by the old portmanteau) inquires if he has 
been dead any time.

"Any time, sir?" says the medical gentleman.  "It's probable he wull 
have been dead aboot three hours."

"About that time, I should say," observes a dark young man on the 
other side of the bed.

"Air you in the maydickle prayfession yourself, sir?" inquires the 
first.

The dark young man says yes.

"Then I'll just tak' my depairture," replies the other, "for I'm nae 
gude here!"  With which remark he finishes his brief attendance and 
returns to finish his dinner.

The dark young surgeon passes the candle across and across the face 
and carefully examines the law-writer, who has established his 
pretensions to his name by becoming indeed No one.

"I knew this person by sight very well," says he.  "He has purchased 
opium of me for the last year and a half.  Was anybody present 
related to him?" glancing round upon the three bystanders.

"I was his landlord," grimly answers Krook, taking the candle from 
the surgeon's outstretched hand.  "He told me once I was the nearest 
relation he had."

"He has died," says the surgeon, "of an over-dose of opium, there is 
no doubt.  The room is strongly flavoured with it.  There is enough 
here now," taking an old teapot from Mr. Krook, "to kill a dozen 
people."

"Do you think he did it on purpose?" asks Krook.

"Took the over-dose?"

"Yes!"  Krook almost smacks his lips with the unction of a horrible 
interest.

"I can't say.  I should think it unlikely, as he has been in the 
habit of taking so much.  But nobody can tell.  He was very poor, I 
suppose?"

"I suppose he was.  His room--don't look rich," says Krook, who 
might have changed eyes with his cat, as he casts his sharp glance 
around.  "But I have never been in it since he had it, and he was 
too close to name his circumstances to me."

"Did he owe you any rent?"

"Six weeks."

"He will never pay it!" says the young man, resuming his 
examination.  "It is beyond a doubt that he is indeed as dead as 
Pharaoh; and to judge from his appearance and condition, I should 
think it a happy release.  Yet he must have been a good figure when 
a youth, and I dare say, good-looking."  He says this, not 
unfeelingly, while sitting on the bedstead's edge with his face 
towards that other face and his hand upon the region of the heart.  
"I recollect once thinking there was something in his manner, 
uncouth as it was, that denoted a fall in life.  Was that so?" he 
continues, looking round.

Krook replies, "You might as well ask me to describe the ladies 
whose heads of hair I have got in sacks downstairs.  Than that he 
was my lodger for a year and a half and lived--or didn't live--by 
law-writing, I know no more of him."

During this dialogue Mr. Tulkinghorn has stood aloof by the old 
portmanteau, with his hands behind him, equally removed, to all 
appearance, from all three kinds of interest exhibited near the 
bed--from the young surgeon's professional interest in death, 
noticeable as being quite apart from his remarks on the deceased as 
an individual; from the old man's unction; and the little crazy 
woman's awe.  His imperturbable face has been as inexpressive as 
his rusty clothes.  One could not even say he has been thinking all 
this while.  He has shown neither patience nor impatience, nor 
attention nor abstraction.  He has shown nothing but his shell.  As 
easily might the tone of a delicate musical instrument be inferred 
from its case, as the tone of Mr. Tulkinghorn from his case.

He now interposes, addressing the young surgeon in his unmoved, 
professional way.

"I looked in here," he observes, "just before you, with the 
intention of giving this deceased man, whom I never saw alive, some 
employment at his trade of copying.  I had heard of him from my 
stationer--Snagsby of Cook's Court.  Since no one here knows 
anything about him, it might be as well to send for Snagsby.  Ah!" 
to the little crazy woman, who has often seen him in court, and 
whom he has often seen, and who proposes, in frightened dumb-show, 
to go for the law-stationer.  "Suppose you do!"

While she is gone, the surgeon abandons his hopeless investigation 
and covers its subject with the patchwork counterpane.  Mr. Krook 
and he interchange a word or two.  Mr. Tulkinghorn says nothing, 
but stands, ever, near the old portmanteau.

Mr. Snagsby arrives hastily in his grey coat and his black sleeves.  
"Dear me, dear me," he says; "and it has come to this, has it!  
Bless my soul!"

"Can you give the person of the house any information about this 
unfortunate creature, Snagsby?" inquires Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "He was 
in arrears with his rent, it seems.  And he must be buried, you 
know."

"Well, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, coughing his apologetic cough behind 
his hand, "I really don't know what advice I could offer, except 
sending for the beadle."

"I don't speak of advice," returns Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "I could 
advise--"

"No one better, sir, I am sure," says Mr. Snagsby, with his 
deferential cough.

"I speak of affording some clue to his connexions, or to where he 
came from, or to anything concerning him."

"I assure you, sir," says Mr. Snagsby after prefacing his reply 
with his cough of general propitiation, "that I no more know where 
he came from than I know--"

"Where he has gone to, perhaps," suggests the surgeon to help him 
out.

A pause.  Mr. Tulkinghorn looking at the law-stationer.  Mr. Krook, 
with his mouth open, looking for somebody to speak next.

"As to his connexions, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, "if a person was to 
say to me, "Snagsby, here's twenty thousand pound down, ready for 
you in the Bank of England if you'll only name one of 'em,' I 
couldn't do it, sir!  About a year and a half ago--to the best of my 
belief, at the time when he first came to lodge at the present rag 
and bottle shop--"

"That was the time!" says Krook with a nod.

"About a year and a half ago," says Mr. Snagsby, strengthened, "he 
came into our place one morning after breakfast, and finding my 
little woman (which I name Mrs. Snagsby when I use that appellation) 
in our shop, produced a specimen of his handwriting and gave her to 
understand that he was in want of copying work to do and was, not to 
put too fine a point upon it," a favourite apology for plain 
speaking with Mr. Snagsby, which he always offers with a sort of 
argumentative frankness, "hard up!  My little woman is not in 
general partial to strangers, particular--not to put too fine a 
point upon it--when they want anything.  But she was rather took by 
something about this person, whether by his being unshaved, or by 
his hair being in want of attention, or by what other ladies' 
reasons, I leave you to judge; and she accepted of the specimen, and 
likewise of the address.  My little woman hasn't a good ear for 
names," proceeds Mr. Snagsby after consulting his cough of 
consideration behind his hand, "and she considered Nemo equally the 
same as Nimrod.  In consequence of which, she got into a habit of 
saying to me at meals, 'Mr. Snagsby, you haven't found Nimrod any 
work yet!' or 'Mr. Snagsby, why didn't you give that eight and 
thirty Chancery folio in Jarndyce to Nimrod?' or such like.  And 
that is the way he gradually fell into job-work at our place; and 
that is the most I know of him except that he was a quick hand, and 
a hand not sparing of night-work, and that if you gave him out, say, 
five and forty folio on the Wednesday night, you would have it 
brought in on the Thursday morning.  All of which--" Mr. Snagsby 
concludes by politely motioning with his hat towards the bed, as 
much as to add, "I have no doubt my honourable friend would confirm 
if he were in a condition to do it."

"Hadn't you better see," says Mr. Tulkinghorn to Krook, "whether he 
had any papers that may enlighten you?  There will be an inquest, 
and you will be asked the question.  You can read?"

"No, I can't," returns the old man with a sudden grin.

"Snagsby," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "look over the room for him.  He 
will get into some trouble or difficulty otherwise.  Being here, 
I'll wait if you make haste, and then I can testify on his behalf, 
if it should ever be necessary, that all was fair and right.  If you 
will hold the candle for Mr. Snagsby, my friend, he'll soon see 
whether there is anything to help you."

"In the first place, here's an old portmanteau, sir," says Snagsby.

Ah, to be sure, so there is!  Mr. Tulkinghorn does not appear to 
have seen it before, though he is standing so close to it, and 
though there is very little else, heaven knows.

The marine-store merchant holds the light, and the law-stationer 
conducts the search.  The surgeon leans against the corner of the 
chimney-piece; Miss Flite peeps and trembles just within the door.  
The apt old scholar of the old school, with his dull black breeches 
tied with ribbons at the knees, his large black waistcoat, his long-
sleeved black coat, and his wisp of limp white neckerchief tied in 
the bow the peerage knows so well, stands in exactly the same place 
and attitude.

There are some worthless articles of clothing in the old 
portmanteau; there is a bundle of pawnbrokers' duplicates, those 
turnpike tickets on the road of poverty; there is a crumpled paper, 
smelling of opium, on which are scrawled rough memoranda--as, took, 
such a day, so many grains; took, such another day, so many more--
begun some time ago, as if with the intention of being regularly 
continued, but soon left off.  There are a few dirty scraps of 
newspapers, all referring to coroners' inquests; there is nothing 
else.  They search the cupboard and the drawer of the ink-splashed 
table.  There is not a morsel of an old letter or of any other 
writing in either.  The young surgeon examines the dress on the law-
writer.  A knife and some odd halfpence are all he finds.  Mr. 
Snagsby's suggestion is the practical suggestion after all, and the 
beadle must be called in.

So the little crazy lodger goes for the beadle, and the rest come 
out of the room.  "Don't leave the cat there!" says the surgeon; 
"that won't do!"  Mr. Krook therefore drives her out before him, and 
she goes furtively downstairs, winding her lithe tail and licking 
her lips.

"Good night!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn, and goes home to Allegory and 
meditation.

By this time the news has got into the court.  Groups of its 
inhabitants assemble to discuss the thing, and the outposts of the 
army of observation (principally boys) are pushed forward to Mr. 
Krook's window, which they closely invest.  A policeman has already 
walked up to the room, and walked down again to the door, where he 
stands like a tower, only condescending to see the boys at his base 
occasionally; but whenever he does see them, they quail and fall 
back.  Mrs. Perkins, who has not been for some weeks on speaking 
terms with Mrs. Piper in consequence for an unpleasantness 
originating in young Perkins' having "fetched" young Piper "a 
crack," renews her friendly intercourse on this auspicious occasion.  
The potboy at the corner, who is a privileged amateur, as possessing 
official knowledge of life and having to deal with drunken men 
occasionally, exchanges confidential communications with the 
policeman and has the appearance of an impregnable youth, 
unassailable by truncheons and unconfinable in station-houses.  
People talk across the court out of window, and bare-headed scouts 
come hurrying in from Chancery Lane to know what's the matter.  The 
general feeling seems to be that it's a blessing Mr. Krook warn't 
made away with first, mingled with a little natural disappointment 
that he was not.  In the midst of this sensation, the beadle 
arrives.

The beadle, though generally understood in the neighbourhood to be a 
ridiculous institution, is not without a certain popularity for the 
moment, if it were only as a man who is going to see the body.  The 
policeman considers him an imbecile civilian, a remnant of the 
barbarous watchmen times, but gives him admission as something that 
must be borne with until government shall abolish him.  The 
sensation is heightened as the tidings spread from mouth to mouth 
that the beadle is on the ground and has gone in.

By and by the beadle comes out, once more intensifying the 
sensation, which has rather languished in the interval.  He is 
understood to be in want of witnesses for the inquest to-morrow who 
can tell the coroner and jury anything whatever respecting the 
deceased.  Is immediately referred to innumerable people who can 
tell nothing whatever.  Is made more imbecile by being constantly 
informed that Mrs. Green's son "was a law-writer his-self and knowed 
him better than anybody," which son of Mrs. Green's appears, on 
inquiry, to be at the present time aboard a vessel bound for China, 
three months out, but considered accessible by telegraph on 
application to the Lords of the Admiralty.  Beadle goes into various 
shops and parlours, examining the inhabitants, always shutting the 
door first, and by exclusion, delay, and general idiotcy 
exasperating the public.  Policeman seen to smile to potboy.  Public 
loses interest and undergoes reaction.  Taunts the beadle in shrill 
youthful voices with having boiled a boy, choruses fragments of a 
popular song to that effect and importing that the boy was made into 
soup for the workhouse.  Policeman at last finds it necessary to 
support the law and seize a vocalist, who is released upon the 
flight of the rest on condition of his getting out of this then, 
come, and cutting it--a condition he immediately observes.  So the 
sensation dies off for the time; and the unmoved policeman (to whom 
a little opium, more or less, is nothing), with his shining hat, 
stiff stock, inflexible great-coat, stout belt and bracelet, and all 
things fitting, pursues his lounging way with a heavy tread, beating 
the palms of his white gloves one against the other and stopping now 
and then at a street-corner to look casually about for anything 
between a lost child and a murder.

Under cover of the night, the feeble-minded beadle comes flitting 
about Chancery Lane with his summonses, in which every juror's name 
is wrongly spelt, and nothing rightly spelt but the beadle's own 
name, which nobody can read or wants to know.  The summonses served 
and his witnesses forewarned, the beadle goes to Mr. Krook's to keep 
a small appointment he has made with certain paupers, who, presently 
arriving, are conducted upstairs, where they leave the great eyes in 
the shutter something new to stare at, in that last shape which 
earthly lodgings take for No one--and for Every one.

And all that night the coffin stands ready by the old portmanteau; 
and the lonely figure on the bed, whose path in life has lain 
through five and forty years, lies there with no more track behind 
him that any one can trace than a deserted infant.

Next day the court is all alive--is like a fair, as Mrs. Perkins, 
more than reconciled to Mrs. Piper, says in amicable conversation 
with that excellent woman.  The coroner is to sit in the first-floor 
room at the Sol's Arms, where the Harmonic Meetings take place twice 
a week and where the chair is filled by a gentleman of professional 
celebrity, faced by Little Swills, the comic vocalist, who hopes 
(according to the bill in the window) that his friends will rally 
round him and support first-rate talent.  The Sol's Arms does a 
brisk stroke of business all the morning.  Even children so require 
sustaining under the general excitement that a pieman who has 
established himself for the occasion at the corner of the court says 
his brandy-balls go off like smoke.  What time the beadle, hovering 
between the door of Mr. Krook's establishment and the door of the 
Sol's Arms, shows the curiosity in his keeping to a few discreet 
spirits and accepts the compliment of a glass of ale or so in 
return.

At the appointed hour arrives the coroner, for whom the jurymen are 
waiting and who is received with a salute of skittles from the good 
dry skittle-ground attached to the Sol's Arms.  The coroner 
frequents more public-houses than any man alive.  The smell of 
sawdust, beer, tobacco-smoke, and spirits is inseparable in his 
vocation from death in its most awful shapes.  He is conducted by 
the beadle and the landlord to the Harmonic Meeting Room, where he 
puts his hat on the piano and takes a Windsor-chair at the head of a 
long table formed of several short tables put together and 
ornamented with glutinous rings in endless involutions, made by pots 
and glasses.  As many of the jury as can crowd together at the table 
sit there.  The rest get among the spittoons and pipes or lean 
against the piano.  Over the coroner's head is a small iron garland, 
the pendant handle of a bell, which rather gives the majesty of the 
court the appearance of going to be hanged presently.

Call over and swear the jury!  While the ceremony is in progress, 
sensation is created by the entrance of a chubby little man in a 
large shirt-collar, with a moist eye and an inflamed nose, who 
modestly takes a position near the door as one of the general 
public, but seems familiar with the room too.  A whisper circulates 
that this is Little Swills.  It is considered not unlikely that he 
will get up an imitation of the coroner and make it the principal 
feature of the Harmonic Meeting in the evenlng.

"Well, gentlemen--" the coroner begins.

"Silence there, will you!" says the beadle.  Not to the coroner, 
though it might appear so.

"Well, gentlemen," resumes the coroner.  "You are impanelled here to 
inquire into the death of a certain man.  Evidence will be given 
before you as to the circumstances attending that death, and you 
will give your verdict according to the--skittles; they must be 
stopped, you know, beadle!--evidence, and not according to anything 
else.  The first thing to be done is to view the body."

"Make way there!" cries the beadle.

So they go out in a loose procession, something after the manner of 
a straggling funeral, and make their inspection in Mr. Krook's back 
second floor, from which a few of the jurymen retire pale and 
precipitately.  The beadle is very careful that two gentlemen not 
very neat about the cuffs and buttons (for whose accommodation he 
has provided a special little table near the coroner in the Harmonic 
Meeting Room) should see all that is to be seen.  For they are the 
public chroniclers of such inquiries by the line; and he is not 
superior to the universal human infirmity, but hopes to read in 
print what "Mooney, the active and intelligent beadle of the 
district," said and did and even aspires to see the name of Mooney 
as familiarly and patronizingly mentioned as the name of the hangman 
is, according to the latest examples.

Little Swills is waiting for the coroner and jury on their return.  
Mr. Tulkinghorn, also.  Mr. Tulkinghorn is received with distinction 
and seated near the coroner between that high judicial officer, a 
bagatelle-board, and the coal-box.  The inquiry proceeds.  The jury 
learn how the subject of their inquiry died, and learn no more about 
him.  "A very eminent solicitor is in attendance, gentlemen," says 
the coroner, "who, I am informed, was accidentally present when 
discovery of the death was made, but he could only repeat the 
evidence you have already heard from the surgeon, the landlord, the 
lodger, and the law-stationer, and it is not necessary to trouble 
him.  Is anybody in attendance who knows anything more?"

Mrs. Piper pushed forward by Mrs. Perkins.  Mrs. Piper sworn.

Anastasia Piper, gentlemen.  Married woman.  Now, Mrs. Piper, what 
have you got to say about this?

Why, Mrs. Piper has a good deal to say, chiefly in parentheses and 
without punctuation, but not much to tell.  Mrs. Piper lives in the 
court (which her husband is a cabinet-maker), and it has long been 
well beknown among the neighbours (counting from the day next but 
one before the half-baptizing of Alexander James Piper aged eighteen 
months and four days old on accounts of not being expected to live 
such was the sufferings gentlemen of that child in his gums) as the 
plaintive--so Mrs. Piper insists on calling the deceased--was 
reported to have sold himself.  Thinks it was the plaintive's air in 
which that report originatinin.  See the plaintive often and 
considered as his air was feariocious and not to be allowed to go 
about some children being timid (and if doubted hoping Mrs. Perkins 
may be brought forard for she is here and will do credit to her 
husband and herself and family).  Has seen the plaintive wexed and 
worrited by the children (for children they will ever be and you 
cannot expect them specially if of playful dispositions to be 
Methoozellers which you was not yourself).  On accounts of this and 
his dark looks has often dreamed as she see him take a pick-axe from 
his pocket and split Johnny's head (which the child knows not fear 
and has repeatually called after him close at his eels).  Never 
however see the plaintive take a pick-axe or any other wepping far 
from it.  Has seen him hurry away when run and called after as if 
not partial to children and never see him speak to neither child nor 
grown person at any time (excepting the boy that sweeps the crossing 
down the lane over the way round the corner which if he was here 
would tell you that he has been seen a-speaking to him frequent).

Says the coroner, is that boy here?  Says the beadle, no, sir, he is 
not here.  Says the coroner, go and fetch him then.  In the absence 
of the active and intelligent, the coroner converses with Mr. 
Tulkinghorn.

Oh! Here's the boy, gentlemen!

Here he is, very muddy, very hoarse, very ragged.  Now, boy!  But 
stop a minute.  Caution.  This boy must be put through a few 
preliminary paces.

Name, Jo.  Nothing else that he knows on.  Don't know that everybody 
has two names.  Never heerd of sich a think.  Don't know that Jo is 
short for a longer name.  Thinks it long enough for HIM.  HE don't 
find no fault with it.  Spell it?  No.  HE can't spell it.  No 
father, no mother, no friends.  Never been to school.  What's home?  
Knows a broom's a broom, and knows it's wicked to tell a lie.  Don't 
recollect who told him about the broom or about the lie, but knows 
both.  Can't exactly say what'll be done to him arter he's dead if 
he tells a lie to the gentlemen here, but believes it'll be 
something wery bad to punish him, and serve him right--and so he'll 
tell the truth.

"This won't do, gentlemen!" says the coroner with a melancholy shake 
of the head.

"Don't you think you can receive his evidence, sir?" asks an 
attentive juryman.

"Out of the question," says the coroner.  "You have heard the boy.  
'Can't exactly say' won't do, you know.  We can't take THAT in a 
court of justice, gentlemen.  It's terrible depravity.  Put the boy 
aside."

Boy put aside, to the great edification of the audience, especially 
of Little Swills, the comic vocalist.

Now.  Is there any other witness?  No other witness.

Very well, gentlemen!  Here's a man unknown, proved to have been in 
the habit of taking opium in large quantities for a year and a half, 
found dead of too much opium.  If you think you have any evidence to 
lead you to the conclusion that he committed suicide, you will come 
to that conclusion.  If you think it is a case of accidental death, 
you will find a verdict accordingly.

Verdict accordingly.  Accidental death.  No doubt.  Gentlemen, you 
are discharged.  Good afternoon.

While the coroner buttons his great-coat, Mr. Tulkinghorn and he 
give private audience to the rejected witness in a corner.

That graceless creature only knows that the dead man (whom he 
recognized just now by his yellow face and black hair) was sometimes 
hooted and pursued about the streets.  That one cold winter night 
when he, the boy, was shivering in a doorway near his crossing, the 
man turned to look at him, and came back, and having questioned him 
and found that he had not a friend in the world, said, "Neither have 
I.  Not one!" and gave him the price of a supper and a night's 
lodging.  That the man had often spoken to him since and asked him 
whether he slept sound at night, and how he bore cold and hunger, 
and whether he ever wished to die, and similar strange questions.  
That when the man had no money, he would say in passing, "I am as 
poor as you to-day, Jo," but that when he had any, he had always (as 
the boy most heartily believes) been glad to give him some.

"He was wery good to me," says the boy, wiping his eyes with his 
wretched sleeve.  "Wen I see him a-layin' so stritched out just now, 
I wished he could have heerd me tell him so.  He wos wery good to 
me, he wos!"

As he shuffles downstairs, Mr. Snagsby, lying in wait for him, puts 
a half-crown in his hand.  "If you ever see me coming past your 
crossing with my little woman--I mean a lady--" says Mr. Snagsby 
with his finger on his nose, "don't allude to it!"

For some little time the jurymen hang about the Sol's Arms 
colloquially.  In the sequel, half-a-dozen are caught up in a cloud 
of pipe-smoke that pervades the parlour of the Sol's Arms; two 
stroll to Hampstead; and four engage to go half-price to the play at 
night, and top up with oysters.  Little Swills is treated on several 
hands.  Being asked what he thinks of the proceedings, characterizes 
them (his strength lying in a slangular direction) as "a rummy 
start."  The landlord of the Sol's Arms, finding Little Swills so 
popular, commends him highly to the jurymen and public, observing 
that for a song in character he don't know his equal and that that 
man's character-wardrobe would fill a cart.

Thus, gradually the Sol's Arms melts into the shadowy night and then 
flares out of it strong in gas.  The Harmonic Meeting hour arriving, 
the gentleman of professional celebrity takes the chair, is faced 
(red-faced) by Little Swills; their friends rally round them and 
support first-rate talent.  In the zenith of the evening, Little 
Swills says, "Gentlemen, if you'll permit me, I'll attempt a short 
description of a scene of real life that came off here to-day."  Is 
much applauded and encouraged; goes out of the room as Swills; comes 
in as the coroner (not the least in the world like him); describes 
the inquest, with recreative intervals of piano-forte accompaniment, 
to the refrain: With his (the coroner's) tippy tol li doll, tippy 
tol lo doll, tippy tol li doll, Dee!

The jingling piano at last is silent, and the Harmonic friends rally 
round their pillows.  Then there is rest around the lonely figure, 
now laid in its last earthly habitation; and it is watched by the 
gaunt eyes in the shutters through some quiet hours of night.  If 
this forlorn man could have been prophetically seen lying here by 
the mother at whose breast he nestled, a little child, with eyes 
upraised to her loving face, and soft hand scarcely knowing how to 
close upon the neck to which it crept, what an impossibility the 
vision would have seemed!  Oh, if in brighter days the now-
extinguished fire within him ever burned for one woman who held him 
in her heart, where is she, while these ashes are above the ground!

It is anything but a night of rest at Mr. Snagsby's, in Cook's 
Court, where Guster murders sleep by going, as Mr. Snagsby himself 
allows--not to put too fine a point upon it--out of one fit into 
twenty.  The occasion of this seizure is that Guster has a tender 
heart and a susceptible something that possibly might have been 
imagination, but for Tooting and her patron saint.  Be it what it 
may, now, it was so direfully impressed at tea-time by Mr. Snagsby's 
account of the inquiry at which he had assisted that at supper-time 
she projected herself into the kitchen, preceded by a flying Dutch 
cheese, and fell into a fit of unusual duration, which she only came 
out of to go into another, and another, and so on through a chain of 
fits, with short intervals between, of which she has pathetically 
availed herself by consuming them in entreaties to Mrs. Snagsby not 
to give her warning "when she quite comes to," and also in appeals 
to the whole establishment to lay her down on the stones and go to 
bed.  Hence, Mr. Snagsby, at last hearing the cock at the little 
dairy in Cursitor Street go into that disinterested ecstasy of his 
on the subject of daylight, says, drawing a long breath, though the 
most patient of men, "I thought you was dead, I am sure!"

What question this enthusiastic fowl supposes he settles when he 
strains himself to such an extent, or why he should thus crow (so 
men crow on various triumphant public occasions, however) about what 
cannot be of any moment to him, is his affair.  It is enough that 
daylight comes, morning comes, noon comes.

Then the active and intelligent, who has got into the morning papers 
as such, comes with his pauper company to Mr. Krook's and bears off 
the body of our dear brother here departed to a hemmed-in 
churchyard, pestiferous and obscene, whence malignant diseases are 
communicated to the bodies of our dear brothers and sisters who have 
not departed, while our dear brothers and sisters who hang about 
official back-stairs--would to heaven they HAD departed!--are very 
complacent and agreeable.  Into a beastly scrap of ground which a 
Turk would reject as a savage abomination and a Caffre would shudder 
at, they bring our dear brother here departed to receive Christian 
burial.

With houses looking on, on every side, save where a reeking little 
tunnel of a court gives access to the iron gate--with every villainy 
of life in action close on death, and every poisonous element of 
death in action close on life--here they lower our dear brother down 
a foot or two, here sow him in corruption, to be raised in 
corruption: an avenging ghost at many a sick-bedside, a shameful 
testimony to future ages how civilization and barbarism walked this 
boastful island together.

Come night, come darkness, for you cannot come too soon or stay too 
long by such a place as this!  Come, straggling lights into the 
windows of the ugly houses; and you who do iniquity therein, do it 
at least with this dread scene shut out!  Come, flame of gas, 
burning so sullenly above the iron gate, on which the poisoned air 
deposits its witch-ointment slimy to the touch!  It is well that you 
should call to every passerby, "Look here!"

With the night comes a slouching figure through the tunnel-court to 
the outside of the iron gate.  It holds the gate with its hands and 
looks in between the bars, stands looking in for a little while.

It then, with an old broom it carries, softly sweeps the step and 
makes the archway clean.  It does so very busily and trimly, looks 
in again a little while, and so departs.

Jo, is it thou?  Well, well!  Though a rejected witness, who "can't 
exactly say" what will be done to him in greater hands than men's, 
thou art not quite in outer darkness.  There is something like a 
distant ray of light in thy muttered reason for this: "He wos wery 
good to me, he wos!"



CHAPTER XII

On the Watch


It has left off raining down in Lincolnshire at last, and Chesney 
Wold has taken heart.  Mrs. Rouncewell is full of hospitable cares, 
for Sir Leicester and my Lady are coming home from Paris.  The 
fashionable intelligence has found it out and communicates the glad 
tidings to benighted England.  It has also found out that they will 
entertain a brilliant and distinguished circle of the ELITE of the 
BEAU MONDE (the fashionable intelligence is weak in English, but a 
giant refreshed in French) at the ancient and hospitable family seat 
in Lincolnshire.

For the greater honour of the brilliant and distinguished circle, 
and of Chesney Wold into the bargain, the broken arch of the bridge 
in the park is mended; and the water, now retired within its proper 
limits and again spanned gracefully, makes a figure in the prospect 
from the house.  The clear, cold sunshine glances into the brittle 
woods and approvingly beholds the sharp wind scattering the leaves 
and drying the moss.  It glides over the park after the moving 
shadows of the clouds, and chases them, and never catches them, all 
day.  It looks in at the windows and touches the ancestral portraits 
with bars and patches of brightness never contemplated by the 
painters.  Athwart the picture of my Lady, over the great chimney-
piece, it throws a broad bend-sinister of light that strikes down 
crookedly into the hearth and seems to rend it.

Through the same cold sunshine and the same sharp wind, my Lady and 
Sir Leicester, in their travelling chariot (my Lady's woman and Sir 
Leicester's man affectionate in the rumble), start for home.  With a 
considerable amount of jingling and whip-cracking, and many plunging 
demonstrations on the part of two bare-backed horses and two 
centaurs with glazed hats, jack-boots, and flowing manes and tails, 
they rattle out of the yard of the Hotel Bristol in the Place 
Vendome and canter between the sun-and-shadow-chequered colonnade of 
the Rue de Rivoli and the garden of the ill-fated palace of a 
headless king and queen, off by the Place of Concord, and the 
Elysian Fields, and the Gate of the Star, out of Paris.

Sooth to say, they cannot go away too fast, for even here my Lady 
Dedlock has been bored to death.  Concert, assembly, opera, theatre, 
drive, nothing is new to my Lady under the worn-out heavens.  Only 
last Sunday, when poor wretches were gay--within the walls playing 
with children among the clipped trees and the statues in the Palace 
Garden; walking, a score abreast, in the Elysian Fields, made more 
Elysian by performing dogs and wooden horses; between whiles 
filtering (a few) through the gloomy Cathedral of Our Lady to say a 
word or two at the base of a pillar within flare of a rusty little 
gridiron-full of gusty little tapers; without the walls encompassing 
Paris with dancing, love-making, wine-drinking, tobacco-smoking, 
tomb-visiting, billiard card and domino playing, quack-doctoring, 
and much murderous refuse, animate and inanimate--only last Sunday, 
my Lady, in the desolation of Boredom and the clutch of Giant 
Despair, almost hated her own maid for being in spirits.

She cannot, therefore, go too fast from Paris.  Weariness of soul 
lies before her, as it lies behind--her Ariel has put a girdle of it 
round the whole earth, and it cannot be unclasped--but the imperfect 
remedy is always to fly from the last place where it has been 
experienced.  Fling Paris back into the distance, then, exchanging 
it for endless avenues and cross-avenues of wintry trees!  And, when 
next beheld, let it be some leagues away, with the Gate of the Star 
a white speck glittering in the sun, and the city a mere mound in a 
plain--two dark square towers rising out of it, and light and shadow 
descending on it aslant, like the angels in Jacob's dream!

Sir Leicester is generally in a complacent state, and rarely bored.  
When he has nothing else to do, he can always contemplate his own 
greatness.  It is a considerable advantage to a man to have so 
inexhaustible a subject.  After reading his letters, he leans back 
in his corner of the carriage and generally reviews his importance 
to society.

"You have an unusual amount of correspondence this morning?" says my 
Lady after a long time.  She is fatigued with reading.  Has almost 
read a page in twenty miles.

"Nothing in it, though.  Nothing whatever."

"I saw one of Mr. Tulkinghorn's long effusions, I think?"

"You see everything," says Sir Leicester with admiration.

"Ha!" sighs my Lady.  "He is the most tiresome of men!"

"He sends--I really beg your pardon--he sends," says Sir Leicester, 
selecting the letter and unfolding it, "a message to you.  Our 
stopping to change horses as I came to his postscript drove it out 
of my memory.  I beg you'll excuse me.  He says--"  Sir Leicester is 
so long in taking out his eye-glass and adjusting it that my Lady 
looks a little irritated.  "He says 'In the matter of the right of 
way--'  I beg your pardon, that's not the place.  He says--yes!  
Here I have it!  He says, 'I beg my respectful compliments to my 
Lady, who, I hope, has benefited by the change.  Will you do me the 
favour to mention (as it may interest her) that I have something to 
tell her on her return in reference to the person who copied the 
affidavit in the Chancery suit, which so powerfully stimulated her 
curiosity.  I have seen him.'"

My Lady, leaning forward, looks out of her window.

"That's the message," observes Sir Leicester.

"I should like to walk a little," says my Lady, still looking out of 
her window.

"Walk?" repeats Sir Leicester in a tone of surprise.

"I should like to walk a little," says my Lady with unmistakable 
distinctness.  "Please to stop the carriage."

The carriage is stopped, the affectionate man alights from the 
rumble, opens the door, and lets down the steps, obedient to an 
impatient motion of my Lady's hand.  My Lady alights so quickly and 
walks away so quickly that Sir Leicester, for all his scrupulous 
politeness, is unable to assist her, and is left behind.  A space of 
a minute or two has elapsed before he comes up with her.  She 
smiles, looks very handsome, takes his arm, lounges with him for a 
quarter of a mile, is very much bored, and resumes her seat in the 
carriage.

The rattle and clatter continue through the greater part of three 
days, with more or less of bell-jingling and whip-cracking, and more 
or less plunging of centaurs and bare-backed horses.  Their courtly 
politeness to each other at the hotels where they tarry is the theme 
of general admiration.  Though my Lord IS a little aged for my Lady, 
says Madame, the hostess of the Golden Ape, and though he might be 
her amiable father, one can see at a glance that they love each 
other.  One observes my Lord with his white hair, standing, hat in 
hand, to help my Lady to and from the carriage.  One observes my 
Lady, how recognisant of my Lord's politeness, with an inclination 
of her gracious head and the concession of her so-genteel fingers!  
It is ravishing!

The sea has no appreciation of great men, but knocks them about like 
the small fry.  It is habitually hard upon Sir Leicester, whose 
countenance it greenly mottles in the manner of sage-cheese and in 
whose aristocratic system it effects a dismal revolution.  It is the 
Radical of Nature to him.  Nevertheless, his dignity gets over it 
after stopping to refit, and he goes on with my Lady for Chesney 
Wold, lying only one night in London on the way to Lincolnshire.

Through the same cold sunlight, colder as the day declines, and 
through the same sharp wind, sharper as the separate shadows of bare 
trees gloom together in the woods, and as the Ghost's Walk, touched 
at the western corner by a pile of fire in the sky, resigns itself 
to coming night, they drive into the park.  The rooks, swinging in 
their lofty houses in the elm-tree avenue, seem to discuss the 
question of the occupancy of the carriage as it passes underneath, 
some agreeing that Sir Leicester and my Lady are come down, some 
arguing with malcontents who won't admit it, now all consenting to 
consider the question disposed of, now all breaking out again in 
violent debate, incited by one obstinate and drowsy bird who will 
persist in putting in a last contradictory croak.  Leaving them to 
swing and caw, the travelling chariot rolls on to the house, where 
fires gleam warmly through some of the windows, though not through 
so many as to give an inhabited expression to the darkening mass of 
front.  But the brilliant and distinguished circle will soon do 
that.

Mrs. Rouncewell is in attendance and receives Sir Leicester's 
customary shake of the hand with a profound curtsy.

"How do you do, Mrs. Rouncewell?  I am glad to see you."

"I hope I have the honour of welcoming you in good health, Sir 
Leicester?"

"In excellent health, Mrs. Rouncewell."

"My Lady is looking charmingly well," says Mrs. Rouncewell with 
another curtsy.

My Lady signifies, without profuse expenditure of words, that she is 
as wearily well as she can hope to be.

But Rosa is in the distance, behind the housekeeper; and my Lady, 
who has not subdued the quickness of her observation, whatever else 
she may have conquered, asks, "Who is that girl?"

"A young scholar of mine, my Lady.  Rosa."

"Come here, Rosa!"  Lady Dedlock beckons her, with even an 
appearance of interest.  "Why, do you know how pretty you are, 
child?" she says, touching her shoulder with her two forefingers.

Rosa, very much abashed, says, "No, if you please, my Lady!" and 
glances up, and glances down, and don't know where to look, but 
looks all the prettier.

"How old are you?"

"Nineteen, my Lady."

"Nineteen," repeats my Lady thoughtfully.  "Take care they don't 
spoil you by flattery."

"Yes, my Lady."

My Lady taps her dimpled cheek with the same delicate gloved fingers 
and goes on to the foot of the oak staircase, where Sir Leicester 
pauses for her as her knightly escort.  A staring old Dedlock in a 
panel, as large as life and as dull, looks as if he didn't know what 
to make of it, which was probably his general state of mind in the 
days of Queen Elizabeth.

That evening, in the housekeeper's room, Rosa can do nothing but 
murmur Lady Dedlock's praises.  She is so affable, so graceful, so 
beautiful, so elegant; has such a sweet voice and such a thrilling 
touch that Rosa can feel it yet!  Mrs. Rouncewell confirms all this, 
not without personal pride, reserving only the one point of 
affability.  Mrs. Rouncewell is not quite sure as to that.  Heaven 
forbid that she should say a syllable in dispraise of any member of 
that excellent family, above all, of my Lady, whom the whole world 
admires; but if my Lady would only be "a little more free," not 
quite so cold and distant, Mrs. Rounceweil thinks she would be more 
affable.

"'Tis almost a pity," Mrs. Rouncewell adds--only "almost" because it 
borders on impiety to suppose that anything could be better than it 
is, in such an express dispensation as the Dedlock affairs--"that my 
Lady has no family.  If she had had a daughter now, a grown young 
lady, to interest her, I think she would have had the only kind of 
excellence she wants."

"Might not that have made her still more proud, grandmother?" says 
Watt, who has been home and come back again, he is such a good 
grandson.

"More and most, my dear," returns the housekeeper with dignity, "are 
words it's not my place to use--nor so much as to hear--applied to 
any drawback on my Lady."

"I beg your pardon, grandmother.  But she is proud, is she not?"

"If she is, she has reason to be.  The Dedlock family have always 
reason to be."

"Well," says Watt, "it's to be hoped they line out of their prayer-
books a certain passage for the common people about pride and 
vainglory.  Forgive me, grandmother!  Only a joke!"

"Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock, my dear, are not fit subjects for 
joking."

"Sir Leicester is no joke by any means," says Watt, "and I humbly 
ask his pardon.  I suppose, grandmother, that even with the family 
and their guests down here, there is no ojection to my prolonging my 
stay at the Dedlock Arms for a day or two, as any other traveller 
might?"

"Surely, none in the world, child."

"I am glad of that," says Watt, "because I have an inexpressible 
desire to extend my knowledge of this beautiful neighbourhood."

He happens to glance at Rosa, who looks down and is very shy indeed.  
But according to the old superstition, it should be Rosa's ears that 
burn, and not her fresh bright cheeks, for my Lady's maid is holding 
forth about her at this moment with surpassing energy.

My Lady's maid is a Frenchwoman of two and thirty, from somewhere in 
the southern country about Avignon and Marseilles, a large-eyed 
brown woman with black hair who would be handsome but for a certain 
feline mouth and general uncomfortable tightness of face, rendering 
the jaws too eager and the skull too prominent.  There is something 
indefinably keen and wan about her anatomy, and she has a watchful 
way of looking out of the corners of her eyes without turning her 
head which could be pleasantly dispensed with, especially when she 
is in an ill humour and near knives.  Through all the good taste of 
her dress and little adornments, these objections so express 
themselves that she seems to go about like a very neat she-wolf 
imperfectly tamed.  Besides being accomplished in all the knowledge 
appertaining to her post, she is almost an Englishwoman in her 
acquaintance with the language; consequently, she is in no want of 
words to shower upon Rosa for having attracted my Lady's attention, 
and she pours them out with such grim ridicule as she sits at dinner 
that her companion, the affectionate man, is rather relieved when 
she arrives at the spoon stage of that performance.

Ha, ha, ha!  She, Hortense, been in my Lady's service since five 
years and always kept at the distance, and this doll, this puppet, 
caressed--absolutely caressed--by my Lady on the moment of her 
arriving at the house!  Ha, ha, ha!  "And do you know how pretty you 
are, child?"  "No, my Lady."  You are right there!  "And how old are 
you, child!  And take care they do not spoil you by flattery, 
child!"  Oh, how droll!  It is the BEST thing altogether.

In short, it is such an admirable thing that Mademoiselle Hortense 
can't forget it; but at meals for days afterwards, even among her 
countrywomen and others attached in like capacity to the troop of 
visitors, relapses into silent enjoyment of the joke--an enjoyment 
expressed, in her own convivial manner, by an additional tightness 
of face, thin elongation of compressed lips, and sidewise look, 
which intense appreciation of humour is frequently reflected in my 
Lady's mirrors when my Lady is not among them.

All the mirrors in the house are brought into action now, many of 
them after a long blank.  They reflect handsome faces, simpering 
faces, youthful faces, faces of threescore and ten that will not 
submit to be old; the entire collection of faces that have come to 
pass a January week or two at Chesney Wold, and which the 
fashionable intelligence, a mighty hunter before the Lord, hunts 
with a keen scent, from their breaking cover at the Court of St. 
James's to their being run down to death.  The place in Lincolnshire 
is all alive.  By day guns and voices are heard ringing in the 
woods, horsemen and carriages enliven the park roads, servants and 
hangers-on pervade the village and the Dedlock Arms.  Seen by night 
from distant openings in the trees, the row of windows in the long 
drawing-room, where my Lady's picture hangs over the great chimney-
piece, is like a row of jewels set in a black frame.  On Sunday the 
chill little church is almost warmed by so much gallant company, and 
the general flavour of the Dedlock dust is quenched in delicate 
perfumes.

The brilliant and distinguished circle comprehends within it no 
contracted amount of education, sense, courage, honour, beauty, and 
virtue.  Yet there is something a little wrong about it in despite 
of its immense advantages.  What can it be?

Dandyism?  There is no King George the Fourth now (more the pity) to 
set the dandy fashion; there are no clear-starched jack-towel 
neckcloths, no short-waisted coats, no false calves, no stays.  
There are no caricatures, now, of effeminate exquisites so arrayed, 
swooning in opera boxes with excess of delight and being revived by 
other dainty creatures poking long-necked scent-bottles at their 
noses.  There is no beau whom it takes four men at once to shake 
into his buckskins, or who goes to see all the executions, or who is 
troubled with the self-reproach of having once consumed a pea.  But 
is there dandyism in the brilliant and distinguished circle 
notwithstanding, dandyism of a more mischievous sort, that has got 
below the surface and is doing less harmless things than jack-
towelling itself and stopping its own digestion, to which no 
rational person need particularly object?

Why, yes.  It cannot be disguised.  There ARE at Chesney Wold this 
January week some ladies and gentlemen of the newest fashion, who 
have set up a dandyism--in religion, for instance.  Who in mere 
lackadaisical want of an emotion have agreed upon a little dandy 
talk about the vulgar wanting faith in things in general, meaning in 
the things that have been tried and found wanting, as though a low 
fellow should unaccountably lose faith in a bad shilling after 
finding it out!  Who would make the vulgar very picturesque and 
faithful by putting back the hands upon the clock of time and 
cancelling a few hundred years of history.

There are also ladies and gentlemen of another fashion, not so new, 
but very elegant, who have agreed to put a smooth glaze on the world 
and to keep down all its realities.  For whom everything must be 
languid and pretty.  Who have found out the perpetual stoppage.  Who 
are to rejoice at nothing and be sorry for nothing.  Who are not to 
be disturbed by ideas.  On whom even the fine arts, attending in 
powder and walking backward like the Lord Chamberlain, must array 
themselves in the milliners' and tailors' patterns of past 
generations and be particularly careful not to be in earnest or to 
receive any impress from the moving age.

Then there is my Lord Boodle, of considerable reputation with his 
party, who has known what office is and who tells Sir Leicester 
Dedlock with much gravity, after dinner, that he really does not see 
to what the present age is tending.  A debate is not what a debate 
used to be; the House is not what the House used to be; even a 
Cabinet is not what it formerly was.  He perceives with astonishment 
that supposing the present government to be overthrown, the limited 
choice of the Crown, in the formation of a new ministry, would lie 
between Lord Coodle and Sir Thomas Doodle--supposing it to be 
impossible for the Duke of Foodle to act with Goodle, which may be 
assumed to be the case in consequence of the breach arising out of 
that affair with Hoodle.  Then, giving the Home Department and the 
leadership of the House of Commons to Joodle, the Exchequer to 
Koodle, the Colonies to Loodle, and the Foreign Office to Moodle, 
what are you to do with Noodle?  You can't offer him the Presidency 
of the Council; that is reserved for Poodle.  You can't put him in 
the Woods and Forests; that is hardly good enough for Quoodle.  What 
follows?  That the country is shipwrecked, lost, and gone to pieces 
(as is made manifest to the patriotism of Sir Leicester Dedlock) 
because you can't provide for Noodle!

On the other hand, the Right Honourable William Buffy, M.P., 
contends across the table with some one else that the shipwreck of 
the country--about which there is no doubt; it is only the manner of 
it that is in question--is attributable to Cuffy.  If you had done 
with Cuffy what you ought to have done when he first came into 
Parliament, and had prevented him from going over to Duffy, you 
would have got him into alliance with Fuffy, you would have had with 
you the weight attaching as a smart debater to Guffy, you would have 
brought to bear upon the elections the wealth of Huffy, you would 
have got in for three counties Juffy, Kuffy, and Luffy, and you 
would have strengthened your administration by the official 
knowledge and the business habits of Muffy.  All this, instead of 
being as you now are, dependent on the mere caprice of Puffy!

As to this point, and as to some minor topics, there are differences 
of opinion; but it is perfectly clear to the brilliant and 
distinguished circle, all round, that nobody is in question but 
Boodle and his retinue, and Buffy and HIS retinue.  These are the 
great actors for whom the stage is reserved.  A People there are, no 
doubt--a certain large number of supernumeraries, who are to be 
occasionally addressed, and relied upon for shouts and choruses, as 
on the theatrical stage; but Boodle and Buffy, their followers and 
families, their heirs, executors, administrators, and assigns, are 
the born first-actors, managers, and leaders, and no others can 
appear upon the scene for ever and ever.

In this, too, there is perhaps more dandyism at Chesney Wold than 
the brilliant and distinguished circle will find good for itself in 
the long run.  For it is, even with the stillest and politest 
circles, as with the circle the necromancer draws around him--very 
strange appearances may be seen in active motion outside.  With this 
difference, that being realities and not phantoms, there is the 
greater danger of their breaking in.

Chesney Wold is quite full anyhow, so full that a burning sense of 
injury arises in the breasts of ill-lodged ladies'-maids, and is not 
to he extinguished.  Only one room is empty.  It is a turret chamber 
of the third order of merit, plainly but comfortably furnished and 
having an old-fashioned business air.  It is Mr. Tulkinghorn's room, 
and is never bestowed on anybody else, for he may come at any time.  
He is not come yet.  It is his quiet habit to walk across the park 
from the village in fine weather, to drop into this room as if he 
had never been out of it since he was last seen there, to request a 
servant to inform Sir Leicester that he is arrived in case he should 
be wanted, and to appear ten minutes before dinner in the shadow of 
the library-door.  He sleeps in his turret with a complaining flag-
staff over his head, and has some leads outside on which, any fine 
morning when he is down here, his black figure may be seen walking 
before breakfast like a larger species of rook.

Every day before dinner, my Lady looks for him in the dusk of the 
library, but he is not there.  Every day at dinner, my Lady glances 
down the table for the vacant place that would be waiting to receive 
him if he had just arrived, but there is no vacant place.  Every 
night my Lady casually asks her maid, "Is Mr. Tulkinghorn come?"

Every night the answer is, "No, my Lady, not yet."

One night, while having her hair undressed, my Lady loses herself in 
deep thought after this reply until she sees her own brooding face 
in the opposite glass, and a pair of black eyes curiously observing 
her.

"Be so good as to attend," says my Lady then, addressing the 
reflection of Hortense, "to your business.  You can contemplate your 
beauty at another time."

"Pardon!  It was your Ladyship's beauty."

"That," says my Lady, "you needn't contemplate at all."

At length, one afternoon a little before sunset, when the bright 
groups of figures which have for the last hour or two enlivened the 
Ghost's Walk are all dispersed and only Sir Leicester and my Lady 
remain upon the terrace, Mr. Tulkinghorn appears.  He comes towards 
them at his usual methodical pace, which is never quickened, never 
slackened.  He wears his usual expressionless mask--if it be a mask
--and carries family secrets in every limb of his body and every 
crease of his dress.  Whether his whole soul is devoted to the great 
or whether he yields them nothing beyond the services he sells is 
his personal secret.  He keeps it, as he keeps the secrets of his 
clients; he is his own client in that matter, and will never betray 
himself.

"How do you do, Mr. Tulkinghorn?" says Sir Leicester, giving him his 
hand.

Mr. Tulkinghorn is quite well.  Sir Leicester is quite well.  My 
Lady is quite well.  All highly satisfactory.  The lawyer, with his 
hands behind him, walks at Sir Leicester's side along the terrace.  
My Lady walks upon the other side.

"We expected you before," says Sir Leicester.  A gracious 
observation.  As much as to say, "Mr. Tulkinghorn, we remember your 
existence when you are not here to remind us of it by your presence.  
We bestow a fragment of our minds upon you, sir, you see!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn, comprehending it, inclines his head and says he is 
much obliged.

"I should have come down sooner," he explains, "but that I have been 
much engaged with those matters in the several suits between 
yourself and Boythorn."

"A man of a very ill-regulated mind," observes Sir Leicester with 
severity.  "An extremely dangerous person in any community.  A man 
of a very low character of mind."

"He is obstinate," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"It is natural to such a man to be so," says Sir Leicester, looking 
most profoundly obstinate himself.  "I am not at all surprised to 
hear it."

"The only question is," pursues the lawyer, "whether you will give 
up anything."

"No, sir," replies Sir Leicester.  "Nothing.  I give up?"

"I don't mean anything of importance.  That, of course, I know you 
would not abandon.  I mean any minor point."

"Mr. Tulkinghorn," returns Sir Leicester, "there can be no minor 
point between myself and Mr. Boythorn.  If I go farther, and observe 
that I cannot readily conceive how ANY right of mine can be a minor 
point, I speak not so much in reference to myself as an individual 
as in reference to the family position I have it in charge to 
maintain."

Mr. Tulkinghorn inclines his head again.  "I have now my 
instructions," he says.  "Mr. Boythorn will give us a good deal of 
trouble--"

"It is the character of such a mind, Mr. Tulkinghorn," Sir Leicester 
interrupts him, "TO give trouble.  An exceedingly ill-conditioned, 
levelling person.  A person who, fifty years ago, would probably 
have been tried at the Old Bailey for some demagogue proceeding, and 
severely punished--if not," adds Sir Leicester after a moment's 
pause, "if not hanged, drawn, and quartered."

Sir Leicester appears to discharge his stately breast of a burden in 
passing this capital sentence, as if it were the next satisfactory 
thing to having the sentence executed.

"But night is coming on," says he, "and my Lady will take cold.  My 
dear, let us go in."

As they turn towards the hall-door, Lady Dedlock addresses Mr. 
Tulkinghorn for the first time.

"You sent me a message respecting the person whose writing I 
happened to inquire about.  It was like you to remember the 
circumstance; I had quite forgotten it.  Your message reminded me of 
it again.  I can't imagine what association I had with a hand like 
that, but I surely had some."

"You had some?" Mr. Tulkinghorn repeats.

"Oh, yes!" returns my Lady carelessly.  "I think I must have had 
some.  And did you really take the trouble to find out the writer of 
that actual thing--what is it!--affidavit?"

"Yes."

"How very odd!"

They pass into a sombre breakfast-room on the ground floor, lighted 
in the day by two deep windows.  It is now twilight.  The fire glows 
brightly on the panelled wall and palely on the window-glass, where, 
through the cold reflection of the blaze, the colder landscape 
shudders in the wind and a grey mist creeps along, the only 
traveller besides the waste of clouds.

My Lady lounges in a great chair in the chimney-corner, and Sir 
Leicester takes another great chair opposite.  The lawyer stands 
before the fire with his hand out at arm's length, shading his face.  
He looks across his arm at my Lady.

"Yes," he says, "I inquired about the man, and found him.  And, what 
is very strange, I found him--"

"Not to be any out-of-the-way person, I am afraid!" Lady Dedlock 
languidly anticipates.

"I found him dead."

"Oh, dear me!" remonstrated Sir Leicester.  Not so much shocked by 
the fact as by the fact of the fact being mentioned.

"I was directed to his lodging--a miserable, poverty-stricken place
--and I found him dead."

"You will excuse me, Mr. Tulkinghorn," observes Sir Leicester.  "I 
think the less said--"

"Pray, Sir Leicester, let me hear the story out" (it is my Lady 
speaking).  "It is quite a story for twilight.  How very shocking!  
Dead?"

Mr, Tulkinghorn re-asserts it by another inclination of his head.  
"Whether by his own hand--"

"Upon my honour!" cries Sir Leicester.  "Really!"

"Do let me hear the story!" says my Lady.

"Whatever you desire, my dear.  But, I must say--"

"No, you mustn't say!  Go on, Mr. Tulkinghorn."

Sir Leicester's gallantry concedes the point, though he still feels 
that to bring this sort of squalor among the upper classes is 
really--really--

"I was about to say," resumes the lawyer with undisturbed calmness, 
"that whether he had died by his own hand or not, it was beyond my 
power to tell you.  I should amend that phrase, however, by saying 
that he had unquestionably died of his own act, though whether by 
his own deliberate intention or by mischance can never certainly be 
known.  The coroner's jury found that he took the poison 
accidentally."

"And what kind of man," my Lady asks, "was this deplorable 
creature?"

"Very difficult to say," returns the lawyer, shaking his bead.  "He 
had lived so wretchedly and was so neglected, with his gipsy colour 
and his wild black hair and beard, that I should have considered him 
the commonest of the common.  The surgeon had a notion that he had 
once been something better, both in appearance and condition."

"What did they call the wretched being?"

"They called him what he had called himself, but no one knew his 
name."

"Not even any one who had attended on him?"

"No one had attended on him.  He was found dead.  In fact, I found 
him."

"Without any clue to anything more?"

"Without any; there was," says the lawyer meditatively, "an old 
portmanteau, but--  No, there were no papers."

During the utterance of every word of this short dialogue, Lady 
Dedlock and Mr. Tulkinghorn, without any other alteration in their 
customary deportment, have looked very steadily at one another--as 
was natural, perhaps, in the discussion of so unusual a subject.  
Sir Leicester has looked at the fire, with the general expression of 
the Dedlock on the staircase.  The story being told, he renews his 
stately protest, saying that as it is quite clear that no 
association in my Lady's mind can possibly be traceable to this poor 
wretch (unless he was a begging-letter writer), he trusts to hear no 
more about a subject so far removed from my Lady's station.

"Certainly, a collection of horrors," says my Lady, gathering up her 
mantles and furs, "but they interest one for the moment!  Have the 
kindness, Mr. Tulkinghorn, to open the door for me."

Mr. Tulkinghorn does so with deference and holds it open while she 
passes out.  She passes close to him, with her usual fatigued manner 
and insolent grace.  They meet again at dinner--again, next day--
again, for many days in succession.  Lady Dedlock is always the same 
exhausted deity, surrounded by worshippers, and terribly liable to 
be bored to death, even while presiding at her own shrine.  Mr. 
Tulkinghorn is always the same speechless repository of noble 
confidences, so oddly but of place and yet so perfectly at home.  
They appear to take as little note of one another as any two people 
enclosed within the same walls could.  But whether each evermore 
watches and suspects the other, evermore mistrustful of some great 
reservation; whether each is evermore prepared at all points for the 
other, and never to be taken unawares; what each would give to know 
how much the other knows--all this is hidden, for the time, in their 
own hearts.



CHAPTER XIII

Esther's Narrative


We held many consultations about what Richard was to be, first 
without Mr. Jarndyce, as he had requested, and afterwards with him, 
but it was a long time before we seemed to make progress.  Richard 
said he was ready for anything.  When Mr. Jarndyce doubted whether 
he might not already be too old to enter the Navy, Richard said he 
had thought of that, and perhaps he was.  When Mr. Jarndyce asked 
him what he thought of the Army, Richard said he had thought of 
that, too, and it wasn't a bad idea.  When Mr. Jarndyce advised him 
to try and decide within himself whether his old preference for the 
sea was an ordinary boyish inclination or a strong impulse, Richard 
answered, Well he really HAD tried very often, and he couldn't make 
out.

"How much of this indecision of character," Mr. Jarndyce said to me, 
"is chargeable on that incomprehensible heap of uncertainty and 
procrastination on which he has been thrown from his birth, I don't 
pretend to say; but that Chancery, among its other sins, is 
responsible for some of it, I can plainly see.  It has engendered or 
confirmed in him a habit of putting off--and trusting to this, that, 
and the other chance, without knowing what chance--and dismissing 
everything as unsettled, uncertain, and confused.  The character of 
much older and steadier people may be even changed by the 
circumstances surrounding them.  It would be too much to expect that 
a boy's, in its formation, should be the subject of such influences 
and escape them."

I felt this to be true; though if I may venture to mention what I 
thought besides, I thought it much to be regretted that Richard's 
education had not counteracted those influences or directed his 
character.  He had been eight years at a public school and had 
learnt, I understood, to make Latin verses of several sorts in the 
most admirable manner.  But I never heard that it had been anybody's 
business to find out what his natural bent was, or where his 
failings lay, or to adapt any kind of knowledge to HIM.  HE had been 
adapted to the verses and had learnt the art of making them to such 
perfection that if he had remained at school until he was of age, I 
suppose he could only have gone on making them over and over again 
unless he had enlarged his education by forgetting how to do it.  
Still, although I had no doubt that they were very beautiful, and 
very improving, and very sufficient for a great many purposes of 
life, and always remembered all through life, I did doubt whether 
Richard would not have profited by some one studying him a little, 
instead of his studying them quite so much.

To be sure, I knew nothing of the subject and do not even now know 
whether the young gentlemen of classic Rome or Greece made verses to 
the same extent--or whether the young gentlemen of any country ever 
did.

"I haven't the least idea," said Richard, musing, "what I had better 
be.  Except that I am quite sure I don't want to go into the Church, 
it's a toss-up."

"You have no inclination in Mr. Kenge's way?" suggested Mr. 
Jarndyce.

"I don't know that, sir!" replied Richard.  "I am fond of boating.  
Articled clerks go a good deal on the water.  It's a capital 
profession!"

"Surgeon--" suggested Mr. Jarndyce.

"That's the thing, sir!" cried Richard.

I doubt if he had ever once thought of it before.

"That's the thing, sir," repeated Richard with the greatest 
enthusiasm.  "We have got it at last.  M.R.C.S.!"

He was not to be laughed out of it, though he laughed at it 
heartily.  He said he had chosen his profession, and the more he 
thought of it, the more he felt that his destiny was clear; the art 
of healing was the art of all others for him.  Mistrusting that he 
only came to this conclusion because, having never had much chance 
of finding out for himself what he was fitted for and having never 
been guided to the discovery, he was taken by the newest idea and 
was glad to get rid of the trouble of consideration, I wondered 
whether the Latin verses often ended in this or whether Richard's 
was a solitary case.

Mr. Jarndyce took great pains to talk with him seriously and to put 
it to his good sense not to deceive himself in so important a 
matter.  Richard was a little grave after these interviews, but 
invariably told Ada and me that it was all right, and then began to 
talk about something else.

"By heaven!" cried Mr. Boythorn, who interested himself strongly in 
the subject--though I need not say that, for he could do nothing 
weakly; "I rejoice to find a young gentleman of spirit and gallantry 
devoting himself to that noble profession!  The more spirit there is 
in it, the better for mankind and the worse for those mercenary 
task-masters and low tricksters who delight in putting that 
illustrious art at a disadvantage in the world.  By all that is base 
and despicable," cried Mr. Boythorn, "the treatment of surgeons 
aboard ship is such that I would submit the legs--both legs--of 
every member of the Admiralty Board to a compound fracture and 
render it a transportable offence in any qualified practitioner to 
set them if the system were not wholly changed in eight and forty 
hours!"

"Wouldn't you give them a week?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.

"No!" cried Mr. Boythorn firmly.  "Not on any consideration!  Eight 
and forty hours!  As to corporations, parishes, vestry-boards, and 
similar gatherings of jolter-headed clods who assemble to exchange 
such speeches that, by heaven, they ought to be worked in 
quicksilver mines for the short remainder of their miserable 
existence, if it were only to prevent their detestable English from 
contaminating a language spoken in the presence of the sun--as to 
those fellows, who meanly take advantage of the ardour of gentlemen 
in the pursuit of knowledge to recompense the inestimable services 
of the best years of their lives, their long study, and their 
expensive education with pittances too small for the acceptance of 
clerks, I would have the necks of every one of them wrung and their 
skulls arranged in Surgeons' Hall for the contemplation of the whole 
profession in order that its younger members might understand from 
actual measurement, in early life, HOW thick skulls may become!"

He wound up this vehement declaration by looking round upon us with 
a most agreeable smile and suddenly thundering, "Ha, ha, ha!" over 
and over again, until anybody else might have been expected to be 
quite subdued by the exertion.

As Richard still continued to say that he was fixed in his choice 
after repeated periods for consideration had been recommended by Mr. 
Jarndyce and had expired, and he still continued to assure Ada and 
me in the same final manner that it was "all right," it became 
advisable to take Mr. Kenge into council.  Mr. Kenge, therefore, 
came down to dinner one day, and leaned back in his chair, and 
turned his eye-glasses over and over, and spoke in a sonorous voice, 
and did exactly what I remembered to have seen him do when I was a 
little girl.

"Ah!" said Mr. Kenge.  "Yes.  Well!  A very good profession, Mr. 
Jarndyce, a very good profession."

"The course of study and preparation requires to be diligently 
pursued," observed my guardian with a glance at Richard.

"Oh, no doubt," said Mr. Kenge.  "Diligently."

"But that being the case, more or less, with all pursuits that are 
worth much," said Mr. Jarndyce, "it is not a special consideration 
which another choice would be likely to escape."

"Truly," said Mr. Kenge.  "And Mr. Richard Carstone, who has so 
meritoriously acquitted himself in the--shall I say the classic 
shades?--in which his youth had been passed, will, no doubt, apply 
the habits, if not the principles and practice, of versification in 
that tongue in which a poet was said (unless I mistake) to be born, 
not made, to the more eminently practical field of action on which 
he enters."

"You may rely upon it," said Richard in his off-hand manner, "that I 
shall go at it and do my best."

"Very well, Mr. Jarndyce!" said Mr. Kenge, gently nodding his head.  
"Really, when we are assured by Mr. Richard that he means to go at 
it and to do his best," nodding feelingly and smoothly over those 
expressions, "I would submit to you that we have only to inquire 
into the best mode of carrying out the object of his ambition.  Now, 
with reference to placing Mr. Richard with some sufficiently eminent 
practitioner.  Is there any one in view at present?"

"No one, Rick, I think?" said my guardian.

"No one, sir," said Richard.

"Quite so!" observed Mr. Kenge.  "As to situation, now.  Is there 
any particular feeling on that head?"

"N--no," said Richard.

"Quite so!" observed Mr. Kenge again.

"I should like a little variety," said Richard; "I mean a good range 
of experience."

"Very requisite, no doubt," returned Mr. Kenge.  "I think this may 
be easily arranged, Mr. Jarndyce?  We have only, in the first place, 
to discover a sufficiently eligible practitioner; and as soon as we 
make our want--and shall I add, our ability to pay a premium?--
known, our only difficulty will be in the selection of one from a 
large number.  We have only, in the second place, to observe those 
little formalities which are rendered necessary by our time of life 
and our being under the guardianship of the court.  We shall soon 
be--shall I say, in Mr. Richard's own light-hearted manner, 'going 
at it'--to our heart's content.  It is a coincidence," said Mr. 
Kenge with a tinge of melancholy in his smile, "one of those 
coincidences which may or may not require an explanation beyond our 
present limited faculties, that I have a cousin in the medical 
profession.  He might be deemed eligible by you and might be 
disposed to respond to this proposal.  I can answer for him as 
little as for you, but he MIGHT!"

As this was an opening in the prospect, it was arranged that Mr. 
Kenge should see his cousin.  And as Mr. Jarndyce had before 
proposed to take us to London for a few weeks, it was settled next 
day that we should make our visit at once and combine Richard's 
business with it.

Mr. Boythorn leaving us within a week, we took up our abode at a 
cheerful lodging near Oxford Street over an upholsterer's shop.  
London was a great wonder to us, and we were out for hours and hours 
at a time, seeing the sights, which appeared to be less capable of 
exhaustion than we were.  We made the round of the principal 
theatres, too, with great delight, and saw all the plays that were 
worth seeing.  I mention this because it was at the theatre that I 
began to be made uncomfortable again by Mr. Guppy.

I was sitting in front of the box one night with Ada, and Richard 
was in the place he liked best, behind Ada's chair, when, happening 
to look down into the pit, I saw Mr. Guppy, with his hair flattened 
down upon his head and woe depicted in his face, looking up at me.  
I felt all through the performance that he never looked at the 
actors but constantly looked at me, and always with a carefully 
prepared expression of the deepest misery and the profoundest 
dejection.

It quite spoiled my pleasure for that night because it was so very 
embarrassing and so very ridiculous.  But from that time forth, we 
never went to the play without my seeing Mr. Guppy in the pit, 
always with his hair straight and flat, his shirt-collar turned 
down, and a general feebleness about him.  If he were not there when 
we went in, and I began to hope he would not come and yielded myself 
for a little while to the interest of the scene, I was certain to 
encounter his languishing eyes when I least expected it and, from 
that time, to be quite sure that they were fixed upon me all the 
evening.

I really cannot express how uneasy this made me.  If he would only 
have brushed up his hair or turned up his collar, it would have been 
bad enough; but to know that that absurd figure was always gazing at 
me, and always in that demonstrative state of despondency, put such 
a constraint upon me that I did not like to laugh at the play, or to 
cry at it, or to move, or to speak.  I seemed able to do nothing 
naturally.  As to escaping Mr. Guppy by going to the back of the 
box, I could not bear to do that because I knew Richard and Ada 
relied on having me next them and that they could never have talked 
together so happily if anybody else had been in my place.  So there 
I sat, not knowing where to look--for wherever I looked, I knew Mr. 
Guppy's eyes were following me--and thinking of the dreadful expense 
to which this young man was putting himself on my account.

Sometimes I thought of telling Mr. Jarndyce.  Then I feared that the 
young man would lose his situation and that I might ruin him.  
Sometimes I thought of confiding in Richard, but was deterred by the 
possibility of his fighting Mr. Guppy and giving him black eyes.  
Sometimes I thought, should I frown at him or shake my head.  Then I 
felt I could not do it.  Sometimes I considered whether I should 
write to his mother, but that ended in my being convinced that to 
open a correspondence would he to make the matter worse.  I always 
came to the conclusion, finally, that I could do nothing.  Mr. 
Guppy's perseverance, all this time, not only produced him regularly 
at any theatre to which we went, but caused him to appear in the 
crowd as we were coming out, and even to get up behind our fly--
where I am sure I saw him, two or three times, struggling among the 
most dreadful spikes.  After we got home, he haunted a post opposite 
our house.  The upholsterer's where we lodged being at the corner of 
two streets, and my bedroom window being opposite the post, I was 
afraid to go near the window when I went upstairs, lest I should see 
him (as I did one moonlight night) leaning against the post and 
evidenfly catching cold.  If Mr. Guppy had not been, fortunately for 
me, engaged in the daytime, I really should have had no rest from 
him.

While we were making this round of gaieties, in which Mr. Guppy so 
extraordinarily participated, the business which had helped to bring 
us to town was not neglected.  Mr. Kenge's cousin was a Mr. Bayham 
Badger, who had a good practice at Chelsea and attended a large 
public institution besides.  He was quite willing to receive Richard 
into his house and to superintend his studies, and as it seemed that 
those could be pursued advantageously under Mr. Badger's roof, and 
Mr. Badger liked Richard, and as Richard said he liked Mr. Badger 
"well enough," an agreement was made, the Lord Chancellor's consent 
was obtained, and it was all settled.

On the day when matters were concluded between Richard and Mr. 
Badger, we were all under engagement to dine at Mr. Badger's house.  
We were to be "merely a family party," Mrs. Badger's note said; and 
we found no lady there but Mrs. Badger herself.  She was surrounded 
in the drawing-room by various objects, indicative of her painting a 
little, playing the piano a little, playing the guitar a little, 
playing the harp a little, singing a little, working a little, 
reading a little, writing poetry a little, and botanizing a little.  
She was a lady of about fifty, I should think, youthfully dressed, 
and of a very fine complexion.  If I add to the little list of her 
accomplishments that she rouged a little, I do not mean that there 
was any harm in it.

Mr. Bayham Badger himself was a pink, fresh-faced, crisp-looking 
gentleman with a weak voice, white teeth, light hair, and surprised 
eyes, some years younger, I should say, than Mrs. Bayham Badger.  He 
admired her exceedingly, but principally, and to begin with, on the 
curious ground (as it seemed to us) of her having had three 
husbands.  We had barely taken our seats when he said to Mr. 
Jarndyce quite triumphantly, "You would hardly suppose that I am 
Mrs. Bayham Badger's third!"

"Indeed?" said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Her third!" said Mr. Badger.  "Mrs. Bayham Badger has not the 
appearance, Miss Summerson, of a lady who has had two former 
husbands?"

I said "Not at all!"

"And most remarkable men!" said Mr. Badger in a tone of confidence.  
"Captain Swosser of the Royal Navy, who was Mrs. Badger's first 
husband, was a very distinguished officer indeed.  The name of 
Professor Dingo, my immediate predecessor, is one of European 
reputation."

Mrs. Badger overheard him and smiled.

"Yes, my dear!" Mr. Badger replied to the smile, "I was observing to 
Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson that you had had two former 
husbands--both very distinguished men.  And they found it, as people 
generally do, difficult to believe."

"I was barely twenty," said Mrs. Badger, "when I married Captain 
Swosser of the Royal Navy.  I was in the Mediterranean with him; I 
am quite a sailor.  On the twelfth anniversary of my wedding-day, I 
became the wife of Professor Dingo."

"Of European reputation," added Mr. Badger in an undertone.

"And when Mr. Badger and myself were married," pursued Mrs. Badger, 
"we were married on the same day of the year.  I had become attached 
to the day."

"So that Mrs. Badger has been married to three husbands--two of them 
highly distinguished men," said Mr. Badger, summing up the facts, 
"and each time upon the twenty-first of March at eleven in the 
forenoon!"

We all expressed our admiration.

"But for Mr. Badger's modesty," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I would take 
leave to correct him and say three distinguished men."

"Thank you, Mr. Jarndyce!  What I always tell him!" observed Mrs. 
Badger.

"And, my dear," said Mr. Badger, "what do I always tell you?  That 
without any affectation of disparaging such professional distinction 
as I may have attained (which our friend Mr. Carstone will have many 
opportunities of estimating), I am not so weak--no, really," said 
Mr. Badger to us generally, "so unreasonable--as to put my 
reputation on the same footing with such first-rate men as Captain 
Swosser and Professor Dingo.  Perhaps you may be interested, Mr. 
Jarndyce," continued Mr. Bayham Badger, leading the way into the 
next drawing-room, "in this portrait of Captain Swosser.  It was 
taken on his return home from the African station, where he had 
suffered from the fever of the country.  Mrs. Badger considers it 
too yellow.  But it's a very fine head.  A very fine head!"

We all echoed, "A very fine head!"

"I feel when I look at it," said Mr. Badger, "'That's a man I should 
like to have seen!'  It strikingly bespeaks the first-class man that 
Captain Swosser pre-eminently was.  On the other side, Professor 
Dingo.  I knew him well--attended him in his last illness--a 
speaking likeness!  Over the piano, Mrs. Bayham Badger when Mrs. 
Swosser.  Over the sofa, Mrs. Bayham Badger when Mrs. Dingo.  Of 
Mrs. Bayham Badger IN ESSE, I possess the original and have no 
copy."

Dinner was now announced, and we went downstairs.  It was a very 
genteel entertainment, very handsomely served.  But the captain and 
the professor still ran in Mr. Badger's head, and as Ada and I had 
the honour of being under his particular care, we had the full 
benefit of them.

"Water, Miss Summerson?  Allow me!  Not in that tumbler, pray.  
Bring me the professor's goblet, James!"

Ada very much admired some artificial flowers under a glass.

"Astonishing how they keep!" said Mr. Badger.  "They were presented 
to Mrs. Bayham Badger when she was in the Mediterranean."

He invited Mr. Jarndyce to take a glass of claret.

"Not that claret!" he said.  "Excuse me!  This is an occasion, and 
ON an occasion I produce some very special claret I happen to have.  
(James, Captain Swosser's wine!)  Mr. Jarndyce, this is a wine that 
was imported by the captain, we will not say how many years ago.  
You will find it very curious.  My dear, I shall he happy to take 
some of this wine with you.  (Captain Swosser's claret to your 
mistress, James!)  My love, your health!"

After dinner, when we ladies retired, we took Mrs. Badger's first 
and second husband with us.  Mrs. Badger gave us in the drawing-room 
a biographical sketch of the life and services of Captain Swosser 
before his marriage and a more minute account of him dating from the 
time when he fell in love with her at a ball on board the Crippler, 
given to the officers of that ship when she lay in Plymouth Harbour.

"The dear old Crippler!" said Mrs. Badger, shaking her head.  "She 
was a noble vessel.  Trim, ship-shape, all a taunto, as Captain 
Swosser used to say.  You must excuse me if I occasionally introduce 
a nautical expression; I was quite a sailor once.  Captain Swosser 
loved that craft for my sake.  When she was no longer in commission, 
he frequently said that if he were rich enough to buy her old hulk, 
he would have an inscription let into the timbers of the quarter-
deck where we stood as partners in the dance to mark the spot where 
he fell--raked fore and aft (Captain Swosser used to say) by the 
fire from my tops.  It was his naval way of mentioning my eyes."

Mrs. Badger shook her head, sighed, and looked in the glass.

"It was a great change from Captain Swosser to Professor Dingo," she 
resumed with a plaintive smile.  "I felt it a good deal at first.  
Such an entire revolution in my mode of life!  But custom, combined 
with science--particularly science--inured me to it.  Being the 
professor's sole companion in his botanical excursions, I almost 
forgot that I had ever been afloat, and became quite learned.  It is 
singular that the professor was the antipodes of Captain Swosser and 
that Mr. Badger is not in the least like either!"

We then passed into a narrative of the deaths of Captain Swosser and 
Professor Dingo, both of whom seem to have had very bad complaints.  
In the course of it, Mrs. Badger signified to us that she had never 
madly loved but once and that the object of that wild affection, 
never to be recalled in its fresh enthusiasm, was Captain Swosser.  
The professor was yet dying by inches in the most dismal manner, and 
Mrs. Badger was giving us imitations of his way of saying, with 
great difficulty, "Where is Laura?  Let Laura give me my toast and 
water!" when the entrance of the gentlemen consigned him to the 
tomb.

Now, I observed that evening, as I had observed for some days past, 
that Ada and Richard were more than ever attached to each other's 
society, which was but natural, seeing that they were going to be 
separated so soon.  I was therefore not very much surprised when we 
got home, and Ada and I retired upstairs, to find Ada more silent 
than usual, though I was not quite prepared for her coming into my 
arms and beginning to speak to me, with her face hidden.

"My darling Esther!" murmured Ada.  "I have a great secret to tell 
you!"

A mighty secret, my pretty one, no doubt!

"What is it, Ada?"

"Oh, Esther, you would never guess!"

"Shall I try to guess?" said I.

"Oh, no!  Don't!  Pray don't!" cried Ada, very much startled by the 
idea of my doing so.

"Now, I wonder who it can be about?" said I, pretending to consider.

"It's about--" said Ada in a whisper.  "It's about--my cousin 
Richard!"

"Well, my own!" said I, kissing her bright hair, which was all I 
could see.  "And what about him?"

"Oh, Esther, you would never guess!"

It was so pretty to have her clinging to me in that way, hiding her 
face, and to know that she was not crying in sorrow but in a little 
glow of joy, and pride, and hope, that I would not help her just 
yet.

"He says--I know it's very foolish, we are both so young--but he 
says," with a burst of tears, "that he loves me dearly, Esther."

"Does he indeed?" said I.  "I never heard of such a thing!  Why, my 
pet of pets, I could have told you that weeks and weeks ago!"

To see Ada lift up her flushed face in joyful surprise, and hold me 
round the neck, and laugh, and cry, and blush, was so pleasant!

"Why, my darling," said I, "what a goose you must take me for!  Your 
cousin Richard has been loving you as plainly as he could for I 
don't know how long!"

"And yet you never said a word about it!" cried Ada, kissing me.

"No, my love," said I.  "I waited to be told."

"But now I have told you, you don't think it wrong of me, do you?" 
returned Ada.  She might have coaxed me to say no if I had been the 
hardest-hearted duenna in the world.  Not being that yet, I said no 
very freely.

"And now," said I, "I know the worst of it."

"Oh, that's not quite the worst of it, Esther dear!" cried Ada, 
holding me tighter and laying down her face again upon my breast.

"No?" said I.  "Not even that?"

"No, not even that!" said Ada, shaking her head.

"Why, you never mean to say--" I was beginning in joke.

But Ada, looking up and smiling through her tear's, cried, "Yes, I 
do!  You know, you know I do!" And then sobbed out, "With all my 
heart I do!  With all my whole heart, Esther!"

I told her, laughing, why I had known that, too, just as well as I 
had known the other!  And we sat before the fire, and I had all the 
talking to myself for a little while (though there was not much of 
it); and Ada was soon quiet and happy.

"Do you think my cousin John knows, dear Dame Durden?" she asked.

"Unless my cousin John is blind, my pet," said I, "I should think my 
cousin John knows pretty well as much as we know."

"We want to speak to him before Richard goes," said Ada timidly, 
"and we wanted you to advise us, and to tell him so.  Perhaps you 
wouldn't mind Richard's coming in, Dame Durden?"

"Oh!  Richard is outside, is he, my dear?" said I.

"I am not quite certain," returned Ada with a bashful simplicity 
that would have won my heart if she had not won it long before, "but 
I think he's waiting at the door."

There he was, of course.  They brought a chair on either side of me, 
and put me between them, and really seemed to have fallen in love 
with me instead of one another, they were so confiding, and so 
trustful, and so fond of me.  They went on in their own wild way for 
a little while--I never stopped them; I enjoyed it too much myself--
and then we gradually fell to considering how young they were, and 
how there must be a lapse of several years before this early love 
could come to anything, and how it could come to happiness only if 
it were real and lasting and inspired them with a steady resolution 
to do their duty to each other, with constancy, fortitude, and 
perseverance, each always for the other's sake.  Well!  Richard said 
that he would work his fingers to the bone for Ada, and Ada said 
that she would work her fingers to the bone for Richard, and they 
called me all sorts of endearing and sensible names, and we sat 
there, advising and talking, half the night.  Finally, before we 
parted, I gave them my promise to speak to their cousin John to-
morrow.

So, when to-morrow came, I went to my guardian after breakfast, in 
the room that was our town-substitute for the growlery, and told him 
that I had it in trust to tell him something.

"Well, little woman," said he, shutting up his book, "if you have 
accepted the trust, there can be no harm in it."

"I hope not, guardian," said I.  "I can guarantee that there is no 
secrecy in it.  For it only happened yesterday."

"Aye?  And what is it, Esther?"

"Guardian," said I, "you remember the happy night when first we came 
down to Bleak House?  When Ada was singing in the dark room?"

I wished to call to his remembrance the look he had given me then.  
Unless I am much mistaken, I saw that I did so.

"Because--" said I with a little hesitation.

"Yes, my dear!" said he.  "Don't hurry."

"Because," said I, "Ada and Richard have fallen in love.  And have 
told each other so."

"Already!" cried my guardian, quite astonished.

"Yes!" said I.  "And to tell you the truth, guardian, I rather 
expected it."

"The deuce you did!" said he.

He sat considering for a minute or two, with his smile, at once so 
handsome and so kind, upon his changing face, and then requested me 
to let them know that he wished to see them.  When they came, he 
encircled Ada with one arm in his fatherly way and addressed himself 
to Richard with a cheerful gravity.

"Rick," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I am glad to have won your confidence.  
I hope to preserve it.  When I contemplated these relations between 
us four which have so brightened my life and so invested it with new 
interests and pleasures, I certainly did contemplate, afar off, the 
possibility of you and your pretty cousin here (don't be shy, Ada, 
don't be shy, my dear!) being in a mind to go through life together.  
I saw, and do see, many reasons to make it desirable.  But that was 
afar off, Rick, afar off!"

"We look afar off, sir," returned Richard.

"Well!" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "That's rational.  Now, hear me, my 
dears!  I might tell you that you don't know your own minds yet, 
that a thousand things may happen to divert you from one another, 
that it is well this chain of flowers you have taken up is very 
easily broken, or it might become a chain of lead.  But I will not 
do that.  Such wisdom will come soon enough, I dare say, if it is to 
come at all.  I will assume that a few years hence you will be in 
your hearts to one another what you are to-day.  All I say before 
speaking to you according to that assumption is, if you DO change--
if you DO come to find that you are more commonplace cousins to each 
other as man and woman than you were as boy and girl (your manhood 
will excuse me, Rick!)--don't be ashamed still to confide in me, for 
there will be nothing monstrous or uncommon in it.  I am only your 
friend and distant kinsman.  I have no power over you whatever.  But 
I wish and hope to retain your confidence if I do nothing to forfeit 
it."

"I am very sure, sir," returned Richard, "that I speak for Ada too 
when I say that you have the strongest power over us both--rooted in 
respect, gratitude, and affection--strengthening every day."

"Dear cousin John," said Ada, on his shoulder, "my father's place 
can never be empty again.  All the love and duty I could ever have 
rendered to him is transferred to you."

"Come!" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "Now for our assumption.  Now we lift 
our eyes up and look hopefully at the distance!  Rick, the world is 
before you; and it is most probable that as you enter it, so it will 
receive you.  Trust in nothing but in Providence and your own 
efforts.  Never separate the two, like the heathen waggoner.  
Constancy in love is a good thing, but it means nothing, and is 
nothing, without constancy in every kind of effort.  If you had the 
abilities of all the great men, past and present, you could do 
nothing well without sincerely meaning it and setting about it.  If 
you entertain the supposition that any real success, in great things 
or in small, ever was or could be, ever will or can be, wrested from 
Fortune by fits and starts, leave that wrong idea here or leave your 
cousin Ada here."

"I will leave IT here, sir," replied Richard smiling, "if I brought 
it here just now (but I hope I did not), and will work my way on to 
my cousin Ada in the hopeful distance."

"Right!" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "If you are not to make her happy, why 
should you pursue her?"

"I wouldn't make her unhappy--no, not even for her love," retorted 
Richard proudly.

"Well said!" cried Mr. Jarndyce.  "That's well said!  She remains 
here, in her home with me.  Love her, Rick, in your active life, no 
less than in her home when you revisit it, and all will go well.  
Otherwise, all will go ill.  That's the end of my preaching.  I 
think you and Ada had better take a walk."

Ada tenderly embraced him, and Richard heartily shook hands with 
him, and then the cousins went out of the room, looking back again 
directly, though, to say that they would wait for me.

The door stood open, and we both followed them with our eyes as 
they passed down the adjoining room, on which the sun was shining, 
and out at its farther end.  Richard with his head bent, and her 
hand drawn through his arm, was talking to her very earnestly; and 
she looked up in his face, listening, and seemed to see nothing 
else.  So young, so beautiful, so full of hope and promise, they 
went on lightly through the sunlight as their own happy thoughts 
might then be traversing the years to come and making them all 
years of brightness.  So they passed away into the shadow and were 
gone.  It was only a burst of light that had been so radiant.  The 
room darkened as they went out, and the sun was clouded over.

"Am I right, Esther?" said my guardian when they were gone.

He was so good and wise to ask ME whether he was right!

"Rick may gain, out of this, the quality he wants.  Wants, at the 
core of so much that is good!" said Mr. Jarndyce, shaking his head.  
"I have said nothing to Ada, Esther.  She has her friend and 
counsellor always near."  And he laid his hand lovingly upon my 
head.

I could not help showing that I was a little moved, though I did 
all I could to conceal it.

"Tut tut!" said he.  "But we must take care, too, that our little 
woman's life is not all consumed in care for others."

"Care?  My dear guardian, I believe I am the happiest creature in 
the world!"

"I believe so, too," said he.  "But some one may find out what 
Esther never will--that the little woman is to be held in 
remembrance above all other people!"

I have omitted to mention in its place that there was some one else 
at the family dinner party.  It was not a lady.  It was a 
gentleman.  It was a gentleman of a dark complexion--a young 
surgeon.  He was rather reserved, but I thought him very sensible 
and agreeable.  At least, Ada asked me if I did not, and I said 
yes.



CHAPTER XIV

Deportment


Richard left us on the very next evening to begin his new career, 
and committed Ada to my charge with great love for her and great 
trust in me.  It touched me then to reflect, and it touches me now, 
more nearly, to remember (having what I have to tell) how they both 
thought of me, even at that engrossing time.  I was a part of all 
their plans, for the present and the future, I was to write Richard 
once a week, making my faithful report of Ada, who was to write to 
him every alternate day.  I was to be informed, under his own hand, 
of all his labours and successes; I was to observe how resolute and 
persevering he would be; I was to be Ada's bridesmaid when they 
were married; I was to live with them afterwards; I was to keep all 
the keys of their house; I was to be made happy for ever and a day.

"And if the suit SHOULD make us rich, Esther--which it may, you 
know!" said Richard to crown all.

A shade crossed Ada's face.

"My dearest Ada," asked Richard, "why not?"

"It had better declare us poor at once," said Ada.

"Oh! I don't know about that," returned Richard, "but at all 
events, it won't declare anything at once.  It hasn't declared 
anything in heaven knows how many years."

"Too true," said Ada.

"Yes, but," urged Richard, answering what her look suggested rather 
than her words, "the longer it goes on, dcar cousin, the nearer it 
must be to a settlement one way or other.  Now, is not that 
reasonable?"

"You know best, Richard.  But I am afraid if we trust to it, it 
will make us unhappy."

"But, my Ada, we are not going to trust to it!" cried Richard 
gaily.  "We know it better than to trust to it.  We only say that 
if it SHOULD make us rich, we have no constitutional objection to 
being rich.  The court is, by solemn settlement of law, our grim 
old guardian, and we are to suppose that what it gives us (when it 
gives us anything) is our right.  It is not necessary to quarrel 
with our right."

"No," Said Ada, "but it may be better to forget all about it."

"Well, well," cried Richard, "then we will forget all about it!  We 
consign the whole thing to oblivion.  Dame Durden puts on her 
approving face, and it's done!"

"Dame Durden's approving face," said I, looking out of the box in 
which I was packing his books, "was not very visible when you 
called it by that name; but it does approve, and she thinks you 
can't do better."

So, Richard said there was an end of it, and immediately began, on 
no other foundation, to build as many castles in the air as would 
man the Great Wall of China.  He went away in high spirits.  Ada 
and I, prepared to miss him very much, commenced our quieter 
career.

On our arrival in London, we had called with Mr. Jarndyce at Mrs. 
Jellyby's but had not been so fortunate as to find her at home.  It 
appeared that she had gone somewhere to a tea-drinking and had 
taken Miss Jellyby with her.  Besides the tea-drinking, there was 
to be some considerable speech-making and letter-writing on the 
general merits of the cultivation of coffee, conjointly with 
natives, at the Settlement of Borrioboola-Gha.  All this involved, 
no doubt, sufficient active exercise of pen and ink to make her 
daughter's part in the proceedings anything but a holiday.

It being now beyond the time appointed for Mrs. Jellyby's return, 
we called again.  She was in town, but not at home, having gone to 
Mile End directly after breakfast on some Borrioboolan business, 
arising out of a society called the East London Branch Aid 
Ramification.  As I had not seen Peepy on the occasion of our last 
call (when he was not to be found anywhere, and when the cook 
rather thought he must have strolled away with the dustman's cart), 
I now inquired for him again.  The oyster shells he had been 
building a house with were still in the passage, but he was nowhere 
discoverable, and the cook supposed that he had "gone after the 
sheep."  When we repeated, with some surprise, "The sheep?" she 
said, Oh, yes, on market days he sometimes followed them quite out 
of town and came back in such a state as never was!

I was sitting at the window with my guardian on the following 
morning, and Ada was busy writing-of course to Richard--when Miss 
Jellyby was announced, and entered, leading the identical Peepy, 
whom she had made some endeavours to render presentable by wiping 
the dirt into corners of his face and hands and making his hair 
very wet and then violently frizzling it with her fingers.  
Everything the dear child wore was either too large for him or too 
small.  Among his other contradictory decorations he had the hat of 
a bishop and the little gloves of a baby.  His boots were, on a 
small scale, the boots of a ploughman, while his legs, so crossed 
and recrossed with scratches that they looked like maps, were bare 
below a very short pair of plaid drawers finished off with two 
frills of perfectly different patterns.  The deficient buttons on 
his plaid frock had evidently been supplied from one of Mr. 
Jellyby's coats, they were so extremely brazen and so much too 
large.  Most extraordinary specimens of needlework appeared on 
several parts of his dress, where it had been hastily mended, and I 
recognized the same hand on Miss Jellyby's.  She was, however, 
unaccountably improved in her appearance and looked very pretty.  
She was conscious of poor little Peepy being but a failure after 
all her trouble, and she showed it as she came in by the way in 
which she glanced first at him and then at us.

"Oh, dear me!" said my guardian.  "Due east!"

Ada and I gave her a cordial welcome and presented her to Mr. 
Jarndyce, to whom she said as she sat down, "Ma's compliments, and 
she hopes you'll excuse her, because she's correcting proofs of the 
plan.  She's going to put out five thousand new circulars, and she 
knows you'll be interested to hear that.  I have brought one of 
them with me.  Ma's compliments."  With which she presented it 
sulkily enough.

"Thank you," said my guardian.  "I am much obliged to Mrs. Jellyby.  
Oh, dear me!  This is a very trying wind!"

We were busy with Peepy, taking off his clerical hat, asking him if 
he remembered us, and so on.  Peepy retired behind his elbow at 
first, but relented at the sight of sponge-cake and allowed me to 
take him on my lap, where he sat munching quietly.  Mr. Jarndyce 
then withdrawing into the temporary growlery, Miss Jellyby opened a 
conversation with her usual abruptness.

"We are going on just as bad as ever in Thavies Inn," said she.  "I 
have no peace of my life.  Talk of Africa!  I couldn't be worse off 
if I was a what's-his-name--man and a brother!"

I tried to say something soothing.

"Oh, it's of no use, Miss Summerson," exclaimed Miss Jellyby, 
"though I thank you for the kind intention all the same.  I know 
how I am used, and I am not to be talked over.  YOU wouldn't be 
talked over if you were used so.  Peepy, go and play at Wild Beasts 
under the piano!"

"I shan't!" said Peepy.

"Very well, you ungrateful, naughty, hard-hearted boy!" returned 
Miss Jellyby with tears in her eyes.  "I'll never take pains to 
dress you any more."

"Yes, I will go, Caddy!" cried Peepy, who was really a good child 
and who was so moved by his sister's vexation that he went at once.

"It seems a little thing to cry about," said poor Miss Jellyby 
apologetically, "but I am quite worn out.  I was directing the new 
circulars till two this morning.  I detest the whole thing so that 
that alone makes my head ache till I can't see out of my eyes.  And 
look at that poor unfortunate child!  Was there ever such a fright 
as he is!"

Peepy, happily unconscious of the defects in his appearance, sat on 
the carpet behind one of the legs of the piano, looking calmly out 
of his den at us while he ate his cake.

"I have sent him to the other end of the room," observed Miss 
Jellyby, drawing her chair nearer ours, "because I don't want him 
to hear the conversation.  Those little things are so sharp!  I was 
going to say, we really are going on worse than ever.  Pa will be a 
bankrupt before long, and then I hope Ma will be satisfied.  
There'll he nobody but Ma to thank for it."

We said we hoped Mr. Jellyby's affairs were not in so bad a state 
as that.

"It's of no use hoping, though it's very kind of you," returned 
Miss Jellyby, shaking her head.  "Pa told me only yesterday morning 
(and dreadfully unhappy he is) that he couldn't weather the storm.  
I should be surprised if he could.  When all our tradesmen send 
into our house any stuff they like, and the servants do what they 
like with it, and I have no time to improve things if I knew how, 
and Ma don't care about anything, I should like to make out how Pa 
is to weather the storm.  I declare if I was Pa, I'd run away."

"My dear!" said I, smiling.  "Your papa, no doubt, considers his 
family."

"Oh, yes, his family is all very fine, Miss Summerson," replied 
Miss Jellyby; "but what comfort is his family to him?  His family 
is nothing but bills, dirt, waste, noise, tumbles downstairs, 
confusion, and wretchedness.  His scrambling home, from week's end 
to week's end, is like one great washing-day--only nothing's 
washed!"

Miss Jellyby tapped her foot upon the floor and wiped her eyes.

"I am sure I pity Pa to that degree," she said, "and am so angry 
with Ma that I can't find words to express myself!  However, I am 
not going to bear it, I am determined.  I won't be a slave all my 
life, and I won't submit to be proposed to by Mr. Quale.  A pretty 
thing, indeed, to marry a philanthropist. As if I hadn't had enough 
of THAT!" said poor Miss Jellyby.

I must confess that I could not help feeling rather angry with Mrs. 
Jellyby myself, seeing and hearing this neglected girl and knowing 
how much of bitterly satirical truth there was in what she said.

"If it wasn't that we had been intimate when you stopped at our 
house," pursued Miss Jellyby, "I should have been ashamed to come 
here to-day, for I know what a figure I must seem to you two.  But 
as it is, I made up my mind to call, especially as I am not likely 
to see you again the next time you come to town."

She said this with such great significance that Ada and I glanced 
at one another, foreseeing something more.

"No!" said Miss Jellyby, shaking her head.  "Not at all likely!  I 
know I may trust you two.  I am sure you won't betray me.  I am 
engaged."

"Without their knowledge at home?" said I.

"Why, good gracious me, Miss Summerson," she returned, justifying 
herself in a fretful but not angry manner, "how can it be 
otherwise?  You know what Ma is--and I needn't make poor Pa more 
miserable by telling HIM."

"But would it not he adding to his unhappiness to marry without his 
knowledge or consent, my dear?" said I.

"No," said Miss Jellyby, softening.  ""I hope not.  I should try to 
make him happy and comfortable when he came to see me, and Peepy 
and the others should take it in turns to come and stay with me, 
and they should have some care taken of them then."

There was a good deal of affection in poor Caddy.  She softened 
more and more while saying this and cried so much over the unwonted 
little home-picture she had raised in her mind that Peepy, in his 
cave under the piano, was touched, and turned himself over on his 
back with loud lamentations.  It was not until I had brought him to 
kiss his sister, and had restored him to his place on my lap, and 
had shown him that Caddy was laughing (she laughed expressly for 
the purpose), that we could recall his peace of mind; even then it 
was for some time conditional on his taking us in turns by the chin 
and smoothing our faces all over with his hand.  At last, as his 
spirits were not equal to the piano, we put him on a chair to look 
out of window; and Miss Jellyby, holding him by one leg, resumed 
her confidence.

"It began in your coming to our house," she said.

We naturally asked how.

"I felt I was so awkward," she replied, "that I made up my mind to 
be improved in that respect at all events and to learn to dance.  I 
told Ma I was ashamed of myself, and I must be taught to dance.  Ma 
looked at me in that provoking way of hers as if I wasn't in sight, 
but I was quite determined to be taught to dance, and so I went to 
Mr. Turveydrop's Academy in Newman Street."

"And was it there, my dear--" I began.

"Yes, it was there," said Caddy, "and I am engaged to Mr. 
Turveydrop.  There are two Mr. Turveydrops, father and son.  My Mr. 
Turveydrop is the son, of course.  I only wish I had been better 
brought up and was likely to make him a better wife, for I am very 
fond of him."

"I am sorry to hear this," said I, "I must confess."

"I don't know why you should be sorry," she retorted a little 
anxiously, "but I am engaged to Mr. Turveydrop, whether or no, and 
he is very fond of me.  It's a secret as yet, even on his side, 
because old Mr. Turveydrop has a share in the connexion and it 
might break his heart or give him some other shock if he was told 
of it abruptly.  Old Mr. Turveydrop is a very gentlemanly man 
indeed--very gentlemanly."

"Does his wife know of it?" asked Ada.

"Old Mr. Turveydrop's wife, Miss Clare?" returned Miss Jellyby, 
opening her eyes.  "There's no such person.  He is a widower."

We were here interrupted by Peepy, whose leg had undergone so much 
on account of his sister's unconsciously jerking it like a bell-
rope whenever she was emphatic that the afflicted child now 
bemoaned his sufferings with a very low-spirited noise.  As he 
appealed to me for compassion, and as I was only a listener, I 
undertook to hold him.  Miss Jellyby proceeded, after begging 
Peepy's pardon with a kiss and assuring him that she hadn't meant 
to do it.

"That's the state of the case," said Caddy.  "If I ever blame 
myself, I still think it's Ma's fault.  We are to be married 
whenever we can, and then I shall go to Pa at the office and write 
to Ma.  It won't much agitate Ma; I am only pen and ink to HER.  
One great comfort is," said Caddy with a sob, "that I shall never 
hear of Africa after I am married.  Young Mr. Turveydrop hates it 
for my sake, and if old Mr. Turveydrop knows there is such a place, 
it's as much as he does."

"It was he who was very gentlemanly, I think!" said I.

"Very gentlemanly indeed," said Caddy.  "He is celebrated almost 
everywhere for his deportment."

"Does he teach?" asked Ada.

"No, he don't teach anything in particular," replied Caddy.  "But 
his deportment is beautiful."

Caddy went on to say with considerable hesitation and reluctance 
that there was one thing more she wished us to know, and felt we 
ought to know, and which she hoped would not offend us.  It was 
that she had improved her acquaintance with Miss Flite, the little 
crazy old lady, and that she frequently went there early in the 
morning and met her lover for a few minutes before breakfast--only 
for a few minutes.  "I go there at other times," said Caddy, "but 
Prince does not come then.  Young Mr. Turveydrop's name is Prince; 
I wish it wasn't, because it sounds like a dog, but of course be 
didn't christen himself.  Old Mr. Turveydrop had him christened 
Prince in remembrance of the Prince Regent.  Old Mr. Turveydrop 
adored the Prince Regent on account of his deportment.  I hope you 
won't think the worse of me for having made these little 
appointments at Miss Flite's, where I first went with you, because 
I like the poor thing for her own sake and I believe she likes me.  
If you could see young Mr. Turveydrop, I am sure you would think 
well of him--at least, I am sure you couldn't possibly think any 
ill of him.  I am going there now for my lesson.  I couldn't ask 
you to go with me, Miss Summerson; but if you would," said Caddy, 
who had said all this earnestly and tremblingly, "I should be very 
glad--very glad."

It happened that we had arranged with my guardian to go to Miss 
Flite's that day.  We had told him of our former visit, and our 
account had interested him; but something had always happened to 
prevent our going there again.  As I trusted that I might have 
sufficient influence with Miss Jellyby to prevent her taking any 
very rash step if I fully accepted the confidence she was so 
willing to place in me, poor girl, I proposed that she and I and 
Peepy should go to the academy and afterwards meet my guardian and 
Ada at Miss Flite's, whose name I now learnt for the first time.  
This was on condition that Miss Jellyby and Peepy should come back 
with us to dinner.  The last article of the agreement being 
joyfully acceded to by both, we smartened Peepy up a little with 
the assistance of a few pins, some soap and water, and a hair-
brush, and went out, bending our steps towards Newman Street, which 
was very near.

I found the academy established in a sufficiently dingy house at 
the corner of an archway, with busts in all the staircase windows.  
In the same house there were also established, as I gathered from 
the plates on the door, a drawing-master, a coal-merchant (there 
was, certainly, no room for his coals), and a lithographic artist.  
On the plate which, in size and situation, took precedence of all 
the rest, I read, MR. TURVEYDROP.  The door was open, and the hall 
was blocked up by a grand piano, a harp, and several other musical 
instruments in cases, all in progress of removal, and all looking 
rakish in the daylight.  Miss Jellyby informed me that the academy 
had been lent, last night, for a concert.

We went upstairs--it had been quite a fine house once, when it was 
anybody's business to keep it clean and fresh, and nobody's 
business to smoke in it all day--and into Mr. Turveydrop's great 
room, which was built out into a mews at the back and was lighted 
by a skylight.  It was a bare, resounding room smelling of stables, 
with cane forms along the walls, and the walls ornamented at 
regular intervals with painted lyres and little cut-glass branches 
for candles, which seemed to be shedding their old-fashioned drops 
as other branches might shed autumn leaves.  Several young lady 
pupils, ranging from thirteen or fourteen years of age to two or 
three and twenty, were assembled; and I was looking among them for 
their instructor when Caddy, pinching my arm, repeated the ceremony 
of introduction.  "Miss Summerson, Mr. Prince Turveydrop!"

I curtsied to a little blue-eyed fair man of youthful appearance 
with flaxen hair parted in the middle and curling at the ends all 
round his head.  He had a little fiddle, which we used to call at 
school a kit, under his left arm, and its little bow in the same 
hand.  His little dancing-shoes were particularly diminutive, and 
he had a little innocent, feminine manner which not only appealed 
to me in an amiable way, but made this singular effect upon me, 
that I received the impression that he was like his mother and that 
his mother had not been much considered or well used.

"I am very happy to see Miss Jellyby's friend," he said, bowing low 
to me.  "I began to fear," with timid tenderness, "as it was past 
the usual time, that Miss Jellyby was not coming."

"I beg you will have the goodness to attribute that to me, who have 
detained her, and to receive my excuses, sir," said I.

"Oh, dear!" said he.

"And pray," I entreated, "do not allow me to be the cause of any 
more delay."

With that apology I withdrew to a seat between Peepy (who, being 
well used to it, had already climbed into a corner place) and an 
old lady of a censorious countenance whose two nieces were in the 
class and who was very indignant with Peepy's boots.  Prince 
Turveydrop then tinkled the strings of his kit with his fingers, 
and the young ladies stood up to dance.  Just then there appeared 
from a side-door old Mr. Turveydrop, in the full lustre of his 
deportment.

He was a fat old gentleman with a false complexion, false teeth, 
false whiskers, and a wig.  He had a fur collar, and he had a 
padded breast to his coat, which only wanted a star or a broad blue 
ribbon to be complete.  He was pinched in, and swelled out, and got 
up, and strapped down, as much as he could possibly bear.  He had 
such a neckcloth on (puffing his very eyes out of their natural 
shape), and his chin and even his ears so sunk into it, that it 
seemed as though be must inevitably double up if it were cast 
loose.  He had under his arm a hat of great size and weight, 
shelving downward from the crown to the brim, and in his hand a 
pair of white gloves with which he flapped it as he stood poised on 
one leg in a high-shouldered, round-elbowed state of elegance not 
to be surpassed.  He had a cane, he had an eye-glass, he had a 
snuff-box, he had rings, he had wristbands, he had everything but 
any touch of nature; he was not like youth, he was not like age, he 
was not like anything in the world but a model of deportment.

"Father!  A visitor.  Miss Jellyby's friend, Miss Summerson."

"Distinguished," said Mr. Turveydrop, "by Miss Summerson's 
presence."  As he bowed to me in that tight state, I almost believe 
I saw creases come into the whites of his eyes.

"My father," said the son, aside, to me with quite an affecting 
belief in him, "is a celebrated character.  My father is greatly 
admired."

"Go on, Prince!  Go on!" said Mr. Turveydrop, standing with his 
back to the fire and waving his gloves condescendingly.  "Go on, my 
son!"

At this command, or by this gracious permission, the lesson went 
on.  Prince Turveydrop sometimes played the kit, dancing; sometimes 
played the piano, standing; sometimes hummed the tune with what 
little breath he could spare, while he set a pupil right; always 
conscientiously moved with the least proficient through every step 
and every part of the figure; and never rested for an instant.  His 
distinguished father did nothing whatever but stand before the 
fire, a model of deportment.

"And he never does anything else," said the old lady of the 
censorious countenance.  "Yet would you believe that it's HIS name 
on the door-plate?"

"His son's name is the same, you know," said I.

"He wouldn't let his son have any name if he could take it from 
him," returned the old lady.  "Look at the son's dress!"  It 
certainly was plain--threadbare--almost shabby.  "Yet the father 
must be garnished and tricked out," said the old lady, "because of 
his deportment.  I'd deport him!  Transport him would be better!"

I felt curious to know more concerning this person.  I asked, "Does 
he give lessons in deportment now?"

"Now!" returned the old lady shortly.  "Never did."

After a moment's consideration, I suggested that perhaps fencing 
had been his accomplishment.

"I don't believe he can fence at all, ma'am," said the old lady.

I looked surprised and inquisitive.  The old lady, becoming more 
and more incensed against the master of deportment as she dwelt 
upon the subject, gave me some particulars of his career, with 
strong assurances that they were mildly stated.

He had married a meek little dancing-mistress, with a tolerable 
connexion (having never in his life before done anything but deport 
himself), and had worked her to death, or had, at the best, 
suffered her to work herself to death, to maintain him in those 
expenses which were indispensable to his position.  At once to 
exhibit his deportment to the best models and to keep the best 
models constantly before himself, he had found it necessary to 
frequent all public places of fashionable and lounging resort, to 
be seen at Brighton and elsewhere at fashionable times, and to lead 
an idle life in the very best clothes.  To enable him to do this, 
the affectionate little dancing-mistress had toiled and laboured 
and would have toiled and laboured to that hour if her strength had 
lasted so long.  For the mainspring of the story was that in spite 
of the man's absorbing selfishness, his wife (overpowered by his 
deportment) had, to the last, believed in him and had, on her 
death-bed, in the most moving terms, confided him to their son as 
one who had an inextinguishable claim upon him and whom he could 
never regard with too much pride and deference.  The son, 
inheriting his mother's belief, and having the deportment always 
before him, had lived and grown in the same faith, and now, at 
thirty years of age, worked for his father twelve hours a day and 
looked up to him with veneration on the old imaginary pinnacle.

"The airs the fellow gives himself!" said my informant, shaking her 
head at old Mr. Turveydrop with speechless indignation as he drew 
on his tight gloves, of course unconscious of the homage she was 
rendering.  "He fully believes he is one of the aristocracy!  And 
he is so condescending to the son he so egregiously deludes that 
you might suppose him the most virtuous of parents.  Oh!" said the 
old lady, apostrophizing him with infinite vehemence.  "I could 
bite you!"

I could not help being amused, though I heard the old lady out with 
feelings of real concern.  It was difficult to doubt her with the 
father and son before me.  What I might have thought of them 
without the old lady's account, or what I might have thought of the 
old lady's account without them, I cannot say.  There was a fitness 
of things in the whole that carried conviction with it.

My eyes were yet wandering, from young Mr. Turveydrop working so 
hard, to old Mr. Turveydrop deporting himself so beautifully, when 
the latter came ambling up to me and entered into conversation.

He asked me, first of all, whether I conferred a charm and a 
distinction on London by residing in it?  I did not think it 
necessary to reply that I was perfectly aware I should not do that, 
in any case, but merely told him where I did reside.

"A lady so graceful and accomplished," he said, kissing his right 
glove and afterwards extending it towards the pupils, "will look 
leniently on the deficiencies here.  We do our best to polish--
polish--polish!"

He sat down beside me, taking some pains to sit on the form.  I 
thought, in imitation of the print of his illustrious model on the 
sofa.  And really he did look very like it.

"To polish--polish--polish!" he repeated, taking a pinch of snuff 
and gently fluttering his fingers.  "But we are not, if I may say 
so to one formed to be graceful both by Nature and Art--" with the 
high-shouldered bow, which it seemed impossible for him to make 
without lifting up his eyebrows and shutting his eyes "--we are not 
what we used to be in point of deportment."

"Are we not, sir?" said I.

"We have degenerated," he returned, shaking his head, which he 
could do to a very limited extent in his cravat.  "A levelling age 
is not favourable to deportment.  It develops vulgarity.  Perhaps I 
speak with some little partiality.  It may not be for me to say 
that I have been called, for some years now, Gentleman Turveydrop, 
or that his Royal Highness the Prince Regent did me the honour to 
inquire, on my removing my hat as he drove out of the Pavilion at 
Brighton (that fine building), 'Who is he?  Who the devil is he?  
Why don't I know him?  Why hasn't he thirty thousand a year?'  But 
these are little matters of anecdote--the general property, ma'am--
still repeated occasionally among the upper classes."

"Indeed?" said I.

He replied with the high-shouldered bow.  "Where what is left among 
us of deportment," he added, "still lingers.  England--alas, my 
country!--has degenerated very much, and is degenerating every day.  
She has not many gentlemen left.  We are few.  I see nothing to 
succeed us but a race of weavers."

"One might hope that the race of gentlemen would be perpetuated 
here," said I.

"You are very good."  He smiled with a high-shouldered bow again.  
"You flatter me.  But, no--no!  I have never been able to imbue my 
poor boy with that part of his art.  Heaven forbid that I should 
disparage my dear child, but he has--no deportment."

"He appears to be an excellent master," I observed.

"Understand me, my dear madam, he IS an excellent master.  All that 
can be acquired, he has acquired.  All that can be imparted, he can 
impart.  But there ARE things--"  He took another pinch of snuff 
and made the bow again, as if to add, "This kind of thing, for 
instance."

I glanced towards the centre of the room, where Miss Jellyby's 
lover, now engaged with single pupils, was undergoing greater 
drudgery than ever.

"My amiable child," murmured Mr. Turveydrop, adjusting his cravat.

"Your son is indefatigable," said I.

"It is my reward," said Mr. Turveydrop, "to hear you say so.  In 
some respects, he treads in the footsteps of his sainted mother.  
She was a devoted creature.  But wooman, lovely wooman," said Mr. 
Turveydrop with very disagreeable gallantry, "what a sex you are!"

I rose and joined Miss Jellyby, who was by this time putting on her 
bonnet.  The time allotted to a lesson having fully elapsed, there 
was a general putting on of bonnets.  When Miss Jellyby and the 
unfortunate Prince found an opportunity to become betrothed I don't 
know, but they certainly found none on this occasion to exchange a 
dozen words.

"My dear," said Mr. Turveydrop benignly to his son, "do you know 
the hour?"

"No, father."  The son had no watch.  The father had a handsome 
gold one, which he pulled out with an air that was an example to 
mankind.

"My son," said he, "it's two o'clock.  Recollect your school at 
Kensington at three."

"That's time enough for me, father," said Prince.  "I can take a 
morsel of dinner standing and be off."

"My dear boy," returned his father, "you must be very quick.  You 
will find the cold mutton on the table."

"Thank you, father.  Are YOU off now, father?"

"Yes, my dear.  I suppose," said Mr. Turveydrop, shutting his eyes 
and lifting up his shoulders with modest consciousness, "that I 
must show myself, as usual, about town."

"You had better dine out comfortably somewhere," said his son.

"My dear child, I intend to.  I shall take my little meal, I think, 
at the French house, in the Opera Colonnade."

"That's right.  Good-bye, father!" said Prince, shaking hands.

"Good-bye, my son.  Bless you!"

Mr. Turveydrop said this in quite a pious manner, and it seemed to 
do his son good, who, in parting from him, was so pleased with him, 
so dutiful to him, and so proud of him that I almost felt as if it 
were an unkindness to the younger man not to be able to believe 
implicitly in the elder.  The few moments that were occupied by 
Prince in taking leave of us (and particularly of one of us, as I 
saw, being in the secret), enhanced my favourable impression of his 
almost childish character.  I felt a liking for him and a 
compassion for him as he put his little kit in his pocket--and with 
it his desire to stay a little while with Caddy--and went away 
good-humouredly to his cold mutton and his school at Kensington, 
that made me scarcely less irate with his father than the 
censorious old lady.

The father opened the room door for us and bowed us out in a 
manner, I must acknowledge, worthy of his shining original.  In the 
same style he presently passed us on the other side of the street, 
on his way to the aristocratic part of the town, where he was going 
to show himself among the few other gentlemen left.  For some 
moments, I was so lost in reconsidering what I had heard and seen 
in Newman Street that I was quite unable to talk to Caddy or even 
to fix my attention on what she said to me, especially when I began 
to inquire in my mind whether there were, or ever had been, any 
other gentlemen, not in the dancing profession, who lived and 
founded a reputation entirely on their deportment.  This became so 
bewildering and suggested the possibility of so many Mr. 
Turveydrops that I said, "Esther, you must make up your mind to 
abandon this subject altogether and attend to Caddy."  I 
accordingly did so, and we chatted all the rest of the way to 
Lincoln's Inn.

Caddy told me that her lover's education had been so neglected that 
it was not always easy to read his notes.  She said if he were not 
so anxious about his spelling and took less pains to make it clear, 
he would do better; but he put so many unnecessary letters into 
short words that they sometimes quite lost their English 
appearance.  "He does it with the best intention," observed Caddy, 
"but it hasn't the effect he means, poor fellow!"  Caddy then went 
on to reason, how could he be expected to be a scholar when he had 
passed his whole life in the dancing-school and had done nothing 
but teach and fag, fag and teach, morning, noon, and night!  And 
what did it matter?  She could write letters enough for both, as 
she knew to her cost, and it was far better for him to be amiable 
than learned.  "Besides, it's not as if I was an accomplished girl 
who had any right to give herself airs," said Caddy.  "I know 
little enough, I am sure, thanks to Ma!

"There's another thing I want to tell you, now we are alone," 
continued Caddy, "which I should not have liked to mention unless 
you had seen Prince, Miss Summerson.  You know what a house ours 
is.  It's of no use my trying to learn anything that it would be 
useful for Prince's wife to know in OUR house.  We live in such a 
state of muddle that it's impossible, and I have only been more 
disheartened whenever I have tried.  So I get a little practice 
with--who do you think?  Poor Miss Flite!  Early in the morning I 
help her to tidy her room and clean her birds, and I make her cup 
of coffee for her (of course she taught me), and I have learnt to 
make it so well that Prince says it's the very best coffee he ever 
tasted, and would quite delight old Mr. Turveydrop, who is very 
particular indeed about his coffee.  I can make little puddings 
too; and I know how to buy neck of mutton, and tea, and sugar, and 
butter, and a good many housekeeping things.  I am not clever at my 
needle, yet," said Caddy, glancing at the repairs on Peepy's frock, 
"but perhaps I shall improve, and since I have been engaged to 
Prince and have been doing all this, I have felt better-tempered, I 
hope, and more forgiving to Ma.  It rather put me out at first this 
morning to see you and Miss Clare looking so neat and pretty and to 
feel ashamed of Peepy and myself too, but on the whole I hope I am 
better-tempered than I was and more forgiving to Ma."

The poor girl, trying so hard, said it from her heart, and touched 
mine.  "Caddy, my love," I replied, "I begin to have a great 
affection for you, and I hope we shall become friends."

"Oh, do you?" cried Caddy.  "How happy that would make me!"

"My dear Caddy," said I, "let us be friends from this time, and let 
us often have a chat about these matters and try to find the right 
way through them."  Caddy was overjoyed.  I said everything I could 
in my old-fashioned way to comfort and encourage her, and I would 
not have objected to old Mr. Turveydrop that day for any smaller 
consideration than a settlement on his daughter-in-law.

By this time we were come to Mr. Krook's, whose private door stood 
open.  There was a bill, pasted on the door-post, announcing a room 
to let on the second floor.  It reminded Caddy to tell me as we 
proceeded upstairs that there had been a sudden death there and an 
inquest and that our little friend had been ill of the fright.  The 
door and window of the vacant room being open, we looked in.  It 
was the room with the dark door to which Miss Flite had secretly 
directed my attention when I was last in the house.  A sad and 
desolate place it was, a gloomy, sorrowful place that gave me a 
strange sensation of mournfulness and even dread.  "You look pale," 
said Caddy when we came out, "and cold!"  I felt as if the room had 
chilled me.

We had walked slowly while we were talking, and my guardian and Ada 
were here before us.  We found them in Miss Flite's garret.  They 
were looking at the birds, while a medical gentleman who was so 
good as to attend Miss Flite with much solicitude and compassion 
spoke with her cheerfully by the fire.

"I have finished my professional visit," he said, coming forward.  
"Miss Flite is much better and may appear in court (as her mind is 
set upon it) to-morrow.  She has been greatly missed there, I 
understand."

Miss Flite received the compliment with complacency and dropped a 
general curtsy to us.

"Honoured, indeed," said she, "by another visit from the wards in 
Jarndyce!  Ve-ry happy to receive Jarndyce of Bleak House beneath 
my humble roof!" with a special curtsy.  "Fitz-Jarndyce, my dear"--
she had bestowed that name on Caddy, it appeared, and always called 
her by it--"a double welcome!"

"Has she been very ill?" asked Mr. Jarndyce of the gentleman whom 
we had found in attendance on her.  She answered for herself 
directly, though he had put the question in a whisper.

"Oh, decidedly unwell!  Oh, very unwell indeed," she said 
confidentially.  "Not pain, you know--trouble.  Not bodily so much 
as nervous, nervous!  The truth is," in a subdued voice and 
trembling, "we have had death here.  There was poison in the house.  
I am very susceptible to such horrid things.  It frightened me.  
Only Mr. Woodcourt knows how much.  My physician, Mr, Woodcourt!" 
with great stateliness.  "The wards in Jarndyce--Jarndyce of Bleak 
House--Fitz-Jarndyce!"

"Miss Flite," said Mr. Woodcourt in a grave kind of voice, as if he 
were appealing to her while speaking to us, and laying his hand 
gently on her arm, "Miss Flite describes her illness with her usual 
accuracy.  She was alarmed by an occurrence in the house which 
might have alarmed a stronger person, and was made ill by the 
distress and agitation.  She brought me here in the first hurry of 
the discovery, though too late for me to be of any use to the 
unfortunate man.  I have compensated myself for that disappointment 
by coming here since and being of some small use to her."

"The kindest physician in the college," whispered Miss Flite to me.  
"I expect a judgment.  On the day of judgment.  And shall then 
confer estates."

"She will be as well in a day or two," said Mr. Woodcourt, looking 
at her with an observant smile, "as she ever will be.  In other 
words, quite well of course.  Have you heard of her good fortune?"

"Most extraordinary!" said Miss Flite, smiling brightly.  "You 
never heard of such a thing, my dear!  Every Saturday, Conversation 
Kenge or Guppy (clerk to Conversation K.) places in my hand a paper 
of shillings.  Shillings.  I assure you!  Always the same number in 
the paper.  Always one for every day in the week.  Now you know, 
really!  So well-timed, is it not?  Ye-es!  From whence do these 
papers come, you say?  That is the great question.  Naturally.  
Shall I tell you what I think?  I think," said Miss Flite, drawing 
herself back with a very shrewd look and shaking her right 
forefinger in a most significant manner, "that the Lord Chancellor, 
aware of the length of time during which the Great Seal has been 
open (for it has been open a long time!), forwards them.  Until the 
judgment I expect is given.  Now that's very creditable, you know.  
To confess in that way that he IS a little slow for human life.  So 
delicate!  Attending court the other day--I attend it regularly, 
with my documents--I taxed him with it, and he almost confessed.  
That is, I smiled at him from my bench, and HE smiled at me from 
his bench.  But it's great good fortune, is it not?  And Fitz-
Jarndyce lays the money out for me to great advantage.  Oh, I 
assure you to the greatest advantage!"

I congratulated her (as she addressed herself to me) upon this 
fortunate addition to her income and wished her a long continuance 
of it.  I did not speculate upon the source from which it came or 
wonder whose humanity was so considerate.  My guardian stood before 
me, contemplating the birds, and I had no need to look beyond him.

"And what do you call these little fellows, ma'am?" said he in his 
pleasant voice.  "Have they any names?"

"I can answer for Miss Elite that they have," said I, "for she 
promised to tell us what they were.  Ada remembers?"

Ada remembered very well.

"Did I?" said Miss Elite.  "Who's that at my door?  What are you 
listening at my door for, Krook?"

The old man of the house, pushing it open before him, appeared 
there with his fur cap in his hand and his cat at his heels.

"I warn't listening, Miss Flite," he said, "I was going to give a 
rap with my knuckles, only you're so quick!"

"Make your cat go down.  Drive her away!" the old lady angrily 
exclaimed.

"Bah, bah!  There ain't no danger, gentlefolks," said Mr. Krook, 
looking slowly and sharply from one to another until he had looked 
at all of us; "she'd never offer at the birds when I was here 
unless I told her to it."

"You will excuse my landlord," said the old lady with a dignified 
air.  "M, quite M!  What do you want, Krook, when I have company?"

"Hi!" said the old man.  "You know I am the Chancellor."

"Well?" returned Miss Elite.  "What of that?"

"For the Chancellor," said the old man with a chuckle, "not to be 
acquainted with a Jarndyce is queer, ain't it, Miss Flite?  
Mightn't I take the liberty?  Your servant, sir.  I know Jarndyce 
and Jarndyce a'most as well as you do, sir.  I knowed old Squire 
Tom, sir.  I never to my knowledge see you afore though, not even 
in court.  Yet, I go there a mortal sight of times in the course of 
the year, taking one day with another."

"I never go there," said Mr. Jarndyce (which he never did on any 
consideration).  "I would sooner go--somewhere else."

"Would you though?" returned Krook, grinning.  "You're bearing hard 
upon my noble and learned brother in your meaning, sir, though 
perhaps it is but nat'ral in a Jarndyce.  The burnt child, sir!  
What, you're looking at my lodger's birds, Mr. Jarndyce?"  The old 
man had come by little and little into the room until he now 
touched my guardian with his elbow and looked close up into his 
face with his spectacled eyes.  "It's one of her strange ways that 
she'll never tell the names of these birds if she can help it, 
though she named 'em all."  This was in a whisper.  "Shall I run 
'em over, Flite?" he asked aloud, winking at us and pointing at her 
as she turned away, affecting to sweep the grate.

"If you like," she answered hurriedly.

The old man, looking up at the cages after another look at us, went 
through the list.

"Hope, Joy, Youth, Peace, Rest, Life, Dust, Ashes, Waste, Want, 
Ruin, Despair, Madness, Death, Cunning, Folly, Words, Wigs, Rags, 
Sheepskin, Plunder, Precedent, Jargon, Gammon, and Spinach.  That's 
the whole collection," said the old man, "all cooped up together, 
by my noble and learned brother."

"This is a bitter wind!" muttered my guardian.

"When my noble and learned brother gives his judgment, they're to 
be let go free," said Krook, winking at us again.  "And then," he 
added, whispering and grinning, "if that ever was to happen--which 
it won't--the birds that have never been caged would kill 'em."

"If ever the wind was in the east," said my guardian, pretending to 
look out of the window for a weathercock, "I think it's there to-
day!"

We found it very difficult to get away from the house.  It was not 
Miss Flite who detained us; she was as reasonable a little creature 
in consulting the convenience of others as there possibly could be.  
It was Mr. Krook.  He seemed unable to detach himself from Mr. 
Jarndyce.  If he had been linked to him, he could hardly have 
attended him more closely.  He proposed to show us his Court of 
Chancery and all the strange medley it contained; during the whole 
of our inspection (prolonged by himself) he kept close to Mr. 
Jarndyce and sometimes detained him under one pretence or other 
until we had passed on, as if he were tormented by an inclination 
to enter upon some secret subject which he could not make up his 
mind to approach.  I cannot imagine a countenance and manner more 
singularly expressive of caution and indecision, and a perpetual 
impulse to do something he could not resolve to venture on, than 
Mr. Krook's was that day.  His watchfulness of my guardian was 
incessant.  He rarely removed his eyes from his face.  If he went 
on beside him, he observed him with the slyness of an old white 
fox.  If he went before, he looked back.  When we stood still, he 
got opposite to him, and drawing his hand across and across his 
open mouth with a curious expression of a sense of power, and 
turning up his eyes, and lowering his grey eyebrows until they 
appeared to be shut, seemed to scan every lineament of his face.

At last, having been (always attended by the cat) all over the 
house and having seen the whole stock of miscellaneous lumber, 
which was certainly curious, we came into the back part of the 
shop.  Here on the head of an empty barrel stood on end were an 
ink-bottle, some old stumps of pens, and some dirty playbills; and 
against the wall were pasted several large printed alphabets in 
several plain hands.

"What are you doing here?" asked my guardian.

"Trying to learn myself to read and write," said Krook.

"And how do you get on?"

"Slow.  Bad," returned the old man impatiently.  "It's hard at my 
time of life."

"It would be easier to be taught by some one," said my guardian.

"Aye, but they might teach me wrong!" returned the old man with a 
wonderfully suspicious flash of his eye.  "I don't know what I may 
have lost by not being learned afore.  I wouldn't like to lose 
anything by being learned wrong now."

"Wrong?" said my guardian with his good-humoured smile.  "Who do 
you suppose would teach you wrong?"

"I don't know, Mr. Jarndyce of Bleak House!" replied the old man, 
turning up his spectacles on his forehead and rubbing his hands.  
"I don't suppose as anybody would, but I'd rather trust my own self 
than another!"

These answers and his manner were strange enough to cause my 
guardian to inquire of Mr. Woodcourt, as we all walked across 
Lincoln's Inn together, whether Mr. Krook were really, as his 
lodger represented him, deranged.  The young surgeon replied, no, 
he had seen no reason to think so.  He was exceedingly distrustful, 
as ignorance usually was, and he was always more or less under the 
influence of raw gin, of which he drank great quantities and of 
which he and his back-shop, as we might have observed, smelt 
strongly; but he did not think him mad as yet.

On our way home, I so conciliated Peepy's affections by buying him 
a windmill and two flour-sacks that he would suffer nobody else to 
take off his hat and gloves and would sit nowhere at dinner but at 
my side.  Caddy sat upon the other side of me, next to Ada, to whom 
we imparted the whole history of the engagement as soon as we got 
back.  We made much of Caddy, and Peepy too; and Caddy brightened 
exceedingly; and my guardian was as merry as we were; and we were 
all very happy indeed until Caddy went home at night in a hackney-
coach, with Peepy fast asleep, but holding tight to the windmill.

I have forgotten to mention--at least I have not mentioned--that 
Mr. Woodcourt was the same dark young surgeon whom we had met at 
Mr. Badger's.  Or that Mr. Jarndyce invited him to dinner that day.  
Or that he came.  Or that when they were all gone and I said to 
Ada, "Now, my darling, let us have a little talk about Richard!"  
Ada laughed and said--

But I don't think it matters what my darling said.  She was always 
merry.



CHAPTER XV

Bell Yard


While we were in London Mr. Jarndyce was constantly beset by the 
crowd of excitable ladies and gentlemen whose proceedings had so 
much astonished us.  Mr. Quale, who presented himself soon after 
our arrival, was in all such excitements.  He seemed to project 
those two shining knobs of temples of his into everything that went 
on and to brush his hair farther and farther back, until the very 
roots were almost ready to fly out of his head in inappeasable 
philanthropy.  All objects were alike to him, but he was always 
particularly ready for anything in the way of a testimonial to any 
one.  His great power seemed to be his power of indiscriminate 
admiration.  He would sit for any length of time, with the utmost 
enjoyment, bathing his temples in the light of any order of 
luminary.  Having first seen him perfectly swallowed up in 
admiration of Mrs. Jellyby, I had supposed her to be the absorbing 
object of his devotion.  I soon discovered my mistake and found him 
to be train-bearer and organ-blower to a whole procession of 
people.

Mrs. Pardiggle came one day for a subscription to something, and 
with her, Mr. Quale.  Whatever Mrs. Pardiggle said, Mr. Quale 
repeated to us; and just as he had drawn Mrs. Jellyby out, he drew 
Mrs. Pardiggle out.  Mrs. Pardiggle wrote a letter of introduction 
to my guardian in behalf of her eloquent friend Mr. Gusher.  With 
Mr. Gusher appeared Mr. Quale again.  Mr. Gusher, being a flabby 
gentleman with a moist surface and eyes so much too small for his 
moon of a face that they seemed to have been originally made for 
somebody else, was not at first sight prepossessing; yet he was 
scarcely seated before Mr. Quale asked Ada and me, not inaudibly, 
whether he was not a great creature--which he certainly was, 
flabbily speaking, though Mr. Quale meant in intellectual beauty--
and whether we were not struck by his massive configuration of 
brow.  In short, we heard of a great many missions of various sorts 
among this set of people, but nothing respecting them was half so 
clear to us as that it was Mr. Quale's mission to be in ecstasies 
with everybody else's mission and that it was the most popular 
mission of all.

Mr. Jarndyce had fallen into this company in the tenderness of his 
heart and his earnest desire to do all the good in his power; but 
that he felt it to be too often an unsatisfactory company, where 
benevolence took spasmodic forms, where charity was assumed as a 
regular uniform by loud professors and speculators in cheap 
notoriety, vehement in profession, restless and vain in action, 
servile in the last degree of meanness to the great, adulatory of 
one another, and intolerable to those who were anxious quietly to 
help the weak from failing rather than with a great deal of bluster 
and self-laudation to raise them up a little way when they were 
down, he plainly told us.  When a testimonial was originated to Mr. 
Quale by Mr. Gusher (who had already got one, originated by Mr. 
Quale), and when Mr. Gusher spoke for an hour and a half on the 
subject to a meeting, including two charity schools of small boys 
and girls, who were specially reminded of the widow's mite, and 
requested to come forward with halfpence and be acceptable 
sacrifices, I think the wind was in the east for three whole weeks.

I mention this because I am coming to Mr. Skimpole again.  It 
seemed to me that his off-hand professions of childishness and 
carelessness were a great relief to my guardian, by contrast with 
such things, and were the more readily believed in since to find 
one perfectly undesigning and candid man among many opposites could 
not fail to give him pleasure.  I should be sorry to imply that Mr. 
Skimpole divined this and was politic; I really never understood 
him well enough to know.  What he was to my guardian, he certainly 
was to the rest of the world.

He had not been very well; and thus, though he lived in London, we 
had seen nothing of him until now.  He appeared one morning in his 
usual agreeable way and as full of pleasant spirits as ever.

Well, he said, here he was!  He had been bilious, but rich men were 
often bilious, and therefore he had been persuading himself that he 
was a man of property.  So he was, in a certain point of view--in 
his expansive intentions.  He had been enriching his medical 
attendant in the most lavish manner.  He had always doubled, and 
sometimes quadrupled, his fees.  He had said to the doctor, "Now, 
my dear doctor, it is quite a delusion on your part to suppose that 
you attend me for nothing.  I am overwhelming you with money--in my 
expansive intentions--if you only knew it!"  And really (he said) 
he meant it to that degree that he thought it much the same as 
doing it.  If he had had those bits of metal or thin paper to which 
mankind attached so much importance to put in the doctor's hand, he 
would have put them in the doctor's hand.  Not having them, he 
substituted the will for the deed.  Very well!  If he really meant 
it--if his will were genuine and real, which it was--it appeared to 
him that it was the same as coin, and cancelled the obligation.

"It may be, partly, because I know nothing of the value of money," 
said Mr. Skimpole, "but I often feel this.  It seems so reasonable!  
My butcher says to me he wants that little bill.  It's a part of 
the pleasant unconscious poetry of the man's nature that he always 
calls it a 'little' bill--to make the payment appear easy to both 
of us.  I reply to the butcher, 'My good friend, if you knew it, 
you are paid.  You haven't had the trouble of coming to ask for the 
little bill.  You are paid.  I mean it.'"

"But, suppose," said my guardian, laughing, "he had meant the meat 
in the bill, instead of providing it?"

"My dear Jarndyce," he returned, "you surprise me.  You take the 
butcher's position.  A butcher I once dealt with occupied that very 
ground.  Says he, 'Sir, why did you eat spring lamb at eighteen 
pence a pound?'  'Why did I eat spring lamb at eighteen-pence a 
pound, my honest friend?' said I, naturally amazed by the question.  
'I like spring lamb!'  This was so far convincing.  'Well, sir,' 
says he, 'I wish I had meant the lamb as you mean the money!'  'My 
good fellow,' said I, 'pray let us reason like intellectual beings.  
How could that be?  It was impossible.  You HAD got the lamb, and I 
have NOT got the money.  You couldn't really mean the lamb without 
sending it in, whereas I can, and do, really mean the money without 
paying it!'  He had not a word.  There was an end of the subject."

"Did he take no legal proceedings?" inquired my guardian.

"Yes, he took legal proceedings," said Mr. Skimpole.  "But in that 
he was influenced by passion, not by reason.  Passion reminds me of 
Boythorn.  He writes me that you and the ladies have promised him a 
short visit at his bachelor-house in Lincolnshire."

"He is a great favourite with my girls," said Mr. Jarndyce, "and I 
have promised for them."

"Nature forgot to shade him off, I think," observed Mr. Skimpole to 
Ada and me.  "A little too boisterous--like the sea.  A little too 
vehement--like a bull who has made up his mind to consider every 
colour scarlet.  But I grant a sledge-hammering sort of merit in 
him!"

I should have been surprised if those two could have thought very 
highly of one another, Mr. Boythorn attaching so much importance to 
many things and Mr. Skimpole caring so little for anything.  
Besides which, I had noticed Mr. Boythorn more than once on the 
point of breaking out into some strong opinion when Mr. Skimpole 
was referred to.  Of course I merely joined Ada in saying that we 
had been greatly pleased with him.

"He has invited me," said Mr. Skimpole; "and if a child may trust 
himself in such hands--which the present child is encouraged to do, 
with the united tenderness of two angels to guard him--I shall go.  
He proposes to frank me down and back again.  I suppose it will 
cost money?  Shillings perhaps?  Or pounds?  Or something of that 
sort?  By the by, Coavinses.  You remember our friend Coavinses, 
Miss Summerson?"

He asked me as the subject arose in his mind, in his graceful, 
light-hearted manner and without the least embarrassment.

"Oh, yes!" said I.

"Coavinses has been arrested by the Great Bailiff," said Mr. 
Skimpole.  "He will never do violence to the sunshine any more."

It quite shocked me to hear it, for I had already recalled with 
anything but a serious association the image of the man sitting on 
the sofa that night wiping his head.

"His successor informed me of it yesterday," said Mr. Skimpole.  
"His successor is in my house now--in possession, I think he calls 
it.  He came yesterday, on my blue-eyed daughter's birthday.  I put 
it to him, 'This is unreasonable and inconvenient.  If you had a 
blue-eyed daughter you wouldn't like ME to come, uninvited, on HER 
birthday?'  But he stayed."

Mr. Skimpole laughed at the pleasant absurdity and lightly touched 
the piano by which he was seated.

"And he told me," he said, playing little chords where I shall put 
full stops, "The Coavinses had left.  Three children.  No mother.  
And that Coavinses' profession.  Being unpopular.  The rising 
Coavinses.  Were at a considerable disadvantage."

Mr. Jarndyce got up, rubbing his head, and began to walk about.  
Mr. Skimpole played the melody of one of Ada's favourite songs.  
Ada and I both looked at Mr. Jarndyce, thinking that we knew what 
was passing in his mind.

After walking and stopping, and several times leaving off rubbing 
his head, and beginning again, my guardian put his hand upon the 
keys and stopped Mr. Skimpole's playing.  "I don't like this, 
Skimpole," he said thoughtfully.

Mr. Skimpole, who had quite forgotten the subject, looked up 
surprised.

"The man was necessary," pursued my guardian, walking backward and 
forward in the very short space between the piano and the end of 
the room and rubbing his hair up from the back of his head as if a 
high east wind had blown it into that form.  "If we make such men 
necessary by our faults and follies, or by our want of worldly 
knowledge, or by our misfortunes, we must not revenge ourselves 
upon them.  There was no harm in his trade.  He maintained his 
children.  One would like to know more about this."

"Oh!  Coavinses?" cried Mr. Skimpole, at length perceiving what he 
meant.  "Nothing easier.  A walk to Coavinses' headquarters, and 
you can know what you will."

Mr. Jarndyce nodded to us, who were only waiting for the signal.  
"Come!  We will walk that way, my dears.  Why not that way as soon 
as another!"  We were quickly ready and went out.  Mr. Skimpole 
went with us and quite enjoyed the expedition.  It was so new and 
so refreshing, he said, for him to want Coavinses instead of 
Coavinses wanting him!

He took us, first, to Cursitor Street, Chancery Lane, where there 
was a house with barred windows, which he called Coavinses' Castle.  
On our going into the entry and ringing a bell, a very hideous boy 
came out of a sort of office and looked at us over a spiked wicket.

"Who did you want?" said the boy, fitting two of the spikes into 
his chin.

"There was a follower, or an officer, or something, here," said Mr. 
Jarndyce, "who is dead."

"Yes?" said the boy.  "Well?"

"I want to know his name, if you please?"

"Name of Neckett," said the boy.

"And his address?"

"Bell Yard," said the boy.  "Chandler's shop, left hand side, name 
of Blinder."

"Was he--I don't know how to shape the question--" murmured my 
guardian, "industrious?"

"Was Neckett?" said the boy.  "Yes, wery much so.  He was never 
tired of watching.  He'd set upon a post at a street corner eight 
or ten hours at a stretch if he undertook to do it."

"He might have done worse," I heard my guardian soliloquize.  "He 
might have undertaken to do it and not done it.  Thank you.  That's 
all I want."

We left the boy, with his head on one side and his arms on the 
gate, fondling and sucking the spikes, and went back to Lincoln's 
Inn, where Mr. Skimpole, who had not cared to remain nearer 
Coavinses, awaited us.  Then we all went to Bell Yard, a narrow 
alley at a very short distance.  We soon found the chandler's shop.  
In it was a good-natured-looking old woman with a dropsy, or an 
asthma, or perhaps both.

"Neckett's children?" said she in reply to my inquiry.  "Yes, 
Surely, miss.  Three pair, if you please.  Door right opposite the 
stairs."  And she handed me the key across the counter.

I glanced at the key and glanced at her, but she took it for 
granted that I knew what to do with it.  As it could only be 
intended for the children's door, I came out without askmg any more 
questions and led the way up the dark stairs.  We went as quietly 
as we could, but four of us made some noise on the aged boards, and 
when we came to the second story we found we had disturbed a man 
who was standing there looking out of his room.

"Is it Gridley that's wanted?" he said, fixing his eyes on me with 
an angry stare.

"No, sir," said I; "I am going higher up."

He looked at Ada, and at Mr. Jarndyce, and at Mr. Skimpole, fixing 
the same angry stare on each in succession as they passed and 
followed me.  Mr. Jarndyce gave him good day.  "Good day!" he said 
abruptly and fiercely.  He was a tall, sallow man with a careworn 
head on which but little hair remained, a deeply lined face, and 
prominent eyes.  He had a combative look and a chafing, irritable 
manner which, associated with his figure--still large and powerful, 
though evidently in its decline--rather alarmed me.  He had a pen 
in his hand, and in the glimpse I caught of his room in passing, I 
saw that it was covered with a litter of papers.

Leaving him standing there, we went up to the top room.  I tapped 
at the door, and a little shrill voice inside said, "We are locked 
in.  Mrs. Blinder's got the key!"

I applied the key on hearing this and opened the door.  In a poor 
room with a sloping ceiling and containing very little furniture 
was a mite of a boy, some five or six years old, nursing and 
hushing a heavy child of eighteen months.  There was no fire, 
though the weather was cold; both children were wrapped in some 
poor shawls and tippets as a substitute.  Their clothing was not so 
warm, however, but that their noses looked red and pinched and 
their small figures shrunken as the boy walked up and down nursing 
and hushing the child with its head on his shoulder.

"Who has locked you up here alone?" we naturally asked.

"Charley," said the boy, standing still to gaze at us.

"Is Charley your brother?"

"No.  She's my sister, Charlotte.  Father called her Charley."

"Are there any more of you besides Charley?"

"Me," said the boy, "and Emma," patting the limp bonnet of the 
child he was nursing.  "And Charley."

"Where is Charley now?"

"Out a-washing," said the boy, beginning to walk up and down again 
and taking the nankeen bonnet much too near the bedstead by trying 
to gaze at us at the same time.

We were looking at one another and at these two children when there 
came into the room a very little girl, childish in figure but 
shrewd and older-looking in the face--pretty-faced too--wearing a 
womanly sort of bonnet much too large for her and drying her bare 
arms on a womanly sort of apron.  Her fingers were white and 
wrinkled with washing, and the soap-suds were yet smoking which she 
wiped off her arms.  But for this, she might have been a child 
playing at washing and imitating a poor working-woman with a quick 
observation of the truth.

She had come running from some place in the neighbourhood and had 
made all the haste she could.  Consequently, though she was very 
light, she was out of breath and could not speak at first, as she 
stood panting, and wiping her arms, and looking quietly at us.

"Oh, here's Charley!" said the boy.

The child he was nursing stretched forth its arms and cried out to 
be taken by Charley.  The little girl took it, in a womanly sort of 
manner belonging to the apron and the bonnet, and stood looking at 
us over the burden that clung to her most affectionately.

"Is it possible," whispered my guardian as we put a chair for the 
little creature and got her to sit down with her load, the boy 
keeping close to her, holding to her apron, "that this child works 
for the rest?  Look at this!  For God's sake, look at this!"

It was a thing to look at.  The three children close together, and 
two of them relying solely on the third, and the third so young and 
yet with an air of age and steadiness that sat so strangely on the 
childish figure.

"Charley, Charley!" said my guardian.  "How old are you?"

"Over thirteen, sir," replied the child.

"Oh! What a great age," said my guardian.  "What a great age, 
Charley!"

I cannot describe the tenderness with which he spoke to her, half 
playfully yet all the more compassionately and mournfully.

"And do you live alone here with these babies, Charley?" said my 
guardian.

"Yes, sir," returned the child, looking up into his face with 
perfect confidence, "since father died."

"And how do you live, Charley?  Oh! Charley," said my guardian, 
turning his face away for a moment, "how do you live?"

"Since father died, sir, I've gone out to work.  I'm out washing 
to-day."

"God help you, Charley!" said my guardian.  "You're not tall enough 
to reach the tub!"

"In pattens I am, sir," she said quickly.  "I've got a high pair as 
belonged to mother."

"And when did mother die?  Poor mother!"

"Mother died just after Emma was born," said the child, glancing at 
the face upon her bosom.  "Then father said I was to be as good a 
mother to her as I could.  And so I tried.  And so I worked at home 
and did cleaning and nursing and washing for a long time before I 
began to go out.  And that's how I know how; don't you see, sir?"

"And do you often go out?"

"As often as I can," said Charley, opening her eyes and smiling, 
"because of earning sixpences and shillings!"

"And do you always lock the babies up when you go out?"

'To keep 'em safe, sir, don't you see?" said Charley.  "Mrs. 
Blinder comes up now and then, and Mr. Gridley comes up sometimes, 
and perhaps I can run in sometimes, and they can play you know, and 
Tom an't afraid of being locked up, are you, Tom?"

'"No-o!" said Tom stoutly.

"When it comes on dark, the lamps are lighted down in the court, 
and they show up here quite bright--almost quite bright.  Don't 
they, Tom?"

"Yes, Charley," said Tom, "almost quite bright."

"Then he's as good as gold," said the little creature--Oh, in such 
a motherly, womanly way!  "And when Emma's tired, he puts her to 
bed.  And when he's tired he goes to bed himself.  And when I come 
home and light the candle and has a bit of supper, he sits up again 
and has it with me.  Don't you, Tom?"

"Oh, yes, Charley!" said Tom.  "That I do!"  And either in this 
glimpse of the great pleasure of his life or in gratitude and love 
for Charley, who was all in all to him, he laid his face among the 
scanty folds of her frock and passed from laughing into crying.

It was the first time since our entry that a tear had been shed 
among these children.  The little orphan girl had spoken of their 
father and their mother as if all that sorrow were subdued by the 
necessity of taking courage, and by her childish importance in 
being able to work, and by her bustling busy way.  But now, when 
Tom cried, although she sat quite tranquil, looking quietly at us, 
and did not by any movement disturb a hair of the head of either of 
her little charges, I saw two silent tears fall down her face.

I stood at the window with Ada, pretending to look at the 
housetops, and the blackened stack of chimneys, and the poor 
plants, and the birds in little cages belonging to the neighbours, 
when I found that Mrs. Blinder, from the shop below, had come in 
(perhaps it had taken her all this time to get upstairs) and was 
talking to my guardian.

"It's not much to forgive 'em the rent, sir," she said; "who could 
take it from them!"

'"Well, well!" said my guardian to us two.  "It is enough that the 
time will come when this good woman will find that it WAS much, and 
that forasmuch as she did it unto the least of these--This child," 
he added after a few moments, "could she possibly continue this?"

"Really, sir, I think she might," said Mrs. Blinder, getting her 
heavy breath by painful degrees.  "She's as handy as it's possible 
to be.  Bless you, sir, the way she tended them two children after 
the mother died was the talk of the yard!  And it was a wonder to 
see her with him after he was took ill, it really was!  'Mrs. 
Blinder,' he said to me the very last he spoke--he was lying there
--'Mrs. Blinder, whatever my calling may have been, I see a angel 
sitting in this room last night along with my child, and I trust 
her to Our Father!'"

"He had no other calling?" said my guardian.

"No, sir," returned Mrs. Blinder, "he was nothing but a follerers.  
When he first came to lodge here, I didn't know what he was, and I 
confess that when I found out I gave him notice.  It wasn't liked 
in the yard.  It wasn't approved by the other lodgers.  It is NOT a 
genteel calling," said Mrs. Blinder, "and most people do object to 
it.  Mr. Gridley objected to it very strong, and he is a good 
lodger, though his temper has been hard tried."

"So you gave him notice?" said my guardian.

"So I gave him notice," said Mrs. Blinder.  "But really when the 
time came, and I knew no other ill of him, I was in doubts.  He was 
punctual and diligent; he did what he had to do, sir," said Mrs. 
Blinder, unconsciously fixing Mr. Skimpole with her eye, "and it's 
something in this world even to do that."

"So you kept him after all?"

"Why, I said that if he could arrange with Mr. Gridley, I could 
arrange it with the other lodgers and should not so much mind its 
being liked or disliked in the yard.  Mr. Gridley gave his consent 
gruff--but gave it.  He was always gruff with him, but he has been 
kind to the children since.  A person is never known till a person 
is proved."

"Have many people been kind to the children?" asked Mr. Jarndyce.

"Upon the whole, not so bad, sir," said Mrs. Blinder; "but 
certainly not so many as would have been if their father's calling 
had been different.  Mr. Coavins gave a guinea, and the follerers 
made up a little purse.  Some neighbours in the yard that had 
always joked and tapped their shoulders when he went by came 
forward with a little subscription, and--in general--not so bad.  
Similarly with Charlotte.  Some people won't employ her because she 
was a follerer's child; some people that do employ her cast it at 
her; some make a merit of having her to work for them, with that 
and all her draw-backs upon her, and perhaps pay her less and put 
upon her more.  But she's patienter than others would be, and is 
clever too, and always willing, up to the full mark of her strength 
and over.  So I should say, in general, not so bad, sir, but might 
be better."

Mrs. Blinder sat down to give herself a more favourable opportunity 
of recovering her breath, exhausted anew by so much talking before 
it was fully restored.  Mr. Jarndyce was turning to speak to us 
when his attention was attracted by the abrupt entrance into the 
room of the Mr. Gridley who had been mentioned and whom we had seen 
on our way up.

"I don't know what you may be doing here, ladies and gentlemen," he 
said, as if he resented our presence, "but you'll excuse my coming 
in.  I don't come in to stare about me.  Well, Charley!  Well, Tom!  
Well, little one!  How is it with us all to-day?"

He bent over the group in a caressing way and clearly was regarded 
as a friend by the children, though his face retained its stern 
character and his manner to us was as rude as it could be.  My 
guardian noticed it and respected it.

"No one, surely, would come here to stare about him," he said 
mildly.

"May be so, sir, may be so," returned the other, taking Tom upon 
his knee and waving him off impatiently.  "I don't want to argue 
with ladies and gentlemen.  I have had enough of arguing to last 
one man his life."

"You have sufficient reason, I dare say," said Mr. Jarndyce, "for 
being chafed and irritated--"

"There again!" exclaimed the man, becoming violently angry.  "I am 
of a quarrelsome temper.  I am irascible.  I am not polite!"

"Not very, I think."

"Sir," said Gridley, putting down the child and going up to him as 
if he meant to strike him, "do you know anything of Courts of 
Equity?"

"Perhaps I do, to my sorrow."

"To your sorrow?" said the man, pausing in his wrath.  "if so, I 
beg your pardon.  I am not polite, I know.  I beg your pardon!  
Sir," with renewed violence, "I have been dragged for five and 
twenty years over burning iron, and I have lost the habit of 
treading upon velvet.  Go into the Court of Chancery yonder and ask 
what is one of the standing jokes that brighten up their business 
sometimes, and they will tell you that the best joke they have is 
the man from Shropshire.  I," he said, beating one hand on the 
other passionately, "am the man from Shropshire."

"I believe I and my family have also had the honour of furnishing 
some entertainment in the same grave place," said my guardian 
composedly.  "You may have heard my name--Jarndyce."

"Mr. Jarndyce," said Gridley with a rough sort of salutation, "you 
bear your wrongs more quietly than I can bear mine.  More than 
that, I tell you--and I tell this gentleman, and these young 
ladies, if they are friends of yours--that if I took my wrongs in 
any other way, I should be driven mad!  It is only by resenting 
them, and by revenging them in my mind, and by angrily demanding 
the justice I never get, that I am able to keep my wits together.  
It is only that!" he said, speaking in a homely, rustic way and 
with great vehemence.  "You may tell me that I over-excite myself.  
I answer that it's in my nature to do it, under wrong, and I must 
do it.  There's nothing between doing it, and sinking into the 
smiling state of the poor little mad woman that haunts the court.  
If I was once to sit down under it, I should become imbecile."

The passion and heat in which he was, and the manner in which his 
face worked, and the violent gestures with which he accompanied 
what he said, were most painful to see.

"Mr. Jarndyce," he said, "consider my case.  As true as there is a 
heaven above us, this is my case.  I am one of two brothers.  My 
father (a farmer) made a will and left his farm and stock and so 
forth to my mother for her life.  After my mother's death, all was 
to come to me except a legacy of three hundred pounds that I was 
then to pay my brother.  My mother died.  My brother some time 
afterwards claimed his legacy.  I and some of my relations said 
that he had had a part of it already in board and lodging and some 
other things.  Now mind!  That was the question, and nothing else.  
No one disputed the will; no one disputed anything but whether part 
of that three hundred pounds had been already paid or not.  To 
settle that question, my brother filing a bill, I was obliged to go 
into this accursed Chancery; I was forced there because the law 
forced me and would let me go nowhere else.  Seventeen people were 
made defendants to that simple suit!  It first came on after two 
years.  It was then stopped for another two years while the master 
(may his head rot off!) inquired whether I was my father's son, 
about which there was no dispute at all with any mortal creature.  
He then found out that there were not defendants enough--remember, 
there were only seventeen as yet!--but that we must have another 
who had been left out and must begin all over again.  The costs at 
that time--before the thing was begun!--were three times the 
legacy.  My brother would have given up the legacy, and joyful, to 
escape more costs.  My whole estate, left to me in that will of my 
father's, has gone in costs.  The suit, still undecided, has fallen 
into rack, and ruin, and despair, with everything else--and here I 
stand, this day!  Now, Mr. Jarndyce, in your suit there are 
thousands and thousands involved, where in mine there are hundreds.  
Is mine less hard to bear or is it harder to bear, when my whole 
living was in it and has been thus shamefully sucked away?"

Mr. Jarndyce said that he condoled with him with all his heart and 
that he set up no monopoly himself in being unjustly treated by 
this monstrous system.

"There again!" said Mr. Gridley with no diminution of his rage.  
"The system!  I am told on all hands, it's the system.  I mustn't 
look to individuals.  It's the system.  I mustn't go into court and 
say, 'My Lord, I beg to know this from you--is this right or wrong?  
Have you the face to tell me I have received justice and therefore 
am dismissed?'  My Lord knows nothing of it.  He sits there to 
administer the system.  I mustn't go to Mr. Tulkinghorn, the 
solicitor in Lincoln's Inn Fields, and say to him when he makes me 
furious by being so cool and satisfied--as they all do, for I know 
they gain by it while I lose, don't I?--I mustn't say to him, 'I 
will have something out of some one for my ruin, by fair means or 
foul!'  HE is not responsible.  It's the system.  But, if I do no 
violence to any of them, here--I may!  I don't know what may happen 
if I am carried beyond myself at last!  I will accuse the 
individual workers of that system against me, face to face, before 
the great eternal bar!"

His passion was fearful.  I could not have believed in such rage 
without seeing it.

"I have done!" he said, sitting down and wiping his face.  "Mr. 
Jarndyce, I have done!  I am violent, I know.  I ought to know it.  
I have been in prison for contempt of court.  I have been in prison 
for threatening the solicitor.  I have been in this trouble, and 
that trouble, and shall be again.  I am the man from Shropshire, 
and I sometimes go beyond amusing them, though they have found it 
amusing, too, to see me committed into custody and brought up in 
custody and all that.  It would be better for me, they tell me, if 
I restrained myself.  I tell them that if I did restrain myself I 
should become imbecile.  I was a good-enough-tempered man once, I 
believe.  People in my part of the country say they remember me so, 
but now I must have this vent under my sense of injury or nothing 
could hold my wits together.  It would be far better for you, Mr. 
Gridley,' the Lord Chancellor told me last week, 'not to waste your 
time here, and to stay, usefully employed, down in Shropshire.'  
'My Lord, my Lord, I know it would,' said I to him, 'and it would 
have been far better for me never to have heard the name of your 
high office, but unhappily for me, I can't undo the past, and the 
past drives me here!'  Besides," he added, breaking fiercely out, 
"I'll shame them.  To the last, I'll show myself in that court to 
its shame.  If I knew when I was going to die, and could be carried 
there, and had a voice to speak with, I would die there, saying, 
'You have brought me here and sent me from here many and many a 
time.  Now send me out feet foremost!'"

His countenance had, perhaps for years, become so set in its 
contentious expression that it did not soften, even now when he was 
quiet.

"I came to take these babies down to my room for an hour," he said, 
going to them again, "and let them play about.  I didn't mean to 
say all this, but it don't much signify.  You're not afraid of me, 
Tom, are you?"

"No!" said Tom.  "You ain't angry with ME."

"You are right, my child.  You're going back, Charley?  Aye?  Come 
then, little one!"  He took the youngest child on his arm, where 
she was willing enough to be carried.  "I shouldn't wonder if we 
found a ginger-bread soldier downstairs.  Let's go and look for 
him!"

He made his former rough salutation, which was not deficient in a 
certain respect, to Mr. Jarndyce, and bowing slightly to us, went 
downstairs to his room.

Upon that, Mr. Skimpole began to talk, for the first time since our 
arrival, in his usual gay strain.  He said, Well, it was really 
very pleasant to see how things lazily adapted themselves to 
purposes.  Here was this Mr. Gridley, a man of a robust will and 
surprising energy--intellectually speaking, a sort of inharmonious 
blacksmith--and he could easily imagine that there Gridley was, 
years ago, wandering about in life for something to expend his 
superfluous combativeness upon--a sort of Young Love among the 
thorns--when the Court of Chancery came in his way and accommodated 
him with the exact thing he wanted.  There they were, matched, ever 
afterwards!  Otherwise he might have been a great general, blowing 
up all sorts of towns, or he might have been a great politician, 
dealing in all sorts of parliamentary rhetoric; but as it was, he 
and the Court of Chancery had fallen upon each other in the 
pleasantest way, and nobody was much the worse, and Gridley was, so 
to speak, from that hour provided for.  Then look at Coavinses!  
How delightfully poor Coavinses (father of these charming children) 
illustrated the same principle!  He, Mr. Skimpole, himself, had 
sometimes repined at the existence of Coavinses.  He had found 
Coavinses in his way.  He could had dispensed with Coavinses.  
There had been times when, if he had been a sultan, and his grand 
vizier had said one morning, "What does the Commander of the 
Faithful require at the hands of his slave?" he might have even 
gone so far as to reply, "The head of Coavinses!"  But what turned 
out to be the case?  That, all that time, he had been giving 
employment to a most deserving man, that he had been a benefactor 
to Coavinses, that he had actually been enabling Coavinses to bring 
up these charming children in this agreeable way, developing these 
social virtues!  Insomuch that his heart had just now swelled and 
the tears had come into his eyes when he had looked round the room 
and thought, "I was the great patron of Coavinses, and his little 
comforts were MY work!"

There was something so captivating in his light way of touching 
these fantastic strings, and he was such a mirthful child by the 
side of the graver childhood we had seen, that he made my guardian 
smile even as he turned towards us from a little private talk with 
Mrs. Blinder.  We kissed Charley, and took her downstairs with us, 
and stopped outside the house to see her run away to her work.  I 
don't know where she was going, but we saw her run, such a little, 
little creature in her womanly bonnet and apron, through a covered 
way at the bottom of the court and melt into the city's strife and 
sound like a dewdrop in an ocean.



CHAPTER XVI

Tom-all-Alone's


My Lady Dedlock is restless, very restless.  The astonished 
fashionable intelligence hardly knows where to have her.  To-day 
she is at Chesney Wold; yesterday she was at her house in town; to-
morrow she may be abroad, for anything the fashionable intelligence 
can with confidence predict.  Even Sir Leicester's gallantry has 
some trouble to keep pace with her.  It would have more but that 
his other faithful ally, for better and for worse--the gout--darts 
into the old oak bedchamber at Chesney Wold and grips him by both 
legs.

Sir Leicester receives the gout as a troublesome demon, but still a 
demon of the patrician order.  All the Dedlocks, in the direct male 
line, through a course of time during and beyond which the memory 
of man goeth not to the contrary, have had the gout.  It can be 
proved, sir.  Other men's fathers may have died of the rheumatism 
or may have taken base contagion from the tainted blood of the sick 
vulgar, but the Dedlock family have communicated something 
exclusive even to the levelling process of dying by dying of their 
own family gout.  It has come down through the illustrious line 
like the plate, or the pictures, or the place in Lincolnshire.  It 
is among their dignities.  Sir Leicester is perhaps not wholly 
without an impression, though he has never resolved it into words, 
that the angel of death in the discharge of his necessary duties 
may observe to the shades of the aristocracy, "My lords and 
gentlemen, I have the honour to present to you another Dedlock 
certified to have arrived per the family gout."

Hence Sir Leicester yields up his family legs to the family 
disorder as if he held his name and fortune on that feudal tenure.  
He feels that for a Dedlock to be laid upon his back and 
spasmodically twitched and stabbed in his extremities is a liberty 
taken somewhere, but he thinks, "We have all yielded to this; it 
belongs to us; it has for some hundreds of years been understood 
that we are not to make the vaults in the park interesting on more 
ignoble terms; and I submit myself to the compromise.

And a goodly show he makes, lying in a flush of crimson and gold in 
the midst of the great drawing-room before his favourite picture of 
my Lady, with broad strips of sunlight shining in, down the long 
perspective, through the long line of windows, and alternating with 
soft reliefs of shadow.  Outside, the stately oaks, rooted for ages 
in the green ground which has never known ploughshare, but was 
still a chase when kings rode to battle with sword and shield and 
rode a-hunting with bow and arrow, bear witness to his greatness.  
Inside, his forefathers, looking on him from the walls, say, "Each 
of us was a passing reality here and left this coloured shadow of 
himself and melted into remembrance as dreamy as the distant voices 
of the rooks now lulling you to rest," and hear their testimony to 
his greatness too.  And he is very great this day.  And woe to 
Boythorn or other daring wight who shall presumptuously contest an 
inch with him!

My Lady is at present represented, near Sir Leicester, by her 
portrait.  She has flitted away to town, with no intention of 
remaining there, and will soon flit hither again, to the confusion 
of the fashionable intelligence.  The house in town is not prepared 
for her reception.  It is muffled and dreary.  Only one Mercury in 
powder gapes disconsolate at the hall-window; and he mentioned last 
night to another Mercury of his acquaintance, also accustomed to 
good society, that if that sort of thing was to last--which it 
couldn't, for a man of his spirits couldn't bear it, and a man of 
his figure couldn't be expected to bear it--there would be no 
resource for him, upon his honour, but to cut his throat!

What connexion can there be between the place in Lincolnshire, the 
house in town, the Mercury in powder, and the whereabout of Jo the 
outlaw with the broom, who had that distant ray of light upon him 
when he swept the churchyard-step?  What connexion can there have 
been between many people in the innumerable histories of this world 
who from opposite sides of great gulfs have, nevertheless, been 
very curiously brought together!

Jo sweeps his crossing all day long, unconscious of the link, if 
any link there be.  He sums up his mental condition when asked a 
question by replying that he "don't know nothink."  He knows that 
it's hard to keep the mud off the crossing in dirty weather, and 
harder still to live by doing it.  Nobody taught him even that 
much; he found it out.

Jo lives--that is to say, Jo has not yet died--in a ruinous place 
known to the like of him by the name of Tom-all-Alone's.  It is a 
black, dilapidated street, avoided by all decent people, where the 
crazy houses were seized upon, when their decay was far advanced, 
by some bold vagrants who after establishing their own possession 
took to letting them out in lodgings.  Now, these tumbling 
tenements contain, by night, a swarm of misery.  As on the ruined 
human wretch vermin parasites appear, so these ruined shelters have 
bred a crowd of foul existence that crawls in and out of gaps in 
walls and boards; and coils itself to sleep, in maggot numbers, 
where the rain drips in; and comes and goes, fetching and carrying 
fever and sowing more evil in its every footprint than Lord Coodle, 
and Sir Thomas Doodle, and the Duke of Foodle, and all the fine 
gentlemen in office, down to Zoodle, shall set right in five 
hundred years--though born expressly to do it.

Twice lately there has been a crash and a cloud of dust, like the 
springing of a mine, in Tom-all-Alone's; and each time a house has 
fallen.  These accidents have made a paragraph in the newspapers 
and have filled a bed or two in the nearest hospital.  The gaps 
remain, and there are not unpopular lodgings among the rubbish.  As 
several more houses are nearly ready to go, the next crash in Tom-
all-Alone's may be expected to be a good one.

This desirable property is in Chancery, of course.  It would be an 
insult to the discernment of any man with half an eye to tell him 
so.  Whether "Tom" is the popular representative of the original 
plaintiff or defendant in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, or whether Tom 
lived here when the suit had laid the street waste, all alone, 
until other settlers came to join him, or whether the traditional 
title is a comprehensive name for a retreat cut off from honest 
company and put out of the pale of hope, perhaps nobody knows.  
Certainly Jo don't know.

"For I don't," says Jo, "I don't know nothink."

It must be a strange state to be like Jo!  To shuffle through the 
streets, unfamiliar with the shapes, and in utter darkness as to 
the meaning, of those mysterious symbols, so abundant over the 
shops, and at the corners of streets, and on the doors, and in the 
windows!  To see people read, and to see people write, and to see 
the postmen deliver letters, and not to have the least idea of all 
that language--to be, to every scrap of it, stone blind and dumb!  
It must be very puzzling to see the good company going to the 
churches on Sundays, with their books in their hands, and to think 
(for perhaps Jo DOES think at odd times) what does it all mean, and 
if it means anything to anybody, how comes it that it means nothing 
to me?  To be hustled, and jostled, and moved on; and really to 
feel that it would appear to be perfectly true that I have no 
business here, or there, or anywhere; and yet to be perplexed by 
the consideration that I AM here somehow, too, and everybody 
overlooked me until I became the creature that I am!  It must be a 
strange state, not merely to be told that I am scarcely human (as 
in the case of my offering myself for a witness), but to feel it of 
my own knowledge all my life!  To see the horses, dogs, and cattle 
go by me and to know that in ignorance I belong to them and not to 
the superior beings in my shape, whose delicacy I offend!  Jo's 
ideas of a criminal trial, or a judge, or a bishop, or a govemment, 
or that inestimable jewel to him (if he only knew it) the 
Constitution, should be strange!  His whole material and immaterial 
life is wonderfully strange; his death, the strangest thing of all.

Jo comes out of Tom-all-Alone's, meeting the tardy morning which is 
always late in getting down there, and munches his dirty bit of 
bread as he comes along.  His way lying through many streets, and 
the houses not yet being open, he sits down to breakfast on the 
door-step of the Society for the Propagation of the Gospel in 
Foreign Parts and gives it a brush when he has finished as an 
acknowledgment of the accommodation.  He admires the size of the 
edifice and wonders what it's all about.  He has no idea, poor 
wretch, of the spiritual destitution of a coral reef in the Pacific 
or what it costs to look up the precious souls among the coco-nuts 
and bread-fruit.

He goes to his crossing and begins to lay it out for the day.  The 
town awakes; the great tee-totum is set up for its daily spin and 
whirl; all that unaccountable reading and writing, which has been 
suspended for a few hours, recommences.  Jo and the other lower 
animals get on in the unintelligible mess as they can.  It is 
market-day.  The blinded oxen, over-goaded, over-driven, never 
guided, run into wrong places and are beaten out, and plunge red-
eyed and foaming at stone walls, and often sorely hurt the 
innocent, and often sorely hurt themselves.  Very like Jo and his 
order; very, very like!

A band of music comes and plays.  Jo listens to it.  So does a dog
--a drover's dog, waiting for his master outside a butcher's shop, 
and evidently thinking about those sheep he has had upon his mind 
for some hours and is happily rid of.  He seems perplexed 
respecting three or four, can't remember where he left them, looks 
up and down the street as half expecting to see them astray, 
suddenly pricks up his ears and remembers all about it.  A 
thoroughly vagabond dog, accustomed to low company and public-
houses; a terrific dog to sheep, ready at a whistle to scamper over 
their backs and tear out mouthfuls of their wool; but an educated, 
improved, developed dog who has been taught his duties and knows 
how to discharge them.  He and Jo listen to the music, probably 
with much the same amount of animal satisfaction; likewise as to 
awakened association, aspiration, or regret, melancholy or joyful 
reference to things beyond the senses, they are probably upon a 
par.  But, otherwise, how far above the human listener is the 
brute!

Turn that dog's descendants wild, like Jo, and in a very few years 
they will so degenerate that they will lose even their bark--but 
not their bite.

The day changes as it wears itself away and becomes dark and 
drizzly.  Jo fights it out at his crossing among the mud and 
wheels, the horses, whips, and umbrellas, and gets but a scanty sum 
to pay for the unsavoury shelter of Tom-all-Alone's.  Twilight 
comes on; gas begins to start up in the shops; the lamplighter, 
with his ladder, runs along the margin of the pavement.  A wretched 
evening is beginning to close in.

In his chambers Mr. Tulkinghorn sits meditating an application to 
the nearest magistrate to-morrow morning for a warrant.  Gridley, a 
disappointed suitor, has been here to-day and has been alarming.  
We are not to be put in bodily fear, and that ill-conditioned 
fellow shall be held to bail again.  From the ceiling, 
foreshortened Allegory, in the person of one impossible Roman 
upside down, points with the arm of Samson (out of joint, and an 
odd one) obtrusively toward the window.  Why should Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, for such no reason, look out of window?  Is the hand 
not always pointing there?  So he does not look out of window.

And if he did, what would it be to see a woman going by?  There are 
women enough in the world, Mr. Tulkinghorn thinks--too many; they 
are at the bottom of all that goes wrong in it, though, for the 
matter of that, they create business for lawyers.  What would it be 
to see a woman going by, even though she were going secretly?  They 
are all secret.  Mr. Tulkinghorn knows that very well.

But they are not all like the woman who now leaves him and his 
house behind, between whose plain dress and her refined manner 
there is something exceedingly inconsistent.  She should be an 
upper servant by her attire, yet in her air and step, though both 
are hurried and assumed--as far as she can assume in the muddy 
streets, which she treads with an unaccustomed foot--she is a lady.  
Her face is veiled, and still she sufficiently betrays herself to 
make more than one of those who pass her look round sharply.

She never turns her head.  Lady or servant, she has a purpose in 
her and can follow it.  She never turns her head until she comes to 
the crossing where Jo plies with his broom.  He crosses with her 
and begs.  Still, she does not turn her head until she has landed 
on the other side.  Then she slightly beckons to him and says, 
"Come here!"

Jo follows her a pace or two into a quiet court.

"Are you the boy I've read of in the papers?" she asked behind her 
veil.

"I don't know," says Jo, staring moodily at the veil, "nothink 
about no papers.  I don't know nothink about nothink at all."

"Were you examined at an inquest?"

"I don't know nothink about no--where I was took by the beadle, do 
you mean?" says Jo.  "Was the boy's name at the inkwhich Jo?"

"Yes."

"That's me!" says Jo.

"Come farther up."

"You mean about the man?" says Jo, following.  "Him as wos dead?"

"Hush!  Speak in a whisper!  Yes.  Did he look, when he was living, 
so very ill and poor?"

"Oh, jist!" says Jo.

"Did he look like--not like YOU?" says the woman with abhorrence.

"Oh, not so bad as me," says Jo.  "I'm a reg'lar one I am!  You 
didn't know him, did you?"

"How dare you ask me if I knew him?"

"No offence, my lady," says Jo with much humility, for even he has 
got at the suspicion of her being a lady.

"I am not a lady.  I am a servant."

"You are a jolly servant!" says Jo without the least idea of saying 
anything offensive, merely as a tribute of admiration.

"Listen and be silent.  Don't talk to me, and stand farther from 
me!  Can you show me all those places that were spoken of in the 
account I read?  The place he wrote for, the place he died at, the 
place where you were taken to, and the place where he was buried?  
Do you know the place where he was buried?"

Jo answers with a nod, having also nodded as each other place was 
mentioned.

"Go before me and show me all those dreadful places.  Stop opposite 
to each, and don't speak to me unless I speak to you.  Don't look 
back.  Do what I want, and I will pay you well."

Jo attends closely while the words are being spoken; tells them off 
on his broom-handle, finding them rather hard; pauses to consider 
their meaning; considers it satisfactory; and nods his ragged head.

"I'm fly," says Jo.  "But fen larks, you know.  Stow hooking it!"

"What does the horrible creature mean?" exclaims the servant, 
recoiling from him.

"Stow cutting away, you know!" says Jo.

"I don't understand you.  Go on before!  I will give you more money 
than you ever had in your life."

Jo screws up his mouth into a whistle, gives his ragged head a rub, 
takes his broom under his arm, and leads the way, passing deftly 
with his bare feet over the hard stones and through the mud and 
mire.

Cook's Court.  Jo stops.  A pause.

"Who lives here?"

"Him wot give him his writing and give me half a bull," says Jo in 
a whisper without looking over his shoulder.

"Go on to the next."

Krook's house.  Jo stops again.  A longer pause.

"Who lives here?"

"HE lived here," Jo answers as before.

After a silence he is asked, "In which room?"

"In the back room up there.  You can see the winder from this 
corner.  Up there!  That's where I see him stritched out.  This is 
the public-ouse where I was took to."

"Go on to the next!"

It is a longer walk to the next, but Jo, relieved of his first 
suspicions, sticks to the forms imposed upon him and does not look 
round.  By many devious ways, reeking with offence of many kinds, 
they come to the little tunnel of a court, and to the gas-lamp 
(lighted now), and to the iron gate.

"He was put there," says Jo, holding to the bars and looking in.

"Where?  Oh, what a scene of horror!"

"There!" says Jo, pointing.  "Over yinder.  Arnong them piles of 
bones, and close to that there kitchin winder!  They put him wery 
nigh the top.  They was obliged to stamp upon it to git it in.  I 
could unkiver it for you with my broom if the gate was open.  
That's why they locks it, I s'pose," giving it a shake.  "It's 
always locked.  Look at the rat!" cries Jo, excited.  "Hi!  Look!  
There he goes!  Ho!  Into the ground!"

The servant shrinks into a corner, into a corner of that hideous 
archway, with its deadly stains contaminating her dress; and 
putting out her two hands and passionately telling him to keep away 
from her, for he is loathsome to her, so remains for some moments.  
Jo stands staring and is still staring when she recovers herself.

"Is this place of abomination consecrated ground?"

"I don't know nothink of consequential ground," says Jo, still 
staring.

"Is it blessed?"

"Which?" says Jo, in the last degree amazed.

"Is it blessed?"

"I'm blest if I know," says Jo, staring more than ever; "but I 
shouldn't think it warn't.  Blest?" repeats Jo, something troubled 
in his mind.  "It an't done it much good if it is.  Blest?  I 
should think it was t'othered myself.  But I don't know nothink!"

The servant takes as little heed of what he says as she seems to 
take of what she has said herself.  She draws off her glove to get 
some money from her purse.  Jo silently notices how white and small 
her hand is and what a jolly servant she must be to wear such 
sparkling rings.

She drops a piece of money in his hand without touching it, and 
shuddering as their hands approach.  "Now," she adds, "show me the 
spot again!"

Jo thrusts the handle of his broom between the bars of the gate, 
and with his utmost power of elaboration, points it out.  At 
length, looking aside to see if he has made himself intelligible, 
he finds that he is alone.

His first proceeding is to hold the piece of money to the gas-light 
and to be overpowered at finding that it is yellow--gold.  His next 
is to give it a one-sided bite at the edge as a test of its 
quality.  His next, to put it in his mouth for safety and to sweep 
the step and passage with great care.  His job done, he sets off 
for Tom-all-Alone's, stopping in the light of innumerable gas-lamps 
to produce the piece of gold and give it another one-sided bite as 
a reassurance of its being genuine.

The Mercury in powder is in no want of society to-night, for my 
Lady goes to a grand dinner and three or four balls.  Sir Leicester 
is fidgety down at Chesney Wold, with no better company than the 
goat; he complains to Mrs. Rouncewell that the rain makes such a 
monotonous pattering on the terrace that he can't read the paper 
even by the fireside in his own snug dressing-room.

"Sir Leicester would have done better to try the other side of the 
house, my dear," says Mrs. Rouncewell to Rosa.  "His dressing-room 
is on my Lady's side.  And in all these years I never heard the 
step upon the Ghost's Walk more distinct than it is to-night!"



CHAPTER XVII

Esther's Narrative


Richard very often came to see us while we remained in London 
(though he soon failed in his letter-writing), and with his quick 
abilities, his good spirits, his good temper, his gaiety and 
freshness, was always delightful.  But though I liked him more and 
more the better I knew him, I still felt more and more how much it 
was to be regretted that he had been educated in no habits of 
application and concentration.  The system which had addressed him 
in exactly the same manner as it had addressed hundreds of other 
boys, all varying in character and capacity, had enabled him to 
dash through his tasks, always with fair credit and often with 
distinction, but in a fitful, dazzling way that had confirmed his 
reliance on those very qualities in himself which it had been most 
desirable to direct and train.  They were good qualities, without 
which no high place can be meritoriously won, but like fire and 
water, though excellent servants, they were very bad masters.  If 
they had been under Richard's direction, they would have been his 
friends; but Richard being under their direction, they became his 
enemies.

I write down these opinions not because I believe that this or any 
other thing was so because I thought so, but only because I did 
think so and I want to be quite candid about all I thought and did.  
These were my thoughts about Richard.  I thought I often observed 
besides how right my guardian was in what he had said, and that the 
uncertainties and delays of the Chancery suit had imparted to his 
nature something of the careless spirit of a gamester who felt that 
he was part of a great gaming system.

Mr. and Mrs. Bayham Badger coming one afternoon when my guardian 
was not at home, in the course of conversation I naturally inquired 
after Richard.

"Why, Mr. Carstone," said Mrs. Badger, "is very well and is, I 
assure you, a great acquisition to our society.  Captain Swosser 
used to say of me that I was always better than land a-head and a 
breeze a-starn to the midshipmen's mess when the purser's junk had 
become as tough as the fore-topsel weather earings.  It was his 
naval way of mentioning generally that I was an acquisition to any 
society.  I may render the same tribute, I am sure, to Mr. 
Carstone.  But I--you won't think me premature if I mention it?"

I said no, as Mrs. Badger's insinuating tone seemed to require such 
an answer.

"Nor Miss Clare?" said Mrs. Bayham Badger sweetly.

Ada said no, too, and looked uneasy.

"Why, you see, my dears," said Mrs. Badger, "--you'll excuse me 
calling you my dears?"

We entreated Mrs. Badger not to mention it.

"Because you really are, if I may take the liberty of saying so," 
pursued Mrs. Badger, "so perfectly charming.  You see, my dears, 
that although I am still young--or Mr. Bayham Badger pays me the 
compliment of saying so--"

"No," Mr. Badger called out like some one contradicting at a public 
meeting.  "Not at all!"

"Very well," smiled Mrs. Badger, "we will say still young."

"Undoubtedly," said Mr. Badger.

"My dears, though still young, I have had many opportunities of 
observing young men.  There were many such on board the dear old 
Crippler, I assure you.  After that, when I was with Captain 
Swosser in the Mediterranean, I embraced every opportunity of 
knowing and befriending the midshipmen under Captain Swosser's 
command.  YOU never heard them called the young gentlemen, my 
dears, and probably wonld not understand allusions to their pipe-
claying their weekly accounts, but it is otherwise with me, for 
blue water has been a second home to me, and I have been quite a 
sailor.  Again, with Professor Dingo."

"A man of European reputation," murmured Mr. Badger.

"When I lost my dear first and became the wife of my dear second," 
said Mrs. Badger, speaking of her former husbands as if they were 
parts of a charade, "I still enjoyed opportunities of observing 
youth.  The class attendant on Professor Dingo's lectures was a 
large one, and it became my pride, as the wife of an eminent 
scientific man seeking herself in science the utmost consolation it 
could impart, to throw our house open to the students as a kind of 
Scientific Exchange.  Every Tuesday evening there was lemonade and 
a mixed biscuit for all who chose to partake of those refreshments.  
And there was science to an unlimited extent."

"Remarkable assemblies those, Miss Summerson," said Mr. Badger 
reverentially.  "There must have been great intellectual friction 
going on there under the auspices of such a man!"

"And now," pursued Mrs. Badger, "now that I am the wife of my dear 
third, Mr. Badger, I still pursue those habits of observation which 
were formed during the lifetime of Captain Swosser and adapted to 
new and unexpected purposes during the lifetime of Professor Dingo.  
I therefore have not come to the consideration of Mr. Carstone as a 
neophyte.  And yet I am very much of the opinion, my dears, that he 
has not chosen his profession advisedly."

Ada looked so very anxious now that I asked Mrs. Badger on what she 
founded her supposition.

"My dear Miss Summerson," she replied, "on Mr. Carstone's character 
and conduct.  He is of such a very easy disposition that probably 
he would never think it worthwhile to mention how he really feels, 
but he feels languid about the profession.  He has not that 
positive interest in it which makes it his vocation.  If he has any 
decided impression in reference to it, I should say it was that it 
is a tiresome pursuit.  Now, this is not promising.  Young men like 
Mr. Allan Woodcourt who take it from a strong interest in all that 
it can do will find some reward in it through a great deal of work 
for a very little money and through years of considerable endurance 
and disappointment.  But I am quite convinced that this would never 
be the case with Mr. Carstone."

"Does Mr. Badger think so too?" asked Ada timidly.

"Why," said Mr. Badger, "to tell the truth, Miss Clare, this view 
of the matter had not occurred to me until Mrs. Badger mentioned 
it.  But when Mrs. Badger put it in that light, I naturally gave 
great consideration to it, knowing that Mrs. Badger's mind, in 
addition to its natural advantages, has had the rare advantage of 
being formed by two such very distinguished (I will even say 
illustrious) public men as Captain Swosser of the Royal Navy and 
Professor Dingo.  The conclusion at which I have arrived is--in 
short, is Mrs. Badger's conclusion."

"It was a maxim of Captain Swosser's," said Mrs. Badger, "speaking 
in his figurative naval manner, that when you make pitch hot, you 
cannot make it too hot; and that if you only have to swab a plank, 
you should swab it as if Davy Jones were after you.  It appears to 
me that this maxim is applicable to the medical as well as to the 
nautical profession.

"To all professions," observed Mr. Badger.  "It was admirably said 
by Captain Swosser.  Beautifully said."

"People objected to Professor Dingo when we were staying in the 
north of Devon after our marriage," said Mrs. Badger, "that he 
disfigured some of the houses and other buildings by chipping off 
fragments of those edifices with his little geological hammer.  But 
the professor replied that he knew of no building save the Temple 
of Science.  The principle is the same, I think?"

"Precisely the same," said Mr. Badger.  "Finely expressed!  The 
professor made the same remark, Miss Summerson, in his last 
illness, when (his mind wandering) he insisted on keeping his 
little hammer under the pillow and chipping at the countenances of 
the attendants.  The ruling passion!"

Although we could have dispensed with the length at which Mr. and 
Mrs. Badger pursued the conversation, we both felt that it was 
disinterested in them to express the opinion they had communicated 
to us and that there was a great probability of its being sound.  
We agreed to say nothing to Mr. Jarndyce until we had spoken to 
Richard; and as he was coming next evening, we resolved to have a 
very serious talk with him.

So after he had been a little while with Ada, I went in and found 
my darling (as I knew she would be) prepared to consider him 
thoroughly right in whatever he said.

"And how do you get on, Richard?" said I.  I always sat down on the 
other side of him.  He made quite a sister of me.

"Oh! Well enough!" said Richard.

"He can't say better than that, Esther, can he?" cried my pet 
triumphantly.

I tried to look at my pet in the wisest manner, but of course I 
couldn't.

"Well enough?" I repeated.

"Yes," said Richard, "well enough.  It's rather jog-trotty and 
humdrum.  But it'll do as well as anything else!"

"Oh! My dear Richard!" I remonstrated.

"What's the matter?" said Richard.

"Do as well as anything else!"

"I don't think there's any harm in that, Dame Durden," said Ada, 
looking so confidingly at me across him; "because if it will do as 
well as anything else, it will do very well, I hope."

"Oh, yes, I hope so," returned Richard, carelessly tossing his hair 
from his forehead.  "After all, it may be only a kind of probation 
till our suit is--I forgot though.  I am not to mention the suit.  
Forbidden ground!  Oh, yes, it's all right enough.  Let us talk 
about something else."

Ada would have done so willingly, and with a full persuasion that 
we had brought the question to a most satisfactory state.  But I 
thought it would be useless to stop there, so I began again.

"No, but Richard," said I, "and my dear Ada!  Consider how 
important it is to you both, and what a point of honour it is 
towards your cousin, that you, Richard, should be quite in earnest 
without any reservation.  I think we had better talk about this, 
really, Ada.  It will be too late very soon."

"Oh, yes!  We must talk about it!" said Ada.  "But I think Richard 
is right."

What was the use of my trying to look wise when she was so pretty, 
and so engaging, and so fond of him!

"Mr. and Mrs. Badger were here yesterday, Richard," said I, "and 
they seemed disposed to think that you had no great liking for the 
profession."

"Did they though?" said Richard.  "Oh! Well, that rather alters the 
case, because I had no idea that they thought so, and I should not 
have liked to disappoint or inconvenience them.  The fact is, I 
don't care much about it.  But, oh, it don't matter!  It'll do as 
well as anything else!"

"You hear him, Ada!" said I.

"The fact is," Richard proceeded, half thoughtfully and half 
jocosely, "it is not quite in my way.  I don't take to it.  And I 
get too much of Mrs. Bayham Badger's first and second."

"I am sure THAT'S very natural!" cried Ada, quite delighted.  "The 
very thing we both said yesterday, Esther!"

"Then," pursued Richard, "it's monotonous, and to-day is too like 
yesterday, and to-morrow is too like to-day."

"But I am afraid," said I, "this is an objection to all kinds of 
application--to life itself, except under some very uncommon 
circumstances."

"Do you think so?" returned Richard, still considering.  "Perhaps!  
Ha!  Why, then, you know," he added, suddenly becoming gay again, 
"we travel outside a circle to what I said just now.  It'll do as 
well as anything else.  Oh, it's all right enough!  Let us talk 
about something else."

But even Ada, with her loving face--and if it had seemed innocent 
and trusting when I first saw it in that memorable November fog, 
how much more did it seem now when I knew her innocent and trusting 
heart--even Ada shook her head at this and looked serious.  So I 
thought it a good opportunity to hint to Richard that if he were 
sometimes a little careless of himself, I was very sure he never 
meant to be careless of Ada, and that it was a part of his 
affectionate consideration for her not to slight the importance of 
a step that might influence both their lives.  This made him almost 
grave.

"My dear Mother Hubbard," he said, "that's the very thing!  I have 
thought of that several times and have been quite angry with myself 
for meaning to be so much in earnest and--somehow--not exactly 
being so.  I don't know how it is; I seem to want something or 
other to stand by.  Even you have no idea how fond I am of Ada (my 
darling cousin, I love you, so much!), but I don't settle down to 
constancy in other things.  It's such uphill work, and it takes 
such a time!" said Richard with an air of vexation.

"That may be," I suggested, "because you don't like what you have 
chosen."

"Poor fellow!" said Ada.  "I am sure I don't wonder at it!"

No.  It was not of the least use my trying to look wise.  I tried 
again, but how could I do it, or how could it have any effect if I 
could, while Ada rested her clasped hands upon his shoulder and 
while he looked at her tender blue eyes, and while they looked at 
him!

"You see, my precious girl," said Richard, passing her golden curls 
through and through his hand, "I was a little hasty perhaps; or I 
misunderstood my own inclinations perhaps.  They don't seem to lie 
in that direction.  I couldn't tell till I tried.  Now the question 
is whether it's worth-while to undo all that has been done.  It 
seems like making a great disturbance about nothing particular."

"My dear Richard," said I, "how CAN you say about nothing 
particular?"

"I don't mean absolutely that," he returned.  "I mean that it MAY 
be nothing particular because I may never want it."

Both Ada and I urged, in reply, not only that it was decidedly 
worth-while to undo what had been done, but that it must be undone.  
I then asked Richard whether he had thought of any more congenial 
pursuit.

"There, my dear Mrs. Shipton," said Richard, "you touch me home.  
Yes, I have.  I have been thinking that the law is the boy for me."

"The law!" repeated Ada as if she were afraid of the name.

"If I went into Kenge's office," said Richard, "and if I were 
placed under articles to Kenge, I should have my eye on the--hum!--
the forbidden ground--and should be able to study it, and master 
it, and to satisfy myself that it was not neglected and was being 
properly conducted.  I should be able to look after Ada's interests 
and my own interests (the same thing!); and I should peg away at 
Blackstone and all those fellows with the most tremendous ardour."

I was not by any means so sure of that, and I saw how his hankering 
after the vague things yet to come of those long-deferred hopes 
cast a shade on Ada's face.  But I thought it best to encourage him 
in any project of continuous exertion, and only advised him to be 
quite sure that his mind was made up now.

"My dear Minerva," said Richard, "I am as steady as you are.  I 
made a mistake; we are all liable to mistakes; I won't do so any 
more, and I'll become such a lawyer as is not often seen.  That is, 
you know," said Richard, relapsing into doubt, "if it really is 
worth-while, after all, to make such a disturbance about nothing 
particular!"

This led to our saying again, with a great deal of gravity, all 
that we had said already and to our coming to much the same 
conclusion afterwards.  But we so strongly advised Richard to be 
frank and open with Mr. Jarndyce, without a moment's delay, and his 
disposition was naturally so opposed to concealment that he sought 
him out at once (taking us with him) and made a full avowal.  
"Rick," said my guardian, after hearing him attentively, "we can 
retreat with honour, and we will.  But we must he careful--for our 
cousin s sake, Rick, for our cousin's sake--that we make no more 
such mistakes.  Therefore, in the matter of the law, we will have a 
good trial before we decide.  We will look before we leap, and take 
plenty of time about it."

Richard's energy was of such an impatient and fitful kind that he 
would have liked nothing better than to have gone to Mr. Kenge's 
office in that hour and to have entered into articles with him on 
the spot.  Submitting, however, with a good grace to the caution 
that we had shown to be so necessary, he contented himself with 
sitting down among us in his lightest spirits and talking as if his 
one unvarying purpose in life from childhood had been that one 
which now held possession of him.  My guardian was very kind and 
cordial with him, but rather grave, enough so to cause Ada, when he 
had departed and we were going upstairs to bed, to say, "Cousin 
John, I hope you don't think the worse of Richard?"

"No, my love," said he.

"Because it was very natural that Richard should be mistaken in 
such a difficult case.  It is not uncommon."

"No, no, my love," said he.  "Don't look unhappy."

"Oh, I am not unhappy, cousin John!" said Ada, smiling cheerfully, 
with her hand upon his shoulder, where she had put it in bidding 
him good night.  "But I should be a little so if you thought at all 
the worse of Richard."

"My dear," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I should think the worse of him only 
if you were ever in the least unhappy through his means.  I should 
be more disposed to quarrel with myself even then, than with poor 
Rick, for I brought you together.  But, tut, all this is nothing!  
He has time before him, and the race to run.  I think the worse of 
him?  Not I, my loving cousin!  And not you, I swear!"

"No, indeed, cousin John," said Ada, "I am sure I could not--I am 
sure I would not--think any ill of Richard if the whole world did.  
I could, and I would, think better of him then than at any other 
time!"

So quietly and honestly she said it, with her hands upon his 
shoulders--both hands now--and looking up into his face, like the 
picture of truth!

"I think," said my guardian, thoughtfully regarding her, "I think 
it must be somewhere written that the virtues of the mothers shall 
occasionally be visited on the children, as well as the sins of the 
father.  Good night, my rosebud.  Good night, little woman.  
Pleasant slumbers!  Happy dreams!"

This was the first time I ever saw him follow Ada with his eyes 
with something of a shadow on their benevolent expression.  I well 
remembered the look with which he had contemplated her and Richard 
when she was singing in the firelight; it was but a very little 
while since he had watched them passing down the room in which the 
sun was shining, and away into the shade; but his glance was 
changed, and even the silent look of confidence in me which now 
followed it once more was not quite so hopeful and untroubled as it 
had originally been.

Ada praised Richard more to me that night than ever she had praised 
him yet.  She went to sleep with a little bracelet he had given her 
clasped upon her arm.  I fancied she was dreaming of him when I 
kissed her cheek after she had slept an hour and saw how tranquil 
and happy she looked.

For I was so little inclined to sleep myself that night that I sat 
up working.  It would not be worth mentioning for its own sake, but 
I was wakeful and rather low-spirited.  I don't know why.  At least 
I don't think I know why.  At least, perhaps I do, but I don't 
think it matters.

At any rate, I made up my mind to be so dreadfully industrious that 
I would leave myself not a moment's leisure to be low-spirited.  
For I naturally said, "Esther!  You to be low-spirited.  YOU!"  And 
it really was time to say so, for I--yes, I really did see myself 
in the glass, almost crying.  "As if you had anything to make you 
unhappy, instead of everything to make you happy, you ungrateful 
heart!" said I.

If I could have made myself go to sleep, I would have done it 
directly, but not being able to do that, I took out of my basket 
some ornamental work for our house (I mean Bleak House) that I was 
busy with at that time and sat down to it with great determination.  
It was necessary to count all the stitches in that work, and I 
resolved to go on with it until I couldn't keep my eyes open, and 
then to go to bed.

I soon found myself very busy.  But I had left some silk downstairs 
in a work-table drawer in the temporary growlery, and coming to a 
stop for want of it, I took my candle and went softly down to get 
it.  To my great surprise, on going in I found my guardian still 
there, and sitting looking at the ashes.  He was lost in thought, 
his book lay unheeded by his side, his silvered iron-grey hair was 
scattered confusedly upon his forehead as though his hand had been 
wandering among it while his thoughts were elsewhere, and his face 
looked worn.  Almost frightened by coming upon him so unexpectedly, 
I stood still for a moment and should have retired without speaking 
had he not, in again passing his hand abstractedly through his 
hair, seen me and started.

"Esther!"

I told him what I had come for.

"At work so late, my dear?"

"I am working late to-night," said I, "because I couldn't sleep and 
wished to tire myself.  But, dear guardian, you are late too, and 
look weary.  You have no trouble, I hope, to keep you waking?"

"None, little woman, that YOU would readily understand," said he.

He spoke in a regretful tone so new to me that I inwardly repeated, 
as if that would help me to his meaning, "That I could readily 
understand!"

"Remain a moment, Esther," said he, "You were in my thoughts."

"I hope I was not the trouble, guardian?"

He slightly waved his hand and fell into his usual manner.  The 
change was so remarkable, and he appeared to make it by dint of so 
much self-command, that I found myself again inwardly repeating, 
"None that I could understand!"

"Little woman," said my guardian, "I was thinking--that is, I have 
been thinking since I have been sitting here--that you ought to 
know of your own history all I know.  It is very little.  Next to 
nothing."

"Dear guardian," I replied, "when you spoke to me before on that 
subject--"

"But since then," he gravely interposed, anticipating what I meant 
to say, "I have reflected that your having anything to ask me, and 
my having anything to tell you, are different considerations, 
Esther.  It is perhaps my duty to impart to you the little I know."

"If you think so, guardian, it is right."

"I think so," he returned very gently, and kindly, and very 
distinctly.  "My dear, I think so now.  If any real disadvantage 
can attach to your position in the mind of any man or woman worth a 
thought, it is right that you at least of all the world should not 
magnify it to yourself by having vague impressions of its nature."

I sat down and said after a little effort to be as calm as I ought 
to be, "One of my earliest remembrances, guardian, is of these 
words: 'Your mother, Esther, is your disgrace, and you were hers.  
The time will come, and soon enough, when you will understand this 
better, and will feel it too, as no one save a woman can.'"  I had 
covered my face with my hands in repeating the words, but I took 
them away now with a better kind of shame, I hope, and told him 
that to him I owed the blessing that I had from my childhood to 
that hour never, never, never felt it.  He put up his hand as if to 
stop me.  I well knew that he was never to be thanked, and said no 
more.

"Nine years, my dear," he said after thinking for a little while, 
"have passed since I received a letter from a lady living in 
seclusion, written with a stern passion and power that rendered it 
unlike all other letters I have ever read.  It was written to me 
(as it told me in so many words), perhaps because it was the 
writer's idiosyncrasy to put that trust in me, perhaps because it 
was mine to justify it.  It told me of a child, an orphan girl then 
twelve years old, in some such cruel words as those which live in 
your remembrance.  It told me that the writer had bred her in 
secrecy from her birth, had blotted out all trace of her existence, 
and that if the writer were to die before the child became a woman, 
she would be left entirely friendless, nameless, and unknown.  It 
asked me to consider if I would, in that case, finish what the 
writer had begun."

I listened in silence and looked attentively at him.

"Your early recollection, my dear, will supply the gloomy medium 
through which all this was seen and expressed by the writer, and 
the distorted religion which clouded her mind with impressions of 
the need there was for the child to expiate an offence of which she 
was quite innocent.  I felt concerned for the little creature, in 
her darkened life, and replied to the letter."

I took his hand and kissed it.

"It laid the injunction on me that I should never propose to see 
the writer, who had long been estranged from all intercourse with 
the world, but who would see a confidential agent if I would 
appoint one.  I accredited Mr. Kenge.  The lady said, of her own 
accord and not of his seeking, that her name was an assumed one.  
That she was, if there were any ties of blood in such a case, the 
child's aunt.  That more than this she would never (and he was well 
persuaded of the steadfastness of her resolution) for any human 
consideration disclose.  My dear, I have told you all."

I held his hand for a little while in mine.

"I saw my ward oftener than she saw me," he added, cheerily making 
light of it, "and I always knew she was beloved, useful, and happy.  
She repays me twenty-thousandfold, and twenty more to that, every 
hour in every day!"

"And oftener still," said I, '"she blesses the guardian who is a 
father to her!"

At the word father, I saw his former trouble come into his face.  
He subdued it as before, and it was gone in an instant; but it had 
been there and it had come so swiftly upon my words that I felt as 
if they had given him a shock.  I again inwardly repeated, 
wondering, "That I could readily understand.  None that I could 
readily understand!"  No, it was true.  I did not understand it.  
Not for many and many a day.

"Take a fatherly good night, my dear," said he, kissing me on the 
forehead, "and so to rest.  These are late hours for working and 
thinking.  You do that for all of us, all day long, little 
housekeeper!"

I neither worked nor thought any more that night.  I opened my 
grateful heart to heaven in thankfulness for its providence to me 
and its care of me, and fell asleep.

We had a visitor next day.  Mr. Allan Woodcourt came.  He came to 
take leave of us; he had settled to do so beforehand.  He was going 
to China and to India as a surgeon on board ship.  He was to be 
away a long, long time.

I believe--at least I know--that he was not rich.  All his widowed 
mother could spare had been spent in qualifying him for his 
profession.  It was not lucrative to a young practitioner, with 
very little influence in London; and although he was, night and 
day, at the service of numbers of poor people and did wonders of 
gentleness and skill for them, he gained very little by it in 
money.  He was seven years older than I.  Not that I need mention 
it, for it hardly seems to belong to anything.

I think--I mean, he told us--that he had been in practice three or 
four years and that if he could have hoped to contend through three 
or four more, he would not have made the voyage on which he was 
bound.  But he had no fortune or private means, and so he was going 
away.  He had been to see us several times altogether.  We thought 
it a pity he should go away.  Because he was distinguished in his 
art among those who knew it best, and some of the greatest men 
belonging to it had a high opinion of him.

When he came to bid us good-bye, he brought his mother with him for 
the first time.  She was a pretty old lady, with bright black eyes, 
but she seemed proud.  She came from Wales and had had, a long time 
ago, an eminent person for an ancestor, of the name of Morgan ap-
Kerrig--of some place that sounded like Gimlet--who was the most 
illustrious person that ever was known and all of whose relations 
were a sort of royal family.  He appeared to have passed his life 
in always getting up into mountains and fighting somebody; and a 
bard whose name sounded like Crumlinwallinwer had sung his praises 
in a piece which was called, as nearly as I could catch it, 
Mewlinnwillinwodd.

Mrs. Woodcourt, after expatiating to us on the fame of her great 
kinsman, said that no doubt wherever her son Allan went he would 
remember his pedigree and would on no account form an alliance 
below it.  She told him that there were many handsome English 
ladies in India who went out on speculation, and that there were 
some to be picked up with property, but that neither charms nor 
wealth would suffice for the descendant from such a line without 
birth, which must ever be the first consideration.  She talked so 
much about birth that for a moment I half fancied, and with pain--  
But what an idle fancy to suppose that she could think or care what 
MINE was!

Mr. Woodcourt seemed a little distressed by her prolixity, but he 
was too considerate to let her see it and contrived delicately to 
bring the conversation round to making his acknowledgments to my 
guardian for his hospitality and for the very happy hours--he 
called them the very happy hours--he had passed with us.  The 
recollection of them, he said, would go with him wherever he went 
and would be always treasured.  And so we gave him our hands, one 
after another--at least, they did--and I did; and so he put his 
lips to Ada's hand--and to mine; and so he went away upon his long, 
long voyage!

I was very busy indeed all day and wrote directions home to the 
servants, and wrote notes for my guardian, and dusted his books and 
papers, and jingled my housekeeping keys a good deal, one way and 
another.  I was still busy between the lights, singing and working 
by the window, when who should come in but Caddy, whom I had no 
expectation of seeing!

"Why, Caddy, my dear," said I, "what beautiful flowers!"

She had such an exquisite little nosegay in her hand.

"Indeed, I think so, Esther," replied Caddy.  "They are the 
loveliest I ever saw."

"Prince, my dear?" said I in a whisper.

"No," answered Caddy, shaking her head and holding them to me to 
smell.  "Not Prince."

"Well, to be sure, Caddy!" said I.  "You must have two lovers!"

"What?  Do they look like that sort of thing?" said Caddy.

"Do they look like that sort of thing?" I repeated, pinching her 
cheek.

Caddy only laughed in return, and telling me that she had come for 
half an hour, at the expiration of which time Prince would be 
waiting for her at the corner, sat chatting with me and Ada in the 
window, every now and then handing me the flowers again or trying 
how they looked against my hair.  At last, when she was going, she 
took me into my room and put them in my dress.

"For me?" said I, surprised.

"For you," said Caddy with a kiss.  "They were left behind by 
somebody."

"Left behind?"

"At poor Miss Flite's," said Caddy.  "Somebody who has been very 
good to her was hurrying away an hour ago to join a ship and left 
these flowers behind.  No, no!  Don't take them out.  Let the 
pretty little things lie here," said Caddy, adjusting them with a 
careful hand, "because I was present myself, and I shouldn't wonder 
if somebody left them on purpose!"

"Do they look like that sort of thing?" said Ada, coming laughingly 
behind me and clasping me merrily round the waist.  "Oh, yes, 
indeed they do, Dame Durden!  They look very, very like that sort 
of thing.  Oh, very like it indeed, my dear!"



CHAPTER XVIII

Lady Dedlock


It was not so easy as it had appeared at first to arrange for 
Richard's making a trial of Mr. Kenge's office.  Richard himself 
was the chief impediment.  As soon as he had it in his power to 
leave Mr. Badger at any moment, he began to doubt whether he wanted 
to leave him at all.  He didn't know, he said, really.  It wasn't a 
bad profession; he couldn't assert that he disliked it; perhaps he 
liked it as well as he liked any other--suppose he gave it one more 
chance!  Upon that, he shut himself up for a few weeks with some 
books and some bones and seemed to acquire a considerable fund of 
information with great rapidity.  His fervour, after lasting about 
a month, began to cool, and when it was quite cooled, began to grow 
warm again.  His vacillations between law and medicine lasted so 
long that midsummer arrived before he finally separated from Mr. 
Badger and entered on an experimental course of Messrs. Kenge and 
Carboy.  For all his waywardness, he took great credit to himself 
as being determined to be in earnest "this time."  And he was so 
good-natured throughout, and in such high spirits, and so fond of 
Ada, that it was very difficult indeed to be otherwise than pleased 
with him.

"As to Mr. Jarndyce," who, I may mention, found the wind much 
given, during this period, to stick in the east; "As to Mr. 
Jarndyce," Richard would say to me, "he is the finest fellow in the 
world, Esther!  I must be particularly careful, if it were only for 
his satisfaction, to take myself well to task and have a regular 
wind-up of this business now."

The idea of his taking himself well to task, with that laughing 
face and heedless manner and with a fancy that everything could 
catch and nothing could hold, was ludicrously anomalous.  However, 
he told us between-whiles that he was doing it to such an extent 
that he wondered his hair didn't turn grey.  His regular wind-up of 
the business was (as I have said) that he went to Mr. Kenge's about 
midsummer to try how he liked it.

All this time he was, in money affairs, what I have described him 
in a former illustration--generous, profuse, wildly careless, but 
fully persuaded that he was rather calculating and prudent.  I 
happened to say to Ada, in his presence, half jestingly, half 
seriously, about the time of his going to Mr. Kenge's, that he 
needed to have Fortunatus' purse, he made so light of money, which 
he answered in this way, "My jewel of a dear cousin, you hear this 
old woman!  Why does she say that?  Because I gave eight pounds odd 
(or whatever it was) for a certain neat waistcoat and buttons a few 
days ago.  Now, if I had stayed at Badger's I should have been 
obliged to spend twelve pounds at a blow for some heart-breaking 
lecture-fees.  So I make four pounds--in a lump--by the 
transaction!"

It was a question much discussed between him and my guardian what 
arrangements should be made for his living in London while he 
experimented on the law, for we had long since gone back to Bleak 
House, and it was too far off to admit of his coming there oftener 
than once a week.  My guardian told me that if Richard were to 
settle down at Mr. Kenge's he would take some apartments or 
chambers where we too could occasionally stay for a few days at a 
time; "but, little woman," he added, rubbing his head very 
significantly, "he hasn't settled down there yet!"  The discussions 
ended in our hiring for him, by the month, a neat little furnished 
lodging in a quiet old house near Queen Square.  He immediately 
began to spend all the money he had in buying the oddest little 
ornaments and luxuries for this lodging; and so often as Ada and I 
dissuaded him from making any purchase that he had in contemplation 
which was particularly unnecessary and expensive, he took credit 
for what it would have cost and made out that to spend anything 
less on something else was to save the difference.

While these affairs were in abeyance, our visit to Mr. Boythorn's 
was postponed.  At length, Richard having taken possession of his 
lodging, there was nothing to prevent our departure.  He could have 
gone with us at that time of the year very well, but he was in the 
full novelty of his new position and was making most energetic 
attempts to unravel the mysteries of the fatal suit.  Consequently 
we went without him, and my darling was delighted to praise him for 
being so busy.

We made a pleasant journey down into Lincolnshire by the coach and 
had an entertaining companion in Mr. Skimpole.  His furniture had 
been all cleared off, it appeared, by the person who took 
possession of it on his blue-eyed daughter's birthday, but he 
seemed quite relieved to think that it was gone.  Chairs and table, 
he said, were wearisome objects; they were monotonous ideas, they 
had no variety of expression, they looked you out of countenance, 
and you looked them out of countenance.  How pleasant, then, to be 
bound to no particular chairs and tables, but to sport like a 
butterfly among all the furniture on hire, and to flit from 
rosewood to mahogany, and from mahogany to walnut, and from this 
shape to that, as the humour took one!

"The oddity of the thing is," said Mr. Skimpole with a quickened 
sense of the ludicrous, "that my chairs and tables were not paid 
for, and yet my landlord walks off with them as composedly as 
possible.  Now, that seems droll!  There is something grotesque in 
it.  The chair and table merchant never engaged to pay my landlord 
my rent.  Why should my landlord quarrel with HIM?  If I have a 
pimple on my nose which is disagreeable to my landlord's peculiar 
ideas of beauty, my landlord has no business to scratch my chair 
and table merchant's nose, which has no pimple on it.  His 
reasoning seems defective!"

"Well," said my guardian good-humouredly, "it's pretty clear that 
whoever became security for those chairs and tables will have to 
pay for them."

"Exactly!" returned Mr. Skimpole.  "That's the crowning point of 
unreason in the business!  I said to my landlord, 'My good man, you 
are not aware that my excellent friend Jarndyce will have to pay 
for those things that you are sweeping off in that indelicate 
manner.  Have you no consideration for HIS property?' He hadn't the 
least."

"And refused all proposals," said my guardian.

"Refused all proposals," returned Mr. Skimpole.  "I made him 
business proposals.  I had him into my room.  I said, 'You are a 
man of business, I believe?'  He replied, 'I am,'  'Very well,' 
said I, 'now let us be business-like.  Here is an inkstand, here 
are pens and paper, here are wafers.  What do you want?  I have 
occupied your house for a considerable period, I believe to our 
mutual satisfaction until this unpleasant misunderstanding arose; 
let us be at once friendly and business-like.  What do you want?'  
In reply to this, he made use of the figurative expression--which 
has something Eastern about it--that he had never seen the colour 
of my money.  'My amiable friend,' said I, 'I never have any money.  
I never know anything about money.'  'Well, sir,' said he, 'what do 
you offer if I give you time?'  'My good fellow,' said I, 'I have 
no idea of time; but you say you are a man of business, and 
whatever you can suggest to be done in a business-like way with 
pen, and ink, and paper--and wafers--I am ready to do.  Don't pay 
yourself at another man's expense (which is foolish), but be 
business-like!'  However, he wouldn't be, and there was an end of 
it."

If these were some of the inconveniences of Mr. Skimpole's 
childhood, it assuredly possessed its advantages too.  On the 
journey he had a very good appetite for such refreshment as came in 
our way (including a basket of choice hothouse peaches), but never 
thought of paying for anything.  So when the coachman came round 
for his fee, he pleasantly asked him what he considered a very good 
fee indeed, now--a liberal one--and on his replying half a crown 
for a single passenger, said it was little enough too, all things 
considered, and left Mr. Jarndyce to give it him.

It was delightful weather.  The green corn waved so beautifully, 
the larks sang so joyfully, the hedges were so full of wild 
flowers, the trees were so thickly out in leaf, the bean-fields, 
with a light wind blowing over them, filled the air with such a 
delicious fragrance!  Late in the afternoon we came to the market-
town where we were to alight from the coach--a dull little town 
with a church-spire, and a marketplace, and a market-cross, and one 
intensely sunny street, and a pond with an old horse cooling his 
legs in it, and a very few men sleepily lying and standing about in 
narrow little bits of shade.  After the rustling of the leaves and 
the waving of the corn all along the road, it looked as still, as 
hot, as motionless a little town as England could produce.

At the inn we found Mr. Boythorn on horseback, waiting with an open 
carriage to take us to his house, which was a few miles off.  He 
was over-joyed to see us and dismounted with great alacrity.

"By heaven!" said he after giving us a courteous greeting.  This a 
most infamous coach.  It is the most flagrant example of an 
abominable public vehicle that ever encumbered the face of the 
earth.  It is twenty-five minutes after its time this afternoon.  
The coachman ought to be put to death!"

"IS he after his time?" said Mr. Skimpole, to whom he happened to 
address himself.  "You know my infirmity."

"Twenty-five minutes!  Twenty-six minutes!" replied Mr. Boythorn, 
referring to his watch.  "With two ladies in the coach, this 
scoundrel has deliberately delayed his arrival six and twenty 
minutes.  Deliberately!  It is impossible that it can be 
accidental!  But his father--and his uncle--were the most 
profligate coachmen that ever sat upon a box."

While he said this in tones of the greatest indignation, he handed 
us into the little phaeton with the utmost gentleness and was all 
smiles and pleasure.

"I am sorry, ladies," he said, standing bare-headed at the 
carriage-door when all was ready, "that I am obliged to conduct you 
nearly two miles out of the way.  But our direct road lies through 
Sir Leicester Dedlock's park, and in that fellow's property I have 
sworn never to set foot of mine, or horse's foot of mine, pending 
the present relations between us, while I breathe the breath of 
life!"  And here, catching my guardian's eye, he broke into one of 
his tremendous laughs, which seemed to shake even the motionless 
little market-town.

"Are the Dedlocks down here, Lawrence?" said my guardian as we 
drove along and Mr. Boythorn trotted on the green turf by the 
roadside.

"Sir Arrogant Numskull is here," replied Mr. Boythorn.  "Ha ha ha!  
Sir Arrogant is here, and I am glad to say, has been laid by the 
heels here.  My Lady," in naming whom he always made a courtly 
gesture as if particularly to exclude her from any part in the 
quarrel, "is expected, I believe, daily.  I am not in the least 
surprised that she postpones her appearance as long as possible.  
Whatever can have induced that transcendent woman to marry that 
effigy and figure-head of a baronet is one of the most impenetrable 
mysteries that ever baffled human inquiry.  Ha ha ha ha!"

"I suppose, said my guardian, laughing, "WE may set foot in the 
park while we are here?  The prohibition does not extend to us, 
does it?"

"I can lay no prohibition on my guests," he said, bending his head 
to Ada and me with the smiling politeness which sat so gracefully 
upon him, "except in the matter of their departure.  I am only 
sorry that I cannot have the happiness of being their escort about 
Chesney Wold, which is a very fine place!  But by the light of this 
summer day, Jarndyce, if you call upon the owner while you stay 
with me, you are likely to have but a cool reception.  He carries 
himself like an eight-day clock at all times, like one of a race of 
eight-day clocks in gorgeous cases that never go and never went--Ha 
ha ha!--but he will have some extra stiffness, I can promise you, 
for the friends of his friend and neighbour Boythorn!"

"I shall not put him to the proof," said my guardian.  "He is as 
indifferent to the honour of knowing me, I dare say, as I am to the 
honour of knowing him.  The air of the grounds and perhaps such a 
view of the house as any other sightseer might get are quite enough 
for me."

"Well!" said Mr. Boythorn.  "I am glad of it on the whole.  It's in 
better keeping.  I am looked upon about here as a second Ajax 
defying the lightning.  Ha ha ha ha!  When I go into our little 
church on a Sunday, a considerable part of the inconsiderable 
congregation expect to see me drop, scorched and withered, on the 
pavement under the Dedlock displeasure.  Ha ha ha ha!  I have no 
doubt he is surprised that I don't.  For he is, by heaven, the most 
self-satisfied, and the shallowest, and the most coxcombical and 
utterly brainless ass!"

Our coming to the ridge of a hill we had been ascending enabled our 
friend to point out Chesney Wold itself to us and diverted his 
attention from its master.

It was a picturesque old house in a fine park richly wooded.  Among 
the trees and not far from the residence he pointed out the spire 
of the little church of which he had spoken.  Oh, the solemn woods 
over which the light and shadow travelled swiftly, as if heavenly 
wings were sweeping on benignant errands through the summer air; 
the smooth green slopes, the glittering water, the garden where the 
flowers were so symmetrically arranged in clusters of the richest 
colours, how beautiful they looked!  The house, with gable and 
chimney, and tower, and turret, and dark doorway, and broad 
terrace-walk, twining among the balustrades of which, and lying 
heaped upon the vases, there was one great flush of roses, seemed 
scarcely real in its light solidity and in the serene and peaceful 
hush that rested on all around it.  To Ada and to me, that above 
all appeared the pervading influence.  On everything, house, 
garden, terrace, green slopes, water, old oaks, fern, moss, woods 
again, and far away across the openings in the prospect to the 
distance lying wide before us with a purple bloom upon it, there 
seemed to be such undisturbed repose.

When we came into the little village and passed a small inn with 
the sign of the Dedlock Arms swinging over the road in front, Mr. 
Boythorn interchanged greetings with a young gentleman sitting on a 
bench outside the inn-door who had some fishing-tackle lying beside 
him.

"That's the housekeeper's grandson, Mr. Rouncewell by name," said, 
he, "and he is in love with a pretty girl up at the house.  Lady 
Dedlock has taken a fancy to the pretty girl and is going to keep 
her about her own fair person--an honour which my young friend 
himself does not at all appreciate.  However, he can't marry just 
yet, even if his Rosebud were willing; so he is fain to make the 
best of it.  In the meanwhile, he comes here pretty often for a day 
or two at a time to--fish.  Ha ha ha ha!"

"Are he and the pretty girl engaged, Mr. Boythorn?" asked Ada.

"Why, my dear Miss Clare," he returned, "I think they may perhaps 
understand each other; but you will see them soon, I dare say, and 
I must learn from you on such a point--not you from me."

Ada blushed, and Mr. Boythorn, trotting forward on his comely grey 
horse, dismounted at his own door and stood ready with extended arm 
and uncovered head to welcome us when we arrived.

He lived in a pretty house, formerly the parsonage house, with a 
lawn in front, a bright flower-garden at the side, and a well-
stocked orchard and kitchen-garden in the rear, enclosed with a 
venerable wall that had of itself a ripened ruddy look.  But, 
indeed, everything about the place wore an aspect of maturity and 
abundance.  The old lime-tree walk was like green cloisters, the 
very shadows of the cherry-trees and apple-trees were heavy with 
fruit, the gooseberry-bushes were so laden that their branches 
arched and rested on the earth, the strawberries and raspberries 
grew in like profusion, and the peaches basked by the hundred on 
the wall.  Tumbled about among the spread nets and the glass frames 
sparkling and winking in the sun there were such heaps of drooping 
pods, and marrows, and cucumbers, that every foot of ground 
appeared a vegetable treasury, while the smell of sweet herbs and 
all kinds of wholesome growth (to say nothing of the neighbouring 
meadows where the hay was carrying) made the whole air a great 
nosegay.  Such stillness and composure reigned within the orderly 
precincts of the old red wall that even the feathers hung in 
garlands to scare the birds hardly stirred; and the wall had such a 
ripening influence that where, here and there high up, a disused 
nail and scrap of list still clung to it, it was easy to fancy that 
they had mellowed with the changing seasons and that they had 
rusted and decayed according to the common fate.

The house, though a little disorderly in comparison with the 
garden, was a real old house with settles in the chimney of the 
brick-floored kitchen and great beams across the ceilings.  On one 
side of it was the terrible piece of ground in dispute, where Mr. 
Boythorn maintained a sentry in a smock-frock day and night, whose 
duty was supposed to be, in cases of aggression, immediately to 
ring a large bell hung up there for the purpose, to unchain a great 
bull-dog established in a kennel as his ally, and generally to deal 
destruction on the enemy.  Not content with these precautions, Mr. 
Boythorn had himself composed and posted there, on painted boards 
to which his name was attached in large letters, the following 
solemn warnings: "Beware of the bull-dog.  He is most ferocious.  
Lawrence Boythorn."  "The blunderbus is loaded with slugs.  
Lawrence Boythorn."  "Man-traps and spring-guns are set here at all 
times of the day and night.  Lawrence Boythorn."  "Take notice.  
That any person or persons audaciously presuming to trespass on 
this property will be punished with the utmost severity of private 
chastisement and prosecuted with the utmost rigour of the law.  
Lawrence Boythorn."  These he showed us from the drawing-room 
window, while his bird was hopping about his head, and he laughed, 
"Ha ha ha ha!  Ha ha ha ha!" to that extent as he pointed them out 
that I really thought he would have hurt himself.

"But this is taking a good deal of trouble," said Mr. Skimpole in 
his light way, "when you are not in earnest after all."

"Not in earnest!" returned Mr. Boythorn with unspeakable warmth.  
"Not in earnest!  If I could have hoped to train him, I would have 
bought a lion instead of that dog and would have turned him loose 
upon the first intolerable robber who should dare to make an 
encroachment on my rights.  Let Sir Leicester Dedlock consent to 
come out and decide this question by single combat, and I will meet 
him with any weapon known to mankind in any age or country.  I am 
that much in earnest.  Not more!"

We arrived at his house on a Saturday.  On the Sunday morning we 
all set forth to walk to the little church in the park.  Entering 
the park, almost immediately by the disputed ground, we pursued a 
pleasant footpath winding among the verdant turf and the beautiful 
trees until it brought us to the church-porch.

The congregation was extremely small and quite a rustic one with 
the exception of a large muster of servants from the house, some of 
whom were already in their seats, while others were yet dropping 
in.  There were some stately footmen, and there was a perfect 
picture of an old coachman, who looked as if he were the official 
representative of all the pomps and vanities that had ever been put 
into his coach.  There was a very pretty show of young women, and 
above them, the handsome old face and fine responsible portly 
figure of the housekeeper towered pre-eminent.  The pretty girl of 
whom Mr. Boythorn had told us was close by her.  She was so very 
pretty that I might have known her by her beauty even if I had not 
seen how blushingly conscious she was of the eyes of the young 
fisherman, whom I discovered not far off.  One face, and not an 
agreeable one, though it was handsome, seemed maliciously watchful 
of this pretty girl, and indeed of every one and everything there.  
It was a Frenchwoman's.

As the bell was yet ringing and the great people were not yet come, 
I had leisure to glance over the church, which smelt as earthy as a 
grave, and to think what a shady, ancient, solemn little church it 
was.  The windows, heavily shaded by trees, admitted a subdued 
light that made the faces around me pale, and darkened the old 
brasses in the pavement and the time and damp-worn monuments, and 
rendered the sunshine in the little porch, where a monotonous 
ringer was working at the bell, inestimably bright.  But a stir in 
that direction, a gathering of reverential awe in the rustic faces, 
and a blandly ferocious assumption on the part of Mr. Boythorn of 
being resolutely unconscious of somebody's existence forewarned me 
that the great people were come and that the service was going to 
begin.

"'Enter not into judgment with thy servant, O Lord, for in thy 
sight--'"

Shall I ever forget the rapid beating at my heart, occasioned by 
the look I met as I stood up!  Shall I ever forget the manner in 
which those handsome proud eyes seemed to spring out of their 
languor and to hold mine!  It was only a moment before I cast mine 
down--released again, if I may say so--on my book; but I knew the 
beautiful face quite well in that short space of time.

And, very strangely, there was something quickened within me, 
associated with the lonely days at my godmother's; yes, away even 
to the days when I had stood on tiptoe to dress myself at my little 
glass after dressing my doll.  And this, although I had never seen 
this lady's face before in all my life--I was quite sure of it--
absolutely certain.

It was easy to know that the ceremonious, gouty, grey-haired 
gentleman, the only other occupant of the great pew, was Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, and that the lady was Lady Dedlock.  But why her 
face should be, in a confused way, like a broken glass to me, in 
which I saw scraps of old remembrances, and why I should be so 
fluttered and troubled (for I was still) by having casually met her 
eyes, I could not think.

I felt it to be an unmeaning weakness in me and tried to overcome 
it by attending to the words I heard.  Then, very strangely, I 
seemed to hear them, not in the reader's voice, but in the well-
remembered voice of my godmother.  This made me think, did Lady 
Dedlock's face accidentally resemble my godmother's?  It might be 
that it did, a little; but the expression was so different, and the 
stern decision which had worn into my godmother's face, like 
weather into rocks, was so completely wanting in the face before me 
that it could not be that resemblance which had struck me.  Neither 
did I know the loftiness and haughtiness of Lady Dedlock's face, at 
all, in any one.  And yet I--I, little Esther Summerson, the child 
who lived a life apart and on whose birthday there was no 
rejoicing--seemed to arise before my own eyes, evoked out of the 
past by some power in this fashionable lady, whom I not only 
entertained no fancy that I had ever seen, but whom I perfectly 
well knew I had never seen until that hour.

It made me tremble so to be thrown into this unaccountable 
agitation that I was conscious of being distressed even by the 
observation of the French maid, though I knew she had been looking 
watchfully here, and there, and everywhere, from the moment of her 
coming into the church.  By degrees, though very slowly, I at last 
overcame my strange emotion.  After a long time, I looked towards 
Lady Dedlock again.  It was while they were preparing to sing, 
before the sermon.  She took no heed of me, and the beating at my 
heart was gone.  Neither did it revive for more than a few moments 
when she once or twice afterwards glanced at Ada or at me through 
her glass.

The service being concluded, Sir Leicester gave his arm with much 
taste and gallantry to Lady Dedlock--though he was obliged to walk 
by the help of a thick stick--and escorted her out of church to the 
pony carriage in which they had come.  The servants then dispersed, 
and so did the congregation, whom Sir Leicester had contemplated 
all along (Mr. Skimpole said to Mr. Boythorn's infinite delight) as 
if he were a considerable landed proprietor in heaven.

"He believes he is!" said Mr. Boythorn.  "He firmly believes it.  
So did his father, and his grandfather, and his great-grandfather!"

"Do you know," pursued Mr. Skimpole very unexpectedly to Mr. 
Boythorn, "it's agreeable to me to see a man of that sort."

"IS it!" said Mr. Boytborn.

"Say that he wants to patronize me," pursued Mr. Skimpole.  "Very 
well!  I don't object."

"I do," said Mr. Boythorn with great vigour.

"Do you really?" returned Mr. Skimpole in his easy light vein.  
"But that's taking trouble, surely.  And why should you take 
trouble?  Here am I, content to receive things childishly as they 
fall out, and I never take trouble!  I come down here, for 
instance, and I find a mighty potentate exacting homage.  Very 
well!  I say 'Mighty potentate, here IS my homage!  It's easier to 
give it than to withhold it.  Here it is.  If you have anything of 
an agreeable nature to show me, I shall be happy to see it; if you 
have anything of an agreeable nature to give me, I shall be happy 
to accept it.'  Mighty potentate replies in effect, 'This is a 
sensible fellow.  I find him accord with my digestion and my 
bilious system.  He doesn't impose upon me the necessity of rolling 
myself up like a hedgehog with my points outward.  I expand, I 
open, I turn my silver lining outward like Milton's cloud, and it's 
more agreeable to both of us.'  That's my view of such things, 
speaking as a child!"

"But suppose you went down somewhere else to-morrow," said Mr. 
Boythorn, "where there was the opposite of that fellow--or of this 
fellow.  How then?"

"How then?" said Mr. Skimpole with an appearance of the utmost 
simplicity and candour.  "Just the same then!  I should say, 'My 
esteemed Boythorn'--to make you the personification of our 
imaginary friend--'my esteemed Boythorn, you object to the mighty 
potentate?  Very good.  So do I.  I take it that my business in the 
social system is to be agreeable; I take it that everybody's 
business in the social system is to be agreeable.  It's a system of 
harmony, in short.  Therefore if you object, I object.  Now, 
excellent Boythorn, let us go to dinner!'"

"But excellent Boythorn might say," returned our host, swelling and 
growing very red, "I'll be--"

"I understand," said Mr. Skimpole.  "Very likely he would."

"--if I WILL go to dinner!" cried Mr. Boythorn in a violent burst 
and stopping to strike his stick upon the ground.  "And he would 
probably add, 'Is there such a thing as principle, Mr. Harold 
Skimpole?'"

"To which Harold Skimpole would reply, you know," he returned in 
his gayest manner and with his most ingenuous smile, "'Upon my life 
I have not the least idea!  I don't know what it is you call by 
that name, or where it is, or who possesses it.  If you possess it 
and find it comfortable, I am quite delighted and congratulate you 
heartily.  But I know nothing about it, I assure you; for I am a 
mere child, and I lay no claim to it, and I don't want it!'  So, 
you see, excellent Boythorn and I would go to dinner after all!"

This was one of many little dialogues between them which I always 
expected to end, and which I dare say would have ended under other 
circumstances, in some violent explosion on the part of our host.  
But he had so high a sense of his hospitable and responsible 
position as our entertainer, and my guardian laughed so sincerely 
at and with Mr. Skimpole, as a child who blew bubbles and broke 
them all day long, that matters never went beyond this point.  Mr. 
Skimpole, who always seemed quite unconscious of having been on 
delicate ground, then betook himself to beginning some sketch in 
the park which be never finished, or to playing fragments of airs 
on the piano, or to singing scraps of songs, or to lying down on 
his back under a tree and looking at the sky--which he couldn't 
help thinking, he said, was what he was meant for; it suited him so 
exactly.

"Enterprise and effort," he would say to us (on his back), are 
delightful to me.  I believe I am truly cosmopolitan.  I have the 
deepest sympathy with them.  I lie in a shady place like this and 
think of adventurous spirits going to the North Pole or penetrating 
to the heart of the Torrid Zone with admiration.  Mercenary 
creatures ask, 'What is the use of a man's going to the North Pole?  
What good does it do?'  I can't say; but, for anything I CAN say, 
he may go for the purpose--though he don't know it--of employing my 
thoughts as I lie here.  Take an extreme case.  Take the case of 
the slaves on American plantations.  I dare say they are worked 
hard, I dare say they don't altogether like it.  I dare say theirs 
is an unpleasant experience on the whole; but they people the 
landscape for me, they give it a poetry for me, and perhaps that is 
one of the pleasanter objects of their existence.  I am very 
sensible of it, if it be, and I shouldn't wonder if it were!"

I always wondered on these occasions whether he ever thought of 
Mrs. Skimpole and the children, and in what point of view they 
presented themselves to his cosmopolitan mind.  So far as I could 
understand, they rarely presented themselves at all.

The week had gone round to the Saturday following that beating of 
my heart in the church; and every day had been so bright and blue 
that to ramble in the woods, and to see the light striking down 
among the transparent leaves and sparkling in the beautiful 
interlacings of the shadows of the trees, while the birds poured 
out their songs and the air was drowsy with the hum of insects, had 
been most delightful.  We had one favourite spot, deep in moss and 
last year's leaves, where there were some felled trees from which 
the bark was all stripped off.  Seated among these, we looked 
through a green vista supported by thousands of natural columns, 
the whitened stems of trees, upon a distant prospect made so 
radiant by its contrast with the shade in which we sat and made so 
precious by the arched perspective through which we saw it that it 
was like a glimpse of the better land.  Upon the Saturday we sat 
here, Mr. Jarndyce, Ada, and I, until we heard thunder muttering in 
the distance and felt the large raindrops rattle through the 
leaves.

The weather had been all the week extremely sultry, but the storm 
broke so suddenly--upon us, at least, in that sheltered spot--that 
before we reached the outskirts of the wood the thunder and 
lightning were frequent and the rain came plunging through the 
leaves as if every drop were a great leaden bead.  As it was not a 
time for standing among trees, we ran out of the wood, and up and 
down the moss-grown steps which crossed the plantation-fence like 
two broad-staved ladders placed back to back, and made for a 
keeper's lodge which was close at hand.  We had often noticed the 
dark beauty of this lodge standing in a deep twilight of trees, and 
how the ivy clustered over it, and how there was a steep hollow 
near, where we had once seen the keeper's dog dive down into the 
fern as if it were water.

The lodge was so dark within, now the sky was overcast, that we 
only clearly saw the man who came to the door when we took shelter 
there and put two chairs for Ada and me.  The lattice-windows were 
all thrown open, and we sat just within the doorway watching the 
storm.  It was grand to see how the wind awoke, and bent the trees, 
and drove the rain before it like a cloud of smoke; and to hear the 
solemn thunder and to see the lightning; and while thinking with 
awe of the tremendous powers by which our little lives are 
encompassed, to consider how beneficent they are and how upon the 
smallest flower and leaf there was already a freshness poured from 
all this seeming rage which seemed to make creation new again.

"Is it not dangerous to sit in so exposed a place?"

"Oh, no, Esther dear!" said Ada quietly.

Ada said it to me, but I had not spoken.

The beating of my heart came back again.  I had never heard the 
voice, as I had never seen the face, but it affected me in the same 
strange way.  Again, in a moment, there arose before my mind 
innumerable pictures of myself.

Lady Dedlock had taken shelter in the lodge before our arrival 
there and had come out of the gloom within.  She stood behind my 
chair with her hand upon it.  I saw her with her hand close to my 
shoulder when I turned my head.

"I have frightened you?" she said.

No.  It was not fright.  Why should I be frightened!

"I believe," said Lady Dedlock to my guardian, "I have the pleasure 
of speaking to Mr. Jarndyce."

"Your remembrance does me more honour than I had supposed it would, 
Lady Dedlock," he returned.

"I recognized you in church on Sunday.  I am sorry that any local 
disputes of Sir Leicester's--they are not of his seeking, however, 
I believe--should render it a matter of some absurd difficulty to 
show you any attention here."

"I am aware of the circumstances," returned my guardian with a 
smile, "and am sufficiently obliged."

She had given him her hand in an indifferent way that seemed 
habitual to her and spoke in a correspondingly indifferent manner, 
though in a very pleasant voice.  She was as graceful as she was 
beautiful, perfectly self-possessed, and had the air, I thought, of 
being able to attract and interest any one if she had thought it 
worth her while.  The keeper had brought her a chair on which she 
sat in the middle of the porch between us.

"Is the young gentleman disposed of whom you wrote to Sir Leicester 
about and whose wishes Sir Leicester was sorry not to have it in 
his power to advance in any way?" she said over her shoulder to my 
guardian.

"I hope so," said he.

She seemed to respect him and even to wish to conciliate him.  
There was something very winning in her haughty manner, and it 
became more familiar--I was going to say more easy, but that could 
hardly be--as she spoke to him over her shoulder.

"I presume this is your other ward, Miss Clare?"

He presented Ada, in form.

"You will lose the disinterested part of your Don Quixote 
character," said Lady Dedlock to Mr. Jarndyce over her shoulder 
again, "if you only redress the wrongs of beauty like this.  But 
present me," and she turned full upon me, "to this young lady too!"

"Miss Summerson really is my ward," said Mr. Jarndyce.  "I am 
responsible to no Lord Chancellor in her case."

"Has Miss Summerson lost both her parents?" said my Lady.

"Yes."

"She is very fortunate in her guardian."

Lady Dedlock looked at me, and I looked at her and said I was 
indeed.  All at once she turned from me with a hasty air, almost 
expressive of displeasure or dislike, and spoke to him over her 
shoulder again.

"Ages have passed since we were in the habit of meeting, Mr. 
Jarndyce."

"A long time.  At least I thought it was a long time, until I saw 
you last Sunday," he returned.

"What!  Even you are a courtier, or think it necessary to become 
one to me!" she said with some disdain.  "I have achieved that 
reputation, I suppose."

"You have achieved so much, Lady Dedlock," said my guardian, "that 
you pay some little penalty, I dare say.  But none to me."

"So much!" she repeated, slightly laughing.  "Yes!"

With her air of superiority, and power, and fascination, and I know 
not what, she seemed to regard Ada and me as little more than 
children.  So, as she slightly laughed and afterwards sat looking 
at the rain, she was as self-possessed and as free to occupy 
herself with her own thoughts as if she had been alone.

"I think you knew my sister when we were abroad together better 
than you know me?" she said, looking at him again.

"Yes, we happened to meet oftener," he returned.

"We went our several ways," said Lady Dedlock, "and had little in 
common even before we agreed to differ.  It is to be regretted, I 
suppose, but it could not be helped."

Lady Dedlock again sat looking at the rain.  The storm soon began 
to pass upon its way.  The shower greatly abated, the lightning 
ceased, the thunder rolled among the distant hills, and the sun 
began to glisten on the wet leaves and the falling rain.  As we sat 
there, silently, we saw a little pony phaeton coming towards us at 
a merry pace.

"The messenger is coming back, my Lady," said the keeper, "with the 
carriage."

As it drove up, we saw that there were two people inside.  There 
alighted from it, with some cloaks and wrappers, first the 
Frenchwoman whom I had seen in church, and secondly the pretty 
girl, the Frenchwoman with a defiant confidence, the pretty girl 
confused and hesitating.

"What now?" said Lady Dedlock.  "Two!"

"I am your maid, my Lady, at the present," said the Frenchwoman.  
"The message was for the attendant."

"I was afraid you might mean me, my Lady," said the pretty girl.

"I did mean you, child," replied her mistress calmly.  "Put that 
shawl on me."

She slightly stooped her shoulders to receive it, and the pretty 
girl lightly dropped it in its place.  The Frenchwoman stood 
unnoticed, looking on with her lips very tightly set.

"I am sorry," said Lady Dedlock to Mr. Jarndyce, "that we are not 
likely to renew our former acquaintance.  You will allow me to send 
the carriage back for your two wards.  It shall be here directly."

But as he would on no account accept this offer, she took a 
graceful leave of Ada--none of me--and put her hand upon his 
proffered arm, and got into the carriage, which was a little, low, 
park carriage with a hood.

"Come in, child," she said to the pretty girl; "I shall want you.  
Go on!"

The carriage rolled away, and the Frenchwoman, with the wrappers 
she had brought hanging over her arm, remained standing where she 
had alighted.

I suppose there is nothing pride can so little bear with as pride 
itself, and that she was punished for her imperious manner.  Her 
retaliation was the most singular I could have imagined.  She 
remained perfectly still until the carriage had turned into the 
drive, and then, without the least discomposure of countenance, 
slipped off her shoes, left them on the ground, and walked 
deliberately in the same direction through the wettest of the wet 
grass.

"Is that young woman mad?" said my guardian.

"Oh, no, sir!" said the keeper, who, with his wife, was looking 
after her.  "Hortense is not one of that sort.  She has as good a 
head-piece as the best.  But she's mortal high and passionate--
powerful high and passionate; and what with having notice to leave, 
and having others put above her, she don't take kindly to it."

"But why should she walk shoeless through all that water?" said my 
guardian.

"Why, indeed, sir, unless it is to cool her down!" said the man.

"Or unless she fancies it's blood," said the woman.  "She'd as soon 
walk through that as anything else, I think, when her own's up!"

We passed not far from the house a few minutes afterwards.  
Peaceful as it had looked when we first saw it, it looked even more 
so now, with a diamond spray glittering all about it, a light wind 
blowing, the birds no longer hushed but singing strongly, 
everything refreshed by the late rain, and the little carriage 
shining at the doorway like a fairy carriage made of silver.  
Still, very steadfastly and quietly walking towards it, a peaceful 
figure too in the landscape, went Mademoiselle Hortense, shoeless, 
through the wet grass.



CHAPTER XIX

Moving On


It is the long vacation in the regions of Chancery Lane.  The good 
ships Law and Equity, those teak-built, copper-bottomed, iron-
fastened, brazen-faced, and not by any means fast-sailing clippers 
are laid up in ordinary.  The Flying Dutchman, with a crew of 
ghostly clients imploring all whom they may encounter to peruse 
their papers, has drifted, for the time being, heaven knows where.  
The courts are all shut up; the public offices lie in a hot sleep.  
Westminster Hall itself is a shady solitude where nightingales 
might sing, and a tenderer class of suitors than is usually found 
there, walk.

The Temple, Chancery Lane, Serjeants' Inn, and Lincoln's Inn even 
unto the Fields are like tidal harbours at low water, where 
stranded proceedings, offices at anchor, idle clerks lounging on 
lop-sided stools that will not recover their perpendicular until 
the current of Term sets in, lie high and dry upon the ooze of the 
long vacation.  Outer doors of chambers are shut up by the score, 
messages and parcels are to be left at the Porter's Lodge by the 
bushel.  A crop of grass would grow in the chinks of the stone 
pavement outside Lincoln's Inn Hall, but that the ticket-porters, 
who have nothing to do beyond sitting in the shade there, with 
their white aprons over their heads to keep the flies off, grub it 
up and eat it thoughtfully.

There is only one judge in town.  Even he only comes twice a week 
to sit in chambers.  If the country folks of those assize towns on 
his circuit could see him now!  No full-bottomed wig, no red 
petticoats, no fur, no javelin-men, no white wands.  Merely a 
close-shaved gentleman in white trousers and a white hat, with sea-
bronze on the judicial countenance, and a strip of bark peeled by 
the solar rays from the judicial nose, who calls in at the shell-
fish shop as he comes along and drinks iced ginger-beer!

The bar of England is scattered over the face of the earth.  How 
England can get on through four long summer months without its bar
--which is its acknowledged refuge in adversity and its only 
legitimate triumph in prosperity--is beside the question; assuredly 
that shield and buckler of Britannia are not in present wear.  The 
learned gentleman who is always so tremendously indignant at the 
unprecedented outrage committed on the feelings of his client by 
the opposite party that he never seems likely to recover it is 
doing infinitely better than might be expected in Switzerland.  The 
learned gentleman who does the withering business and who blights 
all opponents with his gloomy sarcasm is as merry as a grig at a 
French watering-place.  The learned gentleman who weeps by the pint 
on the smallest provocation has not shed a tear these six weeks.  
The very learned gentleman who has cooled the natural heat of his 
gingery complexion in pools and fountains of law until he has 
become great in knotty arguments for term-time, when he poses the 
drowsy bench with legal "chaff," inexplicable to the uninitiated 
and to most of the initiated too, is roaming, with a characteristic 
delight in aridity and dust, about Constantinople.  Other dispersed 
fragments of the same great palladium are to be found on the canals 
of Venice, at the second cataract of the Nile, in the baths of 
Germany, and sprinkled on the sea-sand all over the English coast.  
Scarcely one is to be encountered in the deserted region of 
Chancery Lane.  If such a lonely member of the bar do flit across 
the waste and come upon a prowling suitor who is unable to leave 
off haunting the scenes of his anxiety, they frighten one another 
and retreat into opposite shades.

It is the hottest long vacation known for many years.  All the 
young clerks are madly in love, and according to their various 
degrees, pine for bliss with the beloved object, at Margate, 
Ramsgate, or Gravesend.  All the middle-aged clerks think their 
families too large.  All the unowned dogs who stray into the Inns 
of Court and pant about staircases and other dry places seeking 
water give short howls of aggravation.  All the blind men's dogs in 
the streets draw their masters against pumps or trip them over 
buckets.  A shop with a sun-blind, and a watered pavement, and a 
bowl of gold and silver fish in the window, is a sanctuary.  Temple 
Bar gets so hot that it is, to the adjacent Strand and Fleet 
Street, what a heater is in an urn, and keeps them simmering all 
night.

There are offices about the Inns of Court in which a man might be 
cool, if any coolness were worth purchasing at such a price in 
dullness; but the little thoroughfares immediately outside those 
retirements seem to blaze.  In Mr. Krook's court, it is so hot that 
the people turn their houses inside out and sit in chairs upon the 
pavement--Mr. Krook included, who there pursues his studies, with 
his cat (who never is too hot) by his side.  The Sol's Arms has 
discontinued the Harmonic Meetings for the season, and Little 
Swills is engaged at the Pastoral Gardens down the river, where he 
comes out in quite an innocent manner and sings comic ditties of a 
juvenile complexion calculated (as the bill says) not to wound the 
feelings of the most fastidious mind.

Over all the legal neighbourhood there hangs, like some great veil 
of rust or gigantic cobweb, the idleness and pensiveness of the 
long vacation.  Mr. Snagsby, law-stationer of Cook's Court, 
Cursitor Street, is sensible of the influence not only in his mind 
as a sympathetic and contemplative man, but also in his business as 
a law-stationer aforesaid.  He has more leisure for musing in 
Staple Inn and in the Rolls Yard during the long vacation than at 
other seasons, and he says to the two 'prentices, what a thing it 
is in such hot weather to think that you live in an island with the 
sea a-rolling and a-bowling right round you.

Guster is busy in the little drawing-room on this present afternoon 
in the long vacation, when Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby have it in 
contemplation to receive company.  The expected guests are rather 
select than numerous, being Mr. and Mrs. Chadband and no more.  
From Mr. Chadband's being much given to describe himself, both 
verbally and in writing, as a vessel, he is occasionally mistaken 
by strangers for a gentleman connected with navigation, but he is, 
as he expresses it, "in the ministry."  Mr. Chadband is attached to 
no particular denomination and is considered by his persecutors to 
have nothing so very remarkable to say on the greatest of subjects 
as to render his volunteering, on his own account, at all incumbent 
on his conscience; but he has his followers, and Mrs. Snagsby is of 
the number.  Mrs. Snagsby has but recently taken a passage upward 
by the vessel, Chadband; and her attention was attracted to that 
Bark A 1 when she was something flushed by the hot weather.

"My little woman," says Mr. Snagsby to the sparrows in Staple Inn, 
"likes to have her religion rather sharp, you see!"

So Guster, much impressed by regarding herself for the time as the 
handmaid of Chadband, whom she knows to be endowed with the gift of 
holding forth for four hours at a stretch, prepares the little 
drawing-room for tea.  All the furniture is shaken and dusted, the 
portraits of Mr. and Mrs. Snagsby are touched up with a wet cloth, 
the best tea-service is set forth, and there is excellent provision 
made of dainty new bread, crusty twists, cool fresh butter, thin 
slices of ham, tongue, and German sausage, and delicate little rows 
of anchovies nestling in parsley, not to mention new-laid eggs, to 
be brought up warm in a napkin, and hot buttered toast.  For 
Chadband is rather a consuming vessel--the persecutors say a 
gorging vessel--and can wield such weapons of the flesh as a knife 
and fork remarkably well.

Mr. Snagsby in his best coat, looking at all the preparations when 
they are completed and coughing his cough of deference behind his 
hand, says to Mrs. Snagsby, "At what time did you expect Mr. and 
Mrs. Chadband, my love?"

"At six," says Mrs. Snagsby.

Mr. Snagsby observes in a mild and casual way that "it's gone 
that."

"Perhaps you'd like to begin without them," is Mrs. Snagsby's 
reproachful remark.

Mr. Snagsby does look as if he would like it very much, but he 
says, with his cough of mildness, "No, my dear, no.  I merely named 
the time."

"What's time," says Mrs. Snagsby, "to eternity?"

"Very true, my dear," says Mr. Snagsby.  "Only when a person lays 
in victuals for tea, a person does it with a view--perhaps--more to 
time.  And when a time is named for having tea, it's better to come 
up to it."

"To come up to it!" Mrs. Snagsby repeats with severity.  "Up to it!  
As if Mr. Chadband was a fighter!"

"Not at all, my dear," says Mr. Snagsby.

Here, Guster, who had been looking out of the bedroom window, comes 
rustling and scratching down the little staircase like a popular 
ghost, and falling flushed into the drawing-room, announces that 
Mr. and Mrs. Chadband have appeared in the court.  The bell at the 
inner door in the passage immediately thereafter tinkling, she is 
admonished by Mrs. Snagsby, on pain of instant reconsignment to her 
patron saint, not to omit the ceremony of announcement.  Much 
discomposed in her nerves (which were previously in the best order) 
by this threat, she so fearfully mutilates that point of state as 
to announce "Mr. and Mrs. Cheeseming, least which, Imeantersay, 
whatsername!" and retires conscience-stricken from the presence.

Mr. Chadband is a large yellow man with a fat smile and a general 
appearance of having a good deal of train oil in his system.  Mrs. 
Chadband is a stern, severe-looking, silent woman.  Mr. Chadband 
moves softly and cumbrously, not unlike a bear who has been taught 
to walk upright.  He is very much embarrassed about the arms, as if 
they were inconvenient to him and he wanted to grovel, is very much 
in a perspiration about the head, and never speaks without first 
putting up his great hand, as delivering a token to his hearers 
that he is going to edify them.

"My friends," says Mr. Chadband, "peace be on this house!  On the 
master thereof, on the mistress thereof, on the young maidens, and 
on the young men!  My friends, why do I wish for peace?  What is 
peace?  Is it war?  No.  Is it strife?  No.  Is it lovely, and 
gentle, and beautiful, and pleasant, and serene, and joyful?  Oh, 
yes!  Therefore, my friends, I wish for peace, upon you and upon 
yours."

In consequence of Mrs. Snagsby looking deeply edified, Mr. Snagsby 
thinks it expedient on the whole to say amen, which is well 
received.

"Now, my friends," proceeds Mr. Chadband, "since I am upon this 
theme--"

Guster presents herself.  Mrs. Snagsby, in a spectral bass voice 
and without removing her eyes from Chadband, says with dreadful 
distinctness, "Go away!"

"Now, my friends," says Chadband, "since I am upon this theme, and 
in my lowly path improving it--"

Guster is heard unaccountably to murmur "one thousing seven hundred 
and eighty-two."  The spectral voice repeats more solemnly, "Go 
away!"

"Now, my friends," says Mr. Chadband, "we will inquire in a spirit 
of love--"

Still Guster reiterates "one thousing seven hundred and eighty-
two."

Mr. Chadband, pausing with the resignation of a man accustomed to 
be persecuted and languidly folding up his chin into his fat smile, 
says, "Let us hear the maiden!  Speak, maiden!"

"One thousing seven hundred and eighty-two, if you please, sir.  
Which he wish to know what the shilling ware for," says Guster, 
breathless.

"For?" returns Mrs. Chadband.  "For his fare!"

Guster replied that "he insistes on one and eightpence or on 
summonsizzing the party."  Mrs. Snagsby and Mrs. Chadband are 
proceeding to grow shrill in indignation when Mr. Chadband quiets 
the tumult by lifting up his hand.

"My friends," says he, "I remember a duty unfulfilled yesterday.  
It is right that I should be chastened in some penalty.  I ought 
not to murmur.  Rachael, pay the eightpence!"

While Mrs. Snagsby, drawing her breath, looks hard at Mr. Snagsby, 
as who should say, "You hear this apostle!" and while Mr. Chadband 
glows with humility and train oil, Mrs. Chadband pays the money.  
It is Mr. Chadband's habit--it is the head and front of his 
pretensions indeed--to keep this sort of debtor and creditor 
account in the smallest items and to post it publicly on the most 
trivial occasions.

"My friends," says Chadband, "eightpence is not much; it might 
justly have been one and fourpence; it might justly have been half 
a crown.  O let us be joyful, joyful!  O let us be joyful!"

With which remark, which appears from its sound to be an extract in 
verse, Mr. Chadband stalks to the table, and before taking a chair, 
lifts up his admonitory hand.

"My friends," says he, "what is this which we now behold as being 
spread before us?  Refreshment.  Do we need refreshment then, my 
friends?  We do.  And why do we need refreshment, my friends?  
Because we are but mortal, because we are but sinful, because we 
are but of the earth, because we are not of the air.  Can we fly, 
my friends?  We cannot.  Why can we not fly, my friends?"

Mr. Snagsby, presuming on the success of his last point, ventures 
to observe in a cheerful and rather knowing tone, "No wings."  But 
is immediately frowned down by Mrs. Snagsby.

"I say, my friends," pursues Mr. Chadband, utterly rejecting and 
obliterating Mr. Snagsby's suggestion, "why can we not fly?  Is it 
because we are calculated to walk?  It is.  Could we walk, my 
friends, without strength?  We could not.  What should we do 
without strength, my friends?  Our legs would refuse to bear us, 
our knees would double up, our ankles would turn over, and we 
should come to the ground.  Then from whence, my friends, in a 
human point of view, do we derive the strength that is necessary to 
our limbs?  Is it," says Chadband, glancing over the table, "from 
bread in various forms, from butter which is churned from the milk 
which is yielded unto us by the cow, from the eggs which are laid 
by the fowl, from ham, from tongue, from sausage, and from such 
like?  It is.  Then let us partake of the good things which are set 
before us!"

The persecutors denied that there was any particular gift in Mr. 
Chadband's piling verbose flights of stairs, one upon another, 
after this fashion.  But this can only be received as a proof of 
their determination to persecute, since it must be within 
everybody's experience that the Chadband style of oratory is widely 
received and much admired.

Mr. Chadband, however, having concluded for the present, sits down 
at Mr. Snagsby's table and lays about him prodigiously.  The 
conversion of nutriment of any sort into oil of the quality already 
mentioned appears to be a process so inseparable from the 
constitution of this exemplary vessel that in beginning to eat and 
drink, he may be described as always becoming a kind of 
considerable oil mills or other large factory for the production of 
that article on a wholesale scale.  On the present evening of the 
long vacation, in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street, he does such a 
powerful stroke of business that the warehouse appears to be quite 
full when the works cease.

At this period of the entertainment, Guster, who has never 
recovered her first failure, but has neglected no possible or 
impossible means of bringing the establishment and herself into 
contempt--among which may be briefly enumerated her unexpectedly 
performing clashing military music on Mr. Chadband's head with 
plates, and afterwards crowning that gentleman with muffins--at 
which period of the entertainment, Guster whispers Mr. Snagsby that 
he is wanted.

"And being wanted in the--not to put too fine a point upon it--in 
the shop," says Mr. Snagsby, rising, "perhaps this good company 
will excuse me for half a minute."

Mr. Snagsby descends and finds the two 'prentices intently 
contemplating a police constable, who holds a ragged boy by the 
arm.

"Why, bless my heart," says Mr. Snagsby, "what's the matter!"

"This boy," says the constable, "although he's repeatedly told to, 
won't move on--"

"I'm always a-moving on, sar, cries the boy, wiping away his grimy 
tears with his arm.  "I've always been a-moving and a-moving on, 
ever since I was born.  Where can I possibly move to, sir, more nor 
I do move!"

"He won't move on," says the constable calmly, with a slight 
professional hitch of his neck involving its better settlement in 
his stiff stock, "although he has been repeatedly cautioned, and 
therefore I am obliged to take him into custody.  He's as obstinate 
a young gonoph as I know.  He WON'T move on."

"Oh, my eye!  Where can I move to!" cries the boy, clutching quite 
desperately at his hair and beating his bare feet upon the floor of 
Mr. Snagsby's passage.

"Don't you come none of that or I shall make blessed short work of 
you!" says the constable, giving him a passionless shake.  "My 
instructions are that you are to move on.  I have told you so five 
hundred times."

"But where?" cries the boy.

"Well!  Really, constable, you know," says Mr. Snagsby wistfully, 
and coughing behind his hand his cough of great perplexity and 
doubt, "really, that does seem a question.  Where, you know?"

"My instructions don't go to that," replies the constable.  "My 
instructions are that this boy is to move on."

Do you hear, Jo?  It is nothing to you or to any one else that the 
great lights of the parliamentary sky have failed for some few 
years in this business to set you the example of moving on.  The 
one grand recipe remains for you--the profound philosophical 
prescription--the be-all and the end-all of your strange existence 
upon earth.  Move on!  You are by no means to move off, Jo, for the 
great lights can't at all agree about that.  Move on!

Mr. Snagsby says nothing to this effect, says nothing at all 
indeed, but coughs his forlornest cough, expressive of no 
thoroughfare in any direction.  By this time Mr. and Mrs. Chadband 
and Mrs. Snagsby, hearing the altercation, have appeared upon the 
stairs.  Guster having never left the end of the passage, the whole 
household are assembled.

"The simple question is, sir," says the constable, "whether you 
know this boy.  He says you do."

Mrs. Snagsby, from her elevation, instantly cries out, "No he 
don't!"

"My lit-tle woman!" says Mr. Snagsby, looking up the staircase.  
"My love, permit me!  Pray have a moment's patience, my dear.  I do 
know something of this lad, and in what I know of him, I can't say 
that there's any harm; perhaps on the contrary, constable."  To 
whom the law-stationer relates his Joful and woful experience, 
suppressing the half-crown fact.

"Well!" says the constable, "so far, it seems, he had grounds for 
what he said.  When I took him into custody up in Holborn, he said 
you knew him.  Upon that, a young man who was in the crowd said he 
was acquainted with you, and you were a respectable housekeeper, 
and if I'd call and make the inquiry, he'd appear.  The young man 
don't seem inclined to keep his word, but--  Oh! Here IS the young 
man!"

Enter Mr. Guppy, who nods to Mr. Snagsby and touches his hat with 
the chivalry of clerkship to the ladies on the stairs.

"I was strolling away from the office just now when I found this 
row going on," says Mr. Guppy to the law-stationer, "and as your 
name was mentioned, I thought it was right the thing should be 
looked into."

"It was very good-natured of you, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, "and I am 
obliged to you."  And Mr. Snagsby again relates his experience, 
again suppressing the half-crown fact.

"Now, I know where you live," says the constable, then, to Jo.  
"You live down in Tom-all-Alone's.  That's a nice innocent place to 
live in, ain't it?"

"I can't go and live in no nicer place, sir," replies Jo.  "They 
wouldn't have nothink to say to me if I wos to go to a nice 
innocent place fur to live.  Who ud go and let a nice innocent 
lodging to such a reg'lar one as me!"

"You are very poor, ain't you?" says the constable.

"Yes, I am indeed, sir, wery poor in gin'ral," replies Jo.  "I 
leave you to judge now!  I shook these two half-crowns out of him," 
says the constable, producing them to the company, "in only putting 
my hand upon him!"

"They're wot's left, Mr. Snagsby," says Jo, "out of a sov-ring as 
wos give me by a lady in a wale as sed she wos a servant and as 
come to my crossin one night and asked to be showd this 'ere ouse 
and the ouse wot him as you giv the writin to died at, and the 
berrin-ground wot he's berrid in.  She ses to me she ses 'are you 
the boy at the inkwhich?' she ses.  I ses 'yes' I ses.  She ses to 
me she ses 'can you show me all them places?'  I ses 'yes I can' I 
ses.  And she ses to me 'do it' and I dun it and she giv me a 
sov'ring and hooked it.  And I an't had much of the sov'ring 
neither," says Jo, with dirty tears, "fur I had to pay five bob, 
down in Tom-all-Alone's, afore they'd square it fur to give me 
change, and then a young man he thieved another five while I was 
asleep and another boy he thieved ninepence and the landlord he 
stood drains round with a lot more on it."

"You don't expect anybody to believe this, about the lady and the 
sovereign, do you?" says the constable, eyeing him aside with 
ineffable disdain.

"I don't know as I do, sir," replies Jo.  "I don't expect nothink 
at all, sir, much, but that's the true hist'ry on it."

"You see what he is!" the constable observes to the audience.  
"Well, Mr. Snagsby, if I don't lock him up this time, will you 
engage for his moving on?"

"No!" cries Mrs. Snagsby from the stairs.

"My little woman!" pleads her husband.  "Constable, I have no doubt 
he'll move on.  You know you really must do it," says Mr. Snagsby.

"I'm everyways agreeable, sir," says the hapless Jo.

"Do it, then," observes the constable.  "You know what you have got 
to do.  Do it!  And recollect you won't get off so easy next time.  
Catch hold of your money.  Now, the sooner you're five mile off, 
the better for all parties."

With this farewell hint and pointing generally to the setting sun 
as a likely place to move on to, the constable bids his auditors 
good afternoon and makes the echoes of Cook's Court perform slow 
music for him as he walks away on the shady side, carrying his 
iron-bound hat in his hand for a little ventilation.

Now, Jo's improbable story concerning the lady and the sovereign 
has awakened more or less the curiosity of all the company.  Mr. 
Guppy, who has an inquiring mind in matters of evidence and who has 
been suffering severely from the lassitude of the long vacation, 
takes that interest in the case that he enters on a regular cross-
examination of the witness, which is found so interesting by the 
ladies that Mrs. Snagsby politely invites him to step upstairs and 
drink a cup of tea, if he will excuse the disarranged state of the 
tea-table, consequent on their previous exertions.  Mr. Guppy 
yielding his assent to this proposal, Jo is requested to follow 
into the drawing-room doorway, where Mr. Guppy takes him in hand as 
a witness, patting him into this shape, that shape, and the other 
shape like a butterman dealing with so much butter, and worrying 
him according to the best models.  Nor is the examination unlike 
many such model displays, both in respect of its eliciting nothing 
and of its being lengthy, for Mr. Guppy is sensible of his talent, 
and Mrs. Snagsby feels not only that it gratifies her inquisitive 
disposition, but that it lifts her husband's establishment higher 
up in the law.  During the progress of this keen encounter, the 
vessel Chadband, being merely engaged in the oil trade, gets 
aground and waits to be floated off.

"Well!" says Mr. Guppy.  "Either this boy sticks to it like 
cobbler's-wax or there is something out of the common here that 
beats anything that ever came into my way at Kenge and Carboy's."

Mrs. Chadband whispers Mrs. Snagsby, who exclaims, "You don't say 
so!"

"For years!" replied Mrs. Chadband.

"Has known Kenge and Carboy's office for years," Mrs. Snagsby 
triumphantly explains to Mr. Guppy.  "Mrs. Chadband--this 
gentleman's wife--Reverend Mr. Chadband."

"Oh, indeed!" says Mr. Guppy.

"Before I married my present husband," says Mrs. Chadband.

"Was you a party in anything, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy, transferring 
his cross-examination.

"No."

"NOT a party in anything, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy.

Mrs. Chadband shakes her head.

"Perhaps you were acquainted with somebody who was a party in 
something, ma'am?" says Mr. Guppy, who likes nothing better than to 
model his conversation on forensic principles.

"Not exactly that, either," replies Mrs. Chadband, humouring the 
joke with a hard-favoured smile.

"Not exactly that, either!" repeats Mr. Guppy.  "Very good.  Pray, 
ma'am, was it a lady of your acquaintance who had some transactions 
(we will not at present say what transactions) with Kenge and 
Carboy's office, or was it a gentleman of your acquaintance?  Take 
time, ma'am.  We shall come to it presently.  Man or woman, ma'am?"

"Neither," says Mrs. Chadband as before.

"Oh!  A child!" says Mr. Guppy, throwing on the admiring Mrs. 
Snagsby the regular acute professional eye which is thrown on 
British jurymen.  "Now, ma'am, perhaps you'll have the kindness to 
tell us WHAT child."

"You have got it at last, sir," says Mrs. Chadband with another 
hard-favoured smile.  "Well, sir, it was before your time, most 
likely, judging from your appearance.  I was left in charge of a 
child named Esther Summerson, who was put out in life by Messrs. 
Kenge and Carboy."

"Miss Summerson, ma'am!" cries Mr. Guppy, excited.

"I call her Esther Summerson," says Mrs. Chadband with austerity.  
"There was no Miss-ing of the girl in my time.  It was Esther.  
'Esther, do this!  Esther, do that!' and she was made to do it."

"My dear ma'am," returns Mr. Guppy, moving across the small 
apartment, "the humble individual who now addresses you received 
that young lady in London when she first came here from the 
establishment to which you have alluded.  Allow me to have the 
pleasure of taking you by the hand."

Mr. Chadband, at last seeing his opportunity, makes his accustomed 
signal and rises with a smoking head, which he dabs with his 
pocket-handkerchief.  Mrs. Snagsby whispers "Hush!"

"My friends," says Chadband, "we have partaken in moderation" 
(which was certainly not the case so far as he was concerned) "of 
the comforts which have been provided for us.  May this house live 
upon the fatness of the land; may corn and wine be plentiful 
therein; may it grow, may it thrive, may it prosper, may it 
advance, may it proceed, may it press forward!  But, my friends, 
have we partaken of any-hing else?  We have.  My friends, of what 
else have we partaken?  Of spiritual profit?  Yes.  From whence 
have we derived that spiritual profit?  My young friend, stand 
forth!"

Jo, thus apostrophized, gives a slouch backward, and another slouch 
forward, and another slouch to each side, and confronts the 
eloquent Chadband with evident doubts of his intentions.

"My young friend," says Chadband, "you are to us a pearl, you are 
to us a diamond, you are to us a gem, you are to us a jewel.  And 
why, my young friend?"

"I don't know," replies Jo.  "I don't know nothink."

"My young friend," says Chadband, "it is because you know nothing 
that you are to us a gem and jewel.  For what are you, my young 
friend?  Are you a beast of the field?  No.  A bird of the air?  
No.  A fish of the sea or river?  No.  You are a human boy, my 
young friend.  A human boy.  O glorious to be a human boy!  And why 
glorious, my young friend?  Because you are capable of receiving 
the lessons of wisdom, because you are capable of profiting by this 
discourse which I now deliver for your good, because you are not a 
stick, or a staff, or a stock, or a stone, or a post, or a pillar.


     O running stream of sparkling joy
     To be a soaring human boy!


And do you cool yourself in that stream now, my young friend?  No.  
Why do you not cool yourself in that stream now?  Because you are 
in a state of darkness, because you are in a state of obscurity, 
because you are in a state of sinfulness, because you are in a 
state of bondage.  My young friend, what is bondage?  Let us, in a 
spirit of love, inquire."

At this threatening stage of the discourse, Jo, who seems to have 
been gradually going out of his mind, smears his right arm over his 
face and gives a terrible yawn.  Mrs. Snagsby indignantly expresses 
her belief that he is a limb of the arch-fiend.

"My friends," says Mr. Chadband with his persecuted chin folding 
itself into its fat smile again as he looks round, "it is right 
that I should be humbled, it is right that I should be tried, it is 
right that I should be mortified, it is right that I should be 
corrected.  I stumbled, on Sabbath last, when I thought with pride 
of my three hours' improving.  The account is now favourably 
balanced: my creditor has accepted a composition.  O let us be 
joyful, joyful!  O let us be joyful!"

Great sensation on the part of Mrs. Snagsby.

"My friends," says Chadband, looking round him in conclusion, "I 
will not proceed with my young friend now.  Will you come to-
morrow, my young friend, and inquire of this good lady where I am 
to be found to deliver a discourse unto you, and will you come like 
the thirsty swallow upon the next day, and upon the day after that, 
and upon the day after that, and upon many pleasant days, to hear 
discourses?"  (This with a cow-like lightness.)

Jo, whose immediate object seems to be to get away on any terms, 
gives a shuffling nod.  Mr. Guppy then throws him a penny, and Mrs. 
Snagsby calls to Guster to see him safely out of the house.  But 
before he goes downstairs, Mr. Snagsby loads him with some broken 
meats from the table, which he carries away, hugging in his arms.

So, Mr. Chadband--of whom the persecutors say that it is no wonder 
he should go on for any length of time uttering such abominable 
nonsense, but that the wonder rather is that he should ever leave 
off, having once the audacity to begin--retires into private life 
until he invests a little capital of supper in the oil-trade.  Jo 
moves on, through the long vacation, down to Blackfriars Bridge, 
where he finds a baking stony corner wherein to settle to his 
repast.

And there he sits, munching and gnawing, and looking up at the 
great cross on the summit of St. Paul's Cathedral, glittering above 
a red-and-violet-tinted cloud of smoke.  From the boy's face one 
might suppose that sacred emblem to be, in his eyes, the crowning 
confusion of the great, confused city--so golden, so high up, so 
far out of his reach.  There he sits, the sun going down, the river 
running fast, the crowd flowing by him in two streams--everything 
moving on to some purpose and to one end--until he is stirred up 
and told to "move on" too.



CHAPTER XX

A New Lodger


The long vacation saunters on towards term-time like an idle river 
very leisurely strolling down a flat country to the sea.  Mr. Guppy 
saunters along with it congenially.  He has blunted the blade of 
his penknife and broken the point off by sticking that instrument 
into his desk in every direction.  Not that he bears the desk any 
ill will, but he must do something, and it must be something of an 
unexciting nature, which will lay neither his physical nor his 
intellectual energies under too heavy contribution.  He finds that 
nothing agrees with him so well as to make little gyrations on one 
leg of his stool, and stab his desk, and gape.

Kenge and Carboy are out of town, and the articled clerk has taken 
out a shooting license and gone down to his father's, and Mr. 
Guppy's two fellow-stipendiaries are away on leave.  Mr. Guppy and 
Mr. Richard Carstone divide the dignity of the office.  But Mr. 
Carstone is for the time being established in Kenge's room, whereat 
Mr. Guppy chafes.  So exceedingly that he with biting sarcasm 
informs his mother, in the confidential moments when he sups with 
her off a lobster and lettuce in the Old Street Road, that he is 
afraid the office is hardly good enough for swells, and that if he 
had known there was a swell coming, he would have got it painted.

Mr. Guppy suspects everybody who enters on the occupation of a 
stool in Kenge and Carboy's office of entertaining, as a matter of 
course, sinister designs upon him.  He is clear that every such 
person wants to depose him.  If he be ever asked how, why, when, or 
wherefore, he shuts up one eye and shakes his head.  On the 
strength of these profound views, he in the most ingenious manner 
takes infinite pains to counterplot when there is no plot, and 
plays the deepest games of chess without any adversary.

It is a source of much gratification to Mr. Guppy, therefore, to 
find the new-comer constantly poring over the papers in Jarndyce 
and Jarndyce, for he well knows that nothing but confusion and 
failure can come of that.  His satisfaction communicates itself to 
a third saunterer through the long vacation in Kenge and Carboy's 
office, to wit, Young Smallweed.

Whether Young Smallweed (metaphorically called Small and eke Chick 
Weed, as it were jocularly to express a fledgling) was ever a boy 
is much doubted in Lincoln's Inn.  He is now something under 
fifteen and an old limb of the law.  He is facetiously understood 
to entertain a passion for a lady at a cigar-shop in the 
neighbourhood of Chancery Lane and for her sake to have broken off 
a contract with another lady, to whom he had been engaged some 
years.  He is a town-made article, of small stature and weazen 
features, but may be perceived from a considerable distance by 
means of his very tall hat.  To become a Guppy is the object of his 
ambition.  He dresses at that gentleman (by whom he is patronized), 
talks at him, walks at him, founds himself entirely on him.  He is 
honoured with Mr. Guppy's particular confidence and occasionally 
advises him, from the deep wells of his experience, on difficult 
points in private life.

Mr. Guppy has been lolling out of window all the morning after 
trying all the stools in succession and finding none of them easy, 
and after several times putting his head into the iron safe with a 
notion of cooling it.  Mr. Smallweed has been twice dispatched for 
effervescent drinks, and has twice mixed them in the two official 
tumblers and stirred them up with the ruler.  Mr. Guppy propounds 
for Mr. Smallweed's consideration the paradox that the more you 
drink the thirstier you are and reclines his head upon the window-
sill in a state of hopeless languor.

While thus looking out into the shade of Old Square, Lincoln's Inn, 
surveying the intolerable bricks and mortar, Mr. Guppy becomes 
conscious of a manly whisker emerging from the cloistered walk 
below and turning itself up in the direction of his face.  At the 
same time, a low whistle is wafted through the Inn and a suppressed 
voice cries, "Hip!  Gup-py!"

"Why, you don't mean it!" says Mr. Guppy, aroused.  "Small!  Here's 
Jobling!"  Small's head looks out of window too and nods to 
Jobling.

"Where have you sprung up from?" inquires Mr. Guppy.

"From the market-gardens down by Deptford.  I can't stand it any 
longer.  I must enlist.  I say!  I wish you'd lend me half a crown.  
Upon my soul, I'm hungry."

Jobling looks hungry and also has the appearance of having run to 
seed in the market-gardens down by Deptford.

"I say!  Just throw out half a crown if you have got one to spare.  
I want to get some dinner."

"Will you come and dine with me?" says Mr. Guppy, throwing out the 
coin, which Mr. Jobling catches neatly.

"How long should I have to hold out?" says Jobling.

"Not half an hour.  I am only waiting here till the enemy goes, 
returns Mr. Guppy, butting inward with his head.

"What enemy?"

"A new one.  Going to be articled.  Will you wait?"

"Can you give a fellow anything to read in the meantime?" says Mr 
Jobling.

Smallweed suggests the law list.  But Mr. Jobling declares with 
much earnestness that he "can't stand it."

"You shall have the paper," says Mr. Guppy.  "He shall bring it 
down.  But you had better not be seen about here.  Sit on our 
staircase and read.  It's a quiet place."

Jobling nods intelligence and acquiescence.  The sagacious 
Smallweed supplies him with the newspaper and occasionally drops 
his eye upon him from the landing as a precaution against his 
becoming disgusted with waiting and making an untimely departure.  
At last the enemy retreats, and then Smallweed fetches Mr. Jobling 
up.

"Well, and how are you?" says Mr. Guppy, shaking hands with him.

"So, so.  How are you?"

Mr. Guppy replying that he is not much to boast of, Mr. Jobling 
ventures on the question, "How is SHE?"  This Mr. Guppy resents as 
a liberty, retorting, "Jobling, there ARE chords in the human 
mind--"  Jobling begs pardon.

"Any subject but that!" says Mr. Guppy with a gloomy enjoyment of 
his injury.  "For there ARE chords, Jobling--"

Mr. Jobling begs pardon again.

During this short colloquy, the active Smallweed, who is of the 
dinner party, has written in legal characters on a slip of paper, 
"Return immediately."  This notification to all whom it may 
concern, he inserts in the letter-box, and then putting on the tall 
hat at the angle of inclination at which Mr. Guppy wears his, 
informs his patron that they may now make themselves scarce.

Accordingly they betake themselves to a neighbouring dining-house, 
of the class known among its frequenters by the denomination slap-
bang, where the waitress, a bouncing young female of forty, is 
supposed to have made some impression on the susceptible Smallweed, 
of whom it may be remarked that he is a weird changeling to whom 
years are nothing.  He stands precociously possessed of centuries 
of owlish wisdom.  If he ever lay in a cradle, it seems as if he 
must have lain there in a tail-coat.  He has an old, old eye, has 
Smallweed; and he drinks and smokes in a monkeyish way; and his 
neck is stiff in his collar; and he is never to be taken in; and he 
knows all about it, whatever it is.  In short, in his bringing up 
he has been so nursed by Law and Equity that he has become a kind 
of fossil imp, to account for whose terrestrial existence it is 
reported at the public offices that his father was John Doe and his 
mother the only female member of the Roe family, also that his 
first long-clothes were made from a blue bag.

Into the dining-house, unaffected by the seductive show in the 
window of artificially whitened cauliflowers and poultry, verdant 
baskets of peas, coolly blooming cucumbers, and joints ready for 
the spit, Mr. Smallweed leads the way.  They know him there and 
defer to him.  He has his favourite box, he bespeaks all the 
papers, he is down upon bald patriarchs, who keep them more than 
ten minutes afterwards.  It is of no use trying him with anything 
less than a full-sized "bread" or proposing to him any joint in cut 
unless it is in the very best cut.  In the matter of gravy he is 
adamant.

Conscious of his elfin power and submitting to his dread 
experience, Mr. Guppy consults him in the choice of that day's 
banquet, turning an appealing look towards him as the waitress 
repeats the catalogue of viands and saying "What do YOU take, 
Chick?"  Chick, out of the profundity of his artfulness, preferring 
"veal and ham and French beans--and don't you forget the stuffing, 
Polly" (with an unearthly cock of his venerable eye), Mr. Guppy and 
Mr. Jobling give the like order.  Three pint pots of half-and-half 
are superadded.  Quickly the waitress returns bearing what is 
apparently a model of the Tower of Babel but what is really a pile 
of plates and flat tin dish-covers.  Mr. Smallweed, approving of 
what is set before him, conveys intelligent benignity into his 
ancient eye and winks upon her.  Then, amid a constant coming in, 
and going out, and running about, and a clatter of crockery, and a 
rumbling up and down of the machine which brings the nice cuts from 
the kitchen, and a shrill crying for more nice cuts down the 
speaking-pipe, and a shrill reckoning of the cost of nice cuts that 
have been disposed of, and a general flush and steam of hot joints, 
cut and uncut, and a considerably heated atmosphere in which the 
soiled knives and tablecloths seem to break out spontaneously into 
eruptions of grease and blotches of beer, the legal triumvirate 
appease their appetites.

Mr. Jobling is buttoned up closer than mere adornment might 
require.  His hat presents at the rims a peculiar appearance of a 
glistening nature, as if it had been a favourite snail-promenade.  
The same phenomenon is visible on some parts of his coat, and 
particularly at the seams.  He has the faded appearance of a 
gentleman in embarrassed circumstances; even his light whiskers 
droop with something of a shabby air.

His appetite is so vigorous that it suggests spare living for some 
little time back.  He makes such a speedy end of his plate of veal 
and ham, bringing it to a close while his companions are yet midway 
in theirs, that Mr. Guppy proposes another.  "Thank you, Guppy," 
says Mr. Jobling, "I really don't know but what I WILL take 
another."

Another being brought, he falls to with great goodwill.

Mr. Guppy takes silent notice of him at intervals until he is half 
way through this second plate and stops to take an enjoying pull at 
his pint pot of half-and-half (also renewed) and stretches out his 
legs and rubs his hands.  Beholding him in which glow of 
contentment, Mr. Guppy says, "You are a man again, Tony!"

"Well, not quite yet," says Mr. Jobling.  "Say, just born."

"Will you take any other vegetables?  Grass?  Peas?  Summer 
cabbage?"

"Thank you, Guppy," says Mr. Jobling.  "I really don't know but 
what I WILL take summer cabbage."

Order given; with the sarcastic addition (from Mr. Smallweed) of 
"Without slugs, Polly!"  And cabbage produced.

"I am growing up, Guppy," says Mr. Jobling, plying his knife and 
fork with a relishing steadiness.

"Glad to hear it."

"In fact, I have just turned into my teens," says Mr. Jobling.

He says no more until he has performed his task, which he achieves 
as Messrs. Guppy and Smallweed finish theirs, thus getting over the 
ground in excellent style and beating those two gentlemen easily by 
a veal and ham and a cabbage.

"Now, Small," says Mr. Guppy, "what would you recommend about 
pastry?"

"Marrow puddings," says Mr. Smallweed instantly.

"Aye, aye!" cries Mr. Jobling with an arch look.  "You're there, 
are you?  Thank you, Mr. Guppy, I don't know but what I WILL take a 
marrow pudding."

Three marrow puddings being produced, Mr. Jobling adds in a 
pleasant humour that he is coming of age fast.  To these succeed, 
by command of Mr. Smallweed, "three Cheshires," and to those "three 
small rums."  This apex of the entertainment happily reached, Mr. 
Jobling puts up his legs on the carpeted seat (having his own side 
of the box to himself), leans against the wall, and says, "I am 
grown up now, Guppy.  I have arrived at maturity."

"What do you think, now," says Mr. Guppy, "about--you don't mind 
Smallweed?"

"Not the least in the worid.  I have the pleasure of drinking his 
good health."

"Sir, to you!" says Mr. Smallweed.

"I was saying, what do you think NOW," pursues Mr. Guppy, "of 
enlisting?"

"Why, what I may think after dinner," returns Mr. Jobling, "is one 
thing, my dear Guppy, and what I may think before dinner is another 
thing.  Still, even after dinner, I ask myself the question, What 
am I to do?  How am I to live?  Ill fo manger, you know," says Mr. 
Jobling, pronouncing that word as if he meant a necessary fixture 
in an English stable.  "Ill fo manger.  That's the French saying, 
and mangering is as necessary to me as it is to a Frenchman.  Or 
more so."

Mr. Smallweed is decidedly of opinion "much more so."

"If any man had told me," pursues Jobling, "even so lately as when 
you and I had the frisk down in Lincolnshire, Guppy, and drove over 
to see that house at Castle Wold--"

Mr. Smallweed corrects him--Chesney Wold.

"Chesney Wold.  (I thank my honourable friend for that cheer.) If 
any man had told me then that I should be as hard up at the present 
time as I literally find myself, I should have--well, I should have 
pitched into him," says Mr. Jobling, taking a little rum-and-water 
with an air of desperate resignation; "I should have let fly at his 
head."

"Still, Tony, you were on the wrong side of the post then," 
remonstrates Mr. Guppy.  "You were talking about nothing else in 
the gig."

"Guppy," says Mr. Jobling, "I will not deny it.  I was on the wrong 
side of the post.  But I trusted to things coming round."

That very popular trust in flat things coming round!  Not in their 
being beaten round, or worked round, but in their "coming" round!  
As though a lunatic should trust in the world's "coming" 
triangular!

"I had confident expectations that things would come round and be 
all square," says Mr. Jobling with some vagueness of expression and 
perhaps of meaning too.  "But I was disappointed.  They never did.  
And when it came to creditors making rows at the office and to 
people that the office dealt with making complaints about dirty 
trifles of borrowed money, why there was an end of that connexion.  
And of any new professional connexion too, for if I was to give a 
reference to-morrow, it would be mentioned and would sew me up.  
Then what's a fellow to do?  I have been keeping out of the way and 
living cheap down about the market-gardens, but what's the use of 
living cheap when you have got no money?  You might as well live 
dear."

"Better," Mr. Smallweed thinks.

"Certainly.  It's the fashionable way; and fashion and whiskers 
have been my weaknesses, and I don't care who knows it," says Mr. 
Jobling.  "They are great weaknesses--Damme, sir, they are great.  
Well," proceeds Mr. Jobling after a defiant visit to his rum-and-
water, "what can a fellow do, I ask you, BUT enlist?"

Mr. Guppy comes more fully into the conversation to state what, in 
his opinion, a fellow can do.  His manner is the gravely impressive 
manner of a man who has not committed himself in life otherwise 
than as he has become the victim of a tender sorrow of the heart.

"Jobling," says Mr. Guppy, "myself and our mutual friend Smallweed--"

Mr. Smallweed modestly observes, "Gentlemen both!" and drinks.

"--Have had a little conversation on this matter more than once 
since you--"

"Say, got the sack!" cries Mr. Jobling bitterly.  "Say it, Guppy.  
You mean it."

"No-o-o!  Left the Inn," Mr. Smallweed delicately suggests.

"Since you left the Inn, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy; "and I have 
mentioned to our mutual friend Smallweed a plan I have lately 
thought of proposing.  You know Snagsby the stationer?"

"I know there is such a stationer," returns Mr. Jobling.  "He was 
not ours, and I am not acquainted with him."

"He IS ours, Jobling, and I AM acquainted with him," Mr. Guppy 
retorts.  "Well, sir!  I have lately become better acquainted with 
him through some accidental circumstances that have made me a 
visitor of his in private life.  Those circumstances it is not 
necessary to offer in argument.  They may--or they may not--have 
some reference to a subject which may--or may not--have cast its 
shadow on my existence."

As it is Mr. Guppy's perplexing way with boastful misery to tempt 
his particular friends into this subject, and the moment they touch 
it, to turn on them with that trenchant severity about the chords 
in the human mind, both Mr. Jobling and Mr. Smallweed decline the 
pitfall by remaining silent.

"Such things may be," repeats Mr. Guppy, "or they may not be.  They 
are no part of the case.  It is enough to mention that both Mr. and 
Mrs. Snagsby are very willing to oblige me and that Snagsby has, in 
busy times, a good deal of copying work to give out.  He has all 
Tulkinghorn's, and an excellent business besides.  I believe if our 
mutual friend Smallweed were put into the box, he could prove 
this?"

Mr. Smallweed nods and appears greedy to be sworn.

"Now, gentlemen of the jury," says Mr. Guppy, "--I mean, now, 
Jobling--you may say this is a poor prospect of a living.  Granted.  
But it's better than nothing, and better than enlistment.  You want 
time.  There must be time for these late affairs to blow over.  You 
might live through it on much worse terms than by writing for 
Snagsby."

Mr. Jobling is about to interrupt when the sagacious Smallweed 
checks him with a dry cough and the words, "Hem!  Shakspeare!"

"There are two branches to this subject, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy.  
"That is the first.  I come to the second.  You know Krook, the 
Chancellor, across the lane.  Come, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy in his 
encouraging cross-examination-tone, "I think you know Krook, the 
Chancellor, across the lane?"

"I know him by sight," says Mr. Jobling.

"You know him by sight.  Very well.  And you know little Flite?"

"Everybody knows her," says Mr. Jobling.

"Everybody knows her.  VERY well.  Now it has been one of my duties 
of late to pay Flite a certain weekly allowance, deducting from it 
the amount of her weekly rent, which I have paid (in consequence of 
instructions I have received) to Krook himself, regularly in her 
presence.  This has brought me into communication with Krook and 
into a knowledge of his house and his habits.  I know he has a room 
to let.  You may live there at a very low charge under any name you 
like, as quietly as if you were a hundred miles off.  He'll ask no 
questions and would accept you as a tenant at a word from me--
before the clock strikes, if you chose.  And I tell you another 
thing, Jobling," says Mr. Guppy, who has suddenly lowered his voice 
and become familiar again, "he's an extraordinary old chap--always 
rummaging among a litter of papers and grubbing away at teaching 
himself to read and write, without getting on a bit, as it seems to 
me.  He is a most extraordinary old chap, sir.  I don't know but 
what it might be worth a fellow's while to look him up a bit."

"You don't mean--" Mr. Jobling begins.

"I mean," returns Mr. Guppy, shrugging his shoulders with becoming 
modesty, "that I can't make him out.  I appeal to our mutual friend 
Smallweed whether he has or has not heard me remark that I can't 
make him out."

Mr. Smallweed bears the concise testimony, "A few!"

"I have seen something of the profession and something of life, 
Tony," says Mr. Guppy, "and it's seldom I can't make a man out, 
more or less.  But such an old card as this, so deep, so sly, and 
secret (though I don't believe he is ever sober), I never came 
across.  Now, he must be precious old, you know, and he has not a 
soul about him, and he is reported to be immensely rich; and 
whether he is a smuggler, or a receiver, or an unlicensed 
pawnbroker, or a money-lender--all of which I have thought likely 
at different times--it might pay you to knock up a sort of 
knowledge of him.  I don't see why you shouldn't go in for it, when 
everything else suits."

Mr. Jobling, Mr. Guppy, and Mr. Smallweed all lean their elbows on 
the table and their chins upon their hands, and look at the 
ceiling.  After a time, they all drink, slowly lean back, put their 
hands in their pockets, and look at one another.

"If I had the energy I once possessed, Tony!" says Mr. Guppy with a 
sigh.  "But there are chords in the human mind--"

Expressing the remainder of the desolate sentiment in rum-and-
water, Mr. Guppy concludes by resigning the adventure to Tony 
Jobling and informing him that during the vacation and while things 
are slack, his purse, "as far as three or four or even five pound 
goes," will be at his disposal.  "For never shall it be said," Mr. 
Guppy adds with emphasis, "that William Guppy turned his back upon 
his friend!"

The latter part of the proposal is so directly to the purpose that 
Mr. Jobling says with emotion, "Guppy, my trump, your fist!"  Mr. 
Guppy presents it, saying, "Jobling, my boy, there it is!"  Mr. 
Jobling returns, "Guppy, we have been pals now for some years!"  
Mr. Guppy replies, "Jobling, we have."

They then shake hands, and Mr. Jobling adds in a feeling manner, 
"Thank you, Guppy, I don't know but what I WILL take another glass 
for old acquaintance sake."

"Krook's last lodger died there," observes Mr. Guppy in an 
incidental way.

"Did he though!" says Mr. Jobling.

"There was a verdict.  Accidental death.  You don't mind that?"

"No," says Mr. Jobling, "I don't mind it; but he might as well have 
died somewhere else.  It's devilish odd that he need go and die at 
MY place!"  Mr. Jobling quite resents this liberty, several times 
returning to it with such remarks as, "There are places enough to 
die in, I should think!" or, "He wouldn't have liked my dying at 
HIS place, I dare say!"

However, the compact being virtually made, Mr. Guppy proposes to 
dispatch the trusty Smallweed to ascertain if Mr. Krook is at home, 
as in that case they may complete the negotiation without delay.  
Mr. Jobling approving, Smallweed puts himself under the tall hat 
and conveys it out of the dining-rooms in the Guppy manner.  He 
soon returns with the intelligence that Mr. Krook is at home and 
that he has seen him through the shop-door, sitting in the back 
premises, sleeping "like one o'clock."

"Then I'll pay," says Mr. Guppy, "and we'll go and see him.  Small, 
what will it be?"

Mr. Smallweed, compelling the attendance of the waitress with one 
hitch of his eyelash, instantly replies as follows: "Four veals and 
hams is three, and four potatoes is three and four, and one summer 
cabbage is three and six, and three marrows is four and six, and 
six breads is five, and three Cheshires is five and three, and four 
half-pints of half-and-half is six and three, and four small rums 
is eight and three, and three Pollys is eight and six.  Eight and 
six in half a sovereign, Polly, and eighteenpence out!"

Not at all excited by these stupendous calculations, Smallweed 
dismisses his friends with a cool nod and remains behind to take a 
little admiring notice of Polly, as opportunity may serve, and to 
read the daily papers, which are so very large in proportion to 
himself, shorn of his hat, that when he holds up the Times to run 
his eye over the columns, he seems to have retired for the night 
and to have disappeared under the bedclothes.

Mr. Guppy and Mr. Jobling repair to the rag and bottle shop, where 
they find Krook still sleeping like one o'clock, that is to say, 
breathing stertorously with his chin upon his breast and quite 
insensible to any external sounds or even to gentle shaking.  On 
the table beside him, among the usual lumber, stand an empty gin-
bottle and a glass.  The unwholesome air is so stained with this 
liquor that even the green eyes of the cat upon her shelf, as they 
open and shut and glimmer on the visitors, look drunk.

"Hold up here!" says Mr. Guppy, giving the relaxed figure of the 
old man another shake.  "Mr. Krook!  Halloa, sir!"

But it would seem as easy to wake a bundle of old clothes with a 
spirituous heat smouldering in it.  "Did you ever see such a stupor 
as he falls into, between drink and sleep?" says Mr. Guppy.

"If this is his regular sleep," returns Jobling, rather alarmed, 
"it'll last a long time one of these days, I am thinking."

"It's always more like a fit than a nap," says Mr. Guppy, shaking 
him again.  "Halloa, your lordship!  Why, he might be robbed fifty 
times over!  Open your eyes!"

After much ado, he opens them, but without appearing to see his 
visitors or any other objects.  Though he crosses one leg on 
another, and folds his hands, and several times closes and opens 
his parched lips, he seems to all intents and purposes as 
insensible as before.

"He is alive, at any rate," says Mr. Guppy.  "How are you, my Lord 
Chancellor.  I have brought a friend of mine, sir, on a little 
matter of business."

The old man still sits, often smacking his dry lips without the 
least consciousness.  After some minutes he makes an attempt to 
rise.  They help him up, and he staggers against the wall and 
stares at them.

"How do you do, Mr. Krook?" says Mr. Guppy in some discomfiture.  
"How do you do, sir?  You are looking charming, Mr. Krook.  I hope 
you are pretty well?"

The old man, in aiming a purposeless blow at Mr. Guppy, or at 
nothing, feebly swings himself round and comes with his face 
against the wall.  So he remains for a minute or two, heaped up 
against it, and then staggers down the shop to the front door.  The 
air, the movement in the court, the lapse of time, or the 
combination of these things recovers him.  He comes back pretty 
steadily, adjusting his fur cap on his head and looking keenly at 
them.

"Your servant, gentlemen; I've been dozing.  Hi! I am hard to wake, 
odd times."

"Rather so, indeed, sir," responds Mr. Guppy.

"What?  You've been a-trying to do it, have you?" says the 
suspicious Krook.

"Only a little," Mr. Guppy explains.

The old man's eye resting on the empty bottle, he takes it up, 
examines it, and slowly tilts it upside down.

"I say!" he cries like the hobgoblin in the story.  "Somebody's 
been making free here!"

"I assure you we found it so," says Mr. Guppy.  "Would you allow me 
to get it filled for you?"

"Yes, certainly I would!" cries Krook in high glee.  "Certainly I 
would!  Don't mention it!  Get it filled next door--Sol's Arms--the 
Lord Chancellor's fourteenpenny.  Bless you, they know ME!"

He so presses the empty bottle upon Mr. Guppy that that gentleman, 
with a nod to his friend, accepts the trust and hurries out and 
hurries in again with the bottle filled.  The old man receives it 
in his arms like a beloved grandchild and pats it tenderly.

"But, I say," he whispers, with his eyes screwed up, after tasting 
it, "this ain't the Lord Chancellor's fourteenpenny.  This is 
eighteenpenny!"

"I thought you might like that better," says Mr. Guppy.

"You're a nobleman, sir," returns Krook with another taste, and his 
hot breath seems to come towards them like a flame.  "You're a 
baron of the land."

Taking advantage of this auspicious moment, Mr. Guppy presents his 
friend under the impromptu name of Mr. Weevle and states the object 
of their visit.  Krook, with his bottle under his arm (he never 
gets beyond a certain point of either drunkenness or sobriety), 
takes time to survey his proposed lodger and seems to approve of 
him.  "You'd like to see the room, young man?" he says.  "Ah!  It's 
a good room!  Been whitewashed.  Been cleaned down with soft soap 
and soda.  Hi!  It's worth twice the rent, letting alone my company 
when you want it and such a cat to keep the mice away."

Commending the room after this manner, the old man takes them 
upstairs, where indeed they do find it cleaner than it used to be 
and also containing some old articles of furniture which he has dug 
up from his inexhaustible stores.  The terms are easily concluded--
for the Lord Chancellor cannot be hard on Mr. Guppy, associated as 
he is with Kenge and Carboy, Jarndyce and Jarndyce, and other 
famous claims on his professional consideration--and it is agreed 
that Mr. Weevle shall take possession on the morrow.  Mr. Weevle 
and Mr. Guppy then repair to Cook's Court, Cursitor Street, where 
the personal introduction of the former to Mr. Snagsby is effected 
and (more important) the vote and interest of Mrs. Snagsby are 
secured.  They then report progress to the eminent Smallweed, 
waiting at the office in his tall hat for that purpose, and 
separate, Mr. Guppy explaining that he would terminate his little 
entertainment by standing treat at the play but that there are 
chords in the human mind which would render it a hollow mockery.

On the morrow, in the dusk of evening, Mr. Weevle modestly appears 
at Krook's, by no means incommoded with luggage, and establishes 
himself in his new lodging, where the two eyes in the shutters 
stare at him in his sleep, as if they were full of wonder.  On the 
following day Mr. Weevle, who is a handy good-for-nothing kind of 
young fellow, borrows a needle and thread of Miss Flite and a 
hammer of his landlord and goes to work devising apologies for 
window-curtains, and knocking up apologies for shelves, and hanging 
up his two teacups, milkpot, and crockery sundries on a pennyworth 
of little hooks, like a shipwrecked sailor making the best of it.

But what Mr. Weevle prizes most of all his few possessions (next 
after his light whiskers, for which he has an attachment that only 
whiskers can awaken in the breast of man) is a choice collection of 
copper-plate impressions from that truly national work The 
Divinities of Albion, or Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty, 
representing ladies of title and fashion in every variety of smirk 
that art, combined with capital, is capable of producing.  With 
these magnificent portraits, unworthily confined in a band-box 
during his seclusion among the market-gardens, he decorates his 
apartment; and as the Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty wears every 
variety of fancy dress, plays every variety of musical instrument, 
fondles every variety of dog, ogles every variety of prospect, and 
is backed up by every variety of flower-pot and balustrade, the 
result is very imposing.

But fashion is Mr. Weevle's, as it was Tony Jobling's, weakness.  
To borrow yesterday's paper from the Sol's Arms of an evening and 
read about the brilliant and distinguished meteors that are 
shooting across the fashionable sky in every direction is 
unspeakable consolation to him.  To know what member of what 
brilliant and distinguished circle accomplished the brilliant and 
distinguished feat of joining it yesterday or contemplates the no 
less brilliant and distinguished feat of leaving it to-morrow gives 
him a thrill of joy.  To be informed what the Galaxy Gallery of 
British Beauty is about, and means to be about, and what Galaxy 
marriages are on the tapis, and what Galaxy rumours are in 
circulation, is to become acquainted with the most glorious 
destinies of mankind.  Mr. Weevle reverts from this intelligence to 
the Galaxy portraits implicated, and seems to know the originals, 
and to be known of them.

For the rest he is a quiet lodger, full of handy shifts and devices 
as before mentioned, able to cook and clean for himself as well as 
to carpenter, and developing social inclinations after the shades 
of evening have fallen on the court.  At those times, when he is 
not visited by Mr. Guppy or by a small light in his likeness 
quenched in a dark hat, he comes out of his dull room--where he has 
inherited the deal wilderness of desk bespattered with a rain of 
ink--and talks to Krook or is "very free," as they call it in the 
court, commendingly, with any one disposed for conversation.  
Wherefore, Mrs. Piper, who leads the court, is impelled to offer 
two remarks to Mrs. Perkins: firstly, that if her Johnny was to 
have whiskers, she could wish 'em to be identically like that young 
man's; and secondly, "Mark my words, Mrs. Perkins, ma'am, and don't 
you be surprised, Lord bless you, if that young man comes in at 
last for old Krook's money!"



CHAPTER XXI

The Smallweed Family


In a rather ill-favoured and ill-savoured neighbourhood, though one 
of its rising grounds bears the name of Mount Pleasant, the Elfin 
Smallweed, christened Bartholomew and known on the domestic hearth 
as Bart, passes that limited portion of his time on which the 
office and its contingencies have no claim.  He dwells in a little 
narrow street, always solitary, shady, and sad, closely bricked in 
on all sides like a tomb, but where there yet lingers the stump of 
an old forest tree whose flavour is about as fresh and natural as 
the Smallweed smack of youth.

There has been only one child in the Smallweed family for several 
generations.  Little old men and women there have been, but no 
child, until Mr. Smallweed's grandmother, now living, became weak 
in her intellect and fell (for the first time) into a childish 
state.  With such infantine graces as a total want of observation, 
memory, understanding, and interest, and an eternal disposition to 
fall asleep over the fire and into it, Mr. Smallweed's grandmother 
has undoubtedly brightened the family.

Mr. Smallweed's grandfather is likewise of the party.  He is in a 
helpless condition as to his lower, and nearly so as to his upper, 
limbs, but his mind is unimpaired.  It holds, as well as it ever 
held, the first four rules of arithmetic and a certain small 
collection of the hardest facts.  In respect of ideality, 
reverence, wonder, and other such phrenological attributes, it is 
no worse off than it used to be.  Everything that Mr. Smallweed's 
grandfather ever put away in his mind was a grub at first, and is a 
grub at last.  In all his life he has never bred a single 
butterfly.

The father of this pleasant grandfather, of the neighbourhood of 
Mount Pleasant, was a horny-skinned, two-legged, money-getting 
species of spider who spun webs to catch unwary flies and retired 
into holes until they were entrapped.  The name of this old pagan's 
god was Compound Interest.  He lived for it, married it, died of 
it.  Meeting with a heavy loss in an honest little enterprise in 
which all the loss was intended to have been on the other side, he 
broke something--something necessary to his existence, therefore it 
couldn't have been his heart--and made an end of his career.  As 
his character was not good, and he had been bred at a charity 
school in a complete course, according to question and answer, of 
those ancient people the Amorites and Hittites, he was frequently 
quoted as an example of the failure of education.

His spirit shone through his son, to whom he had always preached of 
"going out" early in life and whom he made a clerk in a sharp 
scrivener's office at twelve years old.  There the young gentleman 
improved his mind, which was of a lean and anxious character, and 
developing the family gifts, gradually elevated himself into the 
discounting profession.  Going out early in life and marrying late, 
as his father had done before him, he too begat a lean and anxious-
minded son, who in his turn, going out early in life and marrying 
late, became the father of Bartholomew and Judith Smallweed, twins.  
During the whole time consumed in the slow growth of this family 
tree, the house of Smallweed, always early to go out and late to 
marry, has strengthened itself in its practical character, has 
discarded all amusements, discountenanced all story-books, fairy-
tales, fictions, and fables, and banished all levities whatsoever.  
Hence the gratifying fact that it has had no child born to it and 
that the complete little men and women whom it has produced have 
been observed to bear a likeness to old monkeys with something 
depressing on their minds.

At the present time, in the dark little parlour certain feet below 
the level of the street--a grim, hard, uncouth parlour, only 
ornamented with the coarsest of baize table-covers, and the hardest 
of sheet-iron tea-trays, and offering in its decorative character 
no bad allegorical representation of Grandfather Smallweed's mind--
seated in two black horsehair porter's chairs, one on each side of 
the fire-place, the superannuated Mr. and Mrs. Smallweed while away 
the rosy hours.  On the stove are a couple of trivets for the pots 
and kettles which it is Grandfather Smallweed's usual occupation to 
watch, and projecting from the chimney-piece between them is a sort 
of brass gallows for roasting, which he also superintends when it 
is in action.  Under the venerable Mr. Smallweed's seat and guarded 
by his spindle legs is a drawer in his chair, reported to contain 
property to a fabulous amount.  Beside him is a spare cushion with 
which he is always provided in order that he may have something to 
throw at the venerable partner of his respected age whenever she 
makes an allusion to money--a subject on which he is particularly 
sensitive.

"And where's Bart?" Grandfather Smallweed inquires of Judy, Bart's 
twin sister.

"He an't come in yet," says Judy.

"It's his tea-time, isn't it?"

"No."

"How much do you mean to say it wants then?"

"Ten minutes."

"Hey?"

"Ten minutes." (Loud on the part of Judy.)

"Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed.  "Ten minutes."

Grandmother Smallweed, who has been mumbling and shaking her head 
at the trivets, hearing figures mentioned, connects them with money 
and screeches like a horrible old parrot without any plumage, "Ten 
ten-pound notes!"

Grandfather Smallweed immediately throws the cushion at her.

"Drat you, be quiet!" says the good old man.

The effect of this act of jaculation is twofold.  It not only 
doubles up Mrs. Smallweed's head against the side of her porter's 
chair and causes her to present, when extricated by her 
granddaughter, a highly unbecoming state of cap, but the necessary 
exertion recoils on Mr. Smallweed himself, whom it throws back into 
HIS porter's chair like a broken puppet.  The excellent old 
gentleman being at these times a mere clothes-bag with a black 
skull-cap on the top of it, does not present a very animated 
appearance until he has undergone the two operations at the hands 
of his granddaughter of being shaken up like a great bottle and 
poked and punched like a great bolster.  Some indication of a neck 
being developed in him by these means, he and the sharer of his 
life's evening again fronting one another in their two porter's 
chairs, like a couple of sentinels long forgotten on their post by 
the Black Serjeant, Death.

Judy the twin is worthy company for these associates.  She is so 
indubitably sister to Mr. Smallweed the younger that the two 
kneaded into one would hardly make a young person of average 
proportions, while she so happily exemplifies the before-mentioned 
family likeness to the monkey tribe that attired in a spangled robe 
and cap she might walk about the table-land on the top of a barrel-
organ without exciting much remark as an unusual specimen.  Under 
existing circumstances, however, she is dressed in a plain, spare 
gown of brown stuff.

Judy never owned a doll, never heard of Cinderella, never played at 
any game.  She once or twice fell into children's company when she 
was about ten years old, but the children couldn't get on with 
Judy, and Judy couldn't get on with them.  She seemed like an 
animal of another species, and there was instinctive repugnance on 
both sides.  It is very doubtful whether Judy knows how to laugh.  
She has so rarely seen the thing done that the probabilities are 
strong the other way.  Of anything like a youthful laugh, she 
certainly can have no conception.  If she were to try one, she 
would find her teeth in her way, modelling that action of her face, 
as she has unconsciously modelled all its other expressions, on her 
pattern of sordid age.  Such is Judy.

And her twin brother couldn't wind up a top for his life.  He knows 
no more of Jack the Giant Killer or of Sinbad the Sailor than he 
knows of the people in the stars.  He could as soon play at leap-
frog or at cricket as change into a cricket or a frog himself.  But 
he is so much the better off than his sister that on his narrow 
world of fact an opening has dawned into such broader regions as 
lie within the ken of Mr. Guppy.  Hence his admiration and his 
emulation of that shining enchanter.

Judy, with a gong-like clash and clatter, sets one of the sheet-
iron tea-trays on the table and arranges cups and saucers.  The 
bread she puts on in an iron basket, and the butter (and not much 
of it) in a small pewter plate.  Grandfather Smallweed looks hard 
after the tea as it is served out and asks Judy where the girl is.

"Charley, do you mean?" says Judy.

"Hey?" from Grandfather Smallweed.

"Charley, do you mean?"

This touches a spring in Grandmother Smallweed, who, chuckling as 
usual at the trivets, cries, "Over the water!  Charley over the 
water, Charley over the water, over the water to Charley, Charley 
over the water, over the water to Charley!" and becomes quite 
energetic about it.  Grandfather looks at the cushion but has not 
sufficiently recovered his late exertion.

"Ha!" he says when there is silence.  "If that's her name.  She 
eats a deal.  It would be better to allow her for her keep."

Judy, with her brother's wink, shakes her head and purses up her 
mouth into no without saying it.

"No?" returns the old man.  "Why not?"

"She'd want sixpence a day, and we can do it for less," says Judy.

"Sure?"

Judy answers with a nod of deepest meaning and calls, as she 
scrapes the butter on the loaf with every precaution against waste 
and cuts it into slices, "You, Charley, where are you?"  Timidly 
obedient to the summons, a little girl in a rough apron and a large 
bonnet, with her hands covered with soap and water and a scrubbing 
brush in one of them, appears, and curtsys.

"What work are you about now?" says Judy, making an ancient snap at 
her like a very sharp old beldame.

"I'm a-cleaning the upstairs back room, miss," replies Charley.

"Mind you do it thoroughly, and don't loiter.  Shirking won't do 
for me.  Make haste!  Go along!" cries Judy with a stamp upon the 
ground.  "You girls are more trouble than you're worth, by half."

On this severe matron, as she returns to her task of scraping the 
butter and cutting the bread, falls the shadow of her brother, 
looking in at the window.  For whom, knife and loaf in hand, she 
opens the street-door.

"Aye, aye, Bart!" says Grandfather Smallweed.  "Here you are, hey?"

"Here I am," says Bart.

"Been along with your friend again, Bart?"

Small nods.

"Dining at his expense, Bart?"

Small nods again.

"That's right.  Live at his expense as much as you can, and take 
warning by his foolish example.  That's the use of such a friend.  
The only use you can put him to," says the venerable sage.

His grandson, without receiving this good counsel as dutifully as 
he might, honours it with all such acceptance as may lie in a 
slight wink and a nod and takes a chair at the tea-table.  The four 
old faces then hover over teacups like a company of ghastly 
cherubim, Mrs. Smallweed perpetually twitching her head and 
chattering at the trivets and Mr. Smallweed requiring to be 
repeatedly shaken up like a large black draught.

"Yes, yes," says the good old gentleman, reverting to his lesson of 
wisdom.  "That's such advice as your father would have given you, 
Bart.  You never saw your father.  More's the pity.  He was my true 
son."  Whether it is intended to be conveyed that he was 
particularly pleasant to look at, on that account, does not appear.

"He was my true son," repeats the old gentleman, folding his bread 
and butter on his knee, "a good accountant, and died fifteen years 
ago."

Mrs. Smallweed, following her usual instinct, breaks out with 
"Fifteen hundred pound.  Fifteen hundred pound in a black box, 
fifteen hundred pound locked up, fifteen hundred pound put away and 
hid!"  Her worthy husband, setting aside his bread and butter, 
immediately discharges the cushion at her, crushes her against the 
side of her chair, and falls back in his own, overpowered.  His 
appearance, after visiting Mrs. Smallweed with one of these 
admonitions, is particularly impressive and not wholly 
prepossessing, firstly because the exertion generally twists his 
black skull-cap over one eye and gives him an air of goblin 
rakishness, secondly because he mutters violent imprecations 
against Mrs. Smallweed, and thirdly because the contrast between 
those powerful expressions and his powerless figure is suggestive 
of a baleful old malignant who would be very wicked if he could.  
All this, however, is so common in the Smallweed family circle that 
it produces no impression.  The old gentleman is merely shaken and 
has his internal feathers beaten up, the cushion is restored to its 
usual place beside him, and the old lady, perhaps with her cap 
adjusted and perhaps not, is planted in her chair again, ready to 
be bowled down like a ninepin.

Some time elapses in the present instance before the old gentleman 
is sufficiently cool to resume his discourse, and even then he 
mixes it up with several edifying expletives addressed to the 
unconscious partner of his bosom, who holds communication with 
nothing on earth but the trivets.  As thus: "If your father, Bart, 
had lived longer, he might have been worth a deal of money--you 
brimstone chatterer!--but just as he was beginning to build up the 
house that he had been making the foundations for, through many a 
year--you jade of a magpie, jackdaw, and poll-parrot, what do you 
mean!--he took ill and died of a low fever, always being a sparing 
and a spare man, fule been a good son, and I think I meant to 
have been one.  But I wasn't.  I was a thundering bad son, that's 
the long and the short of it, and never was a credit to anybody."

"Surprising!" cries the old man.

"However," Mr. George resumes, "the less said about it, the better 
now.  Come! You know the agreement.  Always a pipe out of the two 
months' interest!  (Bosh! It's all correct.  You needn't be afraid 
to order the pipe.  Here's the new bill, and here's the two months' 
interest-money, and a devil-and-all of a scrape it is to get it 
together in my business.)"

Mr. George sits, with his arms folded, consuming the family and the 
parlour while Grandfather Smallweed is assisted by Judy to two 
black leathern cases out of a locked bureau, in one of which he 
secures the document he has just received, and from the other takes 
another similar document which hl of business care--I should like to throw a 
cat at you instead of a cushion, and I will too if you make such a 
confounded fool of yourself!--and your mother, who was a prudent 
woman as dry as a chip, just dwindled away like touchwood after you 
and Judy were born--you are an old pig.  You are a brimstone pig.  
You're a head of swine!"

Judy, not interested in what she has often heard, begins to collect 
in a basin various tributary streams of tea, from the bottoms of 
cups and saucers and from the bottom of the teapot for the little 
charwoman's evening meal.  In like manner she gets together, in the 
iron bread-basket, as many outside fragments and worn-down heels of 
loaves as the rigid economy of the house has left in existence.

"But your father and me were partners, Bart," says the old 
gentleman, "and when I am gone, you and Judy will have all there 
is.  It's rare for you both that you went out early in life--Judy 
to the flower business, and you to the law.  You won't want to 
spend it.  You'll get your living without it, and put more to it.  
When I am gone, Judy will go back to the flower business and you'll 
still stick to the law."

One might infer from Judy's appearance that her business rather lay 
with the thorns than the flowers, but she has in her time been 
apprenticed to the art and mystery of artificial flower-making.  A 
close observer might perhaps detect both in her eye and her 
brother's, when their venerable grandsire anticipates his being 
gone, some little impatience to know when he may be going, and some 
resentful opinion that it is time he went.

"Now, if everybody has done," says Judy, completing her 
preparations, "I'll have that girl in to her tea.  She would never 
leave off if she took it by herself in the kitchen."

Charley is accordingly introduced, and under a heavy fire of eyes, 
sits down to her basin and a Druidical ruin of bread and butter.  
In the active superintendence of this young person, Judy Smallweed 
appears to attain a perfectly geological age and to date from the 
remotest periods.  Her systematic manner of flying at her and 
pouncing on her, with or without pretence, whether or no, is 
wonderful, evincing an accomplishment in the art of girl-driving 
seldom reached by the oldest practitioners.

"Now, don't stare about you all the afternoon," cries Judy, shaking 
her head and stamping her foot as she happens to catch the glance 
which has been previously sounding the basin of tea, "but take your 
victuals and get back to your work."

"Yes, miss," says Charley.

"Don't say yes," returns Miss Smallweed, "for I know what you girls 
are.  Do it without saying it, and then I may begin to believe 
you."

Charley swallows a great gulp of tea in token of submission and so 
disperses the Druidical ruins that Miss Smallweed charges her not 
to gormandize, which "in you girls," she observes, is disgusting.  
Charley might find some more difficulty in meeting her views on the 
general subject of girls but for a knock at the door.

"See who it is, and don't chew when you open it!" cries Judy.

The object of her attentions withdrawing for the purpose, Miss 
Smallweed takes that opportunity of jumbling the remainder of the 
bread and butter together and launching two or three dirty tea-cups 
into the ebb-tide of the basin of tea as a hint that she considers 
the eating and drinking terminated.

"Now!  Who is it, and what's wanted?" says the snappish Judy.

It is one Mr. George, it appears.  Without other announcement or 
ceremony, Mr. George walks in.

"Whew!" says Mr. George.  "You are hot here.  Always a fire, eh?  
Well!  Perhaps you do right to get used to one."  Mr. George makes 
the latter remark to himself as he nods to Grandfather Smallweed.

"Ho! It's you!" cries the old gentleman.  "How de do?  How de do?"

"Middling," replies Mr. George, taking a chair.  "Your 
granddaughter I have had the honour of seeing before; my service to 
you, miss."

"This is my grandson," says Grandfather Smallweed.  "You ha'n't 
seen him before.  He is in the law and not much at home."

"My service to him, too!  He is like his sister.  He is very like 
his sister.  He is devilish like his sister," says Mr. George, 
laying a great and not altogether complimentary stress on his last 
adjective.

"And how does the world use you, Mr. George?" Grandfather Smallweed 
inquires, slowly rubbing his legs.

"Pretty much as usual.  Like a football."

He is a swarthy brown man of fifty, well made, and good looking, 
with crisp dark hair, bright eyes, and a broad chest.  His sinewy 
and powerful hands, as sunburnt as his face, have evidently been 
used to a pretty rough life.  What is curious about him is that he 
sits forward on his chair as if he were, from long habit, allowing 
space for some dress or accoutrements that he has altogether laid 
aside.  His step too is measured and heavy and would go well with a 
weighty clash and jingle of spurs.  He is close-shaved now, but his 
mouth is set as if his upper lip had been for years familiar with a 
great moustache; and his manner of occasionally laying the open 
palm of his broad brown hand upon it is to the same effect.  
Altogether one might guess Mr. George to have been a trooper once 
upon a time.

A special contrast Mr. George makes to the Smallweed family.  
Trooper was never yet billeted upon a household more unlike him.  
It is a broadsword to an oyster-knife.  His developed figure and 
their stunted forms, his large manner filling any amount of room 
and their little narrow pinched ways, his sounding voice and their 
sharp spare tones, are in the strongest and the strangest 
opposition.  As he sits in the middle of the grim parlour, leaning 
a little forward, with his hands upon his thighs and his elbows 
squared, he looks as though, if he remained there long, he would 
absorb into himself the whole family and the whole four-roomed 
house, extra little back-kitchen and all.

"Do you rub your legs to rub life into 'em?" he asks of Grandfather 
Smallweed after looking round the room.

"Why, it's partly a habit, Mr. George, and--yes--it partly helps 
the circulation," he replies.

"The cir-cu-la-tion!" repeats Mr. George, folding his arms upon his 
chest and seeming to become two sizes larger.  "Not much of that, I 
should think."

"Truly I'm old, Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed.  "But I 
can carry my years.  I'm older than HER," nodding at his wife, "and 
see what she is?  You're a brimstone chatterer!" with a sudden 
revival of his late hostility.

"Unlucky old soul!" says Mr. George, turning his head in that 
direction.  "Don't scold the old lady.  Look at her here, with her 
poor cap half off her head and her poor hair all in a muddle.  Hold 
up, ma'am.  That's better.  There we are!  Think of your mother, 
Mr. Smallweed," says Mr. George, coming back to his seat from 
assisting her, "if your wife an't enough."

"I suppose you were an excellent son, Mr. George?" the old man 
hints with a leer.

The colour of Mr. George's face rather deepens as he replies, "Why 
no.  I wasn't."

"I am astonished at it."

"So am I.  I ought to have hands to Mr. George, who twists 
it up for a pipelight.  As the old man inspects, through his 
glasses, every up-stroke and down-stroke of both documents before 
he releases them from their leathern prison, and as he counts the 
money three times over and requires Judy to say every word she 
utters at least twice, and is as tremulously slow of speech and 
action as it is possible to be, this business is a long time in 
progress.  When it is quite concluded, and not before, he 
disengages his ravenous eyes and fingers from it and answers Mr. 
George's last remark by saying, "Afraid to order the pipe?  We are 
not so mercenary as that, sir.  Judy, see directly to the pipe and 
the glass of cold brandy-and-water for Mr. George."

The sportive twins, who have been looking straight before them all 
this time except when they have been engrossed by the black 
leathern cases, retire together, generally disdainful of the 
visitor, but leaving him to the old man as two young cubs might 
leave a traveller to the parental bear.

"And there you sit, I suppose, all the day long, eh?" says Mr. 
George with folded arms.

"Just so, just so," the old man nods.

"And don't you occupy yourself at all?"

"I watch the fire--and the boiling and the roasting--"

"When there is any," says Mr. George with great expression.

"Just so.  When there is any."

"Don't you read or get read to?"

The old man shakes his head with sharp sly triumph.  "No, no.  We 
have never been readers in our family.  It don't pay.  Stuff.  
Idleness.  Folly.  No, no!"

"There's not much to choose between your two states," says the 
visitor in a key too low for the old man's dull hearing as he looks 
from him to the old woman and back again.  "I say!" in a louder 
voice.

"I hear you."

"You'll sell me up at last, I suppose, when I am a day in arrear."

"My dear friend!" cries Grandfather Smallweed, stretching out both 
hands to embrace him.  "Never!  Never, my dear friend!  But my 
friend in the city that I got to lend you the money--HE might!"

"Oh! You can't answer for him?" says Mr. George, finishing the 
inquiry in his lower key with the words "You lying old rascal!"

"My dear friend, he is not to be depended on.  I wouldn't trust 
him.  He will have his bond, my dear friend."

"Devil doubt him," says Mr. George.  Charley appearing with a tray, 
on which are the pipe, a small paper of tobacco, and the brandy-
and-water, he asks her, "How do you come here!  You haven't got the 
family face."

"I goes out to work, sir," returns Charley.

The trooper (if trooper he be or have been) takes her bonnet off, 
with a light touch for so strong a hand, and pats her on the head.  
"You give the house almost a wholesome look.  It wants a bit of 
youth as much as it wants fresh air."  Then he dismisses her, 
lights his pipe, and drinks to Mr. Smallweed's friend in the city--
the one solitary flight of that esteemed old gentleman's 
imagination.

"So you think he might be hard upon me, eh?"

"I think he might--I am afraid he would.  I have known him do it," 
says Grandfather Smallweed incautiously, "twenty times."

Incautiously, because his stricken better-half, who has been dozing 
over the fire for some time, is instantly aroused and jabbers 
"Twenty thousand pounds, twenty twenty-pound notes in a money-box, 
twenty guineas, twenty million twenty per cent, twenty--" and is 
then cut short by the flying cushion, which the visitor, to whom 
this singular experiment appears to be a novelty, snatches from her 
face as it crushes her in the usual manner.

"You're a brimstone idiot.  You're a scorpion--a brimstone 
scorpion!  You're a sweltering toad.  You're a chattering 
clattering broomstick witch that ought to be burnt!" gasps the old 
man, prostrate in his chair.  "My dear friend, will you shake me up 
a little?"

Mr. George, who has been looking first at one of them and then at 
the other, as if he were demented, takes his venerable acquaintance 
by the throat on receiving this request, and dragging him upright 
in his chalr as easily as if he were a doll, appears in two minds 
whether or no to shake all future power of cushioning out of him 
and shake him into his grave.  Resisting the temptation, but 
agitating him violently enough to make his head roll like a 
harlequin's, he puts him smartly down in his chair again and 
adjusts his skull-cap with such a rub that the old man winks with 
both eyes for a minute afterwards.

"O Lord!" gasps Mr. Smallweed.  "That'll do.  Thank you, my dear 
friend, that'll do.  Oh, dear me, I'm out of breath.  O Lord!"  And 
Mr. Smallweed says it not without evident apprehensions of his dear 
friend, who still stands over him looming larger than ever.

The alarming presence, however, gradually subsides into its chair 
and falls to smoking in long puffs, consoling itself with the 
philosophical reflection, "The name of your friend in the city 
begins with a D, comrade, and you're about right respecting the 
bond."

"Did you speak, Mr. George?" inquires the old man.

The trooper shakes his head, and leaning forward with his right 
elbow on his right knee and his pipe supported in that hand, while 
his other hand, resting on his left leg, squares his left elbow in 
a martial manner, continues to smoke.  Meanwhile he looks at Mr. 
Smallweed with grave attention and now and then fans the cloud of 
smoke away in order that he may see him the more clearly.

"I take it," he says, making just as much and as little change in 
his position as will enable him to reach the glass to his lips with 
a round, full action, "that I am the only man alive (or dead 
either) that gets the value of a pipe out of YOU?"

"Well," returns the old man, "it's true that I don't see company, 
Mr. George, and that I don't treat.  I can't afford to it.  But as 
you, in your pleasant way, made your pipe a condition--"

"Why, it's not for the value of it; that's no great thing.  It was 
a fancy to get it out of you.  To have something in for my money."

"Ha! You're prudent, prudent, sir!" cries Grandfather Smallweed, 
rubbing his legs.

"Very.  I always was."  Puff.  "It's a sure sign of my prudence 
that I ever found the way here."  Puff.  "Also, that I am what I 
am."  Puff.  "I am well known to be prudent," says Mr. George, 
composedly smoking.  "I rose in life that way."

"Don't he down-hearted, sir.  You may rise yet."

Mr. George laughs and drinks.

"Ha'n't you no relations, now," asks Grandfather Smallweed with a 
twinkle in his eyes, "who would pay off this little principal or 
who would lend you a good name or two that I could persuade my 
friend in the city to make you a further advance upon?  Two good 
names would be sufficient for my friend in the city.  Ha'n't you no 
such relations, Mr. George?"

Mr. George, still composedly smoking, replies, "If I had, I 
shouldn't trouble them.  I have been trouble enough to my 
belongings in my day.  It MAY be a very good sort of penitence in a 
vagabond, who has wasted the best time of his life, to go back then 
to decent people that he never was a credit to and live upon them, 
but it's not my sort.  The best kind of amends then for having gone 
away is to keep away, in my opinion."

"But natural affection, Mr. George," hints Grandfather Smallweed.

"For two good names, hey?" says Mr. George, shaking his head and 
still composedly smoking.  "No.  That's not my sort either."

Grandfather Smallweed has been gradually sliding down in his chair 
since his last adjustment and is now a bundle of clothes with a 
voice in it calling for Judy.  That houri, appearing, shakes him up 
in the usual manner and is charged by the old gentleman to remain 
near him.  For he seems chary of putting his visitor to the trouble 
of repeating his late attentions.

"Ha!" he observes when he is in trim again.  "If you could have 
traced out the captain, Mr. George, it would have been the making 
of you.  If when you first came here, in consequence of our 
advertisement in the newspapers--when I say 'our,' I'm alluding to 
the advertisements of my friend in the city, and one or two others 
who embark their capital in the same way, and are so friendly 
towards me as sometimes to give me a lift with my little pittance--
if at that time you could have helped us, Mr. George, it would have 
been the making of you."

"I was willing enough to be 'made,' as you call it," says Mr. 
George, smoking not quite so placidly as before, for since the 
entrance of Judy he has been in some measure disturbed by a 
fascination, not of the admiring kind, which obliges him to look at 
her as she stands by her grandfather's chair, "but on the whole, I 
am glad I wasn't now."

"Why, Mr. George?  In the name of--of brimstone, why?" says 
Grandfather Smallweed with a plain appearance of exasperation.  
(Brimstone apparently suggested by his eye lighting on Mrs. 
Smallweed in her slumber.)

"For two reasons, comrade."

"And what two reasons, Mr. George?  In the name of the--"

"Of our friend in the city?" suggests Mr. George, composedly 
drinking.

"Aye, if you like.  What two reasons?"

"In the first place," returns Mr. George, but still looking at Judy 
as if she being so old and so like her grandfather it is 
indifferent which of the two he addresses, "you gentlemen took me 
in.  You advertised that Mr. Hawdon (Captain Hawdon, if you hold to 
the saying 'Once a captain, always a captain') was to hear of 
something to his advantage."

"Well?" returns the old man shrilly and sharply.

"Well!" says Mr. George, smoking on.  "It wouldn't have been much 
to his advantage to have been clapped into prison by the whole bill 
and judgment trade of London."

"How do you know that?  Some of his rich relations might have paid 
his debts or compounded for 'em.  Besides, he had taken US in.  He 
owed us immense sums all round.  I would sooner have strangled him 
than had no return.  If I sit here thinking of him," snarls the old 
man, holding up his impotent ten fingers, "I want to strangle him 
now."  And in a sudden access of fury, he throws the cushion at the 
unoffending Mrs. Smallweed, but it passes harmlessly on one side of 
her chair.

"I don't need to be told," returns the trooper, taking his pipe 
from his lips for a moment and carrying his eyes back from 
following the progress of the cushion to the pipe-bowl which is 
burning low, "that he carried on heavily and went to ruin.  I have 
been at his right hand many a day when he was charging upon ruin 
full-gallop.  I was with him when he was sick and well, rich and 
poor.  I laid this hand upon him after he had run through 
everything and broken down everything beneath him--when he held a 
pistol to his head."

"I wish he had let it off," says the benevolent old man, "and blown 
his head into as many pieces as he owed pounds!"

"That would have been a smash indeed," returns the trooper coolly; 
"any way, he had been young, hopeful, and handsome in the days gone 
by, and I am glad I never found him, when he was neither, to lead 
to a result so much to his advantage.  That's reason number one."

"I hope number two's as good?" snarls the old man.

"Why, no.  It's more of a selfish reason.  If I had found him, I 
must have gone to the other world to look.  He was there."

"How do you know he was there?"

"He wasn't here."

"How do you know he wasn't here?"

"Don't lose your temper as well as your money," says Mr. George, 
calmly knocking the ashes out of his pipe.  "He was drowned long 
before.  I am convinced of it.  He went over a ship's side.  
Whether intentionally or accidentally, I don't know.  Perhaps your 
friend in the city does.  Do you know what that tune is, Mr. 
Smallweed?" he adds after breaking off to whistle one, accompanied 
on the table with the empty pipe.

"Tune!" replied the old man.  "No.  We never have tunes here."

"That's the Dead March in Saul.  They bury soldiers to it, so it's 
the natural end of the subject.  Now, if your pretty granddaughter
--excuse me, miss--will condescend to take care of this pipe for two 
months, we shall save the cost of one next time.  Good evening, Mr. 
Smallweed!"

"My dear friend!" the old man gives him both his hands.

"So you think your friend in the city will be hard upon me if I 
fall in a payment?" says the trooper, looking down upon him like a 
giant.

"My dear friend, I am afraid he will," returns the old man, looking 
up at him like a pygmy.

Mr. George laughs, and with a glance at Mr. Smallweed and a parting 
salutation to the scornful Judy, strides out of the parlour, 
clashing imaginary sabres and other metallic appurtenances as he 
goes.

"You're a damned rogue," says the old gentleman, making a hideous 
grimace at the door as he shuts it.  "But I'll lime you, you dog, 
I'll lime you!"

After this amiable remark, his spirit soars into those enchanting 
regions of reflection which its education and pursuits have opened 
to it, and again he and Mrs. Smallweed while away the rosy hours, 
two unrelieved sentinels forgotten as aforesaid by the Black 
Serjeant.

While the twain are faithful to their post, Mr. George strides 
through the streets with a massive kind of swagger and a grave-
enough face.  It is eight o'clock now, and the day is fast drawing 
in.  He stops hard by Waterloo Bridge and reads a playbill, decides 
to go to Astley's Theatre.  Being there, is much delighted with the 
horses and the feats of strength; looks at the weapons with a 
critical eye; disapproves of the combats as giving evidences of 
unskilful swordsmanship; but is touched home by the sentiments.  In 
the last scene, when the Emperor of Tartary gets up into a cart and 
condescends to bless the united lovers by hovering over them with 
the Union Jack, his eyelashes are moistened with emotion.

The theatre over, Mr. George comes across the water again and makes 
his way to that curious region lying about the Haymarket and 
Leicester Square which is a centre of attraction to indifferent 
foreign hotels and indifferent foreigners, racket-courts, fighting-
men, swordsmen, footguards, old china, gaming-houses, exhibitions, 
and a large medley of shabbiness and shrinking out of sight.  
Penetrating to the heart of this region, he arrives by a court and 
a long whitewashed passage at a great brick building composed of 
bare walls, floors, roof-rafters, and skylights, on the front of 
which, if it can be said to have any front, is painted GEORGE'S 
SHOOTING GALLERY, &c.

Into George's Shooting Gallery, &c., he goes; and in it there are 
gaslights (partly turned off now), and two whitened targets for 
rifle-shooting, and archery accommodation, and fencing appliances, 
and all necessaries for the British art of boxing.  None of these 
sports or exercises being pursued in George's Shooting Gallery to-
night, which is so devoid of company that a little grotesque man 
with a large head has it all to himself and lies asleep upon the 
floor.

The little man is dressed something like a gunsmith, in a green-
baize apron and cap; and his face and hands are dirty with 
gunpowder and begrimed with the loading of guns.  As he lies in the 
light before a glaring white target, the black upon him shines 
again.  Not far off is the strong, rough, primitive table with a 
vice upon it at which he has been working.  He is a little man with 
a face all crushed together, who appears, from a certain blue and 
speckled appearance that one of his cheeks presents, to have been 
blown up, in the way of business, at some odd time or times.

"Phil!" says the trooper in a quiet voice.

"All right!" cries Phil, scrambling to his feet.

"Anything been doing?"

"Flat as ever so much swipes," says Phil.  "Five dozen rifle and a 
dozen pistol.  As to aim!"  Phil gives a howl at the recollection.

"Shut up shop, Phil!"

As Phil moves about to execute this order, it appears that he is 
lame, though able to move very quickly.  On the speckled side of 
his face he has no eyebrow, and on the other side he has a bushy 
black one, which want of uniformity gives him a very singular and 
rather sinister appearance.  Everything seems to have happened to 
his hands that could possibly take place consistently with the 
retention of all the fingers, for they are notched, and seamed, and 
crumpled all over.  He appears to be very strong and lifts heavy 
benches about as if he had no idea what weight was.  He has a 
curious way of limping round the gallery with his shoulder against 
the wall and tacking off at objects he wants to lay hold of instead 
of going straight to them, which has left a smear all round the 
four walls, conventionally called "Phil's mark."

This custodian of George's Gallery in George's absence concludes 
his proceedings, when he has locked the great doors and turned out 
all the lights but one, which he leaves to glimmer, by dragging out 
from a wooden cabin in a corner two mattresses and bedding.  These 
being drawn to opposite ends of the gallery, the trooper makes his 
own bed and Phil makes his.

"Phil!" says the master, walking towards him without his coat and 
waistcoat, and looking more soldierly than ever in his braces.  
"You were found in a doorway, weren't you?"

"Gutter," says Phil.  "Watchman tumbled over me."

"Then vagabondizing came natural to YOU from the beginning."

"As nat'ral as possible," says Phil.

"Good night!"

"Good night, guv'ner."

Phil cannot even go straight to bed, but finds it necessary to 
shoulder round two sides of the gallery and then tack off at his 
mattress.  The trooper, after taking a turn or two in the rifle-
distance and looking up at the moon now shining through the 
skylights, strides to his own mattress by a shorter route and goes 
to bed too.



CHAPTER XXII

Mr. Bucket


Allegory looks pretty cool in Lincoln's Inn Fields, though the 
evening is hot, for both Mr. Tulkinghorn's windows are wide open, 
and the room is lofty, gusty, and gloomy.  These may not be 
desirable characteristics when November comes with fog and sleet or 
January with ice and snow, but they have their merits in the sultry 
long vacation weather.  They enable Allegory, though it has cheeks 
like peaches, and knees like bunches of blossoms, and rosy 
swellings for calves to its legs and muscles to its arms, to look 
tolerably cool to-night.

Plenty of dust comes in at Mr. Tulkinghorn's windows, and plenty 
more has generated among his furniture and papers.  It lies thick 
everywhere.  When a breeze from the country that has lost its way 
takes fright and makes a blind hurry to rush out again, it flings 
as much dust in the eyes of Allegory as the law-or Mr. Tulkinghorn, 
one of its trustiest representatives--may scatter, on occasion, in 
the eyes of the laity.

In his lowering magazine of dust, the universal article into which 
his papers and himself, and all his clients, and all things of 
earth, animate and inanimate, are resolving, Mr. Tulkinghorn sits 
at one of the open windows enjoying a bottle of old port.  Though a 
hard-grained man, close, dry, and silent, he can enjoy old wine 
with the best.  He has a priceless bin of port in some artful 
cellar under the Fields, which is one of his many secrets.  When he 
dines alone in chambers, as he has dined to-day, and has his bit of 
fish and his steak or chicken brought in from the coffee-house, he 
descends with a candle to the echoing regions below the deserted 
mansion, and heralded by a remote reverberation of thundering 
doors, comes gravely back encircled by an earthy atmosphere and 
carrying a bottle from which he pours a radiant nectar, two score 
and ten years old, that blushes in the glass to find itself so 
famous and fills the whole room with the fragrance of southern 
grapes.

Mr. Tulkinghorn, sitting in the twilight by the open window, enjoys 
his wine.  As if it whispered to him of its fifty years of silence 
and seclusion, it shuts him up the closer.  More impenetrable than 
ever, he sits, and drinks, and mellows as it were in secrecy, 
pondering at that twilight hour on all the mysteries he knows, 
associated with darkening woods in the country, and vast blank 
shut-up houses in town, and perhaps sparing a thought or two for 
himself, and his family history, and his money, and his will--all a 
mystery to every one--and that one bachelor friend of his, a man of 
the same mould and a lawyer too, who lived the same kind of life 
until he was seventy-five years old, and then suddenly conceiving 
(as it is supposed) an impression that it was too monotonous, gave 
his gold watch to his hair-dresser one summer evening and walked 
leisurely home to the Temple and hanged himself.

But Mr. Tulkinghorn is not alone to-night to ponder at his usual 
length.  Seated at the same table, though with his chair modestly 
and uncomfortably drawn a little way from it, sits a bald, mild, 
shining man who coughs respectfully behind his hand when the lawyer 
bids him fill his glass.

"Now, Snagsby," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "to go over this odd story 
again."

"If you please, sir."

"You told me when you were so good as to step round here last 
night--"

"For which I must ask you to excuse me if it was a liberty, sir; 
but I remember that you had taken a sort of an interest in that 
person, and I thought it possible that you might--just--wish--to--"

Mr. Tulkinghorn is not the man to help him to any conclusion or to 
admit anything as to any possibility concerning himself.  So Mr. 
Snagsby trails off into saying, with an awkward cough, "I must ask 
you to excuse the liberty, sir, I am sure."

"Not at all," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "You told me, Snagsby, that 
you put on your hat and came round without mentioning your 
intention to your wife.  That was prudent I think, because it's not 
a matter of such importance that it requires to be mentioned."

"Well, sir," returns Mr. Snagsby, "you see, my little woman is--not 
to put too fine a point upon it--inquisitive.  She's inquisitive.  
Poor little thing, she's liable to spasms, and it's good for her to 
have her mind employed.  In consequence of which she employs it--I 
should say upon every individual thing she can lay hold of, whether 
it concerns her or not--especially not.  My little woman has a very 
active mind, sir."

Mr. Snagsby drinks and murmurs with an admiring cough behind his 
hand, "Dear me, very fine wine indeed!"

"Therefore you kept your visit to yourself last night?" says Mr. 
Tulkinghorn.  "And to-night too?"

"Yes, sir, and to-night, too.  My little woman is at present in--
not to put too fine a point on it--in a pious state, or in what she 
considers such, and attends the Evening Exertions (which is the 
name they go by) of a reverend party of the name of Chadband.  He 
has a great deal of eloquence at his command, undoubtedly, but I am 
not quite favourable to his style myself.  That's neither here nor 
there.  My little woman being engaged in that way made it easier 
for me to step round in a quiet manner."

Mr. Tulkinghorn assents.  "Fill your glass, Snagsby."

"Thank you, sir, I am sure," returns the stationer with his cough 
of deference.  "This is wonderfully fine wine, sir!"

"It is a rare wine now," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "It is fifty years 
old."

"Is it indeed, sir?  But I am not surprised to hear it, I am sure.  
It might be--any age almost."  After rendering this general tribute 
to the port, Mr. Snagsby in his modesty coughs an apology behind 
his hand for drinking anything so precious.

"Will you run over, once again, what the boy said?" asks Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, putting his hands into the pockets of his rusty 
smallclothes and leaning quietly back in his chair.

"With pleasure, sir."

Then, with fidelity, though with some prolixity, the law-stationer 
repeats Jo's statement made to the assembled guests at his house.  
On coming to the end of his narrative, he gives a great start and 
breaks off with, "Dear me, sir, I wasn't aware there was any other 
gentleman present!"

Mr. Snagsby is dismayed to see, standing with an attentive face 
between himself and the lawyer at a little distance from the table, 
a person with a hat and stick in his hand who was not there when he 
himself came in and has not since entered by the door or by either 
of the windows.  There is a press in the room, but its hinges have 
not creaked, nor has a step been audible upon the floor.  Yet this 
third person stands there with his attentive face, and his hat and 
stick in his hands, and his hands behind him, a composed and quiet 
listener.  He is a stoutly built, steady-looking, sharp-eyed man in 
black, of about the middle-age.  Except that he looks at Mr. 
Snagsby as if he were going to take his portrait, there is nothing 
remarkable about him at first sight but his ghostly manner of 
appearing.

"Don't mind this gentleman," says Mr. Tulkinghorn in his quiet way.  
"This is only Mr. Bucket."

"Oh, indeed, sir?" returns the stationer, expressing by a cough 
that he is quite in the dark as to who Mr. Bucket may be.

"I wanted him to hear this story," says the lawyer, "because I have 
half a mind (for a reason) to know more of it, and he is very 
intelligent in such things.  What do you say to this, Bucket?"

"It's very plain, sir.  Since our people have moved this boy on, 
and he's not to be found on his old lay, if Mr. Snagsby don't 
object to go down with me to Tom-all-Alone's and point him out, we 
can have him here in less than a couple of hours' time.  I can do 
it without Mr. Snagsby, of course, but this is the shortest way."

"Mr. Bucket is a detective officer, Snagsby," says the lawyer in 
explanation.

"Is he indeed, sir?" says Mr. Snagsby with a strong tendency in his 
clump of hair to stand on end.

"And if you have no real objection to accompany Mr. Bucket to the 
place in question," pursues the lawyer, "I shall feel obliged to 
you if you will do so."

In a moment's hesitation on the part of Mr. Snagsby, Bucket dips 
down to the bottom of his mind.

"Don't you be afraid of hurting the boy," he says.  "You won't do 
that.  It's all right as far as the boy's concerned.  We shall only 
bring him here to ask him a question or so I want to put to him, 
and he'll be paid for his trouble and sent away again.  It'll be a 
good job for him.  I promise you, as a man, that you shall see the 
boy sent away all right.  Don't you be afraid of hurting him; you 
an't going to do that."

"Very well, Mr. Tulkinghorn!" cries Mr. Snagsby cheerfully.  And 
reassured, "Since that's the case--"

"Yes!  And lookee here, Mr. Snagsby," resumes Bucket, taking him 
aside by the arm, tapping him familiarly on the breast, and 
speaking in a confidential tone.  "You're a man of the world, you 
know, and a man of business, and a man of sense.  That's what YOU 
are."

"I am sure I am much obliged to you for your good opinion," returns 
the stationer with his cough of modesty, "but--"

"That's what YOU are, you know," says Bucket.  "Now, it an't 
necessary to say to a man like you, engaged in your business, which 
is a business of trust and requires a person to be wide awake and 
have his senses about him and his head screwed on tight (I had an 
uncle in your business once)--it an't necessary to say to a man 
like you that it's the best and wisest way to keep little matters 
like this quiet.  Don't you see?  Quiet!"

"Certainly, certainly," returns the other.

"I don't mind telling YOU," says Bucket with an engaging appearance 
of frankness, "that as far as I can understand it, there seems to 
be a doubt whether this dead person wasn't entitled to a little 
property, and whether this female hasn't been up to some games 
respecting that property, don't you see?"

"Oh!" says Mr. Snagsby, but not appearing to see quite distinctly.

"Now, what YOU want," pursues Bucket, again tapping Mr. Snagsby on 
the breast in a comfortable and soothing manner, "is that every 
person should have their rights according to justice.  That's what 
YOU want."

"To be sure," returns Mr. Snagsby with a nod.

"On account of which, and at the same time to oblige a--do you call 
it, in your business, customer or client?  I forget how my uncle 
used to call it."

"Why, I generally say customer myself," replies Mr. Snagsby.

"You're right!" returns Mr. Bucket, shaking hands with him quite 
affectionately.  "--On account of which, and at the same time to 
oblige a real good customer, you mean to go down with me, in 
confidence, to Tom-all-Alone's and to keep the whole thing quiet 
ever afterwards and never mention it to any one.  That's about your 
intentions, if I understand you?"

"You are right, sir.  You are right," says Mr. Snagsby.

"Then here's your hat," returns his new friend, quite as intimate 
with it as if he had made it; "and if you're ready, I am."

They leave Mr. Tulkinghorn, without a ruffle on the surface of his 
unfathomable depths, drinking his old wine, and go down into the 
streets.

"You don't happen to know a very good sort of person of the name of 
Gridley, do you?" says Bucket in friendly converse as they descend 
the stairs.

"No," says Mr. Snagsby, considering, "I don't know anybody of that 
name.  Why?"

"Nothing particular," says Bucket; "only having allowed his temper 
to get a little the better of him and having been threatening some 
respectable people, he is keeping out of the way of a warrant I 
have got against him--which it's a pity that a man of sense should 
do."

As they walk along, Mr. Snagsby observes, as a novelty, that 
however quick their pace may be, his companion still seems in some 
undefinable manner to lurk and lounge; also, that whenever he is 
going to turn to the right or left, he pretends to have a fixed 
purpose in his mind of going straight ahead, and wheels off, 
sharply, at the very last moment.  Now and then, when they pass a 
police-constable on his beat, Mr. Snagsby notices that both the 
constable and his guide fall into a deep abstraction as they come 
towards each other, and appear entirely to overlook each other, and 
to gaze into space.  In a few instances, Mr. Bucket, coming behind 
some under-sized young man with a shining hat on, and his sleek 
hair twisted into one flat curl on each side of his head, almost 
without glancing at him touches him with his stick, upon which the 
young man, looking round, instantly evaporates.  For the most part 
Mr. Bucket notices things in general, with a face as unchanging as 
the great mourning ring on his little finger or the brooch, 
composed of not much diamond and a good deal of setting, which he 
wears in his shirt.

When they come at last to Tom-all-Alone's, Mr. Bucket stops for a 
moment at the corner and takes a lighted bull's-eye from the 
constable on duty there, who then accompanies him with his own 
particular bull's-eye at his waist.  Between his two conductors, 
Mr. Snagsby passes along the middle of a villainous street, 
undrained, unventilated, deep in black mud and corrupt water--
though the roads are dry elsewhere--and reeking with such smells 
and sights that he, who has lived in London all his life, can 
scarce believe his senses.  Branching from this street and its 
heaps of ruins are other streets and courts so infamous that Mr. 
Snagsby sickens in body and mind and feels as if he were going 
every moment deeper down into the infernal gulf.

"Draw off a bit here, Mr. Snagsby," says Bucket as a kind of shabby 
palanquin is borne towards them, surrounded by a noisy crowd.  
"Here's the fever coming up the street!"

As the unseen wretch goes by, the crowd, leaving that object of 
attraction, hovers round the three visitors like a dream of 
horrible faces and fades away up alleys and into ruins and behind 
walls, and with occasional cries and shrill whistles of warning, 
thenceforth flits about them until they leave the place.

"Are those the fever-houses, Darby?"  Mr. Bucket coolly asks as he 
turns his bull's-eye on a line of stinking ruins.

Darby replies that "all them are," and further that in all, for 
months and months, the people "have been down by dozens" and have 
been carried out dead and dying "like sheep with the rot."  Bucket 
observing to Mr. Snagsby as they go on again that he looks a little 
poorly, Mr. Snagsby answers that he feels as if he couldn't breathe 
the dreadful air.

There is inquiry made at various houses for a boy named Jo.  As few 
people are known in Tom-all-Alone's by any Christian sign, there is 
much reference to Mr. Snagsby whether he means Carrots, or the 
Colonel, or Gallows, or Young Chisel, or Terrier Tip, or Lanky, or 
the Brick.  Mr. Snagsby describes over and over again.  There are 
conflicting opinions respecting the original of his picture.  Some 
think it must be Carrots, some say the Brick.  The Colonel is 
produced, but is not at all near the thing.  Whenever Mr. Snagsby 
and his conductors are stationary, the crowd flows round, and from 
its squalid depths obsequious advice heaves up to Mr. Bucket.  
Whenever they move, and the angry bull's-eyes glare, it fades away 
and flits about them up the alleys, and in the ruins, and behind 
the walls, as before.

At last there is a lair found out where Toughy, or the Tough 
Subject, lays him down at night; and it is thought that the Tough 
Subject may be Jo.  Comparison of notes between Mr. Snagsby and the 
proprietress of the house--a drunken face tied up in a black 
bundle, and flaring out of a heap of rags on the floor of a dog-
hutch which is her private apartment--leads to the establishment of 
this conclusion.  Toughy has gone to the doctor's to get a bottle 
of stuff for a sick woman but will be here anon.

"And who have we got here to-night?" says Mr. Bucket, opening 
another door and glaring in with his bull's-eye.  "Two drunken men, 
eh?  And two women?  The men are sound enough," turning back each 
sleeper's arm from his face to look at him.  "Are these your good 
men, my dears?"

"Yes, sir," returns one of the women.  "They are our husbands."

"Brickmakers, eh?"

"Yes, sir."

"What are you doing here?  You don't belong to London."

"No, sir.  We belong to Hertfordshire."

"Whereabouts in Hertfordshire?"

"Saint Albans."

"Come up on the tramp?"

"We walked up yesterday.  There's no work down with us at present, 
but we have done no good by coming here, and shall do none, I 
expect."

"That's not the way to do much good," says Mr. Bucket, turning his 
head in the direction of the unconscious figures on the ground.

"It an't indeed," replies the woman with a sigh.  "Jenny and me 
knows it full well."

The room, though two or three feet higher than the door, is so low 
that the head of the tallest of the visitors would touch the 
blackened ceiling if he stood upright.  It is offensive to every 
sense; even the gross candle burns pale and sickly in the polluted 
air.  There are a couple of benches and a higher bench by way of 
table.  The men lie asleep where they stumbled down, but the women 
sit by the candle.  Lying in the arms of the woman who has spoken 
is a very young child.

"Why, what age do you call that little creature?" says Bucket.  "It 
looks as if it was born yesterday."  He is not at all rough about 
it; and as he turns his light gently on the infant, Mr. Snagsby is 
strangely reminded of another infant, encircled with light, that he 
has seen in pictures.

"He is not three weeks old yet, sir," says the woman.

"Is he your child?"

"Mine."

The other woman, who was bending over it when they came in, stoops 
down again and kisses it as it lies asleep.

"You seem as fond of it as if you were the mother yourself," says 
Mr. Bucket.

"I was the mother of one like it, master, and it died."

"Ah, Jenny, Jenny!" says the other woman to her.  "Better so.  Much 
better to think of dead than alive, Jenny!  Much better!"

"Why, you an't such an unnatural woman, I hope," returns Bucket 
sternly, "as to wish your own child dead?"

"God knows you are right, master," she returns.  "I am not.  I'd 
stand between it and death with my own life if I could, as true as 
any pretty lady."

"Then don't talk in that wrong manner," says Mr. Bucket, mollified 
again.  "Why do you do it?"

"It's brought into my head, master," returns the woman, her eyes 
filling with tears, "when I look down at the child lying so.  If it 
was never to wake no more, you'd think me mad, I should take on so.  
I know that very well.  I was with Jenny when she lost hers--warn't 
I, Jenny?--and I know how she grieved.  But look around you at this 
place.  Look at them," glancing at the sleepers on the ground.  
"Look at the boy you're waiting for, who's gone out to do me a good 
turn.  Think of the children that your business lays with often and 
often, and that YOU see grow up!"

"Well, well," says Mr. Bucket, "you train him respectable, and 
he'll be a comfort to you, and look after you in your old age, you 
know."

"I mean to try hard," she answers, wiping her eyes.  "But I have 
been a-thinking, being over-tired to-night and not well with the 
ague, of all the many things that'll come in his way.  My master 
will be against it, and he'll be beat, and see me beat, and made to 
fear his home, and perhaps to stray wild.  If I work for him ever 
so much, and ever so hard, there's no one to help me; and if he 
should be turned bad 'spite of all I could do, and the time should 
come when I should sit by him in his sleep, made hard and changed, 
an't it likely I should think of him as he lies in my lap now and 
wish he had died as Jenny's child died!"

"There, there!" says Jenny.  "Liz, you're tired and ill.  Let me 
take him."

In doing so, she displaces the mother's dress, but quickly 
readjusts it over the wounded and bruised bosom where the baby has 
been lying.

"It's my dead child," says Jenny, walking up and down as she 
nurses, "that makes me love this child so dear, and it's my dead 
child that makes her love it so dear too, as even to think of its 
being taken away from her now.  While she thinks that, I think what 
fortune would I give to have my darling back.  But we mean the same 
thing, if we knew how to say it, us two mothers does in our poor 
hearts!"

As Mr. Snagsby blows his nose and coughs his cough of sympathy, a 
step is heard without.  Mr. Bucket throws his light into the 
doorway and says to Mr. Snagsby, "Now, what do you say to Toughy?  
Will HE do?"

"That's Jo," says Mr. Snagsby.

Jo stands amazed in the disk of light, like a ragged figure in a 
magic-lantern, trembling to think that he has offended against the 
law in not having moved on far enough.  Mr. Snagsby, however, 
giving him the consolatory assurance, "It's only a job you will be 
paid for, Jo," he recovers; and on being taken outside by Mr. 
Bucket for a little private confabulation, tells his tale 
satisfactorily, though out of breath.

"I have squared it with the lad," says Mr. Bucket, returning, "and 
it's all right.  Now, Mr. Snagsby, we're ready for you."

First, Jo has to complete his errand of good nature by handing over 
the physic he has been to get, which he delivers with the laconic 
verbal direction that "it's to be all took d'rectly."  Secondly, 
Mr. Snagsby has to lay upon the table half a crown, his usual 
panacea for an immense variety of afflictions.  Thirdly, Mr. Bucket 
has to take Jo by the arm a little above the elbow and walk him on 
before him, without which observance neither the Tough Subject nor 
any other Subject could be professionally conducted to Lincoln's 
Inn Fields.  These arrangements completed, they give the women good 
night and come out once more into black and foul Tom-all-Alone's.

By the noisome ways through which they descended into that pit, 
they gradually emerge from it, the crowd flitting, and whistling, 
and skulking about them until they come to the verge, where 
restoration of the bull's-eyes is made to Darby.  Here the crowd, 
like a concourse of imprisoned demons, turns back, yelling, and is 
seen no more.  Through the clearer and fresher streets, never so 
clear and fresh to Mr. Snagsby's mind as now, they walk and ride 
until they come to Mr. Tulkinghorn's gate.

As they ascend the dim stairs (Mr. Tulkinghorn's chambers being on 
the first floor), Mr. Bucket mentions that he has the key of the 
outer door in his pocket and that there is no need to ring.  For a 
man so expert in most things of that kind, Bucket takes time to 
open the door and makes some noise too.  It may be that he sounds a 
note of preparation.

Howbeit, they come at last into the hall, where a lamp is burning, 
and so into Mr. Tulkinghorn's usual room--the room where he drank 
his old wine to-night.  He is not there, but his two old-fashioned 
candlesticks are, and the room is tolerably light.

Mr. Bucket, still having his professional hold of Jo and appearing 
to Mr. Snagsby to possess an unlimited number of eyes, makes a 
little way into this room, when Jo starts and stops.

"What's the matter?" says Bucket in a whisper.

"There she is!" cries Jo.

"Who!"

"The lady!"

A female figure, closely veiled, stands in the middle of the room, 
where the light falls upon it.  It is quite still and silent.  The 
front of the figure is towards them, but it takes no notice of 
their entrance and remains like a statue.

"Now, tell me," says Bucket aloud, "how you know that to be the 
lady."

"I know the wale," replies Jo, staring, "and the bonnet, and the 
gownd."

"Be quite sure of what you say, Tough," returns Bucket, narrowly 
observant of him.  "Look again."

"I am a-looking as hard as ever I can look," says Jo with starting 
eyes, "and that there's the wale, the bonnet, and the gownd."

"What about those rings you told me of?" asks Bucket.

"A-sparkling all over here," says Jo, rubbing the fingers of his 
left hand on the knuckles of his right without taking his eyes from 
the figure.

The figure removes the right-hand glove and shows the hand.

"Now, what do you say to that?" asks Bucket.

Jo shakes his head.  "Not rings a bit like them.  Not a hand like 
that."

"What are you talking of?" says Bucket, evidently pleased though, 
and well pleased too.

"Hand was a deal whiter, a deal delicater, and a deal smaller," 
returns Jo.

"Why, you'll tell me I'm my own mother next," says Mr. Bucket.  "Do 
you recollect the lady's voice?"

"I think I does," says Jo.

The figure speaks.  "Was it at all like this?  I will speak as long 
as you like if you are not sure.  Was it this voice, or at all like 
this voice?"

Jo looks aghast at Mr. Bucket.  "Not a bit!"

"Then, what," retorts that worthy, pointing to the figure, "did you 
say it was the lady for?"

"Cos," says Jo with a perplexed stare but without being at all 
shaken in his certainty, "cos that there's the wale, the bonnet, 
and the gownd.  It is her and it an't her.  It an't her hand, nor 
yet her rings, nor yet her woice.  But that there's the wale, the 
bonnet, and the gownd, and they're wore the same way wot she wore 
'em, and it's her height wot she wos, and she giv me a sov'ring and 
hooked it."

"Well!" says Mr. Bucket slightly, "we haven't got much good out of 
YOU.  But, however, here's five shillings for you.  Take care how 
you spend it, and don't get yourself into trouble."  Bucket 
stealthily tells the coins from one hand into the other like 
counters--which is a way he has, his principal use of them being in 
these games of skill--and then puts them, in a little pile, into 
the boy's hand and takes him out to the door, leaving Mr. Snagsby, 
not by any means comfortable under these mysterious circumstances, 
alone with the veiled figure.  But on Mr. Tulkinghorn's coming into 
the room, the veil is raised and a sufficiently good-looking 
Frenchwoman is revealed, though her expression is something of the 
intensest.

"Thank you, Mademoiselle Hortense," says Mr. Tulkinghorn with his 
usual equanimity.  "I will give you no further trouble about this 
little wager."

"You will do me the kindness to remember, sir, that I am not at 
present placed?" says mademoiselle.

"Certainly, certainly!"

"And to confer upon me the favour of your distinguished 
recommendation?"

"By all means, Mademoiselle Hortense."

"A word from Mr. Tulkinghorn is so powerful."

"It shall not be wanting, mademoiselle."

"Receive the assurance of my devoted gratitude, dear sir."

"Good night."

Mademoiselle goes out with an air of native gentility; and Mr. 
Bucket, to whom it is, on an emergency, as natural to be groom of 
the ceremonies as it is to be anything else, shows her downstairs, 
not without gallantry.

"Well, Bucket?" quoth Mr. Tulkinghorn on his return.

"It's all squared, you see, as I squared it myself, sir.  There 
an't a doubt that it was the other one with this one's dress on.  
The boy was exact respecting colours and everything.  Mr. Snagsby, 
I promised you as a man that he should be sent away all right.  
Don't say it wasn't done!"

"You have kept your word, sir," returns the stationer; "and if I 
can be of no further use, Mr. Tulkinghorn, I think, as my little 
woman will be getting anxious--"

"Thank you, Snagsby, no further use," says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "I am 
quite indebted to you for the trouble you have taken already."

"Not at all, sir.  I wish you good night."

"You see, Mr. Snagsby," says Mr. Bucket, accompanying him to the 
door and shaking hands with him over and over again, "what I like 
in you is that you're a man it's of no use pumping; that's what YOU 
are.  When you know you have done a right thing, you put it away, 
and it's done with and gone, and there's an end of it.  That's what 
YOU do."

"That is certainly what I endeavour to do, sir," returns Mr. 
Snagsby.

"No, you don't do yourself justice.  It an't what you endeavour to 
do," says Mr. Bucket, shaking hands with him and blessing him in 
the tenderest manner, "it's what you DO.  That's what I estimate in 
a man in your way of business."

Mr. Snagsby makes a suitable response and goes homeward so confused 
by the events of the evening that he is doubtful of his being awake 
and out--doubtful of the reality of the streets through which he 
goes--doubtful of the reality of the moon that shines above him.  
He is presently reassured on these subjects by the unchallengeable 
reality of Mrs. Snagsby, sitting up with her head in a perfect 
beehive of curl-papers and night-cap, who has dispatched Guster to 
the police-station with official intelligence of her husband's 
being made away with, and who within the last two hours has passed 
through every stage of swooning with the greatest decorum.  But as 
the little woman feelingly says, many thanks she gets for it!



CHAPTER XXIII

Esther's Narrative


We came home from Mr. Boythorn's after six pleasant weeks.  We were 
often in the park and in the woods and seldom passed the lodge 
where we had taken shelter without looking in to speak to the 
keeper's wife; but we saw no more of Lady Dedlock, except at church 
on Sundays.  There was company at Chesney Wold; and although 
several beautiful faces surrounded her, her face retained the same 
influence on me as at first.  I do not quite know even now whether 
it was painful or pleasurable, whether it drew me towards her or 
made me shrink from her.  I think I admired her with a kind of 
fear, and I know that in her presence my thoughts always wandered 
back, as they had done at first, to that old time of my life.

I had a fancy, on more than one of these Sundays, that what this 
lady so curiously was to me, I was to her--I mean that I disturbed 
her thoughts as she influenced mine, though in some different way.  
But when I stole a glance at her and saw her so composed and 
distant and unapproachable, I felt this to be a foolish weakness.  
Indeed, I felt the whole state of my mind in reference to her to be 
weak and unreasonable, and I remonstrated with myself about it as 
much as I could.

One incident that occurred before we quitted Mr. Boythorn's house, 
I had better mention in this place.

I was walking in the garden with Ada and when I was told that some 
one wished to see me.  Going into the breakfast-room where this 
person was waiting, I found it to be the French maid who had cast 
off her shoes and walked through the wet grass on the day when it 
thundered and lightened.

"Mademoiselle," she began, looking fixedly at me with her too-eager 
eyes, though otherwise presenting an agreeable appearance and 
speaking neither with boldness nor servility, "I have taken a great 
liberty in coming here, but you know how to excuse it, being so 
amiable, mademoiselle."

"No excuse is necessary," I returned, "if you wish to speak to me."

"That is my desire, mademoiselle.  A thousand thanks for the 
permission.  I have your leave to speak.  Is it not?" she said in a 
quick, natural way.

"Certainly," said I.

"Mademoiselle, you are so amiable!  Listen then, if you please.  I 
have left my Lady.  We could not agree.  My Lady is so high, so 
very high.  Pardon!  Mademoiselle, you are right!"  Her quickness 
anticipated what I might have said presently but as yet had only 
thought.  "It is not for me to come here to complain of my Lady.  
But I say she is so high, so very high.  I will not say a word 
more.  All the world knows that."

"Go on, if you please," said I.

"Assuredly; mademoiselle, I am thankful for your politeness.  
Mademoiselle, I have an inexpressible desire to find service with a 
young lady who is good, accomplished, beautiful.  You are good, 
accomplished, and beautiful as an angel.  Ah, could I have the 
honour of being your domestic!"

"I am sorry--" I began.

"Do not dismiss me so soon, mademoiselle!" she said with an 
involuntary contraction of her fine black eyebrows.  "Let me hope a 
moment!  Mademoiselle, I know this service would be more retired 
than that which I have quitted.  Well! I wish that.  I know this 
service would be less distinguished than that which I have quitted.  
Well! I wish that, I know that I should win less, as to wages here.  
Good.  I am content."

"I assure you," said I, quite embarrassed by the mere idea of 
having such an attendant, "that I keep no maid--"

"Ah, mademoiselle, but why not?  Why not, when you can have one so 
devoted to you!  Who would be enchanted to serve you; who would be 
so true, so zealous, and so faithful every day!  Mademoiselle, I 
wish with all my heart to serve you.  Do not speak of money at 
present.  Take me as I am.  For nothing!"

She was so singularly earnest that I drew back, almost afraid of 
her.  Without appearing to notice it, in her ardour she still 
pressed herself upon me, speaking in a rapid subdued voice, though 
always with a certain grace and propriety.

"Mademoiselle, I come from the South country where we are quick and 
where we like and dislike very strong.  My Lady was too high for 
me; I was too high for her.  It is done--past--finlshed!  Receive 
me as your domestic, and I will serve you well.  I will do more for 
you than you figure to yourself now.  Chut!  Mademoiselle, I will--
no matter, I will do my utmost possible in all things.  If you 
accept my service, you will not repent it.  Mademoiselle, you will 
not repent it, and I will serve you well.  You don't know how 
well!"

There was a lowering energy in her face as she stood looking at me 
while I explained the impossibility of my engagmg her (without 
thinking it necessary to say how very little I desired to do so), 
which seemed to bring visibly before me some woman from the streets 
of Paris in the reign of terror.

She heard me out without interruption and then said with her pretty 
accent and in her mildest voice, "Hey, mademoiselle, I have 
received my answer!  I am sorry of it.  But I must go elsewhere and 
seek what I have not found here.  Will you graciously let me kiss 
your hand?"

She looked at me more intently as she took it, and seemed to take 
note, with her momentary touch, of every vein in it.  "I fear I 
surprised you, mademoiselle, on the day of the storm?" she said 
with a parting curtsy.

I confessed that she had surprised us all.

"I took an oath, mademoiselle," she said, smiling, "and I wanted to 
stamp it on my mind so that I might keep it faithfully.  And I 
will!  Adieu, mademoiselle!"

So ended our conference, which I was very glad to bring to a close.  
I supposed she went away from the village, for I saw her no more; 
and nothing else occurred to disturb our tranquil summer pleasures 
until six weeks were out and we returned home as I began just now 
by saying.

At that time, and for a good many weeks after that time, Richard 
was constant in his visits.  Besides coming every Saturday or 
Sunday and remaining with us until Monday morning, he sometimes 
rode out on horseback unexpectedly and passed the evening with us 
and rode back again early next day.  He was as vivacious as ever 
and told us he was very industrious, but I was not easy in my mind 
about him.  It appeared to me that his industry was all 
misdirected.  I could not find that it led to anything but the 
formation of delusive hopes in connexion with the suit already the 
pernicious cause of so much sorrow and ruin.  He had got at the 
core of that mystery now, he told us, and nothing could be plainer 
than that the will under which he and Ada were to take I don't know 
how many thousands of pounds must be finally established if there 
were any sense or justice in the Court of Chancery--but oh, what a 
great IF that sounded in my ears--and that this happy conclusion 
could not be much longer delayed.  He proved this to himself by all 
the weary arguments on that side he had read, and every one of them 
sunk him deeper in the infatuation.  He had even begun to haunt the 
court.  He told us how he saw Miss Flite there daily, how they 
talked together, and how he did her little kindnesses, and how, 
while he laughed at her, he pitied her from his heart.  But he 
never thought--never, my poor, dear, sanguine Richard, capable of 
so much happiness then, and with such better things before him--
what a fatal link was riveting between his fresh youth and her 
faded age, between his free hopes and her caged birds, and her 
hungry garret, and her wandering mind.

Ada loved him too well to mistrust him much in anything he said or 
did, and my guardian, though he frequently complained of the east 
wind and read more than usual in the growlery, preserved a strict 
silence on the subject.  So I thought one day when I went to London 
to meet Caddy Jellyby, at her solicitation, I would ask Richard to 
be in waiting for me at the coach-office, that we might have a 
little talk together.  I found him there when I arrived, and we 
walked away arm in arm.

"Well, Richard," said I as soon as I could begin to be grave with 
him, "are you beginning to feel more settled now?"

"Oh, yes, my dear!" returned Richard.  "I'm all right enough."

"But settled?" said I.

"How do you mean, settled?" returned Richard with his gay laugh.

"Settled in the law," said I.

"Oh, aye," replied Richard, "I'm all right enough."

"You said that before, my dear Richard."

"And you don't think it's an answer, eh?  Well! Perhaps it's not.  
Settled?  You mean, do I feel as if I were settling down?"

"Yes."

"Why, no, I can't say I am settling down," said Richard, strongly 
emphasizing "down," as if that expressed the difficulty, "because 
one can't settle down while this business remains in such an 
unsettled state.  When I say this business, of course I mean the--
forbidden subject."

"Do you think it will ever be in a settled state?" said I.

"Not the least doubt of it," answered Richard.

We walked a little way without speaking, and presently Richard 
addressed me in his frankest and most feeling manner, thus: "My 
dear Esther, I understand you, and I wish to heaven I were a more 
constant sort of fellow.  I don't mean constant to Ada, for I love 
her dearly--better and better every day--but constant to myself.  
(Somehow, I mean something that I can't very well express, but 
you'll make it out.)  If I were a more constant sort of fellow, I 
should have held on either to Badger or to Kenge and Carboy like 
grim death, and should have begun to be steady and systematic by 
this time, and shouldn't be in debt, and--"

"ARE you in debt, Richard?"

"Yes," said Richard, "I am a little so, my dear.  Also, I have 
taken rather too much to billiards and that sort of thing.  Now the 
murder's out; you despise me, Esther, don't you?"

"You know I don't," said I.

"You are kinder to me than I often am to myself," he returned.  "My 
dear Esther, I am a very unfortunate dog not to be more settled, 
but how CAN I be more settled?  If you lived in an unfinished 
house, you couldn't settle down in it; if you were condemned to 
leave everything you undertook unfinished, you would find it hard 
to apply yourself to anything; and yet that's my unhappy case.  I 
was born into this unfinished contention with all its chances and 
changes, and it began to unsettle me before I quite knew the 
difference between a suit at law and a suit of clothes; and it has 
gone on unsettling me ever since; and here I am now, conscious 
sometimes that I am but a worthless fellow to love my confiding 
cousin Ada."

We were in a solitary place, and he put his hands before his eyes 
and sobbed as he said the words.

"Oh, Richard!" said I.  "Do not be so moved.  You have a noble 
nature, and Ada's love may make you worthier every day."

"I know, my dear," he replied, pressing my arm, "I know all that.  
You mustn't mind my being a little soft now, for I have had all 
this upon my mind for a long time, and have often meant to speak to 
you, and have sometimes wanted opportunity and sometimes courage.  
I know what the thought of Ada ought to do for me, but it doesn't 
do it.  I am too unsettled even for that.  I love her most 
devotedly, and yet I do her wrong, in doing myself wrong, every day 
and hour.  But it can't last for ever.  We shall come on for a 
final hearing and get judgment in our favour, and then you and Ada 
shall see what I can really be!"

It had given me a pang to hear him sob and see the tears start out 
between his fingers, but that was infinitely less affecting to me 
than the hopeful animation with which he said these words.

"I have looked well into the papers, Esther.  I have been deep in 
them for months," he continued, recovering his cheerfulness in a 
moment, "and you may rely upon it that we shall come out 
triumphant.  As to years of delay, there has been no want of them, 
heaven knows!  And there is the greater probability of our bringing 
the matter to a speedy close; in fact, it's on the paper now.  It 
will be all right at last, and then you shall see!"

Recalling how he had just now placed Messrs. Kenge and Carboy in 
the same category with Mr. Badger, I asked him when he intended to 
be articled in Lincoln's Inn.

"There again!  I think not at all, Esther," he returned with an 
effort.  "I fancy I have had enough of it.  Having worked at 
Jarndyce and Jarndyce like a galley slave, I have slaked my thirst 
for the law and satisfied myself that I shouldn't like it.  
Besides, I find it unsettles me more and more to be so constantly 
upon the scene of action.  So what," continued Richard, confident 
again by this time, "do I naturally turn my thoughts to?"

"I can't imagine," said I.

"Don't look so serious," returned Richard, "because it's the best 
thing I can do, my dear Esther, I am certain.  It's not as if I 
wanted a profession for life.  These proceedings will come to a 
termination, and then I am provided for.  No.  I look upon it as a 
pursuit which is in its nature more or less unsettled, and 
therefore suited to my temporary condition--I may say, precisely 
suited.  What is it that I naturally turn my thoughts to?"

I looked at him and shook my head.

"What," said Richard, in a tone of perfect conviction, "but the 
army!"

"The army?" said I.

"The army, of course.  What I have to do is to get a commission; 
and--there I am, you know!" said Richard.

And then he showed me, proved by elaborate calculations in his 
pocket-book, that supposing he had contracted, say, two hundred 
pounds of debt in six months out of the army; and that he 
contracted no debt at all within a corresponding period in the 
army--as to which he had quite made up his mind; this step must 
involve a saving of four hundred pounds in a year, or two thousand 
pounds in five years, which was a considerable sum.  And then he 
spoke so ingenuously and sincerely of the sacrifice he made in 
withdrawing himself for a time from Ada, and of the earnestness 
with which he aspired--as in thought he always did, I know full 
well--to repay her love, and to ensure her happiness, and to 
conquer what was amiss in himself, and to acquire the very soul of 
decision, that he made my heart ache keenly, sorely.  For, I 
thought, how would this end, how could this end, when so soon and 
so surely all his manly qualities were touched by the fatal blight 
that ruined everything it rested on!

I spoke to Richard with all the earnestness I felt, and all the 
hope I could not quite feel then, and implored him for Ada's sake 
not to put any trust in Chancery.  To all I said, Richard readily 
assented, riding over the court and everything else in his easy way 
and drawing the brightest pictures of the character he was to 
settle into--alas, when the grievous suit should loose its hold 
upon him!  We had a long talk, but it always came back to that, in 
substance.

At last we came to Soho Square, where Caddy Jellyby had appointed 
to wait for me, as a quiet place in the neighbourhood of Newman 
Street.  Caddy was in the garden in the centre and hurried out as 
soon as I appeared.  After a few cheerful words, Richard left us 
together.

"Prince has a pupil over the way, Esther," said Caddy, "and got the 
key for us.  So if you will walk round and round here with me, we 
can lock ourselves in and I can tell you comfortably what I wanted 
to see your dear good face about."

"Very well, my dear," said I.  "Nothing could be better."  So 
Caddy, after affectionately squeezing the dear good face as she 
called it, locked the gate, and took my arm, and we began to walk 
round the garden very cosily.

"You see, Esther," said Caddy, who thoroughly enjoyed a little 
confidence, "after you spoke to me about its being wrong to marry 
without Ma's knowledge, or even to keep Ma long in the dark 
respecting our engagement--though I don't believe Ma cares much for 
me, I must say--I thought it right to mention your opinions to 
Prince.  In the first place because I want to profit by everything 
you tell me, and in the second place because I have no secrets from 
Prince."

"I hope he approved, Caddy?"

"Oh, my dear!  I assure you he would approve of anything you could 
say.  You have no idea what an opimon he has of you!"

"Indeed!"

"Esther, it's enough to make anybody but me jealous," said Caddy, 
laughing and shaking her head; "but it only makes me joyful, for 
you are the first friend I ever had, and the best friend I ever can 
have, and nobody can respect and love you too much to please me."

"Upon my word, Caddy," said I, "you are in the general conspiracy 
to keep me in a good humour.  Well, my dear?"

"Well! I am going to tell you," replied Caddy, crossing her hands 
confidentially upon my arm.  "So we talked a good deal about it, 
and so I said to Prince, 'Prince, as Miss Summerson--"

"I hope you didn't say 'Miss Summerson'?"

"No.  I didn't!" cried Caddy, greatly pleased and with the 
brightest of faces.  "I said, 'Esther.'  I said to Prince, 'As 
Esther is decidedly of that opinion, Prince, and has expressed it 
to me, and always hints it when she writes those kind notes, which 
you are so fond of hearing me read to you, I am prepared to 
disclose the truth to Ma whenever you think proper.  And I think, 
Prince,' said I, 'that Esther thinks that I should be in a better, 
and truer, and more honourable position altogether if you did the 
same to your papa.'"

"Yes, my dear," said I.  "Esther certainly does think so."

"So I was right, you see!" exclaimed Caddy.  "Well! This troubled 
Prince a good deal, not because he had the least doubt about it, 
but because he is so considerate of the feelings of old Mr. 
Turveydrop; and he had his apprehensions that old Mr. Turveydrop 
might break his heart, or faint away, or be very much overcome in 
some affecting manner or other if he made such an announcement.  He 
feared old Mr. Turveydrop might consider it undutiful and might 
receive too great a shock.  For old Mr. Turveydrop's deportment is 
very beautiful, you know, Esther," said Caddy, "and his feelings 
are extremely sensitive."

"Are they, my dear?"

"Oh, extremely sensitive.  Prince says so.  Now, this has caused my 
darling child--I didn't mean to use the expression to you, Esther," 
Caddy apologized, her face suffused with blushes, "but I generally 
call Prince my darling child."

I laughed; and Caddy laughed and blushed, and went on'

"This has caused him, Esther--"

"Caused whom, my dear?"

"Oh, you tiresome thing!" said Caddy, laughing, with her pretty 
face on fire.  "My darling child, if you insist upon it!  This has 
caused him weeks of uneasiness and has made him delay, from day to 
day, in a very anxious manner.  At last he said to me, 'Caddy, if 
Miss Summerson, who is a great favourite with my father, could be 
prevailed upon to be present when I broke the subject, I think I 
could do it.'  So I promised I would ask you.  And I made up my 
mind, besides," said Caddy, looking at me hopefully but timidly, 
"that if you consented, I would ask you afterwards to come with me 
to Ma.  This is what I meant when I said in my note that I had a 
great favour and a great assistance to beg of you.  And if you 
thought you could grant it, Esther, we should both be very 
grateful."

"Let me see, Caddy," said I, pretending to consider.  "Really, I 
think I could do a greater thing than that if the need were 
pressing.  I am at your service and the darling child's, my dear, 
whenever you like."

Caddy was quite transported by this reply of mine, being, I 
believe, as susceptible to the least kindness or encouragement as 
any tender heart that ever beat in this world; and after another 
turn or two round the garden, during which she put on an entirely 
new pair of gloves and made herself as resplendent as possible that 
she might do no avoidable discredit to the Master of Deportment, we 
went to Newman Street direct.

Prince was teaching, of course.  We found him engaged with a not 
very hopeful pupil--a stubborn little girl with a sulky forehead, a 
deep voice, and an inanimate, dissatisfied mama--whose case was 
certainly not rendered more hopeful by the confusion into which we 
threw her preceptor.  The lesson at last came to an end, after 
proceeding as discordantly as possible; and when the little girl 
had changed her shoes and had had her white muslin extinguished in 
shawls, she was taken away.  After a few words of preparation, we 
then went in search of Mr. Turveydrop, whom we found, grouped with 
his hat and gloves, as a model of deportment, on the sofa in his 
private apartment--the only comfortable room in the house.  He 
appeared to have dressed at his leisure in the intervals of a light 
collation, and his dressing-case, brushes, and so forth, all of 
quite an elegant kind, lay about.

"Father, Miss Summerson; Miss Jellyby."

"Charmed!  Enchanted!" said Mr. Turveydrop, rising with his high-
shouldered bow.  "Permit me!"  Handing chairs.  "Be seated!"  
Kissing the tips of his left fingers.  "Overjoyed!"  Shutting his 
eyes and rolling.  "My little retreat is made a paradise."  
Recomposing himself on the sofa like the second gentleman in 
Europe.

"Again you find us, Miss Summerson," said he, "using our little 
arts to polish, polish!  Again the sex stimulates us and rewards us 
by the condescension of its lovely presence.  It is much in these 
times (and we have made an awfully degenerating business of it 
since the days of his Royal Highness the Prince Regent--my patron, 
if I may presume to say so) to experience that deportment is not 
wholly trodden under foot by mechanics.  That it can yet bask in 
the smile of beauty, my dear madam."

I said nothing, which I thought a suitable reply; and he took a 
pinch of snuff.

"My dear son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "you have four schools this 
afternoon.  I would recommend a hasty sandwich."

"Thank you, father," returned Prince, "I will be sure to be 
punctual.  My dear father, may I beg you to prepare your mind for 
what I am going to say?"

"Good heaven!" exclaimed the model, pale and aghast as Prince and 
Caddy, hand in hand, bent down before him.  "What is this?  Is this 
lunacy!  Or what is this?"

"Father," returned Prince with great submission, "I love this young 
lady, and we are engaged."

"Engaged!" cried Mr. Turveydrop, reclining on the sofa and shutting 
out the sight with his hand.  "An arrow launched at my brain by my 
own child!"

"We have been engaged for some time, father," faltered Prince, "and 
Miss Summerson, hearing of it, advised that we should declare the 
fact to you and was so very kind as to attend on the present 
occasion.  Miss Jellyby is a young lady who deeply respects you, 
father."

Mr. Turveydrop uttered a groan.

"No, pray don't!  Pray don't, father," urged his son.  "Miss 
Jellyby is a young lady who deeply respects you, and our first 
desire is to consider your comfort."

Mr. Turveydrop sobbed.

"No, pray don't, father!" cried his son.

"Boy," said Mr. Turveydrop, "it is well that your sainted mother is 
spared this pang.  Strike deep, and spare not.  Strike home, sir, 
strike home!"

"Pray don't say so, father," implored Prince, in tears.  "It goes 
to my heart.  I do assure you, father, that our first wish and 
intention is to consider your comfort.  Caroline and I do not 
forget our duty--what is my duty is Caroline's, as we have often 
said together--and with your approval and consent, father, we will 
devote ourselves to making your life agreeable."

"Strike home," murmured Mr. Turveydrop.  "Strike home!"  But he 
seemed to listen, I thought, too.

"My dear father," returned Prince, "we well know what little 
comforts you are accustomed to and have a right to, and it will 
always be our study and our pride to provide those before anything.  
If you will bless us with your approval and consent, father, we 
shall not think of being married until it is quite agreeable to 
you; and when we ARE married, we shall always make you--of course--
our first consideration.  You must ever be the head and master 
here, father; and we feel how truly unnatural it would be in us if 
we failed to know it or if we failed to exert ourselves in every 
possible way to please you."

Mr. Turveydrop underwent a severe internal struggle and came 
upright on the sofa again with his cheeks puffing over his stiff 
cravat, a perfect model of parental deportment.

"My son!" said Mr. Turveydrop.  "My children!  I cannot resist your 
prayer.  Be happy!"

His benignity as he raised his future daughter-in-law and stretched 
out his hand to his son (who kissed it with affectionate respect 
and gratitude) was the most confusing sight I ever saw.

"My children," said Mr. Turveydrop, paternally encircling Caddy 
with his left arm as she sat beside him, and putting his right hand 
gracefully on his hip.  "My son and daughter, your happiness shall 
be my care.  I will watch over you.  You shall always live with 
me"--meaning, of course, I will always live with you--"this house 
is henceforth as much yours as mine; consider it your home.  May 
you long live to share it with me!"

The power of his deportment was such that they really were as much 
overcome with thankfulness as if, instead of quartering himself 
upon them for the rest of his life, he were making some munificent 
sacrifice in their favour.

"For myself, my children," said Mr. Turveydrop, "I am falling into 
the sear and yellow leaf, and it is impossible to say how long the 
last feeble traces of gentlemanly deportment may linger in this 
weaving and spinning age.  But, so long, I will do my duty to 
society and will show myself, as usual, about town.  My wants are 
few and simple.  My little apartment here, my few essentials for 
the toilet, my frugal morning meal, and my little dinner will 
suffice.  I charge your dutiful affection with the supply of these 
requirements, and I charge myself with all the rest."

They were overpowered afresh by his uncommon generosity.

"My son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "for those little points in which 
you are deficient--points of deportment, which are born with a man, 
which may be improved by cultivation, but can never be originated--
you may still rely on me.  I have been faithful to my post since 
the days of his Royal Highness the Prince Regent, and I will not 
desert it now.  No, my son.  If you have ever contemplated your 
father's poor position with a feeling of pride, you may rest 
assured that he will do nothing to tarnish it.  For yourself, 
Prince, whose character is different (we cannot be all alike, nor 
is it advisable that we should), work, be industrious, earn money, 
and extend the connexion as much as possible."

"That you may depend I will do, dear father, with all my heart," 
replied Prince.

"I have no doubt of it," said Mr. Turveydrop.  "Your qualities are 
not shining, my dear child, but they are steady and useful.  And to 
both of you, my children, I would merely observe, in the spirit of 
a sainted wooman on whose path I had the happiness of casting, I 
believe, SOME ray of light, take care of the establishment, take 
care of my simple wants, and bless you both!"

Old Mr. Turveydrop then became so very gallant, in honour of the 
occasion, that I told Caddy we must really go to Thavies Inn at 
once if we were to go at all that day.  So we took our departure 
after a very loving farewell between Caddy and her betrothed, and 
during our walk she was so happy and so full of old Mr. 
Turveydrop's praises that I would not have said a word in his 
disparagement for any consideration.

The house in Thavies Inn had bills in the windows annoucing that it 
was to let, and it looked dirtier and gloomier and ghastlier than 
ever.  The name of poor Mr. Jellyby had appeared in the list of 
bankrupts but a day or two before, and he was shut up in the 
dining-room with two gentlemen and a heap of blue bags, account-
books, and papers, making the most desperate endeavours to 
understand his affairs.  They appeared to me to be quite beyond his 
comprehension, for when Caddy took me into the dining-room by 
mistake and we came upon Mr. Jellyby in his spectacles, forlornly 
fenced into a corner by the great dining-table and the two 
gentlemen, he seemed to have given up the whole thing and to be 
speechless and insensible.

Going upstairs to Mrs. Jellyby's room (the children were all 
screaming in the kitchen, and there was no servant to be seen), we 
found that lady in the midst of a voluminous correspondence, 
opening, reading, and sorting letters, with a great accumulation of 
torn covers on the floor.  She was so preoccupied that at first she 
did not know me, though she sat looking at me with that curious, 
bright-eyed, far-off look of hers.

"Ah! Miss Summerson!" she said at last.  "I was thinking of 
something so different!  I hope you are well.  I am happy to see 
you.  Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Clare quite well?"

I hoped in return that Mr. Jellyby was quite well.

"Why, not quite, my dear," said Mrs. Jellyby in the calmest manner.  
"He has been unfortunate in his affairs and is a little out of 
spirits.  Happily for me, I am so much engaged that I have no time 
to think about it.  We have, at the present moment, one hundred and 
seventy families, Miss Summerson, averaging five persons in each, 
either gone or going to the left bank of the Niger."

I thought of the one family so near us who were neither gone nor 
going to the left bank of the Niger, and wondered how she could be 
so placid.

"You have brought Caddy back, I see," observed Mrs. Jellyby with a 
glance at her daughter.  "It has become quite a novelty to see her 
here.  She has almost deserted her old employment and in fact 
obliges me to employ a boy."

"I am sure, Ma--" began Caddy.

"Now you know, Caddy," her mother mildly interposed, "that I DO 
employ a boy, who is now at his dinner.  What is the use of your 
contradicting?"

"I was not going to contradict, Ma," returned Caddy.  "I was only 
going to say that surely you wouldn't have me be a mere drudge all 
my life."

"I believe, my dear," said Mrs. Jellyby, still opening her letters, 
casting her bright eyes smilingly over them, and sorting them as 
she spoke, "that you have a business example before you in your 
mother.  Besides.  A mere drudge?  If you had any sympathy with the 
destinies of the human race, it would raise you high above any such 
idea.  But you have none.  I have often told you, Caddy, you have 
no such sympathy."

"Not if it's Africa, Ma, I have not."

"Of course you have not.  Now, if I were not happily so much 
engaged, Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby, sweetly casting her 
eyes for a moment on me and considering where to put the particular 
letter she had just opened, "this would distress and disappoint me.  
But I have so much to think of, in connexion with Borrioboola-Gha 
and it is so necessary I should concentrate myself that there is my 
remedy, you see."

As Caddy gave me a glance of entreaty, and as Mrs. Jellyby was 
looking far away into Africa straight through my bonnet and head, I 
thought it a good opportunity to come to the subject of my visit 
and to attract Mrs. Jellyby's attention.

"Perhaps," I began, "you will wonder what has brought me here to 
interrupt you."

"I am always delighted to see Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby, 
pursuing her employment with a placid smile.  "Though I wish," and 
she shook her head, "she was more interested in the Borrioboolan 
project."

"I have come with Caddy," said I, "because Caddy justly thinks she 
ought not to have a secret from her mother and fancies I shall 
encourage and aid her (though I am sure I don't know how) in 
imparting one."

"Caddy," said Mrs. Jellyby, pausing for a moment in her occupation 
and then serenely pursuing it after shaking her head, "you are 
going to tell me some nonsense."

Caddy untied the strings of her bonnet, took her bonnet off, and 
letting it dangle on the floor by the strings, and crying heartily, 
said, "Ma, I am engaged."

"Oh, you ridiculous child!" observed Mrs. Jellyby with an 
abstracted air as she looked over the dispatch last opened; "what a 
goose you are!"

"I am engaged, Ma," sobbed Caddy, "to young Mr. Turveydrop, at the 
academy; and old Mr. Turveydrop (who is a very gentlemanly man 
indeed) has given his consent, and I beg and pray you'll give us 
yours, Ma, because I never could be happy without it.  I never, 
never could!" sobbed Caddy, quite forgetful of her general 
complainings and of everything but her natural affection.

"You see again, Miss Summerson," observed Mrs. Jellyby serenely, 
"what a happiness it is to be so much occupied as I am and to have 
this necessity for self-concentration that I have.  Here is Caddy 
engaged to a dancing-master's son--mixed up with people who have no 
more sympathy with the destinies of the human race than she has 
herself!  This, too, when Mr. Quale, one of the first 
philanthropists of our time, has mentioned to me that he was really 
disposed to be interested in her!"

"Ma, I always hated and detested Mr. Quale!" sobbed Caddy.

"Caddy, Caddy!" returned Mrs. Jellyby, opening another letter with 
the greatest complacency.  "I have no doubt you did.  How could you 
do otherwise, being totally destitute of the sympathies with which 
he overflows!  Now, if my public duties were not a favourite child 
to me, if I were not occupied with large measures on a vast scale, 
these petty details might grieve me very much, Miss Summerson.  But 
can I permit the film of a silly proceeding on the part of Caddy 
(from whom I expect nothing else) to interpose between me and the 
great African continent?  No.  No," repeated Mrs. Jellyby in a calm 
clear voice, and with an agreeable smile, as she opened more 
letters and sorted them.  "No, indeed."

I was so unprepared for the perfect coolness of this reception, 
though I might have expected it, that I did not know what to say.  
Caddy seemed equally at a loss.  Mrs. Jellyby continued to open and 
sort letters and to repeat occasionally in quite a charming tone of 
voice and with a smile of perfect composure, "No, indeed."

"I hope, Ma," sobbed poor Caddy at last, "you are not angry?"

"Oh, Caddy, you really are an absurd girl," returned Mrs. Jellyby, 
"to ask such questions after what I have said of the preoccupation 
of my mind."

"And I hope, Ma, you give us your consent and wish us well?" said 
Caddy.

"You are a nonsensical child to have done anything of this kind," 
said Mrs. Jellyby; "and a degenerate child, when you might have 
devoted yourself to the great public measure.  But the step is 
taken, and I have engaged a boy, and there is no more to be said.  
Now, pray, Caddy," said Mrs. Jellyby, for Caddy was kissing her, 
"don't delay me in my work, but let me clear off this heavy batch 
of papers before the afternoon post comes in!"

I thought I could not do better than take my leave; I was detained 
for a moment by Caddy's saying, "You won't object to my bringing 
him to see you, Ma?"

"Oh, dear me, Caddy," cried Mrs. Jellyby, who had relapsed into 
that distant contemplation, "have you begun again?  Bring whom?"

"Him, Ma."

"Caddy, Caddy!" said Mrs. Jellyby, quite weary of such little 
matters.  "Then you must bring him some evening which is not a 
Parent Society night, or a Branch night, or a Ramification night.  
You must accommodate the visit to the demands upon my time.  My 
dear Miss Summerson, it was very kind of you to come here to help 
out this silly chit.  Good-bye!  When I tell you that I have fifty-
eight new letters from manufacturing families anxious to understand 
the details of the native and coffee-cultivation question this 
morning, I need not apologize for having very little leisure."

I was not surprised by Caddy's being in low spirits when we went 
downstairs, or by her sobbing afresh on my neck, or by her saying 
she would far rather have been scolded than treated with such 
indifference, or by her confiding to me that she was so poor in 
clothes that how she was ever to be married creditably she didn't 
know.  I gradually cheered her up by dwelling on the many things 
she would do for her unfortunate father and for Peepy when she had 
a home of her own; and finally we went downstairs into the damp 
dark kitchen, where Peepy and his little brothers and sisters were 
grovelling on the stone floor and where we had such a game of play 
with them that to prevent myself from being quite torn to pieces I 
was obliged to fall back on my fairy-tales.  From time to time I 
heard loud voices in the parlour overhead, and occasionally a 
violent tumbling about of the furniture.  The last effect I am 
afraid was caused by poor Mr. Jellyby's breaking away from the 
dining-table and making rushes at the window with the intention of 
throwing himself into the area whenever he made any new attempt to 
understand his affairs.

As I rode quietly home at night after the day's bustle, I thought a 
good deal of Caddy's engagement and felt confirmed in my hopes (in 
spite of the elder Mr. Turveydrop) that she would be the happier 
and better for it.  And if there seemed to be but a slender chance 
of her and her husband ever finding out what the model of 
deportment really was, why that was all for the best too, and who 
would wish them to be wiser?  I did not wish them to be any wiser 
and indeed was half ashamed of not entirely believing in him 
myself.  And I looked up at the stars, and thought about travellers 
in distant countries and the stars THEY saw, and hoped I might 
always be so blest and happy as to be useful to some one in my 
small way.

They were so glad to see me when I got home, as they always were, 
that I could have sat down and cried for joy if that had not been a 
method of making myself disagreeable.  Everybody in the house, from 
the lowest to the highest, showed me such a bright face of welcome, 
and spoke so cheerily, and was so happy to do anything for me, that 
I suppose there never was such a fortunate little creature in the 
world.

We got into such a chatty state that night, through Ada and my 
guardian drawing me out to tell them all about Caddy, that I went 
on prose, prose, prosing for a length of time.  At last I got up to 
my own room, quite red to think how I had been holding forth, and 
then I heard a soft tap at my door.  So I said, "Come in!" and 
there came in a pretty little girl, neatly dressed in mourning, who 
dropped a curtsy.

"If you please, miss," said the little girl in a soft voice, "I am 
Charley."

"Why, so you are," said I, stooping down in astonishment and giving 
her a kiss.  "How glad am I to see you, Charley!"

"If you please, miss," pursued Charley in the same soft voice, "I'm 
your maid."

"Charley?"

"If you please, miss, I'm a present to you, with Mr. Jarndyce's 
love."

I sat down with my hand on Charley's neck and looked at Charley.

"And oh, miss," says Charley, clapping her hands, with the tears 
starting down her dimpled cheeks, "Tom's at school, if you please, 
and learning so good!  And little Emma, she's with Mrs. Blinder, 
miss, a-being took such care of!  And Tom, he would have been at 
school--and Emma, she would have been left with Mrs. Blinder--and 
me, I should have been here--all a deal sooner, miss; only Mr. 
Jarndyce thought that Tom and Emma and me had better get a little 
used to parting first, we was so small.  Don't cry, if you please, 
miss!"

"I can't help it, Charley."

"No, miss, nor I can't help it," says Charley.  "And if you please, 
miss, Mr. Jarndyce's love, and he thinks you'll like to teach me 
now and then.  And if you please, Tom and Emma and me is to see 
each other once a month.  And I'm so happy and so thankful, miss," 
cried Charley with a heaving heart, "and I'll try to be such a good 
maid!"

"Oh, Charley dear, never forget who did all this!"

"No, miss, I never will.  Nor Tom won't.  Nor yet Emma.  It was all 
you, miss."

"I have known nothing of it.  It was Mr. Jarndyce, Charley."

"Yes, miss, but it was all done for the love of you and that you 
might be my mistress.  If you please, miss, I am a little present 
with his love, and it was all done for the love of you.  Me and Tom 
was to be sure to remember it."

Charley dried her eyes and entered on her functions, going in her 
matronly little way about and about the room and folding up 
everything she could lay her hands upon.  Presently Charley came 
creeping back to my side and said, "Oh, don't cry, if you please, 
miss."

And I said again, "I can't help it, Charley."

And Charley said again, "No, miss, nor I can't help it."  And so, 
after all, I did cry for joy indeed, and so did she.



CHAPTER XXIV

An Appeal Case


As soon as Richard and I had held the conversation of which I have 
given an account, Richard communicated the state of his mind to Mr. 
Jarndyce.  I doubt if my guardian were altogether taken by surprise 
when he received the representation, though it caused him much 
uneasiness and disappointment.  He and Richard were often closeted 
together, late at night and early in the morning, and passed whole 
days in London, and had innumerable appointments with Mr. Kenge, 
and laboured through a quantity of disagreeable business.  While 
they were thus employed, my guardian, though he underwent 
considerable inconvenience from the state of the wind and rubbed 
his head so constantly that not a single hair upon it ever rested 
in its right place, was as genial with Ada and me as at any other 
time, but maintained a steady reserve on these matters.  And as our 
utmost endeavours could only elicit from Richard himself sweeping 
assurances that everything was going on capitally and that it 
really was all right at last, our anxiety was not much relieved by 
him.

We learnt, however, as the time went on, that a new application was 
made to the Lord Chancellor on Richard's behalf as an infant and a 
ward, and I don't know what, and that there was a quantity of 
talking, and that the Lord Chancellor described him in open court 
as a vexatious and capricious infant, and that the matter was 
adjourned and readjourned, and referred, and reported on, and 
petitioned about until Richard began to doubt (as he told us) 
whether, if he entered the army at all, it would not be as a 
veteran of seventy or eighty years of age.  At last an appointment 
was made for him to see the Lord Chancellor again in his private 
room, and there the Lord Chancellor very seriously reproved him for 
trifling with time and not knowing his mind--"a pretty good joke, I 
think," said Richard, "from that quarter!"--and at last it was 
settled that his application should be granted.  His name was 
entered at the Horse Guards as an applicant for an ensign's 
commission; the purchase-money was deposited at an agent's; and 
Richard, in his usual characteristic way, plunged into a violent 
course of military study and got up at five o'clock every morning 
to practise the broadsword exercise.

Thus, vacation succeeded term, and term succeeded vacation.  We 
sometimes heard of Jarndyce and Jarndyce as being in the paper or 
out of the paper, or as being to be mentioned, or as being to be 
spoken to; and it came on, and it went off.  Richard, who was now 
in a professor's house in London, was able to be with us less 
frequently than before; my guardian still maintained the same 
reserve; and so time passed until the commission was obtained and 
Richard received directions with it to join a regiment in Ireland.

He arrived post-haste with the intelligence one evening, and had a 
long conference with my guardian.  Upwards of an hour elapsed 
before my guardian put his head into the room where Ada and I were 
sitting and said, "Come in, my dears!"  We went in and found 
Richard, whom we had last seen in high spirits, leaning on the 
chimney-piece looking mortified and angry.

"Rick and I, Ada," said Mr. Jarndyce, "are not quite of one mind.  
Come, come, Rick, put a brighter face upon it!"

"You are very hard with me, sir," said Richard.  "The harder 
because you have been so considerate to me in all other respects 
and have done me kindnesses that I can never acknowledge.  I never 
could have been set right without you, sir."

"Well, well!" said Mr. Jarndyce.  "I want to set you more right 
yet.  I want to set you more right with yourself."

"I hope you will excuse my saying, sir," returned Richard in a 
fiery way, but yet respectfully, "that I think I am the best judge 
about myself."

"I hope you will excuse my saying, my dear Rick," observed Mr. 
Jarndyce with the sweetest cheerfulness and good humour, "that's 
it's quite natural in you to think so, but I don't think so.  I 
must do my duty, Rick, or you could never care for me in cool 
blood; and I hope you will always care for me, cool and hot."

Ada had turned so pale that he made her sit down in his reading-
chair and sat beside her.

"It's nothing, my dear," he said, "it's nothing.  Rick and I have 
only had a friendly difference, which we must state to you, for you 
are the theme.  Now you are afraid of what's coming."

"I am not indeed, cousin John," replied Ada with a smile, "if it is 
to come from you."

"Thank you, my dear.  Do you give me a minute's calm attention, 
without looking at Rick.  And, little woman, do you likewise.  My 
dear girl," putting his hand on hers as it lay on the side of the 
easy-chair, "you recollect the talk we had, we four when the little 
woman told me of a little love affair?"

"It is not likely that either Richard or I can ever forget your 
kindness that day, cousin John."

"I can never forget it," said Richard.

"And I can never forget it," said Ada.

"So much the easier what I have to say, and so much the easier for 
us to agree," returned my guardian, his face irradiated by the 
gentleness and honour of his heart.  "Ada, my bird, you should know 
that Rick has now chosen his profession for the last time.  All 
that he has of certainty will be expended when he is fully 
equipped.  He has exhausted his resources and is bound henceforward 
to the tree he has planted."

"Quite true that I have exhausted my present resources, and I am 
quite content to know it.  But what I have of certainty, sir," said 
Richard, "is not all I have."

"Rick, Rick!" cried my guardian with a sudden terror in his manner, 
and in an altered voice, and putting up his hands as if he would 
have stopped his ears.  "For the love of God, don't found a hope or 
expectation on the family curse!  Whatever you do on this side the 
grave, never give one lingering glance towards the horrible phantom 
that has haunted us so many years.  Better to borrow, better to 
beg, better to die!"

We were all startled by the fervour of this warning.  Richard bit 
his lip and held his breath, and glanced at me as if he felt, and 
knew that I felt too, how much he needed it.

"Ada, my dear," said Mr. Jarndyce, recovering his cheerfulness, 
"these are strong words of advice, but I live in Bleak House and 
have seen a sight here.  Enough of that.  All Richard had to start 
him in the race of life is ventured.  I recommend to him and you, 
for his sake and your own, that he should depart from us with the 
understanding that there is no sort of contract between you.  I 
must go further.  1 will be plain with you both.  You were to 
confide freely in me, and I will confide freely in you.  I ask you 
wholly to relinquish, for the present, any tie but your 
relationship."

"Better to say at once, sir," returned Richard, "that you renounce 
all confidence in me and that you advise Ada to do the same."

"Better to say nothing of the sort, Rick, because I don't mean it."

"You think I have begun ill, sir," retorted Richard.  "I HAVE, I 
know."

"How I hoped you would begin, and how go on, I told you when we 
spoke of these things last," said Mr. Jarndyce in a cordial and 
encouraging manner.  "You have not made that beginning yet, but 
there is a time for all things, and yours is not gone by; rather, 
it is just now fully come.  Make a clear beginning altogether.  You 
two (very young, my dears) are cousins.  As yet, you are nothing 
more.  What more may come must come of being worked out, Rick, and 
no sooner."

"You are very hard with me, sir," said Richard.  "Harder than I 
could have supposed you would be."

"My dear boy," said Mr. Jarndyce, "I am harder with myself when I 
do anything that gives you pain.  You have your remedy in your own 
hands.  Ada, it is better for him that he should be free and that 
there should be no youthful engagement between you.  Rick, it is 
better for her, much better; you owe it to her.  Come!  Each of you 
will do what is best for the other, if not what is best for 
yourselves."

"Why is it best, sir?" returned Richard hastily.  "It was not when 
we opened our hearts to you.  You did not say so then."

"I have had experience since.  I don't blame you, Rick, but I have 
had experience since."

"You mean of me, sir."

"Well!  Yes, of both of you," said Mr. Jarndyce kindly.  "The time 
is not come for your standing pledged to one another.  It is not 
right, and I must not recognize it.  Come, come, my young cousins, 
begin afresh!  Bygones shall be bygones, and a new page turned for 
you to write your lives in."

Richard gave an anxious glance at Ada but said nothing.

"I have avoided saying one word to either of you or to Esther," 
said Mr. Jarndyce, "until now, in order that we might be open as 
the day, and all on equal terms.  I now affectionately advise, I 
now most earnestly entreat, you two to part as you came here.  
Leave all else to time, truth, and steadfastness.  If you do 
otherwise, you will do wrong, and you will have made me do wrong in 
ever bringing you together."

A long silence succeeded.

"Cousin Richard," said Ada then, raising her blue eyes tenderly to 
his face, "after what our cousin John has said, I think no choice 
is left us.  Your mind may he quite at ease about me, for you will 
leave me here under his care and will be sure that I can have 
nothing to wish for--quite sure if I guide myself by his advice.  
I--I don't doubt, cousin Richard," said Ada, a little confused, 
"that you are very fond of me, and I--I don't think you will fall 
in love with anybody else.  But I should like you to consider well 
about it too, as I should like you to be in all things very happy.  
You may trust in me, cousin Richard.  I am not at all changeable; 
but I am not unreasonable, and should never blame you.  Even 
cousins may be sorry to part; and in truth I am very, very sorry, 
Richard, though I know it's for your welfare.  I shall always think 
of you affectionately, and often talk of you with Esther, and--and 
perhaps you will sometimes think a little of me, cousin Richard.  
So now," said Ada, going up to him and giving him her trembling 
hand, "we are only cousins again, Richard--for the time perhaps--
and I pray for a blessing on my dear cousin, wherever he goes!"

It was strange to me that Richard should not be able to forgive my 
guardian for entertaining the very same opinion of him which he 
himself had expressed of himself in much stronger terms to me.  But 
it was certainly the case.  I observed with great regret that from 
this hour he never was as free and open with Mr. Jarndyce as he had 
been before.  He had every reason given him to be so, but he was 
not; and solely on his side, an estrangement began to arise between 
them.

In the business of preparation and equipment he soon lost himself, 
and even his grief at parting from Ada, who remained in 
Hertfordshire while he, Mr. Jarndyce, and I went up to London for a 
week.  He remembered her by fits and starts, even with bursts of 
tears, and at such times would confide to me the heaviest self-
reproaches.  But in a few minutes he would recklessly conjure up 
some undefinable means by which they were both to be made rich and 
happy for ever, and would become as gay as possible.

It was a busy time, and I trotted about with him all day long, 
buying a variety of things of which he stood in need.  Of the 
things he would have bought if he had been left to his own ways I 
say nothing.  He was perfectly confidential with me, and often 
talked so sensibly and feelingly about his faults and his vigorous 
resolutions, and dwelt so much upon the encouragement he derived 
from these conversations that I could never have been tired if I 
had tried.

There used, in that week, to come backward and forward to our 
lodging to fence with Richard a person who had formerly been a 
cavalry soldier; he was a fine bluff-looking man, of a frank free 
bearing, with whom Richard had practised for some months.  I heard 
so much about him, not only from Richard, but from my guardian too, 
that I was purposely in the room with my work one morning after 
breakfast when he came.

"Good morning, Mr. George," said my guardian, who happened to be 
alone with me.  "Mr. Carstone will be here directly.  Meanwhile, 
Miss Summerson is very happy to see you, I know.  Sit down."

He sat down, a little disconcerted by my presence, I thought, and 
without looking at me, drew his heavy sunburnt hand across and 
across his upper lip.

"You are as punctual as the sun," said Mr. Jarndyce.

"Military time, sir," he replied.  "Force of habit.  A mere habit 
in me, sir.  I am not at all business-like."

"Yet you have a large establishment, too, I am told?" said Mr. 
Jarndyce.

"Not much of a one, sir.  I keep a shooting gallery, but not much 
of a one."

"And what kind of a shot and what kind of a swordsman do you make 
of Mr. Carstone?" said my guardian.

"Pretty good, sir," he replied, folding his arms upon his broad 
chest and looking very large.  "If Mr. Carstone was to give his 
full mind to it, he would come out very good."

"But he don't, I suppose?" said my guardian.

"He did at first, sir, but not afterwards.  Not his full mind.  
Perhaps he has something else upon it--some young lady, perhaps."  
His bright dark eyes glanced at me for the first time.

"He has not me upon his mind, I assure you, Mr. George," said I, 
laughing, "though you seem to suspect me."

He reddened a little through his brown and made me a trooper's bow.  
"No offence, I hope, miss.  I am one of the roughs."

"Not at all," said I.  "I take it as a compliment."

If he had not looked at me before, he looked at me now in three or 
four quick successive glances.  "I beg your pardon, sir," he said 
to my guardian with a manly kind of diffidence, "but you did me the 
honour to mention the young lady's name--"

"Miss Summerson."

"Miss Summerson," he repeated, and looked at me again.

"Do you know the name?" I asked.

"No, miss.  To my knowledge I never heard it.  I thought I had seen 
you somewhere."

"I think not," I returned, raising my head from my work to look at 
him; and there was something so genuine in his speech and manner 
that I was glad of the opportunity.  "I remember faces very well."

"So do I, miss!" he returned, meeting my look with the fullness of 
his dark eyes and broad forehead.  "Humph!  What set me off, now, 
upon that!"

His once more reddening through his brown and being disconcerted by 
his efforts to remember the association brought my guardian to his 
relief.

"Have you many pupils, Mr. George?"

"They vary in their number, sir.  Mostly they're but a small lot to 
live by."

"And what classes of chance people come to practise at your 
gallery?"

"All sorts, sir.  Natives and foreigners.  From gentlemen to 
'prentices.  I have had Frenchwomen come, before now, and show 
themselves dabs at pistol-shooting.  Mad people out of number, of 
course, but THEY go everywhere where the doors stand open."

"People don't come with grudges and schemes of finishing their 
practice with live targets, I hope?" said my guardian, smiling.

"Not much of that, sir, though that HAS happened.  Mostly they come 
for skill--or idleness.  Six of one, and half-a-dozen of the other.  
I beg your pardon," said Mr. George, sitting stiffly upright and 
squaring an elbow on each knee, "but I believe you're a Chancery 
suitor, if I have heard correct?"

"I am sorry to say I am."

"I have had one of YOUR compatriots in my time, sir."

"A Chancery suitor?" returned my guardian.  "How was that?"

"Why, the man was so badgered and worried and tortured by being 
knocked about from post to pillar, and from pillar to post," said 
Mr. George, "that he got out of sorts.  I don't believe he had any 
idea of taking aim at anybody, but he was in that condition of 
resentment and violence that he would come and pay for fifty shots 
and fire away till he was red hot.  One day I said to him when 
there was nobody by and he had been talking to me angrily about his 
wrongs, 'If this practice is a safety-valve, comrade, well and 
good; but I don't altogether like your being so bent upon it in 
your present state of mind; I'd rather you took to something else.'  
I was on my guard for a blow, he was that passionate; but he 
received it in very good part and left off directly.  We shook 
hands and struck up a sort of friendship."

"What was that man?" asked my guardian in a new tone of interest.

"Why, he began by being a small Shropshire farmer before they made 
a baited bull of him," said Mr. George.

"Was his name Gridley?"

"It was, sir."

Mr. George directed another succession of quick bright glances at 
me as my guardian and I exchanged a word or two of surprise at the 
coincidence, and I therefore explained to him how we knew the name.  
He made me another of his soldierly bows in acknowledgment of what 
he called my condescension.

"I don't know," he said as he looked at me, "what it is that sets 
me off again--but--bosh!  What's my head running against!"  He 
passed one of his heavy hands over his crisp dark hair as if to 
sweep the broken thoughts out of his mind and sat a little forward, 
with one arm akimbo and the other resting on his leg, looking in a 
brown study at the ground.

"I am sorry to learn that the same state of mind has got this 
Gridley into new troubles and that he is in hiding," said my 
guardian.

"So I am told, sir," returned Mr. George, still musing and looking 
on the ground.  "So I am told."

"You don't know where?"

"No, sir," returned the trooper, lifting up his eyes and coming out 
of his reverie.  "I can't say anything about him.  He will be worn 
out soon, I expect.  You may file a strong man's heart away for a 
good many years, but it will tell all of a sudden at last."

Richard's entrance stopped the conversation.  Mr. George rose, made 
me another of his soldierly bows, wished my guardian a good day, 
and strode heavily out of the room.

This was the morning of the day appointed for Richard's departure.  
We had no more purchases to make now; I had completed all his 
packing early in the afternoon; and our time was disengaged until 
night, when he was to go to Liverpool for Holyhead.  Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce being again expected to come on that day, Richard proposed 
to me that we should go down to the court and hear what passed.  As 
it was his last day, and he was eager to go, and I had never been 
there, I gave my consent and we walked down to Westminster, where 
the court was then sitting.  We beguiled the way with arrangements 
concerning the letters that Richard was to write to me and the 
letters that I was to write to him and with a great many hopeful 
projects.  My guardian knew where we were going and therefore was 
not with us.

When we came to the court, there was the Lord Chancellor--the same 
whom I had seen in his private room in Lincoln's Inn--sitting in 
great state and gravity on the bench, with the mace and seals on a 
red table below him and an immense flat nosegay, like a little 
garden, which scented the whole court.  Below the table, again, was 
a long row of solicitors, with bundles of papers on the matting at 
their feet; and then there were the gentlemen of the bar in wigs 
and gowns--some awake and some asleep, and one talking, and nobody 
paying much attention to what he said.  The Lord Chancellor leaned 
back in his very easy chair with his elbow on the cushioned arm and 
his forehead resting on his hand; some of those who were present 
dozed; some read the newspapers; some walked about or whispered in 
groups: all seemed perfectly at their ease, by no means in a hurry, 
very unconcerned, and extremely comfortable.

To see everything going on so smoothly and to think of the 
roughness of the suitors' lives and deaths; to see all that full 
dress and ceremony and to think of the waste, and want, and 
beggared misery it represented; to consider that while the sickness 
of hope deferred was raging in so many hearts this polite show went 
calmly on from day to day, and year to year, in such good order and 
composure; to behold the Lord Chancellor and the whole array of 
practitioners under him looking at one another and at the 
spectators as if nobody had ever heard that all over England the 
name in which they were assembled was a bitter jest, was held in 
universal horror, contempt, and indignation, was known for 
something so flagrant and bad that little short of a miracle could 
bring any good out of it to any one--this was so curious and self-
contradictory to me, who had no experience of it, that it was at 
first incredible, and I could not comprehend it.  I sat where 
Richard put me, and tried to listen, and looked about me; but there 
seemed to be no reality in the whole scene except poor little Miss 
Flite, the madwoman, standing on a bench and nodding at it.

Miss Flite soon espied us and came to where we sat.  She gave me a 
gracious welcome to her domain and indicated, with much 
gratification and pride, its principal attractions.  Mr. Kenge also 
came to speak to us and did the honours of the place in much the 
same way, with the bland modesty of a proprietor.  It was not a 
very good day for a visit, he said; he would have preferred the 
first day of term; but it was imposing, it was imposing.

When we had been there half an hour or so, the case in progress--if 
I may use a phrase so ridiculous in such a connexion--seemed to die 
out of its own vapidity, without coming, or being by anybody 
expected to come, to any resuIt.  The Lord Chancellor then threw 
down a bundle of papers from his desk to the gentlemen below him, 
and somebody said, "Jarndyce and Jarndyce."  Upon this there was a 
buzz, and a laugh, and a general withdrawal of the bystanders, and 
a bringing in of great heaps, and piles, and bags and bags full of 
papers.

I think it came on "for further directions"--about some bill of 
costs, to the best of my understanding, which was confused enough.  
But I counted twenty-three gentlemen in wigs who said they were "in 
it," and none of them appeared to understand it much better than I.  
They chatted about it with the Lord Chancellor, and contradicted 
and explained among themselves, and some of them said it was this 
way, and some of them said it was that way, and some of them 
jocosely proposed to read huge volumes of affidavits, and there was 
more buzzing and laughing, and everybody concerned was in a state 
of idle entertainment, and nothing could be made of it by anybody.  
After an hour or so of this, and a good many speeches being begun 
and cut short, it was "referred back for the present," as Mr. Kenge 
said, and the papers were bundled up again before the clerks had 
finished bringing them in.

I glanced at Richard on the termination of these hopeless 
proceedings and was shocked to see the worn look of his handsome 
young face.  "It can't last for ever, Dame Durden.  Better luck 
next time!" was all he said.

I had seen Mr. Guppy bringing in papers and arranging them for Mr. 
Kenge; and he had seen me and made me a forlorn bow, which rendered 
me desirous to get out of the court.  Richard had given me his arm 
and was taking me away when Mr. Guppy came up.

"I beg your pardon, Mr. Carstone," said he in a whisper, "and Miss 
Summerson's also, but there's a lady here, a friend of mine, who 
knows her and wishes to have the pleasure of shaking hands."  As he 
spoke, I saw before me, as if she had started into bodily shape 
from my remembrance, Mrs. Rachael of my godmother's house.

"How do you do, Esther?" said she.  "Do you recollect me?"

I gave her my hand and told her yes and that she was very little 
altered.

"I wonder you remember those times, Esther," she returned with her 
old asperity.  "They are changed now.  Well! I am glad to see you, 
and glad you are not too proud to know me."  But indeed she seemed 
disappointed that I was not.

"Proud, Mrs. Rachael!" I remonstrated.

"I am married, Esther," she returned, coldly correcting me, "and am 
Mrs. Chadband.  Well! I wish you good day, and I hope you'll do 
well."

Mr. Guppy, who had been attentive to this short dialogue, heaved a 
sigh in my ear and elbowed his own and Mrs. Rachael's way through 
the confused little crowd of people coming in and going out, which 
we were in the midst of and which the change in the business had 
brought together.  Richard and I were making our way through it, 
and I was yet in the first chill of the late unexpected recognition 
when I saw, coming towards us, but not seeing us, no less a person 
than Mr. George.  He made nothing of the people about him as he 
tramped on, staring over their heads into the body of the court.

"George!" said Richard as I called his attention to him.

"You are well met, sir," he returned.  "And you, miss.  Could you 
point a person out for me, I want?  I don't understand these 
places."

Turning as he spoke and making an easy way for us, he stopped when 
we were out of the press in a corner behind a great red curtain.

"There's a little cracked old woman," he began, "that--"

I put up my finger, for Miss Flite was close by me, having kept 
beside me all the time and having called the attention of several 
of her legal acquaintance to me (as I had overheard to my 
confusion) by whispering in their ears, "Hush!  Fitz Jarndyce on my 
left!"

"Hem!" said Mr. George.  "You remember, miss, that we passed some 
conversation on a certain man this morning?  Gridley," in a low 
whisper behind his hand.

"Yes," said I.

"He is hiding at my place.  I couldn't mention it.  Hadn't his 
authority.  He is on his last march, miss, and has a whim to see 
her.  He says they can feel for one another, and she has been 
almost as good as a friend to him here.  I came down to look for 
her, for when I sat by Gridley this afternoon, I seemed to hear the 
roll of the muffled drums."

"Shall I tell her?" said I.

"Would you be so good?" he returned with a glance of something like 
apprehension at Miss Flite.  "It's a providence I met you, miss; I 
doubt if I should have known how to get on with that lady."  And he 
put one hand in his breast and stood upright in a martial attitude 
as I informed little Miss Flite, in her ear, of the purport of his 
kind errand.

"My angry friend from Shropshire!  Almost as celebrated as myself!" 
she exclaimed.  "Now really!  My dear, I will wait upon him with 
the greatest pleasure."

"He is living concealed at Mr. George's," said I.  "Hush!  This is 
Mr. George."

"In--deed!" returned Miss Flite.  "Very proud to have the honour!  
A military man, my dear.  You know, a perfect general!" she 
whispered to me.

Poor Miss Flite deemed it necessary to be so courtly and polite, as 
a mark of her respect for the army, and to curtsy so very often 
that it was no easy matter to get her out of the court.  When this 
was at last done, and addressing Mr. George as "General," she gave 
him her arm, to the great entertainment of some idlers who were 
looking on, he was so discomposed and begged me so respectfully 
"not to desert him" that I could not make up my mind to do it, 
especially as Miss Flite was always tractable with me and as she 
too said, "Fitz Jarndyce, my dear, you will accompany us, of 
course."  As Richard seemed quite willing, and even anxious, that 
we should see them safely to their destination, we agreed to do so.  
And as Mr. George informed us that Gridley's mind had run on Mr. 
Jarndyce all the afternoon after hearing of their interview in the 
morning, I wrote a hasty note in pencil to my guardian to say where 
we were gone and why.  Mr. George sealed it at a coffee-house, that 
it might lead to no discovery, and we sent it off by a ticket-
porter.

We then took a hackney-coach and drove away to the neighbourhood of 
Leicester Square.  We walked through some narrow courts, for which 
Mr. George apologized, and soon came to the shooting gallery, the 
door of which was closed.  As he pulled a bell-handle which hung by 
a chain to the door-post, a very respectable old gentleman with 
grey hair, wearing spectacles, and dressed in a black spencer and 
gaiters and a broad-brimmed hat, and carrying a large gold-beaded 
cane, addressed him.

"I ask your pardon, my good friend," said he, "but is this George's 
Shooting Gallery?"

"It is, sir," returned Mr. George, glancing up at the great letters 
in which that inscription was painted on the whitewashed wall.

"Oh! To be sure!" said the old gentleman, following his eyes.  
"Thank you.  Have you rung the bell?"

"My name is George, sir, and I have rung the bell."

"Oh, indeed?" said the old gentleman.  "Your name is George?  Then 
I am here as soon as you, you see.  You came for me, no doubt?"

"No, sir.  You have the advantage of me."

"Oh, indeed?" said the old gentleman.  "Then it was your young man 
who came for me.  I am a physician and was requested--five minutes 
ago--to come and visit a sick man at George's Shooting Gallery."

"The muffled drums," said Mr. George, turning to Richard and me and 
gravely shaking his head.  "It's quite correct, sir.  Will you 
please to walk in."

The door being at that moment opened by a very singular-looking 
little man in a green-baize cap and apron, whose face and hands and 
dress were blackened all over, we passed along a dreary passage 
into a large building with bare brick walls where there were 
targets, and guns, and swords, and other things of that kind.  When 
we had all arrived here, the physician stopped, and taking off his 
hat, appeared to vanish by magic and to leave another and quite a 
different man in his place.

"Now lookee here, George," said the man, turning quickly round upon 
him and tapping him on the breast with a large forefinger.  "You 
know me, and I know you.  You're a man of the world, and I'm a man 
of the world.  My name's Bucket, as you are aware, and I have got a 
peace-warrant against Gridley.  You have kept him out of the way a 
long time, and you have been artful in it, and it does you credit."

Mr. George, looking hard at him, bit his lip and shook his head.

"Now, George," said the other, keeping close to him, "you're a 
sensible man and a well-conducted man; that's what YOU are, beyond 
a doubt.  And mind you, I don't talk to you as a common character, 
because you have served your country and you know that when duty 
calls we must obey.  Consequently you're very far from wanting to 
give trouble.  If I required assistance, you'd assist me; that's 
what YOU'D do.  Phil Squod, don't you go a-sidling round the 
gallery like that"--the dirty little man was shuffling about with 
his shoulder against the wall, and his eyes on the intruder, in a 
manner that looked threatening--"because I know you and won't have 
it."

"Phil!" said Mr. George.

"Yes, guv'ner."

"Be quiet."

The little man, with a low growl, stood still.

"Ladies and gentlemen," said Mr. Bucket, "you'll excuse anything 
that may appear to be disagreeable in this, for my name's Inspector 
Bucket of the Detective, and I have a duty to perform.  George, I 
know where my man is because I was on the roof last night and saw 
him through the skylight, and you along with him.  He is in there, 
you know," pointing; "that's where HE is--on a sofy.  Now I must 
see my man, and I must tell my man to consider himself in custody; 
but you know me, and you know I don't want to take any 
uncomfortable measures.  You give me your word, as from one man to 
another (and an old soldier, mind you, likewise), that it's 
honourable between us two, and I'll accommodate you to the utmost 
of my power."

"I give it," was the reply.  '"But it wasn't handsome in you, Mr. 
Bucket."

"Gammon, George!  Not handsome?" said Mr. Bucket, tapping him on 
his broad breast again and shaking hands with him.  "I don't say it 
wasn't handsome in you to keep my man so close, do I?  Be equally 
good-tempered to me, old boy!  Old William Tell, Old Shaw, the Life 
Guardsman!  Why, he's a model of the whole British army in himself, 
ladies and gentlemen.  I'd give a fifty-pun' note to be such a 
figure of a man!"

The affair being brought to this head, Mr. George, after a little 
consideration, proposed to go in first to his comrade (as he called 
him), taking Miss Flite with him.  Mr. Bucket agreeing, they went 
away to the further end of the gallery, leaving us sitting and 
standing by a table covered with guns.  Mr. Bucket took this 
opportunity of entering into a little light conversation, asking me 
if I were afraid of fire-arms, as most young ladies were; asking 
Richard if he were a good shot; asking Phil Squod which he 
considered the best of those rifles and what it might be worth 
first-hand, telling him in return that it was a pity he ever gave 
way to his temper, for he was naturally so amiable that he might 
have been a young woman, and making himself generally agreeable.

After a time he followed us to the further end of the gallery, and 
Richard and I were going quietly away when Mr. George came after 
us.  He said that if we had no objection to see his comrade, he 
would take a visit from us very kindly.  The words had hardly 
passed his lips when the bell was rung and my guardian appeared, 
"on the chance," he slightly observed, "of being able to do any 
little thing for a poor fellow involved in the same misfortune as 
himself."  We all four went back together and went into the place 
where Gridley was.

It was a bare room, partitioned off from the gallery with unpainted 
wood.  As the screening was not more than eight or ten feet high 
and only enclosed the sides, not the top, the rafters of the high 
gallery roof were overhead, and the skylight through which Mr. 
Bucket had looked down.  The sun was low--near setting--and its 
light came redly in above, without descending to the ground.  Upon 
a plain canvas-covered sofa lay the man from Shropshire, dressed 
much as we had seen him last, but so changed that at first I 
recognized no likeness in his colourless face to what I 
recollected.

He had been still writing in his hiding-place, and still dwelling 
on his grievances, hour after hour.  A table and some shelves were 
covered with manuscript papers and with worn pens and a medley of 
such tokens.  Touchingly and awfully drawn together, he and the 
little mad woman were side by side and, as it were, alone.  She sat 
on a chair holding his hand, and none of us went close to them.

His voice had faded, with the old expression of his face, with his 
strength, with his anger, with his resistance to the wrongs that 
had at last subdued him.  The faintest shadow of an object full of 
form and colour is such a picture of it as he was of the man from 
Shropshire whom we had spoken with before.

He inclined his head to Richard and me and spoke to my guardian.

"Mr. Jarndyce, it is very kind of you to come to see me.  I am not 
long to be seen, I think.  I am very glad to take your hand, sir.  
You are a good man, superior to injustice, and God knows I honour 
you."

They shook hands earnestly, and my guardian said some words of 
comfort to him.

"It may seem strange to you, sir," returned Gridley; "I should not 
have liked to see you if this had been the flrst time of our 
meeting.  But you know I made a fight for it, you know I stood up 
with my single hand against them all, you know I told them the 
truth to the last, and told them what they were, and what they had 
done to me; so I don't mind your seeing me, this wreck."

"You have been courageous with them many and many a time," returned 
my guardian.

"Sir, I have been," with a faint smile.  "I told you what would 
come of it when I ceased to be so, and see here!  Look at us--look 
at us!"  He drew the hand Miss Flite held through her arm and 
brought her something nearer to him.

"This ends it.  Of all my old associations, of all my old pursuits 
and hopes, of all the living and the dead world, this one poor soul 
alone comes natural to me, and I am fit for.  There is a tie of 
many suffering years between us two, and it is the only tie I ever 
had on earth that Chancery has not broken."

"Accept my blessing, Gridley," said Miss Flite in tears.  "Accept 
my blessing!"

"I thought, boastfully, that they never could break my heart, Mr. 
Jarndyce.  I was resolved that they should not.  I did believe that 
I could, and would, charge them with being the mockery they were 
until I died of some bodily disorder.  But I am worn out.  How long 
I have been wearing out, I don't know; I seemed to break down in an 
hour.  I hope they may never come to hear of it.  I hope everybody 
here will lead them to believe that I died defying them, 
consistently and perseveringly, as I did through so many years."

Here Mr. Bucket, who was sitting in a corner by the door, good-
naturedly offered such consolation as he could administer.

"Come, come!" he said from his corner.  "Don't go on in that way, 
Mr. Gridley.  You are only a little low.  We are all of us a little 
low sometimes.  I am.  Hold up, hold up!  You'll lose your temper 
with the whole round of 'em, again and again; and I shall take you 
on a score of warrants yet, if I have luck."

He only shook his head.

"Don't shake your head," said Mr. Bucket.  "Nod it; that's what I 
want to see you do.  Why, Lord bless your soul, what times we have 
had together!  Haven't I seen you in the Fleet over and over again 
for contempt?  Haven't I come into court, twenty afternoons for no 
other purpose than to see you pin the Chancellor like a bull-dog?  
Don't you remember when you first began to threaten the lawyers, 
and the peace was sworn against you two or three times a week?  Ask 
the little old lady there; she has been always present.  Hold up, 
Mr. Gridley, hold up, sir!"

"What are you going to do about him?" asked George in a low voice.

"I don't know yet," said Bucket in the same tone.  Then resuming 
his encouragement, he pursued aloud: "Worn out, Mr. Gridley?  After 
dodging me for all these weeks and forcing me to climb the roof 
here like a tom cat and to come to see you as a doctor?  That ain't 
like being worn out.  I should think not!  Now I tell you what you 
want.  You want excitement, you know, to keep YOU up; that's what 
YOU want.  You're used to it, and you can't do without it.  I 
couldn't myself.  Very well, then; here's this warrant got by Mr. 
Tulkinghorn of Lincoln's Inn Fields, and backed into half-a-dozen 
counties since.  What do you say to coming along with me, upon this 
warrant, and having a good angry argument before the magistrates?  
It'll do you good; it'll freshen you up and get you into training 
for another turn at the Chancellor.  Give in?  Why, I am surprised 
to hear a man of your energy talk of giving in.  You mustn't do 
that.  You're half the fun of the fair in the Court of Chancery.  
George, you lend Mr. Gridley a hand, and let's see now whether he 
won't be better up than down."

"He is very weak," said the trooper in a low voice.

"Is he?" returned Bucket anxiously.  "I only want to rouse him.  I 
don't like to see an old acquaintance giving in like this.  It 
would cheer him up more than anything if I could make him a little 
waxy with me.  He's welcome to drop into me, right and left, if he 
likes.  I shall never take advantage of it."

The roof rang with a scream from Miss Flite, which still rings in 
my ears.

"Oh, no, Gridley!" she cried as he fell heavily and calmly back 
from before her.  "Not without my blessing.  After so many years!"

The sun was down, the light had gradually stolen from the roof, and 
the shadow had crept upward.  But to me the shadow of that pair, 
one living and one dead, fell heavier on Richard's departure than 
the darkness of the darkest night.  And through Richard's farewell 
words I heard it echoed: "Of all my old associations, of all my old 
pursuits and hopes, of all the living and the dead world, this one 
poor soul alone comes natural to me, and I am fit for.  There is a 
tie of many suffering years between us two, and it is the only tie 
I ever had on earth that Chancery has not broken!"



CHAPTER XXV

Mrs. Snagsby Sees It All


There is disquietude in Cook's Court, Cursitor Street.  Black 
suspicion hides in that peaceful region.  The mass of Cook's 
Courtiers are in their usual state of mind, no better and no worse; 
but Mr. Snagsby is changed, and his little woman knows it.

For Tom-all-Alone's and Lincoln's Inn Fields persist in harnessing 
themselves, a pair of ungovernable coursers, to the chariot of Mr. 
Snagsby's imagination; and Mr. Bucket drives; and the passengers 
are Jo and Mr. Tulkinghorn; and the complete equipage whirls though 
the law-stationery business at wild speed all round the clock.  
Even in the little front kitchen where the family meals are taken, 
it rattles away at a smoking pace from the dinner-table, when Mr. 
Snagsby pauses in carving the first slice of the leg of mutton 
baked with potatoes and stares at the kitchen wall.

Mr. Snagsby cannot make out what it is that he has had to do with.  
Something is wrong somewhere, but what something, what may come of 
it, to whom, when, and from which unthought of and unheard of 
quarter is the puzzle of his life.  His remote impressions of the 
robes and coronets, the stars and garters, that sparkle through the 
surface-dust of Mr. Tulkinghorn's chambers; his veneration for the 
mysteries presided over by that best and closest of his customers, 
whom all the Inns of Court, all Chancery Lane, and all the legal 
neighbourhood agree to hold in awe; his remembrance of Detective 
Mr. Bucket with his forefinger and his confidential manner, 
impossible to be evaded or declined, persuade him that he is a 
party to some dangerous secret without knowing what it is.  And it 
is the fearful peculiarity of this condition that, at any hour of 
his daily life, at any opening of the shop-door, at any pull of the 
bell, at any entrance of a messenger, or any delivery of a letter, 
the secret may take air and fire, explode, and blow up--Mr. Bucket 
only knows whom.

For which reason, whenever a man unknown comes into the shop (as 
many men unknown do) and says, "Is Mr. Snagsby in?" or words to 
that innocent effect, Mr. Snagsby's heart knocks hard at his guilty 
breast.  He undergoes so much from such inquiries that when they 
are made by boys he revenges himself by flipping at their ears over 
the counter and asking the young dogs what they mean by it and why 
they can't speak out at once?  More impracticable men and boys 
persist in walking into Mr. Snagsby's sleep and terrifying him with 
unaccountable questions, so that often when the cock at the little 
dairy in Cursitor Street breaks out in his usual absurd way about 
the morning, Mr. Snagsby finds himself in a crisis of nightmare, 
with his little woman shaking him and saying "What's the matter 
with the man!"

The little woman herself is not the least item in his difficulty.  
To know that he is always keeping a secret from her, that he has 
under all circumstances to conceal and hold fast a tender double 
tooth, which her sharpness is ever ready to twist out of his head, 
gives Mr. Snagsby, in her dentistical presence, much of the air of 
a dog who has a reservation from his master and will look anywhere 
rather than meet his eye.

These various signs and tokens, marked by the little woman, are not 
lost upon her.  They impel her to say, "Snagsby has something on 
his mind!"  And thus suspicion gets into Cook's Court, Cursitor 
Street.  From suspicion to jealousy, Mrs. Snagsby finds the road as 
natural and short as from Cook's Court to Chancery Lane.  And thus 
jealousy gets into Cook's Court, Cursitor Street.  Once there (and 
it was always lurking thereabout), it is very active and nimble in 
Mrs. Snagsby's breast, prompting her to nocturnal examinations of 
Mr. Snagsby's pockets; to secret perusals of Mr. Snagsby's letters; 
to private researches in the day book and ledger, till, cash-box, 
and iron safe; to watchings at windows, listenings behind doors, 
and a general putting of this and that together by the wrong end.

Mrs. Snagsby is so perpetually on the alert that the house becomes 
ghostly with creaking boards and rustling garments.  The 'prentices 
think somebody may have been murdered there in bygone times.  
Guster holds certain loose atoms of an idea (picked up at Tooting, 
where they were found floating among the orphans) that there is 
buried money underneath the cellar, guarded by an old man with a 
white beard, who cannot get out for seven thousand years because he 
said the Lord's Prayer backwards.

"Who was Nimrod?" Mrs. Snagsby repeatedly inquires of herself.  
"Who was that lady--that creature?  And who is that boy?"  Now, 
Nimrod being as dead as the mighty hunter whose name Mrs. Snagsby 
has appropriated, and the lady being unproducible, she directs her 
mental eye, for the present, with redoubled vigilance to the boy.  
"And who," quoth Mrs. Snagsby for the thousand and first time, "is 
that boy?  Who is that--!"  And there Mrs. Snagsby is seized with 
an inspiration.

He has no respect for Mr. Chadband.  No, to be sure, and he 
wouldn't have, of course.  Naturally he wouldn't, under those 
contagious circumstances.  He was invited and appointed by Mr. 
Chadband--why, Mrs. Snagsby heard it herself with her own ears!--to 
come back, and be told where he was to go, to be addressed by Mr. 
Chadband; and he never came!  Why did he never come?  Because he 
was told not to come.  Who told him not to come?  Who?  Ha, ha!  
Mrs. Snagsby sees it all.

But happily (and Mrs. Snagsby tightly shakes her head and tightly 
smiles) that boy was met by Mr. Chadband yesterday in the streets; 
and that boy, as affording a subject which Mr. Chadband desires to 
improve for the spiritual delight of a select congregation, was 
seized by Mr. Chadband and threatened with being delivered over to 
the police unless he showed the reverend gentleman where he lived 
and unless he entered into, and fulfilled, an undertaking to appear 
in Cook's Court to-morrow night, "'to--mor--row--night," Mrs. 
Snagsby repeats for mere emphasis with another tight smile and 
another tight shake of her head; and to-morrow night that boy will 
be here, and to-morrow night Mrs. Snagsby will have her eye upon 
him and upon some one else; and oh, you may walk a long while in 
your secret ways (says Mrs. Snagsby with haughtiness and scorn), 
but you can't blind ME!

Mrs. Snagsby sounds no timbrel in anybody's ears, but holds her 
purpose quietly, and keeps her counsel.  To-morrow comes, the 
savoury preparations for the Oil Trade come, the evening comes.  
Comes Mr. Snagsby in his black coat; come the Chadbands; come (when 
the gorging vessel is replete) the 'prentices and Guster, to be 
edified; comes at last, with his slouching head, and his shuflle 
backward, and his shuffle forward, and his shuffle to the right, 
and his shuffle to the left, and his bit of fur cap in his muddy 
hand, which he picks as if it were some mangy bird he had caught 
and was plucking before eating raw, Jo, the very, very tough 
subject Mr. Chadband is to improve.

Mrs. Snagsby screws a watchful glance on Jo as he is brought into 
the little drawing-room by Guster.  He looks at Mr. Snagsby the 
moment he comes in.  Aha!  Why does he look at Mr. Snagsby?  Mr. 
Snagsby looks at him.  Why should he do that, but that Mrs. Snagsby 
sees it all?  Why else should that look pass between them, why else 
should Mr. Snagsby be confused and cough a signal cough behind his 
hand?  It is as clear as crystal that Mr. Snagsby is that boy's 
father.

'"Peace, my friends," says Chadband, rising and wiping the oily 
exudations from his reverend visage.  "Peace be with us!  My 
friends, why with us?  Because," with his fat smile, "it cannot be 
against us, because it must be for us; because it is not hardening, 
because it is softening; because it does not make war like the 
hawk, but comes home unto us like the dove.  Therefore, my friends, 
peace be with us!  My human boy, come forward!"

Stretching forth his flabby paw, Mr. Chadband lays the same on Jo's 
arm and considers where to station him.  Jo, very doubtful of his 
reverend friend's intentions and not at all clear but that 
something practical and painful is going to be done to him, 
mutters, "You let me alone.  I never said nothink to you.  You let 
me alone."

"No, my young friend," says Chadband smoothly, "I will not let you 
alone.  And why?  Because I am a harvest-labourer, because I am a 
toiler and a moiler, because you are delivered over unto me and are 
become as a precious instrument in my hands.  My friends, may I so 
employ this instrument as to use it to your advantage, to your 
profit, to your gain, to your welfare, to your enrichment!  My 
young friend, sit upon this stool."

Jo, apparently possessed by an impression that the reverend 
gentleman wants to cut his hair, shields his head with both arms 
and is got into the required position with great difficulty and 
every possible manifestation of reluctance.

When he is at last adjusted like a lay-figure, Mr. Chadband, 
retiring behind the table, holds up his bear's-paw and says, "My 
friends!"  This is the signal for a general settlement of the 
audience.  The 'prentices giggle internally and nudge each other.  
Guster falls into a staring and vacant state, compounded of a 
stunned admiration of Mr. Chadband and pity for the friendless 
outcast whose condition touches her nearly.  Mrs. Snagsby silently 
lays trains of gunpowder.  Mrs. Chadband composes herself grimly by 
the fire and warms her knees, finding that sensation favourable to 
the reception of eloquence.

It happens that Mr. Chadband has a pulpit habit of fixing some 
member of his congregation with his eye and fatly arguing his 
points with that particular person, who is understood to be 
expected to be moved to an occasional grunt, groan, gasp, or other 
audible expression of inward working, which expression of inward 
working, being echoed by some elderly lady in the next pew and so 
communicated like a game of forfeits through a circle of the more 
fermentable sinners present, serves the purpose of parliamentary 
cheering and gets Mr. Chadband's steam up.  From mere force of 
habit, Mr. Chadband in saying "My friends!" has rested his eye on 
Mr. Snagsby and proceeds to make that ill-starred stationer, 
already sufficiently confused, the immediate recipient of his 
discourse.

"We have here among us, my friends," says Chadband, "a Gentile and 
a heathen, a dweller in the tents of Tom-all-Alone's and a mover-on 
upon the surface of the earth.  We have here among us, my friends," 
and Mr. Chadband, untwisting the point with his dirty thumb-nail, 
bestows an oily smile on Mr. Snagsby, signifying that he will throw 
him an argumentative back-fall presently if he be not already down, 
"a brother and a boy.  Devoid of parents, devoid of relations, 
devoid of flocks and herds, devoid of gold and silver and of 
precious stones.  Now, my friends, why do I say he is devoid of 
these possessions?  Why?  Why is he?"  Mr. Chadband states the 
question as if he were propoundlng an entirely new riddle of much 
ingenuity and merit to Mr. Snagsby and entreating him not to give 
it up.

Mr. Snagsby, greatly perplexed by the mysterious look he received 
just now from his little woman--at about the period when Mr. 
Chadband mentioned the word parents--is tempted into modestly 
remarking, "I don't know, I'm sure, sir."  On which interruption 
Mrs. Chadband glares and Mrs. Snagsby says, "For shame!"

"I hear a voice," says Chadband; "is it a still small voice, my 
friends?  I fear not, though I fain would hope so--"

"Ah--h!" from Mrs. Snagsby.

"Which says, 'I don't know.'  Then I will tell you why.  I say this 
brother present here among us is devoid of parents, devoid of 
relations, devoid of flocks and herds, devoid of gold, of silver, 
and of precious stones because he is devoid of the light that 
shines in upon some of us.  What is that light?  What is it?  I ask 
you, what is that light?"

Mr. Chadband draws back his head and pauses, but Mr. Snagsby is not 
to be lured on to his destruction again.  Mr. Chadband, leaning 
forward over the table, pierces what he has got to follow directly 
into Mr. Snagsby with the thumb-nail already mentioned.

"It is," says Chadband, "the ray of rays, the sun of suns, the moon 
of moons, the star of stars.  It is the light of Terewth."

Mr. Chadband draws himself up again and looks triumphantly at Mr. 
Snagsby as if he would be glad to know how he feels after that.

"Of Terewth," says Mr. Chadband, hitting him again.  "Say not to me 
that it is NOT the lamp of lamps.  I say to you it is.  I say to 
you, a million of times over, it is.  It is!  I say to you that I 
will proclaim it to you, whether you like it or not; nay, that the 
less you like it, the more I will proclaim it to you.  With a 
speaking-trumpet!  I say to you that if you rear yourself against 
it, you shall fall, you shall be bruised, you shall be battered, 
you shall be flawed, you shall be smashed."

The present effect of this flight of oratory--much admired for its 
general power by Mr. Chadband's followers--being not only to make 
Mr. Chadband unpleasantly warm, but to represent the innocent Mr. 
Snagsby in the light of a determined enemy to virtue, with a 
forehead of brass and a heart of adamant, that unfortunate 
tradesman becomes yet more disconcerted and is in a very advanced 
state of low spirits and false position when Mr. Chadband 
accidentally finishes him.

"My friends," he resumes after dabbing his fat head for some time--
and it smokes to such an extent that he seems to light his pocket-
handkerchief at it, which smokes, too, after every dab--"to pursue 
the subject we are endeavouring with our lowly gifts to improve, 
let us in a spirit of love inquire what is that Terewth to which I 
have alluded.  For, my young friends," suddenly addressing the 
'prentices and Guster, to their consternation, "if I am told by the 
doctor that calomel or castor-oil is good for me, I may naturally 
ask what is calomel, and what is castor-oil.  I may wish to be 
informed of that before I dose myself with either or with both.  
Now, my young friends, what is this Terewth then?  Firstly (in a 
spirit of love), what is the common sort of Terewth--the working 
clothes--the every-day wear, my young friends?  Is it deception?"

"Ah--h!" from Mrs. Snagsby.

"Is it suppression?"

A shiver in the negative from Mrs. Snagsby.

"Is it reservation?"

A shake of the head from Mrs. Snagsby--very long and very tight.

"No, my friends, it is neither of these.  Neither of these names 
belongs to it.  When this young heathen now among us--who is now, 
my friends, asleep, the seal of indifference and perdition being 
set upon his eyelids; but do not wake him, for it is right that I 
should have to wrestle, and to combat and to struggle, and to 
conquer, for his sake--when this young hardened heathen told us a 
story of a cock, and of a bull, and of a lady, and of a sovereign, 
was THAT the Terewth?  No.  Or if it was partly, was it wholly and 
entirely?  No, my friends, no!"

If Mr. Snagsby could withstand his little woman's look as it enters 
at his eyes, the windows of his soul, and searches the whole 
tenement, he were other than the man he is.  He cowers and droops.

"Or, my juvenile friends," says Chadband, descending to the level 
of their comprehension with a very obtrusive demonstration in his 
greasily meek smile of coming a long way downstairs for the 
purpose, "if the master of this house was to go forth into the city 
and there see an eel, and was to come back, and was to call unto 
him the mistress of this house, and was to say, 'Sarah, rejoice 
with me, for I have seen an elephant!' would THAT be Terewth?"

Mrs. Snagsby in tears.

"Or put it, my juvenile friends, that he saw an elephant, and 
returning said 'Lo, the city is barren, I have seen but an eel,' 
would THAT be Terewth?"

Mrs. Snagsby sobbing loudly.

"Or put it, my juvenile friends," said Chadband, stimulated by the 
sound, "that the unnatural parents of this slumbering heathen--for 
parents he had, my juvenile friends, beyond a doubt--after casting 
him forth to the wolves and the vultures, and the wild dogs and the 
young gazelles, and the serpents, went back to their dwellings and 
had their pipes, and their pots, and their flutings and their 
dancings, and their malt liquors, and their butcher's meat and 
poultry, would THAT be Terewth?"

Mrs. Snagsby replies by delivering herself a prey to spasms, not an 
unresisting prey, but a crying and a tearing one, so that Cook's 
Court re-echoes with her shrieks.  Finally, becoming cataleptic, 
she has to be carried up the narrow staircase like a grand piano.  
After unspeakable suffering, productive of the utmost 
consternation, she is pronounced, by expresses from the bedroom, 
free from pain, though much exhausted, in which state of affairs 
Mr. Snagsby, trampled and crushed in the piano-forte removal, and 
extremely timid and feeble, ventures to come out from behind the 
door in the drawing-room.

All this time Jo has been standing on the spot where he woke up, 
ever picking his cap and putting bits of fur in his mouth.  He 
spits them out with a remorseful air, for he feels that it is in 
his nature to be an unimprovable reprobate and that it's no good 
HIS trying to keep awake, for HE won't never know nothink.  Though 
it may be, Jo, that there is a history so interesting and affecting 
even to minds as near the brutes as thine, recording deeds done on 
this earth for common men, that if the Chadbands, removing their 
own persons from the light, would but show it thee in simple 
reverence, would but leave it unimproved, would but regard it as 
being eloquent enough without their modest aid--it might hold thee 
awake, and thou might learn from it yet!

Jo never heard of any such book.  Its compilers and the Reverend 
Chadband are all one to him, except that he knows the Reverend 
Chadband and would rather run away from him for an hour than hear 
him talk for five minutes.  "It an't no good my waiting here no 
longer," thinks Jo.  "Mr. Snagsby an't a-going to say nothink to me 
to-night."  And downstairs he shuffles.

But downstairs is the charitable Guster, holding by the handrail of 
the kitchen stairs and warding off a fit, as yet doubtfully, the 
same having been induced by Mrs. Snagsby's screaming.  She has her 
own supper of bread and cheese to hand to Jo, with whom she 
ventures to interchange a word or so for the first time.

"Here's something to eat, poor boy," says Guster.

"Thank'ee, mum," says Jo.

"Are you hungry?"

"Jist!" says Jo.

"What's gone of your father and your mother, eh?"

Jo stops in the middle of a bite and looks petrified.  For this 
orphan charge of the Christian saint whose shrine was at Tooting 
has patted him on the shoulder, and it is the first time in his 
life that any decent hand has been so laid upon him.

"I never know'd nothink about 'em," says Jo.

"No more didn't I of mine," cries Guster.  She is repressing 
symptoms favourable to the fit when she seems to take alarm at 
something and vanishes down the stairs.

"Jo," whispers the law-stationer softly as the boy lingers on the 
step.

"Here I am, Mr. Snagsby!"

"I didn't know you were gone--there's another half-crown, Jo.  It 
was quite right of you to say nothing about the lady the other 
night when we were out together.  It would breed trouble.  You 
can't be too quiet, Jo."

"I am fly, master!"

And so, good night.

A ghostly shade, frilled and night-capped, follows the law-
stationer to the room he came from and glides higher up.  And 
henceforth he begins, go where he will, to be attended by another 
shadow than his own, hardly less constant than his own, hardly less 
quiet than his own.  And into whatsoever atmosphere of secrecy his 
own shadow may pass, let all concerned in the secrecy beware!  For 
the watchful Mrs. Snagsby is there too--bone of his bone, flesh of 
his flesh, shadow of his shadow.



CHAPTER XXVI

Sharpshooters


Wintry morning, looking with dull eyes and sallow face upon the 
neighbourhood of Leicester Square, finds its inhabitants unwilling 
to get out of bed.  Many of them are not early risers at the 
brightest of times, being birds of night who roost when the sun is 
high and are wide awake and keen for prey when the stars shine out.  
Behind dingy blind and curtain, in upper story and garret, skulking 
more or less under false names, false hair, false titles, false 
jewellery, and false histories, a colony of brigands lie in their 
first sleep.  Gentlemen of the green-baize road who could discourse 
from personal experience of foreign galleys and home treadmills; 
spies of strong governments that eternally quake with weakness and 
miserable fear, broken traitors, cowards, bullies, gamesters, 
shufflers, swindlers, and false witnesses; some not unmarked by the 
branding-iron beneath their dirty braid; all with more cruelty in 
them than was in Nero, and more crime than is in Newgate.  For 
howsoever bad the devil can be in fustian or smock-frock (and he 
can be very bad in both), he is a more designing, callous, and 
intolerable devil when he sticks a pin in his shirt-front, calls 
himself a gentleman, backs a card or colour, plays a game or so of 
billiards, and knows a little about bills and promissory notes than 
in any other form he wears.  And in such form Mr. Bucket shall find 
him, when he will, still pervading the tributary channels of 
Leicester Square.

But the wintry morning wants him not and wakes him not.  It wakes 
Mr. George of the shooting gallery and his familiar.  They arise, 
roll up and stow away their mattresses.  Mr. George, having shaved 
himself before a looking-glass of minute proportions, then marches 
out, bare-headed and bare-chested, to the pump in the little yard 
and anon comes back shining with yellow soap, friction, drifting 
rain, and exceedingly cold water.  As he rubs himself upon a large 
jack-towel, blowing like a military sort of diver just come up, his 
hair curling tighter and tighter on his sunburnt temples the more 
he rubs it so that it looks as if it never could be loosened by any 
less coercive instrument than an iron rake or a curry-comb--as he 
rubs, and puffs, and polishes, and blows, turning his head from 
side to side the more conveniently to excoriate his throat, and 
standing with his body well bent forward to keep the wet from his 
martial legs, Phil, on his knees lighting a fire, looks round as if 
it were enough washing for him to see all that done, and sufficient 
renovation for one day to take in the superfluous health his master 
throws off.

When Mr. George is dry, he goes to work to brush his head with two 
hard brushes at once, to that unmerciful degree that Phil, 
shouldering his way round the gallery in the act of sweeping it, 
winks with sympathy.  This chafing over, the ornamental part of Mr. 
George's toilet is soon performed.  He fills his pipe, lights it, 
and marches up and down smoking, as his custom is, while Phil, 
raising a powerful odour of hot rolls and coffee, prepares 
breakfast.  He smokes gravely and marches in slow time.  Perhaps 
this morning's pipe is devoted to the memory of Gridley in his 
grave.

"And so, Phil," says George of the shooting gallery after several 
turns in silence, "you were dreaming of the country last night?"

Phil, by the by, said as much in a tone of surprise as he scrambled 
out of bed.

"Yes, guv'ner."

"What was it like?"

"I hardly know what it was like, guv'ner," said Phil, considering.

"How did you know it was the country?"

"On account of the grass, I think.  And the swans upon it," says 
Phil after further consideration.

"What were the swans doing on the grass?"

"They was a-eating of it, I expect," says Phil.

The master resumes his march, and the man resumes his preparation 
of breakfast.  It is not necessarily a lengthened preparation, 
being limited to the setting forth of very simple breakfast 
requisites for two and the broiling of a rasher of bacon at the 
fire in the rusty grate; but as Phil has to sidle round a 
considerable part of the gallery for every object he wants, and 
never brings two objects at once, it takes time under the 
circumstances.  At length the breakfast is ready.  Phil announcing 
it, Mr. George knocks the ashes out of his pipe on the hob, stands 
his pipe itself in the chimney corner, and sits down to the meal.  
When he has helped himself, Phil follows suit, sitting at the 
extreme end of the little oblong table and taking his plate on his 
knees.  Either in humility, or to hide his blackened hands, or 
because it is his natural manner of eating.

"The country," says Mr. George, plying his knife and fork; "why, I 
suppose you never clapped your eyes on the country, Phil?"

"I see the marshes once," says Phil, contentedly eating his 
breakfast.

"What marshes?"

"THE marshes, commander," returns Phil.

"Where are they?"

"I don't know where they are," says Phil; "but I see 'em, guv'ner.  
They was flat.  And miste."

Governor and commander are interchangeable terms with Phil, 
expressive of the same respect and deference and applicable to 
nobody but Mr. George.

"I was born in the country, Phil."

"Was you indeed, commander?"

"Yes.  And bred there."

Phil elevates his one eyebrow, and after respectfully staring at 
his master to express interest, swallows a great gulp of coffee, 
still staring at him.

"There's not a bird's note that I don't know," says Mr. George.  
"Not many an English leaf or berry that I couldn't name.  Not many 
a tree that I couldn't climb yet if I was put to it.  I was a real 
country boy, once.  My good mother lived in the country."

"She must have been a fine old lady, guv'ner," Phil observes.

"Aye! And not so old either, five and thirty years ago," says Mr. 
George.  "But I'll wager that at ninety she would be near as 
upright as me, and near as broad across the shoulders."

"Did she die at ninety, guv'ner?" inquires Phil.

"No.  Bosh! Let her rest in peace, God bless her!" says the 
trooper.  "What set me on about country boys, and runaways, and 
good-for-nothings?  You, to be sure!  So you never clapped your 
eyes upon the country--marshes and dreams excepted.  Eh?"

Phil shakes his head.

"Do you want to see it?"

"N-no, I don't know as I do, particular," says Phil.

"The town's enough for you, eh?"

"Why, you see, commander," says Phil, "I ain't acquainted with 
anythink else, and I doubt if I ain't a-getting too old to take to 
novelties."

"How old ARE you, Phil?" asks the trooper, pausing as he conveys 
his smoking saucer to his lips.

"I'm something with a eight in it," says Phil.  "It can't be 
eighty.  Nor yet eighteen.  It's betwixt 'em, somewheres."

Mr. George, slowly putting down his saucer without tasting its 
contents, is laughingly beginning, "Why, what the deuce, Phil--" 
when he stops, seeing that Phil is counting on his dirty fingers.

"I was just eight," says Phil, "agreeable to the parish 
calculation, when I went with the tinker.  I was sent on a errand, 
and I see him a-sittin under a old buildin with a fire all to 
himself wery comfortable, and he says, 'Would you like to come 
along a me, my man?'  I says 'Yes,' and him and me and the fire 
goes home to Clerkenwell together.  That was April Fool Day.  I was 
able to count up to ten; and when April Fool Day come round again, 
I says to myself, 'Now, old chap, you're one and a eight in it.'  
April Fool Day after that, I says, 'Now, old chap, you're two and a 
eight in it.'  In course of time, I come to ten and a eight in it; 
two tens and a eight in it.  When it got so high, it got the upper 
hand of me, but this is how I always know there's a eight in it."

"Ah!" says Mr. George, resuming his breakfast.  "And where's the 
tinker?"

"Drink put him in the hospital, guv'ner, and the hospital put him--
in a glass-case, I HAVE heerd," Phil replies mysteriously.

"By that means you got promotion?  Took the business, Phil?"

"Yes, commander, I took the business.  Such as it was.  It wasn't 
much of a beat--round Saffron Hill, Hatton Garden, Clerkenwell, 
Smiffeld, and there--poor neighbourhood, where they uses up the 
kettles till they're past mending.  Most of the tramping tinkers 
used to come and lodge at our place; that was the best part of my 
master's earnings.  But they didn't come to me.  I warn't like him.  
He could sing 'em a good song.  I couldn't!  He could play 'em a 
tune on any sort of pot you please, so as it was iron or block tin.  
I never could do nothing with a pot but mend it or bile it--never 
had a note of music in me.  Besides, I was too ill-looking, and 
their wives complained of me."

"They were mighty particular.  You would pass muster in a crowd, 
Phil!" says the trooper with a pleasant smile.

"No, guv'ner," returns Phil, shaking his head.  "No, I shouldn't.  
I was passable enough when I went with the tinker, though nothing 
to boast of then; but what with blowing the fire with my mouth when 
I was young, and spileing my complexion, and singeing my hair off, 
and swallering the smoke, and what with being nat'rally unfort'nate 
in the way of running against hot metal and marking myself by sich 
means, and what with having turn-ups with the tinker as I got 
older, almost whenever he was too far gone in drink--which was 
almost always--my beauty was queer, wery queer, even at that time.  
As to since, what with a dozen years in a dark forge where the men 
was given to larking, and what with being scorched in a accident at 
a gas-works, and what with being blowed out of winder case-filling 
at the firework business, I am ugly enough to be made a show on!"

Resigning himself to which condition with a perfectly satisfied 
manner, Phil begs the favour of another cup of coffee.  While 
drinking it, he says, "It was after the case-filling blow-up when I 
first see you, commander.  You remember?"

"I remember, Phil.  You were walking along in the sun."

"Crawling, guv'ner, again a wall--"

"True, Phil--shouldering your way on--"

"In a night-cap!" exclaims Phil, excited.

"In a night-cap--"

"And hobbling with a couple of sticks!" cries Phil, still more 
excited.

"With a couple of sticks.  When--"

"When you stops, you know," cries Phil, putting down his cup and 
saucer and hastily removing his plate from his knees, "and says to 
me, 'What, comrade!  You have been in the wars!'  I didn't say much 
to you, commander, then, for I was took by surprise that a person 
so strong and healthy and bold as you was should stop to speak to 
such a limping bag of bones as I was.  But you says to me, says 
you, delivering it out of your chest as hearty as possible, so that 
it was like a glass of something hot, 'What accident have you met 
with?  You have been badly hurt.  What's amiss, old boy?  Cheer up, 
and tell us about it!'  Cheer up!  I was cheered already!  I says 
as much to you, you says more to me, I says more to you, you says 
more to me, and here I am, commander!  Here I am, commander!" cries 
Phil, who has started from his chair and unaccountably begun to 
sidle away.  "If a mark's wanted, or if it will improve the 
business, let the customers take aim at me.  They can't spoil MY 
beauty.  I'M all right.  Come on!  If they want a man to box at, 
let 'em box at me.  Let 'em knock me well about the head.  I don't 
mind.  If they want a light-weight to be throwed for practice, 
Cornwall, Devonshire, or Lancashire, let 'em throw me.  They won't 
hurt ME.  I have been throwed, all sorts of styles, all my life!"

With this unexpected speech, energetically delivered and 
accompanied by action illustrative of the various exercises 
referred to, Phil Squod shoulders his way round three sides of the 
gallery, and abruptly tacking off at his commander, makes a butt at 
him with his head, intended to express devotion to his service.  He 
then begins to clear away the breakfast.

Mr. George, after laughing cheerfully and clapping him on the 
shoulder, assists in these arrangements and helps to get the 
gallery into business order.  That done, he takes a turn at the 
dumb-bells, and afterwards weighing himself and opining that he is 
getting "too fleshy," engages with great gravity in solitary 
broadsword practice.  Meanwhile Phil has fallen to work at his 
usual table, where he screws and unscrews, and cleans, and files, 
and whistles into small apertures, and blackens himself more and 
more, and seems to do and undo everything that can be done and 
undone about a gun.

Master and man are at length disturbed by footsteps in the passage, 
where they make an unusual sound, denoting the arrival of unusual 
company.  These steps, advancing nearer and nearer to the gallery, 
bring into it a group at first sight scarcely reconcilable with any 
day in the year but the fifth of November.

It consists of a limp and ugly figure carried in a chair by two 
bearers and attended by a lean female with a face like a pinched 
mask, who might be expected immediately to recite the popular 
verses commemorative of the time when they did contrive to blow Old 
England up alive but for her keeping her lips tightly and defiantly 
closed as the chair is put down.  At which point the figure in it 
gasping, "O Lord!  Oh, dear me!  I am shaken!" adds, "How de do, my 
dear friend, how de do?"  Mr. George then descries, in the 
procession, the venerable Mr. Smallweed out for an airing, attended 
by his granddaughter Judy as body-guard.

"Mr. George, my dear friend," says Grandfather Smallweed, removing 
his right arm from the neck of one of his bearers, whom he has 
nearly throttled coming along, "how de do?  You're surprised to see 
me, my dear friend."

"I should hardly have been more surprised to have seen your friend 
in the city," returns Mr. George.

"I am very seldom out," pants Mr. Smallweed.  "I haven't been out 
for many months.  It's inconvenient--and it comes expensive.  But I 
longed so much to see you, my dear Mr. George.  How de do, sir?"

"I am well enough," says Mr. George.  "I hope you are the same."

"You can't be too well, my dear friend."  Mr. Smallweed takes him 
by both hands.  "I have brought my granddaughter Judy.  I couldn't 
keep her away.  She longed so much to see you."

"Hum!  She hears it calmly!" mutters Mr. George.

"So we got a hackney-cab, and put a chair in it, and just round the 
corner they lifted me out of the cab and into the chair, and 
carried me here that I might see my dear friend in his own 
establishment!  This," says Grandfather Smallweed, alluding to the 
bearer, who has been in danger of strangulation and who withdraws 
adjusting his windpipe, "is the driver of the cab.  He has nothing 
extra.  It is by agreement included in his fare.  This person," the 
other bearer, "we engaged in the street outside for a pint of beer.  
Which is twopence.  Judy, give the person twopence.  I was not sure 
you had a workman of your own here, my dear friend, or we needn't 
have employed this person."

Grandfather Smallweed refers to Phil with a glance of considerable 
terror and a half-subdued "O Lord!  Oh, dear me!"  Nor in his 
apprehension, on the surface of things, without some reason, for 
Phil, who has never beheld the apparition in the black-velvet cap 
before, has stopped short with a gun in his hand with much of the 
air of a dead shot intent on picking Mr. Smallweed off as an ugly 
old bird of the crow species.

"Judy, my child," says Grandfather Smallweed, "give the person his 
twopence.  It's a great deal for what he has done."

The person, who is one of those extraordinary specimens of human 
fungus that spring up spontaneously in the western streets of 
London, ready dressed in an old red jacket, with a "mission" for 
holding horses and calling coaches, received his twopence with 
anything but transport, tosses the money into the air, catches it 
over-handed, and retires.

"My dear Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed, "would you be so 
kind as help to carry me to the fire?  I am accustomed to a fire, 
and I am an old man, and I soon chill.  Oh, dear me!"

His closing exclamation is jerked out of the venerable gentleman by 
the suddenness with which Mr. Squod, like a genie, catches him up, 
chair and all, and deposits him on the hearth-stone.

"O Lord!" says Mr. Smallweed, panting.  "Oh, dear me!  Oh, my 
stars!  My dear friend, your workman is very strong--and very 
prompt.  O Lord, he is very prompt!  Judy, draw me back a little.  
I'm being scorched in the legs," which indeed is testified to the 
noses of all present by the smell of his worsted stockings.

The gentle Judy, having backed her grandfather a little way from 
the fire, and having shaken him up as usual, and having released 
his overshadowed eye from its black-velvet extinguisher, Mr. 
Smallweed again says, "Oh, dear me!  O Lord!" and looking about and 
meeting Mr. George's glance, again stretches out both hands.

"My dear friend!  So happy in this meeting!  And this is your 
establishment?  It's a delightful place.  It's a picture!  You 
never find that anything goes off here accidentally, do you, my 
dear friend?" adds Grandfather Smallweed, very ill at ease.

"No, no.  No fear of that."

"And your workman.  He--Oh, dear me!--he never lets anything off 
without meaning it, does he, my dear friend?"

"He has never hurt anybody but himself," says Mr. George, smiling.

"But he might, you know.  He seems to have hurt himself a good 
deal, and he might hurt somebody else," the old gentleman returns.  
"He mightn't mean it--or he even might.  Mr. George, will you order 
him to leave his infernal firearms alone and go away?"

Obedient to a nod from the trooper, Phil retires, empty-handed, to 
the other end of the gallery.  Mr. Smallweed, reassured, falls to 
rubbing his legs.

"And you're doing well, Mr. George?" he says to the trooper, 
squarely standing faced about towards him with his broadsword in 
his hand.  "You are prospering, please the Powers?"

Mr. George answers with a cool nod, adding, "Go on.  You have not 
come to say that, I know."

"You are so sprightly, Mr. George," returns the venerable 
grandfather.  "You are such good company."

"Ha ha!  Go on!" says Mr. George.

"My dear friend!  But that sword looks awful gleaming and sharp.  
It might cut somebody, by accident.  It makes me shiver, Mr. 
George.  Curse him!" says the excellent old gentleman apart to Judy 
as the trooper takes a step or two away to lay it aside.  "He owes 
me money, and might think of paying off old scores in this 
murdering place.  I wish your brimstone grandmother was here, and 
he'd shave her head off."

Mr. George, returning, folds his arms, and looking down at the old 
man, sliding every moment lower and lower in his chair, says 
quietly, "Now for it!"

"Ho!" cries Mr. Smallweed, rubbing his hands with an artful 
chuckle.  "Yes.  Now for it.  Now for what, my dear friend?"

"For a pipe," says Mr. George, who with great composure sets his 
chair in the chimney-corner, takes his pipe from the grate, fills 
it and lights it, and falls to smoking peacefully.

This tends to the discomfiture of Mr. Smallweed, who finds it so 
difficult to resume his object, whatever it may be, that he becomes 
exasperated and secretly claws the air with an impotent 
vindictiveness expressive of an intense desire to tear and rend the 
visage of Mr. George.  As the excellent old gentleman's nails are 
long and leaden, and his hands lean and veinous, and his eyes green 
and watery; and, over and above this, as he continues, while he 
claws, to slide down in his chair and to collapse into a shapeless 
bundle, he becomes such a ghastly spectacle, even in the accustomed 
eyes of Judy, that that young virgin pounces at him with something 
more than the ardour of affection and so shakes him up and pats and 
pokes him in divers parts of his body, but particularly in that 
part which the science of self-defence would call his wind, that in 
his grievous distress he utters enforced sounds like a paviour's 
rammer.

When Judy has by these means set him up again in his chair, with a 
white face and a frosty nose (but still clawing), she stretches out 
her weazen forefinger and gives Mr. George one poke in the back.  
The trooper raising his head, she makes another poke at her 
esteemed grandfather, and having thus brought them together, stares 
rigidly at the fire.

"Aye, aye!  Ho, ho!  U--u--u--ugh!" chatters Grandfather Smallweed, 
swallowing his rage.  "My dear friend!"  (still clawing).

"I tell you what," says Mr. George.  "If you want to converse with 
me, you must speak out.  I am one of the roughs, and I can't go 
about and about.  I haven't the art to do it.  I am not clever 
enough.  It don't suit me.  When you go winding round and round 
me," says the trooper, putting his pipe between his lips again, 
"damme, if I don't feel as if I was being smothered!"

And he inflates his broad chest to its utmost extent as if to 
assure himself that he is not smothered yet.

"If you have come to give me a friendly call," continues Mr. 
George, "I am obliged to you; how are you?  If you have come to see 
whether there's any property on the premises, look about you; you 
are welcome.  If you want to out with something, out with it!"

The blooming Judy, without removing her gaze from the fire, gives 
her grandfather one ghostly poke.

"You see!  It's her opinion too.  And why the devil that young 
woman won't sit down like a Christian," says Mr. George with his 
eyes musingly fixed on Judy, "I can't comprehend."

"She keeps at my side to attend to me, sir," says Grandfather 
Smallweed.  "I am an old man, my dear Mr. George, and I need some 
attention.  I can carry my years; I am not a brimstone poll-parrot" 
(snarling and looking unconsciously for the cushion), "but I need 
attention, my dear friend."

"Well!" returns the trooper, wheeling his chair to face the old 
man.  "Now then?"

"My friend in the city, Mr. George, has done a little business with 
a pupil of yours."

"Has he?" says Mr. George.  "I am sorry to hear it."

"Yes, sir." Grandfather Smallweed rubs his legs.  "He is a fine 
young soldier now, Mr. George, by the name of Carstone.  Friends 
came forward and paid it all up, honourable."

"Did they?" returns Mr. George.  "Do you think your friend in the 
city would like a piece of advice?"

"I think he would, my dear friend.  From you."

"I advise him, then, to do no more business in that quarter.  
There's no more to be got by it.  The young gentleman, to my 
knowledge, is brought to a dead halt."

"No, no, my dear friend.  No, no, Mr. George.  No, no, no, sir," 
remonstrates Grandfather Smallweed, cunningly rubbing his spare 
legs.  "Not quite a dead halt, I think.  He has good friends, and 
he is good for his pay, and he is good for the selling price of his 
commission, and he is good for his chance in a lawsuit, and he is 
good for his chance in a wife, and--oh, do you know, Mr. George, I 
think my friend would consider the young gentleman good for 
something yet?" says Grandfather Smallweed, turning up his velvet 
cap and scratching his ear like a monkey.

Mr. George, who has put aside his pipe and sits with an arm on his 
chair-back, beats a tattoo on the ground with his right foot as if 
he were not particularly pleased with the turn the conversation has 
taken.

"But to pass from one subject to another," resumes Mr. Smallweed.  
"'To promote the conversation, as a joker might say.  To pass, Mr. 
George, from the ensign to the captain."

"What are you up to, now?" asks Mr. George, pausing with a frown in 
stroking the recollection of his moustache.  "What captain?"

"Our captain.  The captain we know of.  Captain Hawdon."

"Oh! That's it, is it?" says Mr. George with a low whistle as he 
sees both grandfather and granddaughter looking hard at him.  "You 
are there!  Well?  What about it?  Come, I won't be smothered any 
more.  Speak!"

"My dear friend," returns the old man, "I was applied--Judy, shake 
me up a little!--I was applied to yesterday about the captain, and 
my opinion still is that the captain is not dead."

"Bosh!" observes Mr. George.

"What was your remark, my dear friend?" inquires the old man with 
his hand to his ear.

"Bosh!"

"Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed.  "Mr. George, of my opinion you 
can judge for yourself according to the questions asked of me and 
the reasons given for asking 'em.  Now, what do you think the 
lawyer making the inquiries wants?"

"A job," says Mr. George.

"Nothing of the kind!"

"Can't be a lawyer, then," says Mr. George, folding his arms with 
an air of confirmed resolution.

"My dear friend, he is a lawyer, and a famous one.  He wants to see 
some fragment in Captain Hawdon's writing.  He don't want to keep 
it.  He only wants to see it and compare it with a writing in his 
possession."

"Well?"

"Well, Mr. George.  Happening to remember the advertisement 
concerning Captain Hawdon and any information that could be given 
respecting him, he looked it up and came to me--just as you did, my 
dear friend.  WILL you shake hands?  So glad you came that day!  I 
should have missed forming such a friendship if you hadn't come!"

"Well, Mr. Smallweed?" says Mr. George again after going through 
the ceremony with some stiffness.

"I had no such thing.  I have nothing but his signature.  Plague 
pestilence and famine, battle murder and sudden death upon him," 
says the old man, making a curse out of one of his few remembrances 
of a prayer and squeezing up his velvet cap between his angry 
hands, "I have half a million of his signatures, I think!  But 
you," breathlessly recovering his mildness of speech as Judy re-
adjusts the cap on his skittle-ball of a head, "you, my dear Mr. 
George, are likely to have some letter or paper that would suit the 
purpose.  Anything would suit the purpose, written in the hand."

"Some writing in that hand," says the trooper, pondering; "may be, 
I have."

"My dearest friend!"

"May be, I have not."

"Ho!" says Grandfather Smallweed, crest-fallen.

"But if I had bushels of it, I would not show as much as would make 
a cartridge without knowing why."

"Sir, I have told you why.  My dear Mr. George, I have told you 
why."

"Not enough," says the trooper, shaking his head.  "I must know 
more, and approve it."

"Then, will you come to the lawyer?  My dear friend, will you come 
and see the gentleman?" urges Grandfather Smallweed, pulling out a 
lean old silver watch with hands like the leg of a skeleton.  "I 
told him it was probable I might call upon him between ten and 
eleven this forenoon, and it's now half after ten.  Will you come 
and see the gentleman, Mr. George?"

"Hum!" says he gravely.  "I don't mind that.  Though why this 
should concern you so much, I don't know."

"Everything concerns me that has a chance in it of bringing 
anything to light about him.  Didn't he take us all in?  Didn't he 
owe us immense sums, all round?  Concern me?  Who can anything 
about him concern more than me?  Not, my dear friend," says 
Grandfather Smallweed, lowering his tone, "that I want YOU to 
betray anything.  Far from it.  Are you ready to come, my dear 
friend?"

"Aye! I'll come in a moment.  I promise nothing, you know."

"No, my dear Mr. George; no."

"And you mean to say you're going to give me a lift to this place, 
wherever it is, without charging for it?" Mr. George inquires, 
getting his hat and thick wash-leather gloves.

This pleasantry so tickles Mr. Smallweed that he laughs, long and 
low, before the fire.  But ever while he laughs, he glances over 
his paralytic shoulder at Mr. George and eagerly watches him as he 
unlocks the padlock of a homely cupboard at the distant end of the 
gallery, looks here and there upon the higher shelves, and 
ultimately takes something out with a rustling of paper, folds it, 
and puts it in his breast.  Then Judy pokes Mr. Smallweed once, and 
Mr. Smallweed pokes Judy once.

"I am ready," says the trooper, coming back.  "Phil, you can carry 
this old gentleman to his coach, and make nothing of him."

"Oh, dear me!  O Lord!  Stop a moment!" says Mr. Smallweed.  "He's 
so very prompt!  Are you sure you can do it carefully, my worthy 
man?"

Phil makes no reply, but seizing the chair and its load, sidles 
away, tightly bugged by the now speechless Mr. Smallweed, and bolts 
along the passage as if he had an acceptable commission to carry 
the old gentleman to the nearest volcano.  His shorter trust, 
however, terminating at the cab, he deposits him there; and the 
fair Judy takes her place beside him, and the chair embellishes the 
roof, and Mr. George takes the vacant place upon the box.

Mr. George is quite confounded by the spectacle he beholds from 
time to time as he peeps into the cab through the window behind 
him, where the grim Judy is always motionless, and the old 
gentleman with his cap over one eye is always sliding off the seat 
into the straw and looking upward at him out of his other eye with 
a helpless expression of being jolted in the back.



CHAPTER XXVII

More Old Soldiers Than One


Mr. George has not far to ride with folded arms upon the box, for 
their destination is Lincoln's Inn Fields.  When the driver stops 
his horses, Mr. George alights, and looking in at the window, says, 
"What, Mr. Tulkinghorn's your man, is he?"

"Yes, my dear friend.  Do you know him, Mr. George?"

"Why, I have heard of him--seen him too, I think.  But I don't know 
him, and he don't know me."

There ensues the carrying of Mr. Smallweed upstairs, which is done 
to perfection with the trooper's help.  He is borne into Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's great room and deposited on the Turkey rug before the 
fire.  Mr. Tulkinghorn is not within at the present moment but will 
be back directly.  The occupant of the pew in the hall, having said 
thus much, stirs the fire and leaves the triumvirate to warm 
themselves.

Mr. George is mightily curious in respect of the room.  He looks up 
at the painted ceiling, looks round at the old law-books, 
contemplates the portraits of the great clients, reads aloud the 
names on the boxes.

"'Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet,'" Mr. George reads thoughtfully.  
"Ha!  'Manor of Chesney Wold.'  Humph!"  Mr. George stands looking 
at these boxes a long while--as if they were pictures--and comes 
back to the fire repeating, "Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and 
Manor of Chesney Wold, hey?"

"Worth a mint of money, Mr. George!" whispers Grandfather 
Smallweed, rubbing his legs.  "Powerfully rich!"

"Who do you mean?  This old gentleman, or the Baronet?"

"This gentleman, this gentleman."

"So I have heard; and knows a thing or two, I'll hold a wager.  Not 
bad quarters, either," says Mr. George, looking round again.  "See 
the strong-box yonder!"

This reply is cut short by Mr. Tulkinghorn's arrival.  There is no 
change in him, of course.  Rustily drest, with his spectacles in 
his hand, and their very case worn threadbare.  In manner, close 
and dry.  In voice, husky and low.  In face, watchful behind a 
blind; habitually not uncensorious and contemptuous perhaps.  The 
peerage may have warmer worshippers and faithfuller believers than 
Mr. Tulkinghorn, after all, if everything were known.

"Good morning, Mr. Smallweed, good morning!" he says as he comes 
in.  "You have brought the sergeant, I see.  Sit down, sergeant."

As Mr. Tulkinghorn takes off his gloves and puts them in his hat, 
he looks with half-closed eyes across the room to where the trooper 
stands and says within himself perchance, "You'll do, my friend!"

"Sit down, sergeant," he repeats as he comes to his table, which is 
set on one side of the fire, and takes his easy-chair.  "Cold and 
raw this morning, cold and raw!"  Mr. Tulkinghorn warms before the 
bars, alternately, the palms and knuckles of his hands and looks 
(from behind that blind which is always down) at the trio sitting 
in a little semicircle before him.

"Now, I can feel what I am about" (as perhaps he can in two 
senses), "Mr. Smallweed."  The old gentleman is newly shaken up by 
Judy to bear his part in the conversation.  "You have brought our 
good friend the sergeant, I see."

"Yes, sir," returns Mr. Smallweed, very servile to the lawyer's 
wealth and influence.

"And what does the sergeant say about this business?"

"Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed with a tremulous wave of 
his shrivelled hand, "this is the gentleman, sir."

Mr. George salutes the gentleman but otherwise sits bolt upright 
and profoundly silent--very forward in his chair, as if the full 
complement of regulation appendages for a field-day hung about him.

Mr. Tulkinghorn proceeds, "Well, George--I believe your name is 
George?"

"It is so, Sir."

"What do you say, George?"

"I ask your pardon, sir," returns the trooper, "but I should wish 
to know what YOU say?"

"Do you mean in point of reward?"

"I mean in point of everything, sir."

This is so very trying to Mr. Smallweed's temper that he suddenly 
breaks out with "You're a brimstone beast!" and as suddenly asks 
pardon of Mr. Tulkinghorn, excusing himself for this slip of the 
tongue by saying to Judy, "I was thinking of your grandmother, my 
dear."

"I supposed, sergeant," Mr. Tulkinghorn resumes as he leans on one 
side of his chair and crosses his legs, "that Mr. Smallweed might 
have sufficiently explained the matter.  It lies in the smallest 
compass, however.  You served under Captain Hawdon at one time, and 
were his attendant in illness, and rendered him many little 
services, and were rather in his confidence, I am told.  That is 
so, is it not?"

"Yes, sir, that is so," says Mr. George with military brevity.

"Therefore you may happen to have in your possession something--
anything, no matter what; accounts, instructions, orders, a letter, 
anything--in Captain Hawdon's writing.  I wish to compare his 
writing with some that I have.  If you can give me the opportunity, 
you shall be rewarded for your trouble.  Three, four, five, 
guineas, you would consider handsome, I dare say."

"Noble, my dear friend!" cries Grandfather Smallweed, screwing up 
his eyes.

"If not, say how much more, in your conscience as a soldier, you 
can demand.  There is no need for you to part with the writing, 
against your inclination--though I should prefer to have it."

Mr. George sits squared in exactly the same attitude, looks at the 
painted ceiling, and says never a word.  The irascible Mr. 
Smallweed scratches the air.

"The question is," says Mr. Tulkinghorn in his methodical, subdued, 
uninterested way, "first, whether you have any of Captain Hawdon's 
writing?"

"First, whether I have any of Captain Hawdon's writing, sir," 
repeats Mr. George.

"Secondly, what will satisfy you for the trouble of producing it?"

"Secondly, what will satisfy me for the trouble of producing it, 
sir," repeats Mr. George.

"Thirdly, you can judge for yourself whether it is at all like 
that," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, suddenly handing him some sheets of 
written paper tied together.

"Whether it is at all like that, sir.  Just so," repeats Mr. 
George.

All three repetitions Mr. George pronounces in a mechanical manner, 
looking straight at Mr. Tulkinghorn; nor does he so much as glance 
at the affidavit in Jarndyce and Jarndyce, that has been given to 
him for his inspection (though he still holds it in his hand), but 
continues to look at the lawyer with an air of troubled meditation.

"Well?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "What do you say?"

"Well, sir," replies Mr. George, rising erect and looking immense, 
"I would rather, if you'll excuse me, have nothing to do with 
this."

Mr. Tulkinghorn, outwardly quite undisturbed, demands, "Why not?"

"Why, sir," returns the trooper.  "Except on military compulsion, I 
am not a man of business.  Among civilians I am what they call in 
Scotland a ne'er-do-weel.  I have no head for papers, sir.  I can 
stand any fire better than a fire of cross questions.  I mentioned 
to Mr. Smallweed, only an hour or so ago, that when I come into 
things of this kind I feel as if I was being smothered.  And that 
is my sensation," says Mr. George, looking round upon the company, 
"at the present moment."

With that, he takes three strides forward to replace the papers on 
the lawyer's table and three strides backward to resume his former 
station, where he stands perfectly upright, now looking at the 
ground and now at the painted ceillhg, with his hands behind him as 
if to prevent himself from accepting any other document whatever.

Under this provocation, Mr. Smallweed's favourite adjective of 
disparagement is so close to his tongue that he begins the words 
"my dear friend" with the monosyllable "brim," thus converting the 
possessive pronoun into brimmy and appearing to have an impediment 
in his speech.  Once past this difficulty, however, he exhorts his 
dear friend in the tenderest manner not to be rash, but to do what 
so eminent a gentleman requires, and to do it with a good grace, 
confident that it must be unobjectionable as well as profitable.  
Mr. Tulkinghorn merely utters an occasional sentence, as, "You are 
the best judge of your own interest, sergeant."  "Take care you do 
no harm by this."  "Please yourself, please yourself."  "If you 
know what you mean, that's quite enough."  These he utters with an 
appearance of perfect indifference as he looks over the papers on 
his table and prepares to write a letter.

Mr. George looks distrustfully from the painted ceiling to the 
ground, from the ground to Mr. Smallweed, from Mr. Smallweed to Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, and from Mr. Tulkinghorn to the painted ceiling again, 
often in his perplexity changing the leg on which he rests.

"I do assure you, sir," says Mr. George, "not to say it 
offensively, that between you and Mr. Smallweed here, I really am 
being smothered fifty times over.  I really am, sir.  I am not a 
match for you gentlemen.  Will you allow me to ask why you want to 
see the captain's hand, in the case that I could find any specimen 
of it?"

Mr. Tulkinghorn quietly shakes his head.  "No.  If you were a man 
of business, sergeant, you would not need to be informed that there 
are confidential reasons, very harmless in themselves, for many 
such wants in the profession to which I belong.  But if you are 
afraid of doing any injury to Captain Hawdon, you may set your mind 
at rest about that."

"Aye!  He is dead, sir."

"IS he?"  Mr. Tulkinghorn quietly sits down to write.

"Well, sir," says the trooper, looking into his hat after another 
disconcerted pause, "I am sorry not to have given you more 
satisfaction.  If it would be any satisfaction to any one that I 
should be confirmed in my judgment that I would rather have nothing 
to do with this by a friend of mine who has a better head for 
business than I have, and who is an old soldier, I am willing to 
consult with him.  I--I really am so completely smothered myself at 
present," says Mr. George, passing his hand hopelessly across his 
brow, "that I don't know but what it might be a satisfaction to 
me."

Mr. Smallweed, hearing that this authority is an old soldier, so 
strongly inculcates the expediency of the trooper's taking counsel 
with him, and particularly informing him of its being a question of 
five guineas or more, that Mr. George engages to go and see him.  
Mr. Tulkinghorn says nothing either way.

"I'll consult my friend, then, by your leave, sir," says the 
trooper, "and I'll take the liberty of looking in again with the 
final answer in the course of the day.  Mr. Smallweed, if you wish 
to be carried downstairs--"

"In a moment, my dear friend, in a moment.  Will you first let me 
speak half a word with this gentleman in private?"

"Certainly, sir.  Don't hurry yourself on my account."  The trooper 
retires to a distant part of the room and resumes his curious 
inspection of the boxes, strong and otherwise.

"If I wasn't as weak as a brimstone baby, sir," whispers 
Grandfather Smallweed, drawing the lawyer down to his level by the 
lapel of his coat and flashing some half-quenched green fire out of 
his angry eyes, "I'd tear the writing away from him.  He's got it 
buttoned in his breast.  I saw him put it there.  Judy saw him put 
it there.  Speak up, you crabbed image for the sign of a walking-
stick shop, and say you saw him put it there!"

This vehement conjuration the old gentleman accompanies with such a 
thrust at his granddaughter that it is too much for his strength, 
and he slips away out of his chair, drawing Mr. Tulkinghorn with 
him, until he is arrested by Judy, and well shaken.

"Violence will not do for me, my friend," Mr. Tulkinghorn then 
remarks coolly.

"No, no, I know, I know, sir.  But it's chafing and galling--it's--
it's worse than your smattering chattering magpie of a grandmother," 
to the imperturbable Judy, who only looks at the fire, "to know he 
has got what's wanted and won't give it up.  He, not to give it up!  
HE!  A vagabond!  But never mind, sir, never mind.  At the most, he 
has only his own way for a little while.  I have him periodically 
in a vice.  I'll twist him, sir.  I'll screw him, sir.  If he won't 
do it with a good grace, I'll make him do it with a bad one, sir!  
Now, my dear Mr. George," says Grandfather Smallweed, winking at 
the lawyer hideously as he releases him, "I am ready for your kind 
assistance, my excellent friend!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn, with some shadowy sign of amusement manifesting 
itself through his self-possession, stands on the hearth-rug with 
his back to the fire, watching the disappearance of Mr. Smallweed 
and acknowledging the trooper's parting salute with one slight nod.

It is more difficult to get rid of the old gentleman, Mr. George 
finds, than to bear a hand in carrying him downstairs, for when he 
is replaced in his conveyance, he is so loquacious on the subject 
of the guineas and retains such an affectionate hold of his button
--having, in truth, a secret longing to rip his coat open and rob 
him--that some degree of force is necessary on the trooper's part 
to effect a separation.  It is accomplished at last, and he 
proceeds alone in quest of his adviser.

By the cloisterly Temple, and by Whitefriars (there, not without a 
glance at Hanging-Sword Alley, which would seem to be something in 
his way), and by Blackfriars Bridge, and Blackfriars Road, Mr. 
George sedately marches to a street of little shops lying somewhere 
in that ganglion of roads from Kent and Surrey, and of streets from 
the bridges of London, centring in the far-famed elephant who has 
lost his castle formed of a thousand four-horse coaches to a 
stronger iron monster than he, ready to chop him into mince-meat 
any day he dares.  To one of the little shops in this street, which 
is a musician's shop, having a few fiddles in the window, and some 
Pan's pipes and a tambourine, and a triangle, and certain elongated 
scraps of music, Mr. George directs his massive tread.  And halting 
at a few paces from it, as he sees a soldierly looking woman, with 
her outer skirts tucked up, come forth with a small wooden tub, and 
in that tub commence a-whisking and a-splashing on the margin of 
the pavement, Mr. George says to himself, "She's as usual, washing 
greens.  I never saw her, except upon a baggage-waggon, when she 
wasn't washing greens!"

The subject of this reflection is at all events so occupied in 
washing greens at present that she remains unsuspicious of Mr. 
George's approach until, lifting up herself and her tub together 
when she has poured the water off into the gutter, she finds him 
standing near her.  Her reception of him is not flattering.

"George, I never see you but I wish you was a hundred mile away!"

The trooper, without remarking on this welcome, follows into the 
musical-instrument shop, where the lady places her tub of greens 
upon the counter, and having shaken hands with him, rests her arms 
upon it.

"I never," she says, "George, consider Matthew Bagnet safe a minute 
when you're near him.  You are that resfless and that roving--"

"Yes!  I know I am, Mrs. Bagnet.  I know I am."

"You know you are!" says Mrs. Bagnet.  "What's the use of that?  
WHY are you?"

"The nature of the animal, I suppose," returns the trooper good-
humouredly.

"Ah!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, something shrilly.  "But what satisfaction 
will the nature of the animal be to me when the animal shall have 
tempted my Mat away from the musical business to New Zealand or 
Australey?"

Mrs. Bagnet is not at all an ill-looking woman.  Rather large-
boned, a little coarse in the grain, and freckled by the sun and 
wind which have tanned her hair upon the forehead, but healthy, 
wholesome, and bright-eyed.  A strong, busy, active, honest-faced 
woman of from forty-five to fifty.  Clean, hardy, and so 
economically dressed (though substantially) that the only article 
of ornament of which she stands possessed appear's to be her 
wedding-ring, around which her finger has grown to be so large 
since it was put on that it will never come off again until it 
shall mingle with Mrs. Bagnet's dust.

"Mrs. Bagnet," says the trooper, "I am on my parole with you.  Mat 
will get no harm from me.  You may trust me so far."

"Well, I think I may.  But the very looks of you are unsettling," 
Mrs. Bagnet rejoins.  "Ah, George, George!  If you had only settled 
down and married Joe Pouch's widow when he died in North America, 
SHE'D have combed your hair for you."

"It was a chance for me, certainly," returns the trooper half 
laughingly, half seriously, "but I shall never settle down into a 
respectable man now.  Joe Pouch's widow might have done me good--
there was something in her, and something of her--but I couldn't 
make up my mind to it.  If I had had the luck to meet with such a 
wife as Mat found!"

Mrs. Bagnet, who seems in a virtuous way to be under little reserve 
with a good sort of fellow, but to be another good sort of fellow 
herself for that matter, receives this compliment by flicking Mr. 
George in the face with a head of greens and taking her tub into 
the little room behind the shop.

"Why, Quebec, my poppet," says George, following, on invitation, 
into that department.  "And little Malta, too!  Come and kiss your 
Bluffy!"

These young ladies--not supposed to have been actually christened 
by the names applied to them, though always so called in the family 
from the places of their birth in barracks--are respectively 
employed on three-legged stools, the younger (some five or six 
years old) in learning her letters out of a penny primer, the elder 
(eight or nine perhaps) in teaching her and sewing with great 
assiduity.  Both hail Mr. George with acclamations as an old friend 
and after some kissing and romping plant their stools beside him.

"And how's young Woolwich?" says Mr. George.

"Ah!  There now!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, turning about from her 
saucepans (for she is cooking dinner) with a bright flush on her 
face.  "Would you believe it?  Got an engagement at the theayter, 
with his father, to play the fife in a military piece."

"Well done, my godson!" cries Mr. George, slapping his thigh.

"I believe you!" says Mrs. Bagnet.  "He's a Briton.  That's what 
Woolwich is.  A Briton!"

"And Mat blows away at his bassoon, and you're respectable 
civilians one and all," says Mr. George.  "Family people.  Children 
growing up.  Mat's old mother in Scotland, and your old father 
somewhere else, corresponded with, and helped a little, and--well, 
well!  To be sure, I don't know why I shouldn't be wished a hundred 
mile away, for I have not much to do with all this!"

Mr. George is becoming thoughtful, sitting before the fire in the 
whitewashed room, which has a sanded floor and a barrack smell and 
contains nothing superfluous and has not a visible speck of dirt or 
dust in it, from the faces of Quebec and Malta to the bright tin 
pots and pannikins upon the dresser shelves--Mr. George is becoming 
thoughtful, sitting here while Mrs. Bagnet is busy, when Mr. Bagnet 
and young Woolwich opportunely come home.  Mr. Bagnet is an ex-
artilleryman, tall and upright, with shaggy eyebrows and whiskers 
like the fibres of a coco-nut, not a hair upon his head, and a 
torrid complexion.  His voice, short, deep, and resonant, is not at 
all unlike the tones of the instrument to which he is devoted.  
Indeed there may be generally observed in him an unbending, 
unyielding, brass-bound air, as if he were himself the bassoon of 
the human orchestra.  Young Woolwich is the type and model of a 
young drummer.

Both father and son salute the trooper heartily.  He saying, in due 
season, that he has come to advise with Mr. Bagnet, Mr. Bagnet 
hospitably declares that he will hear of no business until after 
dinner and that his friend shall not partake of his counsel without 
first partaking of boiled pork and greens.  The trooper yielding to 
this invitation, he and Mr. Bagnet, not to embarrass the domestic 
preparations, go forth to take a turn up and down the little 
street, which they promenade with measured tread and folded arms, 
as if it were a rampart.

"George," says Mr. Bagnet.  "You know me.  It's my old girl that 
advises.  She has the head.  But I never own to it before her.  
Discipline must be maintained.  Wait till the greens is off her 
mind.  Then we'll consult.  Whatever the old girl says, do--do it!"

"I intend to, Mat," replies the other.  "I would sooner take her 
opinion than that of a college."

"College," returns Mr. Bagnet in short sentences, bassoon-like.  
"What college could you leave--in another quarter of the world--
with nothing but a grey cloak and an umbrella--to make its way home 
to Europe?  The old girl would do it to-morrow.  Did it once!"

"You are right," says Mr. George.

"What college," pursues Bagnet, "could you set up in life--with two 
penn'orth of white lime--a penn'orth of fuller's earth--a ha'porth 
of sand--and the rest of the change out of sixpence in money?  
That's what the old girl started on.  In the present business."

"I am rejoiced to hear it's thriving, Mat."

"The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, acquiescing, "saves.  Has a 
stocking somewhere.  With money in it.  I never saw it.  But I know 
she's got it.  Wait till the greens is off her mind.  Then she'll 
set you up."

"She is a treasure!" exclaims Mr. George.

"She's more.  But I never own to it before her.  Discipline must be 
maintained.  It was the old girl that brought out my musical 
abilities.  I should have been in the artillery now but for the old 
girl.  Six years I hammered at the fiddle.  Ten at the flute.  The 
old girl said it wouldn't do; intention good, but want of 
flexibility; try the bassoon.  The old girl borrowed a bassoon from 
the bandmaster of the Rifle Regiment.  I practised in the trenches.  
Got on, got another, get a living by it!"

George remarks that she looks as fresh as a rose and as sound as an 
apple.

"The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet in reply, "is a thoroughly fine 
woman.  Consequently she is like a thoroughly fine day.  Gets finer 
as she gets on.  I never saw the old girl's equal.  But I never own 
to it before her.  Discipline must be maintained!"

Proceeding to converse on indifferent matters, they walk up and 
down the little street, keeping step and time, until summoned by 
Quebec and Malta to do justice to the pork and greens, over which 
Mrs. Bagnet, like a military chaplain, says a short grace.  In the 
distribution of these comestibles, as in every other household 
duty, Mrs. Bagnet developes an exact system, sitting with every 
dish before her, allotting to every portion of pork its own portion 
of pot-liquor, greens, potatoes, and even mustard, and serving it 
out complete.  Having likewise served out the beer from a can and 
thus supplied the mess with all things necessary, Mrs. Bagnet 
proceeds to satisfy her own hunger, which is in a healthy state.  
The kit of the mess, if the table furniture may be so denominated, 
is chiefly composed of utensils of horn and tin that have done duty 
in several parts of the world.  Young Woolwich's knife, in 
particular, which is of the oyster kind, with the additional 
feature of a strong shutting-up movement which frequently balks the 
appetite of that young musician, is mentioned as having gone in 
various hands the complete round of foreign service.

The dinner done, Mrs. Bagnet, assisted by the younger branches (who 
polish their own cups and platters, knives and forks), makes all 
the dinner garniture shine as brightly as before and puts it all 
away, first sweeping the hearth, to the end that Mr. Bagnet and the 
visitor may not be retarded in the smoking of their pipes.  These 
household cares involve much pattening and counter-pattening in the 
backyard and considerable use of a pail, which is finally so happy 
as to assist in the ablutions of Mrs. Bagnet herself.  That old 
girl reappearing by and by, quite fresh, and sitting down to her 
needlework, then and only then--the greens being only then to be 
considered as entirely off her mind--Mr. Bagnet requests the 
trooper to state his case.

This Mr. George does with great discretion, appearing to address 
himself to Mr. Bagnet, but having an eye solely on the old girl all 
the time, as Bagnet has himself.  She, equally discreet, busies 
herself with her needlework.  The case fully stated, Mr. Bagnet 
resorts to his standard artifice for the maintenance of discipline.

"That's the whole of it, is it, George?" says he.

"That's the whole of it."

"You act according to my opinion?"

"I shall be guided," replies George, "entirely by it."

"Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "give him my opinion.  You know it.  
Tell him what it is."

It is that he cannot have too little to do with people who are too 
deep for him and cannot be too careful of interference with matters 
he does not understand--that the plain rule is to do nothing in the 
dark, to be a party to nothing underhanded or mysterious, and never 
to put his foot where he cannot see the ground.  This, in effect, 
is Mr. Bagnet's opinion, as delivered through the old girl, and it 
so relieves Mr. George's mind by confirming his own opinion and 
banishing his doubts that he composes himself to smoke another pipe 
on that exceptional occasion and to have a talk over old times with 
the whole Bagnet family, according to their various ranges of 
experience.

Through these means it comes to pass that Mr. George does not again 
rise to his full height in that parlour until the time is drawing 
on when the bassoon and fife are expected by a British public at 
the theatre; and as it takes time even then for Mr. George, in his 
domestic character of Bluffy, to take leave of Quebec and Malta and 
insinuate a sponsorial shilling into the pocket of his godson with 
felicitations on his success in life, it is dark when Mr. George 
again turns his face towards Lincoln's Inn Fields.

"A family home," he ruminates as he marches along, "however small 
it is, makes a man like me look lonely.  But it's well I never made 
that evolution of matrimony.  I shouldn't have been fit for it.  I 
am such a vagabond still, even at my present time of life, that I 
couldn't hold to the gallery a month together if it was a regular 
pursuit or if I didn't camp there, gipsy fashion.  Come!  I 
disgrace nobody and cumber nobody; that's something.  I have not 
done that for many a long year!"

So he whistles it off and marches on.

Arrived in Lincoln's Inn Fields and mounting Mr. Tulkinghorn's 
stair, he finds the outer door closed and the chambers shut, but 
the trooper not knowing much about outer doors, and the staircase 
being dark besides, he is yet fumbling and groping about, hoping to 
discover a bell-handle or to open the door for himself, when Mr. 
Tulkinghorn comes up the stairs (quietly, of course) and angrily 
asks, "Who is that?  What are you doing there?"

"I ask your pardon, sir.  It's George.  The sergeant."

"And couldn't George, the sergeant, see that my door was locked?"

"Why, no, sir, I couldn't.  At any rate, I didn't," says the 
trooper, rather nettled.

"Have you changed your mind?  Or are you in the same mind?" Mr. 
Tulkinghorn demands.  But he knows well enough at a glance.

"In the same mind, sir."

"I thought so.  That's sufficient.  You can go.  So you are the 
man," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, opening his door with the key, "in 
whose hiding-place Mr. Gridley was found?"

"Yes, I AM the man," says the trooper, stopping two or three stairs 
down.  "What then, sir?"

"What then?  I don't like your associates.  You should not have 
seen the inside of my door this morning if I had thought of your 
being that man.  Gridley?  A threatening, murderous, dangerous 
fellow."

With these words, spoken in an unusually high tone for him, the 
lawyer goes into his rooms and shuts the door with a thundering 
noise.

Mr. George takes his dismissal in great dudgeon, the greater 
because a clerk coming up the stairs has heard the last words of 
all and evidently applies them to him.  "A pretty character to 
bear," the trooper growls with a hasty oath as he strides 
downstairs.  "A threatening, murderous, dangerous fellow!"  And 
looking up, he sees the clerk looking down at him and marking him 
as he passes a lamp.  This so intensifies his dudgeon that for five 
minutes he is in an ill humour.  But he whistles that off like the 
rest of it and marches home to the shooting gallery.



CHAPTER XXVIII

The Ironmaster


Sir Leicester Dedlock has got the better, for the time being, of 
the family gout and is once more, in a literal no less than in a 
figurative point of view, upon his legs.  He is at his place in 
Lincolnshire; but the waters are out again on the low-lying 
grounds, and the cold and damp steal into Chesney Wold, though well 
defended, and eke into Sir Leicester's bones.  The blazing fires of 
faggot and coal--Dedlock timber and antediluvian forest--that blaze 
upon the broad wide hearths and wink in the twilight on the 
frowning woods, sullen to see how trees are sacrificed, do not 
exclude the enemy.  The hot-water pipes that trail themselves all 
over the house, the cushioned doors and windows, and the screens 
and curtains fail to supply the fires' deficiencies and to satisfy 
Sir Leicester's need.  Hence the fashionable intelligence proclaims 
one morning to the listening earth that Lady Dedlock is expected 
shortly to return to town for a few weeks.

It is a melancholy truth that even great men have their poor 
relations.  Indeed great men have often more than their fair share 
of poor relations, inasmuch as very red blood of the superior 
quality, like inferior blood unlawfully shed, WILL cry aloud and 
WILL be heard.  Sir Leicester's cousins, in the remotest degree, 
are so many murders in the respect that they "will out."  Among 
whom there are cousins who are so poor that one might almost dare 
to think it would have been the happier for them never to have been 
plated links upon the Dedlock chain of gold, but to have been made 
of common iron at first and done base service.

Service, however (with a few limited reservations, genteel but not 
profitable), they may not do, being of the Dedlock dignity.  So 
they visit their richer cousins, and get into debt when they can, 
and live but shabbily when they can't, and find--the women no 
husbands, and the men no wives--and ride in borrowed carriages, and 
sit at feasts that are never of their own making, and so go through 
high life.  The rich family sum has been divided by so many 
figures, and they are the something over that nobody knows what to 
do with.

Everybody on Sir Leicester Dedlock's side of the question and of 
his way of thinking would appear to be his cousin more or less.  
From my Lord Boodle, through the Duke of Foodle, down to Noodle, 
Sir Leicester, like a glorious spider, stretches his threads of 
relationship.  But while he is stately in the cousinship of the 
Everybodys, he is a kind and generous man, according to his 
dignified way, in the cousinship of the Nobodys; and at the present 
time, in despite of the damp, he stays out the visit of several 
such cousins at Chesney Wold with the constancy of a martyr.

Of these, foremost in the front rank stands Volumnia Dedlock, a 
young lady (of sixty) who is doubly highly related, having the 
honour to be a poor relation, by the mother's side, to another 
great family.  Miss Volumnia, displaying in early life a pretty 
talent for cutting ornaments out of coloured paper, and also for 
singing to the guitar in the Spanish tongue, and propounding French 
conundrums in country houses, passed the twenty years of her 
existence between twenty and forty in a sufficiently agreeable 
manner.  Lapsing then out of date and being considered to bore 
mankind by her vocal performances in the Spanish language, she 
retired to Bath, where she lives slenderly on an annual present 
from Sir Leicester and whence she makes occasional resurrections in 
the country houses of her cousins.  She has an extensive 
acquaintance at Bath among appalling old gentlemen with thin legs 
and nankeen trousers, and is of high standing in that dreary city.  
But she is a little dreaded elsewhere in consequence of an 
indiscreet profusion in the article of rouge and persistency in an 
obsolete pearl necklace like a rosary of little bird's-eggs.

In any country in a wholesome state, Volumnia would be a clear case 
for the pension list.  Efforts have been made to get her on it, and 
when William Buffy came in, it was fully expected that her name 
would be put down for a couple of hundred a year.  But William 
Buffy somehow discovered, contrary to all expectation, that these 
were not the times when it could be done, and this was the first 
clear indication Sir Leicester Dedlock had conveyed to him that the 
country was going to pieces.

There is likewise the Honourable Bob Stables, who can make warm 
mashes with the skill of a veterinary surgeon and is a better shot 
than most gamekeepers.  He has been for some time particularly 
desirous to serve his country in a post of good emoluments, 
unaccompanied by any trouble or responsibility.  In a well-
regulated body politic this natural desire on the part of a 
spirited young gentleman so highly connected would be speedily 
recognized, but somehow William Buffy found when he came in that 
these were not times in which he could manage that little matter 
either, and this was the second indication Sir Leicester Dedlock 
had conveyed to him that the country was going to pieces.

The rest of the cousins are ladies and gentlemen of various ages 
and capacities, the major part amiable and sensible and likely to 
have done well enough in life if they could have overcome their 
cousinship; as it is, they are almost all a little worsted by it, 
and lounge in purposeless and listless paths, and seem to be quite 
as much at a loss how to dispose of themselves as anybody else can 
be how to dispose of them.

In this society, and where not, my Lady Dedlock reigns supreme.  
Beautiful, elegant, accomplished, and powerful in her little world 
(for the world of fashion does not stretch ALL the way from pole to 
pole), her influence in Sir Leicester's house, however haughty and 
indifferent her manner, is greatly to improve it and refine it.  
The cousins, even those older cousins who were paralysed when Sir 
Leicester married her, do her feudal homage; and the Honourable Bob 
Stables daily repeats to some chosen person between breakfast and 
lunch his favourite original remark, that she is the best-groomed 
woman in the whole stud.

Such the guests in the long drawing-room at Chesney Wold this 
dismal night when the step on the Ghost's Walk (inaudible here, 
however) might be the step of a deceased cousin shut out in the 
cold.  It is near bed-time.  Bedroom fires blaze brightly all over 
the house, raising ghosts of grim furniture on wall and ceiling.  
Bedroom candlesticks bristle on the distant table by the door, and 
cousins yawn on ottomans.  Cousins at the piano, cousins at the 
soda-water tray, cousins rising from the card-table, cousins 
gathered round the fire.  Standing on one side of his own peculiar 
fire (for there are two), Sir Leicester.  On the opposite side of 
the broad hearth, my Lady at her table.  Volumnia, as one of the 
more privileged cousins, in a luxurious chair between them.  Sir 
Leicester glancing, with magnificent displeasure, at the rouge and 
the pearl necklace.

"I occasionally meet on my staircase here," drawls Volumnia, whose 
thoughts perhaps are already hopping up it to bed, after a long 
evening of very desultory talk, "one of the prettiest girls, I 
think, that I ever saw in my life."

"A PROTEGEE of my Lady's," observes Sir Leicester.

"I thought so.  I felt sure that some uncommon eye must have picked 
that girl out.  She really is a marvel.  A dolly sort of beauty 
perhaps," says Miss Volumnia, reserving her own sort, "but in its 
way, perfect; such bloom I never saw!"

Sir Leicester, with his magnificent glance of displeasure at the 
rouge, appears to say so too.

"Indeed," remarks my Lady languidly, "if there is any uncommon eye 
in the case, it is Mrs. Rouncewell's, and not mine.  Rosa is her 
discovery."

"Your maid, I suppose?"

"No.  My anything; pet--secretary--messenger--I don't know what."

"You like to have her about you, as you would like to have a 
flower, or a bird, or a picture, or a poodle--no, not a poodle, 
though--or anything else that was equally pretty?" says Volumnia, 
sympathizing.  "Yes, how charming now!  And how well that 
delightful old soul Mrs. Rouncewell is looking.  She must be an 
immense age, and yet she is as active and handsome!  She is the 
dearest friend I have, positively!"

Sir Leicester feels it to be right and fitting that the housekeeper 
of Chesney Wold should be a remarkable person.  Apart from that, he 
has a real regard for Mrs. Rouncewell and likes to hear her 
praised.  So he says, "You are right, Volumnia," which Volumnia is 
extremely glad to hear.

"She has no daughter of her own, has she?"

"Mrs. Rouncewell?  No, Volumnia.  She has a son.  Indeed, she had 
two."

My Lady, whose chronic malady of boredom has been sadly aggravated 
by Volumnia this evening, glances wearily towards the candlesticks 
and heaves a noiseless sigh.

"And it is a remarkable example of the confusion into which the 
present age has fallen; of the obliteration of landmarks, the 
opening of floodgates, and the uprooting of distinctions," says Sir 
Leicester with stately gloom, "that I have been informed by Mr. 
Tulkinghorn that Mrs. Rouncewell's son has been invited to go into 
Parliament."

Miss Volumnia utters a little sharp scream.

"Yes, indeed," repeats Sir Leicester.  "Into Parliament."

"I never heard of such a thing!  Good gracious, what is the man?" 
exclaims Volumnia.

"He is called, I believe--an--ironmaster."  Sir Leicester says it 
slowly and with gravity and doubt, as not being sure but that he is 
called a lead-mistress or that the right word may be some other 
word expressive of some other relationship to some other metal.

Volumnia utters another little scream.

"He has declined the proposal, if my information from Mr. 
Tulkinghorn be correct, as I have no doubt it is.  Mr. Tulkinghorn 
being always correct and exact; still that does not," says Sir 
Leicester, "that does not lessen the anomaly, which is fraught with 
strange considerations--startling considerations, as it appears to 
me."

Miss Volumnia rising with a look candlestick-wards, Sir Leicester 
politely performs the grand tour of the drawing-room, brings one, 
and lights it at my Lady's shaded lamp.

"I must beg you, my Lady," he says while doing so, "to remain a few 
moments, for this individual of whom I speak arrived this evening 
shortly before dinner and requested in a very becoming note"--Sir 
Leicester, with his habitual regard to truth, dwells upon it--"I am 
bound to say, in a very becoming and well-expressed note, the 
favour of a short interview with yourself and MYself on the subject 
of this young girl.  As it appeared that he wished to depart to-
night, I replied that we would see him before retiring."

Miss Volumnia with a third little scream takes flight, wishing her 
hosts--O Lud!--well rid of the--what is it?--ironmaster!

The other cousins soon disperse, to the last cousin there.  Sir 
Leicester rings the bell, "Make my compliments to Mr. Rouncewell, 
in the housekeeper's apartments, and say I can receive him now."

My Lady, who has beard all this with slight attention outwardly, 
looks towards Mr. Rouncewell as he comes in.  He is a little over 
fifty perhaps, of a good figure, like his mother, and has a clear 
voice, a broad forehead from which his dark hair has retired, and a 
shrewd though open face.  He is a responsible-looking gentleman 
dressed in black, portly enough, but strong and active.  Has a 
perfectly natural and easy air and is not in the least embarrassed 
by the great presence into which he comes.

"Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock, as I have already apologized for 
intruding on you, I cannot do better than be very brief.  I thank 
you, Sir Leicester."

The head of the Dedlocks has motioned towards a sofa between 
himself and my Lady.  Mr. Rouncewell quietly takes his seat there.

"In these busy times, when so many great undertakings are in 
progress, people like myself have so many workmen in so many places 
that we are always on the flight."

Sir Leicester is content enough that the ironmaster should feel 
that there is no hurry there; there, in that ancient house, rooted 
in that quiet park, where the ivy and the moss have had time to 
mature, and the gnarled and warted elms and the umbrageous oaks 
stand deep in the fern and leaves of a hundred years; and where the 
sun-dial on the terrace has dumbly recorded for centuries that time 
which was as much the property of every Dedlock--while he lasted--
as the house and lands.  Sir Leicester sits down in an easy-chair, 
opposing his repose and that of Chesney Wold to the restless 
flights of ironmasters.

"Lady Dedlock has been so kind," proceeds Mr. Rouncewell with a 
respectful glance and a bow that way, "as to place near her a young 
beauty of the name of Rosa.  Now, my son has fallen in love with 
Rosa and has asked my consent to his proposing marriage to her and 
to their becoming engaged if she will take him--which I suppose she 
will.  I have never seen Rosa until to-day, but I have some 
confidence in my son's good sense--even in love.  I find her what 
he represents her, to the best of my judgment; and my mother speaks 
of her with great commendation."

"She in all respects deserves it," says my Lady.

"I am happy, Lady Dedlock, that you say so, and I need not comment 
on the value to me of your kind opinion of her."

"That," observes Sir Leicester with unspeakable grandeur, for he 
thinks the ironmaster a little too glib, "must be quite 
unnecessary."

"Quite unnecessary, Sir Leicester.  Now, my son is a very young 
man, and Rosa is a very young woman.  As I made my way, so my son 
must make his; and his being married at present is out of the 
question.  But supposing I gave my consent to his engaging himself 
to this pretty girl, if this pretty girl will engage herself to 
him, I think it a piece of candour to say at once--I am sure, Sir 
Leicester and Lady Dedlock, you will understand and excuse me--I 
should make it a condition that she did not remain at Chesney Wold.  
Therefore, before communicating further with my son, I take the 
liberty of saying that if her removal would be in any way 
inconvenient or objectionable, I will hold the matter over with him 
for any reasonable time and leave it precisely where it is."

Not remain at Chesney Wold!  Make it a condition!  All Sir 
Leicester's old misgivings relative to Wat Tyler and the people in 
the iron districts who do nothing but turn out by torchlight come 
in a shower upon his head, the fine grey hair of which, as well as 
of his whiskers, actually stirs with indignation.

"Am I to understand, sir," says Sir Leicester, "and is my Lady to 
understand"--he brings her in thus specially, first as a point of 
gallantry, and next as a point of prudence, having great reliance 
on her sense--"am I to understand, Mr. Rouncewell, and is my Lady 
to understand, sir, that you consider this young woman too good for 
Chesney Wold or likely to be injured by remaining here?"

"Certainly not, Sir Leicester,"

"I am glad to hear it."  Sir Leicester very lofty indeed.

"Pray, Mr. Rouncewell," says my Lady, warning Sir Leicester off 
with the slightest gesture of her pretty hand, as if he were a fly, 
"explain to me what you mean."

"Willingly, Lady Dedlock.  There is nothing I could desire more."

Addressing her composed face, whose intelligence, however, is too 
quick and active to be concealed by any studied impassiveness, 
however habitual, to the strong Saxon face of the visitor, a 
picture of resolution and perseverance, my Lady listens with 
attention, occasionally slightly bending her head.

"I am the son of your housekeeper, Lady Dedlock, and passed my 
childhood about this house.  My mother has lived here half a 
century and will die here I have no doubt.  She is one of those 
examples--perhaps as good a one as there is--of love, and 
attachment, and fidelity in such a nation, which England may well 
be proud of, but of which no order can appropriate the whole pride 
or the whole merit, because such an instance bespeaks high worth on 
two sides--on the great side assuredly, on the small one no less 
assuredly."

Sir Leicester snorts a little to hear the law laid down in this 
way, but in his honour and his love of truth, he freely, though 
silently, admits the justice of the ironmaster's proposition.

"Pardon me for saying what is so obvious, but I wouldn't have it 
hastily supposed," with the least turn of his eyes towards Sir 
Leicester, "that I am ashamed of my mother's position here, or 
wanting in all just respect for Chesney Wold and the family.  I 
certainly may have desired--I certainly have desired, Lady Dedlock
--that my mother should retire after so many years and end her days 
with me.  But as I have found that to sever this strong bond would 
be to break her heart, I have long abandoned that idea."

Sir Leicester very magnificent again at the notion of Mrs. 
Rouncewell being spirited off from her natural home to end her days 
with an ironmaster.

"I have been," proceeds the visitor in a modest, clear way, "an 
apprentice and a workman.  I have lived on workman's wages, years 
and years, and beyond a certain point have had to educate myself.  
My wife was a foreman's daughter, and plainly brought up.  We have 
three daughters besides this son of whom I have spoken, and being 
fortunately able to give them greater advantages than we have had 
ourselves, we have educated them well, very well.  It has been one 
of our great cares and pleasures to make them worthy of any 
station."

A little boastfulness in his fatherly tone here, as if he added in 
his heart, "even of the Chesney Wold station."  Not a little more 
magnificence, therefore, on the part of Sir Leicester.

"All this is so frequent, Lady Dedlock, where I live, and among the 
class to which I belong, that what would be generally called 
unequal marriages are not of such rare occurrence with us as 
elsewhere.  A son will sometimes make it known to his father that 
he has fallen in love, say, with a young woman in the factory.  The 
father, who once worked in a factory himself, will be a little 
disappointed at first very possibly.  It may be that he had other 
views for his son.  However, the chances are that having 
ascertained the young woman to be of unblemished character, he will 
say to his son, 'I must be quite sure you are in earnest here.  
This is a serious matter for both of you.  Therefore I shall have 
this girl educated for two years,' or it may be, 'I shall place 
this girl at the same school with your sisters for such a time, 
during which you will give me your word and honour to see her only 
so often.  If at the expiration of that time, when she has so far 
profited by her advantages as that you may be upon a fair equality, 
you are both in the same mind, I will do my part to make you 
happy.'  I know of several cases such as I describe, my Lady, and I 
think they indicate to me my own course now."

Sir Leicester's magnificence explodes.  Calmly, but terribly.

"Mr. Rouncewell," says Sir Leicester with his right hand in the 
breast of his blue coat, the attitude of state in which he is 
painted in the gallery, "do you draw a parallel between Chesney 
Wold and a--"  Here he resists a disposition to choke, "a factory?"

"I need not reply, Sir Leicester, that the two places are very 
different; but for the purposes of this case, I think a parallel 
may be justly drawn between them."

Sir Leicester directs his majestic glance down one side of the long 
drawing-room and up the other before he can believe that he is 
awake.

"Are you aware, sir, that this young woman whom my Lady--my Lady--
has placed near her person was brought up at the village school 
outside the gates?"

"Sir Leicester, I am quite aware of it.  A very good school it is, 
and handsomely supported by this family."

"Then, Mr. Rouncewell," returns Sir Leicester, "the application of 
what you have said is, to me, incomprehensible."

"Will it be more comprehensible, Sir Leicester, if I say," the 
ironmaster is reddening a little, "that I do not regard the village 
school as teaching everything desirable to be known by my son's 
wife?"

From the village school of Chesney Wold, intact as it is this 
minute, to the whole framework of society; from the whole framework 
of society, to the aforesaid framework receiving tremendous cracks 
in consequence of people (iron-masters, lead-mistresses, and what 
not) not minding their catechism, and getting out of the station 
unto which they are called--necessarily and for ever, according to 
Sir Leicester's rapid logic, the first station in which they happen 
to find themselves; and from that, to their educating other people 
out of THEIR stations, and so obliterating the landmarks, and 
opening the floodgates, and all the rest of it; this is the swift 
progress of the Dedlock mind.

"My Lady, I beg your pardon.  Permit me, for one moment!"  She has 
given a faint indication of intending to speak.  "Mr. Rouncewell, 
our views of duty, and our views of station, and our views of 
education, and our views of--in short, ALL our views--are so 
diametrically opposed, that to prolong this discussion must be 
repellent to your feelings and repellent to my own.  This young 
woman is honoured with my Lady's notice and favour.  If she wishes 
to withdraw herself from that notice and favour or if she chooses 
to place herself under the influence of any one who may in his 
peculiar opinions--you will allow me to say, in his peculiar 
opinions, though I readily admit that he is not accountable for 
them to me--who may, in his peculiar opinions, withdraw her from 
that notice and favour, she is at any time at liberty to do so.  We 
are obliged to you for the plainness with which you have spoken.  
It will have no effect of itself, one way or other, on the young 
woman's position here.  Beyond this, we can make no terms; and here 
we beg--if you will be so good--to leave the subject."

The visitor pauses a moment to give my Lady an opportunity, but she 
says nothing.  He then rises and replies, "Sir Leicester and Lady 
Dedlock, allow me to thank you for your attention and only to 
observe that I shall very seriously recommend my son to conquer his 
present inclinations.  Good night!"

"Mr. Rouncewell," says Sir Leicester with all the nature of a 
gentleman shining in him, "it is late, and the roads are dark.  I 
hope your time is not so precious but that you will allow my Lady 
and myself to offer you the hospitality of Chesney Wold, for to-
night at least."

"I hope so," adds my Lady.

"I am much obliged to you, but I have to travel all night in order 
to reach a distant part of the country punctually at an appointed 
time in the morning."

Therewith the ironmaster takes his departure, Sir Leicester ringing 
the bell and my Lady rising as he leaves the room.

When my Lady goes to her boudoir, she sits down thoughtfully by the 
fire, and inattentive to the Ghost's Walk, looks at Rosa, writing 
in an inner room.  Presently my Lady calls her.

"Come to me, child.  Tell me the truth.  Are you in love?"

"Oh! My Lady!"

My Lady, looking at the downcast and blushing face, says smiling, 
"Who is it?  Is it Mrs. Rouncewell's grandson?"

"Yes, if you please, my Lady.  But I don't know that I am in love 
with him--yet."

"Yet, you silly little thing!  Do you know that he loves YOU, yet?"

"I think he likes me a little, my Lady."  And Rosa bursts into 
tears.

Is this Lady Dedlock standing beside the village beauty, smoothing 
her dark hair with that motherly touch, and watching her with eyes 
so full of musing interest?  Aye, indeed it is!

"Listen to me, child.  You are young and true, and I believe you 
are attached to me."

"Indeed I am, my Lady.  Indeed there is nothing in the world I 
wouldn't do to show how much."

"And I don't think you would wish to leave me just yet, Rosa, even 
for a lover?"

"No, my Lady!  Oh, no!"  Rosa looks up for the first time, quite 
frightened at the thought.

"Confide in me, my child.  Don't fear me.  I wish you to be happy, 
and will make you so--if I can make anybody happy on this earth."

Rosa, with fresh tears, kneels at her feet and kisses her hand.  My 
Lady takes the hand with which she has caught it, and standing with 
her eyes fixed on the fire, puts it about and about between her own 
two hands, and gradually lets it fall.  Seeing her so absorbed, 
Rosa softly withdraws; but still my Lady's eyes are on the fire.

In search of what?  Of any hand that is no more, of any hand that 
never was, of any touch that might have magically changed her life?  
Or does she listen to the Ghost's Walk and think what step does it 
most resemble?  A man's?  A woman's?  The pattering of a little 
child's feet, ever coming on--on--on?  Some melancholy influence is 
upon her, or why should so proud a lady close the doors and sit 
alone upon the hearth so desolate?

Volumnia is away next day, and all the cousins are scattered before 
dinner.  Not a cousin of the batch but is amazed to hear from Sir 
Leicester at breakfast-time of the obliteration of landmarks, and 
opening of floodgates, and cracking of the framework of society, 
manifested through Mrs. Rouncewell's son.  Not a cousin of the 
batch but is really indignant, and connects it with the feebleness 
of William Buffy when in office, and really does feel deprived of a 
stake in the country--or the pension list--or something--by fraud 
and wrong.  As to Volumnia, she is handed down the great staircase 
by Sir Leicester, as eloquent upon the theme as if there were a 
general rising in the north of England to obtain her rouge-pot and 
pearl necklace.  And thus, with a clatter of maids and valets--for 
it is one appurtenance of their cousinship that however difficult 
they may find it to keep themselves, they MUST keep maids and 
valets--the cousins disperse to the four winds of heaven; and the 
one wintry wind that blows to-day shakes a shower from the trees 
near the deserted house, as if all the cousins had been changed 
into leaves.



CHAPTER XXIX

The Young Man


Chesney Wold is shut up, carpets are rolled into great scrolls in 
corners of comfortless rooms, bright damask does penance in brown 
holland, carving and gilding puts on mortification, and the Dedlock 
ancestors retire from the light of day again.  Around and around 
the house the leaves fall thick, but never fast, for they come 
circling down with a dead lightness that is sombre and slow.  Let 
the gardener sweep and sweep the turf as he will, and press the 
leaves into full barrows, and wheel them off, still they lie ankle-
deep.  Howls the shrill wind round Chesney Wold; the sharp rain 
beats, the windows rattle, and the chimneys growl.  Mists hide in 
the avenues, veil the points of view, and move in funeral-wise 
across the rising grounds.  On all the house there is a cold, blank 
smell like the smell of a little church, though something dryer, 
suggesting that the dead and buried Dedlocks walk there in the long 
nights and leave the flavour of their graves behind them.

But the house in town, which is rarely in the same mind as Chesney 
Wold at the same time, seldom rejoicing when it rejoices or 
mourning when it mourns, expecting when a Dedlock dies--the house 
in town shines out awakened.  As warm and bright as so much state 
may be, as delicately redolent of pleasant scents that bear no 
trace of winter as hothouse flowers can make it, soft and hushed so 
that the ticking of the clocks and the crisp burning of the fires 
alone disturb the stillness in the rooms, it seems to wrap those 
chilled bones of Sir Leicester's in rainbow-coloured wool.  And Sir 
Leicester is glad to repose in dignified contentment before the 
great fire in the library, condescendingly perusing the backs of 
his books or honouring the fine arts with a glance of approbation.  
For he has his pictures, ancient and modern.  Some of the Fancy 
Ball School in which art occasionally condescends to become a 
master, which would be best catalogued like the miscellaneous 
articles in a sale.  As '"Three high-backed chairs, a table and 
cover, long-necked bottle (containing wine), one flask, one Spanish 
female's costume, three-quarter face portrait of Miss Jogg the 
model, and a suit of armour containing Don Quixote."  Or "One stone 
terrace (cracked), one gondola in distance, one Venetian senator's 
dress complete, richly embroidered white satin costume with profile 
portrait of Miss Jogg the model, one Scimitar superbly mounted in 
gold with jewelled handle, elaborate Moorish dress (very rare), and 
Othello."

Mr. Tulkinghorn comes and goes pretty often, there being estate 
business to do, leases to be renewed, and so on.  He sees my Lady 
pretty often, too; and he and she are as composed, and as 
indifferent, and take as little heed of one another, as ever.  Yet 
it may be that my Lady fears this Mr. Tulkinghorn and that he knows 
it.  It may be that he pursues her doggedly and steadily, with no 
touch of compunction, remorse, or pity.  It may be that her beauty 
and all the state and brilliancy surrounding her only gives him the 
greater zest for what he is set upon and makes him the more 
inflexible in it.  Whether he be cold and cruel, whether immovable 
in what he has made his duty, whether absorbed in love of power, 
whether determined to have nothing hidden from him in ground where 
he has burrowed among secrets all his life, whether he in his heart 
despises the splendour of which he is a distant beam, whether he is 
always treasuring up slights and offences in the affability of his 
gorgeous clients--whether he be any of this, or all of this, it may 
be that my Lady had better have five thousand pairs of fashionahle 
eyes upon her, in distrustful vigilance, than the two eyes of this 
rusty lawyer with his wisp of neckcloth and his dull black breeches 
tied with ribbons at the knees.

Sir Leicester sits in my Lady's room--that room in which Mr. 
Tulkinghorn read the affidavit in Jarndyce and Jarndyce--
particularly complacent.  My Lady, as on that day, sits before the 
fire with her screen in her hand.  Sir Leicester is particularly 
complacent because he has found in his newspaper some congenial 
remarks bearing directly on the floodgates and the framework of 
society.  They apply so happily to the late case that Sir Leicester 
has come from the library to my Lady's room expressly to read them 
aloud.  "The man who wrote this article," he observes by way of 
preface, nodding at the fire as if he were nodding down at the man 
from a mount, "has a well-balanced mind."

The man's mind is not so well balanced but that he bores my Lady, 
who, after a languid effort to listen, or rather a languid 
resignation of herself to a show of listening, becomes distraught 
and falls into a contemplation of the fire as if it were her fire 
at Chesney Wold, and she had never left it.  Sir Leicester, quite 
unconscious, reads on through his double eye-glass, occasionally 
stopping to remove his glass and express approval, as "Very true 
indeed," "Very properly put," "I have frequently made the same 
remark myself," invariably losing his place after each observation, 
and going up and down the column to find it again.

Sir Leicester is reading with infinite gravity and state when the 
door opens, and the Mercury in powder makes this strange 
announcement, "The young man, my Lady, of the name of Guppy."

Sir Leicester pauses, stares, repeats in a killing voice, "The 
young man of the name of Guppy?"

Looking round, he beholds the young man of the name of Guppy, much 
discomfited and not presenting a very impressive letter of 
introduction in his manner and appearance.

"Pray," says Sir Leicester to Mercury, "what do you mean by 
announcing with this abruptness a young man of the name of Guppy?"

"I beg your pardon, Sir Leicester, but my Lady said she would see 
the young man whenever he called.  I was not aware that you were 
here, Sir Leicester."

With this apology, Mercury directs a scornful and indignant look at 
the young man of the name of Guppy which plainly says, "What do you 
come calling here for and getting ME into a row?"

"It's quite right.  I gave him those directions," says my Lady.  
"Let the young man wait."

"By no means, my Lady.  Since he has your orders to come, I will 
not interrupt you."  Sir Leicester in his gallantry retires, rather 
declining to accept a bow from the young man as he goes out and 
majestically supposing him to be some shoemaker of intrusive 
appearance.

Lady Dedlock looks imperiously at her visitor when the servant has 
left the room, casting her eyes over him from head to foot.  She 
suffers him to stand by the door and asks him what he wants.

"That your ladyship would have the kindness to oblige me with a 
little conversation," returns Mr. Guppy, embarrassed.

"You are, of course, the person who has written me so many 
letters?"

"Several, your ladyship.  Several before your ladyship condescended 
to favour me with an answer."

"And could you not take the same means of rendering a Conversation 
unnecessary?  Can you not still?"

Mr. Guppy screws his mouth into a silent "No!" and shakes his head.

"You have been strangely importunate.  If it should appear, after 
all, that what you have to say does not concern me--and I don't 
know how it can, and don't expect that it will--you will allow me 
to cut you short with but little ceremony.  Say what you have to 
say, if you please."

My Lady, with a careless toss of her screen, turns herself towards 
the fire again, sitting almost with her back to the young man of 
the name of Guppy.

"With your ladyship's permission, then," says the young man, "I 
will now enter on my business.  Hem!  I am, as I told your ladyship 
in my first letter, in the law.  Being in the law, I have learnt 
the habit of not committing myself in writing, and therefore I did 
not mention to your ladyship the name of the firm with which I am 
connected and in which my standing--and I may add income--is 
tolerably good.  I may now state to your ladyship, in confidence, 
that the name of that firm is Kenge and Carboy, of Lincoln's Inn, 
which may not be altogether unknown to your ladyship in connexion 
with the case in Chancery of Jarndyce and Jarndyce."

My Lady's figure begins to be expressive of some attention.  She 
has ceased to toss the screen and holds it as if she were 
listening.

"Now, I may say to your ladyship at once," says Mr. Guppy, a little 
emboldened, "it is no matter arising out of Jarndyce and Jarndyce 
that made me so desirous to speak to your ladyship, which conduct I 
have no doubt did appear, and does appear, obtrusive--in fact, 
almost blackguardly."

After waiting for a moment to receive some assurance to the 
contrary, and not receiving any, Mr. Guppy proceeds, "If it had 
been Jarndyce and Jarndyce, I should have gone at once to your 
ladyship's solicitor, Mr. Tulkinghorn, of the Fields.  I have the 
pleasure of being acquainted with Mr. Tulkinghorn--at least we move 
when we meet one another--and if it had been any business of that 
sort, I should have gone to him."

My Lady turns a little round and says, "You had better sit down."

"Thank your ladyship."  Mr. Guppy does so.  "Now, your ladyship"--
Mr. Guppy refers to a little slip of paper on which he has made 
small notes of his line of argument and which seems to involve him 
in the densest obscurity whenever he looks at it--"I--Oh, yes!--I 
place myself entirely in your ladyship's hands.  If your ladyship 
was to make any complaint to Kenge and Carboy or to Mr. Tulkinghorn 
of the present visit, I should be placed in a very disagreeable 
situation.  That, I openly admit.  Consequently, I rely upon your 
ladyship's honour."

My Lady, with a disdainful gesture of the hand that holds the 
screen, assures him of his being worth no complaint from her.

"Thank your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy; "quite satisfactory.  Now--
I--dash it!--The fact is that I put down a head or two here of the 
order of the points I thought of touching upon, and they're written 
short, and I can't quite make out what they mean.  If your ladyship 
will excuse me taking it to the window half a moment, I--"

Mr. Guppy, going to the window, tumbles into a pair of love-birds, 
to whom he says in his confusion, "I beg your pardon, I am sure."  
This does not tend to the greater legibility of his notes.  He 
murmurs, growing warm and red and holding the slip of paper now 
close to his eyes, now a long way off, "C.S.  What's C.S. for?  Oh!  
C.S.!  Oh, I know!  Yes, to be sure!"  And comes back enlightened.

"I am not aware," says Mr. Guppy, standing midway between my Lady 
and his chair, "whether your ladyship ever happened to hear of, or 
to see, a young lady of the name of Miss Esther Summerson."

My Lady's eyes look at him full.  "I saw a young lady of that name 
not long ago.  This past autumn."

"Now, did it strike your ladyship that she was like anybody?" asks 
Mr. Guppy, crossing his arms, holding his head on one side, and 
scratching the corner of his mouth with his memoranda.

My Lady removes her eyes from him no more.

"No."

"Not like your ladyship's family?"

"No."

"I think your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "can hardly remember Miss 
Summerson's face?"

"I remember the young lady very well.  What has this to do with 
me?"

"Your ladyship, I do assure you that having Miss Summerson's image 
imprinted on my 'eart--which I mention in confidence--I found, when 
I had the honour of going over your ladyship's mansion of Chesney 
Wold while on a short out in the county of Lincolnshire with a 
friend, such a resemblance between Miss Esther Summerson and your 
ladyship's own portrait that it completely knocked me over, so much 
so that I didn't at the moment even know what it WAS that knocked 
me over.  And now I have the honour of beholding your ladyship near 
(I have often, since that, taken the liberty of looking at your 
ladyship in your carriage in the park, when I dare say you was not 
aware of me, but I never saw your ladyship so near), it's really 
more surprising than I thought it."

Young man of the name of Guppy!  There have been times, when ladies 
lived in strongholds and had unscrupulous attendants within call, 
when that poor life of yours would NOT have been worth a minute's 
purchase, with those beautiful eyes looking at you as they look at 
this moment.

My Lady, slowly using her little hand-screen as a fan, asks him 
again what he supposes that his taste for likenesses has to do with 
her.

"Your ladyship," replies Mr. Guppy, again referring to his paper, 
"I am coming to that.  Dash these notes!  Oh!  'Mrs. Chadband.'  
Yes."  Mr. Guppy draws his chair a little forward and seats himself 
again.  My Lady reclines in her chair composedly, though with a 
trifle less of graceful ease than usual perhaps, and never falters 
in her steady gaze.  "A--stop a minute, though!"  Mr. Guppy refers 
again.  "E.S. twice?  Oh, yes!  Yes, I see my way now, right on."

Rolling up the slip of paper as an instrument to point his speech 
with, Mr. Guppy proceeds.

"Your ladyship, there is a mystery about Miss Esther Summerson's 
birth and bringing up.  I am informed of that fact because--which I 
mention in confidence--I know it in the way of my profession at 
Kenge and Carboy's.  Now, as I have already mentioned to your 
ladyship, Miss Summerson's image is imprinted on my 'eart.  If I 
could clear this mystery for her, or prove her to be well related, 
or find that having the honour to be a remote branch of your 
ladyship's family she had a right to be made a party in Jarndyce 
and Jarndyce, why, I might make a sort of a claim upon Miss 
Summerson to look with an eye of more dedicated favour on my 
proposals than she has exactly done as yet.  In fact, as yet she 
hasn't favoured them at all."

A kind of angry smile just dawns upon my Lady's face.

"Now, it's a very singular circumstance, your ladyship," says Mr. 
Guppy, "though one of those circumstances that do fall in the way 
of us professional men--which I may call myself, for though not 
admitted, yet I have had a present of my articles made to me by 
Kenge and Carboy, on my mother's advancing from the principal of 
her little income the money for the stamp, which comes heavy--that 
I have encountered the person who lived as servant with the lady 
who brought Miss Summerson up before Mr. Jarndyce took charge of 
her.  That lady was a Miss Barbary, your ladyship."

Is the dead colour on my Lady's face reflected from the screen 
which has a green silk ground and which she holds in her raised 
hand as if she had forgotten it, or is it a dreadful paleness that 
has fallen on her?

"Did your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "ever happen to hear of Miss 
Barbary?"

"I don't know.  I think so.  Yes."

"Was Miss Barbary at all connected with your ladyship's family?"

My Lady's lips move, but they utter nothing.  She shakes her head.

"NOT connected?" says Mr. Guppy.  "Oh! Not to your ladyship's 
knowledge, perhaps?  Ah! But might be?  Yes."  After each of these 
interrogatories, she has inclined her head.  "Very good!  Now, this 
Miss Barbary was extremely close--seems to have been 
extraordinarily close for a female, females being generally (in 
common life at least) rather given to conversation--and my witness 
never had an idea whether she possessed a single relative.  On one 
occasion, and only one, she seems to have been confidential to my 
witness on a single point, and she then told her that the little 
girl's real name was not Esther Summerson, but Esther Hawdon."

"My God!"

Mr. Guppy stares.  Lady Dedlock sits before him looking him 
through, with the same dark shade upon her face, in the same 
attitude even to the holding of the screen, with her lips a little 
apart, her brow a little contracted, but for the moment dead.  He 
sees her consciousness return, sees a tremor pass across her frame 
like a ripple over water, sees her lips shake, sees her compose 
them by a great effort, sees her force herself back to the 
knowledge of his presence and of what he has said.  All this, so 
quickly, that her exclamation and her dead condition seem to have 
passed away like the features of those long-preserved dead bodies 
sometimes opened up in tombs, which, struck by the air like 
lightning, vanish in a breath.

"Your ladyship is acquainted with the name of Hawdon?"

"I have heard it before."

"Name of any collateral or remote branch of your ladyship's 
family?"

"No."

"Now, your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy, "I come to the last point of 
the case, so far as I have got it up.  It's going on, and I shall 
gather it up closer and closer as it goes on.  Your ladyship must 
know--if your ladyship don't happen, by any chance, to know 
already--that there was found dead at the house of a person named 
Krook, near Chancery Lane, some time ago, a law-writer in great 
distress.  Upon which law-writer there was an inquest, and which 
law-writer was an anonymous character, his name being unknown.  
But, your ladyship, I have discovered very lately that that law-
writer's name was Hawdon."

"And what is THAT to me?"

"Aye, your ladyship, that's the question!  Now, your ladyship, a 
queer thing happened after that man's death.  A lady started up, a 
disguised lady, your ladyship, who went to look at the scene of 
action and went to look at his grave.  She hired a crossing-
sweeping boy to show it her.  If your ladyship would wish to have 
the boy produced in corroboration of this statement, I can lay my 
hand upon him at any time."

The wretched boy is nothing to my Lady, and she does NOT wish to 
have him produced.

"Oh, I assure your ladyship it's a very queer start indeed," says 
Mr. Guppy.  "If you was to hear him tell about the rings that 
sparkled on her fingers when she took her glove off, you'd think it 
quite romantic."

There are diamonds glittering on the hand that holds the screen.  
My Lady trifles with the screen and makes them glitter more, again 
with that expression which in other times might have been so 
dangerous to the young man of the name of Guppy.

"It was supposed, your ladyship, that he left no rag or scrap 
behind him by which he could be possibly identified.  But he did.  
He left a bundle of old letters."

The screen still goes, as before.  All this time her eyes never 
once release him.

"They were taken and secreted.  And to-morrow night, your ladyship, 
they will come into my possession."

"Still I ask you, what is this to me?"

"Your ladyship, I conclude with that."  Mr. Guppy rises.  "If you 
think there's enough in this chain of circumstances put together--
in the undoubted strong likeness of this young lady to your 
ladyship, which is a positive fact for a jury; in her having been 
brought up by Miss Barbary; in Miss Barbary stating Miss 
Summerson's real name to be Hawdon; in your ladyship's knowing both 
these names VERY WELL; and in Hawdon's dying as he did--to give 
your ladyship a family interest in going further into the case, I 
will bring these papers here.  I don't know what they are, except 
that they are old letters: I have never had them in my posession 
yet.  I will bring those papers here as soon as I get them and go 
over them for the first time with your ladyship.  I have told your 
ladyship my object.  I have told your ladyship that I should be 
placed in a very disagreeable situation if any complaint was made, 
and all is in strict confidence."

Is this the full purpose of the young man of the name of Guppy, or 
has he any other?  Do his words disclose the length, breadth, 
depth, of his object and suspicion in coming here; or if not, what 
do they hide?  He is a match for my Lady there.  She may look at 
him, but he can look at the table and keep that witness-box face of 
his from telling anything.

"You may bring the letters," says my Lady, "if you choose."

"Your ladyship is not very encouraging, upon my word and honour," 
says Mr. Guppy, a little injured.

"You may bring the letters," she repeats in the same tone, "if you
--please."

"It shall he done.  I wish your ladyship good day."

On a table near her is a rich bauble of a casket, barred and 
clasped like an old strong-chest.  She, looking at him still, takes 
it to her and unlocks it.

"Oh! I assure your ladyship I am not actuated by any motives of 
that sort," says Mr. Guppy, "and I couldn't accept anything of the 
kind.  I wish your ladyship good day, and am much obliged to you 
all the same."

So the young man makes his bow and goes downstairs, where the 
supercilious Mercury does not consider himself called upon to leave 
his Olympus by the hall-fire to let the young man out.

As Sir Leicester basks in his library and dozes over his newspaper, 
is there no influence in the house to startle him, not to say to 
make the very trees at Chesney Wold fling up their knotted arms, 
the very portraits frown, the very armour stir?

No.  Words, sobs, and cries are but air, and air is so shut in and 
shut out throughout the house in town that sounds need be uttered 
trumpet-tongued indeed by my Lady in her chamber to carry any faint 
vibration to Sir Leicester's ears; and yet this cry is in the 
house, going upward from a wild figure on its knees.

"O my child, my child!  Not dead in the first hours of her life, as 
my cruel sister told me, but sternly nurtured by her, after she had 
renounced me and my name!  O my child, O my child!"



CHAPTER XXX

Esther's Narrative


Richard had been gone away some time when a visitor came to pass a 
few days with us.  It was an elderly lady.  It was Mrs. Woodcourt, 
who, having come from Wales to stay with Mrs. Bayham Badger and 
having written to my guardian, "by her son Allan's desire," to 
report that she had heard from him and that he was well "and sent 
his kind remembrances to all of us," had been invited by my 
guardian to make a visit to Bleak House.  She stayed with us nearly 
three weeks.  She took very kindly to me and was extremely 
confidential, so much so that sometimes she almost made me 
uncomfortable.  I had no right, I knew very well, to be 
uncomfortable because she confided in me, and I felt it was 
unreasonable; still, with all I could do, I could not quite help it.

She was such a sharp little lady and used to sit with her hands 
folded in each other looking so very watchful while she talked to 
me that perhaps I found that rather irksome.  Or perhaps it was her 
being so upright and trim, though I don't think it was that, 
because I thought that quaintly pleasant.  Nor can it have been the 
general expression of her face, which was very sparkling and pretty 
for an old lady.  I don't know what it was.  Or at least if I do 
now, I thought I did not then.  Or at least--but it don't matter.

Of a night when I was going upstairs to bed, she would invite me 
into her room, where she sat before the fire in a great chair; and, 
dear me, she would tell me about Morgan ap-Kerrig until I was quite 
low-spirited!  Sometimes she recited a few verses from 
Crumlinwallinwer and the Mewlinn-willinwodd (if those are the right 
names, which I dare say they are not), and would become quite fiery 
with the sentiments they expressed.  Though I never knew what they 
were (being in Welsh), further than that they were highly 
eulogistic of the lineage of Morgan ap-Kerrig.

"So, Miss Summerson," she would say to me with stately triumph, 
"this, you see, is the fortune inherited by my son.  Wherever my 
son goes, he can claim kindred with Ap-Kerrig.  He may not have 
money, but he always has what is much better--family, my dear."

I had my doubts of their caring so very much for Morgan ap-Kerrig 
in India and China, but of course I never expressed them.  I used 
to say it was a great thing to be so highly connected.

"It IS, my dear, a great thing," Mrs. Woodcourt would reply.  "It 
has its disadvantages; my son's choice of a wife, for instance, is 
limited by it, but the matrimonial choice of the royal family is 
limited in much the same manner."

Then she would pat me on the arm and smooth my dress, as much as to 
assure me that she had a good opinion of me, the distance between 
us notwithstanding.

"Poor Mr. Woodcourt, my dear," she would say, and always with some 
emotion, for with her lofty pedigree she had a very affectionate 
heart, "was descended from a great Highland family, the MacCoorts 
of MacCoort.  He served his king and country as an officer in the 
Royal Highlanders, and he died on the field.  My son is one of the 
last representatives of two old families.  With the blessing of 
heaven he will set them up again and unite them with another old 
family."

It was in vain for me to try to change the subject, as I used to 
try, only for the sake of novelty or perhaps because--but I need 
not be so particular.  Mrs. Woodcourt never would let me change it.

"My dear," she said one night, "you have so much sense and you look 
at the world in a quiet manner so superior to your time of life 
that it is a comfort to me to talk to you about these family 
matters of mine.  You don't know much of my son, my dear; but you 
know enough of him, I dare say, to recollect him?"

"Yes, ma'am.  I recollect him."

"Yes, my dear.  Now, my dear, I think you are a judge of character, 
and I should like to have your opinion of him."

"Oh, Mrs. Woodcourt," said I, "that is so difficult!"

"Why is it so difficult, my dear?" she returned.  "I don't see it 
myself."

"To give an opinion--"

"On so slight an acquaintance, my dear.  THAT'S true."

I didn't mean that, because Mr. Woodcourt had been at our house a 
good deal altogether and had become quite intimate with my 
guardian.  I said so, and added that he seemed to be very clever in 
his profession--we thought--and that his kindness and gentleness to 
Miss Flite were above all praise.

"You do him justice!" said Mrs. Woodcourt, pressing my hand.  "You 
define him exactly.  Allan is a dear fellow, and in his profession 
faultless.  I say it, though I am his mother.  Still, I must 
confess he is not without faults, love."

"None of us are," said I.

"Ah! But his really are faults that he might correct, and ought to 
correct," returned the sharp old lady, sharply shaking her head.  
"I am so much attached to you that I may confide in you, my dear, 
as a third party wholly disinterested, that he is fickleness 
itself."

I said I should have thought it hardly possible that he could have 
been otherwise than constant to his profession and zealous in the 
pursuit of it, judging from the reputation he had earned.

"You are right again, my dear," the old lady retorted, "but I don't 
refer to his profession, look you."

"Oh!" said I.

"No," said she.  "I refer, my dear, to his social conduct.  He is 
always paying trivial attentions to young ladies, and always has 
been, ever since he was eighteen.  Now, my dear, he has never 
really cared for any one of them and has never meant in doing this 
to do any harm or to express anything but politeness and good 
nature.  Still, it's not right, you know; is it?"

"No," said I, as she seemed to wait for me.

"And it might lead to mistaken notions, you see, my dear."

I supposed it might.

"Therefore, I have told him many times that he really should be 
more careful, both in justice to himself and in justice to others.  
And he has always said, 'Mother, I will be; but you know me better 
than anybody else does, and you know I mean no harm--in short, mean 
nothing.'  All of which is very true, my dear, but is no 
justification.  However, as he is now gone so far away and for an 
indefinite time, and as he will have good opportunities and 
introductions, we may consider this past and gone.  And you, my 
dear," said the old lady, who was now all nods and smiles, 
"regarding your dear self, my love?"

"Me, Mrs. Woodcourt?"

"Not to be always selfish, talking of my son, who has gone to seek 
his fortune and to find a wife--when do you mean to seek YOUR 
fortune and to find a husband, Miss Summerson?  Hey, look you!  Now 
you blush!"

I don't think I did blush--at all events, it was not important if I 
did--and I said my present fortune perfectly contented me and I had 
no wish to change it.

"Shall I tell you what I always think of you and the fortune yet to 
come for you, my love?" said Mrs. Woodcourt.

"If you believe you are a good prophet," said I. 

"Why, then, it is that you will marry some one very rich and very 
worthy, much older--five and twenty years, perhaps--than yourself.  
And you will be an excellent wife, and much beloved, and very 
happy."

"That is a good fortune," said I.  "But why is it to be mine?"

"My dear," she returned, "there's suitability in it--you are so 
busy, and so neat, and so peculiarly situated altogether that 
there's suitability in it, and it will come to pass.  And nobody, 
my love, will congratulate you more sincerely on such a marriage 
than I shall."

It was curious that this should make me uncomfortable, but I think 
it did.  I know it did.  It made me for some part of that night 
uncomfortable.  I was so ashamed of my folly that I did not like to 
confess it even to Ada, and that made me more uncomfortable still.  
I would have given anything not to have been so much in the bright 
old lady's confidence if I could have possibly declined it.  It 
gave me the most inconsistent opinions of her.  At one time I 
thought she was a story-teller, and at another time that she was 
the pink of truth.  Now I suspected that she was very cunning, next 
moment I believed her honest Welsh heart to be perfectly innocent 
and simple.  And after all, what did it matter to me, and why did 
it matter to me?  Why could not I, going up to bed with my basket 
of keys, stop to sit down by her fire and accommodate myself for a 
little while to her, at least as well as to anybody else, and not 
trouble myself about the harmless things she said to me?  Impelled 
towards her, as I certainly was, for I was very anxious that she 
should like me and was very glad indeed that she did, why should I 
harp afterwards, with actual distress and pain, on every word she 
said and weigh it over and over again in twenty scales?  Why was it 
so worrying to me to have her in our house, and confidential to me 
every night, when I yet felt that it was better and safer somehow 
that she should be there than anywhere else?  These were 
perplexities and contradictions that I could not account for.  At 
least, if I could--but I shall come to all that by and by, and it 
is mere idleness to go on about it now.

So when Mrs. Woodcourt went away, I was sorry to lose her but was 
relieved too.  And then Caddy Jellyby came down, and Caddy brought 
such a packet of domestic news that it gave us abundant occupation.

First Caddy declared (and would at first declare nothing else) that 
I was the best adviser that ever was known.  This, my pet said, was 
no news at all; and this, I said, of course, was nonsense.  Then 
Caddy told us that she was going to be married in a month and that 
if Ada and I would be her bridesmaids, she was the happiest girl in 
the world.  To be sure, this was news indeed; and I thought we 
never should have done talking about it, we had so much to say to 
Caddy, and Caddy had so much to say to us.

It seemed that Caddy's unfortunate papa had got over his 
bankruptcy--"gone through the Gazette," was the expression Caddy 
used, as if it were a tunnel--with the general clemency and 
commiseration of his creditors, and had got rid of his affairs in 
some blessed manner without succeeding in understanding them, and 
had given up everything he possessed (which was not worth much, I 
should think, to judge from the state of the furniture), and had 
satisfied every one concerned that he could do no more, poor man.  
So, he had been honourably dismissed to "the office" to begin the 
world again.  What he did at the office, I never knew; Caddy said 
he was a "custom-house and general agent," and the only thing I 
ever understood about that business was that when he wanted money 
more than usual he went to the docks to look for it, and hardly 
ever found it.

As soon as her papa had tranquillized his mind by becoming this 
shorn lamb, and they had removed to a furnished lodging in Hatton 
Garden (where I found the children, when I afterwards went there, 
cutting the horse hair out of the seats of the chairs and choking 
themselves with it), Caddy had brought about a meeting between him 
and old Mr. Turveydrop; and poor Mr. Jellyby, being very humble and 
meek, had deferred to Mr. Turveydrop's deportment so submissively 
that they had become excellent friends.  By degrees, old Mr. 
Turveydrop, thus familiarized with the idea of his son's marriage, 
had worked up his parental feelings to the height of contemplating 
that event as being near at hand and had given his gracious consent 
to the young couple commencing housekeeping at the academy in 
Newman Street when they would.

"And your papa, Caddy.  What did he say?"

"Oh! Poor Pa," said Caddy, "only cried and said he hoped we might 
get on better than he and Ma had got on.  He didn't say so before 
Prince, he only said so to me.  And he said, 'My poor girl, you 
have not been very well taught how to make a home for your husband, 
but unless you mean with all your heart to strive to do it, you bad 
better murder him than marry him--if you really love him.'"

"And how did you reassure him, Caddy?"

"Why, it was very distressing, you know, to see poor Pa so low and 
hear him say such terrible things, and I couldn't help crying 
myself.  But I told him that I DID mean it with all my heart and 
that I hoped our house would be a place for him to come and find 
some comfort in of an evening and that I hoped and thought I could 
be a better daughter to him there than at home.  Then I mentioned 
Peepy's coming to stay with me, and then Pa began to cry again and 
said the children were Indians."

"Indians, Caddy?"

"Yes," said Caddy, "wild Indians.  And Pa said"--here she began to 
sob, poor girl, not at all like the happiest girl in the world--
"that he was sensible the best thing that could happen to them was 
their being all tomahawked together."

Ada suggested that it was comfortable to know that Mr. Jellyby did 
not mean these destructive sentiments.

"No, of course I know Pa wouldn't like his family to be weltering 
in their blood," said Caddy, "but he means that they are very 
unfortunate in being Ma's children and that he is very unfortunate 
in being Ma's husband; and I am sure that's true, though it seems 
unnatural to say so."

I asked Caddy if Mrs. Jellyby knew that her wedding-day was fixed.

"Oh! You know what Ma is, Esther," she returned.  "It's impossible 
to say whether she knows it or not.  She has been told it often 
enough; and when she IS told it, she only gives me a placid look, 
as if I was I don't know what--a steeple in the distance," said 
Caddy with a sudden idea; "and then she shakes her head and says 
'Oh, Caddy, Caddy, what a tease you are!' and goes on with the 
Borrioboola letters."

"And about your wardrobe, Caddy?" said I.  For she was under no 
restraint with us.

"Well, my dear Esther,'' she returned, drying her eyes, "I must do 
the best I can and trust to my dear Prince never to have an unkind 
remembrance of my coming so shabbily to him.  If the question 
concerned an outfit for Borrioboola, Ma would know all about it and 
would be quite excited.  Being what it is, she neither knows nor 
cares."

Caddy was not at all deficient in natural affection for her mother, 
but mentioned this with tears as an undeniable fact, which I am 
afraid it was.  We were sorry for the poor dear girl and found so 
much to admire in the good disposition which had survived under 
such discouragement that we both at once (I mean Ada and I) 
proposed a little scheme that made her perfectly joyful.  This was 
her staying with us for three weeks, my staying with her for one, 
and our all three contriving and cutting out, and repairing, and 
sewing, and saving, and doing the very best we could think of to 
make the most of her stock.  My guardian being as pleased with the 
idea as Caddy was, we took her home next day to arrange the matter 
and brought her out again in triumph with her boxes and all the 
purchases that could be squeezed out of a ten-pound note, which Mr. 
Jellyby had found in the docks I suppose, but which he at all 
events gave her.  What my guardian would not have given her if we 
had encouraged him, it would be difficult to say, but we thought it 
right to compound for no more than her wedding-dress and bonnet.  
He agreed to this compromise, and if Caddy had ever been happy in 
her life, she was happy when we sat down to work.

She was clumsy enough with her needle, poor girl, and pricked her 
fingers as much as she had been used to ink them.  She could not 
help reddening a little now and then, partly with the smart and 
partly with vexation at being able to do no better, but she soon 
got over that and began to improve rapidly.  So day after day she, 
and my darling, and my little maid Charley, and a milliner out of 
the town, and I, sat hard at work, as pleasantly as possible.

Over and above this, Caddy was very anxious "to learn 
housekeeping," as she said.  Now, mercy upon us!  The idea of her 
learning housekeeping of a person of my vast experience was such a 
joke that I laughed, and coloured up, and fell into a comical 
confusion when she proposed it.  However, I said, "Caddy, I am sure 
you are very welcome to learn anything that you can learn of ME, my 
dear," and I showed her all my books and methods and all my fidgety 
ways.  You would have supposed that I was showing her some 
wonderful inventions, by her study of them; and if you had seen 
her, whenever I jingled my housekeeping keys, get up and attend me, 
certainly you might have thought that there never was a greater 
imposter than I with a blinder follower than Caddy Jellyby.

So what with working and housekeeping, and lessons to Charley, and 
backgammon in the evening with my guardian, and duets with Ada, the 
three weeks slipped fast away.  Then I went home with Caddy to see 
what could be done there, and Ada and Charley remained behind to 
take care of my guardian.

When I say I went home with Caddy, I mean to the furnished lodging 
in Hatton Garden.  We went to Newman Street two or three times, 
where preparations were in progress too--a good many, I observed, 
for enhancing the comforts of old Mr. Turveydrop, and a few for 
putting the newly married couple away cheaply at the top of the 
house--but our great point was to make the furnished lodging decent 
for the wedding-breakfast and to imbue Mrs. Jellyby beforehand with 
some faint sense of the occasion.

The latter was the more difficult thing of the two because Mrs. 
Jellyby and an unwholesome boy occupied the front sitting-room (the 
back one was a mere closet), and it was littered down with waste-
paper and Borrioboolan documents, as an untidy stable might be 
littered with straw.  Mrs. Jellyby sat there all day drinking 
strong coffee, dictating, and holding Borrioboolan interviews by 
appointment.  The unwholesome boy, who seemed to me to be going 
into a decline, took his meals out of the house.  When Mr. Jellyby 
came home, he usually groaned and went down into the kitchen.  
There he got something to eat if the servant would give him 
anything, and then, feeling that he was in the way, went out and 
walked about Hatton Garden in the wet.  The poor children scrambled 
up and tumbled down the house as they had always been accustomed to 
do.

The production of these devoted little sacrifices in any 
presentable condition being quite out of the question at a week's 
notice, I proposed to Caddy that we should make them as happy as we 
could on her marriage morning in the attic where they all slept, 
and should confine our greatest efforts to her mama and her mama's 
room, and a clean breakfast.  In truth Mrs. Jellyby required a good 
deal of attention, the lattice-work up her back having widened 
considerably since I first knew her and her hair looking like the 
mane of a dustman's horse.

Thinking that the display of Caddy's wardrobe would be the best 
means of approaching the subject, I invited Mrs. Jellyby to come 
and look at it spread out on Caddy's bed in the evening after the 
unwholesome boy was gone.

"My dear Miss Summerson," said she, rising from her desk with her 
usual sweetness of temper, "these are really ridiculous 
preparations, though your assisting them is a proof of your 
kindness.  There is something so inexpressibly absurd to me in the 
idea of Caddy being married!  Oh, Caddy, you silly, silly, silly 
puss!"

She came upstairs with us notwithstanding and looked at the clothes 
in her customary far-off manner.  They suggested one distinct idea 
to her, for she said with her placid smile, and shaking her head, 
"My good Miss Summerson, at half the cost, this weak child might 
have been equipped for Africa!"

On our going downstairs again, Mrs. Jellyby asked me whether this 
troublesome business was really to take place next Wednesday.  And 
on my replying yes, she said, "Will my room be required, my dear 
Miss Summerson?  For it's quite impossible that I can put my papers 
away."

I took the liberty of saying that the room would certainly be 
wanted and that I thought we must put the papers away somewhere.  
"Well, my dear Miss Summerson," said Mrs. Jellyby, "you know best, 
I dare say.  But by obliging me to employ a boy, Caddy has 
embarrassed me to that extent, overwhelmed as I am with public 
business, that I don't know which way to turn.  We have a 
Ramification meeting, too, on Wednesday afternoon, and the 
inconvenience is very serious."

"It is not likely to occur again," said I, smiling.  "Caddy will be 
married but once, probably."

"That's true," Mrs. Jellyby replied; "that's true, my dear.  I 
suppose we must make the best of it!"

The next question was how Mrs. Jellyby should be dressed on the 
occasion.  I thought it very curious to see her looking on serenely 
from her writing-table while Caddy and I discussed it, occasionally 
shaking her head at us with a half-reproachful smile like a 
superior spirit who could just bear with our trifling.

The state in which her dresses were, and the extraordinary 
confusion in which she kept them, added not a little to our 
difficulty; but at length we devised something not very unlike what 
a common-place mother might wear on such an occasion.  The 
abstracted manner in which Mrs. Jellyby would deliver herself up to 
having this attire tried on by the dressmaker, and the sweetness 
with which she would then observe to me how sorry she was that I 
had not turned my thoughts to Africa, were consistent with the rest 
of her behaviour.

The lodging was rather confined as to space, but I fancied that if 
Mrs. Jellyby's household had been the only lodgers in Saint Paul's 
or Saint Peter's, the sole advantage they would have found in the 
size of the building would have been its affording a great deal of 
room to be dirty in.  I believe that nothing belonging to the 
family which it had been possible to break was unbroken at the time 
of those preparations for Caddy's marriage, that nothing which it 
had been possible to spoil in any way was unspoilt, and that no 
domestic object which was capable of collecting dirt, from a dear 
child's knee to the door-plate, was without as much dirt as could 
well accumulate upon it.

Poor Mr. Jellyby, who very seldom spoke and almost always sat when 
he was at home with his head against the wall, became interested 
when he saw that Caddy and I were attempting to establish some 
order among all this waste and ruin and took off his coat to help.  
But such wonderful things came tumbling out of the closets when 
they were opened--bits of mouldy pie, sour bottles, Mrs. Jellyby's 
caps, letters, tea, forks, odd boots and shoes of children, 
firewood, wafers, saucepan-lids, damp sugar in odds and ends of 
paper bags, footstools, blacklead brushes, bread, Mrs. Jellyby's 
bonnets, books with butter sticking to the binding, guttered candle 
ends put out by being turned upside down in broken candlesticks, 
nutshells, heads and tails of shrimps, dinner-mats, gloves, coffee-
grounds, umbrellas--that he looked frightened, and left off again.  
But he came regularly every evening and sat without his coat, with 
his head against the wall, as though he would have helped us if he 
had known how.

"Poor Pa!" said Caddy to me on the night before the great day, when 
we really had got things a little to rights.  "It seems unkind to 
leave him, Esther.  But what could I do if I stayed!  Since I first 
knew you, I have tidied and tidied over and over again, but it's 
useless.  Ma and Africa, together, upset the whole house directly.  
We never have a servant who don't drink.  Ma's ruinous to 
everything."

Mr. Jellyby could not hear what she said, but he seemed very low 
indeed and shed tears, I thought.

"My heart aches for him; that it does!" sobbed Caddy.  "I can't 
help thinking to-night, Esther, how dearly I hope to be happy with 
Prince, and how dearly Pa hoped, I dare say, to be happy with Ma.  
What a disappointed life!"

"My dear Caddy!" said Mr. Jellyby, looking slowly round from the 
wail.  It was the first time, I think, I ever heard him say three 
words together.

"Yes, Pa!" cried Caddy, going to him and embracing him 
affectionately.

"My dear Caddy," said Mr. Jellyby.  "Never have--"

"Not Prince, Pa?" faltered Caddy.  "Not have Prince?"

"Yes, my dear," said Mr. Jellyby.  "Have him, certainly.  But, 
never have--"

I mentioned in my account of our first visit in Thavies Inn that 
Richard described Mr. Jellyby as frequently opening his mouth after 
dinner without saying anything.  It was a habit of his.  He opened 
his mouth now a great many times and shook his head in a melancholy 
manner.

"What do you wish me not to have?  Don't have what, dear Pa?" asked 
Caddy, coaxing him, with her arms round his neck.

"Never have a mission, my dear child."

Mr. Jellyby groaned and laid his head against the wall again, and 
this was the only time I ever heard him make any approach to 
expressing his sentiments on the Borrioboolan question.  I suppose 
he had been more talkative and lively once, but he seemed to have 
been completely exhausted long before I knew him.

I thought Mrs. Jellyby never would have left off serenely looking 
over her papers and drinking coffee that night.  It was twelve 
o'clock before we could obtain possession of the room, and the 
clearance it required then was so discouraging that Caddy, who was 
almost tired out, sat down in the middle of the dust and cried.  
But she soon cheered up, and we did wonders with it before we went 
to bed.

In the morning it looked, by the aid of a few flowers and a 
quantity of soap and water and a little arrangement, quite gay.  
The plain breakfast made a cheerful show, and Caddy was perfectly 
charming.  But when my darling came, I thought--and I think now--
that I never had seen such a dear face as my beautiful pet's.

We made a little feast for the children upstairs, and we put Peepy 
at the head of the table, and we showed them Caddy in her bridal 
dress, and they clapped their hands and hurrahed, and Caddy cried 
to think that she was going away from them and hugged them over and 
over again until we brought Prince up to fetch her away--when, I am 
sorry to say, Peepy bit him.  Then there was old Mr. Turveydrop 
downstairs, in a state of deportment not to be expressed, benignly 
blessing Caddy and giving my guardian to understand that his son's 
happiness was his own parental work and that he sacrificed personal 
considerations to ensure it.  "My dear sir," said Mr. Turveydrop, 
"these young people will live with me; my house is large enough for 
their accommodation, and they shall not want the shelter of my 
roof.  I could have wished--you will understand the allusion, Mr. 
Jarndyce, for you remember my illustrious patron the Prince Regent
--I could have wished that my son had married into a family where 
there was more deportment, but the will of heaven be done!"

Mr. and Mrs. Pardiggle were of the party--Mr. Pardiggle, an 
obstinate-looking man with a large waistcoat and stubbly hair, who 
was always talking in a loud bass voice about his mite, or Mrs. 
Pardiggle's mite, or their five boys' mites.  Mr. Quale, with his 
hair brushed back as usual and his knobs of temples shining very 
much, was also there, not in the character of a disappointed lover, 
but as the accepted of a young--at least, an unmarried--lady, a 
Miss Wisk, who was also there.  Miss Wisk's mission, my guardian 
said, was to show the world that woman's mission was man's mission 
and that the only genuine mission of both man and woman was to be 
always moving declaratory resolutions about things in general at 
public meetings.  The guests were few, but were, as one might 
expect at Mrs. Jellyby's, all devoted to public objects only.  
Besides those I have mentioned, there was an extremely dirty lady 
with her bonnet all awry and the ticketed price of her dress still 
sticking on it, whose neglected home, Caddy told me, was like a 
filthy wilderness, but whose church was like a fancy fair.  A very 
contentious gentleman, who said it was his mission to be 
everybody's brother but who appeared to be on terms of coolness 
with the whole of his large family, completed the party.

A party, having less in common with such an occasion, could hardly 
have been got together by any ingenuity.  Such a mean mission as 
the domestic mission was the very last thing to be endured among 
them; indeed, Miss Wisk informed us, with great indignation, before 
we sat down to breakfast, that the idea of woman's mission lying 
chiefly in the narrow sphere of home was an outrageous slander on 
the part of her tyrant, man.  One other singularity was that nobody 
with a mission--except Mr. Quale, whose mission, as I think I have 
formerly said, was to be in ecstasies with everybody's mission--
cared at all for anybody's mission.  Mrs. Pardiggle being as clear 
that the only one infallible course was her course of pouncing upon 
the poor and applying benevolence to them like a strait-waistcoat; 
as Miss Wisk was that the only practical thing for the world was 
the emancipation of woman from the thraldom of her tyrant, man.  
Mrs. Jellyby, all the while, sat smiling at the limited vision that 
could see anything but Borrioboola-Gha.

But I am anticipating now the purport of our conversation on the 
ride home instead of first marrying Caddy.  We all went to church, 
and Mr. Jellyby gave her away.  Of the air with which old Mr. 
Turveydrop, with his hat under his left arm (the inside presented 
at the clergyman like a cannon) and his eyes creasing themselves up 
into his wig, stood stiff and high-shouldered behind us bridesmaids 
during the ceremony, and afterwards saluted us, I could never say 
enough to do it justice.  Miss Wisk, whom I cannot report as 
prepossessing in appearance, and whose manner was grim, listened to 
the proceedings, as part of woman's wrongs, with a disdainful face.  
Mrs. Jellyby, with her calm smile and her bright eyes, looked the 
least concerned of all the company.

We duly came back to breakfast, and Mrs. Jellyby sat at the head of 
the table and Mr. Jellyby at the foot.  Caddy had previously stolen 
upstairs to hug the children again and tell them that her name was 
Turveydrop.  But this piece of information, instead of being an 
agreeable surprise to Peepy, threw him on his back in such 
transports of kicking grief that I could do nothing on being sent 
for but accede to the proposal that he should be admitted to the 
breakfast table.  So he came down and sat in my lap; and Mrs. 
Jellyby, after saying, in reference to the state of his pinafore, 
"Oh, you naughty Peepy, what a shocking little pig you are!" was 
not at all discomposed.  He was very good except that he brought 
down Noah with him (out of an ark I had given him before we went to 
church) and WOULD dip him head first into the wine-glasses and then 
put him in his mouth.

My guardian, with his sweet temper and his quick perception and his 
amiable face, made something agreeable even out of the ungenial 
company.  None of them seemed able to talk about anything but his, 
or her, own one subject, and none of them seemed able to talk about 
even that as part of a world in which there was anything else; but 
my guardian turned it all to the merry encouragement of Caddy and 
the honour of the occasion, and brought us through the breakfast 
nobly.  What we should have done without him, I am afraid to think, 
for all the company despising the bride and bridegroom and old Mr. 
Turveydrop--and old Mr. Thrveydrop, in virtue of his deportment, 
considering himself vastly superior to all the company--it was a 
very unpromising case.

At last the time came when poor Caddy was to go and when all her 
property was packed on the hired coach and pair that was to take 
her and her husband to Gravesend.  It affected us to see Caddy 
clinging, then, to her deplorable home and hanging on her mother's 
neck with the greatest tenderness.

"I am very sorry I couldn't go on writing from dictation, Ma," 
sobbed Caddy.  "I hope you forgive me now."

"Oh, Caddy, Caddy!" said Mrs. Jellyby.  "I have told you over and 
over again that I have engaged a boy, and there's an end of it."

"You are sure you are not the least angry with me, Ma?  Say you are 
sure before I go away, Ma?"

"You foolish Caddy," returned Mrs. Jellyby, "do I look angry, or 
have I inclination to be angry, or time to be angry?  How CAN you?"

"Take a little care of Pa while I am gone, Mama!"

Mrs. Jellyby positively laughed at the fancy.  "You romantic 
child," said she, lightly patting Caddy's back.  "Go along.  I am 
excellent friends with you.  Now, good-bye, Caddy, and be very 
happy!"

Then Caddy hung upon her father and nursed his cheek against hers 
as if he were some poor dull child in pain.  All this took place in 
the hall.  Her father released her, took out his pocket 
handkerchief, and sat down on the stairs with his head against the 
wall.  I hope he found some consolation in walls.  I almost think 
he did.

And then Prince took her arm in his and turned with great emotion 
and respect to his father, whose deportment at that moment was 
overwhelming.

"Thank you over and over again, father!" said Prince, kissing his 
hand.  "I am very grateful for all your kindness and consideration 
regarding our marriage, and so, I can assure you, is Caddy."

"Very," sobbed Caddy.  "Ve-ry!"

"My dear son," said Mr. Turveydrop, "and dear daughter, I have done 
my duty.  If the spirit of a sainted wooman hovers above us and 
looks down on the occasion, that, and your constant affection, will 
be my recompense.  You will not fail in YOUR duty, my son and 
daughter, I believe?"

"Dear father, never!" cried Prince.

"Never, never, dear Mr. Turveydrop!" said Caddy.

"This," returned Mr. Turveydrop, "is as it should be.  My children, 
my home is yours, my heart is yours, my all is yours.  I will never 
leave you; nothing but death shall part us.  My dear son, you 
contemplate an absence of a week, I think?"

"A week, dear father.  We shall return home this day week."

"My dear child," said Mr. Turveydrop, "let me, even under the 
present exceptional circumstances, recommend strict punctuality.  
It is highly important to keep the connexion together; and schools, 
if at all neglected, are apt to take offence."

"This day week, father, we shall be sure to be home to dinner."

"Good!" said Mr. Turveydrop.  "You will find fires, my dear 
Caroline, in your own room, and dinner prepared in my apartment.  
Yes, yes, Prince!" anticipating some self-denying objection on his 
son's part with a great air.  "You and our Caroline will be strange 
in the upper part of the premises and will, therefore, dine that 
day in my apartment.  Now, bless ye!"

They drove away, and whether I wondered most at Mrs. Jellyby or at 
Mr. Turveydrop, I did not know.  Ada and my guardian were in the 
same condition when we came to talk it over.  But before we drove 
away too, I received a most unexpected and eloquent compliment from 
Mr. Jellyby.  He came up to me in the hall, took both my hands, 
pressed them earnestly, and opened his mouth twice.  I was so sure 
of his meaning that I said, quite flurried, "You are very welcome, 
sir.  Pray don't mention it!"

"I hope this marriage is for the best, guardian," said I when we 
three were on our road home.

"I hope it is, little woman.  Patience.  We shall see."

"Is the wind in the east to-day?" I ventured to ask him.

He laughed heartily and answered, "No."

"But it must have been this morning, I think," said I.

He answered "No" again, and this time my dear girl confidently 
answered "No" too and shook the lovely head which, with its 
blooming flowers against the golden hair, was like the very spring.  
"Much YOU know of east winds, my ugly darling," said I, kissing her 
in my admiration--I couldn't help it.

Well!  It was only their love for me, I know very well, and it is a 
long time ago.  I must write it even if I rub it out again, because 
it gives me so much pleasure.  They said there could be no east 
wind where Somebody was; they said that wherever Dame Durden went, 
there was sunshine and summer air.



CHAPTER XXXI

Nurse and Patient


I had not been at home again many days when one evening I went 
upstairs into my own room to take a peep over Charley's shoulder 
and see how she was getting on with her copy-book.  Writing was a 
trying business to Charley, who seemed to have no natural power 
over a pen, but in whose hand every pen appeared to become 
perversely animated, and to go wrong and crooked, and to stop, and 
splash, and sidle into corners like a saddle-donkey.  It was very 
odd to see what old letters Charley's young hand had made, they so 
wrinkled, and shrivelled, and tottering, it so plump and round.  
Yet Charley was uncommonly expert at other things and had as nimble 
little fingers as I ever watched.

"Well, Charley," said I, looking over a copy of the letter O in 
which it was represented as square, triangular, pear-shaped, and 
collapsed in all kinds of ways, "we are improving.  If we only get 
to make it round, we shall be perfect, Charley."

Then I made one, and Charley made one, and the pen wouldn't join 
Charley's neatly, but twisted it up into a knot.

"Never mind, Charley.  We shall do it in time."

Charley laid down her pen, the copy being finished, opened and shut 
her cramped little hand, looked gravely at the page, half in pride 
and half in doubt, and got up, and dropped me a curtsy.

"Thank you, miss.  If you please, miss, did you know a poor person 
of the name of Jenny?"

"A brickmaker's wife, Charley?  Yes."

"She came and spoke to me when I was out a little while ago, and 
said you knew her, miss.  She asked me if I wasn't the young lady's 
little maid--meaning you for the young lady, miss--and I said yes, 
miss."

"I thought she had left this neighbourhood altogether, Charley."

"So she had, miss, but she's come back again to where she used to 
live--she and Liz.  Did you know another poor person of the name of 
Liz, miss?"

"I think I do, Charley, though not by name."

"That's what she said!" returned Chariey.  "They have both come 
back, miss, and have been tramping high and low."

"Tramping high and low, have they, Charley?"

"Yes, miss."  If Charley could only have made the letters in her 
copy as round as the eyes with which she looked into my face, they 
would have been excellent.  "And this poor person came about the 
house three or four days, hoping to get a glimpse of you, miss--all 
she wanted, she said--but you were away.  That was when she saw me.  
She saw me a-going about, miss," said Charley with a short laugh of 
the greatest delight and pride, "and she thought I looked like your 
maid!"

"Did she though, really, Charley?"

"Yes, miss!" said Charley.  "Really and truly."  And Charley, with 
another short laugh of the purest glee, made her eyes very round 
again and looked as serious as became my maid.  I was never tired 
of seeing Charley in the full enjoyment of that great dignity, 
standing before me with her youthful face and figure, and her 
steady manner, and her childish exultation breaking through it now 
and then in the pleasantest way.

"And where did you see her, Charley?" said I.

My little maid's countenance fell as she replied, "By the doctor's 
shop, miss."  For Charley wore her black frock yet.

I asked if the brickmaker's wife were ill, but Charley said no.  It 
was some one else.  Some one in her cottage who had tramped down to 
Saint Albans and was tramping he didn't know where.  A poor boy, 
Charley said.  No father, no mother, no any one.  "Like as Tom 
might have been, miss, if Emma and me had died after father," said 
Charley, her round eyes filling with tears.

"And she was getting medicine for him, Charley?"

"She said, miss," returned Charley, "how that he had once done as 
much for her."

My little maid's face was so eager and her quiet hands were folded 
so closely in one another as she stood looking at me that I had no 
great difficulty in reading her thoughts.  "Well, Charley," said I, 
"it appears to me that you and I can do no better than go round to 
Jenny's and see what's the matter."

The alacrity with which Charley brought my bonnet and veil, and 
having dressed me, quaintly pinned herself into her warm shawl and 
made herself look like a little old woman, sufficiently expressed 
her readiness.  So Charley and I, without saying anything to any 
one, went out.

It was a cold, wild night, and the trees shuddered in the wind.  
The rain had been thick and heavy all day, and with little 
intermission for many days.  None was falling just then, however.  
The sky had partly cleared, but was very gloomy--even above us, 
where a few stars were shining.  In the north and north-west, where 
the sun had set three hours before, there was a pale dead light 
both beautiful and awful; and into it long sullen lines of cloud 
waved up like a sea stricken immovable as it was heaving.  Towards 
London a lurid glare overhung the whole dark waste, and the 
contrast between these two lights, and the fancy which the redder 
light engendered of an unearthly fire, gleaming on all the unseen 
buildings of the city and on all the faces of its many thousands of 
wondering inhabitants, was as solemn as might be.

I had no thought that night--none, I am quite sure--of what was 
soon to happen to me.  But I have always remembered since that when 
we had stopped at the garden-gate to look up at the sky, and when 
we went upon our way, I had for a moment an undefinable impression 
of myself as being something different from what I then was.  I 
know it was then and there that I had it.  I have ever since 
connected the feeling with that spot and time and with everything 
associated with that spot and time, to the distant voices in the 
town, the barking of a dog, and the sound of wheels coming down the 
miry hill.

It was Saturday night, and most of the people belonging to the 
place where we were going were drinking elsewhere.  We found it 
quieter than I had previously seen it, though quite as miserable.  
The kilns were burning, and a stifling vapour set towards us with a 
pale-blue glare.

We came to the cottage, where there was a feeble candle in the 
patched window.  We tapped at the door and went in.  The mother of 
the little child who had died was sitting in a chair on one side of 
the poor fire by the bed; and opposite to her, a wretched boy, 
supported by the chimney-piece, was cowering on the floor.  He held 
under his arm, like a little bundle, a fragment of a fur cap; and 
as he tried to warm himself, he shook until the crazy door and 
window shook.  The place was closer than before and had an 
unhealthy and a very peculiar smell.

I had not lifted by veil when I first spoke to the woman, which was 
at the moment of our going in.  The boy staggered up instantly and 
stared at me with a remarkable expression of surprise and terror.

His action was so quick and my being the cause of it was so evident 
that I stood still instead of advancing nearer.

"I won't go no more to the berryin ground," muttered the boy; "I 
ain't a-going there, so I tell you!"

I lifted my veil and spoke to the woman.  She said to me in a low 
voice, "Don't mind him, ma'am.  He'll soon come back to his head," 
and said to him, "Jo, Jo, what's the matter?"

"I know wot she's come for!" cried the boy.

"Who?"

"The lady there.  She's come to get me to go along with her to the 
berryin ground.  I won't go to the berryin ground.  I don't like 
the name on it.  She might go a-berryin ME."  His shivering came on 
again, and as he leaned against the wall, he shook the hovel.

"He has been talking off and on about such like all day, ma'am," 
said Jenny softly.  "Why, how you stare!  This is MY lady, Jo."

"Is it?" returned the boy doubtfully, and surveying me with his arm 
held out above his burning eyes.  "She looks to me the t'other one.  
It ain't the bonnet, nor yet it ain't the gownd, but she looks to 
me the t'other one."

My little Charley, with her premature experience of illness and 
trouble, had pulled off her bonnet and shawl and now went quietly 
up to him with a chair and sat him down in it like an old sick 
nurse.  Except that no such attendant could have shown him 
Charley's youthful face, which seemed to engage his confidence.

"I say!" said the boy.  "YOU tell me.  Ain't the lady the t'other 
lady?"

Charley shook her head as she methodically drew his rags about him 
and made him as warm as she could.

"Oh!" the boy muttered.  "Then I s'pose she ain't."

"I came to see if I could do you any good," said I.  "What is the 
matter with you?"

"I'm a-being froze," returned the boy hoarsely, with his haggard 
gaze wandering about me, "and then burnt up, and then froze, and 
then burnt up, ever so many times in a hour.  And my head's all 
sleepy, and all a-going mad-like--and I'm so dry--and my bones 
isn't half so much bones as pain.

"When did he come here?" I asked the woman.

"This morning, ma'am, I found him at the corner of the town.  I had 
known him up in London yonder.  Hadn't I, Jo?"

"Tom-all-Alone's," the boy replied.

Whenever he fixed his attention or his eyes, it was only for a very 
little while.  He soon began to droop his head again, and roll it 
heavily, and speak as if he were half awake.

"When did he come from London?" I asked.

"I come from London yes'day," said the boy himself, now flushed and 
hot.  "I'm a-going somewheres."

"Where is he going?" I asked.

"Somewheres," repeated the boy in a louder tone.  "I have been 
moved on, and moved on, more nor ever I was afore, since the 
t'other one give me the sov'ring.  Mrs. Snagsby, she's always a-
watching, and a-driving of me--what have I done to her?--and 
they're all a-watching and a-driving of me.  Every one of 'em's 
doing of it, from the time when I don't get up, to the time when I 
don't go to bed.  And I'm a-going somewheres.  That's where I'm a-
going.  She told me, down in Tom-all-Alone's, as she came from 
Stolbuns, and so I took the Stolbuns Road.  It's as good as 
another."

He always concluded by addressing Charley.

"What is to be done with him?" said I, taking the woman aside.  "He 
could not travel in this state even if he had a purpose and knew 
where he was going!"

"I know no more, ma'am, than the dead," she replied, glancing 
compassionately at him.  "Perhaps the dead know better, if they 
could only tell us.  I've kept him here all day for pity's sake, 
and I've given him broth and physic, and Liz has gone to try if any 
one will take him in (here's my pretty in the bed--her child, but I 
call it mine); but I can't keep him long, for if my husband was to 
come home and find him here, he'd be rough in putting him out and 
might do him a hurt.  Hark! Here comes Liz back!"

The other woman came hurriedly in as she spoke, and the boy got up 
with a half-obscured sense that he was expected to be going.  When 
the little child awoke, and when and how Charley got at it, took it 
out of bed, and began to walk about hushing it, I don't know.  
There she was, doing all this in a quiet motherly manner as if she 
were living in Mrs. Blinder's attic with Tom and Emma again.

The friend had been here and there, and had been played about from 
hand to hand, and had come back as she went.  At first it was too 
early for the boy to be received into the proper refuge, and at 
last it was too late.  One official sent her to another, and the 
other sent her back again to the first, and so backward and 
forward, until it appeared to me as if both must have been 
appointed for their skill in evading their duties instead of 
performing them.  And now, after all, she said, breathing quickly, 
for she had been running and was frightened too, "Jenny, your 
master's on the road home, and mine's not far behind, and the Lord 
help the boy, for we can do no more for him!"  They put a few 
halfpence together and hurried them into his hand, and so, in an 
oblivious, half-thankful, half-insensible way, he shuffled out of 
the house.

"Give me the child, my dear," said its mother to Charley, "and 
thank you kindly too!  Jenny, woman dear, good night!

Young lady, if my master don't fall out with me, I'll look down by 
the kiln by and by, where the boy will be most like, and again in 
the morning!"  She hurried off, and presenfty we passed her hushing 
and singing to her child at her own door and looking anxiously 
along the road for her drunken husband.

I was afraid of staying then to speak to either woman, lest I 
should bring her into trouble.  But I said to Charley that we must 
not leave the boy to die.  Charley, who knew what to do much better 
than I did, and whose quickness equalled her presence of mind, 
glided on before me, and presently we came up with Jo, just short 
of the brick-kiln.

I think he must have begun his journey with some small bundle under 
his arm and must have had it stolen or lost it.  For he still 
carried his wretched fragment of fur cap like a bundle, though he 
went bareheaded through the rain, which now fell fast.  He stopped 
when we called to him and again showed a dread of me when I came 
up, standing with his lustrous eyes fixed upon me, and even 
arrested in his shivering fit.

I asked him to come with us, and we would take care that he had 
some shelter for the night.

"I don't want no shelter," he said; "I can lay amongst the warm 
bricks."

"But don't you know that people die there?" replied Charley.

"They dies everywheres," said the boy.  "They dies in their 
lodgings--she knows where; I showed her--and they dies down in Tom-
all-Alone's in heaps.  They dies more than they lives, according to 
what I see."  Then he hoarsely whispered Charley, "If she ain't the 
t'other one, she ain't the forrenner.  Is there THREE of 'em then?"

Charley looked at me a little frightened.  I felt half frightened 
at myself when the boy glared on me so.

But he turned and followed when I beckoned to him, and finding that 
he acknowledged that influence in me, I led the way straight home.  
It was not far, only at the summit of the hill.  We passed but one 
man.  I doubted if we should have got home without assistance, the 
boy's steps were so uncertain and tremulous.  He made no complaint, 
however, and was strangely unconcerned about himself, if I may say 
so strange a thing.

Leaving him in the hall for a moment, shrunk into the corner of the 
window-seat and staring with an indifference that scarcely could be 
called wonder at the comfort and brightness about him, I went into 
the drawing-room to speak to my guardian.  There I found Mr. 
Skimpole, who had come down by the coach, as he frequently did 
without notice, and never bringing any clothes with him, but always 
borrowing everything he wanted.

They came out with me directly to look at the boy.  The servants 
had gathered in the hall too, and he shivered in the window-seat 
with Charley standing by him, like some wounded animal that had 
been found in a ditch.

"This is a sorrowful case," said my guardian after asking him a 
question or two and touching him and examining his eyes.  "What do 
you say, Harold?"

"You had better turn him out," said Mr. Skimpole.

"What do you mean?" inquired my guardian, almost sternly.

"My dear Jarndyce," said Mr. Skimpole, "you know what I am: I am a 
child.  Be cross to me if I deserve it.  But I have a 
constitutional objection to this sort of thing.  I always had, when 
I was a medical man.  He's not safe, you know.  There's a very bad 
sort of fever about him."

Mr. Skimpole had retreated from the hall to the drawing-room again 
and said this in his airy way, seated on the music-stool as we 
stood by.

"You'll say it's childish," observed Mr. Skimpole, looking gaily at 
us.  "Well, I dare say it may be; but I AM a child, and I never 
pretend to be anything else.  If you put him out in the road, you 
only put him where he was before.  He will be no worse off than he 
was, you know.  Even make him better off, if you like.  Give him 
sixpence, or five shillings, or five pound ten--you are 
arithmeticians, and I am not--and get rid of him!"

"And what is he to do then?" asked my guardian.

"Upon my life," said Mr. Skimpole, shrugging his shoulders with his 
engaging smile, "I have not the least idea what he is to do then.  
But I have no doubt he'll do it."

"Now, is it not a horrible reflection," said my guardian, to whom I 
had hastily explained the unavailing efforts of the two women, "is 
it not a horrible reflection," walking up and down and rumpling his 
hair, "that if this wretched creature were a convicted prisoner, 
his hospital would be wide open to him, and he would be as well 
taken care of as any sick boy in the kingdom?"

"My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, "you'll pardon the 
simplicity of the question, coming as it does from a creature who 
is perfectly simple in worldly matters, but why ISN'T he a prisoner 
then?"

My guardian stopped and looked at him with a whimsical mixture of 
amusement and indignation in his face.

"Our young friend is not to be suspected of any delicacy, I should 
imagine," said Mr. Skimpole, unabashed and candid.  "It seems to me 
that it would be wiser, as well as in a certain kind of way more 
respectable, if he showed some misdirected energy that got him into 
prison.  There would be more of an adventurous spirit in it, and 
consequently more of a certain sort of poetry."

"I believe," returned my guardian, resuming his uneasy walk, "that 
there is not such another child on earth as yourself."

"Do you really?" said Mr. Skimpole.  "I dare say!  But I confess I 
don't see why our young friend, in his degree, should not seek to 
invest himself with such poetry as is open to him.  He is no doubt 
born with an appetite--probably, when he is in a safer state of 
health, he has an excellent appetite.  Very well.  At our young 
friend's natural dinner hour, most likely about noon, our young 
friend says in effect to society, 'I am hungry; will you have the 
goodness to produce your spoon and feed me?'  Society, which has 
taken upon itself the general arrangement of the whole system of 
spoons and professes to have a spoon for our young friend, does NOT 
produce that spoon; and our young friend, therefore, says 'You 
really must excuse me if I seize it.'  Now, this appears to me a 
case of misdirected energy, which has a certain amount of reason in 
it and a certain amount of romance; and I don't know but what I 
should be more interested in our young friend, as an illustration 
of such a case, than merely as a poor vagabond--which any one can 
be."

"In the meantime," I ventured to observe, "he is getting worse."

"In the meantime," said Mr. Skimpole cheerfully, "as Miss 
Summerson, with her practical good sense, observes, he is getting 
worse.  Therefore I recommend your turning him out before he gets 
still worse."

The amiable face with which he said it, I think I shall never 
forget.

"Of course, little woman," observed my guardian, tuming to me, "I 
can ensure his admission into the proper place by merely going 
there to enforce it, though it's a bad state of things when, in his 
condition, that is necessary.  But it's growing late, and is a very 
bad night, and the boy is worn out already.  There is a bed in the 
wholesome loft-room by the stable; we had better keep him there 
till morning, when he can be wrapped up and removed.  We'll do 
that."

"Oh!" said Mr. Skimpole, with his hands upon the keys of the piano 
as we moved away.  "Are you going back to our young friend?"

"Yes," said my guardian.

"How I envy you your constitution, Jarndyce!" returned Mr. Skimpole 
with playful admiration.  "You don't mind these things; neither 
does Miss Summerson.  You are ready at all times to go anywhere, 
and do anything.  Such is will!  I have no will at all--and no 
won't--simply can't."

"You can't recommend anything for the boy, I suppose?" said my 
guardian, looking back over his shoulder half angrily; only half 
angrily, for he never seemed to consider Mr. Skimpole an 
accountable being.

"My dear Jarndyce, I observed a bottle of cooling medicine in his 
pocket, and it's impossible for him to do better than take it.  You 
can tell them to sprinkle a little vinegar about the place where he 
sleeps and to keep it moderately cool and him moderately warm.  But 
it is mere impertinence in me to offer any recommendation.  Miss 
Summerson has such a knowledge of detail and such a capacity for 
the administration of detail that she knows all about it."

We went back into the hall and explained to Jo what we proposed to 
do, which Charley explained to him again and which he received with 
the languid unconcern I had already noticed, wearily looking on at 
what was done as if it were for somebody else.  The servants 
compassionating his miserable state and being very anxious to help, 
we soon got the loft-room ready; and some of the men about the 
house carried him across the wet yard, well wrapped up.  It was 
pleasant to observe how kind they were to him and how there 
appeared to be a general impression among them that frequently 
calling him "Old Chap" was likely to revive his spirits.  Charley 
directed the operations and went to and fro between the loft-room 
and the house with such little stimulants and comforts as we 
thought it safe to give him.  My guardian himself saw him before he 
was left for the night and reported to me when he returned to the 
growlery to write a letter on the boy's behalf, which a messenger 
was charged to deliver at day-light in the morning, that he seemed 
easier and inclined to sleep.  They had fastened his door on the 
outside, he said, in case of his being delirious, but had so 
arranged that he could not make any noise without being heard.

Ada being in our room with a cold, Mr. Skimpole was left alone all 
this time and entertained himself by playing snatches of pathetic 
airs and sometimes singing to them (as we heard at a distance) with 
great expression and feeling.  When we rejoined him in the drawing-
room he said he would give us a little ballad which had come into 
his head "apropos of our young friend," and he sang one about a 
peasant boy,


   "Thrown on the wide world, doomed to wander and roam,
    Bereft of his parents, bereft of a home."


quite exquisitely.  It was a song that always made him cry, he told 
us.

He was extremely gay all the rest of the evening, for he absolutely 
chirped--those were his delighted words--when he thought by what a 
happy talent for business he was surrounded.  He gave us, in his 
glass of negus, "Better health to our young friend!" and supposed 
and gaily pursued the case of his being reserved like Whittington 
to become Lord Mayor of London.  In that event, no doubt, he would 
establish the Jarndyce Institution and the Summerson Almshouses, 
and a little annual Corporation Pilgrimage to St. Albans.  He had 
no doubt, he said, that our young friend was an excellent boy in 
his way, but his way was not the Harold Skimpole way; what Harold 
Skimpole was, Harold Skimpole had found himself, to his 
considerable surprise, when he first made his own acquaintance; he 
had accepted himself with all his failings and had thought it sound 
philosophy to make the best of the bargain; and he hoped we would 
do the same.

Charley's last report was that the boy was quiet.  I could see, 
from my window, the lantern they had left him burning quietly; and 
I went to bed very happy to think that he was sheltered.

There was more movement and more talking than usual a little before 
daybreak, and it awoke me.  As I was dressing, I looked out of my 
window and asked one of our men who had been among the active 
sympathizers last night whether there was anything wrong about the 
house.  The lantern was still burning in the loft-window.

"It's the boy, miss," said he.

"Is he worse?" I inquired.

"Gone, miss.

"Dead!"

"Dead, miss?  No.  Gone clean off."

At what time of the night he had gone, or how, or why, it seemed 
hopeless ever to divine.  The door remaining as it had been left, 
and the lantern standing in the window, it could only be supposed 
that he had got out by a trap in the floor which communicated with 
an empty cart-house below.  But he had shut it down again, if that 
were so; and it looked as if it had not been raised.  Nothing of 
any kind was missing.  On this fact being clearly ascertained, we 
all yielded to the painful belief that delirium had come upon him 
in the night and that, allured by some imaginary object or pursued 
by some imaginary horror, he had strayed away in that worse than 
helpless state; all of us, that is to say, but Mr. Skimpole, who 
repeatedly suggested, in his usual easy light style, that it had 
occurred to our young friend that he was not a safe inmate, having 
a bad kind of fever upon him, and that he had with great natural 
politeness taken himself off.

Every possible inquiry was made, and every place was searched.  The 
brick-kilns were examined, the cottages were visited, the two women 
were particularly questioned, but they knew nothing of him, and 
nobody could doubt that their wonder was genuine.  The weather had 
for some time been too wet and the night itself had been too wet to 
admit of any tracing by footsteps.  Hedge and ditch, and wall, and 
rick and stack, were examined by our men for a long distance round, 
lest the boy should be lying in such a place insensible or dead; 
but nothing was seen to indicate that he had ever been near.  From 
the time when he was left in the loft-room, he vanished.

The search continued for five days.  I do not mean that it ceased 
even then, but that my attention was then diverted into a current 
very memorable to me.

As Charley was at her writing again in my room in the evening, and 
as I sat opposite to her at work, I felt the table tremble.  
Looking up, I saw my little maid shivering from head to foot.

"Charley," said I, "are you so cold?"

"I think I am, miss," she replied.  "I don't know what it is.  I 
can't hold myself still.  I felt so yesterday at about this same 
time, miss.  Don't be uneasy, I think I'm ill."

I heard Ada's voice outside, and I hurried to the door of 
communication between my room and our pretty sitting-room, and 
locked it.  Just in time, for she tapped at it while my hand was 
yet upon the key.

Ada called to me to let her in, but I said, "Not now, my dearest.  
Go away.  There's nothing the matter; I will come to you 
presently."  Ah! It was a long, long time before my darling girl 
and I were companions again.

Charley fell ill.  In twelve hours she was very ill.  I moved her 
to my room, and laid her in my bed, and sat down quietly to nurse 
her.  I told my guardian all about it, and why I felt it was 
necessary that I should seclude myself, and my reason for not 
seeing my darling above all.  At first she came very often to the 
door, and called to me, and even reproached me with sobs and tears; 
but I wrote her a long letter saying that she made me anxious and 
unhappy and imploring her, as she loved me and wished my mind to be 
at peace, to come no nearer than the garden.  After that she came 
beneath the window even oftener than she had come to the door, and 
if I had learnt to love her dear sweet voice before when we were 
hardly ever apart, how did I learn to love it then, when I stood 
behind the window-curtain listening and replying, but not so much 
as looking out!  How did I learn to love it afterwards, when the 
harder time came!

They put a bed for me in our sitting-room; and by keeping the door 
wide open, I turned the two rooms into one, now that Ada had 
vacated that part of the house, and kept them always fresh and 
airy.  There was not a servant in or about the house but was so 
good that they would all most gladly have come to me at any hour of 
the day or night without the least fear or unwillingness, but I 
thought it best to choose one worthy woman who was never to see Ada 
and whom I could trust to come and go with all precaution.  Through 
her means I got out to take the air with my guardian when there was 
no fear of meeting Ada, and wanted for nothing in the way of 
attendance, any more than in any other respect.

And thus poor Charley sickened and grew worse, and fell into heavy 
danger of death, and lay severely ill for many a long round of day 
and night.  So patient she was, so uncomplaining, and inspired by 
such a gentle fortitude that very often as I sat by Charley holding 
her head in my arms--repose would come to her, so, when it would 
come to her in no other attitude--I silently prayed to our Father 
in heaven that I might not forget the lesson which this little 
sister taught me.

I was very sorrowful to think that Charley's pretty looks would 
change and be disfigured, even if she recovered--she was such a 
child with her dimpled face--but that thought was, for the greater 
part, lost in her greater peril.  When she was at the worst, and 
her mind rambled again to the cares of her father's sick bed and 
the little children, she still knew me so far as that she would be 
quiet in my arms when she could lie quiet nowhere else, and murmur 
out the wanderings of her mind less restlessly.  At those times I 
used to think, how should I ever tell the two remaining babies that 
the baby who had learned of her faithful heart to be a mother to 
them in their need was dead!

There were other times when Charley knew me well and talked to me, 
telling me that she sent her love to Tom and Emma and that she was 
sure Tom would grow up to be a good man.  At those times Charley 
would speak to me of what she had read to her father as well as she 
could to comfort him, of that young man carried out to be buried 
who was the only son of his mother and she was a widow, of the 
ruler's daughter raised up by the gracious hand upon her bed of 
death.  And Charley told me that when her father died she had 
kneeled down and prayed in her first sorrow that he likewise might 
be raised up and given back to his poor children, and that if she 
should never get better and should die too, she thought it likely 
that it might come into Tom's mind to offer the same prayer for 
her.  Then would I show Tom how these people of old days had been 
brought back to life on earth, only that we might know our hope to 
be restored to heaven!

But of all the various times there were in Charley's illness, there 
was not one when she lost the gentle qualities I have spoken of.  
And there were many, many when I thought in the night of the last 
high belief in the watching angel, and the last higher trust in 
God, on the part of her poor despised father.

And Charley did not die.  She flutteringiy and slowly turned the 
dangerous point, after long lingering there, and then began to 
mend.  The hope that never had been given, from the first, of 
Charley being in outward appearance Charley any more soon began to 
be encouraged; and even that prospered, and I saw her growing into 
her old childish likeness again.

It was a great morning when I could tell Ada all this as she stood 
out in the garden; and it was a great evening when Charley and I at 
last took tea together in the next room.  But on that same evening, 
I felt that I was stricken cold.

Happily for both of us, it was not until Charley was safe in bed 
again and placidly asleep that I began to think the contagion of 
her illness was upon me.  I had been able easily to hide what I 
felt at tea-time, but I was past that already now, and I knew that 
I was rapidly following in Charley's steps.

I was well enough, however, to be up early in the morning, and to 
return my darling's cheerful blessing from the garden, and to talk 
with her as long as usual.  But I was not free from an impression 
that I had been walking about the two rooms in the night, a little 
beside myself, though knowing where I was; and I felt confused at 
times--with a curious sense of fullness, as if I were becoming too 
large altogether.

In the evening I was so much worse that I resolved to prepare 
Charley, with which view I said, "You're getting quite strong, 
Charley, are you not?'

"Oh, quite!" said Charley.

"Strong enough to be told a secret, I think, Charley?"

"Quite strong enough for that, miss!" cried Charley.  But Charley's 
face fell in the height of her delight, for she saw the secret in 
MY face; and she came out of the great chair, and fell upon my 
bosom, and said "Oh, miss, it's my doing!  It's my doing!" and a 
great deal more out of the fullness of her grateful heart.

"Now, Charley," said I after letting her go on for a little while, 
"if I am to be ill, my great trust, humanly speaking, is in you.  
And unless you are as quiet and composed for me as you always were 
for yourself, you can never fulfil it, Charley."

"If you'll let me cry a little longer, miss," said Charley.  "Oh, 
my dear, my dear!  If you'll only let me cry a little longer.  Oh, 
my dear!"--how affectionately and devotedly she poured this out as 
she clung to my neck, I never can remember without tears--"I'll be 
good."

So I let Charley cry a little longer, and it did us both good.

"Trust in me now, if you please, miss," said Charley quietly.  "I 
am listening to everything you say."

"It's very little at present, Charley.  I shall tell your doctor 
to-night that I don't think I am well and that you are going to 
nurse me."

For that the poor child thanked me with her whole heart.  "And in 
the morning, when you hear Miss Ada in the garden, if I should not 
be quite able to go to the window-curtain as usual, do you go, 
Charley, and say I am asleep--that I have rather tired myself, and 
am asleep.  At all times keep the room as I have kept it, Charley, 
and let no one come."

Charley promised, and I lay down, for I was very heavy.  I saw the 
doctor that night and asked the favour of him that I wished to ask 
relative to his saying nothing of my illness in the house as yet.  
I have a very indistinct remembrance of that night melting into 
day, and of day melting into night again; but I was just able on 
the first morning to get to the window and speak to my darling.

On the second morning I heard her dear voice--Oh, how dear now!--
outside; and I asked Charley, with some difficulty (speech being 
painful to me), to go and say I was asleep.  I heard her answer 
softly, "Don't disturb her, Charley, for the world!"

"How does my own Pride look, Charley?" I inquired.

"Disappointed, miss," said Charley, peeping through the curtain.

"But I know she is very beautiful this morning."

"She is indeed, miss," answered Charley, peeping.  "Still looking 
up at the window."

With her blue clear eyes, God bless them, always loveliest when 
raised like that!

I called Charley to me and gave her her last charge.

"Now, Charley, when she knows I am ill, she will try to make her 
way into the room.  Keep her out, Charley, if you love me truly, to 
the last!  Charley, if you let her in but once, only to look upon 
me for one moment as I lie here, I shall die."

"I never will!  I never will!" she promised me.

"I believe it, my dear Charley.  And now come and sit beside me for 
a little while, and touch me with your hand.  For I cannot see you, 
Charley; I am blind."



CHAPTER XXXII

The Appointed Time


It is night in Lincoln's Inn--perplexed and troublous valley of the 
shadow of the law, where suitors generally find but little day--and 
fat candles are snuffed out in offices, and clerks have rattled 
down the crazy wooden stairs and dispersed.  The bell that rings at 
nine o'clock has ceased its doleful clangour about nothing; the 
gates are shut; and the night-porter, a solemn warder with a mighty 
power of sleep, keeps guard in his lodge.  From tiers of staircase 
windows clogged lamps like the eyes of Equity, bleared Argus with a 
fathomless pocket for every eye and an eye upon it, dimly blink at 
the stars.  In dirty upper casements, here and there, hazy little 
patches of candlelight reveal where some wise draughtsman and 
conveyancer yet toils for the entanglement of real estate in meshes 
of sheep-skin, in the average ratio of about a dozen of sheep to an 
acre of land.  Over which bee-like industry these benefactors of 
their species linger yet, though office-hours be past, that they 
may give, for every day, some good account at last.

In the neighbouring court, where the Lord Chancellor of the rag and 
bottle shop dwells, there is a general tendency towards beer and 
supper.  Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins, whose respective sons, 
engaged with a circle of acquaintance in the game of hide and seek, 
have been lying in ambush about the by-ways of Chancery Lane for 
some hours and scouring the plain of the same thoroughfare to the 
confusion of passengers--Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins have but now 
exchanged congratulations on the children being abed, and they 
still linger on a door-step over a few parting words.  Mr. Krook 
and his lodger, and the fact of Mr. Krook's being "continually in 
liquor," and the testamentary prospects of the young man are, as 
usual, the staple of their conversation.  But they have something 
to say, likewise, of the Harmonic Meeting at the Sol's Arms, where 
the sound of the piano through the partly opened windows jingles 
out into the court, and where Little Swills, after keeping the 
lovers of harmony in a roar like a very Yorick, may now be heard 
taking the gruff line in a concerted piece and sentimentally 
adjuring his friends and patrons to "Listen, listen, listen, tew 
the wa-ter fall!"  Mrs. Perkins and Mrs. Piper compare opinions on 
the subject of the young lady of professional celebrity who assists 
at the Harmonic Meetings and who has a space to herself in the 
manuscript announcement in the window, Mrs. Perkins possessing 
information that she has been married a year and a half, though 
announced as Miss M. Melvilleson, the noted siren, and that her 
baby is clandestinely conveyed to the Sol's Arms every night to 
receive its natural nourishment during the entertainments.  "Sooner 
than which, myself," says Mrs. Perkins, "I would get my living by 
selling lucifers."  Mrs. Piper, as in duty bound, is of the same 
opinion, holding that a private station is better than public 
applause, and thanking heaven for her own (and, by implication, 
Mrs. Perkins') respectability.  By this time the pot-boy of the 
Sol's Arms appearing with her supper-pint well frothed, Mrs. Piper 
accepts that tankard and retires indoors, first giving a fair good 
night to Mrs. Perkins, who has had her own pint in her hand ever 
since it was fetched from the same hostelry by young Perkins before 
he was sent to bed.  Now there is a sound of putting up shop-
shutters in the court and a smell as of the smoking of pipes; and 
shooting stars are seen in upper windows, further indicating 
retirement to rest.  Now, too, the policeman begins to push at 
doors; to try fastenings; to be suspicious of bundles; and to 
administer his beat, on the hypothesis that every one is either 
robbing or being robbed.

It is a close night, though the damp cold is searching too, and 
there is a laggard mist a little way up in the air.  It is a fine 
steaming night to turn the slaughter-houses, the unwholesome 
trades, the sewerage, bad water, and burial-grounds to account, and 
give the registrar of deaths some extra business.  It may be 
something in the air--there is plenty in it--or it may be something 
in himself that is in fault; but Mr. Weevle, otherwise Jobling, is 
very ill at ease.  He comes and goes between his own room and the 
open street door twenty times an hour.  He has been doing so ever 
since it fell dark.  Since the Chancellor shut up his shop, which 
he did very early to-night, Mr. Weevle has been down and up, and 
down and up (with a cheap tight velvet skull-cap on his head, 
making his whiskers look out of all proportion), oftener than 
before.

It is no phenomenon that Mr. Snagsby should be ill at ease too, for 
he always is so, more or less, under the oppressive influence of 
the secret that is upon him.  Impelled by the mystery of which he 
is a partaker and yet in which he is not a sharer, Mr. Snagsby 
haunts what seems to be its fountain-head--the rag and bottle shop 
in the court.  It has an irresistible attraction for him.  Even 
now, coming round by the Sol's Arms with the intention of passing 
down the court, and out at the Chancery Lane end, and so 
terminating his unpremeditated after-supper stroll of ten minutes' 
long from his own door and back again, Mr. Snagsby approaches.

"What, Mr. Weevle?" says the stationer, stopping to speak.  "Are 
YOU there?"

"Aye!" says Weevle, "Here I am, Mr. Snagsby."

"Airing yourself, as I am doing, before you go to bed?" the 
stationer inquires.

"Why, there's not much air to be got here; and what there is, is 
not very freshening," Weevle answers, glancing up and down the 
court.

"Very true, sir.  Don't you observe," says Mr. Snagsby, pausing to 
sniff and taste the air a little, "don't you observe, Mr. Weevle, 
that you're--not to put too fine a point upon it--that you're 
rather greasy here, sir?"

"Why, I have noticed myself that there is a queer kind of flavour 
in the place to-night," Mr. Weevle rejoins.  "I suppose it's chops 
at the Sol's Arms."

"Chops, do you think?  Oh! Chops, eh?"  Mr. Snagsby sniffs and 
tastes again.  "Well, sir, I suppose it is.  But I should say their 
cook at the Sol wanted a little looking after.  She has been 
burning 'em, sir!  And I don't think"--Mr. Snagsby sniffs and 
tastes again and then spits and wipes his mouth--"I don't think--
not to put too fine a point upon it--that they were quite fresh 
when they were shown the gridiron."

"That's very likely.  It's a tainting sort of weather."

"It IS a tainting sort of weather," says Mr. Snagsby, "and I find 
it sinking to the spirits."

"By George!  I find it gives me the horrors," returns Mr. Weevle.

"Then, you see, you live in a lonesome way, and in a lonesome room, 
with a black circumstance hanging over it," says Mr. Snagsby, 
looking in past the other's shoulder along the dark passage and 
then falling back a step to look up at the house.  "I couldn't live 
in that room alone, as you do, sir.  I should get so fidgety and 
worried of an evening, sometimes, that I should be driven to come 
to the door and stand here sooner than sit there.  But then it's 
very true that you didn't see, in your room, what I saw there.  
That makes a difference."

"I know quite enough about it," returns Tony.

"It's not agreeable, is it?" pursues Mr. Snagsby, coughing his 
cough of mild persuasion behind his hand.  "Mr. Krook ought to 
consider it in the rent.  I hope he does, I am sure."

"I hope he does," says Tony.  "But I doubt it."

"You find the rent too high, do you, sir?" returns the stationer.  
"Rents ARE high about here.  I don't know how it is exactly, but 
the law seems to put things up in price.  Not," adds Mr. Snagsby 
with his apologetic cough, "that I mean to say a word against the 
profession I get my living by."

Mr. Weevle again glances up and down the court and then looks at 
the stationer.  Mr. Snagsby, blankly catching his eye, looks upward 
for a star or so and coughs a cough expressive of not exactly 
seeing his way out of this conversation.

"It's a curious fact, sir," he observes, slowly rubbing his hands, 
"that he should have been--"

"Who's he?" interrupts Mr. Weevle.

"The deceased, you know," says Mr. Snagsby, twitching his head and 
right eyebrow towards the staircase and tapping his acquaintance on 
the button.

"Ah, to be sure!" returns the other as if he were not over-fond of 
the subject.  "I thought we had done with him."

"I was only going to say it's a curious fact, sir, that he should 
have come and lived here, and been one of my writers, and then that 
you should come and live here, and be one of my writers too.  Which 
there is nothing derogatory, but far from it in the appellation," 
says Mr. Snagsby, breaking off with a mistrust that he may have 
unpolitely asserted a kind of proprietorship in Mr. Weevle, 
"because I have known writers that have gone into brewers' houses 
and done really very respectable indeed.  Eminently respectable, 
sir," adds Mr. Snagsby with a misgiving that he has not improved 
the matter.

"It's a curious coincidence, as you say," answers Weevle, once more 
glancing up and down the court.

"Seems a fate in it, don't there?" suggests the stationer.

"There does."

"Just so," observes the stationer with his confirmatory cough.  
"Quite a fate in it.  Quite a fate.  Well, Mr. Weevle, I am afraid 
I must bid you good night"--Mr. Snagsby speaks as if it made him 
desolate to go, though he has been casting about for any means of 
escape ever since he stopped to speak--"my little woman will be 
looking for me else.  Good night, sir!"

If Mr. Snagsby hastens home to save his little woman the trouble of 
looking for him, he might set his mind at rest on that score.  His 
little woman has had her eye upon him round the Sol's Arms all this 
time and now glides after him with a pocket handkerchief wrapped 
over her head, honourmg Mr. Weevle and his doorway with a searching 
glance as she goes past.

"You'll know me again, ma'am, at all events," says Mr. Weevle to 
himself; "and I can't compliment you on your appearance, whoever 
you are, with your head tied up in a bundle.  Is this fellow NEVER 
coming!"

This fellow approaches as he speaks.  Mr. Weevle softly holds up 
his finger, and draws him into the passage, and closes the street 
door.  Then they go upstairs, Mr. Weevle heavily, and Mr. Guppy 
(for it is he) very lightly indeed.  When they are shut into the 
back room, they speak low.

"I thought you had gone to Jericho at least instead of coming 
here," says Tony.

"Why, I said about ten."

"You said about ten," Tony repeats.  "Yes, so you did say about 
ten.  But according to my count, it's ten times ten--it's a hundred 
o'clock.  I never had such a night in my life!"

"What has been the matter?"

"That's it!" says Tony.  "Nothing has been the matter.  But here 
have I been stewing and fuming in this jolly old crib till I have 
had the horrors falling on me as thick as hail.  THERE'S a blessed-
looking candle!" says Tony, pointing to the heavily burning taper 
on his table with a great cabbage head and a long winding-sheet.

"That's easily improved," Mr. Guppy observes as he takes the 
snuffers in hand.

"IS it?" returns his friend.  "Not so easily as you think.  It has 
been smouldering like that ever since it was lighted."

"Why, what's the matter with you, Tony?" inquires Mr. Guppy, 
looking at him, snuffers in hand, as he sits down with his elbow on 
the table.

"William Guppy," replies the other, "I am in the downs.  It's this 
unbearably dull, suicidal room--and old Boguey downstairs, I 
suppose."  Mr. Weevle moodily pushes the snuffers-tray from him 
with his elbow, leans his head on his hand, puts his feet on the 
fender, and looks at the fire.  Mr. Guppy, observing him, slightly 
tosses his head and sits down on the other side of the table in an 
easy attitude.

"Wasn't that Snagsby talking to you, Tony?"

"Yes, and he--yes, it was Snagsby," said Mr. Weevle, altering the 
construction of his sentence.

"On business?"

"No.  No business.  He was only sauntering by and stopped to 
prose."

"I thought it was Snagsby," says Mr. Guppy, "and thought it as well 
that he shouldn't see me, so I waited till he was gone."

"There we go again, William G.!" cried Tony, looking up for an 
instant.  "So mysterious and secret!  By George, if we were going 
to commit a murder, we couldn't have more mystery about it!"

Mr. Guppy affects to smile, and with the view of changing the 
conversation, looks with an admiration, real or pretended, round 
the room at the Galaxy Gallery of British Beauty, terminating his 
survey with the portrait of Lady Dedlock over the mantelshelf, in 
which she is represented on a terrace, with a pedestal upon the 
terrace, and a vase upon the pedestal, and her shawl upon the vase, 
and a prodigious piece of fur upon the shawl, and her arm on the 
prodigious piece of fur, and a bracelet on her arm.

"That's very like Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Guppy.  "It's a speaking 
likeness."

"I wish it was," growls Tony, without changing his position.  "I 
should have some fashionable conversation, here, then."

Finding by this time that his friend is not to be wheedled into a 
more sociable humour, Mr. Guppy puts about upon the ill-used tack 
and remonstrates with him.

"Tony," says he, "I can make allowances for lowness of spirits, for 
no man knows what it is when it does come upon a man better than I 
do, and no man perhaps has a better right to know it than a man who 
has an unrequited image imprinted on his 'eart.  But there are 
bounds to these things when an unoffending party is in question, 
and I will acknowledge to you, Tony, that I don't think your manner 
on the present occasion is hospitable or quite gentlemanly."

"This is strong language, William Guppy," returns Mr. Weevle.

"Sir, it may be," retorts Mr. William Guppy, "but I feel strongly 
when I use it."

Mr. Weevle admits that he has been wrong and begs Mr. William Guppy 
to think no more about it.  Mr. William Guppy, however, having got 
the advantage, cannot quite release it without a little more 
injured remonstrance.

"No!  Dash it, Tony," says that gentleman, "you really ought to be 
careful how you wound the feelings of a man who has an unrequited 
image imprinted on his 'eart and who is NOT altogether happy in 
those chords which vibrate to the tenderest emotions.  You, Tony, 
possess in yourself all that is calculated to charm the eye and 
allure the taste.  It is not--happily for you, perhaps, and I may 
wish that I could say the same--it is not your character to hover 
around one flower.  The ole garden is open to you, and your airy 
pinions carry you through it.  Still, Tony, far be it from me, I am 
sure, to wound even your feelings without a cause!"

Tony again entreats that the subject may be no longer pursued, 
saying emphatically, "William Guppy, drop it!"  Mr. Guppy 
acquiesces, with the reply, "I never should have taken it up, Tony, 
of my own accord."

"And now," says Tony, stirring the fire, "touching this same bundle 
of letters.  Isn't it an extraordinary thing of Krook to have 
appointed twelve o'clock to-night to hand 'em over to me?"

"Very.  What did he do it for?"

"What does he do anything for?  HE don't know.  Said to-day was his 
birthday and he'd hand 'em over to-night at twelve o'clock.  He'll 
have drunk himself blind by that time.  He has been at it all day."

"He hasn't forgotten the appointment, I hope?"

"Forgotten?  Trust him for that.  He never forgets anything.  I saw 
him to-night, about eight--helped him to shut up his shop--and he 
had got the letters then in his hairy cap.  He pulled it off and 
showed 'em me.  When the shop was closed, he took them out of his 
cap, hung his cap on the chair-back, and stood turning them over 
before the fire.  I heard him a little while afterwards, through 
the floor here, humming like the wind, the only song he knows--
about Bibo, and old Charon, and Bibo being drunk when he died, or 
something or other.  He has been as quiet since as an old rat 
asleep in his hole."

"And you are to go down at twelve?"

"At twelve.  And as I tell you, when you came it seemed to me a 
hundred."

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy after considering a little with his legs 
crossed, "he can't read yet, can he?"

"Read!  He'll never read.  He can make all the letters separately, 
and he knows most of them separately when he sees them; he has got 
on that much, under me; but he can't put them together.  He's too 
old to acquire the knack of it now--and too drunk."

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy, uncrossing and recrossing his legs, "how do 
you suppose he spelt out that name of Hawdon?"

"He never spelt it out.  You know what a curious power of eye he 
has and how he has been used to employ himself in copying things by 
eye alone.  He imitated it, evidently from the direction of a 
letter, and asked me what it meant."

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy, uncrossing and recrossing his legs again, 
"should you say that the original was a man's writing or a 
woman's?"

"A woman's.  Fifty to one a lady's--slopes a good deal, and the end 
of the letter 'n,' long and hasty."

Mr. Guppy has been biting his thumb-nail during this dialogue, 
generally changing the thumb when he has changed the cross leg.  As 
he is going to do so again, he happens to look at his coat-sleeve.  
It takes his attention.  He stares at it, aghast.

"Why, Tony, what on earth is going on in this house to-night?  Is 
there a chimney on fire?"

"Chimney on fire!"

"Ah!" returns Mr. Guppy.  "See how the soot's falling.  See here, 
on my arm!  See again, on the table here!  Confound the stuff, it 
won't blow off--smears like black fat!"

They look at one another, and Tony goes listening to the door, and 
a little way upstairs, and a little way downstairs.  Comes back and 
says it's all right and all quiet, and quotes the remark he lately 
made to Mr. Snagsby about their cooking chops at the Sol's Arms.

"And it was then," resumes Mr. Guppy, still glancing with 
remarkable aversion at the coat-sleeve, as they pursue their 
conversation before the fire, leaning on opposite sides of the 
table, with their heads very near together, "that he told you of 
his having taken the bundle of letters from his lodger's 
portmanteau?"

"That was the time, sir," answers Tony, faintly adjusting his 
whiskers.  "Whereupon I wrote a line to my dear boy, the Honourable 
William Guppy, informing him of the appointment for to-night and 
advising him not to call before, Boguey being a slyboots."

The light vivacious tone of fashionable life which is usually 
assumed by Mr. Weevle sits so ill upon him to-night that he 
abandons that and his whiskers together, and after looking over his 
shoulder, appears to yield himself up a prey to the horrors again.

"You are to bring the letters to your room to read and compare, and 
to get yourself into a position to tell him all about them.  That's 
the arrangement, isn't it, Tony?" asks Mr. Guppy, anxiously biting 
his thumb-nail.

"You can't speak too low.  Yes.  That's what he and I agreed."

"I tell you what, Tony--"

"You can't speak too low," says Tony once more.  Mr. Guppy nods his 
sagacious head, advances it yet closer, and drops into a whisper.

"I tell you what.  The first thing to be done is to make another 
packet like the real one so that if he should ask to see the real 
one while it's in my possession, you can show him the dummy."

"And suppose he detects the dummy as soon as he sees it, which with 
his biting screw of an eye is about five hundred times more likely 
than not," suggests Tony.

"Then we'll face it out.  They don't belong to him, and they never 
did.  You found that, and you placed them in my hands--a legal 
friend of yours--for security.  If he forces us to it, they'll be 
producible, won't they?"

"Ye-es," is Mr. Weevle's reluctant admission.

"Why, Tony," remonstrates his friend, "how you look!  You don't 
doubt William Guppy?  You don't suspect any harm?"

"I don't suspect anything more than I know, William," returns the 
other gravely.

"And what do you know?" urges Mr. Guppy, raising his voice a 
little; but on his friend's once more warning him, "I tell you, you 
can't speak too low," he repeats his question without any sound at 
all, forming with his lips only the words, "What do you know?"

"I know three things.  First, I know that here we are whispering in 
secrecy, a pair of conspirators."

"Well!" says Mr. Guppy.  "And we had better be that than a pair of 
noodles, which we should be if we were doing anything else, for 
it's the only way of doing what we want to do.  Secondly?"

"Secondly, it's not made out to me how it's likely to be 
profitable, after all."

Mr. Guppy casts up his eyes at the portrait of Lady Dedlock over 
the mantelshelf and replies, "Tony, you are asked to leave that to 
the honour of your friend.  Besides its being calculated to serve 
that friend in those chords of the human mind which--which need not 
be called into agonizing vibration on the present occasion--your 
friend is no fool.  What's that?"

"It's eleven o'clock striking by the bell of Saint Paul's.  Listen 
and you'll hear all the bells in the city jangling."

Both sit silent, listening to the metal voices, near and distant, 
resounding from towers of various heights, in tones more various 
than their situations.  When these at length cease, all seems more 
mysterious and quiet than before.  One disagreeable result of 
whispering is that it seems to evoke an atmosphere of silence, 
haunted by the ghosts of sound--strange cracks and tickings, the 
rustling of garments that have no substance in them, and the tread 
of dreadful feet that would leave no mark on the sea-sand or the 
winter snow.  So sensitive the two friends happen to be that the 
air is full of these phantoms, and the two look over their 
shoulders by one consent to see that the door is shut.

"Yes, Tony?" says Mr. Guppy, drawing nearer to the fire and biting 
his unsteady thumb-nail.  "You were going to say, thirdly?"

"It's far from a pleasant thing to be plotting about a dead man in 
the room where he died, especially when you happen to live in it."

"But we are plotting nothing against him, Tony."

"May be not, still I don't like it.  Live here by yourself and see 
how YOU like it."

"As to dead men, Tony," proceeds Mr. Guppy, evading this proposal, 
"there have been dead men in most rooms."

"I know there have, but in most rooms you let them alone, and--and 
they let you alone," Tony answers.

The two look at each other again.  Mr. Guppy makes a hurried remark 
to the effect that they may be doing the deceased a service, that 
he hopes so.  There is an oppressive blank until Mr. Weevle, by 
stirring the fire suddenly, makes Mr. Guppy start as if his heart 
had been stirred instead.

"Fah! Here's more of this hateful soot hanging about," says he.  
"Let us open the window a bit and get a mouthful of air.  It's too 
close."

He raises the sash, and they both rest on the window-sill, half in 
and half out of the room.  The neighbouring houses are too near to 
admit of their seeing any sky without craning their necks and 
looking up, but lights in frowsy windows here and there, and the 
rolling of distant carriages, and the new expression that there is 
of the stir of men, they find to be comfortable.  Mr. Guppy, 
noiselessly tapping on the window-sill, resumes his whisperirig in 
quite a light-comedy tone.

"By the by, Tony, don't forget old Smallweed," meaning the younger 
of that name.  "I have not let him into this, you know.  That 
grandfather of his is too keen by half.  It runs in the family."

"I remember," says Tony.  "I am up to all that."

"And as to Krook," resumes Mr. Guppy.  "Now, do you suppose he 
really has got hold of any other papers of importance, as he has 
boasted to you, since you have been such allies?"

Tony shakes his head.  "I don't know.  Can't Imagine.  If we get 
through this business without rousing his suspicions, I shall be 
better informed, no doubt.  How can I know without seeing them, 
when he don't know himself?  He is always spelling out words from 
them, and chalking them over the table and the shop-wall, and 
asking what this is and what that is; but his whole stock from 
beginning to end may easily be the waste-paper he bought it as, for 
anything I can say.  It's a monomania with him to think he is 
possessed of documents.  He has been going to learn to read them 
this last quarter of a century, I should judge, from what he tells 
me."

"How did he first come by that idea, though?  That's the question," 
Mr. Guppy suggests with one eye shut, after a little forensic 
meditation.  "He may have found papers in something he bought, 
where papers were not supposed to be, and may have got it into his 
shrewd head from the manner and place of their concealment that 
they are worth something."

"Or he may have been taken in, in some pretended bargain.  Or he 
may have been muddled altogether by long staring at whatever he HAS 
got, and by drink, and by hanging about the Lord Chancellor's Court 
and hearing of documents for ever," returns Mr. Weevle.

Mr. Guppy sitting on the window-sill, nodding his head and 
balancing all these possibilities in his mind, continues 
thoughtfully to tap it, and clasp it, and measure it with his hand, 
until he hastily draws his hand away.

"What, in the devil's name," he says, "is this!  Look at my 
fingers!"

A thick, yellow liquor defiles them, which is offensive to the 
touch and sight and more offensive to the smell.  A stagnant, 
sickening oil with some natural repulsion in it that makes them 
both shudder.

"What have you been doing here?  What have you been pouring out of 
window?"

"I pouring out of window!  Nothing, I swear!  Never, since I have 
been here!" cries the lodger.

And yet look here--and look here!  When he brings the candle here, 
from the corner of the window-sill, it slowly drips and creeps away 
down the bricks, here lies in a little thick nauseous pool.

"This is a horrible house," says Mr. Guppy, shutting down the 
window.  "Give me some water or I shall cut my hand off."

He so washes, and rubs, and scrubs, and smells, and washes, that he 
has not long restored himself with a glass of brandy and stood 
silently before the fire when Saint Paul's bell strikes twelve and 
all those other bells strike twelve from their towers of various 
heights in the dark air, and in their many tones.  When all is 
quiet again, the lodger says, "It's the appointed time at last.  
Shall I go?"

Mr. Guppy nods and gives him a "lucky touch" on the back, but not 
with the washed hand, though it is his right hand.

He goes downstairs, and Mr. Guppy tries to compose himself before 
the fire for waiting a long time.  But in no more than a minute or 
two the stairs creak and Tony comes swiftly back.

"Have you got them?"

"Got them!  No.  The old man's not there."

He has been so horribly frightened in the short interval that his 
terror seizes the other, who makes a rush at him and asks loudly, 
"What's the matter?"

"I couldn't make him hear, and I softly opened the door and looked 
in.  And the burning smell is there--and the soot is there, and the 
oil is there--and he is not there!"  Tony ends this with a groan.

Mr. Guppy takes the light.  They go down, more dead than alive, and 
holding one another, push open the door of the back shop.  The cat 
has retreated close to it and stands snarling, not at them, at 
something on the ground before the fire.  There is a very little 
fire left in the grate, but there is a smouldering, suffocating 
vapour in the room and a dark, greasy coating on the walls and 
ceiling.  The chairs and table, and the bottle so rarely absent 
from the table, all stand as usual.  On one chair-back hang the old 
man's hairy cap and coat.

"Look!" whispers the lodger, pointing his friend's attention to 
these objects with a trembling finger.  "I told you so.  When I saw 
him last, he took his cap off, took out the little bundle of old 
letters, hung his cap on the back of the chair--his coat was there 
already, for he had pulled that off before he went to put the 
shutters up--and I left him turning the letters over in his hand, 
standing just where that crumbled black thing is upon the floor."

Is he hanging somewhere?  They look up.  No.

"See!" whispers Tony.  "At the foot of the same chair there lies a 
dirty bit of thin red cord that they tie up pens with.  That went 
round the letters.  He undid it slowly, leering and laughing at me, 
before he began to turn them over, and threw it there.  I saw it 
fall."

"What's the matter with the cat?" says Mr. Guppy.  "Look at her!"

"Mad, I think.  And no wonder in this evil place."

They advance slowly, looking at all these things.  The cat remains 
where they found her, still snarling at the something on the ground 
before the fire and between the two chairs.  What is it?  Hold up 
the light.

Here is a small burnt patch of flooring; here is the tinder from a 
little bundle of burnt paper, but not so light as usual, seeming to 
be steeped in something; and here is--is it the cinder of a small 
charred and broken log of wood sprinkled with white ashes, or is it 
coal?  Oh, horror, he IS here!  And this from which we run away, 
striking out the light and overturning one another into the street, 
is all that represents him.

Help, help, help!  Come into this house for heaven's sake!  Plenty 
will come in, but none can help.  The Lord Chancellor of that 
court, true to his title in his last act, has died the death of all 
lord chancellors in all courts and of all authorities in all places 
under all names soever, where false pretences are made, and where 
injustice is done.  Call the death by any name your Highness will, 
attribute it to whom you will, or say it might have been prevented 
how you will, it is the same death eternally--inborn, inbred, 
engendered in the corrupted humours of the vicious body itself, and 
that only--spontaneous combustion, and none other of all the deaths 
that can be died.



CHAPTER XXXIII

Interlopers


Now do those two gentlemen not very neat about the cuffs and 
buttons who attended the last coroner's inquest at the Sol's Arms 
reappear in the precincts with surprising swiftness (being, in 
fact, breathlessly fetched by the active and intelligent beadle), 
and institute perquisitions through the court, and dive into the 
Sol's parlour, and write with ravenous little pens on tissue-paper.  
Now do they note down, in the watches of the night, how the 
neighbourhood of Chancery Lane was yesterday, at about midnight, 
thrown into a state of the most intense agitation and excitement by 
the following alarming and horrible discovery.  Now do they set 
forth how it will doubtless be remembered that some time back a 
painful sensation was created in the public mind by a case of 
mysterious death from opium occurring in the first floor of the 
house occupied as a rag, bottle, and general marine store shop, by 
an eccentric individual of intemperate habits, far advanced in 
life, named Krook; and how, by a remarkable coincidence, Krook was 
examined at the inquest, which it may be recollected was held on 
that occasion at the Sol's Arms, a well-conducted tavern 
immediately adjoining the premises in question on the west side and 
licensed to a highly respectable landlord, Mr. James George Bogsby.  
Now do they show (in as many words as possible) how during some 
hours of yesterday evening a very peculiar smell was observed by 
the inhabitants of the court, in which the tragical occurrence 
which forms the subject of that present account transpired; and 
which odour was at one time so powerful that Mr. Swills, a comic 
vocalist professionally engaged by Mr. J. G. Bogsby, has himself 
stated to our reporter that he mentioned to Miss M. Melvilleson, a 
lady of some pretensions to musical ability, likewise engaged by 
Mr. J. G. Bogsby to sing at a series of concerts called Harmonic 
Assemblies, or Meetings, which it would appear are held at the 
Sol's Arms under Mr. Bogsby's direction pursuant to the Act of 
George the Second, that he (Mr. Swills) found his voice seriously 
affected by the impure state of the atmosphere, his jocose 
expression at the time being that he was like an empty post-office, 
for he hadn't a single note in him.  How this account of Mr. Swills 
is entirely corroborated by two intelligent married females 
residing in the same court and known respectively by the names of 
Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins, both of whom observed the foetid 
effluvia and regarded them as being emitted from the premises in 
the occupation of Krook, the unfortunate deceased.  All this and a 
great deal more the two gentlemen who have formed an amicable 
partnership in the melancholy catastrophe write down on the spot; 
and the boy population of the court (out of bed in a moment) swarm 
up the shutters of the Sol's Arms parlour, to behold the tops of 
their heads while they are about it.

The whole court, adult as well as boy, is sleepless for that night, 
and can do nothing but wrap up its many heads, and talk of the ill-
fated house, and look at it.  Miss Flite has been bravely rescued 
from her chamber, as if it were in flames, and accommodated with a 
bed at the Sol's Arms.  The Sol neither turns off its gas nor shuts 
its door all night, for any kind of public excitement makes good 
for the Sol and causes the court to stand in need of comfort.  The 
house has not done so much in the stomachic article of cloves or in 
brandy-and-water warm since the inquest.  The moment the pot-boy 
heard what had happened, he rolled up his shirt-sleeves tight to 
his shoulders and said, "There'll be a run upon us!"  In the first 
outcry, young Piper dashed off for the fire-engines and returned in 
triumph at a jolting gallop perched up aloft on the Phoenix and 
holding on to that fabulous creature with all his might in the 
midst of helmets and torches.  One helmet remains behind after 
careful investigation of all chinks and crannies and slowly paces 
up and down before the house in company with one of the two 
policemen who have likewise been left in charge thereof.  To this 
trio everybody in the court possessed of sixpence has an insatiate 
desire to exhibit hospitality in a liquid form.

Mr. Weevle and his friend Mr. Guppy are within the bar at the Sol 
and are worth anything to the Sol that the bar contains if they 
will only stay there.  "This is not a time, says Mr. Bogsby, "to 
haggle about money," though he looks something sharply after it, 
over the counter; "give your orders, you two gentlemen, and you're 
welcome to whatever you put a name to."

Thus entreated, the two gentlemen (Mr. Weevle especially) put names 
to so many things that in course of time they find it difficult to 
put a name to anything quite distinctly, though they still relate 
to all new-comers some version of the night they have had of it, 
and of what they said, and what they thought, and what they saw.  
Meanwhile, one or other of the policemen often flits about the 
door, and pushing it open a little way at the full length of his 
arm, looks in from outer gloom.  Not that he has any suspicions, 
but that he may as well know what they are up to in there.

Thus night pursues its leaden course, finding the court still out 
of bed through the unwonted hours, still treating and being 
treated, still conducting itself similarly to a court that has had 
a little money left it unexpectedly.  Thus night at length with 
slow-retreating steps departs, and the lamp-lighter going his 
rounds, like an executioner to a despotic king, strikes off the 
little heads of fire that have aspired to lessen the darkness.  
Thus the day cometh, whether or no.

And the day may discern, even with its dim London eye, that the 
court has been up all night.  Over and above the faces that have 
fallen drowsily on tables and the heels that lie prone on hard 
floors instead of beds, the brick and mortar physiognomy of the 
very court itself looks worn and jaded.  And now the neighbourhood, 
waking up and beginning to hear of what has happened, comes 
streaming in, half dressed, to ask questions; and the two policemen 
and the helmet (who are far less impressible externally than the 
court) have enough to do to keep the door.

"Good gracious, gentlemen!" says Mr. Snagsby, coming up.  "What's 
this I hear!"

"Why, it's true," returns one of the policemen.  "That's what it 
is.  Now move on here, come!"

"Why, good gracious, gentlemen," says Mr. Snagsby, somewhat 
promptly backed away, "I was at this door last night betwixt ten 
and eleven o'clock in conversation with the young man who lodges 
here."

"Indeed?" returns the policeman.  "You will find the young man next 
door then.  Now move on here, some of you,"

"Not hurt, I hope?" says Mr. Snagsby.

"Hurt?  No.  What's to hurt him!"

Mr. Snagsby, wholly unable to answer this or any question in his 
troubled mind, repairs to the Sol's Arms and finds Mr. Weevle 
languishing over tea and toast with a considerable expression on 
him of exhausted excitement and exhausted tobacco-smoke.

"And Mr. Guppy likewise!" quoth Mr. Snagsby.  "Dear, dear, dear!  
What a fate there seems in all this!  And my lit--"

Mr. Snagsby's power of speech deserts him in the formation of the 
words "my little woman."  For to see that injured female walk into 
the Sol's Arms at that hour of the morning and stand before the 
beer-engine, with her eyes fixed upon him like an accusing spirit, 
strikes him dumb.

"My dear," says Mr. Snagsby when his tongue is loosened, "will you 
take anything?  A little--not to put too fine a point upon it--drop 
of shrub?"

"No," says Mrs. Snagsby.

"My love, you know these two gentlemen?"

"Yes!" says Mrs. Snagsby, and in a rigid manner acknowledges their 
presence, still fixing Mr. Snagsby with her eye.

The devoted Mr. Snagsby cannot bear this treatment.  He takes Mrs. 
Snagsby by the hand and leads her aside to an adjacent cask.

"My little woman, why do you look at me in that way?  Pray don't do 
it."

"I can't help my looks," says Mrs. Snagsby, "and if I could I 
wouldn't."

Mr. Snagsby, with his cough of meekness, rejoins, "Wouldn't you 
really, my dear?" and meditates.  Then coughs his cough of trouble 
and says, "This is a dreadful mystery, my love!" still fearfully 
disconcerted by Mrs. Snagsby's eye.

"It IS," returns Mrs. Snagsby, shaking her head, "a dreadful 
mystery."

"My little woman," urges Mr. Snagsby in a piteous manner, "don't 
for goodness' sake speak to me with that bitter expression and look 
at me in that searching way!  I beg and entreat of you not to do 
it.  Good Lord, you don't suppose that I would go spontaneously 
combusting any person, my dear?"

"I can't say," returns Mrs. Snagsby.

On a hasty review of his unfortunate position, Mr. Snagsby "can't 
say" either.  He is not prepared positively to deny that he may 
have had something to do with it.  He has had something--he don't 
know what--to do with so much in this connexion that is mysterious 
that it is possible he may even be implicated, without knowing it, 
in the present transaction.  He faintly wipes his forehead with his 
handkerchief and gasps.

"My life," says the unhappy stationer, "would you have any 
objections to mention why, being in general so delicately 
circumspect in your conduct, you come into a wine-vaults before 
breakfast?"

"Why do YOU come here?" inquires Mrs. Snagsby.

"My dear, merely to know the rights of the fatal accident which has 
happened to the venerable party who has been--combusted."  Mr. 
Snagsby has made a pause to suppress a groan.  "I should then have 
related them to you, my love, over your French roll."

"I dare say you would!  You relate everything to me, Mr. Snagsby."

"Every--my lit--"

"I should be glad," says Mrs. Snagsby after contemplating his 
increased confusion with a severe and sinister smile, "if you would 
come home with me; I think you may be safer there, Mr. Snagsby, 
than anywhere else."

"My love, I don't know but what I may be, I am sure.  I am ready to 
go."

Mr. Snagsby casts his eye forlornly round the bar, gives Messrs. 
Weevle and Guppy good morning, assures them of the satisfaction 
with which he sees them uninjured, and accompanies Mrs. Snagsby 
from the Sol's Arms.  Before night his doubt whether he may not be 
responsible for some inconceivable part in the catastrophe which is 
the talk of the whole neighbourhood is almost resolved into 
certainty by Mrs. Snagsby's pertinacity in that fixed gaze.  His 
mental sufferings are so great that he entertains wandering ideas 
of delivering himself up to justice and requiring to be cleared if 
innocent and punished with the utmost rigour of the law if guilty.

Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy, having taken their breakfast, step into 
Lincoln's Inn to take a little walk about the square and clear as 
many of the dark cobwebs out of their brains as a little walk may.

"There can be no more favourable time than the present, Tony," says 
Mr. Guppy after they have broodingly made out the four sides of the 
square, "for a word or two between us upon a point on which we 
must, with very little delay, come to an understanding."

"Now, I tell you what, William G.!" returns the other, eyeing his 
companion with a bloodshot eye.  "If it's a point of conspiracy, 
you needn't take the trouble to mention it.  I have had enough of 
that, and I ain't going to have any more.  We shall have YOU taking 
fire next or blowing up with a bang."

This supposititious phenomenon is so very disagreeable to Mr. Guppy 
that his voice quakes as he says in a moral way, "Tony, I should 
have thought that what we went through last night would have been a 
lesson to you never to be personal any more as long as you lived."  
To which Mr. Weevle returns, "William, I should have thought it 
would have been a lesson to YOU never to conspire any more as long 
as you lived."  To which Mr. Guppy says, "Who's conspiring?"  To 
which Mr. Jobling replies, "Why, YOU are!"  To which Mr. Guppy 
retorts, "No, I am not."  To which Mr. Jobling retorts again, "Yes, 
you are!"  To which Mr. Guppy retorts, "Who says so?"  To which Mr. 
Jobling retorts, "I say so!"  To which Mr. Guppy retorts, "Oh, 
indeed?"  To which Mr. Jobling retorts, "Yes, indeed!"  And both 
being now in a heated state, they walk on silently for a while to 
cool down again.

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy then, "if you heard your friend out instead 
of flying at him, you wouldn't fall into mistakes.  But your temper 
is hasty and you are not considerate.  Possessing in yourself, 
Tony, all that is calculated to charm the eye--"

"Oh! Blow the eye!" cries Mr. Weevle, cutting him short.  "Say what 
you have got to say!"

Finding his friend in this morose and material condition, Mr. Guppy 
only expresses the finer feelings of his soul through the tone of 
injury in which he recommences, "Tony, when I say there is a point 
on which we must come to an understanding pretty soon, I say so 
quite apart from any kind of conspiring, however innocent.  You 
know it is professionally arranged beforehand in all cases that are 
tried what facts the witnesses are to prove.  Is it or is it not 
desirable that we should know what facts we are to prove on the 
inquiry into the death of this unfortunate old mo--gentleman?"  
(Mr. Guppy was going to say "mogul," but thinks "gentleman" better 
suited to the circumstances.)

"What facts?  THE facts."

"The facts bearing on that inquiry.  Those are"--Mr. Guppy tells 
them off on his fingers--"what we knew of his habits, when you saw 
him last, what his condition was then, the discovery that we made, 
and how we made it."

"Yes," says Mr. Weevle.  "Those are about the facts."

"We made the discovery in consequence of his having, in his 
eccentric way, an appointment with you at twelve o'clock at night, 
when you were to explain some writing to him as you had often done 
before on account of his not being able to read.  I, spending the 
evening with you, was called down--and so forth.  The inquiry being 
only into the circumstances touching the death of the deceased, 
it's not necessary to go beyond these facts, I suppose you'll 
agree?"

"No!" returns Mr. Weevle.  "I suppose not."

"And this is not a conspiracy, perhaps?" says the injured Guppy.

"No," returns his friend; "if it's nothing worse than this, I 
withdraw the observation."

"Now, Tony," says Mr. Guppy, taking his arm again and walking him 
slowly on, "I should like to know, in a friendly way, whether you 
have yet thought over the many advantages of your continuing to 
live at that place?"

"What do you mean?" says Tony, stopping.

"Whether you have yet thought over the many advantages of your 
continuing to live at that place?" repeats Mr. Guppy, walking him 
on again.

"At what place?  THAT place?" pointing in the direction of the rag 
and bottle shop.

Mr. Guppy nods.

"Why, I wouldn't pass another night there for any consideration 
that you could offer me," says Mr. Weevle, haggardly staring.

"Do you mean it though, Tony?"

"Mean it!  Do I look as if I mean it?  I feel as if I do; I know 
that," says Mr. Weevle with a very genuine shudder.

"Then the possibility or probability--for such it must be 
considered--of your never being disturbed in possession of those 
effects lately belonging to a lone old man who seemed to have no 
relation in the world, and the certainty of your being able to find 
out what he really had got stored up there, don't weigh with you at 
all against last night, Tony, if I understand you?" says Mr. Guppy, 
biting his thumb with the appetite of vexation.

"Certainly not.  Talk in that cool way of a fellow's living there?" 
cries Mr. Weevle indignantly.  "Go and live there yourself."

"Oh! I, Tony!" says Mr. Guppy, soothing him.  "I have never lived 
there and couldn't get a lodging there now, whereas you have got 
one."

"You are welcome to it," rejoins his friend, "and--ugh!--you may 
make yourself at home in it."

"Then you really and truly at this point," says Mr. Guppy, "give up 
the whole thing, if I understand you, Tony?"

"You never," returns Tony with a most convincing steadfastness, 
"said a truer word in all your life.  I do!"

While they are so conversing, a hackney-coach drives into the 
square, on the box of which vehicle a very tall hat makes itself 
manifest to the public.  Inside the coach, and consequently not so 
manifest to the multitude, though sufficiently so to the two 
friends, for the coach stops almost at their feet, are the 
venerable Mr. Smallweed and Mrs. Smallweed, accompanied by their 
granddaughter Judy.

An air of haste and excitement pervades the party, and as the tall 
hat (surmounting Mr. Smallweed the younger) alights, Mr. Smallweed 
the elder pokes his head out of window and bawls to Mr. Guppy, "How 
de do, sir!  How de do!"

"What do Chick and his family want here at this time of the 
morning, I wonder!" says Mr. Guppy, nodding to his familiar.

"My dear sir," cries Grandfather Smallweed, "would you do me a 
favour?  Would you and your friend be so very obleeging as to carry 
me into the public-house in the court, while Bart and his sister 
bring their grandmother along?  Would you do an old man that good 
turn, sir?"

Mr. Guppy looks at his friend, repeating inquiringly, "The public-
house in the court?"  And they prepare to bear the venerable burden 
to the Sol's Arms.

"There's your fare!" says the patriarch to the coachman with a 
fierce grin and shaking his incapable fist at him.  "Ask me for a 
penny more, and I'll have my lawful revenge upon you.  My dear 
young men, be easy with me, if you please.  Allow me to catch you 
round the neck.  I won't squeeze you tighter than I can help.  Oh, 
Lord!  Oh, dear me!  Oh, my bones!"

It is well that the Sol is not far off, for Mr. Weevle presents an 
apoplectic appearance before half the distance is accomplished.  
With no worse aggravation of his symptoms, however, than the 
utterance of divers croaking sounds expressive of obstructed 
respiration, he fulils his share of the porterage and the 
benevolent old gentleman is deposited by his own desire in the 
parlour of the Sol's Arms.

"Oh, Lord!" gasps Mr. Smallweed, looking about him, breathless, 
from an arm-chair.  "Oh, dear me!  Oh, my bones and back!  Oh, my 
aches and pains!  Sit down, you dancing, prancing, shambling, 
scrambling poll-parrot!  Sit down!"

This little apostrophe to Mrs. Smallweed is occasioned by a 
propensity on the part of that unlucky old lady whenever she finds 
herself on her feet to amble about and "set" to inanimate objects, 
accompanying herself with a chattering noise, as in a witch dance.  
A nervous affection has probably as much to do with these 
demonstrations as any imbecile intention in the poor old woman, but 
on the present occasion they are so particularly lively in 
connexion with the Windsor arm-chair, fellow to that in which Mr. 
Smallweed is seated, that she only quite desists when her 
grandchildren have held her down in it, her lord in the meanwhile 
bestowing upon her, with great volubility, the endearing epithet of 
"a pig-headed jackdaw," repeated a surprising number of times.

"My dear sir," Grandfather Smallweed then proceeds, addressing Mr. 
Guppy, "there has been a calamity here.  Have you heard of it, 
either of you?"

"Heard of it, sir!  Why, we discovered it."

"You discovered it.  You two discovered it!  Bart, THEY discovered 
it!"

The two discoverers stare at the Smallweeds, who return the 
compliment.

"My dear friends," whines Grandfather Smallweed, putting out both 
his hands, "I owe you a thousand thanks for discharging the 
melancholy office of discovering the ashes of Mrs. Smallweed's 
brother."

"Eh?" says Mr. Guppy.

"Mrs. Smallweed's brother, my dear friend--her only relation.  We 
were not on terms, which is to be deplored now, but he never WOULD 
be on terms.  He was not fond of us.  He was eccentric--he was very 
eccentric.  Unless he has left a will (which is not at all likely) 
I shall take out letters of administration.  I have come down to 
look after the property; it must be sealed up, it must be 
protected.  I have come down," repeats Grandfather Smallweed, 
hooking the air towards him with all his ten fingers at once, "to 
look after the property."

"I think, Small," says the disconsolate Mr. Guppy, "you might have 
mentioned that the old man was your uncle."

"You two were so close about him that I thought you would like me 
to be the same," returns that old bird with a secretly glistening 
eye.  "Besides, I wasn't proud of him."

"Besides which, it was nothing to you, you know, whether he was or 
not," says Judy.  Also with a secretly glistening eye.

"He never saw me in his life to know me," observed Small; "I don't 
know why I should introduce HIM, I am sure!"

"No, he never communicated with us, which is to be deplored," the 
old gentleman strikes in, "but I have come to look after the 
property--to look over the papers, and to look after the property.  
We shall make good our title.  It is in the hands of my solicitor.  
Mr. Tulkinghorn, of Lincoln's Inn Fields, over the way there, is so 
good as to act as my solicitor; and grass don't grow under HIS 
feet, I can tell ye.  Krook was Mrs. Smallweed's only brother; she 
had no relation but Krook, and Krook had no relation but Mrs. 
Smallweed.  I am speaking of your brother, you brimstone black-
beetle, that was seventy-six years of age."

Mrs. Smallweed instantly begins to shake her head and pipe up, 
"Seventy-six pound seven and sevenpence!  Seventysix thousand bags 
of money!  Seventy-six hundred thousand million of parcels of bank-
notes!"

"Will somebody give me a quart pot?" exclaims her exasperated 
husband, looking helplessly about him and finding no missile within 
his reach.  "Will somebody obleege me with a spittoon?  Will 
somebody hand me anything hard and bruising to pelt at her?  You 
hag, you cat, you dog, you brimstone barker!"  Here Mr. Smallweed, 
wrought up to the highest pitch by his own eloquence, actually 
throws Judy at her grandmother in default of anything else, by 
butting that young virgin at the old lady with such force as he can 
muster and then dropping into his chair in a heap.

"Shake me up, somebody, if you'll he so good," says the voice from 
within the faintly struggling bundle into which he has collapsed.  
"I have come to look after the property.  Shake me up, and call in 
the police on duty at the next house to be explained to about the 
property.  My solicitor will be here presently to protect the 
property.  Transportation or the gallows for anybody who shall 
touch the property!"  As his dutiful grandchildren set him up, 
panting, and putting him through the usual restorative process of 
shaking and punching, he still repeats like an echo, "The--the 
property!  The property!  Property!"

Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy look at each other, the former as having 
relinquished the whole affair, the latter with a discomfited 
countenance as having entertained some lingering expectations yet.  
But there is nothing to be done in opposition to the Smallweed 
interest.  Mr. Tulkinghorn's clerk comes down from his official pew 
in the chambers to mention to the police that Mr. Tulkinghorn is 
answerable for its being all correct about the next of kin and that 
the papers and effects will be formally taken possession of in due 
time and course.  Mr. Smallweed is at once permitted so far to 
assert his supremacy as to be carried on a visit of sentiment into 
the next house and upstairs into Miss Flite's deserted room, where 
he looks like a hideous bird of prey newly added to her aviary.

The arrival of this unexpected heir soon taking wind in the court 
still makes good for the Sol and keeps the court upon its mettle.  
Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins think it hard upon the young man if 
there really is no will, and consider that a handsome present ought 
to be made him out of the estate.  Young Piper and young Perkins, 
as members of that restless juvenile circle which is the terror of 
the foot-passengers in Chancery Lane, crumble into ashes behind the 
pump and under the archway all day long, where wild yells and 
hootings take place over their remains.  Little Swills and Miss M. 
Melvilleson enter into affable conversation with their patrons, 
feeling that these unusual occurrences level the barriers between 
professionals and non-professionals.  Mr. Bogsby puts up "The 
popular song of King Death, with chorus by the whole strength of 
the company," as the great Harmonic feature of the week and 
announces in the bill that "J. G. B. is induced to do so at a 
considerable extra expense in consequence of a wish which has been 
very generally expressed at the bar by a large body of respectable 
individuals and in homage to a late melancholy event which has 
aroused so much sensation."  There is one point connected with the 
deceased upon which the court is particularly anxious, namely, that 
the fiction of a full-sized coffin should be preserved, though 
there is so little to put in it.  Upon the undertaker's stating in 
the Sol's bar in the course of the day that he has received orders 
to construct "a six-footer," the general solicitude is much 
relieved, and it is considered that Mr. Smallweed's conduct does 
him great honour.

Out of the court, and a long way out of it, there is considerable 
excitement too, for men of science and philosophy come to look, and 
carriages set down doctors at the corner who arrive with the same 
intent, and there is more learned talk about inflammable gases and 
phosphuretted hydrogen than the court has ever imagined.  Some of 
these authorities (of course the wisest) hold with indignation that 
the deceased had no business to die in the alleged manner; and 
being reminded by other authorities of a certain inquiry into the 
evidence for such deaths reprinted in the sixth volume of the 
Philosophical Transactions; and also of a book not quite unknown on 
English medical jurisprudence; and likewise of the Italian case of 
the Countess Cornelia Baudi as set forth in detail by one 
Bianchini, prebendary of Verona, who wrote a scholarly work or so 
and was occasionally heard of in his time as having gleams of 
reason in him; and also of the testimony of Messrs. Fodere and 
Mere, two pestilent Frenchmen who WOULD investigate the subject; 
and further, of the corroborative testimony of Monsieur Le Cat, a 
rather celebrated French surgeon once upon a time, who had the 
unpoliteness to live in a house where such a case occurred and even 
to write an account of it--still they regard the late Mr. Krook's 
obstinacy in going out of the world by any such by-way as wholly 
unjustifiable and personally offensive.  The less the court 
understands of all this, the more the court likes it, and the 
greater enjoyment it has in the stock in trade of the Sol's Arms.  
Then there comes the artist of a picture newspaper, with a 
foreground and figures ready drawn for anything from a wreck on the 
Cornish coast to a review in Hyde Park or a meeting in Manchester, 
and in Mrs. Perkins' own room, memorable evermore, he then and 
there throws in upon the block Mr. Krook's house, as large as life; 
in fact, considerably larger, making a very temple of it.  
Similarly, being permitted to look in at the door of the fatal 
chamber, he depicts that apartment as three-quarters of a mile long 
by fifty yards high, at which the court is particularly charmed.  
All this time the two gentlemen before mentioned pop in and out of 
every house and assist at the philosophical disputations--go 
everywhere and listen to everybody--and yet are always diving into 
the Sol's parlour and writing with the ravenous little pens on the 
tissue-paper.

At last come the coroner and his inquiry, like as before, except 
that the coroner cherishes this case as being out of the common way 
and tells the gentlemen of the jury, in his private capacity, that 
"that would seem to be an unlucky house next door, gentlemen, a 
destined house; but so we sometimes find it, and these are 
mysteries we can't account for!"  After which the six-footer comes 
into action and is much admired.

In all these proceedings Mr. Guppy has so slight a part, except 
when he gives his evidence, that he is moved on like a private 
individual and can only haunt the secret house on the outside, 
where he has the mortification of seeing Mr. Smallweed padlocking 
the door, and of bitterly knowing himself to be shut out.  But 
before these proceedings draw to a close, that is to say, on the 
night next after the catastrophe, Mr. Guppy has a thing to say that 
must be said to Lady Dedlock.

For which reason, with a sinking heart and with that hang-dog sense 
of guilt upon him which dread and watching enfolded in the Sol's 
Arms have produced, the young man of the name of Guppy presents 
himself at the town mansion at about seven o'clock in the evening 
and requests to see her ladyship.  Mercury replies that she is 
going out to dinner; don't he see the carriage at the door?  Yes, 
he does see the carriage at the door; but he wants to see my Lady 
too.

Mercury is disposed, as he will presently declare to a fellow-
gentleman in waiting, "to pitch into the young man"; but his 
instructions are positive.  Therefore he sulkily supposes that the 
young man must come up into the library.  There he leaves the young 
man in a large room, not over-light, while he makes report of him.

Mr. Guppy looks into the shade in all directions, discovering 
everywhere a certain charred and whitened little heap of coal or 
wood.  Presently he hears a rustling.  Is it--?  No, it's no ghost, 
but fair flesh and blood, most brilliantly dressed.

"I have to beg your ladyship's pardon," Mr. Guppy stammers, very 
downcast.  "This is an inconvenient time--"

"I told you, you could come at any time."  She takes a chair, 
looking straight at him as on the last occasion.

"Thank your ladyship.  Your ladyship is very affable."

"You can sit down."  There is not much affability in her tone.

"I don't know, your ladyship, that it's worth while my sitting down 
and detaining you, for I--I have not got the letters that I 
mentioned when I had the honour of waiting on your ladyship."

"Have you come merely to say so?"

"Merely to say so, your ladyship."  Mr. Guppy besides being 
depressed, disappointed, and uneasy, is put at a further 
disadvantage by the splendour and beauty of her appearance.

She knows its influence perfectly, has studied it too well to miss 
a grain of its effect on any one.  As she looks at him so steadily 
and coldly, he not only feels conscious that he has no guide in the 
least perception of what is really the complexion of her thoughts, 
but also that he is being every moment, as it were, removed further 
and further from her.

She will not speak, it is plain.  So he must.

"In short, your ladyship," says Mr. Guppy like a meanly penitent 
thief, "the person I was to have had the letters of, has come to a 
sudden end, and--"  He stops.  Lady Dedlock calmly finishes the 
sentence.

"And the letters are destroyed with the person?"

Mr. Guppy would say no if he could--as he is unable to hide.

"I believe so, your ladyship."

If he could see the least sparkle of relief in her face now?  No, 
he could see no such thing, even if that brave outside did not 
utterly put him away, and he were not looking beyond it and about 
it.

He falters an awkward excuse or two for his failure.

"Is this all you have to say?" inquires Lady Dedlock, having heard 
him out--or as nearly out as he can stumble.

Mr. Guppy thinks that's all.

"You had better be sure that you wish to say nothing more to me, 
this being the last time you will have the opportunity."

Mr. Guppy is quite sure.  And indeed he has no such wish at 
present, by any means.

"That is enough.  I will dispense with excuses.  Good evening to 
you!"  And she rings for Mercury to show the young man of the name 
of Guppy out.

But in that house, in that same moment, there happens to be an old 
man of the name of Tulkinghorn.  And that old man, coming with his 
quiet footstep to the library, has his hand at that moment on the 
handle of the door--comes in--and comes face to face with the young 
man as he is leaving the room.

One glance between the old man and the lady, and for an instant the 
blind that is always down flies up.  Suspicion, eager and sharp, 
looks out.  Another instant, close again.

"I beg your pardon, Lady Dedlock.  I beg your pardon a thousand 
times.  It is so very unusual to find you here at this hour.  I 
supposed the room was empty.  I beg your pardon!"

"Stay!"  She negligently calls him back.  "Remain here, I beg.  I 
am going out to dinner.  I have nothing more to say to this young 
man!"

The disconcerted young man bows, as he goes out, and cringingly 
hopes that Mr. Tulkinghorn of the Fields is well.

"Aye, aye?" says the lawyer, looking at him from under his bent 
brows, though he has no need to look again--not he.  "From Kenge 
and Carboy's, surely?"

"Kenge and Carboy's, Mr. Tulkinghorn.  Name of Guppy, sir."

"To be sure.  Why, thank you, Mr. Guppy, I am very well!"

"Happy to hear it, sir.  You can't be too well, sir, for the credit 
of the profession."

"Thank you, Mr. Guppy!"

Mr. Guppy sneaks away.  Mr. Tulkinghorn, such a foil in his old-
fashioned rusty black to Lady Dedlock's brightness, hands her down 
the staircase to her carriage.  He returns rubbing his chin, and 
rubs it a good deal in the course of the evening.



CHAPTER XXXIV

A Turn of the Screw


"Now, what," says Mr. George, "may this be?  Is it blank cartridge 
or ball?  A flash in the pan or a shot?"

An open letter is the subject of the trooper's speculations, and it 
seems to perplex him mightily.  He looks at it at arm's length, 
brings it close to him, holds it in his right hand, holds it in his 
left hand, reads it with his head on this side, with his head on 
that side, contracts his eyebrows, elevates them, still cannot 
satisfy himself.  He smooths it out upon the table with his heavy 
palm, and thoughtfully walking up and down the gallery, makes a 
halt before it every now and then to come upon it with a fresh eye.  
Even that won't do.  "Is it," Mr. George still muses, "blank 
cartridge or ball?"

Phil Squod, with the aid of a brush and paint-pot, is employed in 
the distance whitening the targets, softly whistling in quick-march 
time and in drum-and-fife manner that he must and will go back 
again to the girl he left behind him.

"Phil!"  The trooper beckons as he calls him.

Phil approaches in his usual way, sidling off at first as if he 
were going anywhere else and then bearing down upon his commander 
like a bayonet-charge.  Certain splashes of white show in high 
relief upon his dirty face, and he scrapes his one eyebrow with the 
handle of the brush.

"Attention, Phil!  Listen to this."

"Steady, commander, steady."

"'Sir.  Allow me to remind you (though there is no legal necessity 
for my doing so, as you are aware) that the bill at two months' 
date drawn on yourself by Mr. Matthew Bagnet, and by you accepted, 
for the sum of ninety-seven pounds four shillings and ninepence, 
will become due to-morrow, when you will please be prepared to take 
up the same on presentation.  Yours, Joshua Smallweed.'  What do 
you make of that, Phil?"

"Mischief, guv'ner."

"Why?"

"I think," replies Phil after pensively tracing out a cross-wrinkle 
in his forehead with the brush-handle, "that mischeevious 
consequences is always meant when money's asked for."

"Lookye, Phil," says the trooper, sitting on the table.  "First and 
last, I have paid, I may say, half as much again as this principal 
in interest and one thing and another."

Phil intimates by sidling back a pace or two, with a very 
unaccountable wrench of his wry face, that he does not regard the 
transaction as being made more promising by this incident.

"And lookye further, Phil," says the trooper, staying his premature 
conclusions with a wave of his hand.  "There has always been an 
understanding that this bill was to be what they call renewed.  And 
it has been renewed no end of times.  What do you say now?"

"I say that I think the times is come to a end at last."

"You do?  Humph!  I am much of the same mind myself."

"Joshua Smallweed is him that was brought here in a chair?"

"The same."

"Guv'ner," says Phil with exceeding gravity, "he's a leech in his 
dispositions, he's a screw and a wice in his actions, a snake in 
his twistings, and a lobster in his claws."

Having thus expressively uttered his sentiments, Mr. Squod, after 
waiting a little to ascertain if any further remark be expected of 
him, gets back by his usual series of movements to the target he 
has in hand and vigorously signifies through his former musical 
medium that he must and he will return to that ideal young lady.  
George, having folded the letter, walks in that direction.

"There IS a way, commander," says Phil, looking cunningly at him, 
"of settling this."

"Paying the money, I suppose?  I wish I could."

Phil shakes his head.  "No, guv'ner, no; not so bad as that.  There 
IS a way," says Phil with a highly artistic turn of his brush; 
"what I'm a-doing at present."

"Whitewashing."

Phil nods.

"A pretty way that would be!  Do you know what would become of the 
Bagnets in that case?  Do you know they would be ruined to pay off 
my old scores?  YOU'RE a moral character," says the trooper, eyeing 
him in his large way with no small indignation; "upon my life you 
are, Phil!"

Phil, on one knee at the target, is in course of protesting 
earnestly, though not without many allegorical scoops of his brush 
and smoothings of the white surface round the rim with his thumb, 
that he had forgotten the Bagnet responsibility and would not so 
much as injure a hair of the head of any member of that worthy 
family when steps are audible in the long passage without, and a 
cheerful voice is heard to wonder whether George is at home.  Phil, 
with a look at his master, hobbles up, saying, "Here's the guv'ner, 
Mrs. Bagnet!  Here he is!" and the old girl herself, accompanied by 
Mr. Bagnet, appears.

The old girl never appears in walking trim, in any season of the 
year, without a grey cloth cloak, coarse and much worn but very 
clean, which is, undoubtedly, the identical garment rendered so 
interesting to Mr. Bagnet by having made its way home to Europe 
from another quarter of the globe in company with Mrs. Bagnet and 
an umbrella.  The latter faithful appendage is also invariably a 
part of the old girl's presence out of doors.  It is of no colour 
known in this life and has a corrugated wooden crook for a handle, 
with a metallic object let into its prow, or beak, resembling a 
little model of a fanlight over a street door or one of the oval 
glasses out of a pair of spectacles, which ornamental object has 
not that tenacious capacity of sticking to its post that might be 
desired in an article long associated with the British army.  The 
old girl's umbrella is of a flabby habit of waist and seems to be 
in need of stays--an appearance that is possibly referable to its 
having served through a series of years at home as a cupboard and 
on journeys as a carpet bag.  She never puts it up, having the 
greatest reliance on her well-proved cloak with its capacious hood, 
but generally uses the instrument as a wand with which to point out 
joints of meat or bunches of greens in marketing or to arrest the 
attention of tradesmen by a friendly poke.  Without her market-
basket, which is a sort of wicker well with two flapping lids, she 
never stirs abroad.  Attended by these her trusty companions, 
therefore, her honest sunburnt face looking cheerily out of a rough 
straw bonnet, Mrs. Bagnet now arrives, fresh-coloured and bright, 
in George's Shooting Gallery.

"Well, George, old fellow," says she, "and how do YOU do, this 
sunshiny morning?"

Giving him a friendly shake of the hand, Mrs. Bagnet draws a long 
breath after her walk and sits down to enjoy a rest.  Having a 
faculty, matured on the tops of baggage-waggons and in other such 
positions, of resting easily anywhere, she perches on a rough 
bench, unties her bonnet-strings, pushes back her bonnet, crosses 
her arms, and looks perfectly comfortable.

Mr. Bagnet in the meantime has shaken hands with his old comrade 
and with Phil, on whom Mrs. Bagnet likewise bestows a good-humoured 
nod and smile.

"Now, George," said Mrs. Bagnet briskly, "here we are, Lignum and 
myself"--she often speaks of her husband by this appellation, on 
account, as it is supposed, of Lignum Vitae having been his old 
regimental nickname when they first became acquainted, in 
compliment to the extreme hardness and toughness of his 
physiognomy--"just looked in, we have, to make it all correct as 
usual about that security.  Give him the new bill to sign, George, 
and he'll sign it like a man."

"I was coming to you this morning," observes the trooper 
reluctantly.

"Yes, we thought you'd come to us this morning, but we turned out 
early and left Woolwich, the best of boys, to mind his sisters and 
came to you instead--as you see!  For Lignum, he's tied so close 
now, and gets so little exercise, that a walk does him good.  But 
what's the matter, George?" asks Mrs. Bagnet, stopping in her 
cheerful talk.  "You don't look yourself."

"I am not quite myself," returns the trooper; "I have been a little 
put out, Mrs. Bagnet."

Her bright quick eye catches the truth directly.  "George!" holding 
up her forefinger.  "Don't tell me there's anything wrong about 
that security of Lignum's!  Don't do it, George, on account of the 
children!"

The trooper looks at her with a troubled visage.

"George," says Mrs. Bagnet, using both her arms for emphasis and 
occasionally bringing down her open hands upon her knees.  "If you 
have allowed anything wrong to come to that security of Lignum's, 
and if you have let him in for it, and if you have put us in danger 
of being sold up--and I see sold up in your face, George, as plain 
as print--you have done a shameful action and have deceived us 
cruelly.  I tell you, cruelly, George.  There!"

Mr. Bagnet, otherwise as immovable as a pump or a lamp-post, puts 
his large right hand on the top of his bald head as if to defend it 
from a shower-bath and looks with great uneasiness at Mrs. Bagnet.

"George," says that old girl, "I wonder at you!  George, I am 
ashamed of you!  George, I couldn't have believed you would have 
done it!  I always knew you to be a rolling sone that gathered no 
moss, but I never thought you would have taken away what little 
moss there was for Bagnet and the children to lie upon.  You know 
what a hard-working, steady-going chap he is.  You know what Quebec 
and Malta and Woolwich are, and I never did think you would, or 
could, have had the heart to serve us so.  Oh, George!"  Mrs. 
Bagnet gathers up her cloak to wipe her eyes on in a very genuine 
manner, "How could you do it?"

Mrs. Bagnet ceasing, Mr. Bagnet removes his hand from his head as 
if the shower-bath were over and looks disconsolately at Mr. 
George, who has turned quite white and looks distressfully at the 
grey cloak and straw bonnet.

"Mat," says the trooper in a subdued voice, addressing him but 
still looking at his wife, "I am sorry you take it so much to 
heart, because I do hope it's not so bad as that comes to.  I 
certainly have, this morning, received this letter"--which he reads 
aloud--"but I hope it may be set right yet.  As to a rolling stone, 
why, what you say is true.  I AM a rolling stone, and I never 
rolled in anybody's way, I fully believe, that I rolled the least 
good to.  But it's impossible for an old vagabond comrade to like 
your wife and family better than I like 'em, Mat, and I trust 
you'll look upon me as forgivingly as you can.  Don't think I've 
kept anything from you.  I haven't had the letter more than a 
quarter of an hour."

"Old girl," murmurs Mr. Bagnet after a short silence, "will you 
tell him my opinion?"

"Oh! Why didn't he marry," Mrs. Bagnet answers, half laughing and 
half crying, "Joe Pouch's widder in North America?  Then he 
wouldn't have got himself into these troubles."

"The old girl," says Mr. Baguet, "puts it correct--why didn't you?"

"Well, she has a better husband by this time, I hope," returns the 
trooper.  "Anyhow, here I stand, this present day, NOT married to 
Joe Pouch's widder.  What shall I do?  You see all I have got about 
me.  It's not mine; it's yours.  Give the word, and I'll sell off 
every morsel.  If I could have hoped it would have brought in 
nearly the sum wanted, I'd have sold all long ago.  Don't believe 
that I'll leave you or yours in the lurch, Mat.  I'd sell myself 
first.  I only wish," says the trooper, giving himself a 
disparaging blow in the chest, "that I knew of any one who'd buy 
such a second-hand piece of old stores."

"Old girl," murmurs Mr. Bagnet, "give him another bit of my mind."

"George," says the old girl, "you are not so much to be blamed, on 
full consideration, except for ever taking this business without 
the means."

"And that was like me!" observes the penitent trooper, shaking his 
head.  "Like me, I know."

"Silence!  The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "is correct--in her way 
of giving my opinions--hear me out!"

"That was when you never ought to have asked for the security, 
George, and when you never ought to have got it, all things 
considered.  But what's done can't be undone.  You are always an 
honourable and straightforward fellow, as far as lays in your 
power, though a little flighty.  On the other hand, you can't admit 
but what it's natural in us to be anxious with such a thing hanging 
over our heads.  So forget and forgive all round, George.  Come!  
Forget and forgive all round!"

Mrs. Bagnet, giving him one of her honest hands and giving her 
husband the other, Mr. George gives each of them one of his and 
holds them while he speaks.

"I do assure you both, there's nothing I wouldn't do to discharge 
this obligation.  But whatever I have been able to scrape together 
has gone every two months in keeping it up.  We have lived plainly 
enough here, Phil and I.  But the gallery don't quite do what was 
expected of it, and it's not--in short, it's not the mint.  It was 
wrong in me to take it?  Well, so it was.  But I was in a manner 
drawn into that step, and I thought it might steady me, and set me 
up, and you'll try to overlook my having such expectations, and 
upon my soul, I am very much obliged to you, and very much ashamed 
of myself."  With these concluding words, Mr. George gives a shake 
to each of the hands he holds, and relinquishing them, backs a pace 
or two in a broad-chested, upright attitude, as if he had made a 
final confession and were immediately going to be shot with all 
military honours.

"George, hear me out!" says Mr. Bagnet, glancing at his wife.  "Old 
girl, go on!"

Mr. Bagnet, being in this singular manner heard out, has merely to 
observe that the letter must be attended to without any delay, that 
it is advisable that George and he should immediately wait on Mr. 
Smallweed in person, and that the primary object is to save and 
hold harmless Mr. Bagnet, who had none of the money.  Mr. George, 
entirely assenting, puts on his hat and prepares to march with Mr. 
Bagnet to the enemy's camp.

"Don't you mind a woman's hasty word, George," says Mrs. Bagnet, 
patting him on the shoulder.  "I trust my old Lignum to you, and I 
am sure you'll bring him through it."

The trooper returns that this is kindly said and that he WILL bring 
Lignum through it somehow.  Upon which Mrs. Bagnet, with her cloak, 
basket, and umbrella, goes home, bright-eyed again, to the rest of 
her family, and the comrades sally forth on the hopeful errand of 
mollifying Mr. Smallweed.

Whether there are two people in England less likely to come 
satisfactorily out of any negotiation with Mr. Smallweed than Mr. 
George and Mr. Matthew Bagnet may be very reasonably questioned.  
Also, notwithstanding their martial appearance, broad square 
shoulders, and heavy tread, whether there are within the same 
limits two more simple and unaccustomed children in all the 
Smallweedy affairs of life.  As they proceed with great gravity 
through the streets towards the region of Mount Pleasant, Mr. 
Bagnet, observing his companion to be thoughtful, considers it a 
friendly part to refer to Mrs. Bagnet's late sally.

"George, you know the old girl--she's as sweet and as mild as milk.  
But touch her on the children--or myself--and she's off like 
gunpowder."

"It does her credit, Mat!"

"George," says Mr. Bagnet, looking straight before him, "the old 
girl--can't do anything--that don't do her credit.  More or less.  
I never say so.  Discipline must he maintained."

"She's worth her weight in gold," says the trooper.

"In gold?" says Mr. Bagnet.  "I'll tell you what.  The old girl's 
weight--is twelve stone six.  Would I take that weight--in any 
metal--for the old girl?  No.  Why not?  Because the old girl's 
metal is far more precious---than the preciousest metal.  And she's 
ALL metal!"

"You are right, Mat!"

"When she took me--and accepted of the ring--she 'listed under me 
and the children--heart and head, for life.  She's that earnest," 
says Mr. Bagnet, "and true to her colours--that, touch us with a 
finger--and she turns out--and stands to her arms.  If the old girl 
fires wide--once in a way--at the call of duty--look over it, 
George.  For she's loyal!"

"Why, bless her, Mat," returns the trooper, "I think the higher of 
her for it!"

"You are right!" says Mr. Bagnet with the warmest enthusiasm, 
though without relaxing the rigidity of a single muscle.  "Think as 
high of the old girl--as the rock of Gibraltar--and still you'll be 
thinking low--of such merits.  But I never own to it before her.  
Discipline must be maintained."

These encomiums bring them to Mount Pleasant and to Grandfather 
Smallweed's house.  The door is opened by the perennial Judy, who, 
having surveyed them from top to toe with no particular favour, but 
indeed with a malignant sneer, leaves them standing there while she 
consults the oracle as to their admission.  The oracle may be 
inferred to give consent from the circumstance of her returning 
with the words on her honey lips that they can come in if they want 
to it.  Thus privileged, they come in and find Mr. Smallweed with 
his feet in the drawer of his chair as if it were a paper foot-bath 
and Mrs. Smallweed obscured with the cushion like a bird that is 
not to sing.

"My dear friend," says Grandfather Smallweed with those two lean 
affectionate arms of his stretched forth.  "How de do?  How de do?  
Who is our friend, my dear friend?"

"Why this," returns George, not able to be very conciliatory at 
first, "is Matthew Bagnet, who has obliged me in that matter of 
ours, you know."

"Oh! Mr. Bagnet?  Surely!"  The old man looks at him under his 
hand.

"Hope you're well, Mr. Bagnet?  Fine man, Mr. George!  Military 
air, sir!"

No chairs being offered, Mr. George brings one forward for Bagnet 
and one for himself.  They sit down, Mr. Bagnet as if he had no 
power of bending himself, except at the hips, for that purpose.

"Judy," says Mr. Smallweed, "bring the pipe."

"Why, I don't know," Mr. George interposes, "that the young woman 
need give herself that trouble, for to tell you the truth, I am not 
inclined to smoke it to-day."

"Ain't you?" returns the old man.  "Judy, bring the pipe."

"The fact is, Mr. Smallweed," proceeds George, "that I find myself 
in rather an unpleasant state of mind.  It appears to me, sir, that 
your friend in the city has been playing tricks."

"Oh, dear no!" says Grandfather Smallweed.  "He never does that!"

"Don't he?  Well, I am glad to hear it, because I thought it might 
be HIS doing.  This, you know, I am speaking of.  This letter."

Grandfather Smallweed smiles in a very ugly way in recognition of 
the letter.

"What does it mean?" asks Mr. George.

"Judy," says the old man.  "Have you got the pipe?  Give it to me.  
Did you say what does it mean, my good friend?"

"Aye!  Now, come, come, you know, Mr. Smallweed," urges the 
trooper, constraining himself to speak as smoothly and 
confidentially as he can, holding the open letter in one hand and 
resting the broad knuckles of the other on his thigh, "a good lot 
of money has passed between us, and we are face to face at the 
present moment, and are both well aware of the understanding there 
has always been.  I am prepared to do the usual thing which I have 
done regularly and to keep this matter going.  I never got a letter 
like this from you before, and I have been a little put about by it 
this morning, because here's my friend Matthew Bagnet, who, you 
know, had none of the money--"

"I DON'T know it, you know," says the old man quietly.

"Why, con-found you--it, I mean--I tell you so, don't I?"

"Oh, yes, you tell me so," returns Grandfather Smallweed.  "But I 
don't know it."

"Well!" says the trooper, swallowing his fire.  "I know it."

Mr. Smallweed replies with excellent temper, "Ah!  That's quite 
another thing!"  And adds, "But it don't matter.  Mr. Bagnet's 
situation is all one, whether or no."

The unfortunate George makes a great effort to arrange the affair 
comfortably and to propitiate Mr. Smallweed by taking him upon his 
own terms.

"That's just what I mean.  As you say, Mr. Smallweed, here's 
Matthew Bagnet liable to be fixed whether or no.  Now, you see, 
that makes his good lady very uneasy in her mind, and me too, for 
whereas I'm a harurn-scarum sort of a good-for-nought that more 
kicks than halfpence come natural to, why he's a steady family man, 
don't you see?  Now, Mr. Smallweed," says the trooper, gaining 
confidence as he proceeds in his soldierly mode of doing business, 
"although you and I are good friends enough in a certain sort of a 
way, I am well aware that I can't ask you to let my friend Bagnet 
off entirely."

"Oh, dear, you are too modest.  You can ASK me anything, Mr. 
George."  (There is an ogreish kind of jocularity in Grandfather 
Smallweed to-day.)

"And you can refuse, you mean, eh?  Or not you so much, perhaps, as 
your friend in the city?  Ha ha ha!"

"Ha ha ha!" echoes Grandfather Smallweed.  In such a very hard 
manner and with eyes so particularly green that Mr. Bagnet's 
natural gravity is much deepened by the contemplation of that 
venerable man.

"Come!" says the sanguine George.  "I am glad to find we can be 
pleasant, because I want to arrange this pleasantly.  Here's my 
friend Bagnet, and here am I.  We'll settle the matter on the spot, 
if you please, Mr. Smallweed, in the usual way.  And you'll ease my 
friend Bagnet's mind, and his family's mind, a good deal if you'll 
just mention to him what our understanding is."

Here some shrill spectre cries out in a mocking manner, "Oh, good 
gracious!  Oh!"  Unless, indeed, it be the sportive Judy, who is 
found to be silent when the startled visitors look round, but whose 
chin has received a recent toss, expressive of derision and 
contempt.  Mr. Bagnet's gravity becomes yet more profound.

"But I think you asked me, Mr. George"--old Smallweed, who all this 
time has had the pipe in his hand, is the speaker now--"I think you 
asked me, what did the letter mean?"

"Why, yes, I did," returns the trooper in his off-hand way, "but I 
don't care to know particularly, if it's all correct and pleasant."

Mr. Smallweed, purposely balking himself in an aim at the trooper's 
head, throws the pipe on the ground and breaks it to pieces.

"That's what it means, my dear friend.  I'll smash you.  I'll 
crumble you.  I'll powder you.  Go to the devil!"

The two friends rise and look at one another.  Mr. Bagnet's gravity 
has now attained its profoundest point.

"Go to the devil!" repeats the old man.  "I'll have no more of your 
pipe-smokings and swaggerings.  What?  You're an independent 
dragoon, too!  Go to my lawyer (you remember where; you have been 
there before) and show your independeuce now, will you?  Come, my 
dear friend, there's a chance for you.  Open the street door, Judy; 
put these blusterers out!  Call in help if they don't go.  Put 'em 
out!"

He vociferates this so loudly that Mr. Bagnet, laying his hands on 
the shoulders of his comrade before the latter can recover from his 
amazement, gets him on the outside of the street door, which is 
instantly slammed by the triumphant Judy.  Utterly confounded, Mr. 
George awhile stands looking at the knocker.  Mr. Bagnet, in a 
perfect abyss of gravity, walks up and down before the little 
parlour window like a sentry and looks in every time he passes, 
apparently revolving something in his mind.

"Come, Mat," says Mr. George when he has recovered himself, "we 
must try the lawyer.  Now, what do you think of this rascal?"

Mr. Bagnet, stopping to take a farewell look into the parlour, 
replies with one shake of his head directed at the interior, "If my 
old girl had been here--I'd have told him!"  Having so discharged 
himself of the subject of his cogitations, he falls into step and 
marches off with the trooper, shoulder to shoulder.

When they present themselves in Lincoln's Inn Fields, Mr. 
Tulkinghorn is engaged and not to be seen.  He is not at all 
willing to see them, for when they have waited a full hour, and the 
clerk, on his bell being rung, takes the opportunity of mentioning 
as much, he brings forth no more encouraging message than that Mr. 
Tulkinghorn has nothing to say to them and they had better not 
wait.  They do wait, however, with the perseverance of military 
tactics, and at last the bell rings again and the client in 
possession comes out of Mr. Tulkinghorn's room.

The client is a handsome old lady, no other than Mrs. Rouncewell, 
housekeeper at Chesney Wold.  She comes out of the sanctuary with a 
fair old-fashioned curtsy and softly shuts the door.  She is 
treated with some distinction there, for the clerk steps out of his 
pew to show her through the outer office and to let her out.  The 
old lady is thanking him for his attention when she observes the 
comrades in waiting.

"I beg your pardon, sir, but I think those gentlemen are military?"

The clerk referring the question to them with his eye, and Mr. 
George not turning round from the almanac over the fire-place.  Mr. 
Bagnet takes upon himself to reply, "Yes, ma'am.  Formerly."

"I thought so.  I was sure of it.  My heart warms, gentlemen, at 
the sight of you.  It always does at the sight of such.  God bless 
you, gentlemen!  You'll excuse an old woman, but I had a son once 
who went for a soldier.  A fine handsome youth he was, and good in 
his bold way, though some people did disparage him to his poor 
mother.  I ask your pardon for troubling you, sir.  God bless you, 
gentlemen!"

"Same to you, ma'am!" returns Mr. Bagnet with right good will.

There is something very touching in the earnestness of the old 
lady's voice and in the tremble that goes through her quaint old 
figure.  But Mr. George is so occupied with the almanac over the 
fireplace (calculating the coming months by it perhaps) that he 
does not look round until she has gone away and the door is closed 
upon her.

"George," Mr. Bagnet gruffly whispers when he does turn from the 
almanac at last.  "Don't be cast down!  'Why, soldiers, why--should 
we be melancholy, boys?'  Cheer up, my hearty!"

The clerk having now again gone in to say that they are still there 
and Mr. Tulkinghorn being heard to return with some irascibility, 
"Let 'em come in then!" they pass into the great room with the 
painted ceiling and find him standing before the fire.

"Now, you men, what do you want?  Sergeant, I told you the last 
time I saw you that I don't desire your company here."

Sergeant replies--dashed within the last few minutes as to his 
usual manner of speech, and even as to his usual carriage--that he 
has received this letter, has been to Mr. Smallweed about it, and 
has been referred there.

"I have nothing to say to you," rejoins Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "If you 
get into debt, you must pay your debts or take the consequences.  
You have no occasion to come here to learn that, I suppose?"

Sergeant is sorry to say that he is not prepared with the money.

"Very well!  Then the other man--this man, if this is he--must pay 
it for you."

Sergeant is sorry to add that the other man is not prepared with 
the money either.

"Very well!  Then you must pay it between you or you must both be 
sued for it and both suffer.  You have had the money and must 
refund it.  You are not to pocket other people's pounds, shillings, 
and pence and escape scot-free."

The lawyer sits down in his easy-chair and stirs the fire.  Mr. 
George hopes he will have the goodness to--

"I tell you, sergeant, I have nothing to say to you.  I don't like 
your associates and don't want you here.  This matter is not at all 
in my course of practice and is not in my office.  Mr. Smallweed is 
good enough to offer these affairs to me, but they are not in my 
way.  You must go to Melchisedech's in Clifford's Inn."

"I must make an apology to you, sir," says Mr. George, "for 
pressing myself upon you with so little encouragement--which is 
almost as unpleasant to me as it can be to you--but would you let 
me say a private word to you?"

Mr. Tulkinghorn rises with his hands in his pockets and walks into 
one of the window recesses.  "Now!  I have no time to waste."  In 
the midst of his perfect assumption of indifference, he directs a 
sharp look at the trooper, taking care to stand with his own back 
to the light and to have the other with his face towards it.

"Well, sir," says Mr. George, "this man with me is the other party 
implicated in this unfortunate affair--nominally, only nominally--
and my sole object is to prevent his getting into trouble on my 
account.  He is a most respectable man with a wife and family, 
formerly in the Royal Artillery--"

"My friend, I don't care a pinch of snuff for the whole Royal 
Artillery establishment--officers, men, tumbrils, waggons, horses, 
guns, and ammunition."

"'Tis likely, sir.  But I care a good deal for Bagnet and his wife 
and family being injured on my account.  And if I could bring them 
through this matter, I should have no help for it but to give up 
without any other consideration what you wanted of me the other 
day."

"Have you got it here?"

"I have got it here, sir."

"Sergeant," the lawyer proceeds in his dry passionless manner, far 
more hopeless in the dealing with than any amount of vehemence, 
"make up your mind while I speak to you, for this is final.  After 
I have finished speaking I have closed the subject, and I won't re-
open it.  Understand that.  You can leave here, for a few days, 
what you say you have brought here if you choose; you can take it 
away at once if you choose.  In case you choose to leave it here, I 
can do this for you--I can replace this matter on its old footing, 
and I can go so far besides as to give you a written undertaking 
that this man Bagnet shall never be troubled in any way until you 
have been proceeded against to the utmost, that your means shall be 
exhausted before the creditor looks to his.  This is in fact all 
but freeing him.  Have you decided?"

The trooper puts his hand into his breast and answers with a long 
breath, "I must do it, sir."

So Mr. Tulkinghorn, putting on his spectacles, sits down and writes 
the undertaking, which he slowly reads and explains to Bagnet, who 
has all this time been staring at the ceiling and who puts his hand 
on his bald head again, under this new verbal shower-bath, and 
seems exceedingly in need of the old girl through whom to express 
his sentiments.  The trooper then takes from his breast-pocket a 
folded paper, which he lays with an unwilling hand at the lawyer's 
elbow.  "'Tis ouly a letter of instructions, sir.  The last I ever 
had from him."

Look at a millstone, Mr. George, for some change in its expression, 
and you will find it quite as soon as in the face of Mr. 
Tulkinghorn when he opens and reads the letter!  He refolds it and 
lays it in his desk with a countenance as unperturbable as death.

Nor has he anything more to say or do but to nod once in the same 
frigid and discourteous manner and to say briefly, "You can go.  
Show these men out, there!"  Being shown out, they repair to Mr. 
Bagnet's residence to dine.

Boiled beef and greens constitute the day's variety on the former 
repast of boiled pork and greens, and Mrs. Bagnet serves out the 
meal in the same way and seasons it with the best of temper, being 
that rare sort of old girl that she receives Good to her arms 
without a hint that it might be Better and catches light from any 
little spot of darkness near her.  The spot on this occasion is the 
darkened brow of Mr. George; he is unusually thoughtful and 
depressed.  At first Mrs. Bagnet trusts to the combined endearments 
of Quebec and Malta to restore him, but finding those young ladies 
sensible that their existing Bluffy is not the Bluffy of their 
usual frolicsome acquaintance, she winks off the light infantry and 
leaves him to deploy at leisure on the open ground of the domestic 
hearth.

But he does not.  He remains in close order, clouded and depressed.  
During the lengthy cleaning up and pattening process, when he and 
Mr. Bagnet are supplied with their pipes, he is no better than he 
was at dinner.  He forgets to smoke, looks at the fire and ponders, 
lets his pipe out, fills the breast of Mr. Bagnet with perturbation 
and dismay by showing that he has no enjoyment of tobacco.

Therefore when Mrs. Bagnet at last appears, rosy from the 
invigorating pail, and sits down to her work, Mr. Bagnet growls, 
"Old girl!" and winks monitions to her to find out what's the 
matter.

"Why, George!" says Mrs. Bagnet, quietly threading her needle.  
"How low you are!"

"Am I?  Not good company?  Well, I am afraid I am not."

"He ain't at all like Blulfy, mother!" cries little Malta.

"Because he ain't well, I think, mother," adds Quebec.

"Sure that's a bad sign not to be like Bluffy, too!" returns the 
trooper, kissing the young damsels.  "But it's true," with a sigh, 
"true, I am afraid.  These little ones are always right!"

"George," says Mrs. Bagnet, working busily, "if I thought you cross 
enough to think of anything that a shrill old soldier's wife--who 
could have bitten her tongue off afterwards and ought to have done 
it almost--said this morning, I don't know what I shouldn't say to 
you now."

"My kind soul of a darling," returns the trooper.  "Not a morsel of 
it."

"Because really and truly, George, what I said and meant to say was 
that I trusted Lignum to you and was sure you'd bring him through 
it.  And you HAVE brought him through it, noble!"

"Thankee, my dear!" says George.  "I am glad of your good opinion."

In giving Mrs. Bagnet's hand, with her work in it, a friendly 
shake--for she took her seat beside him--the trooper's attention is 
attracted to her face.  After looking at it for a little while as 
she plies her needle, he looks to young Woolwich, sitting on his 
stool in the corner, and beckons that fifer to him.

"See there, my boy," says George, very gently smoothing the 
mother's hair with his hand, "there's a good loving forehead for 
you!  All bright with love of you, my boy.  A little touched by the 
sun and the weather through following your father about and taking 
care of you, but as fresh and wholesome as a ripe apple on a tree."

Mr. Bagnet's face expresses, so far as in its wooden material lies, 
the highest approbation and acquiescence.

"The time will come, my boy," pursues the trooper, "when this hair 
of your mother's will be grey, and this forehead all crossed and 
re-crossed with wrinkles, and a fine old lady she'll be then.  Take 
care, while you are young, that you can think in those days, 'I 
never whitened a hair of her dear head--I never marked a sorrowful 
line in her face!'  For of all the many things that you can think 
of when you are a man, you had better have THAT by you, Woolwich!"

Mr. George concludes by rising from his chair, seating the boy 
beside his mother in it, and saying, with something of a hurry 
about him, that he'll smoke his pipe in the street a bit.



CHAPTER XXXV

Esther's Narrative


I lay ill through several weeks, and the usual tenor of my life 
became like an old remembrance.  But this was not the effect of 
time so much as of the change in all my habits made by the 
helplessness and inaction of a sick-room.  Before I had been 
confined to it many days, everything else seemed to have retired 
into a remote distance where there was little or no separation 
between the various stages of my life which had been really divided 
by years.  In falling ill, I seemed to have crossed a dark lake and 
to have left all my experiences, mingled together by the great 
distance, on the healthy shore.

My housekeeping duties, though at first it caused me great anxiety 
to think that they were unperformed, were soon as far off as the 
oldest of the old duties at Greenleaf or the summer afternoons when 
I went home from school with my portfolio under my arm, and my 
childish shadow at my side, to my godmother's house.  I had never 
known before how short life really was and into how small a space 
the mind could put it.

While I was very ill, the way in which these divisions of time 
became confused with one another distressed my mind exceedingly.  
At once a child, an elder girl, and the little woman I had been so 
happy as, I was not only oppressed by cares and difficulties 
adapted to each station, but by the great perplexity of endlessly 
trying to reconcile them.  I suppose that few who have not been in 
such a condition can quite understand what I mean or what painful 
unrest arose from this source.

For the same reason I am almost afraid to hint at that time in my 
disorder--it seemed one long night, but I believe there were both 
nights and days in it--when I laboured up colossal staircases, ever 
striving to reach the top, and ever turned, as I have seen a worm 
in a garden path, by some obstruction, and labouring again.  I knew 
perfectly at intervals, and I think vaguely at most times, that I 
was in my bed; and I talked with Charley, and felt her touch, and 
knew her very well; yet I would find myself complaining, "Oh, more 
of these never-ending stairs, Charley--more and more--piled up to 
the sky', I think!" and labouring on again.

Dare I hint at that worse time when, strung together somewhere in 
great black space, there was a flaming necklace, or ring, or starry 
circle of some kind, of which I was one of the beads!  And when my 
only prayer was to be taken off from the rest and when it was such 
inexplicable agony and misery to be a part of the dreadful thing?

Perhaps the less I say of these sick experiences, the less tedious 
and the more intelligible I shall be.  I do not recall them to make 
others unhappy or because I am now the least unhappy in remembering 
them.  It may be that if we knew more of such strange afflictions 
we might be the better able to alleviate their intensity.

The repose that succeeded, the long delicious sleep, the blissful 
rest, when in my weakness I was too calm to have any care for 
myself and could have heard (or so I think now) that I was dying, 
with no other emotion than with a pitying love for those I left 
behind--this state can be perhaps more widely understood.  I was in 
this state when I first shrunk from the light as it twinkled on me 
once more, and knew with a boundless joy for which no words are 
rapturous enough that I should see again.

I had heard my Ada crying at the door, day and night; I had heard 
her calling to me that I was cruel and did not love her; I had 
heard her praying and imploring to be let in to nurse and comfort 
me and to leave my bedside no more; but I had only said, when I 
could speak, "Never, my sweet girl, never!" and I had over and over 
again reminded Charley that she was to keep my darling from the 
room whether I lived or died.  Charley had been true to me in that 
time of need, and with her little hand and her great heart had kept 
the door fast.

But now, my sight strengthening and the glorious light coming every 
day more fully and brightly on me, I could read the letters that my 
dear wrote to me every morning and evening and could put them to my 
lips and lay my cheek upon them with no fear of hurting her.  I 
could see my little maid, so tender and so careful, going about the 
two rooms setting everything in order and speaking cheerfully to 
Ada from the open window again.  I could understand the stillness 
in the house and the thoughtfulness it expressed on the part of all 
those who had always been so good to me.  I could weep in the 
exquisite felicity of my heart and be as happy in my weakness as 
ever I had been in my strength.

By and by my strength began to be restored.  Instead of lying, with 
so strange a calmness, watching what was done for me, as if it were 
done for some one else whom I was quietly sorry for, I helped it a 
little, and so on to a little more and much more, until I became 
useful to myself, and interested, and attached to life again.

How well I remember the pleasant afternoon when I was raised in bed 
with pillows for the first time to enjoy a great tea-drinking with 
Charley!  The little creature--sent into the world, surely, to 
minister to the weak and sick--was so happy, and so busy, and 
stopped so often in her preparations to lay her head upon my bosom, 
and fondle me, and cry with joyful tears she was so glad, she was 
so glad, that I was obliged to say, "Charley, if you go on in this 
way, I must lie down again, my darling, for I am weaker than I 
thought I was!"  So Charley became as quiet as a mouse and took her 
bright face here and there across and across the two rooms, out of 
the shade into the divine sunshine, and out of the sunshine into 
the shade, while I watched her peacefully.  When all her 
preparations were concluded and the pretty tea-table with its 
little delicacies to tempt me, and its white cloth, and its 
flowers, and everything so lovingly and beautifully arranged for me 
by Ada downstairs, was ready at the bedside, I felt sure I was 
steady enough to say something to Charley that was not new to my 
thoughts.

First I complimented Charley on the room, and indeed it was so 
fresh and airy, so spotless and neat, that I could scarce believe I 
had been lying there so long.  This delighted Charley, and her face 
was brighter than before.

"Yet, Charley," said I, looking round, "I miss something, surely, 
that I am accustomed to?"

Poor little Charley looked round too and pretended to shake her 
head as if there were nothing absent.

"Are the pictures all as they used to be?" I asked her.

"Every one of them, miss," said Charley.

"And the furniture, Charley?"

"Except where I have moved it about to make more room, miss."

"And yet," said I, "I miss some familiar object.  Ah, I know what 
it is, Charley!  It's the looking-glass."

Charley got up from the table, making as if she had forgotten 
something, and went into the next room; and I heard her sob there.

I had thought of this very often.  I was now certain of it.  I 
could thank God that it was not a shock to me now.  I called 
Charley back, and when she came--at first pretending to smile, but 
as she drew nearer to me, looking grieved--I took her in my arms 
and said, "It matters very little, Charley.  I hope I can do 
without my old face very well."

I was presently so far advanced as to be able to sit up in a great 
chair and even giddily to walk into the adjoining room, leaning on 
Charley.  The mirror was gone from its usual place in that room 
too, but what I had to bear was none the harder to bear for that.

My guardian had throughout been earnest to visit me, and there was 
now no good reason why I should deny myself that happiness.  He 
came one morning, and when he first came in, could only hold me in 
his embrace and say, "My dear, dear girl!"  I had long known--who 
could know better?--what a deep fountain of affection and 
generosity his heart was; and was it not worth my trivial suffering 
and change to fill such a place in it?  "Oh, yes!" I thought.  "He 
has seen me, and he loves me better than he did; he has seen me and 
is even fonder of me than he was before; and what have I to mourn 
for!"

He sat down by me on the sofa, supporting me with his arm.  For a 
little while he sat with his hand over his face, but when he 
removed it, fell into his usual manner.  There never can have been, 
there never can be, a pleasanter manner.

"My little woman," said he, "what a sad time this has been.  Such 
an inflexible little woman, too, through all!"

"Only for the best, guardian," said I.

"For the best?" he repeated tenderly.  "Of course, for the best.  
But here have Ada and I been perfectly forlorn and miserable; here 
has your friend Caddy been coming and going late and early; here 
has every one about the house been utterly lost and dejected; here 
has even poor Rick been writing--to ME too--in his anxiety for 
you!"

I had read of Caddy in Ada's letters, but not of Richard.  I told 
him so.

"Why, no, my dear," he replied.  "I have thought it better not to 
mention it to her."

"And you speak of his writing to YOU," said I, repeating his 
emphasis.  "As if it were not natural for him to do so, guardian; 
as if he could write to a better friend!"

"He thinks he could, my love," returned my guardian, "and to many a 
better.  The truth is, he wrote to me under a sort of protest while 
unable to write to you with any hope of an answer--wrote coldly, 
haughtily, distantly, resentfully.  Well, dearest little woman, we 
must look forbearingly on it.  He is not to blame.  Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce has warped him out of himself and perverted me in his 
eyes.  I have known it do as bad deeds, and worse, many a time.  If 
two angels could be concerned in it, I believe it would change 
their nature."

"It has not changed yours, guardian."

"Oh, yes, it has, my dear," he said laughingly.  "It has made the 
south wind easterly, I don't know how often.  Rick mistrusts and 
suspects me--goes to lawyers, and is taught to mistrust and suspect 
me.  Hears I have conflicting interests, claims clashing against 
his and what not.  Whereas, heaven knows that if I could get out of 
the mountains of wiglomeration on which my unfortunate name has 
been so long bestowed (which I can't) or could level them by the 
extinction of my own original right (which I can't either, and no 
human power ever can, anyhow, I believe, to such a pass have we 
got), I would do it this hour.  I would rather restore to poor Rick 
his proper nature than be endowed with all the money that dead 
suitors, broken, heart and soul, upon the wheel of Chancery, have 
left unclaimed with the Accountant-General--and that's money 
enough, my dear, to be cast into a pyramid, in memory of Chancery's 
transcendent wickedness."

"IS it possible, guardian," I asked, amazed, "that Richard can be 
suspicious of you?"

"Ah, my love, my love," he said, "it is in the subtle poison of 
such abuses to breed such diseases.  His blood is infected, and 
objects lose their natural aspects in his sight.  It is not HIS 
fault."

"But it is a terrible misfortune, guardian."

"It is a terrible misfortune, little woman, to be ever drawn within 
the influences of Jarndyce and Jarndyce.  I know none greater.  By 
little and little he has been induced to trust in that rotten reed, 
and it communicates some portion of its rottenness to everything 
around him.  But again I say with all my soul, we must be patient 
with poor Rick and not blame him.  What a troop of fine fresh 
hearts like his have I seen in my time turned by the same means!"

I could not help expressing something of my wonder and regret that 
his benevolent, disinterested intentions had prospered so little.

"We must not say so, Dame Durden," he cheerfully rephed; "Ada is 
the happier, I hope, and that is much.  I did think that I and both 
these young creatures might be friends instead of distrustful foes 
and that we might so far counter-act the suit and prove too strong 
for it.  But it was too much to expect.  Jarndyce and Jarndyce was 
the curtain of Rick's cradle."

"But, guardian, may we not hope that a little experience will teach 
him what a false and wretched thing it is?"

"We WILL hope so, my Esther," said Mr. Jarndyce, "and that it may 
not teach him so too late.  In any case we must not be hard on him.  
There are not many grown and matured men living while we speak, 
good men too, who if they were thrown into this same court as 
suitors would not be vitally changed and depreciated within three 
years--within two--within one.  How can we stand amazed at poor 
Rick?  A young man so unfortunate," here he fell into a lower tone, 
as if he were thinking aloud, "cannot at first believe (who could?) 
that Chancery is what it is.  He looks to it, flushed and fitfully, 
to do something with his interests and bring them to some 
settlement.  It procrastinates, disappoints, tries, tortures him; 
wears out his sanguine hopes and patience, thread by thread; but he 
still looks to it, and hankers after it, and finds his whole world 
treacherous and hollow.  Well, well, well!  Enough of this, my 
dear!"

He had supported me, as at first, all this time, and his tenderness 
was so precious to me that I leaned my head upon his shoulder and 
loved him as if he had been my father.  I resolved in my own mind 
in this little pause, by some means, to see Richard when I grew 
strong and try to set him right.

"There are better subjects than these," said my guardian, "for such 
a joyful time as the time of our dear girl's recovery.  And I had a 
commission to broach one of them as soon as I should begin to talk.  
When shall Ada come to see you, my love?"

I had been thinking of that too.  A little in connexion with the 
absent mirrors, but not much, for I knew my loving girl would be 
changed by no change in my looks.

"Dear guardian," said I, "as I have shut her out so long--though 
indeed, indeed, she is like the light to me--"

"I know it well, Dame Durden, well."

He was so good, his touch expressed such endearing compassion and 
affection, and the tone of his voice carried such comfort into my 
heart that I stopped for a little while, quite unable to go on.  
"Yes, yes, you are tired," said he, "Rest a little."

"As I have kept Ada out so long," I began afresh after a short 
while, "I think I should like to have my own way a little longer, 
guardian.  It would be best to be away from here before I see her.  
If Charley and I were to go to some country lodging as soon as I 
can move, and if I had a week there in which to grow stronger and 
to be revived by the sweet air and to look forward to the happiness 
of having Ada with me again, I think it would be better for us."

I hope it was not a poor thing in me to wish to be a little more 
used to my altered self before I met the eyes of the dear girl I 
longed so ardently to see, but it is the truth.  I did.  He 
understood me, I was sure; but I was not afraid of that.  If it 
were a poor thing, I knew he would pass it over.

"Our spoilt little woman," said my guardian, "shall have her own 
way even in her inflexibility, though at the price, I know, of 
tears downstairs.  And see here!  Here is Boythorn, heart of 
chivalry, breathing such ferocious vows as never were breathed on 
paper before, that if you don't go and occupy his whole house, he 
having already turned out of it expressly for that purpose, by 
heaven and by earth he'll pull it down and not leave one brick 
standing on another!"

And my guardian put a letter in my hand, without any ordinary 
beginning such as "My dear Jarndyce," but rushing at once into the 
words, "I swear if Miss Summerson do not come down and take 
possession of my house, which I vacate for her this day at one 
o'clock, P.M.," and then with the utmost seriousness, and in the 
most emphatic terms, going on to make the extraordinary declaration 
he had quoted.  We did not appreciate the writer the less for 
laughing heartily over it, and we settled that I should send him a 
letter of thanks on the morrow and accept his offer.  It was a most 
agreeable one to me, for all the places I could have thought of, I 
should have liked to go to none so well as Chesney Wold.

"Now, little housewife," said my guardian, looking at his watch, "I 
was strictly timed before I came upstairs, for you must not be 
tired too soon; and my time has waned away to the last minute.  I 
have one other petition.  Little Miss Flite, hearing a rumour that 
you were ill, made nothing of walking down here--twenty miles, poor 
soul, in a pair of dancing shoes--to inquire.  It was heaven's 
mercy we were at home, or she would have walked back again."

The old conspiracy to make me happy!  Everybody seemed to be in it!

"Now, pet," said my guardian, "if it would not be irksome to you to 
admit the harmless little creature one afternoon before you save 
Boythorn's otherwise devoted house from demolition, I believe you 
would make her prouder and better pleased with herself than I--
though my eminent name is Jarndyce--could do in a lifetime."

I have no doubt he knew there would be something in the simple 
image of the poor afflicted creature that would fall like a gentle 
lesson on my mind at that time.  I felt it as he spoke to me.  I 
could not tell him heartily enough how ready I was to receive her.  
I had always pitied her, never so much as now.  I had always been 
glad of my little power to soothe her under her calamity, but 
never, never, half so glad before.

We arranged a time for Miss Flite to come out by the coach and 
share my early dinner.  When my guardian left me, I turned my face 
away upon my couch and prayed to be forgiven if I, surrounded by 
such blessings, had magnified to myself the little trial that I had 
to undergo.  The childish prayer of that old birthday when I had 
aspired to be industrious, contented, and true-hearted and to do 
good to some one and win some love to myself if I could came back 
into my mind with a reproachful sense of all the happiness I had 
since enjoyed and all the affectionate hearts that had been turned 
towards me.  If I were weak now, what had I profited by those 
mercies?  I repeated the old childish prayer in its old childish 
words and found that its old peace had not departed from it.

My guardian now came every day.  In a week or so more I could walk 
about our rooms and hold long talks with Ada from behind the 
window-curtain.  Yet I never saw her, for I had not as yet the 
courage to look at the dear face, though I could have done so 
easily without her seeing me.

On the appointed day Miss Flite arrived.  The poor little creature 
ran into my room quite forgetful of her usual dignity, and crying 
from her very heart of hearts, "My dear Fitz Jarndyce!" fell upon 
my neck and kissed me twenty times.

"Dear me!" said she, putting her hand into her reticule, "I have 
nothing here but documents, my dear Fitz Jarndyce; I must borrow a 
pocket handkerchief."

Charley gave her one, and the good creature certainly made use of 
it, for she held it to her eyes with both hands and sat so, 
shedding tears for the next ten minutes.

"With pleasure, my dear Fitz Jarndyce," she was careful to explain.  
"Not the least pain.  Pleasure to see you well again.  Pleasure at 
having the honour of being admitted to see you.  I am so much 
fonder of you, my love, than of the Chancellor.  Though I DO attend 
court regularly.  By the by, my dear, mentioning pocket 
handkerchiefs--"

Miss Flite here looked at Charley, who had been to meet her at the 
place where the coach stopped.  Charley glanced at me and looked 
unwilling to pursue the suggestion.

"Ve-ry right!" said Miss Flite, "Ve-ry correct.  Truly!  Highly 
indiscreet of me to mention it; but my dear Miss Fitz Jarndyce, I 
am afraid I am at times (between ourselves, you wouldn't think it) 
a little--rambling you know," said Miss Flite, touching her 
forehead.  "Nothing more,"

"What were you going to tell me?" said I, smiling, for I saw she 
wanted to go on.  "You have roused my curiosity, and now you must 
gratify it."

Miss Flite looked at Charley for advice in this important crisis, 
who said, "If you please, ma'am, you had better tell then," and 
therein gratified Miss Flite beyond measure.

"So sagacious, our young friend," said she to me in her mysterious 
way.  "Diminutive.  But ve-ry sagacious!  Well, my dear, it's a 
pretty anecdote.  Nothing more.  Still I think it charming.  Who 
should follow us down the road from the coach, my dear, but a poor 
person in a very ungenteel bonnet--"

"Jenny, if you please, miss," said Charley.

"Just so!" Miss Flite acquiesced with the greatest suavity.  
"Jenny.  Ye-es!  And what does she tell our young friend but that 
there has been a lady with a veil inquiring at her cottage after my 
dear Fitz Jarndyce's health and taking a handkerchief away with her 
as a little keepsake merely because it was my amiable Fitz 
Jarndyce's!  Now, you know, so very prepossessing in the lady with 
the veil!"

"If you please, miss," said Charley, to whom I looked in some 
astonishment, "Jenny says that when her baby died, you left a 
handkerchief there, and that she put it away and kept it with the 
baby's little things.  I think, if you please, partly because it 
was yours, miss, and partly because it had covered the baby."

"Diminutive," whispered Miss Flite, making a variety of motions 
about her own forehead to express intellect in Charley.  "But ex-
ceedingly sagacious!  And so dear!  My love, she's clearer than any 
counsel I ever heard!"

"Yes, Charley," I returned.  "I remember it.  Well?"

"Well, miss," said Charley, "and that's the handkerchief the lady 
took.  And Jenny wants you to know that she wouldn't have made away 
with it herself for a heap of money but that the lady took it and 
left some money instead.  Jenny don't know her at all, if you 
please, miss!"

"Why, who can she be?" said I.

"My love," Miss Flite suggested, advancing her lips to my ear with 
her most mysterious look, "in MY opinion--don't mention this to our 
diminutive friend--she's the Lord Chancellor's wife.  He's married, 
you know.  And I understand she leads him a terrible life.  Throws 
his lordship's papers into the fire, my dear, if he won't pay the 
jeweller!"

I did not think very much about this lady then, for I had an 
impression that it might be Caddy.  Besides, my attention was 
diverted by my visitor, who was cold after her ride and looked 
hungry and who, our dinner being brought in, required some little 
assistance in arraying herself with great satisfaction in a 
pitiable old scarf and a much-worn and often-mended pair of gloves, 
which she had brought down in a paper parcel.  I had to preside, 
too, over the entertainment, consisting of a dish of fish, a roast 
fowl, a sweetbread, vegetables, pudding, and Madeira; and it was so 
pleasant to see how she enjoyed it, and with what state and 
ceremony she did honour to it, that I was soon thinking of nothing 
else.

When we had finished and had our little dessert before us, 
embellished by the hands of my dear, who would yield the 
superintendence of everything prepared for me to no one, Miss Flite 
was so very chatty and happy that I thought I would lead her to her 
own history, as she was always pleased to talk about herself.  I 
began by saying "You have attended on the Lord Chancellor many 
years, Miss Flite?"

"Oh, many, many, many years, my dear.  But I expect a judgment.  
Shortly."

There was an anxiety even in her hopefulness that made me doubtful 
if I had done right in approaching the subject.  I thought I would 
say no more about it.

"My father expected a judgment," said Miss Flite.  "My brother.  My 
sister.  They all expected a judgment.  The same that I expect."

"They are all--"

"Ye-es.  Dead of course, my dear," said she.

As I saw she would go on, I thought it best to try to be 
serviceable to her by meeting the theme rather than avoiding it.

"Would it not be wiser," said I, "to expect this judgment no more?"

"Why, my dear," she answered promptly, "of course it would!"

"And to attend the court no more?"

"Equally of course," said she.  "Very wearing to be always in 
expectation of what never comes, my dear Fitz Jarndyce!  Wearing, I 
assure you, to the bone!"

She slightly showed me her arm, and it was fearfully thin indeed.

"But, my dear," she went on in her mysterious way, "there's a 
dreadful attraction in the place.  Hush!  Don't mention it to our 
diminutive friend when she comes in.  Or it may frighten her.  With 
good reason.  There's a cruel attraction in the place.  You CAN'T 
leave it.  And you MUST expect."

I tried to assure her that this was not so.  She heard me patiently 
and smilingly, but was ready with her own answer.

"Aye, aye, aye!  You think so because I am a little rambling.  Ve-
ry absurd, to be a little rambling, is it not?  Ve-ry confusing, 
too.  To the head.  I find it so.  But, my dear, I have been there 
many years, and I have noticed.  It's the mace and seal upon the 
table."

What could they do, did she think?  I mildly asked her.

"Draw," returned Miss Flite.  "Draw people on, my dear.  Draw peace 
out of them.  Sense out of them.  Good looks out of them.  Good 
qualities out of them.  I have felt them even drawing my rest away 
in the night.  Cold and glittering devils!"

She tapped me several times upon the arm and nodded good-humouredly 
as if she were anxious I should understand that I had no cause to 
fear her, though she spoke so gloomily, and confided these awful 
secrets to me.

"Let me see," said she.  "I'll tell you my own case.  Before they 
ever drew me--before I had ever seen them--what was it I used to 
do?  Tambourine playing?  No.  Tambour work.  I and my sister 
worked at tambour work.  Our father and our brother had a builder's 
business.  We all lived together.  Ve-ry respectably, my dear!  
First, our father was drawn--slowly.  Home was drawn with him.  In 
a few years he was a fierce, sour, angry bankrupt without a kind 
word or a kind look for any one.  He had been so different, Fitz 
Jarndyce.  He was drawn to a debtors' prison.  There he died.  Then 
our brother was drawn--swiftly--to drunkenness.  And rags.  And 
death.  Then my sister was drawn.  Hush!  Never ask to what!  Then 
I was ill and in misery, and heard, as I had often heard before, 
that this was all the work of Chancery.  When I got better, I went 
to look at the monster.  And then I found out how it was, and I was 
drawn to stay there."

Having got over her own short narrative, in the delivery of which 
she had spoken in a low, strained voice, as if the shock were fresh 
upon her, she gradually resumed her usual air of amiable 
importance.

"You don't quite credit me, my dear!  Well, well!  You will, some 
day.  I am a little rambling.  But I have noticed.  I have seen 
many new faces come, unsuspicious, within the influence of the mace 
and seal in these many years.  As my father's came there.  As my 
brother's.  As my sister's.  As my own.  I hear Conversation Kenge 
and the rest of them say to the new faces, 'Here's little Miss 
Flite.  Oh, you are new here; and you must come and be presented to 
little Miss Flite!'  Ve-ry good.  Proud I am sure to have the 
honour!  And we all laugh.  But, Fitz Jarndyce, I know what will 
happen.  I know, far better than they do, when the attraction has 
begun.  I know the signs, my dear.  I saw them begin in Gridley.  
And I saw them end.  Fitz Jarndyce, my love," speaking low again, 
"I saw them beginning in our friend the ward in Jarndyce.  Let some 
one hold him back.  Or he'll be drawn to ruin.

She looked at me in silence for some moments, with her face 
gradually softening into a smile.  Seeming to fear that she had 
been too gloomy, and seeming also to lose the connexion in her 
mind, she said politely as she sipped her glass of wine, "Yes, my 
dear, as I was saying, I expect a judgment shortly.  Then I shall 
release my birds, you know, and confer estates."

I was much impressed by her allusion to Richard and by the sad 
meaning, so sadly illustrated in her poor pinched form, that made 
its way through all her incoherence.  But happily for her, she was 
quite complacent again now and beamed with nods and smiles.

"But, my dear," she said, gaily, reaching another hand to put it 
upon mine.  "You have not congratulated me on my physician.  
Positively not once, yet!"

I was obliged to confess that I did not quite know what she meant.

"My physician, Mr. Woodcourt, my dear, who was so exceedingly 
attentive to me.  Though his services were rendered quite 
gratuitously.  Until the Day of Judgment.  I mean THE judgment that 
will dissolve the spell upon me of the mace and seal."

"Mr. Woodcourt is so far away, now," said I, "that I thought the 
time for such congratulation was past, Miss Flite."

"But, my child," she returned, "is it possible that you don't know 
what has happened?"

"No," said I.

"Not what everybody has been talking of, my beloved Fitz Jarndyce!"

"No," said I.  "You forget how long I have been here."

"True!  My dear, for the moment--true.  I blame myself.  But my 
memory has been drawn out of me, with everything else, by what I 
mentioned.  Ve-ry strong influence, is it not?  Well, my dear, 
there has been a terrible shipwreck over in those East Indian 
seas."

"Mr. Woodcourt shipwrecked!"

"Don't be agitated, my dear.  He is safe.  An awful scene.  Death 
in all shapes.  Hundreds of dead and dying.  Fire, storm, and 
darkness.  Numbers of the drowning thrown upon a rock.  There, and 
through it all, my dear physician was a hero.  Calm and brave 
through everything.  Saved many lives, never complained in hunger 
and thirst, wrapped naked people in his spare clothes, took the 
lead, showed them what to do, governed them, tended the sick, 
buried the dead, and brought the poor survivors safely off at last!  
My dear, the poor emaciated creatures all but worshipped him.  They 
fell down at his feet when they got to the land and blessed him.  
The whole country rings with it.  Stay!  Where's my bag of 
documents?  I have got it there, and you shall read it, you shall 
read it!"

And I DID read all the noble history, though very slowly and 
imperfectly then, for my eyes were so dimmed that I could not see 
the words, and I cried so much that I was many times obliged to lay 
down the long account she had cut out of the newspaper.  I felt so 
triumphant ever to have known the man who had done such generous 
and gallant deeds, I felt such glowing exultation in his renown, I 
so admired and loved what he had done, that I envied the storm-worn 
people who had fallen at his feet and blessed him as their 
preserver.  I could myself have kneeled down then, so far away, and 
blessed him in my rapture that he should be so truly good and 
brave.  I felt that no one--mother, sister, wife--could honour him 
more than I.  I did, indeed!

My poor little visitor made me a present of the account, and when 
as the evening began to close in she rose to take her leave, lest 
she should miss the coach by which she was to return, she was still 
full of the shipwreck, which I had not yet sufflciently composed 
myself to understand in all its details.

"My dear," said she as she carefully folded up her scarf and 
gloves, "my brave physician ought to have a title bestowed upon 
him.  And no doubt he will.  You are of that opinlon?"

That he well deserved one, yes.  That he would ever have one, no.

"Why not, Fitz Jarndyce?" she asked rather sharply.

I said it was not the custom in England to confer titles on men 
distinguished by peaceful services, however good and great, unless 
occasionally when they consisted of the accumulation of some very 
large amount of money.

"Why, good gracious," said Miss Flite, "how can you say that?  
Surely you know, my dear, that all the greatest ornaments of 
England in knowledge, imagination, active humanity, and improvement 
of every sort are added to its nobility!  Look round you, my dear, 
and consider.  YOU must be rambling a little now, I think, if you 
don't know that this is the great reason why titles will always 
last in the land!"

I am afraid she believed what she said, for there were moments when 
she was very mad indeed.

And now I must part with the little secret I have thus far tried to 
keep.  I had thought, sometimes, that Mr. Woodcourt loved me and 
that if he had been richer he would perhaps have told me that he 
loved me before he went away.  I had thought, sometimes, that if he 
had done so, I should have been glad of it.  But how much better it 
was now that this had never happened!  What should I have suffered 
if I had had to write to him and tell him that the poor face he had 
known as mine was quite gone from me and that I freely released him 
from his bondage to one whom he had never seen!

Oh, it was so much better as it was!  With a great pang mercifully 
spared me, I could take back to my heart my childish prayer to be 
all he had so brightly shown himself; and there was nothing to be 
undone: no chain for me to break or for him to drag; and I could 
go, please God, my lowly way along the path of duty, and he could 
go his nobler way upon its broader road; and though we were apart 
upon the journey, I might aspire to meet him, unselfishly, 
innocently, better far than he had thought me when I found some 
favour in his eyes, at the journey's end.



CHAPTER XXXVI

Chesney Wold


Charley and I did not set off alone upon our expedition into 
Lincolnshire.  My guardian had made up his mind not to lose sight 
of me until I was safe in Mr. Boythorn's house, so he accompanied 
us, and we were two days upon the road.  I found every breath of 
air, and every scent, and every flower and leaf and blade of grass, 
and every passing cloud, and everything in nature, more beautiful 
and wonderful to me than I had ever found it yet.  This was my 
first gain from my illness.  How little I had lost, when the wide 
world was so full of delight for me.

My guardian intending to go back immediately, we appointed, on our 
way down, a day when my dear girl should come.  I wrote her a 
letter, of which he took charge, and he left us within half an hour 
of our arrival at our destination, on a delightful evening in the 
early summer-time.

If a good fairy had built the house for me with a wave of her wand, 
and I had been a princess and her favoured god-child, I could not 
have been more considered in it.  So many preparations were made 
for me and such an endearing remembrance was shown of all my little 
tastes and likings that I could have sat down, overcome, a dozen 
times before I had revisited half the rooms.  I did better than 
that, however, by showing them all to Charley instead.  Charley's 
delight calmed mine; and after we had had a walk in the garden, and 
Charley had exhausted her whole vocabulary of admiring expressions, 
I was as tranquilly happy as I ought to have been.  It was a great 
comfort to be able to say to myself after tea, "Esther, my dear, I 
think you are quite sensible enough to sit down now and write a 
note of thanks to your host."  He had left a note of welcome for 
me, as sunny as his own face, and had confided his bird to my care, 
which I knew to be his highest mark of confidence.  Accordingly I 
wrote a little note to him in London, telling him how all his 
favourite plants and trees were looking, and how the most 
astonishing of birds had chirped the honours of the house to me in 
the most hospitable manner, and how, after singing on my shoulder, 
to the inconceivable rapture of my little maid, he was then at 
roost in the usual corner of his cage, but whether dreaming or no I 
could not report.  My note finished and sent off to the post, I 
made myself very busy in unpacking and arranging; and I sent 
Charley to bed in good time and told her I should want her no more 
that night.

For I had not yet looked in the glass and had never asked to have 
my own restored to me.  I knew this to be a weakness which must be 
overcome, but I had always said to myself that I would begin afresh 
when I got to where I now was.  Therefore I had wanted to be alone, 
and therefore I said, now alone, in my own room, "Esther, if you 
are to be happy, if you are to have any right to pray to be true-
hearted, you must keep your word, my dear."  I was quite resolved 
to keep it, but I sat down for a little while first to reflect upon 
all my blessings.  And then I said my prayers and thought a little 
more.

My hair had not been cut off, though it had been in danger more 
than once.  It was long and thick.  I let it down, and shook it 
out, and went up to the glass upon the dressing-table.  There was a 
little muslin curtain drawn across it.  I drew it back and stood 
for a moment looking through such a veil of my own hair that I 
could see nothing else.  Then I put my hair aside and looked at the 
reflection in the mirror, encouraged by seeing how placidly it 
looked at me.  I was very much changed--oh, very, very much.  At 
first my face was so strange to me that I think I should have put 
my hands before it and started back but for the encouragement I 
have mentioned.  Very soon it became more familiar, and then I knew 
the extent of the alteration in it better than I had done at first.  
It was not like what I had expected, but I had expected nothing 
definite, and I dare say anything definite would have surprised me.

I had never been a beauty and had never thought myself one, but I 
had been very different from this.  It was all gone now.  Heaven 
was so good to me that I could let it go with a few not bitter 
tears and could stand there arranging my hair for the night quite 
thankfully.

One thing troubled me, and I considered it for a long time before I 
went to sleep.  I had kept Mr. Woodcourt's flowers.  When they were 
withered I had dried them and put them in a book that I was fond 
of.  Nobody knew this, not even Ada.  I was doubtful whether I had 
a right to preserve what he had sent to one so different--whether 
it was generous towards him to do it.  I wished to be generous to 
him, even in the secret depths of my heart, which he would never 
know, because I could have loved him--could have been devoted to 
him.  At last I came to the conclusion that I might keep them if I 
treasured them only as a remembrance of what was irrevocably past 
and gone, never to be looked back on any more, in any other light.  
I hope this may not seem trivial.  I was very much in earnest.

I took care to be up early in the morning and to be before the 
glass when Charley came in on tiptoe.

"Dear, dear, miss!" cried Charley, starting.  "Is that you?"

"Yes, Charley," said I, quietly putting up my hair.  "And I am very 
well indeed, and very happy."

I saw it was a weight off Charley's mind, but it was a greater 
weight off mine.  I knew the worst now and was composed to it.  I 
shall not conceal, as I go on, the weaknesses I could not quite 
conquer, but they always passed from me soon and the happier frame 
of mind stayed by me faithfully.

Wishing to be fully re-established in my strength and my good 
spirits before Ada came, I now laid down a little series of plans 
with Charley for being in the fresh air all day long.  We were to 
be out before breakfast, and were to dine early, and were to be out 
again before and after dinner, and were to talk in the garden after 
tea, and were to go to rest betimes, and were to climb every hill 
and explore every road, lane, and field in the neighbourhood.  As 
to restoratives and strengthening delicacies, Mr. Boythorn's good 
housekeeper was for ever trotting about with something to eat or 
drink in her hand; I could not even be heard of as resting in the 
park but she would come trotting after me with a basket, her 
cheerful face shining with a lecture on the importance of frequent 
nourishment.  Then there was a pony expressly for my riding, a 
chubby pony with a short neck and a mane all over his eyes who 
could canter--when he would--so easily and quietly that he was a 
treasure.  In a very few days he would come to me in the paddock 
when I called him, and eat out of my hand, and follow me about.  We 
arrived at such a capital understanding that when he was jogging 
with me lazily, and rather obstinately, down some shady lane, if I 
patted his neck and said, "Stubbs, I am surprised you don't canter 
when you know how much I like it; and I think you might oblige me, 
for you are only getting stupid and going to sleep," he would give 
his head a comical shake or two and set off directly, while Charley 
would stand still and laugh with such enjoyment that her laughter 
was like music.  I don't know who had given Stubbs his name, but it 
seemed to belong to him as naturally as his rough coat.  Once we 
put him in a little chaise and drove him triumphantly through the 
green lanes for five miles; but all at once, as we were extolling 
him to the skies, he seemed to take it ill that he should have been 
accompanied so far by the circle of tantalizing little gnats that 
had been hovering round and round his ears the whole way without 
appearing to advance an inch, and stopped to think about it.  I 
suppose he came to the decision that it was not to be borne, for he 
steadily refused to move until I gave the reins to Charley and got 
out and walked, when he followed me with a sturdy sort of good 
humour, putting his head under my arm and rubbing his ear against 
my sleeve.  It was in vain for me to say, "Now, Stubbs, I feel 
quite sure from what I know of you that you will go on if I ride a 
little while," for the moment I left him, he stood stock still 
again.  Consequently I was obliged to lead the way, as before; and 
in this order we returned home, to the great delight of the 
village.

Charley and I had reason to call it the most friendly of villages, 
I am sure, for in a week's time the people were so glad to see us 
go by, though ever so frequently in the course of a day, that there 
were faces of greeting in every cottage.  I had known many of the 
grown people before and almost all the children, but now the very 
steeple began to wear a familiar and affectionate look.  Among my 
new friends was an old old woman who lived in such a little 
thatched and whitewashed dwelling that when the outside shutter was 
turned up on its hinges, it shut up the whole house-front.  This 
old lady had a grandson who was a sailor, and I wrote a letter to 
him for her and drew at the top of it the chimney-corner in which 
she had brought him up and where his old stool yet occupied its old 
place.  This was considered by the whole village the most wonderful 
achievement in the world, but when an answer came back all the way 
from Plymouth, in which he mentioned that he was going to take the 
picture all the way to America, and from America would write again, 
I got all the credit that ought to have been given to the post-
office and was invested with the merit of the whole system.

Thus, what with being so much in the air, playing with so many 
children, gossiping with so many people, sitting on invitation in 
so many cottages, going on with Charley's education, and writing 
long letters to Ada every day, I had scarcely any time to think 
about that little loss of mine and was almost always cheerful.  If 
I did think of it at odd moments now and then, I had only to be 
busy and forget it.  I felt it more than I had hoped I should once 
when a child said, "Mother, why is the lady not a pretty lady now 
like she used to be?"  But when I found the child was not less fond 
of me, and drew its soft hand over my face with a kind of pitying 
protection in its touch, that soon set me up again.  There were 
many little occurrences which suggested to me, with great 
consolation, how natural it is to gentle hearts to be considerate 
and delicate towards any inferiority.  One of these particularly 
touched me.  I happened to stroll into the little church when a 
marriage was just concluded, and the young couple had to sign the 
register.

The bridegroom, to whom the pen was handed first, made a rude cross 
for his mark; the bride, who came next, did the same.  Now, I had 
known the bride when I was last there, not only as the prettiest 
girl in the place, but as having quite distinguished herself in the 
school, and I could not help looking at her with some surprise.  
She came aside and whispered to me, while tears of honest love and 
admiration stood in her bright eyes, "He's a dear good fellow, 
miss; but he can't write yet--he's going to learn of me--and I 
wouldn't shame him for the world!"  Why, what had I to fear, I 
thought, when there was this nobility in the soul of a labouring 
man's daughter!

The air blew as freshly and revivingly upon me as it had ever 
blown, and the healthy colour came into my new face as it had come 
into my old one.  Charley was wonderful to see, she was so radiant 
and so rosy; and we both enjoyed the whole day and slept soundly 
the whole night.

There was a favourite spot of mine in the park-woods of Chesney 
Wold where a seat had been erected commanding a lovely view.  The 
wood had been cleared and opened to improve this point of sight, 
and the bright sunny landscape beyond was so beautiful that I 
rested there at least once every day.  A picturesque part of the 
Hall, called the Ghost's Walk, was seen to advantage from this 
higher ground; and the startling name, and the old legend in the 
Dedlock family which I had heard from Mr. Boythorn accounting for 
it, mingled with the view and gave it something of a mysterious 
interest in addition to its real charms.  There was a bank here, 
too, which was a famous one for violets; and as it was a daily 
delight of Charley's to gather wild flowers, she took as much to 
the spot as I did.

It would be idle to inquire now why I never went close to the house 
or never went inside it.  The family were not there, I had heard on 
my arrival, and were not expected.  I was far from being incurious 
or uninterested about the building; on the contrary, I often sat in 
this place wondering how the rooms ranged and whether any echo like 
a footstep really did resound at times, as the story said, upon the 
lonely Ghost's Walk.  The indefinable feeling with which Lady 
Dedlock had impressed me may have had some influence in keeping me 
from the house even when she was absent.  I am not sure.  Her face 
and figure were associated with it, naturally; but I cannot say 
that they repelled me from it, though something did.  For whatever 
reason or no reason, I had never once gone near it, down to the day 
at which my story now arrives.

I was resting at my favourite point after a long ramble, and 
Charley was gathering violets at a little distance from me.  I had 
been looking at the Ghost's Walk lying in a deep shade of masonry 
afar off and picturing to myself the female shape that was said to 
haunt it when I became aware of a figure approaching through the 
wood.  The perspective was so long and so darkened by leaves, and 
the shadows of the branches on the ground made it so much more 
intricate to the eye, that at first I could not discern what figure 
it was.  By little and little it revealed itself to be a woman's--a 
lady's--Lady Dedlock's.  She was alone and coming to where I sat 
with a much quicker step, I observed to my surprise, than was usual 
with her.

I was fluttered by her being unexpectedly so near (she was almost 
within speaking distance before I knew her) and would have risen to 
continue my walk.  But I could not.  I was rendered motionless.  
Not so much by her hurried gesture of entreaty, not so much by her 
quick advance and outstretched hands, not so much by the great 
change in her manner and the absence of her haughty self-restraint, 
as by a something in her face that I had pined for and dreamed of 
when I was a little child, something I had never seen in any face, 
something I had never seen in hers before.

A dread and faintness fell upon me, and I called to Charley.  Lady 
Dedlock stopped upon the instant and changed back almost to what I 
had known her.

"Miss Summerson, I am afraid I have startled you," she said, now 
advancing slowly.  "You can scarcely be strong yet.  You have been 
very ill, I know.  I have been much concerned to hear it."

I could no more have removed my eyes from her pale face than I 
could have stirred from the bench on which I sat.  She gave me her 
hand, and its deadly coldness, so at variance with the enforced 
composure of her features, deepened the fascination that 
overpowered me.  I cannot say what was in my whirling thoughts.

"You are recovering again?" she asked kindly.

"I was quite well but a moment ago, Lady Dedlock."

"Is this your young attendant?"

"Yes."

"Will you send her on before and walk towards your house with me?"

"Charley," said I, "take your flowers home, and I will follow you 
directly."

Charley, with her best curtsy, blushingly tied on her bonnet and 
went her way.  When she was gone, Lady Dedlock sat down on the seat 
beside me.

I cannot tell in any words what the state of my mind was when I saw 
in her hand my handkerchief with which I had covered the dead baby.

I looked at her, but I could not see her, I could not hear her, I 
could not draw my breath.  The beating of my heart was so violent 
and wild that I felt as if my life were breaking from me.  But when 
she caught me to her breast, kissed me, wept over me, 
compassionated me, and called me back to myself; when she fell down 
on her knees and cried to me, "Oh, my child, my child, I am your 
wicked and unhappy mother!  Oh, try to forgive me!"--when I saw her 
at my feet on the bare earth in her great agony of mind, I felt, 
through all my tumult of emotion, a burst of gratitude to the 
providence of God that I was so changed as that I never could 
disgrace her by any trace of likeness, as that nobody could ever 
now look at me and look at her and remotely think of any near tie 
between us.

I raised my mother up, praying and beseeching her not to stoop 
before me in such affliction and humiliation.  I did so in broken, 
incoherent words, for besides the trouble I was in, it frightened 
me to see her at MY feet.  I told her--or I tried to tell her--that 
if it were for me, her child, under any circumstances to take upon 
me to forgive her, I did it, and had done it, many, many years.  I 
told her that my heart overflowed with love for her, that it was 
natural love which nothing in the past had changed or could change.  
That it was not for me, then resting for the first time on my 
mother's bosom, to take her to account for having given me life, 
but that my duty was to bless her and receive her, though the whole 
world turned from her, and that I only asked her leave to do it.  I 
held my mother in my embrace, and she held me in hers, and among 
the still woods in the silence of the summer day there seemed to be 
nothing but our two troubled minds that was not at peace.

"To bless and receive me," groaned my mother, "it is far too late.  
I must travel my dark road alone, and it will lead me where it 
will.  From day to day, sometimes from hour to hour, I do not see 
the way before my guilty feet.  This is the earthly punishment I 
have brought upon myself.  I bear it, and I hide it."

Even in the thinking of her endurance, she drew her habitual air of 
proud indifference about her like a veil, though she soon cast it 
off again.

"I must keep this secret, if by any means it can be kept, not 
wholly for myself.  I have a husband, wretched and dishonouring 
creature that I am!"

These words she uttered with a suppressed cry of despair, more 
terrible in its sound than any shriek.  Covering her face with her 
hands, she shrank down in my embrace as if she were unwilling that 
I should touch her; nor could I, by my utmost persuasions or by any 
endearments I could use, prevail upon her to rise.  She said, no, 
no, no, she could only speak to me so; she must be proud and 
disdainful everywhere else; she would be humbled and ashamed there, 
in the only natural moments of her life.

My unhappy mother told me that in my illness she had been nearly 
frantic.  She had but then known that her child was living.  She 
could not have suspected me to be that child before.  She had 
followed me down here to speak to me but once in all her life.  We 
never could associate, never could communicate, never probably from 
that time forth could interchange another word on earth.  She put 
into my hands a letter she had written for my reading only and said 
when I had read it and destroyed it--but not so much for her sake, 
since she asked nothing, as for her husband's and my own--I must 
evermore consider her as dead.  If I could believe that she loved 
me, in this agony in which I saw her, with a mother's love, she 
asked me to do that, for then I might think of her with a greater 
pity, imagining what she suffered.  She had put herself beyond all 
hope and beyond all help.  Whether she preserved her secret until 
death or it came to be discovered and she brought dishonour and 
disgrace upon the name she had taken, it was her solitary struggle 
always; and no affection could come near her, and no human creature 
could render her any aid.

"But is the secret safe so far?" I asked.  "Is it safe now, dearest 
mother?"

"No," replied my mother.  "It has been very near discovery.  It was 
saved by an accident.  It may be lost by another accident--to-
morrow, any day."

"Do you dread a particular person?"

"Hush!  Do not tremble and cry so much for me.  I am not worthy of 
these tears," said my mother, kissing my hands.  "I dread one 
person very much."

"An enemy?"

"Not a friend.  One who is too passionless to be either.  He is Sir 
Leicester Dedlock's lawyer, mechanically faithful without 
attachment, and very jealous of the profit, privilege, and 
reputation of being master of the mysteries of great houses."

"Has he any suspicions?"

"Many."

"Not of you?" I said alarmed.

"Yes!  He is always vigilant and always near me.  I may keep him at 
a standstill, but I can never shake him off."

"Has he so little pity or compunction?"

"He has none, and no anger.  He is indifferent to everything but 
his calling.  His calling is the acquisition of secrets and the 
holding possession of such power as they give him, with no sharer 
or opponent in it."

"Could you trust in him?"

"I shall never try.  The dark road I have trodden for so many years 
will end where it will.  I follow it alone to the end, whatever the 
end be.  It may be near, it may be distant; while the road lasts, 
nothing turns me."

"Dear mother, are you so resolved?"

"I AM resolved.  I have long outbidden folly with folly, pride with 
pride, scorn with scorn, insolence with insolence, and have 
outlived many vanities with many more.  I will outlive this danger, 
and outdie it, if I can.  It has closed around me almost as awfully 
as if these woods of Chesney Wold had closed around the house, but 
my course through it is the same.  I have but one; I can have but 
one."

"Mr. Jarndyce--"  I was beginning when my mother hurriedly 
inquired, "Does HE suspect?"

"No," said I.  "No, indeed!  Be assured that he does not!"  And I 
told her what he had related to me as his knowledge of my story.  
"But he is so good and sensible," said I, "that perhaps if he knew--"

My mother, who until this time had made no change in her position, 
raised her hand up to my lips and stopped me.

"Confide fully in him," she said after a little while.  "You have 
my free consent--a small gift from such a mother to her injured 
child!- -but do not tell me of it.  Some pride is left in me even 
yet."

I explained, as nearly as I could then, or can recall now--for my 
agitation and distress throughout were so great that I scarcely 
understood myself, though every word that was uttered in the 
mother's voice, so unfamiliar and so melancholy to me, which in my 
childhood I had never learned to love and recognize, had never been 
sung to sleep with, had never heard a blessing from, had never had 
a hope inspired by, made an enduring impression on my memory--I say 
I explained, or tried to do it, how I had only hoped that Mr. 
Jarndyce, who had been the best of fathers to me, might be able to 
afford some counsel and support to her.  But my mother answered no, 
it was impossible; no one could help her.  Through the desert that 
lay before her, she must go alone.

"My child, my child!" she said.  "For the last time!  These kisses 
for the last time!  These arms upon my neck for the last time!  We 
shall meet no more.  To hope to do what I seek to do, I must be 
what I have been so long.  Such is my reward and doom.  If you hear 
of Lady Dedlock, brilliant, prosperous, and flattered, think of 
your wretched mother, conscience-stricken, underneath that mask!  
Think that the reality is in her suffering, in her useless remorse, 
in her murdering within her breast the only love and truth of which 
it is capable!  And then forgive her if you can, and cry to heaven 
to forgive her, which it never can!"

We held one another for a little space yet, but she was so firm 
that she took my hands away, and put them back against my breast, 
and with a last kiss as she held them there, released them, and 
went from me into the wood.  I was alone, and calm and quiet below 
me in the sun and shade lay the old house, with its terraces and 
turrets, on which there had seemed to me to be such complete repose 
when I first saw it, but which now looked like the obdurate and 
unpitying watcher of my mother's misery.

Stunned as I was, as weak and helpless at first as I had ever been 
in my sick chamber, the necessity of guarding against the danger of 
discovery, or even of the remotest suspicion, did me service.  I 
took such precautions as I could to hide from Charley that I had 
been crying, and I constrained myself to think of every sacred 
obligation that there was upon me to be careful and collected.  It 
was not a little while before I could succeed or could even 
restrain bursts of grief, but after an hour or so I was better and 
felt that I might return.  I went home very slowly and told 
Charley, whom I found at the gate looking for me, that I had been 
tempted to extend my walk after Lady Dedlock had left me and that I 
was over-tired and would lie down.  Safe in my own room, I read the 
letter.  I clearly derived from it--and that was much then--that I 
had not been abandoned by my mother.  Her elder and only sister, 
the godmother of my childhood, discovering signs of life in me when 
I had been laid aside as dead, had in her stern sense of duty, with 
no desire or willingness that I should live, reared me in rigid 
secrecy and had never again beheld my mother's face from within a 
few hours of my birth.  So strangely did I hold my place in this 
world that until within a short time back I had never, to my own 
mother's knowledge, breathed--had been buried--had never been 
endowed with life--had never borne a name.  When she had first seen 
me in the church she had been startled and had thought of what 
would have been like me if it had ever lived, and had lived on, but 
that was all then.

What more the letter told me needs not to be repeated here.  It has 
its own times and places in my story.

My first care was to burn what my mother had written and to consume 
even its ashes.  I hope it may not appear very unnatural or bad in 
me that I then became heavily sorrowful to think I had ever been 
reared.  That I felt as if I knew it would have been better and 
happier for many people if indeed I had never breathed.  That I had 
a terror of myself as the danger and the possible disgrace of my 
own mother and of a proud family name.  That I was so confused and 
shaken as to be possessed by a belief that it was right and had 
been intended that I should die in my birth, and that it was wrong 
and not intended that I should be then alive.

These are the real feelings that I had.  I fell asleep worn out, 
and when I awoke I cried afresh to think that I was back in the 
world with my load of trouble for others.  I was more than ever 
frightened of myself, thinking anew of her against whom I was a 
witness, of the owner of Chesney Wold, of the new and terrible 
meaning of the old words now moaning in my ear like a surge upon 
the shore, "Your mother, Esther, was your disgrace, and you are 
hers.  The time will come--and soon enough--when you will 
understand this better, and will feel it too, as no one save a 
woman can."  With them, those other words returned, "Pray daily 
that the sins of others be not visited upon your head."  I could 
not disentangle all that was about me, and I felt as if the blame 
and the shame were all in me, and the visitation had come down.

The day waned into a gloomy evening, overcast and sad, and I still 
contended with the same distress.  I went out alone, and after 
walking a little in the park, watching the dark shades falling on 
the trees and the fitful flight of the bats, which sometimes almost 
touched me, was attracted to the house for the first time.  Perhaps 
I might not have gone near it if I had been in a stronger frame of 
mind.  As it was, I took the path that led close by it.

I did not dare to linger or to look up, but I passed before the 
terrace garden with its fragrant odours, and its broad walks, and 
its well-kept beds and smooth turf; and I saw how beautiful and 
grave it was, and how the old stone balustrades and parapets, and 
wide flights of shallow steps, were seamed by time and weather; and 
how the trained moss and ivy grew about them, and around the old 
stone pedestal of the sun-dial; and I heard the fountain falling.  
Then the way went by long lines of dark windows diversified by 
turreted towers and porches of eccentric shapes, where old stone 
lions and grotesque monsters bristled outside dens of shadow and 
snarled at the evening gloom over the escutcheons they held in 
their grip.  Thence the path wound underneath a gateway, and 
through a court-yard where the principal entrance was (I hurried 
quickly on), and by the stables where none but deep voices seemed 
to be, whether in the murmuring of the wind through the strong mass 
of ivy holding to a high red wall, or in the low complaining of the 
weathercock, or in the barking of the dogs, or in the slow striking 
of a clock.  So, encountering presently a sweet smell of limes, 
whose rustling I could hear, I turned with the turning of the path 
to the south front, and there above me were the balustrades of the 
Ghost's Walk and one lighted window that might be my mother's.

The way was paved here, like the terrace overhead, and my footsteps 
from being noiseless made an echoing sound upon the flags.  
Stopping to look at nothing, but seeing all I did see as I went, I 
was passing quickly on, and in a few moments should have passed the 
lighted window, when my echoing footsteps brought it suddenly into 
my mind that there was a dreadful truth in the legend of the 
Ghost's Walk, that it was I who was to bring calamity upon the 
stately house and that my warning feet were haunting it even then.  
Seized with an augmented terror of myself which turned me cold, I 
ran from myself and everything, retraced the way by which I had 
come, and never paused until I had gained the lodge-gate, and the 
park lay sullen and black behind me.

Not before I was alone in my own room for the night and had again 
been dejected and unhappy there did I begin to know how wrong and 
thankless this state was.  But from my darling who was coming on 
the morrow, I found a joyful letter, full of such loving 
anticipation that I must have been of marble if it had not moved 
me; from my guardian, too, I found another letter, asking me to 
tell Dame Durden, if I should see that little woman anywhere, that 
they had moped most pitiably without her, that the housekeeping was 
going to rack and ruin, that nobody else could manage the keys, and 
that everybody in and about the house declared it was not the same 
house and was becoming rebellious for her return.  Two such letters 
together made me think how far beyond my deserts I was beloved and 
how happy I ought to be.  That made me think of all my past life; 
and that brought me, as it ought to have done before, into a better 
condition.

For I saw very well that I could not have been intended to die, or 
I should never have lived; not to say should never have been 
reserved for such a happy life.  I saw very well how many things 
had worked together for my welfare, and that if the sins of the 
fathers were sometimes visited upon the children, the phrase did 
not mean what I had in the morning feared it meant.  I knew I was 
as innocent of my birth as a queen of hers and that before my 
Heavenly Father I should not be punished for birth nor a queen 
rewarded for it.  I had had experience, in the shock of that very 
day, that I could, even thus soon, find comforting reconcilements 
to the change that had fallen on me.  I renewed my resolutions and 
prayed to be strengthened in them, pouring out my heart for myself 
and for my unhappy mother and feeling that the darkness of the 
morning was passing away.  It was not upon my sleep; and when the 
next day's light awoke me, it was gone.

My dear girl was to arrive at five o'clock in the afternoon.  How 
to help myself through the intermediate time better than by taking 
a long walk along the road by which she was to come, I did not 
know; so Charley and I and Stubbs--Stubbs saddled, for we never 
drove him after the one great occasion--made a long expedition 
along that road and back.  On our return, we held a great review of 
the house and garden and saw that everything was in its prettiest 
condition, and had the bird out ready as an important part of the 
establishment.

There were more than two full hours yet to elapse before she could 
come, and in that interval, which seemed a long one, I must confess 
I was nervously anxious about my altered looks.  I loved my darling 
so well that I was more concerned for their effect on her than on 
any one.  I was not in this slight distress because I at all 
repined--I am quite certain I did not, that day--but, I thought, 
would she be wholly prepared?  When she first saw me, might she not 
be a little shocked and disappointed?  Might it not prove a little 
worse than she expected?  Might she not look for her old Esther and 
not find her?  Might she not have to grow used to me and to begin 
all over again?

I knew the various expressions of my sweet girl's face so well, and 
it was such an honest face in its loveliness, that I was sure 
beforehand she could not hide that first look from me.  And I 
considered whether, if it should signify any one of these meanings, 
which was so very likely, could I quite answer for myself?

Well, I thought I could.  After last night, I thought I could.  But 
to wait and wait, and expect and expect, and think and think, was 
such bad preparation that I resolved to go along the road again and 
meet her.

So I said to Charley, '"Charley, I will go by myself and walk along 
the road until she comes."  Charley highly approving of anything 
that pleased me, I went and left her at home.

But before I got to the second milestone, I had been in so many 
palpitations from seeing dust in the distance (though I knew it was 
not, and could not, be the coach yet) that I resolved to turn back 
and go home again.  And when I had turned, I was in such fear of 
the coach coming up behind me (though I still knew that it neither 
would, nor could, do any such thing) that I ran the greater part of 
the way to avoid being overtaken.

Then, I considered, when I had got safe back again, this was a nice 
thing to have done!  Now I was hot and had made the worst of it 
instead of the best.

At last, when I believed there was at least a quarter of an hour 
more yet, Charley all at once cried out to me as I was trembling in 
the garden, "Here she comes, miss!  Here she is!"

I did not mean to do it, but I ran upstairs into my room and hid 
myself behind the door.  There I stood trembling, even when I heard 
my darling calling as she came upstairs, "Esther, my dear, my love, 
where are you?  Little woman, dear Dame Durden!"

She ran in, and was running out again when she saw me.  Ah, my 
angel girl!  The old dear look, all love, all fondness, all 
affection.  Nothing else in it--no, nothing, nothing!

Oh, how happy I was, down upon the floor, with my sweet beautiful 
girl down upon the floor too, holding my scarred face to her lovely 
cheek, bathing it with tears and kisses, rocking me to and fro like 
a child, calling me by every tender name that she could think of, 
and pressing me to her faithful heart.



CHAPTER XXXVII

Jarndyce and Jarndyce


If the secret I had to keep had been mine, I must have confided it 
to Ada before we had been long together.  But it was not mine, and 
I did not feel that I had a right to tell it, even to my guardian, 
unless some great emergency arose.  It was a weight to bear alone; 
still my present duty appeared to be plain, and blest in the 
attachment of my dear, I did not want an impulse and encouragement 
to do it.  Though often when she was asleep and all was quiet, the 
remembrance of my mother kept me waking and made the night 
sorrowful, I did not yield to it at another time; and Ada found me 
what I used to be--except, of course, in that particular of which I 
have said enough and which I have no intention of mentioning any 
more just now, if I can help it.

The difficulty that I felt in being quite composed that first 
evening when Ada asked me, over our work, if the family were at the 
house, and when I was obliged to answer yes, I believed so, for 
Lady Dedlock had spoken to me in the woods the day before 
yesterday, was great.  Greater still when Ada asked me what she had 
said, and when I replied that she had been kind and interested, and 
when Ada, while admitting her beauty and elegance, remarked upon 
her proud manner and her imperious chilling air.  But Charley 
helped me through, unconsciously, by telling us that Lady Dedlock 
had only stayed at the house two nights on her way from London to 
visit at some other great house in the next county and that she had 
left early on the morning after we had seen her at our view, as we 
called it.  Charley verified the adage about little pitchers, I am 
sure, for she heard of more sayings and doings in a day than would 
have come to my ears in a month.

We were to stay a month at Mr. Boythorn's.  My pet had scarcely 
been there a bright week, as I recollect the time, when one evening 
after we had finished helping the gardener in watering his flowers, 
and just as the candles were lighted, Charley, appearing with a 
very important air behind Ada's chair, beckoned me mysteriously out 
of the room.

"Oh! If you please, miss," said Charley in a whisper, with her eyes 
at their roundest and largest.  "You're wanted at the Dedlock 
Arms."

"Why, Charley," said I, "who can possibly want me at the public-
house?"

"I don't know, miss," returned Charley, putting her head forward 
and folding her hands tight upon the band of her little apron, 
which she always did in the enjoyment of anything mysterious or 
confidential, "but it's a gentleman, miss, and his compliments, and 
will you please to come without saying anything about it."

"Whose compliments, Charley?"

"His'n, miss," returned Charley, whose grammatical education was 
advancing, but not very rapidly.

"And how do you come to be the messenger, Charley?"

"I am not the messenger, if you please, miss," returned my little 
maid.  "It was W. Grubble, miss."

"And who is W. Grubble, Charley?"

"Mister Grubble, miss," returned Charley.  "Don't you know, miss?  
The Dedlock Arms, by W. Grubble," which Charley delivered as if she 
were slowly spelling out the sign.

"Aye?  The landlord, Charley?"

"Yes, miss.  If you please, miss, his wife is a beautiful woman, 
but she broke her ankle, and it never joined.  And her brother's 
the sawyer that was put in the cage, miss, and they expect he'll 
drink himself to death entirely on beer," said Charley.

Not knowing what might be the matter, and being easily apprehensive 
now, I thought it best to go to this place by myself.  I bade 
Charley be quick with my bonnet and veil and my shawl, and having 
put them on, went away down the little hilly street, where I was as 
much at home as in Mr. Boythorn's garden.

Mr. Grubble was standing in his shirt-sleeves at the door of his 
very clean little tavern waiting for me.  He lifted off his hat 
with both hands when he saw me coming, and carrying it so, as if it 
were an iron vessel (it looked as heavy), preceded me along the 
sanded passage to his best parlour, a neat carpeted room with more 
plants in it than were quite convenient, a coloured print of Queen 
Caroline, several shells, a good many tea-trays, two stuffed and 
dried fish in glass cases, and either a curious egg or a curious 
pumpkin (but I don't know which, and I doubt if many people did) 
hanging from his ceiling.  I knew Mr. Grubble very well by sight, 
from his often standing at his door.  A pleasant-looking, stoutish, 
middle-aged man who never seemed to consider himself cozily dressed 
for his own fire-side without his hat and top-boots, but who never 
wore a coat except at church.

He snuffed the candle, and backing away a little to see how it 
looked, backed out of the room--unexpectedly to me, for I was going 
to ask him by whom he had been sent.  The door of the opposite 
parlour being then opened, I heard some voices, familiar in my ears 
I thought, which stopped.  A quick light step approached the room 
in which I was, and who should stand before me but Richard!

"My dear Esther!" he said.  "My best friend!"  And he really was so 
warm-hearted and earnest that in the first surprise and pleasure of 
his brotherly greeting I could scarcely find breath to tell him 
that Ada was well.

"Answering my very thoughts--always the same dear girl!" said 
Richard, leading me to a chair and seating himself beside me.

I put my veil up, but not quite.

"Always the same dear girl!" said Richard just as heartily as 
before.

I put up my veil altogether, and laying my hand on Richard's sleeve 
and looking in his face, told him how much I thanked him for his 
kind welcome and how greatly I rejoiced to see him, the more so 
because of the determination I had made in my illness, which I now 
conveyed to him.

"My love," said Richard, "there is no one with whom I have a 
greater wish to talk than you, for I want you to understand me."

"And I want you, Richard," said I, shaking my head, "to understand 
some one else."

"Since you refer so immediately to John Jarndyce," said Richard, "
--I suppose you mean him?"

"Of course I do."

"Then I may say at once that I am glad of it, because it is on that 
subject that I am anxious to be understood.  By you, mind--you, my 
dear!  I am not accountable to Mr. Jarndyce or Mr. Anybody."

I was pained to find him taking this tone, and he observed it.

"Well, well, my dear," said Richard, "we won't go into that now.  I 
want to appear quietly in your country-house here, with you under 
my arm, and give my charming cousin a surprise.  I suppose your 
loyalty to John Jarndyce will allow that?"

"My dear Richard," I returned, "you know you would be heartily 
welcome at his house--your home, if you will but consider it so; 
and you are as heartily welcome here!"

"Spoken like the best of little women!" cried Richard gaily.

I asked him how he liked his profession.

"Oh, I like it well enough!" said Richard.  "It's all right.  It 
does as well as anything else, for a time.  I don't know that I 
shall care about it when I come to be settled, but I can sell out 
then and--however, never mind all that botheration at present."

So young and handsome, and in all respects so perfectly the 
opposite of Miss Flite!  And yet, in the clouded, eager, seeking 
look that passed over him, so dreadfully like her!

"I am in town on leave just now," said Richard.

"Indeed?"

"Yes.  I have run over to look after my--my Chancery interests 
before the long vacation," said Richard, forcing a careless laugh.  
"We are beginning to spin along with that old suit at last, I 
promise you."

No wonder that I shook my head!

"As you say, it's not a pleasant subject."  Richard spoke with the 
same shade crossing his face as before.  "Let it go to the four 
winds for to-night.  Puff!  Gone!  Who do you suppose is with me?"

"Was it Mr. Skimpole's voice I heard?"

"That's the man!  He does me more good than anybody.  What a 
fascinating child it is!"

I asked Richard if any one knew of their coming down together.  He 
answered, no, nobody.  He had been to call upon the dear old 
infant--so he called Mr. Skimpole--and the dear old infant had told 
him where we were, and he had told the dear old infant he was bent 
on coming to see us, and the dear old infant had directly wanted to 
come too; and so he had brought him.  "And he is worth--not to say 
his sordid expenses--but thrice his weight in gold," said Richard.  
"He is such a cheery fellow.  No worldliness about him.  Fresh and 
green-hearted!"

I certainly did not see the proof of Mr. Skimpole's worldliness in 
his having his expenses paid by Richard, but I made no remark about 
that.  Indeed, he came in and turned our conversation.  He was 
charmed to see me, said he had been shedding delicious tears of joy 
and sympathy at intervals for six weeks on my account, had never 
been so happy as in hearing of my progress, began to understand the 
mixture of good and evil in the world now, felt that he appreciated 
health the more when somebody else was ill, didn't know but what it 
might be in the scheme of things that A should squint to make B 
happier in looking straight or that C should carry a wooden leg to 
make D better satisfied with his flesh and blood in a silk 
stocking.

"My dear Miss Summerson, here is our friend Richard," said Mr. 
Skimpole, "full of the brightest visions of the future, which he 
evokes out of the darkness of Chancery.  Now that's delightful, 
that's inspiriting, that's full of poetry!  In old times the woods 
and solitudes were made joyous to the shepherd by the imaginary 
piping and dancing of Pan and the nymphs.  This present shepherd, 
our pastoral Richard, brightens the dull Inns of Court by making 
Fortune and her train sport through them to the melodious notes of 
a judgment from the bench.  That's very pleasant, you know!  Some 
ill-conditioned growling fellow may say to me, 'What's the use of 
these legal and equitable abuses?  How do you defend them?'  I 
reply, 'My growling friend, I DON'T defend them, but they are very 
agreeable to me.  There is a shepherd--youth, a friend of mine, who 
transmutes them into something highly fascinating to my simplicity.  
I don't say it is for this that they exist--for I am a child among 
you worldly grumblers, and not called upon to account to you or 
myself for anything--but it may be so.'"

I began seriously to think that Richard could scarcely have found a 
worse friend than this.  It made me uneasy that at such a time when 
he most required some right principle and purpose he should have 
this captivating looseness and putting-off of everything, this airy 
dispensing with all principle and purpose, at his elbow.  I thought 
I could understand how such a nature as my guardian's, experienced 
in the world and forced to contemplate the miserable evasions and 
contentions of the family misfortune, found an immense relief in 
Mr. Skimpole's avowal of his weaknesses and display of guileless 
candour; but I could not satisfy myself that it was as artless as 
it seemed or that it did not serve Mr. Skimpole's idle turn quite 
as well as any other part, and with less trouble.

They both walked back with me, and Mr. Skimpole leaving us at the 
gate, I walked softly in with Richard and said, "Ada, my love, I 
have brought a gentleman to visit you."  It was not difficult to 
read the blushing, startled face.  She loved him dearly, and he 
knew it, and I knew it.  It was a very transparent business, that 
meeting as cousins only.

I almost mistrusted myself as growing quite wicked in my 
suspicions, but I was not so sure that Richard loved her dearly.  
He admired her very much--any one must have done that--and I dare 
say would have renewed their youthful engagement with great pride 
and ardour but that he knew how she would respect her promise to my 
guardian.  Still I had a tormenting idea that the influence upon 
him extended even here, that he was postponing his best truth and 
earnestness in this as in all things until Jarndyce and Jarndyce 
should be off his mind.  Ah me!  What Richard would have been 
without that blight, I never shall know now!

He told Ada, in his most ingenuous way, that he had not come to 
make any secret inroad on the terms she had accepted (rather too 
implicitly and confidingly, he thought) from Mr. Jarndyce, that he 
had come openly to see her and to see me and to justify himself for 
the present terms on which he stood with Mr. Jarndyce.  As the dear 
old infant would be with us directly, he begged that I would make 
an appointment for the morning, when he might set himself right 
through the means of an unreserved conversation with me.  I 
proposed to walk with him in the park at seven o'clock, and this 
was arranged.  Mr. Skimpole soon afterwards appeared and made us 
merry for an hour.  He particularly requested to see little 
Coavinses (meaning Charley) and told her, with a patriarchal air, 
that he had given her late father all the business in his power and 
that if one of her little brothers would make haste to get set up 
in the same profession, he hoped he should still be able to put a 
good deal of employment in his way.

"For I am constantly being taken in these nets," said Mr. Skimpole, 
looking beamingly at us over a glass of wine-and-water, "and am 
constantly being bailed out--like a boat.  Or paid off--like a 
ship's company.  Somebody always does it for me.  I can't do it, 
you know, for I never have any money.  But somebody does it.  I get 
out by somebody's means; I am not like the starling; I get out.  If 
you were to ask me who somebody is, upon my word I couldn't tell 
you.  Let us drink to somebody.  God bless him!"

Richard was a little late in the morning, but I had not to wait for 
him long, and we turned into the park.  The air was bright and dewy 
and the sky without a cloud.  The birds sang delightfully; the 
sparkles in the fern, the grass, and trees, were exquisite to see; 
the richness of the woods seemed to have increased twenty-fold 
since yesterday, as if, in the still night when they had looked so 
massively hushed in sleep, Nature, through all the minute details 
of every wonderful leaf, had been more wakeful than usual for the 
glory of that day.

"This is a lovely place," said Richard, looking round.  "None of 
the jar and discord of law-suits here!"

But there was other trouble.

"I tell you what, my dear girl," said Richard, "when I get affairs 
in general settled, I shall come down here, I think, and rest."

"Would it not be better to rest now?" I asked.

"Oh, as to resting NOW," said Richard, "or as to doing anything 
very definite NOW, that's not easy.  In short, it can't be done; I 
can't do it at least."

"Why not?" said I.

"You know why not, Esther.  If you were living in an unfinished 
house, liable to have the roof put on or taken off--to be from top 
to bottom pulled down or built up--to-morrow, next day, next week, 
next month, next year--you would find it hard to rest or settle.  
So do I.  Now?  There's no now for us suitors."

I could almost have believed in the attraction on which my poor 
little wandering friend had expatiated when I saw again the 
darkened look of last night.  Terrible to think it bad in it also a 
shade of that unfortunate man who had died.

"My dear Richard," said I, "this is a bad beginning of our 
conversation."

"I knew you would tell me so, Dame Durden."

"And not I alone, dear Richard.  It was not I who cautioned you 
once never to found a hope or expectation on the family curse."

"There you come back to John Jarndyce!" said Richard impatiently.  
"Well! We must approach him sooner or later, for he is the staple 
of what I have to say, and it's as well at once.  My dear Esther, 
how can you be so blind?  Don't you see that he is an interested 
party and that it may be very well for him to wish me to know 
nothing of the suit, and care nothing about it, but that it may not 
be quite so well for me?"

"Oh, Richard," I remonstrated, "is it possible that you can ever 
have seen him and heard him, that you can ever have lived under his 
roof and known him, and can yet breathe, even to me in this 
solitary place where there is no one to hear us, such unworthy 
suspicions?"

He reddened deeply, as if his natural generosity felt a pang of 
reproach.  He was silent for a little while before he replied in a 
subdued voice, "Esther, I am sure you know that I am not a mean 
fellow and that I have some sense of suspicion and distrust being 
poor qualities in one of my years."

"I know it very well," said I.  "I am not more sure of anything."

"That's a dear girl," retorted Richard, "and like you, because it 
gives me comfort.  I had need to get some scrap of comfort out of 
all this business, for it's a bad one at the best, as I have no 
occasion to tell you."

"I know perfectly," said I.  "I know as well, Richard--what shall I 
say? as well as you do--that such misconstructions are foreign to 
your nature.  And I know, as well as you know, what so changes it."

"Come, sister, come," said Richard a little more gaily, "you will 
be fair with me at all events.  If I have the misfortune to be 
under that influence, so has he.  If it has a little twisted me, it 
may have a little twisted him too.  I don't say that he is not an 
honourable man, out of all this complication and uncertainty; I am 
sure he is.  But it taints everybody.  You know it taints 
everybody.  You have heard him say so fifty times.  Then why should 
HE escape?"

"Because," said I, "his is an uncommon character, and he has 
resolutely kept himself outside the circle, Richard."

"Oh, because and because!" replied Richard in his vivacious way.  
"I am not sure, my dear girl, but that it may be wise and specious 
to preserve that outward indifference.  It may cause other parties 
interested to become lax about their interests; and people may die 
off, and points may drag themselves out of memory, and many things 
may smoothly happen that are convenient enough."

I was so touched with pity for Richard that I could not reproach 
him any more, even by a look.  I remembered my guardian's 
gentleness towards his errors and with what perfect freedom from 
resentment he had spoken of them.

"Esther," Richard resumed, "you are not to suppose that I have come 
here to make underhanded charges against John Jarndyce.  I have 
only come to justify myself.  What I say is, it was all very well 
and we got on very well while I was a boy, utterly regardless of 
this same suit; but as soon as I began to take an interest in it 
and to look into it, then it was quite another thing.  Then John 
Jarndyce discovers that Ada and I must break off and that if I 
don't amend that very objectionable course, I am not fit for her.  
Now, Esther, I don't mean to amend that very objectionable course: 
I will not hold John Jarndyce's favour on those unfair terms of 
compromise, which he has no right to dictate.  Whether it pleases 
him or displeases him, I must maintain my rights and Ada's.  I have 
been thinking about it a good deal, and this is the conclusion I 
have come to."

Poor dear Richard!  He had indeed been thinking about it a good 
deal.  His face, his voice, his manner, all showed that too 
plainly.

"So I tell him honourably (you are to know I have written to him 
about all this) that we are at issue and that we had better be at 
issue openly than covertly.  I thank him for his goodwill and his 
protection, and he goes his road, and I go mine.  The fact is, our 
roads are not the same.  Under one of the wills in dispute, I 
should take much more than he.  I don't mean to say that it is the 
one to be established, but there it is, and it has its chance."

"I have not to learn from you, my dear Richard," said I, "of your 
letter.  I had heard of it already without an offended or angry 
word."

"Indeed?" replied Richard, softening.  "I am glad I said he was an 
honourable man, out of all this wretched affair.  But I always say 
that and have never doubted it.  Now, my dear Esther, I know these 
views of mine appear extremely harsh to you, and will to Ada when 
you tell her what has passed between us.  But if you had gone into 
the case as I have, if you had only applied yourself to the papers 
as I did when I was at Kenge's, if you only knew what an 
accumulation of charges and counter-charges, and suspicions and 
cross-suspicions, they involve, you would think me moderate in 
comparison."

"Perhaps so," said I.  "But do you think that, among those many 
papers, there is much truth and justice, Richard?"

"There is truth and justice somewhere in the case, Esther--"

"Or was once, long ago," said I.

"Is--is--must be somewhere," pursued Richard impetuously, "and must 
be brought out.  To allow Ada to be made a bribe and hush-money of 
is not the way to bring it out.  You say the suit is changing me; 
John Jarndyce says it changes, has changed, and will change 
everybody who has any share in it.  Then the greater right I have 
on my side when I resolve to do all I can to bring it to an end."

"All you can, Richard!  Do you think that in these many years no 
others have done all they could?  Has the difficulty grown easier 
because of so many failures?"

"It can't last for ever," returned Richard with a fierceness 
kindling in him which again presented to me that last sad reminder.  
"I am young and earnest, and energy and determination have done 
wonders many a time.  Others have only half thrown themselves into 
it.  I devote myself to it.  I make it the object of my life."

"Oh, Richard, my dear, so much the worse, so much the worse!"

"No, no, no, don't you be afraid for me," he returned 
affectionately.  "You're a dear, good, wise, quiet, blessed girl; 
but you have your prepossessions.  So I come round to John 
Jarndyce.  I tell you, my good Esther, when he and I were on those 
terms which he found so convenient, we were not on natural terms."

"Are division and animosity your natural terms, Richard?"

"No, I don't say that.  I mean that all this business puts us on 
unnatural terms, with which natural relations are incompatible.  
See another reason for urging it on!  I may find out when it's over 
that I have been mistaken in John Jarndyce.  My head may be clearer 
when I am free of it, and I may then agree with what you say to-
day.  Very well.  Then I shall acknowledge it and make him 
reparation."

Everything postponed to that imaginary time!  Everything held in 
confusion and indecision until then!

"Now, my best of confidantes," said Richard, "I want my cousin Ada 
to understand that I am not captious, fickle, and wilful about John 
Jarndyce, but that I have this purpose and reason at my back.  I 
wish to represent myself to her through you, because she has a 
great esteem and respect for her cousin John; and I know you will 
soften the course I take, even though you disapprove of it; and--
and in short," said Richard, who had been hesitating through these 
words, "I--I don't like to represent myself in this litigious, 
contentious, doubting character to a confiding girl like Ada,"

I told him that he was more like himself in those latter words than 
in anything he had said yet.

"Why," acknowledged Richard, "that may be true enough, my love.  I 
rather feel it to be so.  But I shall be able to give myself fair-
play by and by.  I shall come all right again, then, don't you be 
afraid."

I asked him if this were all he wished me to tell Ada.

"Not quite," said Richard.  "I am bound not to withhold from her 
that John Jarndyce answered my letter in his usual manner, 
addressing me as 'My dear Rick,' trying to argue me out of my 
opinions, and telling me that they should make no difference in 
him.  (All very well of course, but not altering the case.)  I also 
want Ada to know that if I see her seldom just now, I am looking 
after her interests as well as my own--we two being in the same 
boat exactly--and that I hope she will not suppose from any flying 
rumours she may hear that I am at all light-headed or imprudent; on 
the contrary, I am always looking forward to the termination of the 
suit, and always planning in that direction.  Being of age now and 
having taken the step I have taken, I consider myself free from any 
accountability to John Jarndyce; but Ada being still a ward of the 
court, I don't yet ask her to renew our engagement.  When she is 
free to act for herself, I shall be myself once more and we shall 
both be in very different worldly circumstances, I believe.  If you 
tell her all this with the advantage of your considerate way, you 
will do me a very great and a very kind service, my dear Esther; 
and I shall knock Jarndyce and Jarndyce on the head with greater 
vigour.  Of course I ask for no secrecy at Bleak House."

"Richard," said I, "you place great confidence in me, but I fear 
you will not take advice from me?"

"It's impossible that I can on this subject, my dear girl.  On any 
other, readily."

As if there were any other in his life!  As if his whole career and 
character were not being dyed one colour!

"But I may ask you a question, Richard?"

"I think so," said he, laughing.  "I don't know who may not, if you 
may not."

"You say, yourself, you are not leading a very settled life."

"How can I, my dear Esther, with nothing settled!"

"Are you in debt again?"

"Why, of course I am," said Richard, astonished at my simplicity.

"Is it of course?"

"My dear child, certainly.  I can't throw myself into an object so 
completely without expense.  You forget, or perhaps you don't know, 
that under either of the wills Ada and I take something.  It's only 
a question between the larger sum and the smaller.  I shall be 
within the mark any way.  Bless your heart, my excellent girl," 
said Richard, quite amused with me, "I shall be all right!  I shall 
pull through, my dear!"

I felt so deeply sensible of the danger in which he stood that I 
tried, in Ada's name, in my guardian's, in my own, by every fervent 
means that I could think of, to warn him of it and to show him some 
of his mistakes.  He received everything I said with patience and 
gentleness, but it all rebounded from him without taking the least 
effect.  I could not wonder at this after the reception his 
preoccupied mind had given to my guardian's letter, but I 
determined to try Ada's influence yet.

So when our walk brought us round to the village again, and I went 
home to breakfast, I prepared Ada for the account I was going to 
give her and told her exactly what reason we had to dread that 
Richard was losing himself and scattering his whole life to the 
winds.  It made her very unhappy, of course, though she had a far, 
far greater reliance on his correcting his errors than I could 
have--which was so natural and loving in my dear!--and she 
presently wrote him this little letter:


My dearest cousin,

Esther has told me all you said to her this morning.  I write this 
to repeat most earnestly for myself all that she said to you and to 
let you know how sure I am that you will sooner or later find our 
cousin John a pattern of truth, sincerity, and goodness, when you 
will deeply, deeply grieve to have done him (without intending it) 
so much wrong.

I do not quite know how to write what I wish to say next, but I 
trust you will understand it as I mean it.  I have some fears, my 
dearest cousin, that it may be partly for my sake you are now 
laying up so much unhappiness for yourself--and if for yourself, 
for me.  In case this should be so, or in case you should entertain 
much thought of me in what you are doing, I most earnestly entreat 
and beg you to desist.  You can do nothing for my sake that will 
make me half so happy as for ever turning your back upon the shadow 
in which we both were born.  Do not be angry with me for saying 
this.  Pray, pray, dear Richard, for my sake, and for your own, and 
in a natural repugnance for that source of trouble which had its 
share in making us both orphans when we were very young, pray, 
pray, let it go for ever.  We have reason to know by this time that 
there is no good in it and no hope, that there is nothing to be got 
from it but sorrow.

My dearest cousin, it is needless for me to say that you are quite 
free and that it is very likely you may find some one whom you will 
love much better than your first fancy.  I am quite sure, if you 
will let me say so, that the object of your choice would greatly 
prefer to follow your fortunes far and wide, however moderate or 
poor, and see you happy, doing your duty and pursuing your chosen 
way, than to have the hope of being, or even to be, very rich with 
you (if such a thing were possible) at the cost of dragging years 
of procrastination and anxiety and of your indifference to other 
aims.  You may wonder at my saying this so confidently with so 
little knowledge or experience, but I know it for a certainty from 
my own heart.

Ever, my dearest cousin, your most affectionate

Ada


This note brought Richard to us very soon, but it made little 
change in him if any.  We would fairly try, he said, who was right 
and who was wrong--he would show us--we should see!  He was 
animated and glowing, as if Ada's tenderness had gratified him; but 
I could only hope, with a sigh, that the letter might have some 
stronger effect upon his mind on re-perusal than it assuredly had 
then.

As they were to remain with us that day and had taken their places 
to return by the coach next morning, I sought an opportunity of 
speaking to Mr. Skimpole.  Our out-of-door life easily threw one in 
my way, and I delicately said that there was a responsibility in 
encouraging Richard.

"Responsibility, my dear Miss Summerson?" he repeated, catching at 
the word with the pleasantest smile.  "I am the last man in the 
world for such a thing.  I never was responsible in my life--I 
can't be."

"I am afraid everybody is obliged to be," said I timidly enough, he 
being so much older and more clever than I.

"No, really?" said Mr. Skimpole, receiving this new light with a 
most agreeable jocularity of surprise.  "But every man's not 
obliged to be solvent?  I am not.  I never was.  See, my dear Miss 
Summerson," he took a handful of loose silver and halfpence from 
his pocket, "there's so much money.  I have not an idea how much.  
I have not the power of counting.  Call it four and ninepence--call 
it four pound nine.  They tell me I owe more than that.  I dare say 
I do.  I dare say I owe as much as good-natured people will let me 
owe.  If they don't stop, why should I?  There you have Harold 
Skimpole in little.  If that's responsibility, I am responsible."

The perfect ease of manner with which he put the money up again and 
looked at me with a smile on his refined face, as if he had been 
mentioning a curious little fact about somebody else, almost made 
me feel as if he really had nothing to do with it.

"Now, when you mention responsibility," he resumed, "I am disposed 
to say that I never had the happiness of knowing any one whom I 
should consider so refreshingly responsible as yourself.  You 
appear to me to be the very touchstone of responsibility.  When I 
see you, my dear Miss Summerson, intent upon the perfect working of 
the whole little orderly system of which you are the centre, I feel 
inclined to say to myself--in fact I do say to myself very often--
THAT'S responsibility!"

It was difficult, after this, to explain what I meant; but I 
persisted so far as to say that we all hoped he would check and not 
confirm Richard in the sanguine views he entertained just then.

"Most willingly," he retorted, "if I could.  But, my dear Miss 
Summerson, I have no art, no disguise.  If he takes me by the hand 
and leads me through Westminster Hall in an airy procession after 
fortune, I must go.  If he says, 'Skimpole, join the dance!'  I 
must join it.  Common sense wouldn't, I know, but I have NO common 
sense."

It was very unfortunate for Richard, I said.

"Do you think so!" returned Mr. Skimpole.  "Don't say that, don't 
say that.  Let us suppose him keeping company with Common Sense--an 
excellent man--a good deal wrinkled--dreadfully practical--change 
for a ten-pound note in every pocket--ruled account-book in his 
hand--say, upon the whole, resembling a tax-gatherer.  Our dear 
Richard, sanguine, ardent, overleaping obstacles, bursting with 
poetry like a young bud, says to this highly respectable companion, 
'I see a golden prospect before me; it's very bright, it's very 
beautiful, it's very joyous; here I go, bounding over the landscape 
to come at it!'  The respectable companion instantly knocks him 
down with the ruled account-book; tells him in a literal, prosaic 
way that he sees no such thing; shows him it's nothing but fees, 
fraud, horsehair wigs, and black gowns.  Now you know that's a 
painful change--sensible in the last degree, I have no doubt, but 
disagreeable.  I can't do it.  I haven't got the ruled account-
book, I have none of the tax-gatherlng elements in my composition, 
I am not at all respectable, and I don't want to be.  Odd perhaps, 
but so it is!"

It was idle to say more, so I proposed that we should join Ada and 
Richard, who were a little in advance, and I gave up Mr. Skimpole 
in despair.  He had been over the Hall in the course of the morning 
and whimsically described the family pictures as we walked.  There 
were such portentous shepherdesses among the Ladies Dedlock dead 
and gone, he told us, that peaceful crooks became weapons of 
assault in their hands.  They tended their flocks severely in 
buckram and powder and put their sticking-plaster patches on to 
terrify commoners as the chiefs of some other tribes put on their 
war-paint.  There was a Sir Somebody Dedlock, with a battle, a 
sprung-mine, volumes of smoke, flashes of lightning, a town on 
fire, and a stormed fort, all in full action between his horse's 
two hind legs, showing, he supposed, how little a Dedlock made of 
such trifles.  The whole race he represented as having evidently 
been, in life, what he called "stuffed people"--a large collection, 
glassy eyed, set up in the most approved manner on their various 
twigs and perches, very correct, perfectly free from animation, and 
always in glass cases.

I was not so easy now during any reference to the name but that I 
felt it a relief when Richard, with an exclamation of surprise, 
hurried away to meet a stranger whom he first descried coming 
slowly towards us.

"Dear me!" said Mr. Skimpole.  "Vholes!"

We asked if that were a friend of Richard's.

"Friend and legal adviser," said Mr. Skimpole.  "Now, my dear Miss 
Summerson, if you want common sense, responsibility, and 
respectability, all united--if you want an exemplary man--Vholes is 
THE man."

We had not known, we said, that Richard was assisted by any 
gentleman of that name.

"When he emerged from legal infancy," returned Mr. Skimpole, "he 
parted from our conversational friend Kenge and took up, I believe, 
with Vholes.  Indeed, I know he did, because I introduced him to 
Vholes."

"Had you known him long?" asked Ada.

"Vholes?  My dear Miss Clare, I had had that kind of acquaintance 
with him which I have had with several gentlemen of his profession.  
He had done something or other in a very agreeable, civil manner--
taken proceedings, I think, is the expression--which ended in the 
proceeding of his taking ME.  Somebody was so good as to step in 
and pay the money--something and fourpence was the amount; I forget 
the pounds and shillings, but I know it ended with fourpence, 
because it struck me at the time as being so odd that I could owe 
anybody fourpence--and after that I brought them together.  Vholes 
asked me for the introduction, and I gave it.  Now I come to think 
of it," he looked inquiringly at us with his frankest smile as he 
made the discovery, "Vholes bribed me, perhaps?  He gave me 
something and called it commission.  Was it a five-pound note?  Do 
you know, I think it MUST have been a five-pound note!"

His further consideration of the point was prevented by Richard's 
coming back to us in an excited state and hastily representing Mr. 
Vholes--a sallow man with pinched lips that looked as if they were 
cold, a red eruption here and there upon his face, tall and thin, 
about fifty years of age, high-shouldered, and stooping.  Dressed 
in black, black-gloved, and buttoned to the chin, there was nothing 
so remarkable in him as a lifeless manner and a slow, fixed way he 
had of looking at Richard.

"I hope I don't disturb you, ladies," said Mr. Vholes, and now I 
observed that he was further remarkable for an inward manner of 
speaking.  "I arranged with Mr. Carstone that he should always know 
when his cause was in the Chancelor's paper, and being informed by 
one of my clerks last night after post time that it stood, rather 
unexpectedly, in the paper for to-morrow, I put myself into the 
coach early this morning and came down to confer with him."

"Yes," said Richard, flushed, and looking triumphantly at Ada and 
me, "we don't do these things in the old slow way now.  We spin 
along now!  Mr. Vholes, we must hire something to get over to the 
post town in, and catch the mail to-night, and go up by it!"

"Anything you please, sir," returned Mr. Vholes.  "I am quite at 
your service."

"Let me see," said Richard, looking at his watch.  "If I run down 
to the Dedlock, and get my portmanteau fastened up, and order a 
gig, or a chaise, or whatever's to be got, we shall have an hour 
then before starting.  I'll come back to tea.  Cousin Ada, will you 
and Esther take care of Mr. Vholes when I am gone?"

He was away directly, in his heat and hurry, and was soon lost in 
the dusk of evening.  We who were left walked on towards the house.

"Is Mr. Carstone's presence necessary to-morrow, Sir?" said I.  
"Can it do any good?"

"No, miss," Mr. Vholes replied.  "I am not aware that it can."

Both Ada and I expressed our regret that he should go, then, only 
to be disappointed.

"Mr. Carstone has laid down the principle of watching his own 
interests," said Mr. Vholes, "and when a client lays down his own 
principle, and it is not immoral, it devolves upon me to carry it 
out.  I wish in business to be exact and open.  I am a widower with 
three daughters--Emma, Jane, and Caroline--and my desire is so to 
discharge the duties of life as to leave them a good name.  This 
appears to be a pleasant spot, miss."

The remark being made to me in consequence of my being next him as 
we walked, I assented and enumerated its chief attractions.

"Indeed?" said Mr. Vholes.  "I have the privilege of supporting an 
aged father in the Vale of Taunton--his native place--and I admire 
that country very much.  I had no idea there was anything so 
attractive here."

To keep up the conversation, I asked Mr. Vholes if he would like to 
live altogether in the country.

"There, miss," said he, "you touch me on a tender string.  My 
health is not good (my digestion being much impaired), and if I had 
only myself to consider, I should take refuge in rural habits, 
especially as the cares of business have prevented me from ever 
coming much into contact with general society, and particularly 
with ladies' society, which I have most wished to mix in.  But with 
my three daughters, Emma, Jane, and Caroline--and my aged father--I 
cannot afford to be selfish.  It is true I have no longer to 
maintain a dear grandmother who died in her hundred and second 
year, but enough remains to render it indispensable that the mill 
should be always going."

It required some attention to hear him on account of his inward 
speaking and his lifeless manner.

"You will excuse my having mentioned my daughters," he said.  "They 
are my weak point.  I wish to leave the poor girls some little 
independence, as well as a good name."

We now arrived at Mr. Boythorn's house, where the tea-table, all 
prepared, was awaiting us.  Richard came in restless and hurried 
shortly afterwards, and leaning over Mr. Vholes's chair, whispered 
something in his ear.  Mr. Vholes replied aloud--or as nearly aloud 
I suppose as he had ever replied to anything--"You will drive me, 
will you, sir?  It is all the same to me, sir.  Anything you 
please.  I am quite at your service."

We understood from what followed that Mr. Skimpole was to be left 
until the morning to occupy the two places which had been already 
paid for.  As Ada and I were both in low spirits concerning Richard 
and very sorry so to part with him, we made it as plain as we 
politely could that we should leave Mr. Skimpole to the Dedlock 
Arms and retire when the night-travellers were gone.

Richard's high spirits carrying everything before them, we all went 
out together to the top of the hill above the village, where he had 
ordered a gig to wait and where we found a man with a lantern 
standing at the head of the gaunt pale horse that had been 
harnessed to it.

I never shall forget those two seated side by side in the lantern's 
light, Richard all flush and fire and laughter, with the reins in 
his hand; Mr. Vholes quite still, black-gloved, and buttoned up, 
looking at him as if he were looking at his prey and charming it.  
I have before me the whole picture of the warm dark night, the 
summer lightning, the dusty track of road closed in by hedgerows 
and high trees, the gaunt pale horse with his ears pricked up, and 
the driving away at speed to Jarndyce and Jarndyce.

My dear girl told me that night how Richard's being thereafter 
prosperous or ruined, befriended or deserted, could only make this 
difference to her, that the more he needed love from one unchanging 
heart, the more love that unchanging heart would have to give him; 
how he thought of her through his present errors, and she would 
think of him at all times--never of herself if she could devote 
herself to him, never of her own delights if she could minister to 
his.

And she kept her word?

I look along the road before me, where the distance already 
shortens and the journey's end is growing visible; and true and 
good above the dead sea of the Chancery suit and all the ashy fruit 
it cast ashore, I think I see my darling.



CHAPTER XXXVIII

A Struggle


When our time came for returning to Bleak House again, we were 
punctual to the day and were received with an overpowering welcome.  
I was perfectly restored to health and strength, and finding my 
housekeeping keys laid ready for me in my room, rang myself in as 
if I had been a new year, with a merry little peal.  "Once more, 
duty, duty, Esther," said I; "and if you are not overjoyed to do 
it, more than cheerfully and contentedly, through anything and 
everything, you ought to be.  That's all I have to say to you, my 
dear!"

The first few mornings were mornings of so much bustle and 
business, devoted to such settlements of accounts, such repeated 
journeys to and fro between the growlery and all other parts of the 
house, so many rearrangements of drawers and presses, and such a 
general new beginning altogether, that I had not a moment's 
leisure.  But when these arrangements were completed and everything 
was in order, I paid a visit of a few hours to London, which 
something in the letter I had destroyed at Chesney Wold had induced 
me to decide upon in my own mind.

I made Caddy Jellyby--her maiden name was so natural to me that I 
always called her by it--the pretext for this visit and wrote her a 
note previously asking the favour of her company on a little 
business expedition.  Leaving home very early in the morning, I got 
to London by stage-coach in such good time that I got to Newman 
Street with the day before me.

Caddy, who had not seen me since her wedding-day, was so glad and 
so affectionate that I was half inclined to fear I should make her 
husband jealous.  But he was, in his way, just as bad--I mean as 
good; and in short it was the old story, and nobody would leave me 
any possibility of doing anything meritorious.

The elder Mr. Turveydrop was in bed, I found, and Caddy was milling 
his chocolate, which a melancholy little boy who was an apprentice
--it seemed such a curious thing to be apprenticed to the trade of 
dancing--was waiting to carry upstairs.  Her father-in-law was 
extremely kind and considerate, Caddy told me, and they lived most 
happily together.  (When she spoke of their living together, she 
meant that the old gentleman had all the good things and all the 
good lodging, while she and her husband had what they could get, 
and were poked into two corner rooms over the Mews.)

"And how is your mama, Caddy?" said I.

"Why, I hear of her, Esther," replied Caddy, "through Pa, but I see 
very little of her.  We are good friends, I am glad to say, but Ma 
thinks there is something absurd in my having married a dancing-
master, and she is rather afraid of its extending to her."

It struck me that if Mrs. Jellyby had discharged her own natural 
duties and obligations before she swept the horizon with a 
telescope in search of others, she would have taken the best 
precautions against becoming absurd, but I need scarcely observe 
that I kept this to myself.

"And your papa, Caddy?"

"He comes here every evening," returned Caddy, "and is so fond of 
sitting in the corner there that it's a treat to see him."

Looking at the corner, I plainly perceived the mark of Mr. 
Jellyby's head against the wall.  It was consolatory to know that 
he had found such a resting-place for it.

"And you, Caddy," said I, "you are always busy, I'll be bound?"

"Well, my dear," returned Caddy, "I am indeed, for to tell you a 
grand secret, I am qualifying myself to give lessons.  Prince's 
health is not strong, and I want to be able to assist him.  What 
with schools, and classes here, and private pupils, AND the 
apprentices, he really has too much to do, poor fellow!"

The notion of the apprentices was still so odd to me that I asked 
Caddy if there were many of them.

"Four," said Caddy.  "One in-door, and three out.  They are very 
good children; only when they get together they WILL play--
children-like--instead of attending to their work.  So the little 
boy you saw just now waltzes by himself in the empty kitchen, and 
we distribute the others over the house as well as we can."

"That is only for their steps, of course?" said I.

"Only for their steps," said Caddy.  "In that way they practise, so 
many hours at a time, whatever steps they happen to be upon.  They 
dance in the academy, and at this time of year we do figures at 
five every morning."

"Why, what a laborious life!" I exclaimed.

"I assure you, my dear," returned Caddy, smiling, "when the out-
door apprentices ring us up in the morning (the bell rings into our 
room, not to disturb old Mr. Turveydrop), and when I put up the 
window and see them standing on the door-step with their little 
pumps under their arms, I am actually reminded of the Sweeps."

All this presented the art to me in a singular light, to be sure.  
Caddy enjoyed the effect of her communication and cheerfully 
recounted the particulars of her own studies.

"You see, my dear, to save expense I ought to know something of the 
piano, and I ought to know something of the kit too, and 
consequently I have to practise those two instruments as well as 
the details of our profession.  If Ma had been like anybody else, I 
might have had some little musical knowledge to begin upon.  
However, I hadn't any; and that part of the work is, at first, a 
little discouraging, I must allow.  But I have a very good ear, and 
I am used to drudgery--I have to thank Ma for that, at all events--
and where there's a will there's a way, you know, Esther, the world 
over."  Saying these words, Caddy laughingly sat down at a little 
jingling square piano and really rattled off a quadrille with great 
spirit.  Then she good-humouredly and blushingly got up again, and 
while she still laughed herself, said, "Don't laugh at me, please; 
that's a dear girl!"

I would sooner have cried, but I did neither.  I encouraged her and 
praised her with all my heart.  For I conscientiously believed, 
dancing-master's wife though she was, and dancing-mistress though 
in her limited ambition she aspired to be, she had struck out a 
natural, wholesome, loving course of industry and perseverance that 
was quite as good as a mission.

"My dear," said Caddy, delighted, "you can't think how you cheer 
me.  I shall owe you, you don't know how much.  What changes, 
Esther, even in my small world!  You recollect that first night, 
when I was so unpolite and inky?  Who would have thought, then, of 
my ever teaching people to dance, of all other possibilities and 
impossibilities!"

Her husband, who had left us while we had this chat, now coming 
back, preparatory to exercising the apprentices in the ball-room, 
Caddy informed me she was quite at my disposal.  But it was not my 
time yet, I was glad to tell her, for I should have been vexed to 
take her away then.  Therefore we three adjourned to the 
apprentices together, and I made one in the dance.

The apprentices were the queerest little people.  Besides the 
melancholy boy, who, I hoped, had not been made so by waltzing 
alone in the empty kitchen, there were two other boys and one dirty 
little limp girl in a gauzy dress.  Such a precocious little girl, 
with such a dowdy bonnet on (that, too, of a gauzy texture), who 
brought her sandalled shoes in an old threadbare velvet reticule.  
Such mean little boys, when they were not dancing, with string, and 
marbles, and cramp-bones in their pockets, and the most untidy legs 
and feet--and heels particularly.

I asked Caddy what had made their parents choose this profession 
for them.  Caddy said she didn't know; perhaps they were designed 
for teachers, perhaps for the stage.  They were all people in 
humble circumstances, and the melancholy boy's mother kept a 
ginger-beer shop.

We danced for an hour with great gravity, the melancholy child 
doing wonders with his lower extremities, in which there appeared 
to be some sense of enjoyment though it never rose above his waist.  
Caddy, while she was observant of her husband and was evidently 
founded upon him, had acquired a grace and self-possession of her 
own, which, united to her pretty face and figure, was uncommonly 
agreeable.  She already relieved him of much of the instruction of 
these young people, and he seldom interfered except to walk his 
part in the figure if he had anything to do in it.  He always 
played the tune.  The affectation of the gauzy child, and her 
condescension to the boys, was a sight.  And thus we danced an hour 
by the clock.

When the practice was concluded, Caddy's husband made himself ready 
to go out of town to a school, and Caddy ran away to get ready to 
go out with me.  I sat in the ball-room in the interval, 
contemplating the apprentices.  The two out-door boys went upon the 
staircase to put on their half-boots and pull the in-door boy's 
hair, as I judged from the nature of his objections.  Returning 
with their jackets buttoned and their pumps stuck in them, they 
then produced packets of cold bread and meat and bivouacked under a 
painted lyre on the wall.  The little gauzy child, having whisked 
her sandals into the reticule and put on a trodden-down pair of 
shoes, shook her head into the dowdy bonnet at one shake, and 
answering my inquiry whether she liked dancing by replying, "Not 
with boys," tied it across her chin, and went home contemptuous.

"Old Mr. Turveydrop is so sorry," said Caddy, "that he has not 
finished dressing yet and cannot have the pleasure of seeing you 
before you go.  You are such a favourite of his, Esther."

I expressed myself much obliged to him, but did not think it 
necessary to add that I readily dispensed with this attention.

"It takes him a long time to dress," said Caddy, "because he is 
very much looked up to in such things, you know, and has a 
reputation to support.  You can't think how kind he is to Pa.  He 
talks to Pa of an evening about the Prince Regent, and I never saw 
Pa so interested."

There was something in the picture of Mr. Turveydrop bestowing his 
deportment on Mr. Jellyby that quite took my fancy.  I asked Caddy 
if he brought her papa out much.

"No," said Caddy, "I don't know that he does that, but he talks to 
Pa, and Pa greatly admires him, and listens, and likes it.  Of 
course I am aware that Pa has hardly any claims to deportment, but 
they get on together delightfully.  You can't think what good 
companions they make.  I never saw Pa take snuff before in my life, 
but he takes one pinch out of Mr. Turveydrop's box regularly and 
keeps putting it to his nose and taking it away again all the 
evening."

That old Mr. Turveydrop should ever, in the chances and changes of 
life, have come to the rescue of Mr. Jellyby from Borrioboola-Gha 
appeared to me to be one of the pleasantest of oddities.

"As to Peepy," said Caddy with a little hesitation, "whom I was 
most afraid of--next to having any family of my own, Esther--as an 
inconvenience to Mr. Turveydrop, the kindness of the old gentleman 
to that child is beyond everything.  He asks to see him, my dear!  
He lets him take the newspaper up to him in bed; he gives him the 
crusts of his toast to eat; he sends him on little errands about 
the house; he tells him to come to me for sixpences.  In short," 
said Caddy cheerily, "and not to prose, I am a very fortunate girl 
and ought to be very grateful.  Where are we going, Esther?"

"To the Old Street Road," said I, "where I have a few words to say 
to the solicitor's clerk who was sent to meet me at the coach-
office on the very day when I came to London and first saw you, my 
dear.  Now I think of it, the gentleman who brought us to your 
house."

"Then, indeed, I seem to be naturally the person to go with you," 
returned Caddy.

To the Old Street Road we went and there inquired at Mrs. Guppy's 
residence for Mrs. Guppy.  Mrs. Guppy, occupying the parlours and 
having indeed been visibly in danger of cracking herself like a nut 
in the front-parlour door by peeping out before she was asked for, 
immediately presented herself and requested us to walk in.  She was 
an old lady in a large cap, with rather a red nose and rather an 
unsteady eye, but smiling all over.  Her close little sitting-room 
was prepared for a visit, and there was a portrait of her son in it 
which, I had almost written here, was more like than life: it 
insisted upon him with such obstinacy, and was so determined not to 
let him off.

Not only was the portrait there, but we found the original there 
too.  He was dressed in a great many colours and was discovered at 
a table reading law-papers with his forefinger to his forehead.

"Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, rising, "this is indeed an oasis.  
Mother, will you be so good as to put a chair for the other lady 
and get out of the gangway."

Mrs. Guppy, whose incessant smiling gave her quite a waggish 
appearance, did as her son requested and then sat down in a corner, 
holding her pocket handkerchief to her chest, like a fomentation, 
with both hands.

I presented Caddy, and Mr. Guppy said that any friend of mine was 
more than welcome.  I then proceeded to the object of my visit.

"I took the liberty of sending you a note, sir," said I.

Mr. Guppy acknowledged the receipt by taking it out of his breast-
pocket, putting it to his lips, and returning it to his pocket with 
a bow.  Mr. Guppy's mother was so diverted that she rolled her head 
as she smiled and made a silent appeal to Caddy with her elbow.

"Could I speak to you alone for a moment?" said I.

Anything like the jocoseness of Mr. Guppy's mother just now, I 
think I never saw.  She made no sound of laughter, but she rolled 
her head, and shook it, and put her handkerchief to her mouth, and 
appealed to Caddy with her elbow, and her hand, and her shoulder, 
and was so unspeakably entertained altogether that it was with some 
difficulty she could marshal Caddy through the little folding-door 
into her bedroom adjoining.

"Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, "you will excuse the waywardness 
of a parent ever mindful of a son's appiness.  My mother, though 
highly exasperating to the feelings, is actuated by maternal 
dictates."

I could hardly have believed that anybody could in a moment have 
turned so red or changed so much as Mr. Guppy did when I now put up 
my veil.

"I asked the favour of seeing you for a few moments here," said I, 
"in preference to calling at Mr. Kenge's because, remembering what 
you said on an occasion when you spoke to me in confidence, I 
feared I might otherwise cause you some embarrassment, Mr. Guppy."

I caused him embarrassment enough as it was, I am sure.  I never 
saw such faltering, such confusion, such amazement and 
apprehension.

"Miss Summerson," stammered Mr. Guppy, "I--I--beg your pardon, but 
in our profession--we--we--find it necessary to be explicit.  You 
have referred to an occasion, miss, when I--when I did myself the 
honour of making a declaration which--"

Something seemed to rise in his throat that he could not possibly 
swallow.  He put his hand there, coughed, made faces, tried again 
to swallow it, coughed again, made faces again, looked all round 
the room, and fluttered his papers.

"A kind of giddy sensation has come upon me, miss," he explained, 
"which rather knocks me over.  I--er--a little subject to this sort 
of thing--er--by George!"

I gave him a little time to recover.  He consumed it in putting his 
hand to his forehead and taking it away again, and in backing his 
chair into the corner behind him.

"My intention was to remark, miss," said Mr. Guppy, "dear me--
something bronchial, I think--hem!--to remark that you was so good 
on that occasion as to repel and repudiate that declaration.  You--
you wouldn't perhaps object to admit that?  Though no witnesses are 
present, it might be a satisfaction to--to your mind--if you was to 
put in that admission."

"There can be no doubt," said I, "that I declined your proposal 
without any reservation or qualification whatever, Mr. Guppy."

"Thank you, miss," he returned, measuring the table with his 
troubled hands.  "So far that's satisfactory, and it does you 
credit.  Er--this is certainly bronchial!--must be in the tubes--
er--you wouldn't perhaps be offended if I was to mention--not that 
it's necessary, for your own good sense or any person's sense must 
show 'em that--if I was to mention that such declaration on my part 
was final, and there terminated?"

"I quite understand that," said I.

"Perhaps--er--it may not be worth the form, but it might be a 
satisfaction to your mind--perhaps you wouldn't object to admit 
that, miss?" said Mr. Guppy.

"I admit it most fully and freely," said I.

"Thank you," returned Mr. Guppy.  "Very honourable, I am sure.  I 
regret that my arrangements in life, combined with circumstances 
over which I have no control, will put it out of my power ever to 
fall back upon that offer or to renew it in any shape or form 
whatever, but it will ever be a retrospect entwined--er--with 
friendship's bowers."  Mr. Guppy's bronchitis came to his relief 
and stopped his measurement of the table.

"I may now perhaps mention what I wished to say to you?" I began.

"I shall be honoured, I am sure," said Mr. Guppy.  "I am so 
persuaded that your own good sense and right feeling, miss, will--
will keep you as square as possible--that I can have nothing but 
pleasure, I am sure, in hearing any observations you may wish to 
offer."

"You were so good as to imply, on that occasion--"

"Excuse me, miss," said Mr. Guppy, "but we had better not travel 
out of the record into implication.  I cannot admit that I implied 
anything."

"You said on that occasion," I recommenced, "that you might 
possibly have the means of advancing my interests and promoting my 
fortunes by making discoveries of which I should be the subject.  I 
presume that you founded that belief upon your general knowledge of 
my being an orphan girl, indebted for everything to the benevolence 
of Mr. Jarndyce.  Now, the beginning and the end of what I have 
come to beg of you is, Mr. Guppy, that you will have the kindness 
to relinquish all idea of so serving me.  I have thought of this 
sometimes, and I have thought of it most lately--since I have been 
ill.  At length I have decided, in case you should at any time 
recall that purpose and act upon it in any way, to come to you and 
assure you that you are altogether mistaken.  You could make no 
discovery in reference to me that would do me the least service or 
give me the least pleasure.  I am acquainted with my personal 
history, and I have it in my power to assure you that you never can 
advance my welfare by such means.  You may, perhaps, have abandoned 
this project a long time.  If so, excuse my giving you unnecessary 
trouble.  If not, I entreat you, on the assurance I have given you, 
henceforth to lay it aside.  I beg you to do this, for my peace."

"I am bound to confess," said Mr. Guppy, "that you express 
yourself, miss, with that good sense and right feeling for which I 
gave you credit.  Nothing can be more satisfactory than such right 
feeling, and if I mistook any intentions on your part just now, I 
am prepared to tender a full apology.  I should wish to be 
understood, miss, as hereby offering that apology--limiting it, as 
your own good sense and right feeling will point out the necessity 
of, to the present proceedings."

I must say for Mr. Guppy that the snuffling manner he had had upon 
him improved very much.  He seemed truly glad to be able to do 
something I asked, and he looked ashamed.

"If you will allow me to finish what I have to say at once so that 
I may have no occasion to resume," I went on, seeing him about to 
speak, "you will do me a kindness, sir.  I come to you as privately 
as possible because you announced this impression of yours to me in 
a confidence which I have really wished to respect--and which I 
always have respected, as you remember.  I have mentioned my 
illness.  There really is no reason why I should hesitate to say 
that I know very well that any little delicacy I might have had in 
making a request to you is quite removed.  Therefore I make the 
entreaty I have now preferred, and I hope you will have sufficient 
consideration for me to accede to it."

I must do Mr. Guppy the further justice of saying that he had 
looked more and more ashamed and that he looked most ashamed and 
very earnest when he now replied with a burning face, "Upon my word 
and honour, upon my life, upon my soul, Miss Summerson, as I am a 
living man, I'll act according to your wish!  I'll never go another 
step in opposition to it.  I'll take my oath to it if it will be 
any satisfaction to you.  In what I promise at this present time 
touching the matters now in question," continued Mr. Guppy rapidly, 
as if he were repeating a familiar form of words, "I speak the 
truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth, so--"

"I am quite satisfied," said I, rising at this point, "and I thank 
you very much.  Caddy, my dear, I am ready!"

Mr. Guppy's mother returned with Caddy (now making me the recipient 
of her silent laughter and her nudges), and we took our leave.  Mr. 
Guppy saw us to the door with the air of one who was either 
imperfectly awake or walking in his sleep; and we left him there, 
staring.

But in a minute he came after us down the street without any hat, 
and with his long hair all blown about, and stopped us, saying 
fervently, "Miss Summerson, upon my honour and soul, you may depend 
upon me!"

"I do," said I, "quite confidently."

"I beg your pardon, miss," said Mr. Guppy, going with one leg and 
staying with the other, "but this lady being present--your own 
witness--it might be a satisfaction to your mind (which I should 
wish to set at rest) if you was to repeat those admissions."

"Well, Caddy," said I, turning to her, "perhaps you will not be 
surprised when I tell you, my dear, that there never has been any 
engagement--"

"No proposal or promise of marriage whatsoever," suggested Mr. 
Guppy.

"No proposal or promise of marriage whatsoever," said I, "between 
this gentleman--"

"William Guppy, of Penton Place, Pentonville, in the county of 
Middlesex," he murmured.

"Between this gentleman, Mr. William Guppy, of Penton Place, 
Pentonville, in the county of Middlesex, and myself."

"Thank you, miss," said Mr. Guppy.  "Very full--er--excuse me--
lady's name, Christian and surname both?"

I gave them.

"Married woman, I believe?" said Mr. Guppy.  "Married woman.  Thank 
you.  Formerly Caroline Jellyby, spinster, then of Thavies Inn, 
within the city of London, but extra-parochial; now of Newman 
Street, Oxford Street.  Much obliged."

He ran home and came running back again.

"Touching that matter, you know, I really and truly am very sorry 
that my arrangements in life, combined with circumstances over 
which I have no control, should prevent a renewal of what was 
wholly terminated some time back," said Mr. Guppy to me forlornly 
and despondently, "but it couldn't be.  Now COULD it, you know!  I 
only put it to you."

I replied it certainly could not.  The subject did not admit of a 
doubt.  He thanked me and ran to his mother's again--and back 
again.

"It's very honourable of you, miss, I am sure," said Mr. Guppy.  
"If an altar could be erected in the bowers of friendship--but, 
upon my soul, you may rely upon me in every respect save and except 
the tender passion only!"

The struggle in Mr. Guppy's breast and the numerous oscillations it 
occasioned him between his mother's door and us were sufficiently 
conspicuous in the windy street (particularly as his hair wanted 
cutting) to make us hurry away.  I did so with a lightened heart; 
but when we last looked back, Mr. Guppy was still oscillating in 
the same troubled state of mind.



CHAPTER XXXIX

Attorney and Client


The name of Mr. Vholes, preceded by the legend Ground-Floor, is 
inscribed upon a door-post in Symond's Inn, Chancery Lane--a 
little, pale, wall-eyed, woebegone inn like a large dust-binn of 
two compartments and a sifter.  It looks as if Symond were a 
sparing man in his way and constructed his inn of old building 
materials which took kindly to the dry rot and to dirt and all 
things decaying and dismal, and perpetuated Symond's memory with 
congenial shabbiness.  Quartered in this dingy hatchment 
commemorative of Symond are the legal bearings of Mr. Vholes.

Mr. Vholes's office, in disposition retiring and in situation 
retired, is squeezed up in a corner and blinks at a dead wall.  
Three feet of knotty-floored dark passage bring the client to Mr. 
Vholes's jet-black door, in an angle profoundly dark on the 
brightest midsummer morning and encumbered by a black bulk-head of 
cellarage staircase against which belated civilians generally 
strike their brows.  Mr. Vholes's chambers are on so small a scale 
that one clerk can open the door without getting off his stool, 
while the other who elbows him at the same desk has equal 
facilities for poking the fire.  A smell as of unwholesome sheep 
blending with the smell of must and dust is referable to the 
nightly (and often daily) consumption of mutton fat in candles and 
to the fretting of parchment forms and skins in greasy drawers.  
The atmosphere is otherwise stale and close.  The place was last 
painted or whitewashed beyond the memory of man, and the two 
chimneys smoke, and there is a loose outer surface of soot 
evervwhere, and the dull cracked windows in their heavy frames have 
but one piece of character in them, which is a determination to be 
always dirty and always shut unless coerced.  This accounts for the 
phenomenon of the weaker of the two usually having a bundle of 
firewood thrust between its jaws in hot weather.

Mr. Vholes is a very respectable man.  He has not a large business, 
but he is a very respectable man.  He is allowed by the greater 
attorneys who have made good fortunes or are making them to be a 
most respectable man.  He never misses a chance in his practice, 
which is a mark of respectability.  He never takes any pleasure, 
which is another mark of respectability.  He is reserved and 
serious, which is another mark of respectability.  His digestion is 
impaired, which is highly respectable.  And he is making hay of the 
grass which is flesh, for his three daughters.  And his father is 
dependent on him in the Vale of Taunton.

The one great principle of the English law is to make business for 
itself.  There is no other principle distinctly, certainly, and 
consistently maintained through all its narrow turnings.  Viewed by 
this light it becomes a coherent scheme and not the monstrous maze 
the laity are apt to think it.  Let them but once clearly perceive 
that its grand principle is to make business for itself at their 
expense, and surely they will cease to grumble.

But not perceiving this quite plainly--only seeing it by halves in 
a confused way--the laity sometimes suffer in peace and pocket, 
with a bad grace, and DO grumble very much.  Then this 
respectability of Mr. Vholes is brought into powerful play against 
them.  "Repeal this statute, my good sir?" says Mr. Kenge to a 
smarting client.  "Repeal it, my dear sir?  Never, with my consent.  
Alter this law, sir, and what will be the effect of your rash 
proceeding on a class of practitioners very worthily represented, 
allow me to say to you, by the opposite attorney in the case, Mr. 
Vholes?  Sir, that class of practitioners would be swept from the 
face of the earth.  Now you cannot afford--I will say, the social 
system cannot afford--to lose an order of men like Mr. Vholes.  
Diligent, persevering, steady, acute in business.  My dear sir, I 
understand your present feelings against the existing state of 
things, which I grant to be a little hard in your case; but I can 
never raise my voice for the demolition of a class of men like Mr. 
Vholes."  The respectability of Mr. Vholes has even been cited with 
crushing effect before Parliamentary committees, as in the 
following blue minutes of a distinguished attorney's evidence.   
"Question (number five hundred and seventeen thousand eight hundred 
and sixty-nine): If I understand you, these forms of practice 
indisputably occasion delay?  Answer: Yes, some delay.  Question: 
And great expense?  Answer: Most assuredly they cannot be gone 
through for nothing.  Question: And unspeakable vexation?  Answer: 
I am not prepared to say that.  They have never given ME any 
vexation; quite the contrary.  Question: But you think that their 
abolition would damage a class of practitioners?  Answer: I have no 
doubt of it.  Question: Can you instance any type of that class?  
Answer: Yes.  I would unhesitatingly mention Mr. Vholes.  He would 
be ruined.  Question: Mr. Vholes is considered, in the profession, 
a respectable man?  Answer: "--which proved fatal to the inquiry 
for ten years--"Mr. Vholes is considered, in the profession, a MOST 
respectable man."

So in familiar conversation, private authorities no less 
disinterested will remark that they don't know what this age is 
coming to, that we are plunging down precipices, that now here is 
something else gone, that these changes are death to people like 
Vholes--a man of undoubted respectability, with a father in the 
Vale of Taunton, and three daughters at home.  Take a few steps 
more in this direction, say they, and what is to become of Vholes's 
father?  Is he to perish?  And of Vholes's daughters?  Are they to 
be shirt-makers, or governesses?  As though, Mr. Vholes and his 
relations being minor cannibal chiefs and it being proposed to 
abolish cannibalism, indignant champions were to put the case thus: 
Make man-eating unlawful, and you starve the Vholeses!

In a word, Mr. Vholes, with his three daughters and his father in 
the Vale of Taunton, is continually doing duty, like a piece of 
timber, to shore up some decayed foundation that has become a 
pitfall and a nuisance.  And with a great many people in a great 
many instances, the question is never one of a change from wrong to 
right (which is quite an extraneous consideration), but is always 
one of injury or advantage to that eminently respectable legion, 
Vholes.

The Chancellor is, within these ten minutes, "up" for the long 
vacation.  Mr. Vholes, and his young client, and several blue bags 
hastily stuffed out of all regularity of form, as the larger sort 
of serpents are in their first gorged state, have returned to the 
official den.  Mr. Vholes, quiet and unmoved, as a man of so much 
respectability ought to be, takes off his close black gloves as if 
he were skinning his hands, lifts off his tight hat as if he were 
scalping himself, and sits down at his desk.  The client throws his 
hat and gloves upon the ground--tosses them anywhere, without 
looking after them or caring where they go; flings himself into a 
chair, half sighing and half groaning; rests his aching head upon 
his hand and looks the portrait of young despair.

"Again nothing done!" says Richard.  "Nothing, nothing done!"

"Don't say nothing done, sir," returns the placid Vholes.  "That is 
scarcely fair, sir, scarcely fair!"

"Why, what IS done?" says Richard, turning gloomily upon him.

"That may not be the whole question," returns Vholes, "The question 
may branch off into what is doing, what is doing?"

"And what is doing?" asks the moody client.

Vholes, sitting with his arms on the desk, quietly bringing the 
tips of his five right fingers to meet the tips of his five left 
fingers, and quietly separating them again, and fixedly and slowly 
looking at his client, replies, "A good deal is doing, sir.  We 
have put our shoulders to the wheel, Mr. Carstone, and the wheel is 
going round."

"Yes, with Ixion on it.  How am I to get through the next four or 
five accursed months?" exclaims the young man, rising from his 
chair and walking about the room.

"Mr. C.," returns Vholes, following him close with his eyes 
wherever he goes, "your spirits are hasty, and I am sorry for it on 
your account.  Excuse me if I recommend you not to chafe so much, 
not to be so impetuous, not to wear yourself out so.  You should 
have more patience.  You should sustain yourself better."

"I ought to imitate you, in fact, Mr. Vholes?" says Richard, 
sitting down again with an impatient laugh and beating the devil's 
tattoo with his boot on the patternless carpet.

"Sir," returns Vholes, always looking at the client as if he were 
making a lingering meal of him with his eyes as well as with his 
professional appetite.  "Sir," returns Vholes with his inward 
manner of speech and his bloodless quietude, "I should not have had 
the presumption to propose myself as a model for your imitation or 
any man's.  Let me but leave the good name to my three daughters, 
and that is enough for me; I am not a self-seeker.  But since you 
mention me so pointedly, I will acknowledge that I should like to 
impart to you a little of my--come, sir, you are disposed to call 
it insensibility, and I am sure I have no objection--say 
insensibility--a little of my insensibility."

"Mr. Vholes," explains the client, somewhat abashed, "I had no 
intention to accuse you of insensibility."

"I think you had, sir, without knowing it," returns the equable 
Vholes.  "Very naturally.  It is my duty to attend to your 
interests with a cool head, and I can quite understand that to your 
excited feelings I may appear, at such times as the present, 
insensible.  My daughters may know me better; my aged father may 
know me better.  But they have known me much longer than you have, 
and the confiding eye of affection is not the distrustful eye of 
business.  Not that I complain, sir, of the eye of business being 
distrustful; quite the contrary.  In attending to your interests, I 
wish to have all possible checks upon me; it is right that I should 
have them; I court inquiry.  But your interests demand that I 
should be cool and methodical, Mr. Carstone; and I cannot be 
otherwise--no, sir, not even to please you."

Mr. Vholes, after glancing at the official cat who is patiently 
watching a mouse's hole, fixes his charmed gaze again on his young 
client and proceeds in his buttoned-up, half-audible voice as if 
there were an unclean spirit in him that will neither come out nor 
speak out, "What are you to do, sir, you inquire, during the 
vacation.  I should hope you gentlemen of the army may find many 
means of amusing yourselves if you give your minds to it.  If you 
had asked me what I was to do during the vacation, I could have 
answered you more readily.  I am to attend to your interests.  I am 
to be found here, day by day, attending to your interests.  That is 
my duty, Mr. C., and term-time or vacation makes no difference to 
me.  If you wish to consult me as to your interests, you will find 
me here at all times alike.  Other professional men go out of town.  
I don't.  Not that I blame them for going; I merely say I don't go.  
This desk is your rock, sir!"

Mr. Vholes gives it a rap, and it sounds as hollow as a coffin.  
Not to Richard, though.  There is encouragement in the sound to 
him.  Perhaps Mr. Vholes knows there is.

"I am perfectly aware, Mr. Vholes," says Richard, more familiarly 
and good-humouredly, "that you are the most reliable fellow in the 
world and that to have to do with you is to have to do with a man 
of business who is not to be hoodwinked.  But put yourself in my 
case, dragging on this dislocated life, sinking deeper and deeper 
into difficulty every day, continually hoping and continually 
disappointed, conscious of change upon change for the worse in 
myself, and of no change for the better in anything else, and you 
will find it a dark-looking case sometimes, as I do."

"You know," says Mr. Vholes, "that I never give hopes, sir.  I told 
you from the first, Mr. C., that I never give hopes.  Particularly 
in a case like this, where the greater part of the costs comes out 
of the estate, I should not be considerate of my good name if I 
gave hopes.  It might seem as if costs were my object.  Still, when 
you say there is no change for the better, I must, as a bare matter 
of fact, deny that."

"Aye?" returns Richard, brightening.  "But how do you make it out?"

"Mr. Carstone, you are represented by--"

"You said just now--a rock."

"Yes, sir," says Mr. Vholes, gently shaking his head and rapping 
the hollow desk, with a sound as if ashes were falling on ashes, 
and dust on dust, "a rock.  That's something.  You are separately 
represented, and no longer hidden and lost in the interests of 
others.  THAT'S something.  The suit does not sleep; we wake it up, 
we air it, we walk it about.  THAT'S something.  It's not all 
Jarndyce, in fact as well as in name.  THAT'S something.  Nobody 
has it all his own way now, sir.  And THAT'S something, surely."

Richard, his face flushing suddenly, strikes the desk with his 
clenched hand.

"Mr. Vholes!  If any man had told me when I first went to John 
Jarndyce's house that he was anything but the disinterested friend 
he seemed--that he was what he has gradually turned out to be--I 
could have found no words strong enough to repel the slander; I 
could not have defended him too ardently.  So little did I know of 
the world!  Whereas now I do declare to you that he becomes to me 
the embodiment of the suit; that in place of its being an 
abstraction, it is John Jarndyce; that the more I suffer, the more 
indignant I am with him; that every new delay and every new 
disappointment is only a new injury from John Jarndyce's hand."

"No, no," says vholes.  "Don't say so.  We ought to have patience, 
all of us.  Besides, I never disparage, sir.  I never disparage."

"Mr. Vholes," returns the angry client.  "You know as well as I 
that he would have strangled the suit if he could."

"He was not active in it," Mr. Vholes admits with an appearance of 
reluctance.  "He certainly was not active in it.  But however, but 
however, he might have had amiable intentions.  Who can read the 
heart, Mr. C.!"

"You can," returns Richard.

"I, Mr. C.?"

"Well enough to know what his intentions were.  Are or are not our 
interests conflicting?  Tell--me--that!" says Richard, accompanying 
his last three words with three raps on his rock of trust.

"Mr. C.," returns Vholes, immovable in attitude and never winking 
his hungry eyes, "I should be wanting in my duty as your 
professional adviser, I should be departing from my fidelity to 
your interests, if I represented those interests as identical with 
the interests of Mr. Jarndyce.  They are no such thing, sir.  I 
never impute motives; I both have and am a father, and I never 
impute motives.  But I must not shrink from a professional duty, 
even if it sows dissensions in families.  I understand you to be 
now consulting me professionally as to your interests?  You are so?  
I reply, then, they are not identical with those of Mr. Jarndyce."

"Of course they are not!" cries Richard.  "You found that out long 
ago."

"Mr. C.," returns Vholes, "I wish to say no more of any third party 
than is necessary.  I wish to leave my good name unsullied, 
together with any little property of which I may become possessed 
through industry and perseverance, to my daughters Emma, Jane, and 
Caroline.  I also desire to live in amity with my professional 
brethren.  When Mr. Skimpole did me the honour, sir--I will not say 
the very high honour, for I never stoop to flattery--of bringing us 
together in this room, I mentioned to you that I could offer no 
opinion or advice as to your interests while those interests were 
entrusted to another member of the profession.  And I spoke in such 
terms as I was bound to speak of Kenge and Carboy's office, which 
stands high.  You, sir, thought fit to withdraw your interests from 
that keeping nevertheless and to offer them to me.  You brought 
them with clean hands, sir, and I accepted them with clean hands.  
Those interests are now paramount in this office.  My digestive 
functions, as you may have heard me mention, are not in a good 
state, and rest might improve them; but I shall not rest, sir, 
while I am your representative.  Whenever you want me, you will 
find me here.  Summon me anywhere, and I will come.  During the 
long vacation, sir, I shall devote my leisure to studying your 
interests more and more closely and to making arrangements for 
moving heaven and earth (including, of course, the Chancellor) 
after Michaelmas term; and when I ultimately congratulate you, 
sir," says Mr. Vholes with the severity of a determined man, "when 
I ultimately congratulate you, sir, with all my heart, on your 
accession to fortune--which, but that I never give hopes, I might 
say something further about--you will owe me nothing beyond 
whatever little balance may be then outstanding of the costs as 
between solicitor and client not included in the taxed costs 
allowed out of the estate.  I pretend to no claim upon you, Mr. C., 
but for the zealous and active discharge--not the languid and 
routine discharge, sir: that much credit I stipulate for--of my 
professional duty.  My duty prosperously ended, all between us is 
ended."

Vholes finally adds, by way of rider to this declaration of his 
principles, that as Mr. Carstone is about to rejoin his regiment, 
perhaps Mr. C. will favour him with an order on his agent for 
twenty pounds on account.

"For there have been many little consultations and attendances of 
late, sir," observes Vholes, turning over the leaves of his diary, 
"and these things mount up, and I don't profess to be a man of 
capital.  When we first entered on our present relations I stated 
to you openly--it is a principle of mine that there never can be 
too much openness between solicitor and client--that I was not a 
man of capital and that if capital was your object you had better 
leave your papers in Kenge's office.  No, Mr. C., you will find 
none of the advantages or disadvantages of capital here, sir.  
This," Vholes gives the desk one hollow blow again, "is your rock; 
it pretends to be nothing more."

The client, with his dejection insensibly relieved and his vague 
hopes rekindled, takes pen and ink and writes the draft, not 
without perplexed consideration and calculation of the date it may 
bear, implying scant effects in the agent's hands.  All the while, 
Vholes, buttoned up in body and mind, looks at him attentively.  
All the while, Vholes's official cat watches the mouse's hole.

Lastly, the client, shaking hands, beseeches Mr. Vholes, for 
heaven's sake and earth's sake, to do his utmost to "pull him 
through" the Court of Chancery.  Mr. Vholes, who never gives hopes, 
lays his palm upon the client's shoulder and answers with a smile, 
"Always here, sir.  Personally, or by letter, you will always find 
me here, sir, with my shoulder to the wheel."  Thus they part, and 
Vholes, left alone, employs himself in carrying sundry little 
matters out of his diary into his draft bill book for the ultimate 
behoof of his three daughters.  So might an industrious fox or bear 
make up his account of chickens or stray travellers with an eye to 
his cubs, not to disparage by that word the three raw-visaged, 
lank, and buttoned-up maidens who dwell with the parent Vholes in 
an earthy cottage situated in a damp garden at Kennington.

Richard, emerging from the heavy shade of Symond's Inn into the 
sunshine of Chancery Lane--for there happens to be sunshine there 
to-day--walks thoughtfully on, and turns into Lincoln's Inn, and 
passes under the shadow of the Lincoln's Inn trees.  On many such 
loungers have the speckled shadows of those trees often fallen; on 
the like bent head, the bitten nail, the lowering eye, the 
lingering step, the purposeless and dreamy air, the good consuming 
and consumed, the life turned sour.  This lounger is not shabby 
yet, but that may come.  Chancery, which knows no wisdom but in 
precedent, is very rich in such precedents; and why should one be 
different from ten thousand?

Yet the time is so short since his depreciation began that as he 
saunters away, reluctant to leave the spot for some long months 
together, though he hates it, Richard himself may feel his own case 
as if it were a startling one.  While his heart is heavy with 
corroding care, suspense, distrust, and doubt, it may have room for 
some sorrowful wonder when he recalls how different his first visit 
there, how different he, how different all the colours of his mind.  
But injustice breeds injustice; the fighting with shadows and being 
defeated by them necessitates the setting up of substances to 
combat; from the impalpable suit which no man alive can understand, 
the time for that being long gone by, it has become a gloomy relief 
to turn to the palpable figure of the friend who would have saved 
him from this ruin and make HIM his enemy.  Richard has told Vholes 
the truth.  Is he in a hardened or a softened mood, he still lays 
his injuries equally at that door; he was thwarted, in that 
quarter, of a set purpose, and that purpose could only originate in 
the one subject that is resolving his existence into itself; 
besides, it is a justification to him in his own eyes to have an 
embodied antagonist and oppressor.

Is Richard a monster in all this, or would Chancery be found rich 
in such precedents too if they could be got for citation from the 
Recording Angel?

Two pairs of eyes not unused to such people look after him, as, 
biting his nails and brooding, he crosses the square and is 
swallowed up by the shadow of the southern gateway.  Mr. Guppy and 
Mr. Weevle are the possessors of those eyes, and they have been 
leaning in conversation against the low stone parapet under the 
trees.  He passes close by them, seeing nothing but the ground.

"William," says Mr. Weevle, adjusting his whiskers, "there's 
combustion going on there!  It's not a case of spontaneous, but 
it's smouldering combustion it is."

"Ah!" says Mr. Guppy.  "He wouldn't keep out of Jarndyce, and I 
suppose he's over head and ears in debt.  I never knew much of him.  
He was as high as the monument when he was on trial at our place.  
A good riddance to me, whether as clerk or client!  Well, Tony, 
that as I was mentioning is what they're up to."

Mr. Guppy, refolding his arms, resettles himself against the 
parapet, as resuming a conversation of interest.

"They are still up to it, sir," says Mr. Guppy, "still taking 
stock, still examining papers, still going over the heaps and heaps 
of rubbish.  At this rate they'll be at it these seven years."

"And Small is helping?"

"Small left us at a week's notice.  Told Kenge his grandfather's 
business was too much for the old gentleman and he could better 
himself by undertaking it.  There had been a coolness between 
myself and Small on account of his being so close.  But he said you 
and I began it, and as he had me there--for we did--I put our 
acquaintance on the old footing.  That's how I come to know what 
they're up to."

"You haven't looked in at all?"

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy, a little disconcerted, "to be unreserved 
with you, I don't greatly relish the house, except in your company, 
and therefore I have not; and therefore I proposed this little 
appointment for our fetching away your things.  There goes the hour 
by the clock!  Tony"--Mr. Guppy becomes mysteriously and tenderly 
eloquent--"it is necessary that I should impress upon your mind 
once more that circumstances over which I have no control have made 
a melancholy alteration in my most cherished plans and in that 
unrequited image which I formerly mentioned to you as a friend.  
That image is shattered, and that idol is laid low.  My only wish 
now in connexion with the objects which I had an idea of carrying 
out in the court with your aid as a friend is to let 'em alone and 
bury 'em in oblivion.  Do you think it possible, do you think it at 
all likely (I put it to you, Tony, as a friend), from your 
knowledge of that capricious and deep old character who fell a prey 
to the--spontaneous element, do you, Tony, think it at all likely 
that on second thoughts he put those letters away anywhere, after 
you saw him alive, and that they were not destroyed that night?"

Mr. Weevle reflects for some time.  Shakes his head.  Decidedly 
thinks not.

"Tony," says Mr. Guppy as they walk towards the court, "once again 
understand me, as a friend.  Without entering into further 
explanations, I may repeat that the idol is down.  I have no 
purpose to serve now but burial in oblivion.  To that I have 
pledged myself.  I owe it to myself, and I owe it to the shattered 
image, as also to the circumstances over which I have no control.  
If you was to express to me by a gesture, by a wink, that you saw 
lying anywhere in your late lodgings any papers that so much as 
looked like the papers in question, I would pitch them into the 
fire, sir, on my own responsibility."

Mr. Weevle nods.  Mr. Guppy, much elevated in his own opinion by 
having delivered these observations, with an air in part forensic 
and in part romantic--this gentleman having a passion for 
conducting anything in the form of an examination, or delivering 
anything in the form of a summing up or a speech--accompanies his 
friend with dignity to the court.

Never since it has been a court has it had such a Fortunatus' purse 
of gossip as in the proceedings at the rag and bottle shop.  
Regularly, every morning at eight, is the elder Mr. Smallweed 
brought down to the corner and carried in, accompanied by Mrs. 
Smallweed, Judy, and Bart; and regularly, all day, do they all 
remain there until nine at night, solaced by gipsy dinners, not 
abundant in quantity, from the cook's shop, rummaging and 
searching, digging, delving, and diving among the treasures of the 
late lamented.  What those treasures are they keep so secret that 
the court is maddened.  In its delirium it imagines guineas pouring 
out of tea-pots, crown-pieces overflowing punch-bowls, old chairs 
and mattresses stuffed with Bank of England notes.  It possesses 
itself of the sixpenny history (with highly coloured folding 
frontispiece) of Mr. Daniel Dancer and his sister, and also of Mr. 
Elwes, of Suffolk, and transfers all the facts from those authentic 
narratives to Mr. Krook.  Twice when the dustman is called in to 
carry off a cartload of old paper, ashes, and broken bottles, the 
whole court assembles and pries into the baskets as they come 
forth.  Many times the two gentlemen who write with the ravenous 
little pens on the tissue-paper are seen prowling in the 
neighbourhood--shy of each other, their late partnership being 
dissolved.  The Sol skilfully carries a vein of the prevailing 
interest through the Harmonic nights.  Little Swills, in what are 
professionally known as "patter" allusions to the subject, is 
received with loud applause; and the same vocalist "gags" in the 
regular business like a man inspired.  Even Miss M. Melvilleson, in 
the revived Caledonian melody of "We're a-Nodding," points the 
sentiment that "the dogs love broo" (whatever the nature of that 
refreshment may be) with such archness and such a turn of the head 
towards next door that she is immediately understood to mean Mr. 
Smallweed loves to find money, and is nightly honoured with a 
double encore.  For all this, the court discovers nothing; and as 
Mrs. Piper and Mrs. Perkins now communicate to the late lodger whose 
appearance is the signal for a general rally, it is in one 
continual ferment to discover everything, and more.

Mr. Weevle and Mr. Guppy, with every eye in the court's head upon 
them, knock at the closed door of the late lamented's house, in a 
high state of popularity.  But being contrary to the court's 
expectation admitted, they immediately become unpopular and are 
considered to mean no good.

The shutters are more or less closed all over the house, and the 
ground-floor is sufficiently dark to require candles.  Introduced 
into the back shop by Mr. Smallweed the younger, they, fresh from 
the sunlight, can at first see nothing save darkness and shadows; 
but they gradually discern the elder Mr. Smallweed seated in his 
chair upon the brink of a well or grave of waste-paper, the 
virtuous Judy groping therein like a female sexton, and Mrs. 
Smallweed on the level ground in the vicinity snowed up in a heap 
of paper fragments, print, and manuscript which would appear to be 
the accumulated compliments that have been sent flying at her in 
the course of the day.  The whole party, Small included, are 
blackened with dust and dirt and present a fiendish appearance not 
relieved by the general aspect of the room.  There is more litter 
and lumber in it than of old, and it is dirtier if possible; 
likewise, it is ghostly with traces of its dead inhabitant and even 
with his chalked writing on the wall.

On the entrance of visitors, Mr. Smallweed and Judy simultaneously 
fold their arms and stop in their researches.

"Aha!" croaks the old gentleman.  "How de do, gentlemen, how de do!  
Come to fetch your property, Mr. Weevle?  That's well, that's well.  
Ha! Ha!  We should have been forced to sell you up, sir, to pay 
your warehouse room if you had left it here much longer.  You feel 
quite at home here again, I dare say?  Glad to see you, glad to see 
you!"

Mr. Weevle, thanking him, casts an eye about.  Mr. Guppy's eye 
follows Mr. Weevle's eye.  Mr. Weevle's eye comes back without any 
new intelligence in it.  Mr. Guppy's eye comes back and meets Mr. 
Smallweed's eye.  That engaging old gentleman is still murmuring, 
like some wound-up instrument running down, "How de do, sir--how 
de--how--"  And then having run down, he lapses into grinning 
silence, as Mr. Guppy starts at seeing Mr. Tulkinghorn standing in 
the darkness opposite with his hands behind him.

"Gentleman so kind as to act as my solicitor," says Grandfather 
Smallweed.  "I am not the sort of client for a gentleman of such 
note, but he is so good!"

Mr. Guppy, slightly nudging his friend to take another look, makes 
a shuffling bow to Mr. Tulkinghorn, who returns it with an easy 
nod.  Mr. Tulkinghorn is looking on as if he had nothing else to do 
and were rather amused by the novelty.

"A good deal of property here, sir, I should say," Mr. Guppy 
observes to Mr. Smallweed.

"Principally rags and rubbish, my dear friend!  Rags and rubbish!  
Me and Bart and my granddaughter Judy are endeavouring to make out 
an inventory of what's worth anything to sell.  But we haven't come 
to much as yet; we--haven't--come--to--hah!"

Mr. Smallweed has run down again, while Mr. Weevle's eye, attended 
by Mr. Guppy's eye, has again gone round the room and come back.

"Well, sir," says Mr. Weevle.  "We won't intrude any longer if 
you'll allow us to go upstairs."

"Anywhere, my dear sir, anywhere!  You're at home.  Make yourself 
so, pray!"

As they go upstairs, Mr. Guppy lifts his eyebrows inquiringly and 
looks at Tony.  Tony shakes his head.  They find the old room very 
dull and dismal, with the ashes of the fire that was burning on 
that memorable night yet in the discoloured grate.  They have a 
great disinclination to touch any object, and carefully blow the 
dust from it first.  Nor are they desirous to prolong their visit, 
packing the few movables with all possible speed and never speaking 
above a whisper.

"Look here," says Tony, recoiling.  "Here's that horrible cat 
coming in!"

Mr. Guppy retreats behind a chair.  "Small told me of her.  She 
went leaping and bounding and tearing about that night like a 
dragon, and got out on the house-top, and roamed about up there for 
a fortnight, and then came tumbling down the chimney very thin.  
Did you ever see such a brute?  Looks as if she knew all about it, 
don't she?  Almost looks as if she was Krook.  Shoohoo!  Get out, 
you goblin!"

Lady Jane, in the doorway, with her tiger snarl from ear to ear and 
her club of a tail, shows no intention of obeying; but Mr. 
Tulkinghorn stumbling over her, she spits at his rusty legs, and 
swearing wrathfully, takes her arched back upstairs.  Possibly to 
roam the house-tops again and return by the chimney.

"Mr. Guppy," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "could I have a word with you?"

Mr. Guppy is engaged in collecting the Galaxy Gallery of British 
Beauty from the wall and depositing those works of art in their old 
ignoble band-box.  "Sir," he returns, reddening, "I wish to act 
with courtesy towards every member of the profession, and 
especially, I am sure, towards a member of it so well known as 
yourself--I will truly add, sir, so distinguished as yourself.  
Still, Mr. Tulkinghorn, sir, I must stipulate that if you have any 
word with me, that word is spoken in the presence of my friend."

"Oh, indeed?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"Yes, sir.  My reasons are not of a personal nature at all, but 
they are amply sufficient for myself."

"No doubt, no doubt."  Mr. Tulkinghorn is as imperturbable as the 
hearthstone to which he has quietly walked.  "The matter is not of 
that consequence that I need put you to the trouble of making any 
conditions, Mr. Guppy."  He pauses here to smile, and his smile is 
as dull and rusty as his pantaloons.  "You are to be congratulated, 
Mr. Guppy; you are a fortunate young man, sir."

"Pretty well so, Mr. Tulkinghorn; I don't complain."

"Complain?  High friends, free admission to great houses, and 
access to elegant ladies!  Why, Mr. Guppy, there are people in 
London who would give their ears to be you."

Mr. Guppy, looking as if he would give his own reddening and still 
reddening ears to be one of those people at present instead of 
himself, replies, "Sir, if I attend to my profession and do what is 
right by Kenge and Carboy, my friends and acquaintances are of no 
consequence to them nor to any member of the profession, not 
excepting Mr. Tulkinghorn of the Fields.  I am not under any 
obligation to explain myself further; and with all respect for you, 
sir, and without offence--I repeat, without offence--"

"Oh, certainly!"

"--I don't intend to do it."

"Quite so," says Mr. Tulkinghorn with a calm nod.  "Very good; I 
see by these portraits that you take a strong interest in the 
fashionable great, sir?"

He addresses this to the astounded Tony, who admits the soft 
impeachment.

"A virtue in which few Englishmen are deficient," observes Mr. 
Tulkinghorn.  He has been standing on the hearthstone with his back 
to the smoked chimney-piece, and now turns round with his glasses 
to his eyes.  "Who is this?  'Lady Dedlock.'  Ha!  A very good 
likeness in its way, but it wants force of character.  Good day to 
you, gentlemen; good day!"

When he has walked out, Mr. Guppy, in a great perspiration, nerves 
himself to the hasty completion of the taking down of the Galaxy 
Gallery, concluding with Lady Dedlock.

"Tony," he says hurriedly to his astonished companion, "let us be 
quick in putting the things together and in getting out of this 
place.  It were in vain longer to conceal from you, Tony, that 
between myself and one of the members of a swan-like aristocracy 
whom I now hold in my hand, there has been undivulged communication 
and association.  The time might have been when I might have 
revealed it to you.  It never will be more.  It is due alike to the 
oath I have taken, alike to the shattered idol, and alike to 
circumstances over which I have no control, that the whole should 
be buried in oblivion.  I charge you as a friend, by the interest 
you have ever testified in the fashionable intelligence, and by any 
little advances with which I may have been able to accommodate you, 
so to bury it without a word of inquiry!"

This charge Mr. Guppy delivers in a state little short of forensic 
lunacy, while his friend shows a dazed mind in his whole head of 
hair and even in his cultivated whiskers.



CHAPTER XL

National and Domestic


England has been in a dreadful state for some weeks.  Lord Coodle 
would go out, Sir Thomas Doodle wouldn't come in, and there being 
nobody in Great Britain (to speak of) except Coodle and Doodle, 
there has been no government.  It is a mercy that the hostile 
meeting between those two great men, which at one time seemed 
inevitable, did not come off, because if both pistols had taken 
effect, and Coodle and Doodle had killed each other, it is to be 
presumed that England must have waited to be governed until young 
Coodle and young Doodle, now in frocks and long stockings, were 
grown up.  This stupendous national calamity, however, was averted 
by Lord Coodle's making the timely discovery that if in the heat of 
debate he had said that he scorned and despised the whole ignoble 
career of Sir Thomas Doodle, he had merely meant to say that party 
differences should never induce him to withhold from it the tribute 
of his warmest admiration; while it as opportunely turned out, on 
the other hand, that Sir Thomas Doodle had in his own bosom 
expressly booked Lord Coodle to go down to posterity as the mirror 
of virtue and honour.  Still England has been some weeks in the 
dismal strait of having no pilot (as was well observed by Sir 
Leicester Dedlock) to weather the storm; and the marvellous part of 
the matter is that England has not appeared to care very much about 
it, but has gone on eating and drinking and marrying and giving in 
marriage as the old world did in the days before the flood.  But 
Coodle knew the danger, and Doodle knew the danger, and all their 
followers and hangers-on had the clearest possible perception of 
the danger.  At last Sir Thomas Doodle has not only condescended to 
come in, but has done it handsomely, bringing in with him all his 
nephews, all his male cousins, and all his brothers-in-law.  So 
there is hope for the old ship yet.

Doodle has found that he must throw himself upon the country, 
chiefly in the form of sovereigns and beer.  In this metamorphosed 
state he is available in a good many places simultaneously and can 
throw himself upon a considerable portion of the country at one 
time.  Britannia being much occupied in pocketing Doodle in the 
form of sovereigns, and swallowing Doodle in the form of beer, and 
in swearing herself black in the face that she does neither--
plainly to the advancement of her glory and morality--the London 
season comes to a sudden end, through all the Doodleites and 
Coodleites dispersing to assist Britannia in those religious 
exercises.

Hence Mrs. Rouncewell, housekeeper at Chesney Wold, foresees, 
though no instructions have yet come down, that the family may 
shortly be expected, together with a pretty large accession of 
cousins and others who can in any way assist the great 
Constitutional work.  And hence the stately old dame, taking Time 
by the forelock, leads him up and down the staircases, and along 
the galleries and passages, and through the rooms, to witness 
before he grows any older that everything is ready, that floors are 
rubbed bright, carpets spread, curtains shaken out, beds puffed and 
patted, still-room and kitchen cleared for action--all things 
prepared as beseems the Dedlock dignity.

This present summer evening, as the sun goes down, the preparations 
are complete.  Dreary and solemn the old house looks, with so many 
appliances of habitation and with no inhabitants except the 
pictured forms upon the walls.  So did these come and go, a Dedlock 
in possession might have ruminated passing along; so did they see 
this gallery hushed and quiet, as I see it now; so think, as I 
think, of the gap that they would make in this domain when they 
were gone; so find it, as I find it, difficult to believe that it 
could be without them; so pass from my world, as I pass from 
theirs, now closing the reverberating door; so leave no blank to 
miss them, and so die.

Through some of the fiery windows beautiful from without, and set, 
at this sunset hour, not in dull-grey stone but in a glorious house 
of gold, the light excluded at other windows pours in rich, lavish, 
overflowing like the summer plenty in the land.  Then do the frozen 
Dedlocks thaw.  Strange movements come upon their features as the 
shadows of leaves play there.  A dense justice in a corner is 
beguiled into a wink.  A staring baronet, with a truncheon, gets a 
dimple in his chin.  Down into the bosom of a stony shepherdess 
there steals a fleck of light and warmth that would have done it 
good a hundred years ago.  One ancestress of Volumnia, in high-
heeled shoes, very like her--casting the shadow of that virgin 
event before her full two centuries--shoots out into a halo and 
becomes a saint.  A maid of honour of the court of Charles the 
Second, with large round eyes (and other charms to correspond), 
seems to bathe in glowing water, and it ripples as it glows.

But the fire of the sun is dying.  Even now the floor is dusky, and 
shadow slowly mounts the walls, bringing the Dedlocks down like age 
and death.  And now, upon my Lady's picture over the great chimney-
piece, a weird shade falls from some old tree, that turns it pale, 
and flutters it, and looks as if a great arm held a veil or hood, 
watching an opportunity to draw it over her.  Higher and darker 
rises shadow on the wall--now a red gloom on the ceiling--now the 
fire is out.

All that prospect, which from the terrace looked so near, has moved 
solemnly away and changed--not the first nor the last of beautiful 
things that look so near and will so change--into a distant 
phantom.  Light mists arise, and the dew falls, and all the sweet 
scents in the garden are heavv in the air.  Now the woods settle 
into great masses as if they were each one profound tree.  And now 
the moon rises to separate them, and to glimmer here and there in 
horizontal lines behind their stems, and to make the avenue a 
pavement of light among high cathedral arches fantastically broken.

Now the moon is high; and the great house, needing habitation more 
than ever, is like a body without life.  Now it is even awful, 
stealing through it, to think of the live people who have slept in 
the solitary bedrooms, to say nothing of the dead.  Now is the time 
for shadow, when every corner is a cavern and every downward step a 
pit, when the stained glass is reflected in pale and faded hues 
upon the floors, when anything and everything can be made of the 
heavy staircase beams excepting their own proper shapes, when the 
armour has dull lights upon it not easily to be distinguished from 
stealthy movement, and when barred helmets are frightfully 
suggestive of heads inside.  But of all the shadows in Chesney 
Wold, the shadow in the long drawing-room upon my Lady's picture is 
the first to come, the last to be disturbed.  At this hour and by 
this light it changes into threatening hands raised up and menacing 
the handsome face with every breath that stirs.

"She is not well, ma'am," says a groom in Mrs. Rouncewell's 
audience-chamber.

"My Lady not well!  What's the matter?"

"Why, my Lady has been but poorly, ma'am, since she was last here--
I don't mean with the family, ma'am, but when she was here as a 
bird of passage like.  My Lady has not been out much for her and 
has kept her room a good deal."

"Chesney Wold, Thomas," rejoins the housekeeper with proud 
complacency, "will set my Lady up!  There is no finer air and no 
healthier soil in the world!"

Thomas may have his own personal opinions on this subject, probably 
hints them in his manner of smoothing his sleek head from the nape 
of his neck to his temples, but he forbears to express them further 
and retires to the servants' hall to regale on cold meat-pie and 
ale.

This groom is the pilot-fish before the nobler shark.  Next 
evening, down come Sir Leicester and my Lady with their largest 
retinue, and down come the cousins and others from all the points 
of the compass.  Thenceforth for some weeks backward and forward 
rush mysterious men with no names, who fly about all those 
particular parts of the country on which Doodle is at present 
throwing himself in an auriferous and malty shower, but who are 
merely persons of a restless disposition and never do anything 
anywhere.

On these national occasions Sir Leicester finds the cousins useful.  
A better man than the Honourable Bob Stables to meet the Hunt at 
dinner, there could not possibly be.  Better got up gentlemen than 
the other cousins to ride over to polling-booths and hustings here 
and there, and show themselves on the side of England, it would be 
hard to find.  Volumnia is a little dim, but she is of the true 
descent; and there are many who appreciate her sprightly 
conversation, her French conundrums so old as to have become in the 
cycles of time almost new again, the honour of taking the fair 
Dedlock in to dinner, or even the privilege of her hand in the 
dance.  On these national occasions dancing may be a patriotic 
service, and Volumnia is constantly seen hopping about for the good 
of an ungrateful and unpensioning country.

My Lady takes no great pains to entertain the numerous guests, and 
being still unwell, rarely appears until late in the day.  But at 
all the dismal dinners, leaden lunches, basilisk balls, and other 
melancholy pageants, her mere appearance is a relief.  As to Sir 
Leicester, he conceives it utterly impossible that anything can be 
wanting, in any direction, by any one who has the good fortune to 
be received under that roof; and in a state of sublime 
satisfaction, he moves among the company, a magnificent 
refrigerator.

Daily the cousins trot through dust and canter over roadside turf, 
away to hustings and polling-booths (with leather gloves and 
hunting-whips for the counties and kid gloves and riding-canes for 
the boroughs), and daily bring back reports on which Sir Leicester 
holds forth after dinner.  Daily the restless men who have no 
occupation in life present the appearance of being rather busy.  
Daily Volumnia has a little cousinly talk with Sir Leicester on the 
state of the nation, from which Sir Leicester is disposed to 
conclude that Volumnia is a more reflecting woman than he had 
thought her.

"How are we getting on?" says Miss Volumnia, clasping her hands.  
"ARE we safe?"

The mighty business is nearly over by this time, and Doodle will 
throw himself off the country in a few days more.  Sir Leicester 
has just appeared in the long drawing-room after dinner, a bright 
particular star surrounded by clouds of cousins.

"Volumnia," replies Sir Leicester, who has a list in his hand, "we 
are doing tolerably."

"Only tolerably!"

Although it is summer weather, Sir Leicester always has his own 
particular fire in the evening.  He takes his usual screened seat 
near it and repeats with much firmness and a little displeasure, as 
who should say, I am not a common man, and when I say tolerably, it 
must not be understood as a common expression, "Volumnia, we are 
doing tolerably."

"At least there is no opposition to YOU," Volumnia asserts with 
confidence.

"No, Volumnia.  This distracted country has lost its senses in many 
respects, I grieve to say, but--"

"It is not so mad as that.  I am glad to hear it!"

Volumnia's finishing the sentence restores her to favour.  Sir 
Leicester, with a gracious inclination of his head, seems to say to 
himself, "A sensible woman this, on the whole, though occasionally 
precipitate."

In fact, as to this question of opposition, the fair Dedlock's 
observation was superfluous, Sir Leicester on these occasions 
always delivering in his own candidateship, as a kind of handsome 
wholesale order to be promptly executed.  Two other little seats 
that belong to him he treats as retail orders of less importance, 
merely sending down the men and signifying to the tradespeople, 
"You will have the goodness to make these materials into two 
members of Parliament and to send them home when done."

"I regret to say, Volumnia, that in many places the people have 
shown a bad spirit, and that this opposition to the government has 
been of a most determined and most implacable description."

"W-r-retches!" says Volumnia.

"Even," proceeds Sir Leicester, glancing at the circumjacent 
cousins on sofas and ottomans, "even in many--in fact, in most--of 
those places in which the government has carried it against a 
faction--"

(Note, by the way, that the Coodleites are always a faction with 
the Doodleites, and that the Doodleites occupy exactly the same 
position towards the Coodleites.)

"--Even in them I am shocked, for the credit of Englishmen, to be 
constrained to inform you that the party has not triumphed without 
being put to an enormous expense.  Hundreds," says Sir Leicester, 
eyeing the cousins with increasing dignity and swelling 
indignation, "hundreds of thousands of pounds!"

If Volumnia have a fault, it is the fault of being a trifle too 
innocent, seeing that the innocence which would go extremely well 
with a sash and tucker is a little out of keeping with the rouge 
and pearl necklace.  Howbeit, impelled by innocence, she asks, 
"What for?"

"Volumnia," remonstrates Sir Leicester with his utmost severity.  
"Volumnia!"

"No, no, I don't mean what for," cries Volumnia with her favourite 
little scream.  "How stupid I am!  I mean what a pity!"

"I am glad," returns Sir Leicester, "that you do mean what a pity."

Volumnia hastens to express her opinion that the shocking people 
ought to be tried as traitors and made to support the party.

"I am glad, Volumnia," repeats Sir Leicester, unmindful of these 
mollifying sentiments, "that you do mean what a pity.  It is 
disgraceful to the electors.  But as you, though inadvertently and 
without intending so unreasonable a question, asked me 'what for?' 
let me reply to you.  For necessary expenses.  And I trust to your 
good sense, Volumnia, not to pursue the subject, here or 
elsewhere."

Sir Leicester feels it incumbent on him to observe a crushing 
aspect towards Volumnia because it is whispered abroad that these 
necessary expenses will, in some two hundred election petitions, be 
unpleasantly connected with the word bribery, and because some 
graceless jokers have consequently suggested the omission from the 
Church service of the ordinary supplication in behalf of the High 
Court of Parliament and have recommended instead that the prayers 
of the congregation be requested for six hundred and fifty-eight 
gentlemen in a very unhealthy state.

"I suppose," observes Volumnia, having taken a little time to 
recover her spirits after her late castigation, "I suppose Mr. 
Tulkinghorn has been worked to death."

"I don't know," says Sir Leicester, opening his eyes, "why Mr. 
Tulkinghorn should be worked to death.  I don't know what Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's engagements may be.  He is not a candidate."

Volumnia had thought he might have been employed.  Sir Leicester 
could desire to know by whom, and what for.  Volumnia, abashed 
again, suggests, by somebody--to advise and make arrangements.  Sir 
Leicester is not aware that any client of Mr. Tulkinghorn has been 
in need of his assistance.

Lady Dedlock, seated at an open window with her arm upon its 
cushioned ledge and looking out at the evening shadows falling on 
the park, has seemed to attend since the lawyer's name was 
mentioned.

A languid cousin with a moustache in a state of extreme debility 
now observes from his couch that man told him ya'as'dy that 
Tulkinghorn had gone down t' that iron place t' give legal 'pinion 
'bout something, and that contest being over t' day, 'twould be 
highly jawlly thing if Tulkinghorn should 'pear with news that 
Coodle man was floored.

Mercury in attendance with coffee informs Sir Leicester, hereupon, 
that Mr. Tulkinghorn has arrived and is taking dinner.  My Lady 
turns her head inward for the moment, then looks out again as 
before.

Volumnia is charmed to hear that her delight is come.  He is so 
original, such a stolid creature, such an immense being for knowing 
all sorts of things and never telling them!  Volumnia is persuaded 
that he must be a Freemason.  Is sure he is at the head of a lodge, 
and wears short aprons, and is made a perfect idol of with 
candlesticks and trowels.  These lively remarks the fair Dedlock 
delivers in her youthful manner, while making a purse.

"He has not been here once," she adds, "since I came.  I really had 
some thoughts of breaking my heart for the inconstant creature.  I 
had almost made up my mind that he was dead."

It may be the gathering gloom of evening, or it may be the darker 
gloom within herself, but a shade is on my Lady's face, as if she 
thought, "I would he were!"

"Mr. Tulkinghorn," says Sir Leicester, "is always welcome here and 
always discreet wheresoever he is.  A very valuable person, and 
deservedly respected."

The debilitated cousin supposes he is "'normously rich fler."

"He has a stake in the country," says Sir Leicester, "I have no 
doubt.  He is, of course, handsomely paid, and he associates almost 
on a footing of equality with the highest society."

Everybody starts.  For a gun is fired close by.

"Good gracious, what's that?" cries Volumnia with her little 
withered scream.

"A rat," says my Lady.  "And they have shot him."

Enter Mr. Tulkinghorn, followed by Mercuries with lamps and 
candles.

"No, no," says Sir Leicester, "I think not.  My Lady, do you object 
to the twilight?"

On the contrary, my Lady prefers it.

"Volumnia?"

Oh!  Nothing is so delicious to Volumnia as to sit and talk in the 
dark.

"Then take them away," says Sir Leicester.  "Tulkinghorn, I beg 
your pardon.  How do you do?"

Mr. Tulkinghorn with his usual leisurely ease advances, renders his 
passing homage to my Lady, shakes Sir Leicester's hand, and 
subsides into the chair proper to him when he has anything to 
communicate, on the opposite side of the Baronet's little 
newspaper-table.  Sir Leicester is apprehensive that my Lady, not 
being very well, will take cold at that open window.  My Lady is 
obliged to him, but would rather sit there for the air.  Sir 
Leicester rises, adjusts her scarf about her, and returns to his 
seat.  Mr. Tulkinghorn in the meanwhile takes a pinch of snuff.

"Now," says Sir Leicester.  "How has that contest gone?"

"Oh, hollow from the beginning.  Not a chance.  They have brought 
in both their people.  You are beaten out of all reason.  Three to 
one."

It is a part of Mr. Tulkinghorn's policy and mastery to have no 
political opinions; indeed, NO opinions.  Therefore he says "you" 
are beaten, and not "we."

Sir Leicester is majestically wroth.  Volumnia never heard of such 
a thing.  'The debilitated cousin holds that it's sort of thing 
that's sure tapn slongs votes--giv'n--Mob.

"It's the place, you know," Mr. Tulkinghorn goes on to say in the 
fast-increasing darkness when there is silence again, "where they 
wanted to put up Mrs. Rouncewell's son."

"A proposal which, as you correctly informed me at the time, he had 
the becoming taste and perception," observes Sir Leicester, "to 
decline.  I cannot say that I by any means approve of the 
sentiments expressed by Mr. Rouncewell when he was here for some 
half-hour in this room, but there was a sense of propriety in his 
decision which I am glad to acknowledge."

"Ha!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn.  "It did not prevent him from being 
very active in this election, though."

Sir Leicester is distinctly heard to gasp before speaking.  "Did I 
understand you?  Did you say that Mr. Rouncewell had been very 
active in this election?"

"Uncommonly active."

"Against--"

"Oh, dear yes, against you.  He is a very good speaker.  Plain and 
emphatic.  He made a damaging effect, and has great influence.  In 
the business part of the proceedings he carried all before him."

It is evident to the whole company, though nobody can see him, that 
Sir Leicester is staring majestically.

"And he was much assisted," says Mr. Tulkinghorn as a wind-up, "by 
his son."

"By his son, sir?" repeats Sir Leicester with awful politeness.

"By his son."

"The son who wished to marry the young woman in my Lady's service?"

"That son.  He has but one."

"Then upon my honour," says Sir Leicester after a terrific pause 
during which he has been heard to snort and felt to stare, "then 
upon my honour, upon my life, upon my reputation and principles, 
the floodgates of society are burst open, and the waters have--a--
obliterated the landmarks of the framework of the cohesion by which 
things are held together!"

General burst of cousinly indignation.  Volumnia thinks it is 
really high time, you know, for somebody in power to step in and do 
something strong.  Debilitated cousin thinks--country's going--
Dayvle--steeple-chase pace.

"I beg," says Sir Leicester in a breathless condition, "that we may 
not comment further on this circumstance.  Comment is superfluous.  
My Lady, let me suggest in reference to that young woman--"

"I have no intention," observes my Lady from her window in a low 
but decided tone, "of parting with her."

"That was not my meaning," returns Sir Leicester.  "I am glad to 
hear you say so.  I would suggest that as you think her worthy of 
your patronage, you should exert your influence to keep her from 
these dangerous hands.  You might show her what violence would be 
done in such association to her duties and principles, and you 
might preserve her for a better fate.  You might point out to her 
that she probably would, in good time, find a husband at Chesney 
Wold by whom she would not be--"  Sir Leicester adds, after a 
moment's consideration, "dragged from the altars of her 
forefathers."

These remarks he offers with his unvarying politeness and deference 
when he addresses himself to his wife.  She merely moves her head 
in reply.  The moon is rising, and where she sits there is a little 
stream of cold pale light, in which her head is seen.

"It is worthy of remark," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "however, that 
these people are, in their way, very proud."

"Proud?"  Sir Leicester doubts his hearing.

"I should not be surprised if they all voluntarily abandoned the 
girl--yes, lover and all--instead of her abandoning them, supposing 
she remained at Chesney Wold under such circumstances."

"Well!" says Sir Leicester tremulously.  "Well! You should know, 
Mr. Tulkinghorn.  You have been among them."

"Really, Sir Leicester," returns the lawyer, "I state the fact.  
Why, I could tell you a story--with Lady Dedlock's permission."

Her head concedes it, and Volumnia is enchanted.  A story!  Oh, he 
is going to tell something at last!  A ghost in it, Volumnia hopes?

"No.  Real flesh and blood."  Mr. Tulkinghorn stops for an instant 
and repeats with some little emphasis grafted upon his usual 
monotony, "Real flesh and blood, Miss Dedlock.  Sir Leicester, 
these particulars have only lately become known to me.  They are 
very brief.  They exemplify what I have said.  I suppress names for 
the present.  Lady Dedlock will not think me ill-bred, I hope?"

By the light of the fire, which is low, he can be seen looking 
towards the moonlight.  By the light of the moon Lady Dedlock can 
be seen, perfecfly still.

"A townsman of this Mrs. Rouncewell, a man in exactly parallel 
circumstances as I am told, had the good fortune to have a daughter 
who attracted the notice of a great lady.  I speak of really a 
great lady, not merely great to him, but married to a gentleman of 
your condition, Sir Leicester."

Sir Leicester condescendingly says, "Yes, Mr. Tulkinghorn," 
implying that then she must have appeared of very considerable 
moral dimensions indeed in the eyes of an iron-master.

"The lady was wealthy and beautiful, and had a liking for the girl, 
and treated her with great kindness, and kept her always near her.  
Now this lady preserved a secret under all her greatness, which she 
had preserved for many years.  In fact, she had in early life been 
engaged to marry a young rake--he was a captain in the army--
nothing connected with whom came to any good.  She never did marry 
him, but she gave birth to a child of which he was the father."

By the light of the fire he can be seen looking towards the 
moonlight.  By the moonlight, Lady Dedlock can be seen in profile, 
perfectly still.

"The captain in the army being dead, she believed herself safe; but 
a train of circumstances with which I need not trouble you led to 
discovery.  As I received the story, they began in an imprudence on 
her own part one day when she was taken by surprise, which shows 
how difficult it is for the firmest of us (she was very firm) to be 
always guarded.  There was great domestic trouble and amazement, 
you may suppose; I leave you to imagine, Sir Leicester, the 
husband's grief.  But that is not the present point.  When Mr. 
Rouncewell's townsman heard of the disclosure, he no more allowed 
the girl to be patronized and honoured than he would have suffered 
her to be trodden underfoot before his eyes.  Such was his pride, 
that he indignantly took her away, as if from reproach and 
disgrace.  He had no sense of the honour done him and his daughter 
by the lady's condescension; not the least.  He resented the girl's 
position, as if the lady had been the commonest of commoners.  That 
is the story.  I hope Lady Dedlock will excuse its painful nature."

There are various opinions on the merits, more or less conflicting 
with Volumnia's.  That fair young creature cannot believe there 
ever was any such lady and rejects the whole history on the 
threshold.  The majority incline to the debilitated cousin's 
sentiment, which is in few words--"no business--Rouncewell's fernal 
townsman."  Sir Leicester generally refers back in his mind to Wat 
Tyler and arranges a sequence of events on a plan of his own.

There is not much conversation in all, for late hours have been 
kept at Chesney Wold since the necessary expenses elsewhere began, 
and this is the first night in many on which the family have been 
alone.  It is past ten when Sir Leicester begs Mr. Tulkinghorn to 
ring for candles.  Then the stream of moonlight has swelled into a 
lake, and then Lady Dedlock for the first time moves, and rises, 
and comes forward to a table for a glass of water.  Winking 
cousins, bat-like in the candle glare, crowd round to give it; 
Volumnia (always ready for something better if procurable) takes 
another, a very mild sip of which contents her; Lady Dedlock, 
graceful, self-possessed, looked after by admiring eyes, passes 
away slowly down the long perspective by the side of that nymph, 
not at all improving her as a question of contrast.



CHAPTER XLI

In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Room


Mr. Tulkinghorn arrives in his turret-room a little breathed by the 
journey up, though leisurely performed.  There is an expression on 
his face as if he had discharged his mind of some grave matter and 
were, in his close way, satisfied.  To say of a man so severely and 
strictly self-repressed that he is triumphant would be to do him as 
great an injustice as to suppose him troubled with love or 
sentiment or any romantic weakness.  He is sedately satisfied.  
Perhaps there is a rather increased sense of power upon him as he 
loosely grasps one of his veinous wrists with his other hand and 
holding it behind his back walks noiselessly up and down.

There is a capacious writing-table in the room on which is a pretty 
large accumulation of papers.  The green lamp is lighted, his 
reading-glasses lie upon the desk, the easy-chair is wheeled up to 
it, and it would seem as though he had intended to bestow an hour 
or so upon these claims on his attention before going to bed.  But 
he happens not to be in a business mind.  After a glance at the 
documents awaiting his notice--with his head bent low over the 
table, the old man's sight for print or writing being defective at 
night--he opens the French window and steps out upon the leads.  
There he again walks slowly up and down in the same attitude, 
subsiding, if a man so cool may have any need to subside, from the 
story he has related downstairs.

The time was once when men as knowing as Mr. Tulkinghorn would walk 
on turret-tops in the starlight and look up into the sky to read 
their fortunes there.  Hosts of stars are visible to-night, though 
their brilliancy is eclipsed by the splendour of the moon.  If he 
be seeking his own star as he methodically turns and turns upon the 
leads, it should be but a pale one to be so rustily represented 
below.  If he be tracing out his destiny, that may be written in 
other characters nearer to his hand.

As he paces the leads with his eyes most probably as high above his 
thoughts as they are high above the earth, he is suddenly stopped 
in passing the window by two eyes that meet his own.  The ceiling 
of his room is rather low; and the upper part of the door, which is 
opposite the window, is of glass.  There is an inner baize door, 
too, but the night being warm he did not close it when he came 
upstairs.  These eyes that meet his own are looking in through the 
glass from the corridor outside.  He knows them well.  The blood 
has not flushed into his face so suddenly and redly for many a long 
year as when he recognizes Lady Dedlock.

He steps into the room, and she comes in too, closing both the 
doors behind her.  There is a wild disturbance--is it fear or 
anger?--in her eyes.  In her carriage and all else she looks as she 
looked downstairs two hours ago.

Is it fear or is it anger now?  He cannot be sure.  Both might be 
as pale, both as intent.

"Lady Dedlock?"

She does not speak at first, nor even when she has slowly dropped 
into the easy-chair by the table.  They look at each other, like 
two pictures.

"Why have you told my story to so many persons?"

"Lady Dedlock, it was necessary for me to inform you that I knew 
it."

"How long have you known it?"

"I have suspected it a long while--fully known it a little while."

"Months?"

"Days."

He stands before her with one hand on a chair-back and the other in 
his old-fashioned waistcoat and shirt-frill, exactly as he has 
stood before her at any time since her marriage.  The same formal 
politeness, the same composed deference that might as well be 
defiance; the whole man the same dark, cold object, at the same 
distance, which nothing has ever diminished.

"Is this true concerning the poor girl?"

He slightly inclines and advances his head as not quite 
understanding the question.

"You know what you related.  Is it true?  Do her friends know my 
story also?  Is it the town-talk yet?  Is it chalked upon the walls 
and cried in the streets?"

So!  Anger, and fear, and shame.  All three contending.  What power 
this woman has to keep these raging passions down!  Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's thoughts take such form as he looks at her, with his 
ragged grey eyebrows a hair's breadth more contracted than usual 
under her gaze.

"No, Lady Dedlock.  That was a hypothetical case, arising out of 
Sir Leicester's unconsciously carrying the matter with so high a 
hand.  But it would be a real case if they knew--what we know."

"Then they do not know it yet?"

"No."

"Can I save the poor girl from injury before they know it?"

"Really, Lady Dedlock," Mr. Tulkinghorn replies, "I cannot give a 
satisfactory opinion on that point."

And he thinks, with the interest of attentive curiosity, as he 
watches the struggle in her breast, "The power and force of this 
woman are astonishing!"

"Sir," she says, for the moment obliged to set her lips with all 
the energy she has, that she may speak distinctly, "I will make it 
plainer.  I do not dispute your hypothetical case.  I anticipated 
it, and felt its truth as strongly as you can do, when I saw Mr. 
Rouncewell here.  I knew very well that if he could have had the 
power of seeing me as I was, he would consider the poor girl 
tarnished by having for a moment been, although most innocently, 
the subject of my great and distinguished patronage.  But I have an 
interest in her, or I should rather say--no longer belonging to 
this place--I had, and if you can find so much consideration for 
the woman under your foot as to remember that, she will be very 
sensible of your mercy."

Mr. Tulkinghorn, profoundly attentive, throws this off with a shrug 
of self-depreciation and contracts his eyebrows a little more.

"You have prepared me for my exposure, and I thank you for that 
too.  Is there anything that you require of me?  Is there any claim 
that I can release or any charge or trouble that I can spare my 
husband in obtaining HIS release by certifying to the exactness of 
your discovery?  I will write anything, here and now, that you will 
dictate.  I am ready to do it."

And she would do it, thinks the lawver, watchful of the firm hand 
with which she takes the pen!

"I will not trouble you, Lady Dedlock.  Pray spare yourself."

"I have long expected this, as you know.  I neither wish to spare 
myself nor to be spared.  You can do nothing worse to me than you 
have done.  Do what remains now."

"Lady Dedlock, there is nothing to be done.  I will take leave to 
say a few words when you have finished."

Their need for watching one another should be over now, but they do 
it all this time, and the stars watch them both through the opened 
window.  Away in the moonlight lie the woodland fields at rest, and 
the wide house is as quiet as the narrow one.  The narrow one!  
Where are the digger and the spade, this peaceful night, destined 
to add the last great secret to the many secrets of the Tulkinghorn 
existence?  Is the man born yet, is the spade wrought yet?  Curious 
questions to consider, more curious perhaps not to consider, under 
the watching stars upon a summer night.

"Of repentance or remorse or any feeling of mine," Lady Dedlock 
presently proceeds, "I say not a word.  If I were not dumb, you 
would be deaf.  Let that go by.  It is not for your ears."

He makes a feint of offering a protest, but she sweeps it away with 
her disdainful hand.

"Of other and very different things I come to speak to you.  My 
jewels are all in their proper places of keeping.  They will be 
found there.  So, my dresses.  So, all the valuables I have.  Some 
ready money I had with me, please to say, but no large amount.  I 
did not wear my own dress, in order that I might avoid observation.  
I went to be henceforward lost.  Make this known.  I leave no other 
charge with you."

"Excuse me, Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, quite unmoved.  "I 
am not sure that I understand you.  You want--"

"To be lost to all here.  I leave Chesney Wold to-night.  I go this 
hour."

Mr. Tulkinghorn shakes his head.  She rises, but he, without moving 
hand from chair-back or from old-fashioned waistcoat and shirt-
frill, shakes his head.

"What?  Not go as I have said?"

"No, Lady Dedlock," he very calmly replies.

"Do you know the relief that my disappearance will be?  Have you 
forgotten the stain and blot upon this place, and where it is, and 
who it is?"

"No, Lady Dedlock, not by any means."

Without deigning to rejoin, she moves to the inner door and has it 
in her hand when he says to her, without himself stirring hand or 
foot or raising his voice, "Lady Dedlock, have the goodness to stop 
and hear me, or before you reach the staircase I shall ring the 
alarm-bell and rouse the house.  And then I must speak out before 
every guest and servant, every man and woman, in it."

He has conquered her.  She falters, trembles, and puts her hand 
confusedly to her head.  Slight tokens these in any one else, but 
when so practised an eye as Mr. Tulkinghorn's sees indecision for a 
moment in such a subject, he thoroughly knows its value.

He promptly says again, "Have the goodness to hear me, Lady 
Dedlock," and motions to the chair from which she has risen.  She 
hesitates, but he motions again, and she sits down.

"The relations between us are of an unfortunate description, Lady 
Dedlock; but as they are not of my making, I will not apologize for 
them.  The position I hold in reference to Sir Leicester is so well 
known to you that I can hardly imagine but that I must long have 
appeared in your eyes the natural person to make this discovery."

"Sir," she returns without looking up from the ground on which her 
eyes are now fixed, "I had better have gone.  It would have been 
far better not to have detained me.  I have no more to say."

"Excuse me, Lady Dedlock, if I add a little more to hear."

"I wish to hear it at the window, then.  I can't breathe where I 
am."

His jealous glance as she walks that way betrays an instant's 
misgiving that she may have it in her thoughts to leap over, and 
dashing against ledge and cornice, strike her life out upon the 
terrace below.  But a moment's observation of her figure as she 
stands in the window without any support, looking out at the stars
--not up-gloomily out at those stars which are low in the heavens, 
reassures him.  By facing round as she has moved, he stands a 
little behind her.

"Lady Dedlock, I have not yet been able to come to a decision 
satisfactory to myself on the course before me.  I am not clear 
what to do or how to act next.  I must request you, in the 
meantime, to keep your secret as you have kept it so long and not 
to wonder that I keep it too."

He pauses, but she makes no reply.

"Pardon me, Lady Dedlock.  This is an important subject.  You are 
honouring me with your attention?"

"I am."

"'Thank you.  I might have known it from what I have seen of your 
strength of character.  I ought not to have asked the question, but 
I have the habit of making sure of my ground, step by step, as I go 
on.  The sole consideration in this unhappy case is Sir Leicester."

"'Then why," she asks in a low voice and without removing her 
gloomy look from those distant stars, "do you detain me in his 
house?"

"Because he IS the consideration.  Lady Dedlock, I have no occasion 
to tell you that Sir Leicester is a very proud man, that his 
reliance upon you is implicit, that the fall of that moon out of 
the sky would not amaze him more than your fall from your high 
position as his wife."

She breathes quickly and heavily, but she stands as unflinchingly 
as ever he has seen her in the midst of her grandest company.

"I declare to you, Lady Dedlock, that with anything short of this 
case that I have, I would as soon have hoped to root up by means of 
my own strength and my own hands the oldest tree on this estate as 
to shake your hold upon Sir Leicester and Sir Leicester's trust and 
confidence in you.  And even now, with this case, I hesitate.  Not 
that he could doubt (that, even with him, is impossible), but that 
nothing can prepare him for the blow."

"Not my flight?" she returned.  "Think of it again."

"Your flight, Lady Dedlock, would spread the whole truth, and a 
hundred times the whole truth, far and wide.  It would be 
impossible to save the family credit for a day.  It is not to be 
thought of."

There is a quiet decision in his reply which admits of no 
remonstrance.

"When I speak of Sir Leicester being the sole consideration, he and 
the family credit are one.  Sir Leicester and the baronetcy, Sir 
Leicester and Chesney Wold, Sir Leicester and his ancestors and his 
patrimony"--Mr. Tulkinghorn very dry here--"are, I need not say to 
you, Lady Dedlock, inseparable."

"Go on!"

"Therefore," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, pursuing his case in his jog-
trot style, "I have much to consider.  This is to be hushed up if 
it can be.  How can it be, if Sir Leicester is driven out of his 
wits or laid upon a death-bed?  If I inflicted this shock upon him 
to-morrow morning, how could the immediate change in him be 
accounted for?  What could have caused it?  What could have divided 
you?  Lady Dedlock, the wall-chalking and the street-crying would 
come on directly, and you are to remember that it would not affect 
you merely (whom I cannot at all consider in this business) but 
your husband, Lady Dedlock, your husband."

He gets plainer as he gets on, but not an atom more emphatic or 
animated.

"There is another point of view," he continues, "in which the case 
presents itself.  Sir Leicester is devoted to you almost to 
infatuation.  He might not be able to overcome that infatuation, 
even knowing what we know.  I am putting an extreme case, but it 
might be so.  If so, it were better that he knew nothing.  Better 
for common sense, better for him, better for me.  I must take all 
this into account, and it combines to render a decision very 
difficult."

She stands looking out at the same stars without a word.  They are 
beginning to pale, and she looks as if their coldness froze her.

"My experience teaches me," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, who has by this 
time got his hands in his pockets and is going on in his business 
consideration of the matter like a machine.  "My experience teaches 
me, Lady Dedlock, that most of the people I know would do far 
better to leave marriage alone.  It is at the bottom of three 
fourths of their troubles.  So I thought when Sir Leicester 
married, and so I always have thought since.  No more about that.  
I must now be guided by circumstances.  In the meanwhile I must beg 
you to keep your own counsel, and I will keep mine."

"I am to drag my present life on, holding its pains at your 
pleasure, day by day?" she asks, still looking at the distant sky.

"Yes, I am afraid so, Lady Dedlock."

"It is necessary, you think, that I should be so tied to the 
stake?"

"I am sure that what I recommend is necessary."

"I am to remain on this gaudy platforna on which my miserable 
deception has been so long acted, and it is to fall beneath me when 
you give the signal?" she said slowly.

"Not without notice, Lady Dedlock.  I shall take no step without 
forewarning you."

She asks all her questions as if she were repeating them from 
memory or calling them over in her sleep.

"We are to meet as usual?"

"Precisely as usual, if you please."

"And I am to hide my guilt, as I have done so many years?"

"As you have done so many years.  I should not have made that 
reference myself, Lady Dedlock, but I may now remind you that your 
secret can be no heavier to you than it was, and is no worse and no 
better than it was.  I know it certainly, but I believe we have 
never wholly trusted each other."

She stands absorbed in the same frozen way for some little time 
before asking, "Is there anything more to be sald to-night?"

"Why," Mr. Tulkinghorn returns methodically as he softly rubs his 
hands, "I should like to be assured of your acquiescence in my 
arrangements, Lady Dedlock."

"You may be assured of it."

"Good.  And I would wish in conclusion to remind you, as a business 
precaution, in case it should be necessary to recall the fact in 
any communication with Sir Leicester, that throughout our interview 
I have expressly stated my sole consideration to be Sir Leicester's 
feelings and honour and the family reputation.  I should have been 
happy to have made Lady Dedlock a prominent consideration, too, if 
the case had admitted of it; but unfortunately it does not."

"I can attest your fidelity, sir."

Both before and after saving it she remains absorbed, but at length 
moves, and turns, unshaken in her natural and acquired presence, 
towards the door.  Mr. Tulkinghorn opens both the doors exactly as 
he would have done yesterday, or as he would have done ten years 
ago, and makes his old-fashioned bow as she passes out.  It is not 
an ordinary look that he receives from the handsome face as it goes 
into the darkness, and it is not an ordinary movement, though a 
very slight one, that acknowledges his courtesy.  But as he 
reflects when he is left alone, the woman has been putting no 
common constraint upon herself.

He would know it all the better if he saw the woman pacing her own 
rooms with her hair wildly thrown from her flung-back face, her 
hands clasped behind her head, her figure twisted as if by pain.  
He would think so all the more if he saw the woman thus hurrying up 
and down for hours, without fatigue, without intermission, followed 
by the faithful step upon the Ghost's Walk.  But he shuts out the 
now chilled air, draws the window-curtain, goes to bed, and falls 
asleep.  And truly when the stars go out and the wan day peeps into 
the turret-chamber, finding him at his oldest, he looks as if the 
digger and the spade were both commissioned and would soon be 
digging.

The same wan day peeps in at Sir Leicester pardoning the repentant 
country in a majestically condescending dream; and at the cousins 
entering on various public employments, principally receipt of 
salary; and at the chaste Volumnia, bestowing a dower of fifty 
thousand pounds upon a hideous old general with a mouth of false 
teeth like a pianoforte too full of keys, long the admiration of 
Bath and the terror of every other commuuity.  Also into rooms high 
in the roof, and into offices in court-yards, and over stables, 
where humbler ambition dreams of bliss, in keepers' lodges, and in 
holy matrimony with Will or Sally.  Up comes the bright sun, 
drawing everything up with it--the Wills and Sallys, the latent 
vapour in the earth, the drooping leaves and flowers, the birds and 
beasts and creeping things, the gardeners to sweep the dewy turf 
and unfold emerald velvet where the roller passes, the smoke of the 
great kitchen fire wreathing itself straight and high into the 
lightsome air.  Lastly, up comes the flag over Mr. Tulkinghorn's 
unconscious head cheerfully proclaiming that Sir Leicester and Lady 
Dedlock are in their happy home and that there is hospitality at 
the place in Lincolnshire.



CHAPTER XLII

In Mr. Tulkinghorn's Chambers


From the verdant undulations and the spreading oaks of the Dedlock 
property, Mr. Tulkinghorn transfers himself to the stale heat and 
dust of London.  His manner of coming and going between the two 
places is one of his impenetrabilities.  He walks into Chesney Wold 
as if it were next door to his chambers and returns to his chambers 
as if he had never been out of Lincoln's Inn Fields.  He neither 
changes his dress before the journey nor talks of it afterwards.  
He melted out of his turret-room this morning, just as now, in the 
late twilight, he melts into his own square.

Like a dingy London bird among the birds at roost in these pleasant 
fields, where the sheep are all made into parchment, the goats into 
wigs, and the pasture into chaff, the lawyer, smoke-dried and 
faded, dwelling among mankind but not consorting with them, aged 
without experience of genial youth, and so long used to make his 
cramped nest in holes and corners of human nature that he has 
forgotten its broader and better range, comes sauntering home.  In 
the oven made by the hot pavements and hot buildings, he has baked 
himself dryer than usual; and he has in his thirsty mind his 
mellowed port-wine half a century old.

The lamplighter is skipping up and down his ladder on Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's side of the Fields when that high-priest of noble 
mysteries arrives at his own dull court-yard.  He ascends the door-
steps and is gliding into the dusky hall when he encounters, on the 
top step, a bowing and propitiatory little man.

"Is that Snagsby?"

"Yes, sir.  I hope you are well, sir.  I was just giving you up, 
sir, and going home."

"Aye?  What is it?  What do you want with me?"

"Well, sir," says Mr. Snagsby, holding his hat at the side of his 
head in his deference towards his best customer, "I was wishful to 
say a word to you, sir."

"Can you say it here?"

"Perfectly, sir."

"Say it then."  The lawyer turns, leans his arms on the iron 
railing at the top of the steps, and looks at the lamplighter 
lighting the court-yard.

"It is relating," says Mr. Snagsby in a mysterious low voice, "it 
is relating--not to put too fine a point upon it--to the foreigner, 
sir!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn eyes him with some surprise.  "What foreigner?"

"The foreign female, sir.  French, if I don't mistake?  I am not 
acquainted with that language myself, but I should judge from her 
manners and appearance that she was French; anyways, certainly 
foreign.  Her that was upstairs, sir, when Mr. Bucket and me had 
the honour of waiting upon you with the sweeping-boy that night."

"Oh! Yes, yes.  Mademoiselle Hortense."

"Indeed, sir?" Mr. Snagsby coughs his cough of submission behind 
his hat.  "I am not acquainted myself with the names of foreigners 
in general, but I have no doubt it WOULD be that."  Mr. Snagsby 
appears to have set out in this reply with some desperate design of 
repeating the name, but on reflection coughs again to excuse 
himself.

"And what can you have to say, Snagsby," demands Mr. Tulkinghorn, 
"about her?"

"Well, sir," returns the stationer, shading his communication with 
his hat, "it falls a little hard upon me.  My domestic happiness is 
very great--at least, it's as great as can be expected, I'm sure--
but my little woman is rather given to jealousy.  Not to put too 
fine a point upon it, she is very much given to jealousy.  And you 
see, a foreign female of that genteel appearance coming into the 
shop, and hovering--I should be the last to make use of a strong 
expression if I could avoid it, but hovering, sir--in the court--
you know it is--now ain't it?  I only put it to yourself, sir.

Mr. Snagsby, having said this in a very plaintive manner, throws in 
a cough of general application to fill up all the blanks.

"Why, what do you mean?" asks Mr. Tulkinghorn.

"Just so, sir," returns Mr. Snagsby; "I was sure you would feel it 
yourself and would excuse the reasonableness of MY feelings when 
coupled with the known excitableness of my little woman.  You see, 
the foreign female--which you mentioned her name just now, with 
quite a native sound I am sure--caught up the word Snagsby that 
night, being uncommon quick, and made inquiry, and got the 
direction and come at dinner-time.  Now Guster, our young woman, is 
timid and has fits, and she, taking fright at the foreigner's 
looks--which are fierce--and at a grinding manner that she has of 
speaking--which is calculated to alarm a weak mind--gave way to it, 
instead of bearing up against it, and tumbled down the kitchen 
stairs out of one into another, such fits as I do sometimes think 
are never gone into, or come out of, in any house but ours.  
Consequently there was by good fortune ample occupation for my 
little woman, and only me to answer the shop.  When she DID say 
that Mr. Tulkinghorn, being always denied to her by his employer 
(which I had no doubt at the time was a foreign mode of viewing a 
clerk), she would do herself the pleasure of continually calling at 
my place until she was let in here.  Since then she has been, as I 
began by saying, hovering, hovering, sir"--Mr. Snagsby repeats the 
word with pathetic emphasis--"in the court.  The effects of which 
movement it is impossible to calculate.  I shouldn't wonder if it 
might have already given rise to the painfullest mistakes even in 
the neighbours' minds, not mentioning (if such a thing was 
possible) my little woman.  Whereas, goodness knows," says Mr. 
Snagsby, shaking his head, "I never had an idea of a foreign 
female, except as being formerly connected with a bunch of brooms 
and a baby, or at the present time with a tambourine and earrings.  
I never had, I do assure you, sir!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn had listened gravely to this complaint and inquires 
when the stationer has finished, "And that's all, is it, Snagsby?"

"Why yes, sir, that's all," says Mr. Snagsby, ending with a cough 
that plainly adds, "and it's enough too--for me."

"I don't know what Mademoiselle Hortense may want or mean, unless 
she is mad," says the lawyer.

"Even if she was, you know, sir," Mr. Snagsby pleads, "it wouldn't 
be a consolation to have some weapon or another in the form of a 
foreign dagger planted in the family."

"No," says the other.  "Well, well!  This shall be stopped.  I am 
sorry you have been inconvenienced.  If she comes again, send her 
here."

Mr. Snagsby, with much bowing and short apologetic coughing, takes 
his leave, lightened in heart.  Mr. Tulkinghorn goes upstairs, 
saying to himself, "These women were created to give trouble the 
whole earth over.  The mistress not being enough to deal with, 
here's the maid now!  But I will be short with THIS jade at least!"

So saying, he unlocks his door, gropes his way into his murky 
rooms, lights his candles, and looks about him.  It is too dark to 
see much of the Allegory over-head there, but that importunate 
Roman, who is for ever toppling out of the clouds and pointing, is 
at his old work pretty distinctly.  Not honouring him with much 
attention, Mr. Tulkinghorn takes a small key from his pocket, 
unlocks a drawer in which there is another key, which unlocks a 
chest in which there is another, and so comes to the cellar-key, 
with which he prepares to descend to the regions of old wine.  He 
is going towards the door with a candle in his hand when a knock 
comes.

"Who's this?  Aye, aye, mistress, it's you, is it?  You appear at a 
good time.  I have just been hearing of you.  Now! What do you 
want?"

He stands the candle on the chimney-piece in the clerk's hall and 
taps his dry cheek with the key as he addresses these words of 
welcome to Mademoiselle Hortense.  That feline personage, with her 
lips tightly shut and her eyes looking out at him sideways, softly 
closes the door before replying.

"I have had great deal of trouble to find you, sir."

"HAVE you!"

"I have been here very often, sir.  It has always been said to me, 
he is not at home, he is engage, he is this and that, he is not for 
you."

"Quite right, and quite true."

"Not true.  Lies!"

At times there is a suddenness in the manner of Mademoiselle 
Hortense so like a bodily spring upon the subject of it that such 
subject involuntarily starts and fails back.  It is Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's case at present, though Mademoiselle Hortense, with 
her eyes almost shut up (but still looking out sideways), is only 
smiling contemptuously and shaking her head.

"Now, mistress," says the lawyer, tapping the key hastily upon the 
chimney-piece.  "If you have anything to say, say it, say it."

"Sir, you have not use me well.  You have been mean and shabby."

"Mean and shabby, eh?" returns the lawyer, rubbing his nose with 
the key.

"Yes.  What is it that I tell you?  You know you have.  You have 
attrapped me--catched me--to give you information; you have asked 
me to show you the dress of mine my Lady must have wore that night, 
you have prayed me to come in it here to meet that boy.  Say! Is it 
not?"  Mademoiselle Hortense makes another spring.

"You are a vixen, a vixen!"  Mr. Tulkinghorn seems to meditate as 
he looks distrustfully at her, then he replies, "Well, wench, well.  
I paid you."

"You paid me!" she repeats with fierce disdain.  "Two sovereign!  I 
have not change them, I re-fuse them, I des-pise them, I throw them 
from me!"  Which she literally does, taking them out of her bosom 
as she speaks and flinging them with such violence on the floor 
that they jerk up again into the light before they roll away into 
corners and slowly settle down there after spinning vehemently.

"Now!" says Mademoiselle Hortense, darkening her large eyes again.  
"You have paid me?  Eh, my God, oh yes!"

Mr. Tulkinghorn rubs his head with the key while she entertains 
herself with a sarcastic laugh.

"You must be rich, my fair friend," he composedly observes, "to 
throw money about in that way!"

"I AM rich," she returns.  "I am very rich in hate.  I hate my 
Lady, of all my heart.  You know that."

"Know it?  How should I know it?"

"Because you have known it perfectly before you prayed me to give 
you that information.  Because you have known perfectly that I was 
en-r-r-r-raged!"  It appears impossible for mademoiselle to roll 
the letter "r" sufficiently in this word, notwithstanding that she 
assists her energetic delivery by clenching both her hands and 
setting all her teeth.

"Oh! I knew that, did I?" says Mr. Tulkinghorn, examining the wards 
of the key.

"Yes, without doubt.  I am not blind.  You have made sure of me 
because you knew that.  You had reason!  I det-est her."  
Mademoiselle folds her arms and throws this last remark at him over 
one of her shoulders.

"Having said this, have you anything else to say, mademoiselle?"

"I am not yet placed.  Place me well.  Find me a good condition!  
If you cannot, or do not choose to do that, employ me to pursue 
her, to chase her, to disgrace and to dishonour her.  I will help 
you well, and with a good will.  It is what YOU do.  Do I not know 
that?"

"You appear to know a good deal," Mr. Tulkinghorn retorts.

"Do I not?  Is it that I am so weak as to believe, like a child, 
that I come here in that dress to rec-cive that boy only to decide 
a little bet, a wager?  Eh, my God, oh yes!"  In this reply, down 
to the word "wager" inclusive, mademoiselle has been ironically 
polite and tender, then as suddenly dashed into the bitterest and 
most defiant scorn, with her black eyes in one and the same moment 
very nearly shut and staringly wide open.

"Now, let us see," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, tapping his chin with the 
key and looking imperturbably at her, "how this matter stands."

"Ah! Let us see," mademoiselle assents, with many angry and tight 
nods of her head.

"You come here to make a remarkably modest demand, which you have 
just stated, and it not being conceded, you will come again."

"And again," says mademoiselle with more tight and angry nods.  
"And yet again.  And yet again.  And many times again.  In effect, 
for ever!"

"And not only here, but you will go to Mr, Snagsby's too, perhaps?  
That visit not succeeding either, you will go again perhaps?"

"And again," repeats mademoiselle, cataleptic with determination.  
"And yet again.  And yet again.  And many times again.  In effect, 
for ever!"

"Very well.  Now, Mademoiselle Hortense, let me recommend you to 
take the candle and pick up that money of yours.  I think you will 
find it behind the clerk's partition in the corner yonder."

She merely throws a laugh over her shoulder and stands her ground 
with folded arms.

"You will not, eh?"

"No, I will not!"

"So much the poorer you; so much the richer I!  Look, mistress, 
this is the key of my wine-cellar.  It is a large key, but the keys 
of prisons are larger.  In this city there are houses of correction 
(where the treadmills are, for women), the gates of which are very 
strong and heavy, and no doubt the keys too.  I am afraid a lady of 
your spirit and activity would find it an inconvenience to have one 
of those keys turned upon her for any length of time.  What do you 
think?"

"I think," mademoiselle replies without any action and in a clear, 
obliging voice, "that you are a miserable wretch."

"Probably," returns Mr. Tulkinghorn, quietly blowing his nose.  
"But I don't ask what you think of myself; I ask what you think of 
the prison."

"Nothing.  What does it matter to me?"

"Why, it matters this much, mistress," says the lawyer, 
deliberately putting away his handkerchief and adjusting his frill; 
"the law is so despotic here that it interferes to prevent any of 
our good English citizens from being troubled, even by a lady's 
visits against his desire.  And on his complaining that he is so 
troubled, it takes hold of the troublesome lady and shuts her up in 
prison under hard discipline.  Turns the key upon her, mistress."  
Illustrating with the cellar-key.

"Truly?" returns mademoiselle in the same pleasant voice.  "That is 
droll!  But--my faith! --still what does it matter to me?"

"My fair friend," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "make another visit here, 
or at Mr. Snagsby's, and you shall learn."

"In that case you will send me to the prison, perhaps?"

"Perhaps."

It would be contradictory for one in mademoiselle's state of 
agreeable jocularity to foam at the mouth, otherwise a tigerish 
expansion thereabouts might look as if a very little more would 
make her do it.

"In a word, mistress," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, "I am sorry to be 
unpolite, but if you ever present yourself uninvited here--or 
there--again, I will give you over to the police.  Their gallantry 
is great, but they carry troublesome people through the streets in 
an ignominious manner, strapped down on a board, my good wench."

"I will prove you," whispers mademoiselle, stretching out her hand, 
"I will try if you dare to do it!"

"And if," pursues the lawyer without minding her, "I place you in 
that good condition of being locked up in jail, it will be some 
time before you find yourself at liberty again."

"I will prove you," repeats mademoiselle in her former whisper.

"And now," proceeds the lawyer, still without minding her, "you had 
better go.  Think twice before you come here again."

"Think you," she answers, "twice two hundred times!"

"You were dismissed by your lady, you know," Mr. Tulkinghorn 
observes, following her out upon the staircase, "as the most 
implacable and unmanageable of women.  Now turn over a new leaf and 
take warning by what I say to you.  For what I say, I mean; and 
what I threaten, I will do, mistress."

She goes down without answering or looking behind her.  When she is 
gone, he goes down too, and returning with his cobweb-covered 
bottle, devotes himself to a leisurely enjoyment of its contents, 
now and then, as he throws his head back in his chair, catching 
sight of the pertinacious Roman pointing from the ceiling.



CHAPTER XLIII

Esther's Narrative


It matters little now how much I thought of my living mother who 
had told me evermore to consider her dead.  I could not venture to 
approach her or to communicate with her in writing, for my sense of 
the peril in which her life was passed was only to be equalled by 
my fears of increasing it.  Knowing that my mere existence as a 
living creature was an unforeseen danger in her way, I could not 
always conquer that terror of myself which had seized me when I 
first knew the secret.  At no time did I dare to utter her name.  I 
felt as if I did not even dare to hear it.  If the conversation 
anywhere, when I was present, took that direction, as it sometimes 
naturally did, I tried not to hear: I mentally counted, repeated 
something that I knew, or went out of the room.  I am conscious now 
that I often did these things when there can have been no danger of 
her being spoken of, but I did them in the dread I had of hearing 
anything that might lead to her betrayal, and to her betrayal 
through me.

It matters little now how often I recalled the tones of my mother's 
voice, wondered whether I should ever hear it again as I so longed 
to do, and thought how strange and desolate it was that it should 
be so new to me.  It matters little that I watched for every public 
mention of my mother's name; that I passed and repassed the door of 
her house in town, loving it, but afraid to look at it; that I once 
sat in the theatre when my mother was there and saw me, and when we 
were so wide asunder before the great company of all degrees that 
any link or confidence between us seemed a dream.  It is all, all 
over.  My lot has been so blest that I can relate little of myself 
which is not a story of goodness and generosity in others.  I may 
well pass that little and go on.

When we were settled at home again, Ada and I had many 
conversations with my guardian of which Richard was the theme.  My 
dear girl was deeply grieved that he should do their kind cousin so 
much wrong, but she was so faithful to Richard that she could not 
bear to blame him even for that.  My guardian was assured of it, 
and never coupled his name with a word of reproof.  "Rick is 
mistaken, my dear," he would say to her.  "Well, well!  We have all 
been mistaken over and over again.  We must trust to you and time 
to set him right."

We knew afterwards what we suspected then, that he did not trust to 
time until he had often tried to open Richard's eyes.  That he had 
written to him, gone to him, talked with him, tried every gentle 
and persuasive art his kindness could devise.  Our poor devoted 
Richard was deaf and blind to all.  If he were wrong, he would make 
amends when the Chancery suit was over.  If he were groping in the 
dark, he could not do better than do his utmost to clear away those 
clouds in which so much was confused and obscured.  Suspicion and 
misunderstanding were the fault of the suit?  Then let him work the 
suit out and come through it to his right mind.  This was his 
unvarying reply.  Jarndyce and Jarndyce had obtained such 
possession of his whole nature that it was impossible to place any 
consideration before him which he did not, with a distorted kind of 
reason, make a new argument in favour of his doing what he did.  
"So that it is even more mischievous," said my guardian once to me, 
"to remonstrate with the poor dear fellow than to leave him alone."

I took one of these opportunities of mentioning my doubts of Mr. 
Skimpole as a good adviser for Richard.

"Adviser!" returned my guardian, laughing, "My dear, who would 
advise with Skimpole?"

"Encourager would perhaps have been a better word," said I.

"Encourager!" returned my guardian again.  "Who could be encouraged 
by Skimpole?"

"Not Richard?" I asked.

"No," he replied.  "Such an unworldly, uncalculating, gossamer 
creature is a relief to him and an amusement.  But as to advising 
or encouraging or occupying a serious station towards anybody or 
anything, it is simply not to be thought of in such a child as 
Skimpole."

"Pray, cousin John," said Ada, who had just joined us and now 
looked over my shoulder, "what made him such a child?"

"What made him such a child?" inquired my guardian, rubbing his 
head, a little at a loss.

"Yes, cousin John."

"Why," he slowly replied, roughening his head more and more, "he is 
all sentiment, and--and susceptibility, and--and sensibility, and--
and imagination.  And these qualities are not regulated in him, 
somehow.  I suppose the people who admired him for them in his 
youth attached too much importance to them and too little to any 
training that would have balanced and adjusted them, and so he 
became what he is.  Hey?" said my guardian, stopping short and 
looking at us hopefully.  "What do you think, you two?"

Ada, glancing at me, said she thought it was a pity he should be an 
expense to Richard.

"So it is, so it is," returned my guardian hurriedly.  "That must 
not be.  We must arrange that.  I must prevent it.  That will never 
do."

And I said I thought it was to be regretted that he had ever 
introduced Richard to Mr. Vholes for a present of five pounds.

"Did he?" said my guardian with a passing shade of vexation on his 
face.  "But there you have the man.  There you have the man!  There 
is nothing mercenary in that with him.  He has no idea of the value 
of money.  He introduces Rick, and then he is good friends with Mr. 
Vholes and borrows five pounds of him.  He means nothing by it and 
thinks nothing of it.  He told you himself, I'll be bound, my 
dear?"

"Oh, yes!" said I.

"Exactly!" cried my guardian, quite triumphant.  "There you have 
the man!  If he had meant any harm by it or was conscious of any 
harm in it, he wouldn't tell it.  He tells it as he does it in mere 
simplicity.  But you shall see him in his own home, and then you'll 
understand him better.  We must pay a visit to Harold Skimpole and 
caution him on these points.  Lord bless you, my dears, an infant, 
an infant!"

In pursuance of this plan, we went into London on an early day and 
presented ourselves at Mr. Skimpole's door.

He lived in a place called the Polygon, in Somers Town, where there 
were at that time a number of poor Spanish refugees walking about 
in cloaks, smoking little paper cigars.  Whether he was a better 
tenant than one might have supposed, in consequence of his friend 
Somebody always paying his rent at last, or whether his inaptitude 
for business rendered it particularly difficult to turn him out, I 
don't know; but he had occupied the same house some years.  It was 
in a state of dilapidation quite equal to our expectation.  Two or 
three of the area railings were gone, the water-butt was broken, 
the knocker was loose, the bell-handle had been pulled off a long 
time to judge from the rusty state of the wire, and dirty 
footprints on the steps were the only signs of its being inhabited.

A slatternly full-blown girl who seemed to be bursting out at the 
rents in her gown and the cracks in her shoes like an over-ripe 
berry answered our knock by opening the door a very little way and 
stopping up the gap with her figure.  As she knew Mr. Jarndyce 
(indeed Ada and I both thought that she evidently associated him 
with the receipt of her wages), she immediately relented and 
allowed us to pass in.  The lock of the door being in a disabled 
condition, she then applied herself to securing it with the chain, 
which was not in good action either, and said would we go upstairs?

We went upstairs to the first floor, still seeing no other 
furniture than the dirty footprints.  Mr. Jarndyce without further 
ceremony entered a room there, and we followed.  It was dingy 
enough and not at all clean, but furnished with an odd kind of 
shabby luxury, with a large footstool, a sofa, and plenty of 
cushions, an easy-chair, and plenty of pillows, a piano, books, 
drawing materials, music, newspapers, and a few sketches and 
pictures.  A broken pane of glass in one of the dirty windows was 
papered and wafered over, but there was a little plate of hothouse 
nectarines on the table, and there was another of grapes, and 
another of sponge-cakes, and there was a bottle of light wine.  Mr. 
Skimpole himself reclined upon the sofa in a dressing-gown, 
drinking some fragrant coffee from an old china cup--it was then 
about mid-day--and looking at a collection of wallflowers in the 
balcony.

He was not in the least disconcerted by our appearance, but rose 
and received us in his usual airy manner.

"Here I am, you see!" he said when we were seated, not without some 
little difficulty, the greater part of the chairs being broken.  
"Here I am!  This is my frugal breakfast.  Some men want legs of 
beef and mutton for breakfast; I don't.  Give me my peach, my cup 
of coffee, and my claret; I am content.  I don't want them for 
themselves, but they remind me of the sun.  There's nothing solar 
about legs of beef and mutton.  Mere animal satisfaction!"

"This is our friend's consulting-room (or would be, if he ever 
prescribed), his sanctum, his studio," said my guardian to us.

"Yes," said Mr. Skimpole, turning his bright face about, "this is 
the bird's cage.  This is where the bird lives and sings.  They 
pluck his feathers now and then and clip his wings, but he sings, 
he sings!"

He handed us the grapes, repeating in his radiant way, "He sings!  
Not an ambitious note, but still he sings."

"These are very fine," said my guardian.  "A present?"

"No," he answered.  "No! Some amiable gardener sells them.  His man 
wanted to know, when he brought them last evening, whether he 
should wait for the money.  'Really, my friend,' I said, 'I think 
not--if your time is of any value to you.'  I suppose it was, for 
he went away."

My guardian looked at us with a smile, as though he asked us, "Is 
it possible to be worldly with this baby?"

"This is a day," said Mr. Skimpole, gaily taking a little claret in 
a tumbler, "that will ever be remembered here.  We shall call it 
Saint Clare and Saint Summerson day.  You must see my daughters.  I 
have a blue-eyed daughter who is my Beauty daughter, I have a 
Sentiment daughter, and I have a Comedy daughter.  You must see 
them all.  They'll be enchanted."

He was going to summon them when my guardian interposed and asked 
him to pause a moment, as he wished to say a word to him first.  
"My dear Jarndyce," he cheerfully replied, going back to his sofa, 
"as many moments as you please.  Time is no object here.  We never 
know what o'clock it is, and we never care.  Not the way to get on 
in life, you'll tell me?  Certainly.  But we DON'T get on in life.  
We don't pretend to do it."

My guardian looked at us again, plainly saying, "You hear him?"

"Now, Harold," he began, "the word I have to say relates to Rick."

"The dearest friend I have!" returned Mr. Skimpole cordially.  "I 
suppose he ought not to be my dearest friend, as he is not on terms 
with you.  But he is, I can't help it; he is full of youthful 
poetry, and I love him.  If you don't like it, I can't help it.  I 
love him."

The engaging frankness with which he made this declaration really 
had a disinterested appearance and captivated my guardian, if not, 
for the moment, Ada too.

"You are welcome to love him as much as you like," returned Mr. 
Jarndyce, "but we must save his pocket, Harold."

"Oh!" said Mr. Skimpole.  "His pocket?  Now you are coming to what 
I don't understand."  Taking a little more claret and dipping one 
of the cakes in it, he shook his head and smiled at Ada and me with 
an ingenuous foreboding that he never could be made to understand.

"If you go with him here or there," said my guardian plainly, "you 
must not let him pay for both."

"My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, his genial face 
irradiated by the comicality of this idea, "what am I to do?  If he 
takes me anywhere, I must go.  And how can I pay?  I never have any 
money.  If I had any money, I don't know anything about it.  
Suppose I say to a man, how much?  Suppose the man says to me seven 
and sixpence?  I know nothing about seven and sixpence.  It is 
impossible for me to pursue the subject with any consideration for 
the man.  I don't go about asking busy people what seven and 
sixpence is in Moorish--which I don't understand.  Why should I go 
about asking them what seven and sixpence is in Money--which I 
don't understand?"

"Well," said my guardian, by no means displeased with this artless 
reply, "if you come to any kind of journeying with Rick, you must 
borrow the money of me (never breathing the least allusion to that 
circumstance), and leave the calculation to him."

"My dear Jarndyce," returned Mr. Skimpole, "I will do anything to 
give you pleasure, but it seems an idle form--a superstition.  
Besides, I give you my word, Miss Clare and my dear Miss Summerson, 
I thought Mr. Carstone was immensely rich.  I thought he had only 
to make over something, or to sign a bond, or a draft, or a cheque, 
or a bill, or to put something on a file somewhere, to bring down a 
shower of money."

"Indeed it is not so, sir," said Ada.  "He is poor."

"No, really?" returned Mr. Skimpole with his bright smile.  "You 
surprise me.

"And not being the richer for trusting in a rotten reed," said my 
guardian, laying his hand emphatically on the sleeve of Mr. 
Skimpole's dressing-gown, "be you very careful not to encourage him 
in that reliance, Harold."

"My dear good friend," returned Mr. Skimpole, "and my dear Miss 
Siunmerson, and my dear Miss Clare, how can I do that?  It's 
business, and I don't know business.  It is he who encourages me.  
He emerges from great feats of business, presents the brightest 
prospects before me as their result, and calls upon me to admire 
them.  I do admire them--as bright prospects.  But I know no more 
about them, and I tell him so."

The helpless kind of candour with which he presented this before 
us, the light-hearted manner in which he was amused by his 
innocence, the fantastic way in which he took himself under his own 
protection and argued about that curious person, combined with the 
delightful ease of everything he said exactly to make out my 
guardian's case.  The more I saw of him, the more unlikely it 
seemed to me, when he was present, that he could design, conceal, 
or influence anything; and yet the less likely that appeared when 
he was not present, and the less agreeable it was to think of his 
having anything to do with any one for whom I cared.

Hearing that his examination (as he called it) was now over, Mr. 
Skimpole left the room with a radiant face to fetch his daughters 
(his sons had run away at various times), leaving my guardian quite 
delighted by the manner in which he had vindicated his childish 
character.  He soon came back, bringing with him the three young 
ladies and Mrs. Skimpole, who had once been a beauty but was now a 
delicate high-nosed invalid suffering under a complication of 
disorders.

"This," said Mr. Skimpole, "is my Beauty daughter, Arethusa--plays 
and sings odds and ends like her father.  This is my Sentiment 
daughter, Laura--plays a little but don't sing.  This is my Comedy 
daughter, Kitty--sings a little but don't play.  We all draw a 
little and compose a little, and none of us have any idea of time 
or money."

Mrs. Skimpole sighed, I thought, as if she would have been glad to 
strike out this item in the family attainments.  I also thought 
that she rather impressed her sigh upon my guardian and that she 
took every opportunity of throwing in another.

"It is pleasant," said Mr. Skimpole, turning his sprightly eyes 
from one to the other of us, "and it is whimsically interesting to 
trace peculiarities in families.  In this family we are all 
children, and I am the youngest."

The daughters, who appeared to be very fond of him, were amused by 
this droll fact, particularly the Comedy daughter.

"My dears, it is true," said Mr. Skimpole, "is it not?  So it is, 
and so it must be, because like the dogs in the hymn, 'it is our 
nature to.'  Now, here is Miss Summerson with a fine administrative 
capacity and a knowledge of details perfectly surprising.  It will 
sound very strange in Miss Summerson's ears, I dare say, that we 
know nothing about chops in this house.  But we don't, not the 
least.  We can't cook anything whatever.  A needle and thread we 
don't know how to use.  We admire the people who possess the 
practical wisdom we want, but we don't quarrel with them.  Then why 
should they quarrel with us?  Live and let live, we say to them.  
Live upon your practical wisdom, and let us live upon you!"

He laughed, but as usual seemed quite candid and really to mean 
what he said.

"We have sympathy, my roses," said Mr. Skimpole, "sympathy for 
everything.  Have we not?"

"Oh, yes, papa!" cried the three daughters.

"In fact, that is our family department," said Mr. Skimpole, "in 
this hurly-burly of life.  We are capable of looking on and of 
being interested, and we DO look on, and we ARE interested.  What 
more can we do?  Here is my Beauty daughter, married these three 
years.  Now I dare say her marrying another child, and having two 
more, was all wrong in point of political economy, but it was very 
agreeable.  We had our little festivities on those occasions and 
exchanged social ideas.  She brought her young husband home one 
day, and they and their young fledglings have their nest upstairs.  
I dare say at some time or other Sentiment and Comedy will bring 
THEIR husbands home and have THEIR nests upstairs too.  So we get 
on, we don't know how, but somehow."

She looked very young indeed to be the mother of two children, and 
I could not help pitying both her and them.  It was evident that 
the three daughters had grown up as they could and had had just as 
little haphazard instruction as qualified them to be their father's 
playthings in his idlest hours.  His pictorial tastes were 
consulted, I observed, in their respective styles of wearing their 
hair, the Beauty daughter being in the classic manner, the 
Sentiment daughter luxuriant and flowing, and the Comedy daughter 
in the arch style, with a good deal of sprightly forehead, and 
vivacious little curls dotted about the corners of her eyes.  They 
were dressed to correspond, though in a most untidy and negligent 
way.

Ada and I conversed with these young ladies and found them 
wonderfully like their father.  In the meanwhile Mr. Jarndyce (who 
had been rubbing his head to a great extent, and hinted at a change 
in the wind) talked with Mrs. Skimpole in a corner, where we could 
not help hearing the chink of money.  Mr. Skimpole had previously 
volunteered to go home with us and had withdrawn to dress himself 
for the purpose.

"My roses," he said when he came back, "take care of mama.  She is 
poorly to-day.  By going home with Mr. Jarndyce for a day or two, I 
shall hear the larks sing and preserve my amiability.  It has been 
tried, you know, and would be tried again if I remained at home."

"That bad man!" said the Comedy daughter.

"At the very time when he knew papa was lying ill by his 
wallflowers, looking at the blue sky," Laura complained.

"And when the smell of hay was in the air!" said Arethusa.

"It showed a want of poetry in the man," Mr. Skimpole assented, but 
with perfect good humour.  "It was coarse.  There was an absence of 
the finer touches of humanity in it!  My daughters have taken great 
offence," he explained to us, "at an honest man--"

"Not honest, papa.  Impossible!" they all three protested.

"At a rough kind of fellow--a sort of human hedgehog rolled up," 
said Mr. Skimpole, "who is a baker in this neighbourhood and from 
whom we borrowed a couple of armchairs.  We wanted a couple of arm-
chairs, and we hadn't got them, and therefore of course we looked 
to a man who HAD got them, to lend them.  Well! This morose person 
lent them, and we wore them out.  When they were worn out, he 
wanted them back.  He had them back.  He was contented, you will 
say.  Not at all.  He objected to their being worn.  I reasoned 
with him, and pointed out his mistake.  I said, 'Can you, at your 
time of life, be so headstrong, my friend, as to persist that an 
arm-chair is a thing to put upon a shelf and look at?  That it is 
an object to contemplate, to survey from a distance, to consider 
from a point of sight?  Don't you KNOW that these arm-chairs were 
borrowed to be sat upon?'  He was unreasonable and unpersuadable 
and used intemperate language.  Being as patient as I am at this 
minute, I addressed another appeal to him.  I said, 'Now, my good 
man, however our business capacities may vary, we are all children 
of one great mother, Nature.  On this blooming summer morning here 
you see me' (I was on the sofa) 'with flowers before me, fruit upon 
the table, the cloudless sky above me, the air full of fragrance, 
contemplating Nature.  I entreat you, by our common brotherhood, 
not to interpose between me and a subject so sublime, the absurd 
figure of an angry baker!'  But he did," said Mr. Skimpole, raising 
his laughing eyes in playful astonishinent; "he did interpose that 
ridiculous figure, and he does, and he will again.  And therefore I 
am very glad to get out of his way and to go home with my friend 
Jarndyce."

It seemed to escape his consideration that Mrs. Skimpole and the 
daughters remained behind to encounter the baker, but this was so 
old a story to all of them that it had become a matter of course.  
He took leave of his family with a tenderness as airy and graceful 
as any other aspect in which he showed himself and rode away with 
us in perfect harmony of mind.  We had an opportunity of seeing 
through some open doors, as we went downstairs, that his own 
apartment was a palace to the rest of the house.

I could have no anticipation, and I had none, that something very 
startling to me at the moment, and ever memorable to me in what 
ensued from it, was to happen before this day was out.  Our guest 
was in such spirits on the way home that I could do nothing but 
listen to him and wonder at him; nor was I alone in this, for Ada 
yielded to the same fascination.  As to my guardian, the wind, 
which had threatened to become fixed in the east when we left 
Somers Town, veered completely round before we were a couple of 
miles from it.

Whether of questionable childishness or not in any other matters, 
Mr. Skimpole had a child's enjoyment of change and bright weather.  
In no way wearied by his sallies on the road, he was in the 
drawing-room before any of us; and I heard him at the piano while I 
was yet looking after my housekeeping, singing refrains of 
barcaroles and drinking songs, Italian and German, by the score.

We were all assembled shortly before dinner, and he was still at 
the piano idly picking out in his luxurious way little strains of 
music, and talking between whiles of finishing some sketches of the 
ruined old Verulam wall to-morrow, which he had begun a year or two 
ago and had got tired of, when a card was brought in and my 
guardian read aloud in a surprised voice, "Sir Leicester Dedlock!"

The visitor was in the room while it was yet turning round with me 
and before I had the power to stir.  If I had had it, I should have 
hurried away.  I had not even the presence of mind, in my 
giddiness, to retire to Ada in the window, or to see the window, or 
to know where it was.  I heard my name and found that my guardian 
was presenting me before I could move to a chair.

"Pray be seated, Sir Leicester."

"Mr. Jarndyce," said Sir Leicester in reply as he bowed and seated 
himself, "I do myself the honour of calling here--"

"You do ME the honour, Sir Leicester."

"Thank you--of calling here on my road from Lincolnshire to express 
my regret that any cause of complaint, however strong, that I may 
have against a gentleman who--who is known to you and has been your 
host, and to whom therefore I will make no farther reference, 
should have prevented you, still more ladies under your escort and 
charge, from seeing whatever little there may be to gratify a 
polite and refined taste at my house, Chesney Wold."

"You are exceedingly obliging, Sir Leicester, and on behalf of 
those ladies (who are present) and for myself, I thank you very 
much."

"It is possible, Mr. Jarndyce, that the gentleman to whom, for the 
reasons I have mentioned, I refrain from making further allusion--
it is possible, Mr. Jarndyce, that that gentleman may have done me 
the honour so far to misapprehend my character as to induce you to 
believe that you would not have been received by my local 
establishment in Lincolnshire with that urbanity, that courtesy, 
which its members are instructed to show to all ladies and 
gentlemen who present themselves at that house.  I merely beg to 
observe, sir, that the fact is the reverse."

My guardian delicately dismissed this remark without making any 
verbal answer.

"It has given me pain, Mr. Jarndyce," Sir Leicester weightily 
proceeded.  "I assure you, sir, it has given--me--pain--to learn 
from the housekeeper at Chesney Wold that a gentleman who was in 
your company in that part of the county, and who would appear to 
possess a cultivated taste for the fine arts, was likewise deterred 
by some such cause from examining the family pictures with that 
leisure, that attention, that care, which he might have desired to 
bestow upon them and which some of them might possibly have 
repaid."  Here he produced a card and read, with much gravity and a 
little trouble, through his eye-glass, "Mr. Hirrold--Herald--
Harold--Skampling--Skumpling--I beg your pardon--Skimpole."

"This is Mr. Harold Skimpole," said my guardian, evidently 
surprised.

"Oh!" exclaimed Sir Leicester, "I am happy to meet Mr. Skimpole and 
to have the opportunity of tendering my personal regrets.  I hope, 
sir, that when you again find yourself in my part of the county, 
you will be under no similar sense of restraint."

"You are very obliging, Sir Leicester Dedlock.  So encouraged, I 
shall certainly give myself the pleasure and advantage of another 
visit to your beautiful house.  The owners of such places as 
Chesney Wold," said Mr. Skimpole with his usual happy and easy air, 
"are public benefactors.  They are good enough to maintain a number 
of delightful objects for the admiration and pleasure of us poor 
men; and not to reap all the admiration and pleasure that they 
yield is to be ungrateful to our benefactors."

Sir Leicester seemed to approve of this sentiment highly.  "An 
artist, sir?"

"No," returned Mr. Skimpole.  "A perfectly idle man.  A mere 
amateur."

Sir Leicester seemed to approve of this even more.  He hoped he 
might have the good fortune to be at Chesney Wold when Mr. Skimpole 
next came down into Lincolnshire.  Mr. Skimpole professed himself 
much flattered and honoured.

"Mr. Skimpole mentioned," pursued Sir Leicester, addressing himself 
again to my guardian, "mentioned to the house-keeper, who, as he 
may have observed, is an old and attached retainer of the family--"

("That is, when I walked through the house the other day, on the 
occasion of my going down to visit Miss Summerson and Miss Clare," 
Mr. Skimpole airily explained to us.)

"--That the friend with whom he had formerly been staying there was 
Mr. Jarndyce."  Sir Leicester bowed to the bearer of that name.  
"And hence I became aware of the circumstance for which I have 
professed my regret.  That this should have occurred to any 
gentleman, Mr. Jarndyce, but especially a gentleman formerly known 
to Lady Dedlock, and indeed claiming some distant connexion with 
her, and for whom (as I learn from my Lady herself) she entertains 
a high respect, does, I assure you, give--me--pain."

"Pray say no more about it, Sir Leicester," returned my guardian.  
"I am very sensible, as I am sure we all are, of your 
consideration.  Indeed the mistake was mine, and I ought to 
apologize for it."

I had not once looked up.  I had not seen the visitor and had not 
even appeared to myself to hear the conversation.  It surprises me 
to find that I can recall it, for it seemed to make no impression 
on me as it passed.  I heard them speaking, but my mind was so 
confused and my instinctive avoidance of this gentleman made his 
presence so distressing to me that I thought I understood nothing, 
through the rushing in my head and the beating of my heart.

"I mentioned the subject to Lady Dedlock," said Sir Leicester, 
rising, "and my Lady informed me that she had had the pleasure of 
exchanging a few words with Mr. Jarndyce and his wards on the 
occasion of an accidental meeting during their sojourn in the 
vicinity.  Permit me, Mr. Jarndyce, to repeat to yourself, and to 
these ladies, the assurance I have already tendered to Mr. 
Skimpole.  Circumstances undoubtedly prevent my saying that it 
would afford me any gratification to hear that Mr. Boythorn had 
favoured my house with his presence, but those circumstances are 
confined to that gentleman himself and do not extend beyond him."

"You know my old opinion of him," said Mr. Skimpole, lightly 
appealing to us.  "An amiable bull who is detenined to make every 
colour scarlet!"

Sir Leicester Dedlock coughed as if he could not possibly hear 
another word in reference to such an individual and took his leave 
with great ceremony and politeness.  I got to my own room with all 
possible speed and remained there until I had recovered my self-
command.  It had been very much disturbed, but I was thankful to 
find when I went downstairs again that they only rallied me for 
having been shy and mute before the great Lincolnshire baronet.

By that time I had made up my mind that the period was come when I 
must tell my guardian what I knew.  The possibility of my being 
brought into contact with my mother, of my being taken to her 
house, even of Mr. Skimpole's, however distantly associated with 
me, receiving kindnesses and obligations from her husband, was so 
painful that I felt I could no longer guide myself without his 
assistance.

When we had retired for the night, and Ada and I had had our usual 
talk in our pretty room, I went out at my door again and sought my 
guardian among his books.  I knew he always read at that hour, and 
as I drew near I saw the light shining out into the passage from 
his reading-lamp.

"May I come in, guardian?"

"Surely, little woman.  What's the matter?"

"Nothing is the matter.  I thought I would like to take this quiet 
time of saying a word to you about myself."

He put a chair for me, shut his book, and put it by, and turned his 
kind attentive face towards me.  I could not help observing that it 
wore that curious expression I had observed in it once before--on 
that night when he had said that he was in no trouble which I could 
readily understand.

"What concerns you, my dear Esther," said he, "concerns us all.  
You cannot be more ready to speak than I am to hear."

"I know that, guardian.  But I have such need of your advice and 
support.  Oh! You don't know how much need I have to-night."

He looked unprepared for my being so earnest, and even a little 
alarmed.

"Or how anxious I have been to speak to you," said I, "ever since 
the visitor was here to-day."

"The visitor, my dear!  Sir Leicester Dedlock?"

"Yes."

He folded his arms and sat looking at me with an air of the 
profoundest astonishment, awaiting what I should say next.  I did 
not know how to prepare him.

"Why, Esther," said he, breaking into a smile, "our visitor and you 
are the two last persons on earth I should have thought of 
connecting together!"

"Oh, yes, guardian, I know it.  And I too, but a little while ago."

The smile passed from his face, and he became graver than before.  
He crossed to the door to see that it was shut (but I had seen to 
that) and resumed his seat before me.

"Guardian," said I, "do you remensher, when we were overtaken by 
the thunder-storm, Lady Dedlock's speaking to you of her sister?"

"Of course.  Of course I do."

"And reminding you that she and her sister had differed, had gone 
their several ways?"

"Of course."

"Why did they separate, guardian?"

His face quite altered as he looked at me.  "My child, what 
questions are these!  I never knew.  No one but themselves ever did 
know, I believe.  Who could tell what the secrets of those two 
handsome and proud women were!  You have seen Lady Dedlock.  If you 
had ever seen her sister, you would know her to have been as 
resolute and haughty as she."

"Oh, guardian, I have seen her many and many a time!"

"Seen her?"

He paused a little, biting his lip.  "Then, Esther, when you spoke 
to me long ago of Boythorn, and when I told you that he was all but 
married once, and that the lady did not die, but died to him, and 
that that time had had its influence on his later life--did you 
know it all, and know who the lady was?"

"No, guardian," I returned, fearful of the light that dimly broke 
upon me.  "Nor do I know yet."

"Lady Dedlock's sister."

"And why," I could scarcely ask him, "why, guardian, pray tell me 
why were THEY parted?"

"It was her act, and she kept its motives in her inflexible heart.  
He afterwards did conjecture (but it was mere conjecture) that some 
injury which her haughty spirit had received in her cause of 
quarrel with her sister had wounded her beyond all reason, but she 
wrote him that from the date of that letter she died to him--as in 
literal truth she did--and that the resolution was exacted from her 
by her knowledge of his proud temper and his strained sense of 
honour, which were both her nature too.  In consideration for those 
master points in him, and even in consideration for them in 
herself, she made the sacrifice, she said, and would live in it and 
die in it.  She did both, I fear; certainly he never saw her, never 
heard of her from that hour.  Nor did any one."

"Oh, guardian, what have I done!" I cried, giving way to my grief; 
"what sorrow have I innocently caused!"

"You caused, Esther?"

"Yes, guardian.  Innocently, but most surely.  That secluded sister 
is my first remembrance."

"No, no!" he cried, starting.

"Yes, guardian, yes!  And HER sister is my mother!"

I would have told him all my mother's letter, but he would not hear 
it then.  He spoke so tenderly and wisely to me, and he put so 
plainly before me all I had myself imperfectly thought and hoped in 
my better state of mind, that, penetrated as I had been with 
fervent gratitude towards him through so many years, I believed I 
had never loved him so dearly, never thanked him in my heart so 
fully, as I did that night.  And when he had taken me to my room 
and kissed me at the door, and when at last I lay down to sleep, my 
thought was how could I ever be busy enough, how could I ever be 
good enough, how in my little way could I ever hope to be forgetful 
enough of myself, devoted enough to him, and useful enough to 
others, to show him how I blessed and honoured him.



CHAPTER XLIV

The Letter and the Answer


My guardian called me into his room next morning, and then I told 
him what had been left untold on the previous night.  There was 
nothing to be done, he said, but to keep the secret and to avoid 
another such encounter as that of yesterday.  He understood my 
feeling and entirely shared it.  He charged himself even with 
restraining Mr. Skimpole from improving his opportunity.  One 
person whom he need not name to me, it was not now possible for him 
to advise or help.  He wished it were, but no such thing could be.  
If her mistrust of the lawyer whom she had mentioned were well-
founded, which he scarcely doubted, he dreaded discovery.  He knew 
something of him, both by sight and by reputation, and it was 
certain that he was a dangerous man.  Whatever happened, he 
repeatedly impressed upon me with anxious affection and kindness, I 
was as innocent of as himself and as unable to influence.

"Nor do I understand," said he, "that any doubts tend towards you, 
my dear.  Much suspicion may exist without that connexion."

"With the lawyer," I returned.  "But two other persons have come 
into my mind since I have been anxious.  Then I told him all about 
Mr. Guppy, who I feared might have had his vague surmises when I 
little understood his meaning, but in whose silence after our last 
interview I expressed perfect confidence.

"Well," said my guardian.  "Then we may dismiss him for the 
present.  Who is the other?"

I called to his recollection the French maid and the eager offer of 
herself she had made to me.

"Ha!" he returned thoughtfully.  "That is a more alarming person 
than the clerk.  But after all, my dear, it was but seeking for a 
new service.  She had seen you and Ada a little while before, and 
it was natural that you should come into her head.  She merely 
proposed herself for your maid, you know.  She did nothing more."

"Her manner was strange," said I.

"Yes, and her manner was strange when she took her shoes off and 
showed that cool relish for a walk that might have ended in her 
death-bed," said my guardian.  "It would be useless self-distress 
and torment to reckon up such chances and possibilities.  There are 
very few harmless circumstances that would not seem full of 
perilous meaning, so considered.  Be hopeful, little woman.  You 
can be nothing better than yourself; be that, through this 
knowledge, as you were before you had it.  It is the best you can 
do for everybody's sake.  I, sharing the secret with you--"

"And lightening it, guardian, so much," said I.

"--will be attentive to what passes in that family, so far as I can 
observe it from my distance.  And if the time should come when I 
can stretch out a hand to render the least service to one whom it 
is better not to name even here, I will not fail to do it for her 
dear daughter's sake."

I thanked him with my whole heart.  What could I ever do but thank 
him!  I was going out at the door when he asked me to stay a 
moment.  Quickly turning round, I saw that same expression on his 
face again; and all at once, I don't know how, it flashed upon me 
as a new and far-off possibility that I understood it.

"My dear Esther," said my guardian, "I have long had something in 
my thoughts that I have wished to say to you."

"Indeed?"

"I have had some difficulty in approaching it, and I still have.  I 
should wish it to be so deliberately said, and so deliberately 
considered.  Would you object to my writing it?"

"Dear guardian, how could I object to your writing anything for ME 
to read?"

"Then see, my love," said he with his cheery smile, "am I at this 
moment quite as plain and easy--do I seem as open, as honest and 
old-fashioned--as I am at any time?"

I answered in all earnestness, "Quite."  With the strictest truth, 
for his momentary hesitation was gone (it had not lasted a minute), 
and his fine, sensible, cordial, sterling manner was restored.

"Do I look as if I suppressed anything, meant anything but what I 
said, had any reservation at all, no matter what?" said he with his 
bright clear eyes on mine.

I answered, most assuredly he did not.

"Can you fully trust me, and thoroughly rely on what I profess, 
Esther?"

"Most thoroughly," said I with my whole heart.

"My dear girl," returned my guardian, "give me your hand."

He took it in his, holding me lightly with his arm, and looking 
down into my face with the same genuine freshness and faithfulness 
of manner--the old protecting manner which had made that house my 
home in a moment--said, "You have wrought changes in me, little 
woman, since the winter day in the stage-coach.  First and last you 
have done me a world of good since that time."

"Ah, guardian, what have you done for me since that time!"

"But," said he, "that is not to be remembered now."

"It never can be forgotten."

"Yes, Esther," said he with a gentle seriousness, "it is to be 
forgotten now, to be forgotten for a while.  You are only to 
remember now that nothing can change me as you know me.  Can you 
feel quite assured of that, my dear?"

"I can, and I do," I said.

"That's much," he answered.  "That's everything.  But I must not 
take that at a word.  I will not write this something in my 
thoughts until you have quite resolved within yourself that nothing 
can change me as you know me.  If you doubt that in the least 
degree, I will never write it.  If you are sure of that, on good 
consideration, send Charley to me this night week--'for the 
letter.'  But if you are not quite certain, never send.  Mind, I 
trust to your truth, in this thing as in everything.  If you are 
not quite certain on that one point, never send!"

"Guardian," said I, "I am already certain, I can no more be changed 
in that conviction than you can be changed towards me.  I shall 
send Charley for the letter."

He shook my hand and said no more.  Nor was any more said in 
reference to this conversation, either by him or me, through the 
whole week.  When the appointed night came, I said to Charley as 
soon as I was alone, "Go and knock at Mr. Jarndyce's door, Charley, 
and say you have come from me--'for the letter.'"  Charley went up 
the stairs, and down the stairs, and along the passages--the zig-
zag way about the old-fashioned house seemed very long in my 
listening ears that night--and so came back, along the passages, 
and down the stairs, and up the stairs, and brought the letter.  
"Lay it on the table, Charley," said I.  So Charley laid it on the 
table and went to bed, and I sat looking at it without taking it 
up, thinking of many things.

I began with my overshadowed childhood, and passed through those 
timid days to the heavy time when my aunt lay dead, with her 
resolute face so cold and set, and when I was more solitary with 
Mrs. Rachael than if I had had no one in the world to speak to or 
to look at.  I passed to the altered days when I was so blest as to 
find friends in all around me, and to be beloved.  I came to the 
time when I first saw my dear girl and was received into that 
sisterly affection which was the grace and beauty of my life.  I 
recalled the first bright gleam of welcome which had shone out of 
those very windows upon our expectant faces on that cold bright 
night, and which had never paled.  I lived my happy life there over 
again, I went through my illness and recovery, I thought of myself 
so altered and of those around me so unchanged; and all this 
happiness shone like a light from one central figure, represented 
before me by the letter on the table.

I opened it and read it.  It was so impressive in its love for me, 
and in the unselfish caution it gave me, and the consideration it 
showed for me in every word, that my eyes were too often blinded to 
read much at a time.  But I read it through three times before I 
laid it down.  I had thought beforehand that I knew its purport, 
and I did.  It asked me, would I be the mistress of Bleak House.

It was not a love letter, though it expressed so much love, but was 
written just as he would at any time have spoken to me.  I saw his 
face, and heard his voice, and felt the influence of his kind 
protecting manner in every line.  It addressed me as if our places 
were reversed, as if all the good deeds had been mine and all the 
feelings they had awakened his.  It dwelt on my being young, and he 
past the prime of life; on his having attained a ripe age, while I 
was a child; on his writing to me with a silvered head, and knowing 
all this so well as to set it in full before me for mature 
deliberation.  It told me that I would gain nothing by such a 
marriage and lose nothing by rejecting it, for no new relation 
could enhance the tenderness in which he held me, and whatever my 
decision was, he was certain it would be right.  But he had 
considered this step anew since our late confidence and had decided 
on taking it, if it only served to show me through one poor 
instance that the whole world would readily unite to falsify the 
stern prediction of my childhood.  I was the last to know what 
happiness I could bestow upon him, but of that he said no more, for 
I was always to remember that I owed him nothing and that he was my 
debtor, and for very much.  He had often thought of our future, and 
foreseeing that the time must come, and fearing that it might come 
soon, when Ada (now very nearly of age) would leave us, and when 
our present mode of life must be broken up, had become accustomed 
to reflect on this proposal.  Thus he made it.  If I felt that I 
could ever give him the best right he could have to be my 
protector, and if I felt that I could happily and justly become the 
dear companion of his remaining life, superior to all lighter 
chances and changes than death, even then he could not have me bind 
myself irrevocably while this letter was yet so new to me, but even 
then I must have ample time for reconsideration.  In that case, or 
in the opposite case, let him be unchanged in his old relation, in 
his old manner, in the old name by which I called him.  And as to 
his bright Dame Durden and little housekeeper, she would ever be 
the same, he knew.

This was the substance of the letter, written throughout with a 
justice and a dignity as if he were indeed my responsible guardian 
impartially representing the proposal of a friend against whom in 
his integrity he stated the full case.

But he did not hint to me that when I had been better looking he 
had had this same proceeding in his thoughts and had refrained from 
it.  That when my old face was gone from me, and I had no 
attractions, he could love me just as well as in my fairer days.  
That the discovery of my birth gave him no shock.  That his 
generosity rose above my disfigurement and my inheritance of shame.  
That the more I stood in need of such fidelity, the more firmly I 
might trust in him to the last.

But I knew it, I knew it well now.  It came upon me as the close of 
the benignant history I had been pursuing, and I felt that I had 
but one thing to do.  To devote my life to his happiness was to 
thank him poorly, and what had I wished for the other night but 
some new means of thanking him?

Still I cried very much, not only in the fullness of my heart after 
reading the letter, not only in the strangeness of the prospect--
for it was strange though I had expected the contents--but as if 
something for which there was no name or distinct idea were 
indefinitely lost to me.  I was very happy, very thankful, very 
hopeful; but I cried very much.

By and by I went to my old glass.  My eyes were red and swollen, 
and I said, "Oh, Esther, Esther, can that be you!"  I am afraid the 
face in the glass was going to cry again at this reproach, but I 
held up my finger at it, and it stopped.

"That is more like the composed look you comforted me with, my 
dear, when you showed me such a change!" said I, beginning to let 
down my hair.  "When you are mistress of Bleak House, you are to be 
as cheerful as a bird.  In fact, you are always to be cheerful; so 
let us begin for once and for all."

I went on with my hair now, quite comfortably.  I sobbed a little 
still, but that was because I had been crying, not because I was 
crying then.

"And so Esther, my dear, you are happy for life.  Happy with your 
best friends, happy in your old home, happy in the power of doing a 
great deal of good, and happy in the undeserved love of the best of 
men."

I thought, all at once, if my guardian had married some one else, 
how should I have felt, and what should I have done!  That would 
have been a change indeed.  It presented my life in such a new and 
blank form that I rang my housekeeping keys and gave them a kiss 
before I laid them down in their basket again.

Then I went on to think, as I dressed my hair before the glass, how 
often had I considered within myself that the deep traces of my 
illness and the circumstances of my birth were only new reasons why 
I should be busy, busy, busy--useful, amiable, serviceable, in all 
honest, unpretending ways.  This was a good time, to be sure, to 
sit down morbidly and cry!  As to its seeming at all strange to me 
at first (if that were any excuse for crying, which it was not) 
that I was one day to be the mistress of Bleak House, why should it 
seem strange?  Other people had thought of such things, if I had 
not.  "Don't you remember, my plain dear," I asked myself, looking 
at the glass, "what Mrs. Woodcourt said before those scars were 
there about your marrying--"

Perhaps the name brought them to my remembrance.  The dried remains 
of the flowers.  It would be better not to keep them now.  They had 
only been preserved in memory of something wholly past and gone, 
but it would be better not to keep them now.

They were in a book, and it happened to be in the next room--our 
sitting-room, dividing Ada's chamber from mine.  I took a candle 
and went softly in to fetch it from its shelf.  After I had it in 
my hand, I saw my beautiful darling, through the open door, lying 
asleep, and I stole in to kiss her.

It was weak in me, I know, and I could have no reason for crying; 
but I dropped a tear upon her dear face, and another, and another.  
Weaker than that, I took the withered flowers out and put them for 
a moment to her lips.  I thought about her love for Richard, 
though, indeed, the flowers had nothing to do with that.  Then I 
took them into my own room and burned them at the candle, and they 
were dust in an instant.

On entering the breakfast-room next morning, I found my guardian 
just as usual, quite as frank, as open, and free.  There being not 
the least constraint in his manner, there was none (or I think 
there was none) in mine.  I was with him several times in the 
course of the morning, in and out, when there was no one there, and 
I thought it not unlikely that he might speak to me about the 
letter, but he did not say a word.

So, on the next morning, and the next, and for at least a week, 
over which time Mr. Skimpole prolonged his stay.  I expected, every 
day, that my guardian might speak to me about the letter, but he 
never did.

I thought then, growing uneasy, that I ought to write an answer.  I 
tried over and over again in my own room at night, but I could not 
write an answer that at all began like a good answer, so I thought 
each night I would wait one more day.  And I waited seven more 
days, and he never said a word.

At last, Mr. Skimpole having departed, we three were one afternoon 
going out for a ride; and I, being dressed before Ada and going 
down, came upon my guardian, with his back towards me, standing at 
the drawing-room window looking out.

He turned on my coming in and said, smiling, "Aye, it's you, little 
woman, is it?" and looked out again.

I had made up my mind to speak to him now.  In short, I had come 
down on purpose.  "Guardian," I said, rather hesitating and 
trembling, "when would you like to have the answer to the letter 
Charley came for?"

"When it's ready, my dear," he replied.

"I think it is ready," said I.

"Is Charley to bring it?" he asked pleasantly.

"No.  I have brought it myself, guardian," I returned.

I put my two arms round his neck and kissed him, and he said was 
this the mistress of Bleak House, and I said yes; and it made no 
difference presently, and we all went out together, and I said 
nothing to my precious pet about it.



CHAPTER XLV

In Trust


One morning when I had done jingling about with my baskets of keys, 
as my beauty and I were walking round and round the garden I 
happened to turn my eyes towards the house and saw a long thin 
shadow going in which looked like Mr. Vholes.  Ada had been telling 
me only that morning of her hopes that Richard might exhaust his 
ardour in the Chancery suit by being so very earnest in it; and 
therefore, not to damp my dear girl's spirits, I said nothing about 
Mr. Vholes's shadow.

Presently came Charley, lightly winding among the bushes and 
tripping along the paths, as rosy and pretty as one of Flora's 
attendants instead of my maid, saying, "Oh, if you please, miss, 
would you step and speak to Mr. Jarndyce!"

It was one of Charley's peculiarities that whenever she was charged 
with a message she always began to deliver it as soon as she 
beheld, at any distance, the person for whom it was intended.  
Therefore I saw Charley asking me in her usual form of words to 
"step and speak" to Mr. Jarndyce long before I heard her.  And when 
I did hear her, she had said it so often that she was out of 
breath.

I told Ada I would make haste back and inquired of Charley as we 
went in whether there was not a gentleman with Mr. Jarndyce.  To 
which Charley, whose grammar, I confess to my shame, never did any 
credit to my educational powers, replied, "Yes, miss.  Him as come 
down in the country with Mr. Richard."

A more complete contrast than my guardian and Mr. Vholes I suppose 
there could not be.  I found them looking at one another across a 
table, the one so open and the other so close, the one so broad and 
upright and the other so narrow and stooping, the one giving out 
what he had to say in such a rich ringing voice and the other 
keeping it in in such a cold-blooded, gasping, fish-like manner 
that I thought I never had seen two people so unmatched.

"You know Mr. Vholes, my dear," said my guardian.  Not with the 
greatest urbanity, I must say.

Mr. Vholes rose, gloved and buttoned up as usual, and seated 
himself again, just as he had seated himself beside Richard in the 
gig.  Not having Richard to look at, he looked straight before him.

"Mr. Vholes," said my guardian, eyeing his black figure as if he 
were a bird of ill omen, "has brought an ugly report of our most 
unfortunate Rick."  Laying a marked emphasis on "most unfortunate" 
as if the words were rather descriptive of his connexion with Mr. 
Vholes.

I sat down between them; Mr. Vholes remained immovable, except that 
he secretly picked at one of the red pimples on his yellow face 
with his black glove.

"And as Rick and you are happily good friends, I should like to 
know," said my guardian, "what you think, my dear.  Would you be so 
good as to--as to speak up, Mr. Vholes?"

Doing anything but that, Mr. Vholes observed, "I have been saying 
that I have reason to know, Miss Summerson, as Mr. C.'s 
professional adviser, that Mr. C.'s circumstances are at the 
present moment in an embarrassed state.  Not so much in point of 
amount as owing to the peculiar and pressing nature of liabilities 
Mr. C. has incurred and the means he has of liquidating or meeting 
the same.  I have staved off many little matters for Mr. C., but 
there is a limit to staving off, and we have reached it.  I have 
made some advances out of pocket to accommodate these 
unpleasantnesses, but I necessarily look to being repaid, for I do 
not pretend to be a man of capital, and I have a father to support 
in the Vale of Taunton, besides striving to realize some little 
independence for three dear girls at home.  My apprehension is, Mr. 
C.'s circumstances being such, lest it should end in his obtaining 
leave to part with his commission, which at all events is desirable 
to be made known to his connexions."

Mr. Vholes, who had looked at me while speaking, here emerged into 
the silence he could hardly be said to have broken, so stifled was 
his tone, and looked before him again.

"Imagine the poor fellow without even his present resource," said 
my guardian to me.  "Yet what can I do?  You know him, Esther.  He 
would never accept of help from me now.  To offer it or hint at it 
would be to drive him to an extremity, if nothing else did."

Mr. Vholes hereupon addressed me again.

"What Mr. Jarndyce remarks, miss, is no doubt the case, and is the 
difficulty.  I do not see that anything is to be done, I do not say 
that anything is to be done.  Far from it.  I merely come down here 
under the seal of confidence and mention it in order that 
everything may be openly carried on and that it may not be said 
afterwards that everything was not openly carried on.  My wish is 
that everything should be openly carried on.  I desire to leave a 
good name behind me.  If I consulted merely my own interests with 
Mr. C., I should not be here.  So insurmountable, as you must well 
know, would be his objections.  This is not a professional 
attendance.  This can he charged to nobody.  I have no interest in 
it except as a member of society and a father--AND a son," said Mr. 
Vholes, who had nearly forgotten that point.

It appeared to us that Mr. Vholes said neither more nor less than 
the truth in intimating that he sought to divide the 
responsibility, such as it was, of knowing Richard's situation.  I 
could only suggest that I should go down to Deal, where Richard was 
then stationed, and see him, and try if it were possible to avert 
the worst.  Without consulting Mr. Vholes on this point, I took my 
guardian aside to propose it, while Mr. Vholes gauntly stalked to 
the fire and warmed his funeral gloves.

The fatigue of the journey formed an immediate objection on my 
guardian's part, but as I saw he had no other, and as I was only 
too happy to go, I got his consent.  We had then merely to dispose 
of Mr. Vholes.

"Well, sir," said Mr. Jarndyce, "Miss Summerson will communicate 
with Mr. Carstone, and you can only hope that his position may be 
yet retrievable.  You will allow me to order you lunch after your 
journey, sir."

"I thank you, Mr. Jarndyce," said Mr. Vholes, putting out his long 
black sleeve to check the ringing of the bell, "not any.  I thank 
you, no, not a morsel.  My digestion is much impaired, and I am but 
a poor knife and fork at any time.  If I was to partake of solid 
food at this period of the day, I don't know what the consequences 
might be.  Everything having been openly carried on, sir, I will 
now with your permission take my leave."

"And I would that you could take your leave, and we could all take 
our leave, Mr. Vholes," returned my guardian bitterly, "of a cause 
you know of."

Mr. Vholes, whose black dye was so deep from head to foot that it 
had quite steamed before the fire, diffusing a very unpleasant 
perfume, made a short one-sided inclination of his head from the 
neck and slowly shook it.

"We whose ambition it is to be looked upon in the light of 
respectable practitioners, sir, can but put our shoulders to the 
wheel.  We do it, sir.  At least, I do it myself; and I wish to 
think well of my professional brethren, one and all.  You are 
sensible of an obligation not to refer to me, miss, in 
communicating with Mr. C.?"

I said I would be careful not to do it.

"Just so, miss.  Good morning.  Mr. Jarndyce, good morning, sir."  
Mr. Vholes put his dead glove, which scarcely seemed to have any 
hand in it, on my fingers, and then on my guardian's fingers, and 
took his long thin shadow away.  I thought of it on the outside of 
the coach, passing over all the sunny landscape between us and 
London, chilling the seed in the ground as it glided along.

Of course it became necessary to tell Ada where I was going and why 
I was going, and of course she was anxious and distressed.  But she 
was too true to Richard to say anything but words of pity and words 
of excuse, and in a more loving spirit still--my dear devoted 
girl!--she wrote him a long letter, of which I took charge.

Charley was to be my travelling companion, though I am sure I 
wanted none and would willingly have left her at home.  We all went 
to London that afternoon, and finding two places in the mail, 
secured them.  At our usual bed-time, Charley and I were rolling 
away seaward with the Kentish letters.

It was a night's journey in those coach times, but we had the mail 
to ourselves and did not find the night very tedious.  It passed 
with me as I suppose it would with most people under such 
circumstances.  At one while my journey looked hopeful, and at 
another hopeless.  Now I thought I should do some good, and now I 
wondered how I could ever have supposed so.  Now it seemed one of 
the most reasonable things in the world that I should have come, 
and now one of the most unreasonable.  In what state I should find 
Richard, what I should say to him, and what he would say to me 
occupied my mind by turns with these two states of feeling; and the 
wheels seemed to play one tune (to which the burden of my 
guardian's letter set itself) over and over again all night.

At last we came into the narrow streets of Deal, and very gloomy 
they were upon a raw misty morning.  The long flat beach, with its 
little irregular houses, wooden and brick, and its litter of 
capstans, and great boats, and sheds, and bare upright poles with 
tackle and blocks, and loose gravelly waste places overgrown with 
grass and weeds, wore as dull an appearance as any place I ever 
saw.  The sea was heaving under a thick white fog; and nothing else 
was moving but a few early ropemakers, who, with the yarn twisted 
round their bodies, looked as if, tired of their present state of 
existence, they were spinning themselves into cordage.

But when we got into a warm room in an excellent hotel and sat 
down, comfortably washed and dressed, to an early breakfast (for it 
was too late to think of going to bed), Deal began to look more 
cheerful.  Our little room was like a ship's cabin, and that 
delighted Charley very much.  Then the fog began to rise like a 
curtain, and numbers of ships that we had had no idea were near 
appeared.  I don't know how many sail the waiter told us were then 
lying in the downs.  Some of these vessels were of grand size--one 
was a large Indiaman just come home; and when the sun shone through 
the clouds, maktng silvery pools in the dark sea, the way in which 
these ships brightened, and shadowed, and changed, amid a bustle of 
boats pulling off from the shore to them and from them to the 
shore, and a general life and motion in themselves and everything 
around them, was most beautiful.

The large Indiaman was our great attraction because she had come 
into the downs in the night.  She was surrounded by boats, and we 
said how glad the people on board of her must be to come ashore.  
Charley was curious, too, about the voyage, and about the heat in 
India, and the serpents and the tigers; and as she picked up such 
information much faster than grammar, I told her what I knew on 
those points.  I told her, too, how people in such voyages were 
sometimes wrecked and cast on rocks, where they were saved by the 
intrepidity and humanity of one man.  And Charley asking how that 
could be, I told her how we knew at home of such a case.

I had thought of sending Richard a note saying I was there, but it 
seemed so much better to go to him without preparation.  As he 
lived in barracks I was a little doubtful whether this was 
feasible, but we went out to reconnoitre.  Peeping in at the gate 
of the barrack-yard, we found everything very quiet at that time in 
the morning, and I asked a sergeant standing on the guardhouse-
steps where he lived.  He sent a man before to show me, who went up 
some bare stairs, and knocked with his knuckles at a door, and left 
us.

"Now then!" cried Richard from within.  So I left Charley in the 
little passage, and going on to the half-open door, said, "Can I 
come in, Richard?  It's only Dame Durden."

He was writing at a table, with a great confusion of clothes, tin 
cases, books, boots, brushes, and portmanteaus strewn all about the 
floor.  He was only half dressed--in plain clothes, I observed, not 
in uniform--and his hair was unbrushed, and he looked as wild as 
his room.  All this I saw after he had heartily welcomed me and I 
was seated near him, for he started upon hearing my voice and 
caught me in his arms in a moment.  Dear Richard!  He was ever the 
same to me.  Down to--ah, poor poor fellow!--to the end, he never 
received me but with something of his old merry boyish manner.

"Good heaven, my dear little woman," said he, "how do you come 
here?  Who could have thought of seeing you!  Nothing the matter?  
Ada is well?"

"Quite well.  Lovelier than ever, Richard!"

"Ah!" he said, lenning back in his chair.  "My poor cousin!  I was 
writing to you, Esther."

So worn and haggard as he looked, even in the fullness of his 
handsome youth, leaning back in his chair and crushing the closely 
written sheet of paper in his hand!

"Have you been at the trouble of writing all that, and am I not to 
read it after all?" I asked.

"Oh, my dear," he returned with a hopeless gesture.  "You may read 
it in the whole room.  It is all over here."

I mildly entreated him not to be despondent.  I told him that I had 
heard by chance of his being in difficulty and had come to consult 
with him what could best be done.

"Like you, Esther, but useless, and so NOT like you!" said he with 
a melancholy smile.  "I am away on leave this day--should have been 
gone in another hour--and that is to smooth it over, for my selling 
out.  Well! Let bygones be bygones.  So this calling follows the 
rest.  I only want to have been in the church to have made the 
round of all the professions."

"Richard," I urged, "it is not so hopeless as that?"

"Esther," he returned, "it is indeed.  I am just so near disgrace 
as that those who are put in authority over me (as the catechism 
goes) would far rather be without me than with me.  And they are 
right.  Apart from debts and duns and all such drawbacks, I am not 
fit even for this employment.  I have no care, no mind, no heart, 
no soul, but for one thing.  Why, if this bubble hadn't broken 
now," he said, tearing the letter he had written into fragments and 
moodily casting them away, by driblets, "how could I have gone 
abroad?  I must have been ordered abroad, but how could I have 
gone?  How could I, with my experience of that thing, trust even 
Vholes unless I was at his back!"

I suppose he knew by my face what I was about to say, but he caught 
the hand I had laid upon his arm and touched my own lips with it to 
prevent me from going on.

"No, Dame Durden!  Two subjects I forbid--must forbid.  The first 
is John Jarndyce.  The second, you know what.  Call it madness, and 
I tell you I can't help it now, and can't be sane.  But it is no 
such thing; it is the one object I have to pursue.  It is a pity I 
ever was prevailed upon to turn out of my road for any other.  It 
would be wisdom to abandon it now, after all the time, anxiety, and 
pains I have bestowed upon it!  Oh, yes, true wisdom.  It would be 
very agreeable, too, to some people; but I never will."

He was in that mood in which I thought it best not to increase his 
determination (if anything could increase it) by opposing him.  I 
took out Ada's letter and put it in his hand.

"Am I to read it now?" he asked.

As I told him yes, he laid it on the table, and resting his head 
upon his hand, began.  He had not read far when he rested his head 
upon his two hands--to hide his face from me.  In a little while he 
rose as if the light were bad and went to the window.  He finished 
reading it there, with his back towards me, and after he had 
finished and had folded it up, stood there for some minutes with 
the letter in his hand.  When he came back to his chair, I saw 
tears in his eyes.

"Of course, Esther, you know what she says here?"  He spoke in a 
softened voice and kissed the letter as he asked me.

"Yes, Richard."

"Offers me," he went on, tapping his foot upon the floor, "the 
little inheritance she is certain of so soon--just as little and as 
much as I have wasted--and begs and prays me to take it, set myself 
right with it, and remain in the service."

"I know your welfare to be the dearest wish of her heart," said I.  
"And, oh, my dear Richard, Ada's is a noble heart."

"I am sure it is.  I--I wish I was dead!"

He went back to the window, and laying his arm across it, leaned 
his head down on his arm.  It greatly affected me to see him so, 
but I hoped he might become more yielding, and I remained silent.  
My experience was very limited; I was not at all prepared for his 
rousing himself out of this emotion to a new sense of injury.

"And this is the heart that the same John Jarndyce, who is not 
otherwise to be mentioned between us, stepped in to estrange from 
me," said he indignantly.  "And the dear girl makes me this 
generous offer from under the same John Jarndyce's roof, and with 
the same John Jarndyce's gracious consent and connivance, I dare 
say, as a new means of buying me off."

"Richard!" I cried out, rising hastily.  "I will not hear you say 
such shameful words!"  I was very angry with him indeed, for the 
first time in my life, but it only lasted a moment.  When I saw his 
worn young face looking at me as if he were sorry, I put my hand on 
his shoulder and said, "If you please, my dear Richard, do not 
speak in such a tone to me.  Consider!"

He blamed himself exceedingly and told me in the most generous 
manner that he had been very wrong and that he begged my pardon a 
thousand times.  At that I laughed, but trembled a little too, for 
I was rather fluttered after being so fiery.

"To accept this offer, my dear Esther," said he, sitting down 
beside me and resuming our conversation, "--once more, pray, pray 
forgive me; I am deeply grieved--to accept my dearest cousin's 
offer is, I need not say, impossible.  Besides, I have letters and 
papers that I could show you which would convince you it is all 
over here.  I have done with the red coat, believe me.  But it is 
some satisfaction, in the midst of my troubles and perplexities, to 
know that I am pressing Ada's interests in pressing my own.  Vholes 
has his shoulder to the wheel, and he cannot help urging it on as 
much for her as for me, thank God!"

His sanguine hopes were rising within him and lighting up his 
features, but they made his face more sad to me than it had been 
before.

"No, no!" cried Richard exultingly.  "If every farthing of Ada's 
little fortune were mine, no part of it should be spent in 
retaining me in what I am not fit for, can take no interest in, and 
am weary of.  It should be devoted to what promises a better 
return, and should be used where she has a larger stake.  Don't be 
uneasy for me!  I shall now have only one thing on my mind, and 
Vholes and I will work it.  I shall not be without means.  Free of 
my commission, I shall be able to compound with some small usurers 
who will hear of nothing but their bond now--Vholes says so.  I 
should have a balance in my favour anyway, but that would swell it.  
Come, come!  You shall carry a letter to Ada from me, Esther, and 
you must both of you be more hopeful of me and not believe that I 
am quite cast away just yet, my dear."

I will not repeat what I said to Richard.  I know it was tiresome, 
and nobody is to suppose for a moment that it was at all wise.  It 
only came from my heart.  He heard it patiently and feelingly, but 
I saw that on the two subjects he had reserved it was at present 
hopeless to make any representation to him.  I saw too, and had 
experienced in this very interview, the sense of my guardian's 
remark that it was even more mischievous to use persuasion with him 
than to leave him as he was.

Therefore I was driven at last to asking Richard if he would mind 
convincing me that it really was all over there, as he had said, 
and that it was not his mere impression.  He showed me without 
hesitation a correspondence making it quite plain that his 
retirement was arranged.  I found, from what he told me, that Mr. 
Vholes had copies of these papers and had been in consultation with 
him throughout.  Beyond ascertaining this, and having been the 
bearer of Ada's letter, and being (as I was going to be) Richard's 
companion back to London, I had done no good by coming down.  
Admitting this to myself with a reluctant heart, I said I would 
return to the hotel and wait until he joined me there, so he threw 
a cloak over his shoulders and saw me to the gate, and Charley and 
I went back along the beach.

There was a concourse of people in one spot, surrounding some naval 
officers who were landing from a boat, and pressing about them with 
unusual interest.  I said to Charley this would be one of the great 
Indiaman's boats now, and we stopped to look.

The gentlemen came slowly up from the waterside, speaking good-
humouredly to each other and to the people around and glancing 
about them as if they were glad to be in England again.  "Charley, 
Charley," said I, "come away!"  And I hurried on so swiftly that my 
little maid was surprised.

It was not until we were shut up in our cabin-room and I had had 
time to take breath that I began to think why I had made such 
haste.  In one of the sunburnt faces I had recognized Mr. Allan 
Woodcourt, and I had been afraid of his recognizing me.  I had been 
unwilling that he should see my altered looks.  I had been taken by 
surprise, and my courage had quite failed me.

But I knew this would not do, and I now said to myself, "My dear, 
there is no reason--there is and there can be no reason at all--why 
it should be worse for you now than it ever has been.  What you 
were last month, you are to-day; you are no worse, you are no 
better.  This is not your resolution; call it up, Esther, call it 
up!"  I was in a great tremble--with running--and at first was 
quite unable to calm myself; but I got better, and I was very glad 
to know it.

The party came to the hotel.  I heard them speaking on the 
staircase.  I was sure it was the same gentlemen because I knew 
their voices again--I mean I knew Mr. Woodcourt's.  It would still 
have been a great relief to me to have gone away without making 
myself known, but I was determined not to do so.  "No, my dear, no.  
No, no, no!"

I untied my bonnet and put my veil half up--I think I mean half 
down, but it matters very little--and wrote on one of my cards that 
I happened to be there with Mr. Richard Carstone, and I sent it in 
to Mr. Woodcourt.  He came immediately.  I told him I was rejoiced 
to be by chance among the first to welcome him home to England.  
And I saw that he was very sorry for me.

"You have been in shipwreck and peril since you left us, Mr. 
Woodcourt," said I, "but we can hardly call that a misfortune which 
enabled you to be so useful and so brave.  We read of it with the 
truest interest.  It first came to my knowledge through your old 
patient, poor Miss Flite, when I was recovering from my severe 
illness."

"Ah! Little Miss Flite!" he said.  "She lives the same life yet?"

"Just the same."

I was so comfortable with myself now as not to mind the veil and to 
be able to put it aside.

"Her gratitude to you, Mr. Woodcourt, is delightful.  She is a most 
affectionate creature, as I have reason to say."

"You--you have found her so?" he returned.  "I--I am glad of that."  
He was so very sorry for me that he could scarcely speak.

"I assure you," said I, "that I was deeply touched by her sympathy 
and pleasure at the time I have referred to."

"I was grieved to hear that you had been very ill."

"I was very ill."

"But you have quite recovered?"

"I have quite recovered my health and my cheerfulness," said I.  
"You know how good my guardian is and what a happy life we lead, 
and I have everything to be thankful for and nothing in the world 
to desire."

I felt as if he had greater commiseration for me than I had ever 
had for myself.  It inspired me with new fortitude and new calmness 
to find that it was I who was under the necessity of reassuring 
him.  I spoke to him of his voyage out and home, and of his future 
plans, and of his probable return to India.  He said that was very 
doubtful.  He had not found himself more favoured by fortune there 
than here.  He had gone out a poor ship's surgeon and had come home 
nothing better.  While we were talking, and when I was glad to 
believe that I had alleviated (if I may use such a term) the shock 
he had had in seeing me, Richard came in.  He had heard downstairs 
who was with me, and they met with cordial pleasure.

I saw that after their first greetings were over, and when they 
spoke of Richard's career, Mr. Woodcourt had a perception that all 
was not going well with him.  He frequently glanced at his face as 
if there were something in it that gave him pain, and more than 
once he looked towards me as though he sought to ascertain whether 
I knew what the truth was.  Yet Richard was in one of his sanguine 
states and in good spirits and was thoroughly pleased to see Mr. 
Woodcourt again, whom he had always liked.

Richard proposed that we all should go to London together; but Mr. 
Woodcourt, having to remain by his ship a little longer, could not 
join us.  He dined with us, however, at an early hour, and became 
so much more like what he used to be that I was still more at peace 
to think I had been able to soften his regrets.  Yet his mind was 
not relieved of Richard.  When the coach was almost ready and 
Richard ran down to look after his luggage, he spoke to me about 
him.

I was not sure that I had a right to lay his whole story open, but 
I referred in a few words to his estrangement from Mr Jarndyce and 
to his being entangled in the ill-fated Chancery suit.  Mr. 
Woodcourt listened with interest and expressed his regret.

"I saw you observe him rather closely," said I, "Do you think him 
so changed?"

"He is changed," he returned, shaking his head.

I felt the blood rush into my face for the first time, but it was 
only an instantaneous emotion.  I turned my head aside, and it was 
gone.

"It is not," said Mr. Woodcourt, "his being so much younger or 
older, or thinner or fatter, or paler or ruddier, as there being 
upon his face such a singular expression.  I never saw so 
remarkable a look in a young person.  One cannot say that it is all 
anxiety or all weariness; yet it is both, and like ungrown 
despair."

"You do not think he is ill?" said I.

No.  He looked robust in body.

"That he cannot be at peace in mind, we have too much reason to 
know," I proceeded.  "Mr. Woodcourt, you are going to London?"

"To-morrow or the next day."

"There is nothing Richard wants so much as a friend.  He always 
liked you.  Pray see him when you get there.  Pray help him 
sometimes with your companionship if you can.  You do not know of 
what service it might be.  You cannot think how Ada, and Mr. 
Jarndyce, and even I--how we should all thank you, Mr. Woodcourt!"

"Miss Summerson," he said, more moved than he had been from the 
first, "before heaven, I will be a true friend to him!  I will 
accept him as a trust, and it shall be a sacred one!"

"God bless you!" said I, with my eyes filling fast; but I thought 
they might, when it was not for myself.  "Ada loves him--we all 
love him, but Ada loves him as we cannot.  I will tell her what you 
say.  Thank you, and God bless you, in her name!"

Richard came back as we finished exchanging these hurried words and 
gave me his arm to take me to the coach.

"Woodcourt," he said, unconscious with what application, "pray let 
us meet in London!"

"Meet?" returned the other.  "I have scarcely a friend there now 
but you.  Where shall I find you?"

"Why, I must get a lodging of some sort," said Richard, pondering.  
"Say at Vholes's, Symond's Inn."

"Good!  Without loss of time."

They shook hands heartily.  When I was seated in the coach and 
Richard was yet standing in the street, Mr. Woodcourt laid his 
friendly hand on Richard's shoulder and looked at me.  I understood 
him and waved mine in thanks.

And in his last look as we drove away, I saw that he was very sorry 
for me.  I was glad to see it.  I felt for my old self as the dead 
may feel if they ever revisit these scenes.  I was glad to be 
tenderly remembered, to be gently pitied, not to be quite 
forgotten.



CHAPTER XLVI

Stop Him!


Darkness rests upon Tom-All-Alone's.  Dilating and dilating since 
the sun went down last night, it has gradually swelled until it 
fills every void in the place.  For a time there were some dungeon 
lights burning, as the lamp of life hums in Tom-all-Alone's, 
heavily, heavily, in the nauseous air, and winking--as that lamp, 
too, winks in Tom-all-Alone's--at many horrible things.  But they 
are blotted out.  The moon has eyed Tom with a dull cold stare, as 
admitting some puny emulation of herself in his desert region unfit 
for life and blasted by volcanic fires; but she has passed on and 
is gone.  The blackest nightmare in the infernal stables grazes on 
Tom-all-Alone's, and Tom is fast asleep.

Much mighty speech-making there has been, both in and out of 
Parliament, concerning Tom, and much wrathful disputation how Tom 
shall be got right.  Whether he shall be put into the main road by 
constables, or by beadles, or by bell-ringing, or by force of 
figures, or by correct principles of taste, or by high church, or 
by low church, or by no church; whether he shall be set to 
splitting trusses of polemical straws with the crooked knife of his 
mind or whether he shall be put to stone-breaking instead.  In the 
midst of which dust and noise there is but one thing perfectly 
clear, to wit, that Tom only may and can, or shall and will, be 
reclaimed according to somebody's theory but nobody's practice.  
And in the hopeful meantime, Tom goes to perdition head foremost in 
his old determined spirit.

But he has his revenge.  Even the winds are his messengers, and 
they serve him in these hours of darkness.  There is not a drop of 
Tom's corrupted blood but propagates infection and contagion 
somewhere.  It shall pollute, this very night, the choice stream 
(in which chemists on analysis would find the genuine nobility) of 
a Norman house, and his Grace shall not be able to say nay to the 
infamous alliance.  There is not an atom of Tom's slime, not a 
cubic inch of any pestilential gas in which he lives, not one 
obscenity or degradation about him, not an ignorance, not a 
wickedness, not a brutality of his committing, but shall work its 
retribution through every order of society up to the proudest of 
the proud and to the highest of the high.  Verily, what with 
tainting, plundering, and spoiling, Tom has his revenge.

It is a moot point whether Tom-all-Alone's be uglier by day or by 
night, but on the argument that the more that is seen of it the 
more shocking it must be, and that no part of it left to the 
imagination is at all likely to be made so bad as the reality, day 
carries it.  The day begins to break now; and in truth it might be 
better for the national glory even that the sun should sometimes 
set upon the British dominions than that it should ever rise upon 
so vile a wonder as Tom.

A brown sunburnt gentleman, who appears in some inaptitude for 
sleep to be wandering abroad rather than counting the hours on a 
restless pillow, strolls hitherward at this quiet time.  Attracted 
by curiosity, he often pauses and looks about him, up and down the 
miserable by-ways.  Nor is he merely curious, for in his bright 
dark eye there is compassionate interest; and as he looks here and 
there, he seems to understand such wretchedness and to have studied 
it before.

On the banks of the stagnant channel of mud which is the main 
street of Tom-all-Alone's, nothing is to be seen but the crazy 
houses, shut up and silent.  No waking creature save himself 
appears except in one direction, where he sees the solitary figure 
of a woman sitting on a door-step.  He walks that way.  
Approaching, he observes that she has journeyed a long distance and 
is footsore and travel-stained.  She sits on the door-step in the 
manner of one who is waiting, with her elbow on her knee and her 
head upon her hand.  Beside her is a canvas bag, or bundle, she has 
carried.  She is dozing probably, for she gives no heed to his 
steps as he comes toward her.

The broken footway is so narrow that when Allan Woodcourt comes to 
where the woman sits, he has to turn into the road to pass her.  
Looking down at her face, his eye meets hers, and he stops.

"What is the matter?"

"Nothing, sir."

"Can't you make them hear?  Do you want to be let in?"

"I'm walting till they get up at another house--a lodging-house--
not here," the woman patiently returns.  "I'm waiting here because 
there will be sun here presently to warm me."

"I am afraid you are tired.  I am sorry to see you sitting in the 
street."

"Thank you, sir.  It don't matter."

A habit in him of speaking to the poor and of avoiding patronage or 
condescension or childishness (which is the favourite device, many 
people deeming it quite a subtlety to talk to them like little 
spelling books) has put him on good terms with the woman easily.

"Let me look at your forehead," he says, bending down.  "I am a 
doctor.  Don't be afraid.  I wouldn't hurt you for the world."

He knows that by touching her with his skilful and accustomed hand 
he can soothe her yet more readily.  She makes a slight objection, 
saying, "It's nothing"; but he has scarcely laid his fingers on the 
wounded place when she lifts it up to the light.

"Aye! A bad bruise, and the skin sadly broken.  This must be very 
sore."

"It do ache a little, sir," returns the woman with a started tear 
upon her cheek.

"Let me try to make it more comfortable.  My handkerchief won't 
hurt you."

"Oh, dear no, sir, I'm sure of that!"

He cleanses the injured place and dries it, and having carefully 
examined it and gently pressed it with the palm of his hand, takes 
a small case from his pocket, dresses it, and binds it up.  While 
he is thus employed, he says, after laughing at his establishing a 
surgery in the street, "And so your husband is a brickmaker?"

"How do you know that, sir?" asks the woman, astonished.

"Why, I suppose so from the colour of the clay upon your bag and on 
your dress.  And I know brickmakers go about working at piecework 
in different places.  And I am sorry to say I have known them cruel 
to their wives too."

The woman hastily lifts up her eyes as if she would deny that her 
injury is referable to such a cause.  But feeling the hand upon her 
forehead, and seeing his busy and composed face, she quietly drops 
them again.

"Where is he now?" asks the surgeon.

"He got into trouble last night, sir; but he'll look for me at the 
lodging-house."

"He will get into worse trouble if he often misuses his large and 
heavy hand as he has misused it here.  But you forgive him, brutal 
as he is, and I say no more of him, except that I wish he deserved 
it.  You have no young child?"

The woman shakes her head.  "One as I calls mine, sir, but it's 
Liz's."

"Your own is dead.  I see!  Poor little thing!"

By this time he has finished and is putting up his case.  "I 
suppose you have some settled home.  Is it far from here?" he asks, 
good-humouredly making light of what he has done as she gets up and 
curtsys.

"It's a good two or three and twenty mile from here, sir.  At Saint 
Albans.  You know Saint Albans, sir?  I thought you gave a start 
like, as if you did."

"Yes, I know something of it.  And now I will ask you a question in 
return.  Have you money for your lodging?"

"Yes, sir," she says, "really and truly."  And she shows it.  He 
tells her, in acknowledgment of her many subdued thanks, that she 
is very welcome, gives her good day, and walks away.  Tom-all-
Alone's is still asleep, and nothing is astir.

Yes, something is!  As he retraces his way to the point from which 
he descried the woman at a distance sitting on the step, he sees a 
ragged figure coming very cautiously along, crouching close to the 
soiled walls--which the wretchedest figure might as well avoid--and 
furtively thrusting a hand before it.  It is the figure of a youth 
whose face is hollow and whose eyes have an emaciated glare.  He is 
so intent on getting along unseen that even the apparition of a 
stranger in whole garments does not tempt him to look back.  He 
shades his face with his ragged elbow as he passes on the other 
side of the way, and goes shrinking and creeping on with his 
anxious hand before him and his shapeless clothes hanging in 
shreds.  Clothes made for what purpose, or of what material, it 
would be impossible to say.  They look, in colour and in substance, 
like a bundle of rank leaves of swampy growth that rotted long ago.

Allan Woodcourt pauses to look after him and note all this, with a 
shadowy belief that he has seen the boy before.  He cannot recall 
how or where, but there is some association in his mind with such a 
form.  He imagines that he must have seen it in some hospital or 
refuge, still, cannot make out why it comes with any special force 
on his remembrance.

He is gradually emerging from Tom-all-Alone's in the morning light, 
thinking about it, when he hears running feet behind him, and 
looking round, sees the boy scouring towards him at great speed, 
followed by the woman.

"Stop him, stop him!" cries the woman, almost breath less.  "Stop 
him, sir!"

He darts across the road into the boy's path, but the boy is 
quicker than he, makes a curve, ducks, dives under his hands, comes 
up half-a-dozen yards beyond him, and scours away again.  Still the 
woman follows, crying, "Stop him, sir, pray stop him!"  Allan, not 
knowing but that he has just robbed her of her money, follows in 
chase and runs so hard that he runs the boy down a dozen times, but 
each time he repeats the curve, the duck, the dive, and scours away 
again.  To strike at him on any of these occasions would be to fell 
and disable him, but the pursuer cannot resolve to do that, and so 
the grimly ridiculous pursuit continues.  At last the fugitive, 
hard-pressed, takes to a narrow passage and a court which has no 
thoroughfare.  Here, against a hoarding of decaying timber, he is 
brought to bay and tumbles down, lying gasping at his pursuer, who 
stands and gasps at him until the woman comes up.

"Oh, you, Jo!" cries the woman.  "What?  I have found you at last!"

"Jo," repeats Allan, looking at him with attention, "Jo!  Stay.  To 
be sure!  I recollect this lad some time ago being brought before 
the coroner."

"Yes, I see you once afore at the inkwhich," whimpers Jo.  "What of 
that?  Can't you never let such an unfortnet as me alone?  An't I 
unfortnet enough for you yet?  How unfortnet do you want me fur to 
be?  I've been a-chivied and a-chivied, fust by one on you and nixt 
by another on you, till I'm worritted to skins and bones.  The 
inkwhich warn't MY fault.  I done nothink.  He wos wery good to me, 
he wos; he wos the only one I knowed to speak to, as ever come 
across my crossing.  It ain't wery likely I should want him to be 
inkwhiched.  I only wish I wos, myself.  I don't know why I don't 
go and make a hole in the water, I'm sure I don't."

He says it with such a pitiable air, and his grimy tears appear so 
real, and he lies in the corner up against the hoarding so like a 
growth of fungus or any unwholesome excrescence produced there in 
neglect and impurity, that Allan Woodcourt is softened towards him.  
He says to the woman, "Miserable creature, what has he done?"

To which she only replies, shaking her head at the prostrate figure 
more amazedly than angrily, "Oh, you Jo, you Jo.  I have found you 
at last!"

"What has he done?" says Allan.  "Has he robbed you?"

"No, sir, no.  Robbed me?  He did nothing but what was kind-hearted 
by me, and that's the wonder of it."

Allan looks from Jo to the woman, and from the woman to Jo, waiting 
for one of them to unravel the riddle.

"But he was along with me, sir," says the woman.  "Oh, you Jo!  He 
was along with me, sir, down at Saint Albans, ill, and a young 
lady, Lord bless her for a good friend to me, took pity on him when 
I durstn't, and took him home--"

Allan shrinks back from him with a sudden horror.

"Yes, sir, yes.  Took him home, and made him comfortable, and like 
a thankless monster he ran away in the night and never has been 
seen or heard of since till I set eyes on him just now.  And that 
young lady that was such a pretty dear caught his illness, lost her 
beautiful looks, and wouldn't hardly be known for the same young 
lady now if it wasn't for her angel temper, and her pretty shape, 
and her sweet voice.  Do you know it?  You ungrateful wretch, do 
you know that this is all along of you and of her goodness to you?" 
demands the woman, beginning to rage at him as she recalls it and 
breaking into passionate tears.

The boy, in rough sort stunned by what he hears, falls to smearing 
his dirty forehead with his dirty palm, and to staring at the 
ground, and to shaking from head to foot until the crazy hoarding 
against which he leans rattles.

Allan restrains the woman, merely by a quiet gesture, but 
effectually.

"Richard told me--"  He falters.  "I mean, I have heard of this--
don't mind me for a moment, I will speak presently."

He turns away and stands for a while looking out at the covered 
passage.  When he comes back, he has recovered his composure, 
except that he contends against an avoidance of the boy, which is 
so very remarkable that it absorbs the woman's attention.

"You hear what she says.  But get up, get up!"

Jo, shaking and chattering, slowly rises and stands, after the 
manner of his tribe in a difficulty, sideways against the hoarding, 
resting one of his high shoulders against it and covertly rubbing 
his right hand over his left and his left foot over his right.

"You hear what she says, and I know it's true.  Have you been here 
ever since?"

"Wishermaydie if I seen Tom-all-Alone's till this blessed morning," 
replies Jo hoarsely.

"Why have you come here now?"

Jo looks all round the confined court, looks at his questioner no 
higher than the knees, and finally answers, "I don't know how to do 
nothink, and I can't get nothink to do.  I'm wery poor and ill, and 
I thought I'd come back here when there warn't nobody about, and 
lay down and hide somewheres as I knows on till arter dark, and 
then go and beg a trifle of Mr. Snagsby.  He wos allus willin fur 
to give me somethink he wos, though Mrs. Snagsby she was allus a-
chivying on me--like everybody everywheres."

"Where have you come from?"

Jo looks all round the court again, looks at his questioner's knees 
again, and concludes by laying his profile against the hoarding in 
a sort of resignation.

"Did you hear me ask you where you have come from?"

"Tramp then," says Jo.

"Now tell me," proceeds Allan, making a strong effort to overcome 
his repugnance, going very near to him, and leaning over him with 
an expression of confidence, "tell me how it came about that you 
left that house when the good young lady had been so unfortunate as 
to pity you and take you home."

Jo suddenly comes out of his resignation and excitedly declares, 
addressing the woman, that he never known about the young lady, 
that he never heern about it, that he never went fur to hurt her, 
that he would sooner have hurt his own self, that he'd sooner have 
had his unfortnet ed chopped off than ever gone a-nigh her, and 
that she wos wery good to him, she wos.  Conducting himself 
throughout as if in his poor fashion he really meant it, and 
winding up with some very miserable sobs.

Allan Woodcourt sees that this is not a sham.  He constrains 
himself to touch him.  "Come, Jo.  Tell me."

"No.  I dustn't," says Jo, relapsing into the profile state.  "I 
dustn't, or I would."

"But I must know," returns the other, "all the same.  Come, Jo."

After two or three such adjurations, Jo lifts up his head again, 
looks round the court again, and says in a low voice, "Well, I'll 
tell you something.  I was took away.  There!"

"Took away?  In the night?"

"Ah!"  Very apprehensive of being overheard, Jo looks about him and 
even glances up some ten feet at the top of the hoarding and 
through the cracks in it lest the object of his distrust should be 
looking over or hidden on the other side.

"Who took you away?"

"I dustn't name him," says Jo.  "I dustn't do it, sir.

"But I want, in the young lady's name, to know.  You may trust me.  
No one else shall hear."

"Ah, but I don't know," replies Jo, shaking his head fearfulty, "as 
he DON'T hear."

"Why, he is not in this place."

"Oh, ain't he though?" says Jo.  "He's in all manner of places, all 
at wanst."

Allan looks at him in perplexity, but discovers some real meaning 
and good faith at the bottom of this bewildering reply.  He 
patiently awaits an explicit answer; and Jo, more baffled by his 
patience than by anything else, at last desperately whispers a name 
in his ear.

"Aye!" says Allan.  "Why, what had you been doing?"

"Nothink, sir.  Never done nothink to get myself into no trouble, 
'sept in not moving on and the inkwhich.  But I'm a-moving on now.  
I'm a-moving on to the berryin ground--that's the move as I'm up 
to."

"No, no, we will try to prevent that.  But what did he do with 
you?"

"Put me in a horsepittle," replied Jo, whispering, "till I was 
discharged, then giv me a little money--four half-bulls, wot you 
may call half-crowns--and ses 'Hook it!  Nobody wants you here,' he 
ses.  'You hook it.  You go and tramp,' he ses.  'You move on,' he 
ses.  'Don't let me ever see you nowheres within forty mile of 
London, or you'll repent it.'  So I shall, if ever he doos see me, 
and he'll see me if I'm above ground," concludes Jo, nervously 
repeating all his former precautions and investigations.

Allan considers a little, then remarks, turning to the woman but 
keeping an encouraging eye on Jo, "He is not so ungrateful as you 
supposed.  He had a reason for going away, though it was an 
insufficient one."

"Thankee, sir, thankee!" exclaims Jo.  "There now!  See how hard 
you wos upon me.  But ony you tell the young lady wot the genlmn 
ses, and it's all right.  For YOU wos wery good to me too, and I 
knows it."

"Now, Jo," says Allan, keeping his eye upon him, "come with me and 
I will find you a better place than this to lie down and hide in.  
If I take one side of the way and you the other to avoid 
observation, you will not run away, I know very well, if you make 
me a promise."

"I won't, not unless I wos to see HIM a-coming, sir."

"Very well.  I take your word.  Half the town is getting up by this 
time, and the whole town will be broad awake in another hour.  Come 
along.  Good day again, my good woman."

"Good day again, sir, and I thank you kindly many times again."

She has been sitting on her bag, deeply attentive, and now rises 
and takes it up.  Jo, repeating, "Ony you tell the young lady as I 
never went fur to hurt her and wot the genlmn ses!" nods and 
shambles and shivers, and smears and blinks, and half laughs and 
half cries, a farewell to her, and takes his creeping way along 
after Allan Woodcourt, close to the houses on the opposite side of 
the street.  In this order, the two come up out of Tom-all-Alone's 
into the broad rays of the sunlight and the purer air.



CHAPTER XLVII

Jo's Will


As Allan Woodcourt and Jo proceed along the streets where the high 
church spires and the distances are so near and clear in the 
morning light that the city itself seems renewed by rest, Allan 
revolves in his mind how and where he shall bestow his companion.  
"It surely is a strange fact," he considers, "that in the heart of 
a civilized world this creature in human form should be more 
difficult to dispose of than an unowned dog."  But it is none the 
less a fact because of its strangeness, and the difficulty remains.

At first he looks behind him often to assure himself that Jo is 
still really following.  But look where he will, he still beholds 
him close to the opposite houses, making his way with his wary hand 
from brick to brick and from door to door, and often, as he creeps 
along, glancing over at him watchfully.  Soon satisfied that the 
last thing in his thoughts is to give him the slip, Allan goes on, 
considering with a less divided attention what he shall do.

A breakfast-stall at a street-corner suggests the first thing to be 
done.  He stops there, looks round, and beckons Jo.  Jo crosses and 
comes halting and shuffling up, slowly scooping the knuckles of his 
right hand round and round in the hollowed palm of his left, 
kneading dirt with a natural pestle and mortar.  What is a dainty 
repast to Jo is then set before him, and he begins to gulp the 
coffee and to gnaw the bread and butter, looking anxiously about 
him in all directions as he eats and drinks, like a scared animal.

But he is so sick and miserable that even hunger has abandoned him.  
"I thought I was amost a-starvin, sir," says Jo, soon putting down 
his food, "but I don't know nothink--not even that.  I don't care 
for eating wittles nor yet for drinking on 'em."  And Jo stands 
shivering and looking at the breakfast wonderingly.

Allan Woodcourt lays his hand upon his pulse and on his chest.  
"Draw breath, Jo!"  "It draws," says Jo, "as heavy as a cart."  He 
might add, "And rattles like it," but he only mutters, "I'm a-
moving on, sir."

Allan looks about for an apothecary's shop.  There is none at hand, 
but a tavern does as well or better.  He obtains a little measure 
of wine and gives the lad a portion of it very carefully.  He 
begins to revive almost as soon as it passes his lips.  "We may 
repeat that dose, Jo," observes Allan after watching him with his 
attentive face.  "So!  Now we will take five minutes' rest, and 
then go on again."

Leaving the boy sitting on the bench of the breakfast-stall, with 
his back against an iron railing, Allan Woodcourt paces up and down 
in the early sunshine, casting an occasional look towards him 
without appearing to watch him.  It requires no discernment to 
perceive that he is warmed and refreshed.  If a face so shaded can 
brighten, his face brightens somewhat; and by little and little he 
eats the slice of bread he had so hopelessly laid down.  Observant 
of these signs of improvement, Allan engages him in conversation 
and elicits to his no small wonder the adventure of the lady in the 
veil, with all its consequences.  Jo slowly munches as he slowly 
tells it.  When he has finished his story and his bread, they go on 
again.

Intending to refer his difficulty in finding a temporary place of 
refuge for the boy to his old patient, zealous little Miss Flite, 
Allan leads the way to the court where he and Jo first 
foregathered.  But all is changed at the rag and bottle shop; Miss 
Flite no longer lodges there; it is shut up; and a hard-featured 
female, much obscured by dust, whose age is a problem, but who is 
indeed no other than the interesting Judy, is tart and spare in her 
replies.  These sufficing, however, to inform the visitor that Miss 
Flite and her birds are domiciled with a Mrs. Blinder, in Bell 
Yard, he repairs to that neighbouring place, where Miss Flite (who 
rises early that she may be punctual at the divan of justice held 
by her excellent friend the Chancellor) comes running downstairs 
with tears of welcome and with open arms.

"My dear physician!" cries Miss Flite.  "My meritorious, 
distinguished, honourable officer!"  She uses some odd expressions, 
but is as cordial and full of heart as sanity itself can be--more 
so than it often is.  Allan, very patient with her, waits until she 
has no more raptures to express, then points out Jo, trembling in a 
doorway, and tells her how he comes there.

"Where can I lodge him hereabouts for the present?  Now, you have a 
fund of knowledge and good sense and can advise me.

Miss Flite, mighty proud of the compliment, sets herself to 
consider; but it is long before a bright thought occurs to her.  
Mrs. Blinder is entirely let, and she herself occupies poor 
Gridley's room.  "Gridley!" exclaims Miss Flite, clapping her hands 
after a twentieth repetition of this remark.  "Gridley!  To be 
sure!  Of course!  My dear physician!  General George will help us 
out."

It is hopeless to ask for any information about General George, and 
would be, though Miss Flite had not akeady run upstairs to put on 
her pinched bonnet and her poor little shawl and to arm herself 
with her reticule of documents.  But as she informs her physician 
in her disjointed manner on coming down in full array that General 
George, whom she often calls upon, knows her dear Fitz Jarndyce and 
takes a great interest in all connected with her, Allan is induced 
to think that they may be in the right way.  So he tells Jo, for 
his encouragement, that this walking about will soon be over now; 
and they repair to the general's.  Fortunately it is not far.

From the exterior of George's Shooting Gallery, and the long entry, 
and the bare perspective beyond it, Allan Woodcourt augurs well.  
He also descries promise in the figure of Mr. George himself, 
striding towards them in his mornmg exercise with his pipe in his 
mouth, no stock on, and his muscular arms, developed by broadsword 
and dumbbell, weightily asserting themselves through his light 
shirt-sleeves.

"Your servant, sir," says Mr. George with a military salute.  Good-
humouredly smiling all over his broad forehead up into his crisp 
hair, he then defers to Miss Flite, as, with great stateliness, and 
at some length, she performs the courtly ceremony of presentation.  
He winds it up with another "Your servant, sir!" and another 
salute.

"Excuse me, sir.  A sailor, I believe?" says Mr. George.

"I am proud to find I have the air of one," returns Allan; "but I 
am only a sea-going doctor."

"Indeed, sir!  I should have thought you was a regular blue-jacket 
myself."

Allan hopes Mr. George will forgive his intrusion the more readily 
on that account, and particularly that he will not lay aside his 
pipe, which, in his politeness, he has testifled some intention of 
doing.  "You are very good, sir," returns the trooper.  "As I know 
by experience that it's not disagreeable to Miss Flite, and since 
it's equally agreeable to yourself--" and finishes the sentence by 
putting it between his lips again.  Allan proceeds to tell him all 
he knows about Jo, unto which the trooper listens with a grave 
face.

"And that's the lad, sir, is it?" he inquires, looking along the 
entry to where Jo stands staring up at the great letters on the 
whitewashed front, which have no meaning in his eyes.

"That's he," says Allan.  "And, Mr. George, I am in this difficulty 
about him.  I am unwilling to place him in a hospital, even if I 
could procure him immediate admission, because I foresee that he 
would not stay there many hours if he could be so much as got 
there.  The same objection applies to a workhouse, supposing I had 
the patience to be evaded and shirked, and handed about from post 
to pillar in trying to get him into one, which is a system that I 
don't take kindly to."

"No man does, sir," returns Mr. George.

"I am convinced that he would not remain in either place, because 
he is possessed by an extraordinary terror of this person who 
ordered him to keep out of the way; in his ignorance, he believes 
this person to be everywhere, and cognizant of everything."

"I ask your pardon, sir," says Mr. George.  "But you have not 
mentioned that party's name.  Is it a secret, sir?"

"The boy makes it one.  But his name is Bucket."

"Bucket the detective, sir?"

"The same man."

"The man is known to me, sir," returns the trooper after blowing 
out a cloud of smoke and squaring his chest, "and the boy is so far 
correct that he undoubtedly is a--rum customer."  Mr. George smokes 
with a profound meaning after this and surveys Miss Flite in 
silence.

"Now, I wish Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson at least to know that 
this Jo, who tells so strange a story, has reappeared, and to have 
it in their power to speak with him if they should desire to do so.  
Therefore I want to get him, for the present moment, into any poor 
lodging kept by decent people where he would be admitted.  Decent 
people and Jo, Mr. George," says Allan, following the direction of 
the trooper's eyes along the entry, "have not been much acquainted, 
as you see.  Hence the difficulty.  Do you happen to know any one 
in this neighbourhood who would receive him for a while on my 
paying for him beforehand?"

As he puts the question, he becomes aware of a dirty-faced little 
man standing at the trooper's elbow and looking up, with an oddly 
twisted figure and countenance, into the trooper's face.  After a 
few more puffs at his pipe, the trooper looks down askant at the 
little man, and the little man winks up at the trooper.

"Well, sir," says Mr. George, "I can assure you that I would 
willingiy be knocked on the head at any time if it would be at all 
agreeable to Miss Summerson, and consequently I esteem it a 
privilege to do that young lady any service, however small.  We are 
naturally in the vagabond way here, sir, both myself and Phil.  You 
see what the place is.  You are welcome to a quiet corner of it for 
the boy if the same would meet your views.  No charge made, except 
for rations.  We are not in a flourishing state of circumstances 
here, sir.  We are liable to be tumbled out neck and crop at a 
moment's notice.  However, sir, such as the place is, and so long 
as it lasts, here it is at your service."

With a comprehensive wave of his pipe, Mr. George places the whole 
building at his visitor's disposal.

"I take it for granted, sir," he adds, "you being one of the 
medical staff, that there is no present infection about this 
unfortunate subject?"

Allan is quite sure of it.

"Because, sir," says Mr. George, shaking his head sorrowfully, "we 
have had enough of that."

His tone is no less sorrowfully echoed by his new acquaintance.  
'Still I am bound to tell you," observes Allan after repeating his 
former assurance, "that the boy is deplorably low and reduced and 
that he may be--I do not say that he is--too far gone to recover."

"Do you consider him in present danger, sir?" inquires the trooper.

"Yes, I fear so."

"Then, sir," returns the trooper in a decisive manner, "it appears 
to me--being naturally in the vagabond way myself--that the sooner 
he comes out of the street, the better.  You, Phil!  Bring him in!"

Mr. Squod tacks out, all on one side, to execute the word of 
command; and the trooper, having smoked his pipe, lays it by.  Jo 
is brought in.  He is not one of Mrs. Pardiggle's Tockahoopo 
Indians; he is not one of Mrs. Jellyby's lambs, being wholly 
unconnected with Borrioboola-Gha; he is not softened by distance 
and unfamiliarity; he is not a genuine foreign-grown savage; he is 
the ordinary home-made article.  Dirty, ugly, disagreeable to all 
the senses, in body a common creature of the common streets, only 
in soul a heathen.  Homely filth begrimes him, homely parasites 
devour him, homely sores are in him, homely rags are on him; native 
ignorance, the growth of English soil and climate, sinks his 
immortal nature lower than the beasts that perish.  Stand forth, 
Jo, in uncompromising colours!  From the sole of thy foot to the 
crown of thy head, there is nothing interesting about thee.

He shuffles slowly into Mr. George's gallery and stands huddled 
together in a bundle, looking all about the floor.  He seems to 
know that they have an inclination to shrink from him, partly for 
what he is and partly for what he has caused.  He, too, shrinks 
from them.  He is not of the same order of things, not of the same 
place in creation.  He is of no order and no place, neither of the 
beasts nor of humanity.

"Look here, Jo!" says Allan.  "This is Mr. George."

Jo searches the floor for some time longer, then looks up for a 
moment, and then down again.

"He is a kind friend to you, for he is going to give you lodging 
room here."

Jo makes a scoop with one hand, which is supposed to be a bow.  
After a little more consideration and some backing and changing of 
the foot on which he rests, he mutters that he is "wery thankful."

"You are quite safe here.  All you have to do at present is to be 
obedient and to get strong.  And mind you tell us the truth here, 
whatever you do, Jo."

"Wishermaydie if I don't, sir," says Jo, reverting to his favourite 
declaration.  "I never done nothink yit, but wot you knows on, to 
get myself into no trouble.  I never was in no other trouble at 
all, sir, 'sept not knowin' nothink and starwation."

"I believe it, now attend to Mr. George.  I see he is going to 
speak to you."

"My intention merely was, sir," observes Mr. George, amazingly 
broad and upright, "to point out to him where he can lie down and 
get a thorough good dose of sleep.  Now, look here."  As the 
trooper speaks, he conducts them to the other end of the gallery 
and opens one of the little cabins.  "There you are, you see!  Here 
is a mattress, and here you may rest, on good behaviour, as long as 
Mr., I ask your pardon, sir"--he refers apologetically to the card 
Allan has given him--"Mr. Woodcourt pleases.  Don't you be alarmed 
if you hear shots; they'll be aimed at the target, and not you.  
Now, there's another thing I would recommend, sir," says the 
trooper, turning to his visitor.  "Phil, come here!"

Phil bears down upon them according to his usual tactics.  "Here is 
a man, sir, who was found, when a baby, in the gutter.  
Consequently, it is to be expected that he takes a natural interest 
in this poor creature.  You do, don't you, Phil?"

"Certainly and surely I do, guv'ner," is Phil's reply.

"Now I was thinking, sir," says Mr. George in a martial sort of 
confidence, as if he were giving his opinion in a council of war at 
a drum-head, "that if this man was to take him to a bath and was to 
lay out a few shillings in getting him one or two coarse articles--"

"Mr. George, my considerate friend," returns Allan, taking out his 
purse, "it is the very favour I would have asked."

Phil Squod and Jo are sent out immediately on this work of 
improvement.  Miss Flite, quite enraptured by her success, makes 
the best of her way to court, having great fears that otherwise her 
friend the Chancellor may be uneasy about her or may give the 
judgment she has so long expected in her absence, and observing 
"which you know, my dear physician, and general, after so many 
years, would be too absurdly unfortunate!"  Allan takes the 
opportunity of going out to procure some restorative medicines, and 
obtaining them near at hand, soon returns to find the trooper 
walking up and down the gallery, and to fall into step and walk 
with him.

"I take it, sir," says Mr. George, "that you know Miss Summerson 
pretty well?"

Yes, it appears.

"Not related to her, sir?"

No, it appears.

"Excuse the apparent curiosity," says Mr. George.  "It seemed to me 
probable that you might take more than a common interest in this 
poor creature because Miss Summerson had taken that unfortunate 
interest in him.  'Tis MY case, sir, I assure you."

"And mine, Mr. George."

The trooper looks sideways at Allan's sunburnt cheek and bright 
dark eye, rapidly measures his height and build, and seems to 
approve of him.

"Since you have been out, sir, I have been thinking that I 
unquestionably know the rooms in Lincoln's Inn Fields, where Bucket 
took the lad, according to his account.  Though he is not 
acquainted with the name, I can help you to it.  It's Tulkinghorn.  
That's what it is."

Allan looks at him inquiringly, repeating the name.

"Tulkinghorn.  That's the name, sir.  I know the man, and know him 
to have been in communication with Bucket before, respecting a 
deceased person who had given him offence.  I know the man, sir.  
To my sorrow."

Allan naturally asks what kind of man he is.

"What kind of man!  Do you mean to look at?"

"I think I know that much of him.  I mean to deal with.  Generally, 
what kind of man?"

"Why, then I'll tell you, sir," returns the trooper, stopping short 
and folding his arms on his square chest so angrily that his face 
fires and flushes all over; "he is a confoundedly bad kind of man.  
He is a slow-torturing kind of man.  He is no more like flesh and 
blood than a rusty old carbine is.  He is a kind of man--by 
George!--that has caused me more restlessness, and more uneasiness, 
and more dissatisfaction with myself than all other men put 
together.  That's the kind of man Mr. Tulkinghorn is!"

"I am sorry," says Allan, "to have touched so sore a place."

"Sore?"  The trooper plants his legs wider apart, wets the palm of 
his broad right hand, and lays it on the imaginary moustache.  
"It's no fault of yours, sir; but you shall judge.  He has got a 
power over me.  He is the man I spoke of just now as being able to 
tumble me out of this place neck and crop.  He keeps me on a 
constant see-saw.  He won't hold off, and he won't come on.  If I 
have a payment to make him, or time to ask him for, or anything to 
go to him about, he don't see me, don't hear me--passes me on to 
Melchisedech's in Clifford's Inn, Melchisedech's in Clifford's Inn 
passes me back again to him--he keeps me prowling and dangling 
about him as if I was made of the same stone as himself.  Why, I 
spend half my life now, pretty well, loitering and dodging about 
his door.  What does he care?  Nothing.  Just as much as the rusty 
old carbine I have compared him to.  He chafes and goads me till--  
Bah!  Nonsense!  I am forgetting myself.  Mr. Woodcourt," the 
trooper resumes his march, "all I say is, he is an old man; but I 
am glad I shall never have the chance of setting spurs to my horse 
and riding at him in a fair field.  For if I had that chance, in 
one of the humours he drives me into--he'd go down, sir!"

Mr. George has been so excited that he finds it necessary to wipe 
his forehead on his shirt-sleeve.  Even while he whistles his 
impetuosity away with the national anthem, some involuntary 
shakings of his head and heavings of his chest still linger behind, 
not to mention an occasional hasty adjustment with both hands of 
his open shirt-collar, as if it were scarcely open enough to 
prevent his being troubled by a choking sensation.  In short, Allan 
Woodcourt has not much doubt about the going down of Mr. 
Tulkinghorn on the field referred to.

Jo and his conductor presently return, and Jo is assisted to his 
mattress by the careful Phil, to whom, after due administration of 
medicine by his own hands, Allan confides all needful means and 
instructions.  The morning is by this time getting on apace.  He 
repairs to his lodgings to dress and breakfast, and then, without 
seeking rest, goes away to Mr. Jarndyce to communicate his 
discovery.

With him Mr. Jarndyce returns alone, confidentially telling him 
that there are reasons for keeping this matter very quiet indeed 
and showing a serious interest in it.  To Mr. Jarndyce, Jo repeats 
in substance what he said in the morning, without any material 
variation.  Only that cart of his is heavier to draw, and draws 
with a hollower sound.

"Let me lay here quiet and not be chivied no more," falters Jo, 
"and be so kind any person as is a-passin nigh where I used fur to 
sleep, as jist to say to Mr. Sangsby that Jo, wot he known once, is 
a-moving on right forards with his duty, and I'll be wery thankful.  
I'd be more thankful than I am aready if it wos any ways possible 
for an unfortnet to be it."

He makes so many of these references to the law-stationer in the 
course of a day or two that Allan, after conferring with Mr. 
Jarndyce, good-naturedly resolves to call in Cook's Court, the 
rather, as the cart seems to be breaking down.

To Cook's Court, therefore, he repairs.  Mr. Snagsby is behind his 
counter in his grey coat and sleeves, inspecting an indenture of 
several skins which has just come in from the engrosser's, an 
immense desert of law-hand and parchment, with here and there a 
resting-place of a few large letters to break the awful monotony 
and save the traveller from despair.  Mr Snagsby puts up at one of 
these inky wells and greets the stranger with his cough of general 
preparation for business.

"You don't remember me, Mr. Snagsby?"

The stationer's heart begins to thump heavily, for his old 
apprehensions have never abated.  It is as much as he can do to 
answer, "No, sir, I can't say I do.  I should have considered--not 
to put too fine a point upon it--that I never saw you before, sir."

"Twice before," says Allan Woodcourt.  "Once at a poor bedside, and 
once--"

"It's come at last!" thinks the afflicted stationer, as 
recollection breaks upon him.  "It's got to a head now and is going 
to burst!"  But he has sufficient presence of mind to conduct his 
visitor into the little counting-house and to shut the door.

"Are you a married man, sir?"

"No, I am not."

"Would you make the attempt, though single," says Mr. Snagsby in a 
melancholy whisper, "to speak as low as you can?  For my little 
woman is a-listening somewheres, or I'll forfeit the business and 
five hundred pound!"

In deep dejection Mr. Snagsby sits down on his stool, with his back 
against his desk, protesting, "I never had a secret of my own, sir.  
I can't charge my memory with ever having once attempted to deceive 
my little woman on my own account since she named the day.  I 
wouldn't have done it, sir.  Not to put too fine a point upon it, I 
couldn't have done it, I dursn't have done it.  Whereas, and 
nevertheless, I find myself wrapped round with secrecy and mystery, 
till my life is a burden to me."

His visitor professes his regret to bear it and asks him does he 
remember Jo.  Mr. Snagsby answers with a suppressed groan, oh, 
don't he!

"You couldn't name an individual human being--except myself--that 
my little woman is more set and determined against than Jo," says 
Mr. Snagsby.

Allan asks why.

"Why?" repeats Mr. Snagsby, in his desperation clutching at the 
clump of hair at the back of his bald head.  "How should 1 know 
why?  But you are a single person, sir, and may you long be spared 
to ask a married person such a question!"

With this beneficent wish, Mr. Snagsby coughs a cough of dismal 
resignation and submits himself to hear what the visitor has to 
communicate.

"There again!" says Mr. Snagsby, who, between the earnestness of 
his feelings and the suppressed tones of his voice is discoloured 
in the face.  "At it again, in a new direction!  A certain person 
charges me, in the solemnest way, not to talk of Jo to any one, 
even my little woman.  Then comes another certain person, in the 
person of yourself, and charges me, in an equally solemn way, not 
to mention Jo to that other certain person above all other persons.  
Why, this is a private asylum!  Why, not to put too fine a point 
upon it, this is Bedlam, sir!" says Mr. Snagsby.

But it is better than he expected after all, being no explosion of 
the mine below him or deepening of the pit into which he has 
fallen.  And being tender-hearted and affected by the account he 
hears of Jo's condition, he readily engages to "look round" as 
early in the evening as he can manage it quietly.  He looks round 
very quietly when the evening comes, but it may turn out that Mrs. 
Snagsby is as quiet a manager as he.

Jo is very glad to see his old friend and says, when they are left 
alone, that he takes it uncommon kind as Mr. Sangsby should come so 
far out of his way on accounts of sich as him.  Mr. Snagsby, 
touched by the spectacle before him, immediately lays upon the 
table half a crown, that magic balsam of his for all kinds of 
wounds.

"And how do you find yourself, my poor lad?" inquires the stationer 
with his cough of sympathy.

"I am in luck, Mr. Sangsby, I am," returns Jo, "and don't want for 
nothink.  I'm more cumfbler nor you can't think.  Mr. Sangsby!  I'm 
wery sorry that I done it, but I didn't go fur to do it, sir."

The stationer softly lays down another half-crown and asks him what 
it is that he is sorry for having done.

"Mr. Sangsby," says Jo, "I went and giv a illness to the lady as 
wos and yit as warn't the t'other lady, and none of 'em never says 
nothink to me for having done it, on accounts of their being ser 
good and my having been s'unfortnet.  The lady come herself and see 
me yesday, and she ses, 'Ah, Jo!' she ses.  'We thought we'd lost 
you, Jo!' she ses.  And she sits down a-smilin so quiet, and don't 
pass a word nor yit a look upon me for having done it, she don't, 
and I turns agin the wall, I doos, Mr. Sangsby.  And Mr. Jarnders, 
I see him a-forced to turn away his own self.  And Mr. Woodcot, he 
come fur to giv me somethink fur to ease me, wot he's allus a-doin' 
on day and night, and wen he come a-bending over me and a-speakin 
up so bold, I see his tears a-fallin, Mr. Sangsby."

The softened stationer deposits another half-crown on the table.  
Nothing less than a repetition of that infallible remedy will 
relieve his feelings.

"Wot I was a-thinkin on, Mr. Sangsby," proceeds Jo, "wos, as you 
wos able to write wery large, p'raps?"

"Yes, Jo, please God," returns the stationer.

"Uncommon precious large, p'raps?" says Jo with eagerness.

"Yes, my poor boy."

Jo laughs with pleasure.  "Wot I wos a-thinking on then, Mr. 
Sangsby, wos, that when I wos moved on as fur as ever I could go 
and couldn't he moved no furder, whether you might be so good 
p'raps as to write out, wery large so that any one could see it 
anywheres, as that I wos wery truly hearty sorry that I done it and 
that I never went fur to do it, and that though I didn't know 
nothink at all, I knowd as Mr. Woodcot once cried over it and wos 
allus grieved over it, and that I hoped as he'd be able to forgive 
me in his mind.  If the writin could be made to say it wery large, 
he might."

"It shall say it, Jo.  Very large."

Jo laughs again.  "Thankee, Mr. Sangsby.  It's wery kind of you, 
sir, and it makes me more cumfbler nor I was afore."

The meek little stationer, with a broken and unfinished cough, 
slips down his fourth half-crown--he has never been so close to a 
case requiring so many--and is fain to depart.  And Jo and he, upon 
this little earth, shall meet no more.  No more.

For the cart so hard to draw is near its journey's end and drags 
over stony ground.  All round the clock it labours up the broken 
steps, shattered and worn.  Not many times can the sun rise and 
behold it still upon its weary road.

Phil Squod, with his smoky gunpowder visage, at once acts as nurse 
and works as armourer at his little table in a corner, often 
looking round and saying with a nod of his green-baize cap and an 
encouraging elevation of his one eyebrow, "Hold up, my boy!  Hold 
up!"  There, too, is Mr. Jarndyce many a time, and Allan Woodcourt 
almost always, both thinking, much, how strangely fate has 
entangled this rough outcast in the web of very different lives.  
There, too, the trooper is a frequent visitor, filling the doorway 
with his athletic figure and, from his superfluity of life and 
strength, seeming to shed down temporary vigour upon Jo, who never 
fails to speak more robustly in answer to his cheerful words.

Jo is in a sleep or in a stupor to-day, and Allan Woodcourt, newly 
arrived, stands by him, looking down upon his wasted form.  After a 
while he softly seats himself upon the bedside with his face 
towards him--just as he sat in the law-writer's room--and touches 
his chest and heart.  The cart had very nearly given up, but 
labours on a little more.

The trooper stands in the doorway, still and silent.  Phil has 
stopped in a low clinking noise, with his little hammer in his 
hand.  Mr. Woodcourt looks round with that grave professional 
interest and attention on his face, and glancing significantly at 
the trooper, signs to Phil to carry his table out.  When the little 
hammer is next used, there will be a speck of rust upon it.

"Well, Jo!  What is the matter?  Don't be frightened."

"I thought," says Jo, who has started and is looking round, "I 
thought I was in Tom-all-Alone's agin.  Ain't there nobody here but 
you, Mr. Woodcot?"

"Nobody."

"And I ain't took back to Tom-all-Alone's.  Am I, sir?"

"No."  Jo closes his eyes, muttering, "I'm wery thankful."

After watching him closely a little while, Allan puts his mouth 
very near his ear and says to him in a low, distinct voice, "Jo!  
Did you ever know a prayer?"

"Never knowd nothink, sir."

"Not so much as one short prayer?"

"No, sir.  Nothink at all.  Mr. Chadbands he wos a-prayin wunst at 
Mr. Sangsby's and I heerd him, but he sounded as if he wos a-
speakin to hisself, and not to me.  He prayed a lot, but I couldn't 
make out nothink on it.  Different times there was other genlmen 
come down Tom-all-Alone's a-prayin, but they all mostly sed as the 
t'other 'wuns prayed wrong, and all mostly sounded to be a-talking 
to theirselves, or a-passing blame on the t'others, and not a-
talkin to us.  WE never knowd nothink.  I never knowd what it wos 
all about."

It takes him a long time to say this, and few but an experienced 
and attentive listener could hear, or, hearing, understand him.  
After a short relapse into sleep or stupor, he makes, of a sudden, 
a strong effort to get out of bed.

"Stay, Jo!  What now?"

"It's time for me to go to that there berryin ground, sir," he 
returns with a wild look.

"Lie down, and tell me.  What burying ground, Jo?"

"Where they laid him as wos wery good to me, wery good to me 
indeed, he wos.  It's time fur me to go down to that there berryin 
ground, sir, and ask to be put along with him.  I wants to go there 
and be berried.  He used fur to say to me, 'I am as poor as you to-
day, Jo,' he ses.  I wants to tell him that I am as poor as him now 
and have come there to be laid along with him."

"By and by, Jo.  By and by."

"Ah!  P'raps they wouldn't do it if I wos to go myself.  But will 
you promise to have me took there, sir, and laid along with him?"

"I will, indeed."

"Thankee, sir.  Thankee, sir.  They'll have to get the key of the 
gate afore they can take me in, for it's allus locked.  And there's 
a step there, as I used for to clean with my broom.  It's turned 
wery dark, sir.  Is there any light a-comin?"

"It is coming fast, Jo."

Fast.  The cart is shaken all to pieces, and the rugged road is 
very near its end.

"Jo, my poor fellow!"

"I hear you, sir, in the dark, but I'm a-gropin--a-gropin--let me 
catch hold of your hand."

"Jo, can you say what I say?"

"I'll say anythink as you say, sir, for I knows it's good."

"Our Father."

"Our Father!  Yes, that's wery good, sir."

"Which art in heaven."

"Art in heaven--is the light a-comin, sir?"

"It is close at hand.  Hallowed by thy name!"

"Hallowed be--thy--"

The light is come upon the dark benighted way.  Dead!

Dead, your Majesty.  Dead, my lords and gentlemen.  Dead, right 
reverends and wrong reverends of every order.  Dead, men and women, 
born with heavenly compassion in your hearts.  And dying thus 
around us every day.



CHAPTER XLVIII

Closing in


The place in Lincolnshire has shut its many eyes again, and the 
house in town is awake.  In Lincolnshire the Dedlocks of the past 
doze in their picture-frames, and the low wind murmurs through the 
long drawing-room as if they were breathing pretty regularly.  In 
town the Dedlocks of the present rattle in their fire-eyed 
carriages through the darkness of the night, and the Dedlock 
Mercuries, with ashes (or hair-powder) on their heads, symptomatic 
of their great humility, loll away the drowsy mornings in the 
little windows of the hall.  The fashionable world--tremendous orb, 
nearly five miles round--is in full swing, and the solar system 
works respectfully at its appointed distances.

Where the throng is thickest, where the lights are brightest, where 
all the senses are ministered to with the greatest delicacy and 
refinement, Lady Dedlock is.  From the shining heights she has 
scaled and taken, she is never absent.  Though the belief she of 
old reposed in herself as one able to reserve whatsoever she would 
under her mantle of pride is beaten down, though she has no 
assurance that what she is to those around her she will remain 
another day, it is not in her nature when envious eyes are looking 
on to yield or to droop.  They say of her that she has lately grown 
more handsome and more haughty.  The debilitated cousin says of 
her that she's beauty nough--tsetup shopofwomen--but rather 
larming kind--remindingmanfact--inconvenient woman--who WILL 
getoutofbedandbawthstahlishment--Shakespeare.

Mr. Tulkinghorn says nothing, looks nothing.  Now, as heretofore, 
he is to be found in doorways of rooms, with his limp white cravat 
loosely twisted into its old-fashioned tie, receiving patronage 
from the peerage and making no sign.  Of all men he is still the 
last who might be supposed to have any influence upon my Lady.  Of 
all woman she is still the last who might be supposed to have any 
dread of him.

One thing has been much on her mind since their late interview in 
his turret-room at Chesney Wold.  She is now decided, and prepared 
to throw it off.

It is morning in the great world, afternoon according to the little 
sun.  The Mercuries, exhausted by looking out of window, are 
reposing in the hall and hang their heavy heads, the gorgeous 
creatures, like overblown sunflowers.  Like them, too, they seem to 
run to a deal of seed in their tags and trimmings.  Sir Leicester, 
in the library, has fallen asleep for the good of the country over 
the report of a Parliamentary committee.  My Lady sits in the room 
in which she gave audience to the young man of the name of Guppy.  
Rosa is with her and has been writing for her and reading to her.  
Rosa is now at work upon embroidery or some such pretty thing, and 
as she bends her head over it, my Lady watches her in silence.  Not 
for the first time to-day.

"Rosa."

The pretty village face looks brightly up.  Then, seeing how 
serious my Lady is, looks puzzled and surprised.

"See to the door.  Is it shut?"

Yes.  She goes to it and returns, and looks yet more surprised.

"I am about to place confidence in you, child, for I know I may 
trust your attachment, if not your judgment.  In what I am going to 
do, I will not disguise myself to you at least.  But I confide in 
you.  Say nothing to any one of what passes between us."

The timid little beauty promises in all earnestness to be 
trustworthy.

"Do you know," Lady Dedlock asks her, signing to her to bring her 
chair nearer, "do you know, Rosa, that I am different to you from 
what I am to any one?"

"Yes, my Lady.  Much kinder.  But then I often think I know you as 
you really are."

"You often think you know me as I really am?  Poor child, poor 
child!"

She says it with a kind of scorn--though not of Rosa--and sits 
brooding, looking dreamily at her.

"Do you think, Rosa, you are any relief or comfort to me?  Do you 
suppose your being young and natural, and fond of me and grateful 
to me, makes it any pleasure to me to have you near me?"

"I don't know, my Lady; I can scarcely hope so.  But with all my 
heart, I wish it was so."

"It is so, little one."

The pretty face is checked in its flush of pleasure by the dark 
expression on the handsome face before it.  It looks timidly for an 
explanation.

"And if I were to say to-day, 'Go! Leave me!' I should say what 
would give me great pain and disquiet, child, and what would leave 
me very solitary."

"My Lady!  Have I offended you?"

"In nothing.  Come here."

Rosa bends down on the footstool at my Lady's feet.  My Lady, with 
that motherly touch of the famous ironmaster night, lays her hand 
upon her dark hair and gently keeps it there.

"I told you, Rosa, that I wished you to be happy and that I would 
make you so if I could make anybody happy on this earth.  I cannot.  
There are reasons now known to me, reasons in which you have no 
part, rendering it far better for you that you should not remain 
here.  You must not remain here.  I have determined that you shall 
not.  I have written to the father of your lover, and he will be 
here to-day.  All this I have done for your sake."

The weeping girl covers her hand with kisses and says what shall 
she do, what shall she do, when they are separated!  Her mistress 
kisses her on the cheek and makes no other answer.

"Now, be happy, child, under better circumstances.  Be beloved and 
happy!"

"Ah, my Lady, I have sometimes thought--forgive my being so free--
that YOU are not happy."

"I!"

"Will you be more so when you have sent me away?  Pray, pray, think 
again.  Let me stay a little while!"

"I have said, my child, that what I do, I do for your sake, not my 
own.  It is done.  What I am towards you, Rosa, is what I am now--
not what I shall be a little while hence.  Remember this, and keep 
my confidence.  Do so much for my sake, and thus all ends between 
us!"

She detaches herself from her simple-hearted companion and leaves 
the room.  Late in the afternoon, when she next appears upon the 
staircase, she is in her haughtiest and coldest state.  As 
indifferent as if all passion, feeling, and interest had been worn 
out in the earlier ages of the world and had perished from its 
surface with its other departed monsters.

Mercury has announced Mr. Rouncewell, which is the cause of her 
appearance.  Mr. Rouncewell is not in the library, but she repairs 
to the library.  Sir Leicester is there, and she wishes to speak to 
him first.

"Sir Leicester, I am desirous--but you are engaged."

Oh, dear no!  Not at all.  Only Mr. Tulkinghorn.

Always at hand.  Haunting every place.  No relief or security from 
him for a moment.

"I beg your pardon, Lady Dedlock.  Will you allow me to retire?"

With a look that plainly says, "You know you have the power to 
remain if you will," she tells him it is not necessary and moves 
towards a chair.  Mr. Tulkinghorn brings it a little forward for 
her with his clumsy bow and retires into a window opposite.  
Interposed between her and the fading light of day in the now quiet 
street, his shadow falls upon her, and he darkens all before her.  
Even so does he darken her life.

It is a dull street under the best conditions, where the two long 
rows of houses stare at each other with that severity that half-a-
dozen of its greatest mansions seem to have been slowly stared into 
stone rather than originally built in that material.  It is a 
street of such dismal grandeur, so determined not to condescend to 
liveliness, that the doors and windows hold a gloomy state of their 
own in black paint and dust, and the echoing mews behind have a dry 
and massive appearance, as if they were reserved to stable the 
stone chargers of noble statues.  Complicated garnish of iron-work 
entwines itself over the flights of steps in this awful street, and 
from these petrified bowers, extinguishers for obsolete flambeaux 
gasp at the upstart gas.  Here and there a weak little iron hoop, 
through which bold boys aspire to throw their friends' caps (its 
only present use), retains its place among the rusty foliage, 
sacred to the memory of departed oil.  Nay, even oil itself, yet 
lingering at long intervals in a little absurd glass pot, with a 
knob in the bottom like an oyster, blinks and sulks at newer lights 
every night, like its high and dry master in the House of Lords.

Therefore there is not much that Lady Dedlock, seated in her chair, 
could wish to see through the window in which Mr. Tulkinghorn 
stands.  And yet--and yet--she sends a look in that direction as if 
it were her heart's desire to have that figure moved out of the 
way.

Sir Leicester begs his Lady's pardon.  She was about to say?

"Only that Mr. Rouncewell is here (he has called by my appointment) 
and that we had better make an end of the question of that girl.  I 
am tired to death of the matter."

"What can I do--to--assist?" demands Sir Leicester in some 
considerable doubt.

"Let us see him here and have done with it.  Will you tell them to 
send him up?"

"Mr. Tulkinghorn, be so good as to ring.  Thank you.  Request," 
says Sir Leicester to Mercury, not immediately remembering the 
business term, "request the iron gentleman to walk this way."

Mercury departs in search of the iron gentleman, finds, and 
produces him.  Sir Leicester receives that ferruginous person 
graciously.

"I hope you are well, Mr. Rouncewell.  Be seated.  (My solicitor, 
Mr. Tulkinghorn.)  My Lady was desirous, Mr. Rouncewell," Sir 
Leicester skilfully transfers him with a solemn wave of his hand, 
"was desirous to speak with you.  Hem!"

"I shall be very happy," returns the iron gentleman, "to give my 
best attention to anything Lady Dedlock does me the honour to say."

As he turns towards her, he finds that the impression she makes 
upon him is less agreeable than on the former occasion.  A distant 
supercilious air makes a cold atmosphere about her, and there is 
nothing in her bearing, as there was before, to encourage openness.

"Pray, sir," says Lady Dedlock listlessly, "may I be allowed to 
inquire whether anything has passed between you and your son 
respecting your son's fancy?"

It is almost too troublesome to her languid eyes to bestow a look 
upon him as she asks this question.

"If my memory serves me, Lady Dedlock, I said, when I had the 
pleasure of seeing you before, that I should seriously advise my 
son to conquer that--fancy."  The ironmaster repeats her expression 
with a little emphasis.

"And did you?"

"Oh! Of course I did."

Sir Leicester gives a nod, approving and confirmatory.  Very 
proper.  The iron gentleman, having said that he would do it, was 
bound to do it.  No difference in this respect between the base 
metals and the precious.  Highly proper.

"And pray has he done so?"

"Really, Lady Dedlock, I cannot make you a definite reply.  I fear 
not.  Probably not yet.  In our condition of life, we sometimes 
couple an intention with our--our fancies which renders them not 
altogether easy to throw off.  I think it is rather our way to be 
in earnest."

Sir Leicester has a misgiving that there may be a hidden Wat 
Tylerish meaning in this expression, and fumes a little.  Mr. 
Rouncewell is perfectly good-humoured and polite, but within such 
limits, evidently adapts his tone to his reception.

"Because," proceeds my Lady, "I have been thinking of the subject, 
which is tiresome to me."

"I am very sorry, I am sure."

"And also of what Sir Leicester said upon it, in which I quite 
concur"--Sir Leicester flattered--"and if you cannot give us the 
assurance that this fancy is at an end, I have come to the 
conclusion that the girl had better leave me."

"I can give no such assurance, Lady Dedlock.  Nothing of the kind."

"Then she had better go."

"Excuse me, my Lady," Sir Leicester considerately interposes, "but 
perhaps this may be doing an injury to the young woman which she 
has not merited.  Here is a young woman," says Sir Leicester, 
magnificently laying out the matter with his right hand like a 
service of plate, "whose good fortune it is to have attracted the 
notice and favour of an eminent lady and to live, under the 
protection of that eminent lady, surrounded by the various 
advantages which such a position confers, and which are 
unquestionably very great--I believe unquestionably very great, 
sir--for a young woman in that station of life.  The question then 
arises, should that young woman be deprived of these many 
advantages and that good fortune simply because she has"--Sir 
Leicester, with an apologetic but dignified inclination of his head 
towards the ironmaster, winds up his sentence--"has attracted the 
notice of Mr Rouncewell's son?  Now, has she deserved this 
punishment?  Is this just towards her?  Is this our previous 
understanding?"

"I beg your pardon," interposes Mr. Rouncewell's son's father.  
"Sir Leicester, will you allow me?  I think I may shorten the 
subject.  Pray dismiss that from your consideration.  If you 
remember anything so unimportant--which is not to be expected--you 
would recollect that my first thought in the affair was directly 
opposed to her remaining here."

Dismiss the Dedlock patronage from consideration?  Oh! Sir 
Leicester is bound to believe a pair of ears that have been handed 
down to him through such a family, or he really might have 
mistrusted their report of the iron gentleman's observations.

"It is not necessary," observes my Lady in her coldest manner 
before he can do anything but breathe amazedly, "to enter into 
these matters on either side.  The girl is a very good girl; I have 
nothing whatever to say against her, but she is so far insensible 
to her many advantages and her good fortune that she is in love--or 
supposes she is, poor little fool--and unable to appreciate them."

Sir Leicester begs to observe that wholly alters the case.  He 
might have been sure that my Lady had the best grounds and reasons 
in support of her view.  He entirely agrees with my Lady.  The 
young woman had better go.

"As Sir Leicester observed, Mr. Rouncewell, on the last occasion 
when we were fatigued by this business," Lady Dedlock languidly 
proceeds, "we cannot make conditions with you.  Without conditions, 
and under present circumstances, the girl is quite misplaced here 
and had better go.  I have told her so.  Would you wish to have her 
sent back to the village, or would you like to take her with you, 
or what would you prefer?"

"Lady Dedlock, if I may speak plainly--"

"By all means."

"--I should prefer the course which will the soonest relieve you of 
the incumbrance and remove her from her present position."

"And to speak as plainly," she returns with the same studied 
carelessness, "so should I.  Do I understand that you will take her 
with you?"

The iron gentleman makes an iron bow.

"Sir Leicester, will you ring?"  Mr. Tulkinghorn steps forward from 
his window and pulls the bell.  "I had forgotten you.  Thank you."  
He makes his usual bow and goes quietly back again.  Mercury, 
swift-responsive, appears, receives instructions whom to produce, 
skims away, produces the aforesaid, and departs.

Rosa has been crying and is yet in distress.  On her coming in, the 
ironmaster leaves his chair, takes her arm in his, and remains with 
her near the door ready to depart.

"You are taken charge of, you see," says my Lady in her weary 
manner, "and are going away well protected.  I have mentioned that 
you are a very good girl, and you have nothing to cry for."

"She seems after all," observes Mr. Tulkinghorn, loitering a little 
forward with his hands behind him, "as if she were crying at going 
away."

"Why, she is not well-bred, you see," returns Mr. Rouncewell with 
some quickness in his manner, as if he were glad to have the lawyer 
to retort upon, "and she is an inexperienced little thing and knows 
no better.  If she had remained here, sir, she would have improved, 
no doubt."

"No doubt," is Mr. Tulkinghorn's composed reply.

Rosa sobs out that she is very sorry to leave my Lady, and that she 
was happy at Chesney Wold, and has been happy with my Lady, and 
that she thanks my Lady over and over again.  "Out, you silly 
little puss!" says the ironmaster, checking her in a low voice, 
though not angrily.  "Have a spirit, if you're fond of Watt!"  My 
Lady merely waves her off with indifference, saying, "There, there, 
child!  You are a good girl.  Go away!"  Sir Leicester has 
magnificently disengaged himself from the subject and retired into 
the sanctuary of his blue coat.  Mr. Tulkinghorn, an indistinct 
form against the dark street now dotted with lamps, looms in my 
Lady's view, bigger and blacker than before.

"Sir Leicester and Lady Dedlock," says Mr. Rouncewell after a pause 
of a few moments, "I beg to take my leave, with an apology for 
having again troubled you, though not of my own act, on this 
tiresome subject.  I can very well understand, I assure you, how 
tiresome so small a matter must have become to Lady Dedlock.  If I 
am doubtful of my dealing with it, it is only because I did not at 
first quietly exert my influence to take my young friend here away 
without troubling you at all.  But it appeared to me--I dare say 
magnifying the importance of the thing--that it was respectful to 
explain to you how the matter stood and candid to consult your 
wishes and convenience.  I hope you will excuse my want of 
acquaintance with the polite world."

Sir Leicester considers himself evoked out of the sanctuary by 
these remarks.  "Mr. Rouncewell," he returns, "do not menfion it.  
Justifications are unnecessary, I hope, on either side."

"I am glad to hear it, Sir Leicester; and if I may, by way of a 
last word, revert to what I said before of my mother's long 
connexion with the family and the worth it bespeaks on both sides, 
I would point out this little instance here on my arm who shows 
herself so affectionate and faithful in parting and in whom my 
mother, I dare say, has done something to awaken such feelings--
though of course Lady Dedlock, by her heartfelt interest and her 
genial condescension, has done much more.

If he mean this ironically, it may be truer than he thinks.  He 
points it, however, by no deviation from his straightforward manner 
of speech, though in saying it he turns towards that part of the 
dim room where my Lady sits.  Sir Leicester stands to return his 
parting salutation, Mr. Tulkinghorn again rings, Mercury takes 
another flight, and Mr. Rouncewell and Rosa leave the house.

Then lights are brought in, discovering Mr. Tulkinghorn still 
standing in his window with his hands behind him and my Lady still 
sitting with his figure before her, closing up her view of the 
night as well as of the day.  She is very pale.  Mr. Tulkinghorn, 
observing it as she rises to retire, thinks, "Well she may be!  The 
power of this woman is astonishing.  She has been acting a part the 
whole time."  But he can act a part too--his one unchanging 
character--and as he holds the door open for this woman, fifty 
pairs of eyes, each fifty times sharper than Sir Leicester's pair, 
should find no flaw in him.

Lady Dedlock dines alone in her own room to-day.  Sir Leicester is 
whipped in to the rescue of the Doodle Party and the discomfiture 
of the Coodle Faction.  Lady Dedlock asks on sitting down to 
dinner, still deadly pale (and quite an illustration of the 
debilitated cousin's text), whether he is gone out?  Yes.  Whether 
Mr. Tulkinghorn is gone yet?  No.  Presently she asks again, is he 
gone YET?  No.  What is he doing?  Mercury thinks he is writing 
letters in the library.  Would my Lady wish to see him?  Anything 
but that.

But he wishes to see my Lady.  Within a few more minutes he is 
reported as sending his respects, and could my Lady please to 
receive him for a word or two after her dinner?  My Lady will 
receive him now.  He comes now, apologizing for intruding, even by 
her permission, while she is at table.  When they are alone, my 
Lady waves her hand to dispense with such mockeries.

"What do you want, sir?"

"Why, Lady Dedlock," says the lawyer, taking a chair at a little 
distance from her and slowly rubbing his rusty legs up and down, up 
and down, up and down, "I am rather surprised by the course you 
have taken."

"Indeed?"

"Yes, decidedly.  I was not prepared for it.  I consider it a 
departure from our agreement and your promise.  It puts us in a new 
position, Lady Dedlock.  I feel myself under the necessity of 
saying that I don't approve of it."

He stops in his rubbing and looks at her, with his hands on his 
knees.  Imperturbable and unchangeable as he is, there is still an 
indefinable freedom in his manner which is new and which does not 
escape this woman's observation.

"I do not quite understand you."

"Oh, yes you do, I think.  I think you do.  Come, come, Lady 
Dedlock, we must not fence and parry now.  You know you like this 
girl."

"Well, sir?"

"And you know--and I know--that you have not sent her away for the 
reasons you have assigned, but for the purpose of separating her as 
much as possible from--excuse my mentioning it as a matter of 
business--any reproach and exposure that impend over yourself."

"Well, sir?"

"Well, Lady Dedlock," returns the lawyer, crossing his legs and 
nursing the uppermost knee.  "I object to that.  I consider that a 
dangerous proceeding.  I know it to be unnecessary and calculated 
to awaken speculation, doubt, rumour, I don't know what, in the 
house.  Besides, it is a violation of our agreement.  You were to 
be exactly what you were before.  Whereas, it must be evident to 
yourself, as it is to me, that you have been this evening very 
different from what you were before.  Why, bless my soul, Lady 
Dedlock, transparenfly so!"

"If, sir," she begins, "in my knowledge of my secret--"  But he 
interrupts her.

"Now, Lady Dedlock, this is a matter of business, and in a matter 
of business the ground cannot be kept too clear.  It is no longer 
your secret.  Excuse me.  That is just the mistake.  It is my 
secret, in trust for Sir Leicester and the family.  If it were your 
secret, Lady Dedlock, we should not be here holding this 
conversation."

"That is very true.  If in my knowledge of THE secret I do what I 
can to spare an innocent girl (especially, remembering your own 
reference to her when you told my story to the assembled guests at 
Chesney Wold) from the taint of my impending shame, I act upon a 
resolution I have taken.  Nothing in the world, and no one in the 
world, could shake it or could move me."  This she says with great 
deliberation and distinctness and with no more outward passion than 
himself.  As for him, he methodically discusses his matter of 
business as if she were any insensible instrument used in business.

"Really?  Then you see, Lady Dedlock," he returns, "you are not to 
be trusted.  You have put the case in a perfecfly plain way, and 
according to the literal fact; and that being the case, you are not 
to be trusted."

"Perhaps you may remember that I expressed some anxiety on this 
same point when we spoke at night at Chesney Wold?"

"Yes," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, coolly getting up and standing on the 
hearth.  "Yes.  I recollect, Lady Dedlock, that you certainly 
referred to the girl, but that was before we came to our 
arrangement, and both the letter and the spirit of our arrangement 
altogether precluded any action on your part founded upon my 
discovery.  There can be no doubt about that.  As to sparing the 
girl, of what importance or value is she?  Spare!  Lady Dedlock, 
here is a family name compromised.  One might have supposed that 
the course was straight on--over everything, neither to the right 
nor to the left, regardless of all considerations in the way, 
sparing nothing, treading everything under foot."

She has been looking at the table.  She lifts up her eyes and looks 
at him.  There is a stern expression on her face and a part of her 
lower lip is compressed under her teeth.  "This woman understands 
me," Mr. Tulkinghorn thinks as she lets her glance fall again.  
"SHE cannot be spared.  Why should she spare others?"

For a little while they are silent.  Lady Dedlock has eaten no 
dinner, but has twice or thrice poured out water with a steady hand 
and drunk it.  She rises from table, takes a lounging-chair, and 
reclines in it, shading her face.  There is nothing in her manner 
to express weakness or excite compassion.  It is thoughtful, 
gloomy, concentrated.  "This woman," thinks Mr. Tulkinghorn, 
standing on the hearth, again a dark object closing up her view, 
"is a study."

He studies her at his leisure, not speaking for a time.  She too 
studies something at her leisure.  She is not the first to speak, 
appearing indeed so unlikely to be so, though he stood there until 
midnight, that even he is driven upon breaking silence.

"Lady Dedlock, the most disagreeable part of this business 
interview remains, but it is business.  Our agreement is broken.  A 
lady of your sense and strength of character will be prepared for 
my now declaring it void and taking my own course."

"I am quite prepared."

Mr. Tulkinghorn inclines his head.  "That is all I have to trouble 
you with, Lady Dedlock."

She stops him as he is moving out of the room by asking, "This is 
the notice I was to receive?  I wish not to misapprehend you."

"Not exactly the notice you were to receive, Lady Dedlock, because 
the contemplated notice supposed the agreement to have been 
observed.  But virtually the same, virtually the same.  The 
difference is merely in a lawyer's mind."

"You intend to give me no other notice?"

"You are right.  No."

"Do you contemplate undeceiving Sir Leicester to-night?"

"A home question!" says Mr. Tulkinghorn with a slight smile and 
cautiously shaking his head at the shaded face.  "No, not to-
night."

"To-morrow?"

"All things considered, I had better decline answering that 
question, Lady Dedlock.  If I were to say I don't know when, 
exactly, you would not believe me, and it would answer no purpose.  
It may be to-morrow.  I would rather say no more.  You are 
prepared, and I hold out no expectations which circumstances might 
fail to justify.  I wish you good evening."

She removes her hand, turns her pale face towards him as he walks 
silently to the door, and stops him once again as he is about to 
open it.

"Do you intend to remain in the house any time?  I heard you were 
writing in the library.  Are you going to return there?"

"Only for my hat.  I am going home."

She bows her eyes rather than her head, the movement is so slight 
and curious, and he withdraws.  Clear of the room he looks at his 
watch but is inclined to doubt it by a minute or thereabouts.  
There is a splendid clock upon the staircase, famous, as splendid 
clocks not often are, for its accuracy.  "And what do YOU say," Mr. 
Tulkinghorn inquires, referring to it.  "What do you say?"

If it said now, "Don't go home!"  What a famous clock, hereafter, 
if it said to-night of all the nights that it has counted off, to 
this old man of all the young and old men who have ever stood 
before it, "Don't go home!"  With its sharp clear bell it strikes 
three quarters after seven and ticks on again.  "Why, you are worse 
than I thought you," says Mr. Tulkinghorn, muttering reproof to his 
watch.  "Two minutes wrong?  At this rate you won't last my time."  
What a watch to return good for evil if it ticked in answer, "Don't 
go home!"

He passes out into the streets and walks on, with his hands behind 
him, under the shadow of the lofty houses, many of whose mysteries, 
difficulties, mortgages, delicate affairs of all kinds, are 
treasured up within his old black satin waistcoat.  He is in the 
confidence of the very bricks and mortar.  The high chimney-stacks 
telegraph family secrets to him.  Yet there is not a voice in a 
mile of them to whisper, "Don't go home!"

Through the stir and motion of the commoner streets; through the 
roar and jar of many vehicles, many feet, many voices; with the 
blazing shop-lights lighting him on, the west wind blowing him on, 
and the crowd pressing him on, he is pitilessly urged upon his way, 
and nothing meets him murmuring, "Don't go home!"  Arrived at last 
in his dull room to light his candles, and look round and up, and 
see the Roman pointing from the ceiling, there is no new 
significance in the Roman's hand to-night or in the flutter of the 
attendant groups to give him the late warning, "Don't come here!"

It is a moonlight night, but the moon, being past the full, is only 
now rising over the great wilderness of London.  The stars are 
shining as they shone above the turret-leads at Chesney Wold.  This 
woman, as he has of late been so accustomed to call her, looks out 
upon them.  Her soul is turbulent within her; she is sick at heart 
and restless.  The large rooms are too cramped and close.  She 
cannot endure their restraint and will walk alone in a neighbouring 
garden.

Too capricious and imperious in all she does to be the cause of 
much surprise in those about her as to anything she does, this 
woman, loosely muffled, goes out into the moonlight.  Mercury 
attends with the key.  Having opened the garden-gate, he delivers 
the key into his Lady's hands at her request and is bidden to go 
back.  She will walk there some time to ease her aching head.  She 
may be an hour, she may be more.  She needs no further escort.  The 
gate shuts upon its spring with a clash, and he leaves her passing 
on into the dark shade of some trees.

A fine night, and a bright large moon, and multitudes of stars.  
Mr. Tulkinghorn, in repairing to his cellar and in opening and 
shutting those resounding doors, has to cross a little prison-like 
yard.  He looks up casually, thinking what a fine night, what a 
bright large moon, what multitudes of stars!  A quiet night, too.

A very quiet night.  When the moon shines very brilliantly, a 
solitude and stillness seem to proceed from her that influence even 
crowded places full of life.  Not only is it a still night on dusty 
high roads and on hill-summits, whence a wide expanse of country 
may be seen in repose, quieter and quieter as it spreads away into 
a fringe of trees against the sky with the grey ghost of a bloom 
upon them; not only is it a still night in gardens and in woods, 
and on the river where the water-meadows are fresh and green, and 
the stream sparkles on among pleasant islands, murmuring weirs, and 
whispering rushes; not only does the stillness attend it as it 
flows where houses cluster thick, where many bridges are reflected 
in it, where wharves and shipping make it black and awful, where it 
winds from these disfigurements through marshes whose grim beacons 
stand like skeletons washed ashore, where it expands through the 
bolder region of rising grounds, rich in cornfield wind-mill and 
steeple, and where it mingles with the ever-heaving sea; not only 
is it a still night on the deep, and on the shore where the watcher 
stands to see the ship with her spread wings cross the path of 
light that appears to be presented to only him; but even on this 
stranger's wilderness of London there is some rest.  Its steeples 
and towers and its one great dome grow more ethereal; its smoky 
house-tops lose their grossness in the pale effulgence; the noises 
that arise from the streets are fewer and are softened, and the 
footsteps on the pavements pass more tranquilly away.  In these 
fields of Mr. Tulkinghorn's inhabiting, where the shepherds play on 
Chancery pipes that have no stop, and keep their sheep in the fold 
by hook and by crook until they have shorn them exceeding close, 
every noise is merged, this moonlight night, into a distant ringing 
hum, as if the city were a vast glass, vibrating.

What's that?  Who fired a gun or pistol?  Where was it?

The few foot-passengers start, stop, and stare about them.  Some 
windows and doors are opened, and people come out to look.  It was 
a loud report and echoed and rattled heavily.  It shook one house, 
or so a man says who was passing.  It has aroused all the dogs in 
the neighbourhood, who bark vehemently.  Terrified cats scamper 
across the road.  While the dogs are yet barking and howling--there 
is one dog howling like a demon--the church-clocks, as if they were 
startled too, begin to strike.  The hum from the streets, likewise, 
seems to swell into a shout.  But it is soon over.  Before the last 
clock begins to strike ten, there is a lull.  When it has ceased, 
the fine night, the bright large moon, and multitudes of stars, are 
left at peace again.

Has Mr. Tulkinghorn been disturbed?  His windows are dark and 
quiet, and his door is shut.  It must be something unusual indeed 
to bring him out of his shell.  Nothing is heard of him, nothing is 
seen of him.  What power of cannon might it take to shake that 
rusty old man out of his immovable composure?

For many years the persistent Roman has been pointing, with no 
particular meaning, from that ceiling.  It is not likely that he 
has any new meaning in him to-night.  Once pointing, always 
pointing--like any Roman, or even Briton, with a single idea.  
There he is, no doubt, in his impossible attitude, pointing, 
unavailingly, all night long.  Moonlight, darkness, dawn, sunrise, 
day.  There he is still, eagerly pointing, and no one minds him.

But a little after the coming of the day come people to clean the 
rooms.  And either the Roman has some new meaning in him, not 
expressed before, or the foremost of them goes wild, for looking up 
at his outstretched hand and looking down at what is below it, that 
person shrieks and flies.  The others, looking in as the first one 
looked, shriek and fly too, and there is an alarm in the street.

What does it mean?  No light is admitted into the darkened chamber, 
and people unaccustomed to it enter, and treading softly but 
heavily, carry a weight into the bedroom and lay it down.  There is 
whispering and wondering all day, strict search of every corner, 
careful tracing of steps, and careful noting of the disposition of 
every article of furniture.  All eyes look up at the Roman, and all 
voices murmur, "If he could only tell what he saw!"

He is pointing at a table with a bottle (nearly full of wine) and a 
glass upon it and two candles that were blown out suddenly soon 
after being lighted.  He is pointing at an empty chair and at a 
stain upon the ground before it that might be almost covered with a 
hand.  These objects lie directly within his range.  An excited 
imagination might suppose that there was something in them so 
terrific as to drive the rest of the composition, not only the 
attendant big-legged boys, but the clouds and flowers and pillars 
too--in short, the very body and soul of Allegory, and all the 
brains it has--stark mad.  It happens surely that every one who 
comes into the darkened room and looks at these things looks up at 
the Roman and that he is invested in all eyes with mystery and awe, 
as if he were a paralysed dumb witness.

So it shall happen surely, through many years to come, that ghostly 
stories shall be told of the stain upon the floor, so easy to be 
covered, so hard to be got out, and that the Roman, pointing from 
the ceiling shall point, so long as dust and damp and spiders spare 
him, with far greater significance than he ever had in Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's time, and with a deadly meaning.  For Mr. 
Tulkinghorn's time is over for evermore, and the Roman pointed at 
the murderous hand uplifted against his life, and pointed 
helplessly at him, from night to morning, lying face downward on 
the floor, shot through the heart.



CHAPTER XLIX

Dutiful Friendship


A great annual occasion has come round in the establishment of Mr. 
Matthew Bagnet, otherwise Lignum Vitae, ex-artilleryman and present 
bassoon-player.  An occasion of feasting and festival.  The 
celebration of a birthday in the family.

It is not Mr. Bagnet's birthday.  Mr. Bagnet merely distinguishes 
that epoch in the musical instrument business by kissing the 
children with an extra smack before breakfast, smoking an 
additional pipe after dinner, and wondering towards evening what 
his poor old mother is thinking about it--a subject of infinite 
speculation, and rendered so by his mother having departed this 
life twenty years.  Some men rarely revert to their father, but 
seem, in the bank-books of their remembrance, to have transferred 
all the stock of filial affection into their mother's name.  Mr. 
Bagnet is one of like his trade the better for that.  If I had kept 
clear of his old girl causes him usually to make the noun-
substantive "goodness" of the feminine gender.

It is not the birthday of one of the three children.  Those 
occasions are kept with some marks of distinction, but they rarely 
overleap the bounds of happy returns and a pudding.  On young 
Woolwich's last birthday, Mr. Bagnet certainly did, after observing 
on his growth and general advancement, proceed, in a moment of 
profound reflection on the changes wrought by time, to examine him 
in the catechism, accomplishing with extreme accuracy the questions 
number one and two, "What is your name?" and "Who gave you that 
name?" but there failing in the exact precision of his memory and 
substituting for number three the question "And how do you like 
that name?" which he propounded with a sense of its importance, in 
itself so edifying and improving as to give it quite an orthodox 
air.  This, however, was a speciality on that particular birthday, 
and not a general solemnity.

It is the old girl's birthday, and that is the greatest holiday and 
reddest-letter day in Mr. Bagnet's calendar.  The auspicious event 
is always commemorated according to certain forms settled and 
prescribed by Mr. Bagnet some years since.  Mr. Bagnet, being 
deeply convinced that to have a pair of fowls for dinner is to 
attain the highest pitch of imperial luxury, invariably goes forth 
himself very early in the morning of this day to buy a pair; he is, 
as invariably, taken in by the vendor and installed in the 
possession of the oldest inhabitants of any coop in Europe.  
Returning with these triumphs of toughness tied up in a clean blue 
and white cotton handkerchief (essential to the arrangements), he 
in a casual manner invites Mrs. Bagnet to declare at breakfast what 
she would like for dinner.  Mrs. Bagnet, by a coincidence never 
known to fail, replying fowls, Mr. Bagnet instantly produces his 
bundle from a place of concealment amidst general amazement and 
rejoicing.  He further requires that the old girl shall do nothing 
all day long but sit in her very best gown and be served by himself 
and the young people.  As he is not illustrious for his cookery, 
this may be supposed to be a matter of state rather than enjoyment 
on the old girl's part, but she keeps her state with all imaginable 
cheerfulness.

On this present birthday, Mr. Bagnet has accomplished the usual 
preliminaries.  He has bought two specimens of poultry, which, if 
there be any truth in adages, were certainly not caught with chaff, 
to be prepared for the spit; he has amazed and rejoiced the family 
by their unlooked-for production; he is himself directing the 
roasting of the poultry; and Mrs. Bagnet, with her wholesome brown 
fingers itching to prevent what she sees going wrong, sits in her 
gown of ceremony, an honoured guest.

Quebec and Malta lay the cloth for dinner, while Woolwich, serving, 
as beseems him, under his father, keeps the fowls revolving.  To 
these young scullions Mrs. Bagnet occasionally imparts a wink, or a 
shake of the head, or a crooked face, as they made mistakes.

"At half after one."  Says Mr. Bagnet.  "To the minute.  They'll be 
done."

Mrs. Bagnet, with anguish, beholds one of them at a standstill 
before the fire and beginning to burn.

"You shall have a dinner, old girl," says Mr. Bagnet.  "Fit for a 
queen."

Mrs. Bagnet shows her white teeth cheerfully, but to the perception 
of her son, betrays so much uneasiness of spirit that he is 
impelled by the dictates of affection to ask her, with his eyes, 
what is the matter, thus standing, with his eyes wide open, more 
oblivious of the fowls than before, and not affording the least 
hope of a return to consciousness.  Fortunately his elder sister 
perceives the cause of the agitation in Mrs. Bagnet's breast and 
with an admonitory poke recalls him.  The stopped fowls going round 
again, Mrs. Bagnet closes her eyes in the intensity of her relief.

"George will look us up," says Mr. Bagnet.  "At half after four.  
To the moment.  How many years, old girl.  Has George looked us up.  
This afternoon?"

"Ah, Lignum, Lignum, as many as make an old woman of a young one, I 
begin to think.  Just about that, and no less," returns Mrs. 
Bagnet, laughing and shaking her head.

"Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet, "never mind.  You'd be as young as 
ever you was.  If you wasn't younger.  Which you are.  As everybody 
knows."

Quebec and Malta here exclaim, with clapping of hands, that Bluffy 
is sure to bring mother something, and begin to speculate on what 
it will be.

"Do you know, Lignum," says Mrs. Bagnet, casting a glance on the 
table-cloth, and winking "salt!" at Malta with her right eye, and 
shaking the pepper away from Quebec with her head, "I begin to 
think George is in the roving way again.

"George," returns Mr. Bagnet, "will never desert.  And leave his 
old comrade.  In the lurch.  Don't be afraid of it."

"No, Lignum.  No.  I don't say he will.  I don't think he will.  
But if he could get over this money trouble of his, I believe he 
would be off."

Mr. Bagnet asks why.

"Well," returns his wife, considering, "George seems to me to be 
getting not a little impatient and restless.  I don't say but what 
he's as free as ever.  Of course he must be free or he wouldn't be 
George, but he smarts and seems put out."

"He's extra-drilled," says Mr. Bagnet.  "By a lawyer.  Who would 
put the devil out."

"There's something in that," his wife assents; "but so it is, 
Lignum."

Further conversation is prevented, for the time, by the necessity 
under which Mr. Bagnet finds himself of directing the whole force 
of his mind to the dinner, which is a little endangered by the dry 
humour of the fowls in not yielding any gravy, and also by the made 
gravy acquiring no flavour and turning out of a flaxen complexion.  
With a similar perverseness, the potatoes crumble off forks in the 
process of peeling, upheaving from their centres in every 
direction, as if they were subject to earthquakes.  The legs of the 
fowls, too, are longer than could be desired, and extremely scaly.  
Overcoming these disadvantages to the best of his ability, Mr. 
Bagnet at last dishes and they sit down at table, Mrs. Bagnet 
occupying the guest's place at his right hand.

It is well for the old girl that she has but one birthday in a 
year, for two such indulgences in poultry might be injurious.  
Every kind of finer tendon and ligament that is in the nature of 
poultry to possess is developed in these specimens in the singular 
form of guitar-strings.  Their limbs appear to have struck roots 
into their breasts and bodies, as aged trees strike roots into the 
earth.  Their legs are so hard as to encourage the idea that they 
must have devoted the greater part of their long and arduous lives 
to pedestrian exercises and the walking of matches.  But Mr. 
Bagnet, unconscious of these little defects, sets his heart on Mrs. 
Bagnet eating a most severe quantity of the delicacies before her; 
and as that good old girl would not cause him a moment's 
disappointment on any day, least of all on such a day, for any 
consideration, she imperils her digestion fearfully.  How young 
Woolwich cleans the drum-sticks without being of ostrich descent, 
his anxious mother is at a loss to understand.

The old girl has another trial to undergo after the conclusion of 
the repast in sitting in state to see the room cleared, the hearth 
swept, and the dinner-service washed up and polished in the 
backyard.  The great delight and energy with which the two young 
ladies apply themselves to these duties, turning up their skirts in 
imitation of their mother and skating in and out on little 
scaffolds of pattens, inspire the highest hopes for the future, but 
some anxiety for the present.  The same causes lead to confusion of 
tongues, a clattering of crockery, a rattling of tin mugs, a 
whisking of brooms, and an expenditure of water, all in excess, 
while the saturation of the young ladies themselves is almost too 
moving a spectacle for Mrs. Bagnet to look upon with the calmness 
proper to her position.  At last the various cleansing processes 
are triumphantly completed; Quebec and Malta appear in fresh 
attire, smiling and dry; pipes, tobacco, and something to drink are 
placed upon the table; and the old girl enjoys the first peace of 
mind she ever knows on the day of this delightful entertainment.

When Mr. Bagnet takes his usual seat, the hands of the clock are 
very near to half-past four; as they mark it accurately, Mr. Bagnet 
announces, "George!  Military time."

It is George, and he has hearty congratulations for the old girl 
(whom he kisses on the great occasion), and for the children, and 
for Mr. Bagnet.  "Happy returns to all!" says Mr. George.

"But, George, old man!" cries Mrs. Bagnet, looking at him 
curiously.  "What's come to you?"

"Come to me?"

"Ah! You are so white, George--for you--and look so shocked.  Now 
don't he, Lignum?"

"George," says Mr. Bagnet, "tell the old girl.  What's the matter."

"I didn't know I looked white," says the trooper, passing his hand 
over his brow, "and I didn't know I looked shocked, and I'm sorry I 
do.  But the truth is, that boy who was taken in at my place died 
yesterday afternoon, and it has rather knocked me over."

"Poor creetur!" says Mrs. Bagnet with a mother's pity.  "Is he 
gone?  Dear, dear!"

"I didn't mean to say anything about it, for it's not birthday 
talk, but you have got it out of me, you see, before I sit down.  I 
should have roused up in a minute," says the trooper, making 
himself speak more gaily, "but you're so quick, Mrs. Bagnet."

"You're right.  The old girl," says Mr. Bagnet.  "Is as quick.  As 
powder."

"And what's more, she's the subject of the day, and we'll stick to 
her," cries Mr. George.  "See here, I have brought a little brooch 
along with me.  It's a poor thing, you know, but it's a keepsake.  
That's all the good it is, Mrs. Bagnet."

Mr. George produces his present, which is greeted with admiring 
leapings and clappings by the young family, and with a species of 
reverential admiration by Mr. Bagnet.  "Old girl," says Mr. Bagnet.  
"Tell him my opinion of it."

"Why, it's a wonder, George!" Mrs. Bagnet exclaims.  "It's the 
beautifullest thing that ever was seen!"

"Good!" says Mr. Bagnet.  "My opinion."

"It's so pretty, George," cries Mrs. Bagnet, turning it on all 
sides and holding it out at arm's length, "that it seems too choice 
for me."

"Bad!" says Mr. Bagnet.  "Not my opinlon."

"But whatever it is, a hundred thousand thanks, old fellow," says 
Mrs. Bagnet, her eyes sparkling with pleasure and her hand 
stretched out to him; "and though I have been a crossgrained 
soldier's wife to you sometimes, George, we are as strong friends, 
I am sure, in reality, as ever can be.  Now you shall fasten it on 
yourself, for good luck, if you will, George."

The children close up to see it done, and Mr. Bagnet looks over 
young Woolwich's head to see it done with an interest so maturely 
wooden, yet pleasantly childish, that Mrs. Bagnet cannot help 
laughing in her airy way and saying, "Oh, Lignum, Lignum, what a 
precious old chap you are!"  But the trooper fails to fasten the 
brooch.  His hand shakes, he is nervous, and it falls off.  "Would 
any one believe this?" says he, catching it as it drops and looking 
round.  "I am so out of sorts that I bungle at an easy job like 
this!"

Mrs. Bagnet concludes that for such a case there is no remedy like 
a pipe, and fastening the brooch herself in a twinkling, causes the 
trooper to be inducted into his usual snug place and the pipes to 
be got into action.  "If that don't bring you round, George," says 
she, "just throw your eye across here at your present now and then, 
and the two together MUST do it."

"You ought to do it of yourself," George answers; "I know that very 
well, Mrs. Bagnet.  I'll tell you how, one way and another, the 
blues have got to be too many for me.  Here was this poor lad.  
'Twas dull work to see him dying as he did, and not be able to help 
him."

"What do you mean, George?  You did help him.  You took him under 
your roof."

"I helped him so far, but that's little.  I mean, Mrs. Bagnet, 
there he was, dying without ever having been taught much more than 
to know his right hand from his left.  And he was too far gone to 
be helped out of that."

"Ah, poor creetur!" says Mrs. Bagnet.

"Then," says the trooper, not yet lighting his pipe, and passing 
his heavy hand over his hair, "that brought up Gridley in a man's 
mind.  His was a bad case too, in a different way.  Then the two 
got mixed up in a man's mind with a flinty old rascal who had to do 
with both.  And to think of that rusty carbine, stock and barrel, 
standing up on end in his corner, hard, indifferent, taking 
everything so evenly--it made flesh and blood tingle, I do assure 
you."

"My advice to you," returns Mrs. Bagnet, "is to light your pipe and 
tingle that way.  It's wholesomer and comfortabler, and better for 
the health altogether."

"You're right," says the trooper, "and I'll do it."

So he does it, though still with an indignant gravity that 
impresses the young Bagnets, and even causes Mr. Bagnet to defer 
the ceremony of drinking Mrs. Bagnet's health, always given by 
himself on these occasions in a speech of exemplary terseness.  But 
the young ladies having composed what Mr. Bagnet is in the habit of 
calling "the mixtur," and George's pipe being now in a glow, Mr. 
Bagnet considers it his duty to proceed to the toast of the 
evening.  He addresses the assembled company in the following 
terms.

"George.  Woolwich.  Quebec.  Malta.  This is her birthday.  Take a 
day's march.  And you won't find such another.  Here's towards 
her!"

The toast having been drunk with enthusiasm, Mrs. Bagnet returns 
thanks in a neat address of corresponding brevity.  This model 
composition is limited to the three words "And wishing yours!" 
which the old girl follows up with a nod at everybody in succession 
and a well-regulated swig of the mixture.  This she again follows 
up, on the present occasion, by the wholly unexpected exclamation, 
"Here's a man!"

Here IS a man, much to the astonishment of the little company, 
looking in at the parlour-door.  He is a sharp-eyed man--a quick 
keen man--and he takes in everybody's look at him, all at once, 
individually and collectively, in a manner that stamps him a 
remarkable man.

"George," says the man, nodding, "how do you find yourself?"

"Why, it's Bucket!" cries Mr. George.

"Yes," says the man, coming in and closing the door.  "I was going 
down the street here when I happened to stop and look in at the 
musical instruments in the shop-window--a friend of mine is in want 
of a second-hand wiolinceller of a good tone--and I saw a party 
enjoying themselves, and I thought it was you in the corner; I 
thought I couldn't be mistaken.  How goes the world with you, 
George, at the present moment?  Pretty smooth?  And with you, 
ma'am?  And with you, governor?  And Lord," says Mr. Bucket, 
opening his arms, "here's children too!  You may do anything with 
me if you only show me children.  Give us a kiss, my pets.  No 
occasion to inquire who YOUR father and mother is.  Never saw such 
a likeness in my life!"

Mr. Bucket, not unwelcome, has sat himself down next to Mr. George 
and taken Quebec and Malta on his knees.  "You pretty dears," says 
Mr. Bucket, "give us another kiss; it's the only thing I'm greedy 
in.  Lord bless you, how healthy you look!  And what may be the 
ages of these two, ma'am?  I should put 'em down at the figures of 
about eight and ten."

"You're very near, sir," says Mrs. Bagnet.

"I generally am near," returns Mr. Bucket, "being so fond of 
children.  A friend of mine has had nineteen of 'em, ma'am, all by 
one mother, and she's still as fresh and rosy as the morning.  Not 
so much so as yourself, but, upon my soul, she comes near you!  And 
what do you call these, my darling?" pursues Mr. Bucket, pinching 
Malta's cheeks.  "These are peaches, these are.  Bless your heart!  
And what do you think about father?  Do you think father could 
recommend a second-hand wiolinceller of a good tone for Mr. 
Bucket's friend, my dear?  My name's Bucket.  Ain't that a funny 
name?"

These blandishments have entirely won the family heart.  Mrs. 
Bagnet forgets the day to the extent of filling a pipe and a glass 
for Mr. Bucket and waiting upon him hospitably.  She would be glad 
to receive so pleasant a character under any circumstances, but she 
tells him that as a friend of George's she is particularly glad to 
see him this evening, for George has not been in his usual spirits.

"Not in his usual spirits?" exclaims Mr. Bucket.  "Why, I never 
heard of such a thing!  What's the matter, George?  You don't 
intend to tell me you've been out of spirits.  What should you be 
out of spirits for?  You haven't got anything on your mind, you 
know."

"Nothing particular," returns the trooper.

"I should think not," rejoins Mr. Bucket.  "What could you have on 
your mind, you know!  And have these pets got anything on THEIR 
minds, eh?  Not they, but they'll be upon the minds of some of the 
young fellows, some of these days, and make 'em precious low-
spirited.  I ain't much of a prophet, but I can tell you that, 
ma'am."

Mrs. Bagnet, quite charmed, hopes Mr. Bucket has a family of his 
own.

"There, ma'am!" says Mr. Bucket.  "Would you believe it?  No, I 
haven't.  My wife and a lodger constitute my family.  Mrs. Bucket 
is as fond of children as myself and as wishful to have 'em, but 
no.  So it is.  Worldly goods are divided unequally, and man must 
not repine.  What a very nice backyard, ma'am!  Any way out of that 
yard, now?"

There is no way out of that yard.

"Ain't there really?" says Mr. Bucket.  "I should have thought 
there might have been.  Well, I don't know as I ever saw a backyard 
that took my fancy more.  Would you allow me to look at it?  Thank 
you.  No, I see there's no way out.  But what a very good-
proportioned yard it is!"

Having cast his sharp eye all about it, Mr. Bucket returns to his 
chair next his friend Mr. George and pats Mr. George affectionately 
on the shoulder.

"How are your spirits now, George?"

"All right now," returns the trooper.

"That's your sort!" says Mr. Bucket.  "Why should you ever have 
been otherwise?  A man of your fine figure and constitution has no 
right to be out of spirits.  That ain't a chest to be out of 
spirits, is it, ma'am?  And you haven't got anything on your mind, 
you know, George; what could you have on your mind!"

Somewhat harping on this phrase, considering the extent and variety 
of his conversational powers, Mr. Bucket twice or thrice repeats it 
to the pipe he lights, and with a listening face that is 
particularly his own.  But the sun of his sociality soon recovers 
from this brief eclipse and shines again.

"And this is brother, is it, my dears?" says Mr. Bucket, referring 
to Quebec and Malta for information on the subject of young 
Woolwich.  "And a nice brother he is--half-brother I mean to say.  
For he's too old to be your boy, ma'am."

"I can certify at all events that he is not anybody else's," 
returns Mrs. Bagnet, laughing.

"Well, you do surprise me!  Yet he's like you, there's no denying.  
Lord, he's wonderfully like you!  But about what you may call the 
brow, you know, THERE his father comes out!"  Mr. Bucket compares 
the faces with one eye shut up, while Mr. Bagnet smokes in stolid 
satisfaction.

This is an opportunity for Mrs. Bagnet to inform him that the boy 
is George's godson.

"George's godson, is he?" rejoins Mr. Bucket with extreme 
cordiality.  "I must shake hands over again with George's godson.  
Godfather and godson do credit to one another.  And what do you 
intend to make of him, ma'am?  Does he show any turn for any 
musical instrument?"

Mr. Bagnet suddenly interposes, "Plays the fife.  Beautiful."

"Would you believe it, governor," says Mr. Bucket, struck by the 
coincidence, "that when I was a boy I played the fife myself?  Not 
in a scientific way, as I expect he does, but by ear.  Lord bless 
you!  'British Grenadiers'--there's a tune to warm an Englishman 
up!  COULD you give us 'British Grenadiers,' my fine fellow?"

Nothing could be more acceptable to the little circle than this 
call upon young Woolwich, who immediately fetches his fife and 
performs the stirring melody, during which performance Mr. Bucket, 
much enlivened, beats time and never falls to come in sharp with 
the burden, "British Gra-a-anadeers!"  In short, he shows so much 
musical taste that Mr. Bagnet actually takes his pipe from his lips 
to express his conviction that he is a singer.  Mr. Bucket receives 
the harmonious impeachment so modestly, confessing how that he did 
once chaunt a little, for the expression of the feelings of his own 
bosom, and with no presumptuous idea of entertaining his friends, 
that he is asked to sing.  Not to be behindhand in the sociality of 
the evening, he complies and gives them "Believe Me, if All Those 
Endearing Young Charms."  This ballad, he informs Mrs. Bagnet, he 
considers to have been his most powerful ally in moving the heart 
of Mrs. Bucket when a maiden, and inducing her to approach the 
altar--Mr. Bucket's own words are "to come up to the scratch."

This sparkling stranger is such a new and agreeable feature in the 
evening that Mr. George, who testified no great emotions of 
pleasure on his entrance, begins, in spite of himself, to be rather 
proud of him.  He is so friendly, is a man of so many resources, 
and so easy to get on with, that it is something to have made him 
known there.  Mr. Bagnet becomes, after another pipe, so sensible 
of the value of his acquaintance that he solicits the honour of his 
company on the old girl's next birthday.  If anything can more 
closely cement and consolidate the esteem which Mr. Bucket has 
formed for the family, it is the discovery of the nature of the 
occasion.  He drinks to Mrs. Bagnet with a warmth approaching to 
rapture, engages himself for that day twelvemonth more than 
thankfully, makes a memorandum of the day in a large black pocket-
book with a girdle to it, and breathes a hope that Mrs. Bucket and 
Mrs. Bagnet may before then become, in a manner, sisters.  As he 
says himself, what is public life without private ties?  He is in 
his humble way a public man, but it is not in that sphere that he 
finds happiness.  No, it must be sought within the confines of 
domestic bliss.

It is natural, under these circumstances, that he, in his turn, 
should remember the friend to whom he is indebted for so promising 
an acquaintance.  And he does.  He keeps very close to him.  
Whatever the subject of the conversation, he keeps a tender eye 
upon him.  He waits to walk home with him.  He is interested in his 
very boots and observes even them attentively as Mr. George sits 
smoking cross-legged in the chimney-corner.

At length Mr. George rises to depart.  At the same moment Mr. 
Bucket, with the secret sympathy of friendship, also rises.  He 
dotes upon the children to the last and remembers the commission he 
has undertaken for an absent friend.

"Respecting that second-hand wiolinceller, governor--could you 
recommend me such a thing?"

"Scores," says Mr. Bagnet.

"I am obliged to you," returns Mr. Bucket, squeezing his hand.  
"You're a friend in need.  A good tone, mind you!  My friend is a 
regular dab at it.  Ecod, he saws away at Mozart and Handel and the 
rest of the big-wigs like a thorough workman.  And you needn't," 
says Mr. Bucket in a considerate and private voice, "you needn't 
commit yourself to too low a figure, governor.  I don't want to pay 
too large a price for my friend, but I want you to have your proper 
percentage and be remunerated for your loss of time.  That is but 
fair.  Every man must live, and ought to it."

Mr. Bagnet shakes his head at the old girl to the effect that they 
have found a jewel of price.

"Suppose I was to give you a look in, say, at half arter ten to-
morrow morning.  Perhaps you could name the figures of a few 
wiolincellers of a good tone?" says Mr. Bucket.

Nothing easier.  Mr. and Mrs. Bagnet both engage to have the 
requisite information ready and even hint to each other at the 
practicability of having a small stock collected there for 
approval.

"Thank you," says Mr. Bucket, "thank you.  Good night, ma'am.  Good 
night, governor.  Good night, darlings.  I am much obliged to you 
for one of the pleasantest evenings I ever spent in my life."

They, on the contrary, are much obliged to him for the pleasure he 
has given them in his company; and so they part with many 
expressions of goodwill on both sides.  "Now George, old boy," says 
Mr. Bucket, taking his arm at the shop-door, "come along!"  As they 
go down the little street and the Bagnets pause for a minute 
looking after them, Mrs. Bagnet remarks to the worthy Lignum that 
Mr. Bucket "almost clings to George like, and seems to be really 
fond of him."

The neighbouring streets being narrow and ill-paved, it is a little 
inconvenient to walk there two abreast and arm in arm.  Mr. George 
therefore soon proposes to walk singly.  But Mr. Bucket, who cannot 
make up his mind to relinquish his friendly hold, replies, "Wait 
half a minute, George.  I should wish to speak to you first."  
Immediately afterwards, he twists him into a public-house and into 
a parlour, where he confronts him and claps his own back against 
the door.

"Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, "duty is duty, and friendship is 
friendship.  I never want the two to clash if I can help it.  I 
have endeavoured to make things pleasant to-night, and I put it to 
you whether I have done it or not.  You must consider yourself in 
custody, George."

"Custody?  What for?" returns the trooper, thunderstruck.

"Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, urging a sensible view of the case 
upon him with his fat forefinger, "duty, as you know very well, is 
one thing, and conversation is another.  It's my duty to inform you 
that any observations you may make will be liable to be used 
against you.  Therefore, George, be careful what you say.  You 
don't happen to have heard of a murder?"

"Murder!"

"Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, keeping his forefinger in an 
impressive state of action, "bear in mind what I've said to you.  I 
ask you nothing.  You've been in low spirits this afternoon.  I 
say, you don't happen to have heard of a murder?"

"No.  Where has there been a murder?"

"Now, George," says Mr. Bucket, "don't you go and commit yourself.  
I'm a-going to tell you what I want you for.  There has been a 
murder in Lincoln's Inn Fields--gentleman of the name of 
Tulkinghorn.  He was shot last night.  I want you for that."

The trooper sinks upon a seat behind him, and great drops start out 
upon his forehead, and a deadly pallor overspreads his face.

"Bucket!  It's not possible that Mr. Tulkinghorn has been killed 
and that you suspect ME?"

"George," returns Mr. Bucket, keeping his forefinger going, "it is 
certainly possible, because it's the case.  This deed was done last 
night at ten o'clock.  Now, you know where you were last night at 
ten o'clock, and you'll be able to prove it, no doubt."

"Last night!  Last night?" repeats the trooper thoughtfully.  Then 
it flashes upon him.  "Why, great heaven, I was there last night!"

"So I have understood, George," returns Mr. Bucket with great 
deliberation.  "So I have understood.  Likewise you've been very 
often there.  You've been seen hanging about the place, and you've 
been heard more than once in a wrangle with him, and it's possible
--I don't say it's certainly so, mind you, but it's possible--that 
he may have been heard to call you a threatening, murdering, 
dangerous fellow."

The trooper gasps as if he would admit it all if he could speak.

"Now, George," continues Mr. Bucket, putting his hat upon the table 
with an air of business rather in the upholstery way than 
otherwise, "my wish is, as it has been all the evening, to make 
things pleasant.  I tell you plainly there's a reward out, of a 
hundred guineas, offered by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.  You 
and me have always been pleasant together; but I have got a duty to 
discharge; and if that hundred guineas is to be made, it may as 
well be made by me as any other man.  On all of which accounts, I 
should hope it was clear to you that I must have you, and that I'm 
damned if I don't have you.  Am I to call in any assistance, or is 
the trick done?"

Mr. George has recovered himself and stands up like a soldier.  
"Come," he says; "I am ready."

"George," continues Mr. Bucket, "wait a bit!"  With his upholsterer 
manner, as if the trooper were a window to be fitted up, he takes 
from his pocket a pair of handcuffs.  "This is a serious charge, 
George, and such is my duty."

The trooper flushes angrily and hesitates a moment, but holds out 
his two hands, clasped together, and says, "There!  Put them on!"

Mr. Bucket adjusts them in a moment.  "How do you find them?  Are 
they comfortable?  If not, say so, for I wish to make things as 
pleasant as is consistent with my duty, and I've got another pair 
in my pocket."  This remark he offers like a most respectable 
tradesman anxious to execute an order neatly and to the perfect 
satisfaction of his customer.  "They'll do as they are?  Very well!  
Now, you see, George"--he takes a cloak from a corner and begins 
adjusting it about the trooper's neck--"I was mindful of your 
feelings when I come out, and brought this on purpose.  There!  
Who's the wiser?"

"Only I," returns the trooper, "but as I know it, do me one more 
good turn and pull my hat over my eyes."

"Really, though!  Do you mean it?  Ain't it a pity?  It looks so."

"I can't look chance men in the face with these things on," Mr. 
George hurriedly replies.  "Do, for God's sake, pull my hat 
forward."

So strongly entreated, Mr. Bucket complies, puts his own hat on, 
and conducts his prize into the streets, the trooper marching on as 
steadily as usual, though with his head less erect, and Mr. Bucket 
steering him with his elbow over the crossings and up the turnings.



CHAPTER L

Esther's Narrative


It happened that when I came home from Deal I found a note from 
Caddy Jellyby (as we always continued to call her), informing me 
that her health, which had been for some time very delicate, was 
worse and that she would be more glad than she could tell me if I 
would go to see her.  It was a note of a few lines, written from 
the couch on which she lay and enclosed to me in another from her 
husband, in which he seconded her entreaty with much solicitude.  
Caddy was now the mother, and I the godmother, of such a poor 
little baby--such a tiny old-faced mite, with a countenance that 
seemed to be scarcely anything but cap-border, and a little lean, 
long-fingered hand, always clenched under its chin.  It would lie 
in this attitude all day, with its bright specks of eyes open, 
wondering (as I used to imagine) how it came to be so small and 
weak.  Whenever it was moved it cried, but at all other times it 
was so patient that the sole desire of its life appeared to be to 
lie quiet and think.  It had curious little dark veins in its face 
and curious little dark marks under its eyes like faint 
remembrances of poor Caddy's inky days, and altogether, to those 
who were not used to it, it was quite a piteous little sight.

But it was enough for Caddy that SHE was used to it.  The projects 
with which she beguiled her illness, for little Esther's education, 
and little Esther's marriage, and even for her own old age as the 
grandmother of little Esther's little Esthers, was so prettily 
expressive of devotion to this pride of her life that I should be 
tempted to recall some of them but for the timely remembrance that 
I am getting on irregularly as it is.

To return to the letter.  Caddy had a superstition about me which 
had been strengthening in her mind ever since that night long ago 
when she had lain asleep with her head in my lap.  She almost--I 
think I must say quite--believed that I did her good whenever I was 
near her.  Now although this was such a fancy of the affectionate 
girl's that I am almost ashamed to mention it, still it might have 
all the force of a fact when she was really ill.  Therefore I set 
off to Caddy, with my guardian's consent, post-haste; and she and 
Prince made so much of me that there never was anything like it.

Next day I went again to sit with her, and next day I went again.  
It was a very easy journey, for I had only to rise a little earlier 
in the morning, and keep my accounts, and attend to housekeeping 
matters before leaving home.

But when I had made these three visits, my guardian said to me, on 
my return at night, "Now, little woman, little woman, this will 
never do.  Constant dropping will wear away a stone, and constant 
coaching will wear out a Dame Durden.  We will go to London for a 
while and take possession of our old lodgings."

"Not for me, dear guardian," said I, "for I never feel tired," 
which was strictly true.  I was only too happy to be in such 
request.

"For me then," returned my guardian, "or for Ada, or for both of 
us.  It is somebody's birthday to-morrow, I think."

"Truly I think it is," said I, kissing my darling, who would be 
twenty-one to-morrow.

"Well," observed my guardian, half pleasantly, half seriously, 
"that's a great occasion and will give my fair cousin some 
necessary business to transact in assertion of her independence, 
and will make London a more convenient place for all of us.  So to 
London we will go.  That being settled, there is another thing--how 
have you left Caddy?"

"Very unwell, guardian.  I fear it will be some time before she 
regains her health and strength."

"What do you call some time, now?" asked my guardian thoughtfully.

"Some weeks, I am afraid."

"Ah!"   He began to walk about the room with his hands in his 
pockets, showing that he had been thinking as much.  "Now, what do 
you say about her doctor?  Is he a good doctor, my love?"

I felt obliged to confess that I knew nothing to the contrary but 
that Prince and I had agreed only that evening that we would like 
his opinion to be confirmed by some one.

"Well, you know," returned my guardian quickly, "there's 
Woodcourt."

I had not meant that, and was rather taken by surprise.  For a 
moment all that I had had in my mind in connexion with Mr. 
Woodcourt seemed to come back and confuse me.

"You don't object to him, little woman?"

"Object to him, guardian?  Oh no!"

"And you don't think the patient would object to him?"

So far from that, I had no doubt of her being prepared to have a 
great reliance on him and to like him very much.  I said that he 
was no stranger to her personally, for she had seen him often in 
his kind attendance on Miss Flite.

"Very good," said my guardian.  "He has been here to-day, my dear, 
and I will see him about it to-morrow."

I felt in this short conversation--though I did not know how, for 
she was quiet, and we interchanged no look--that my dear girl well 
remembered how merrily she had clasped me round the waist when no 
other hands than Caddy's had brought me the little parting token.  
This caused me to feel that I ought to tell her, and Caddy too, 
that I was going to be the mistress of Bleak House and that if I 
avoided that disclosure any longer I might become less worthy in my 
own eyes of its master's love.  Therefore, when we went upstairs 
and had waited listening until the clock struck twelve in order 
that only I might be the first to wish my darling all good wishes 
on her birthday and to take her to my heart, I set before her, just 
as I had set before myself, the goodness and honour of her cousin 
John and the happy life that was in store for for me.  If ever my 
darling were fonder of me at one time than another in all our 
intercourse, she was surely fondest of me that night.  And I was so 
rejoiced to know it and so comforted by the sense of having done 
right in casting this last idle reservation away that I was ten 
times happier than I had been before.  I had scarcely thought it a 
reservation a few hours ago, but now that it was gone I felt as if 
I understood its nature better.

Next day we went to London.  We found our old lodging vacant, and 
in half an hour were quietly established there, as if we had never 
gone away.  Mr. Woodcourt dined with us to celebrate my darling's 
birthday, and we were as pleasant as we could be with the great 
blank among us that Richard's absence naturally made on such an 
occasion.  After that day I was for some weeks--eight or nine as I 
remember--very much with Caddy, and thus it fell out that I saw 
less of Ada at this time than any other since we had first come 
together, except the time of my own illness.  She often came to 
Caddy's, but our function there was to amuse and cheer her, and we 
did not talk in our usual confidential manner.  Whenever I went 
home at night we were together, but Caddy's rest was broken by 
pain, and I often remained to nurse her.

With her husband and her poor little mite of a baby to love and 
their home to strive for, what a good creature Caddy was!  So self-
denying, so uncomplaining, so anxious to get well on their account, 
so afraid of giving trouble, and so thoughtful of the unassisted 
labours of her husband and the comforts of old Mr. Turveydrop; I 
had never known the best of her until now.  And it seemed so 
curious that her pale face and helpless figure should be lying 
there day after day where dancing was the business of life, where 
the kit and the apprentices began early every morning in the ball-
room, and where the untidy little boy waltzed by himself in the 
kitchen all the afternoon.

At Caddy's request I took the supreme direction of her apartment, 
trimmed it up, and pushed her, couch and all, into a lighter and 
more airy and more cheerful corner than she had yet occupied; then, 
every day, when we were in our neatest array, I used to lay my 
small small namesake in her arms and sit down to chat or work or 
read to her.  It was at one of the first of these quiet times that 
I told Caddy about Bleak House.

We had other visitors besides Ada.  First of all we had Prince, who 
in his hurried intervals of teaching used to come softly in and sit 
softly down, with a face of loving anxiety for Caddy and the very 
little child.  Whatever Caddy's condition really was, she never 
failed to declare to Prince that she was all but well--which I, 
heaven forgive me, never failed to confirm.  This would put Prince 
in such good spirits that he would sometimes take the kit from his 
pocket and play a chord or two to astonish the baby, which I never 
knew it to do in the least degree, for my tiny namesake never 
noticed it at all.

Then there was Mrs. Jellyby.  She would come occasionally, with her 
usual distraught manner, and sit calmly looking miles beyond her 
grandchild as if her attention were absorbed by a young 
Borrioboolan on its native shores.  As bright-eyed as ever, as 
serene, and as untidy, she would say, "Well, Caddy, child, and how 
do you do to-day?"  And then would sit amiably smiling and taking 
no notice of the reply or would sweetly glide off into a 
calculation of the number of letters she had lately received and 
answered or of the coffee-bearing power of Borrioboola-Gha.  This 
she would always do with a serene contempt for our limited sphere 
of action, not to be disguised.

Then there was old Mr. Turveydrop, who was from morning to night 
and from night to morning the subject of innumerable precautions.  
If the baby cried, it was nearly stifled lest the noise should make 
him uncomfortable.  If the fire wanted stirring in the night, it 
was surreptitiously done lest his rest should be broken.  If Caddy 
required any little comfort that the house contained, she first 
carefully discussed whether he was likely to require it too.  In 
return for this consideration he would come into the room once a 
day, all but blessing it--showing a condescension, and a patronage, 
and a grace of manner in dispensing the light of his high-
shouldered presence from which I might have supposed him (if I had 
not known better) to have been the benefactor of Caddy's life.

"My Caroline," he would say, making the nearest approach that he 
could to bending over her.  "Tell me that you are better to-day."

"Oh, much better, thank you, Mr. Turveydrop," Caddy would reply.

"Delighted!  Enchanted!  And our dear Miss Summerson.  She is not 
qulte prostrated by fatigue?"  Here he would crease up his eyelids 
and kiss his fingers to me, though I am happy to say he had ceased 
to be particular in his attentions since I had been so altered.

"Not at all," I would assure him.

"Charming!  We must take care of our dear Caroline, Miss Summerson.  
We must spare nothing that will restore her.  We must nourish her.  
My dear Caroline"--he would turn to his daughter-in-law with 
infinite generosity and protection--"want for nothing, my love.  
Frame a wish and gratify it, my daughter.  Everything this house 
contains, everything my room contains, is at your service, my dear.  
Do not," he would sometimes add in a burst of deportment, "even 
allow my simple requirements to be considered if they should at any 
time interfere with your own, my Caroline.  Your necessities are 
greater than mine."

He had established such a long prescriptive right to this 
deportment (his son's inheritance from his mother) that I several 
times knew both Caddy and her husband to be melted to tears by 
these affectionate self-sacrifices.

"Nay, my dears," he would remonstrate; and when I saw Caddy's thin 
arm about his fat neck as he said it, I would be melted too, though 
not by the same process.  "Nay, nay!  I have promised never to 
leave ye.  Be dutiful and affectionate towards me, and I ask no 
other return.  Now, bless ye!  I am going to the Park."

He would take the air there presently and get an appetite for his 
hotel dinner.  I hope I do old Mr. Turveydrop no wrong, but I never 
saw any better traits in him than these I faithfully record, except 
that he certainly conceived a liking for Peepy and would take the 
child out walking with great pomp, always on those occasions 
sending him home before he went to dinner himself, and occasionally 
with a halfpenny in his pocket.  But even this disinterestedness 
was attended with no inconsiderable cost, to my knowledge, for 
before Peepy was sufficiently decorated to walk hand in hand with 
the professor of deportment, he had to be newly dressed, at the 
expense of Caddy and her husband, from top to toe.

Last of our visitors, there was Mr. Jellyby.  Really when he used 
to come in of an evening, and ask Caddy in his meek voice how she 
was, and then sit down with his head against the wall, and make no 
attempt to say anything more, I liked him very much.  If he found 
me bustling about doing any little thing, he sometimes half took 
his coat off, as if with an intention of helping by a great 
exertion; but he never got any further.  His sole occupation was to 
sit with his head against the wall, looking hard at the thoughtful 
baby; and I could not quite divest my mind of a fancy that they 
understood one another.

I have not counted Mr. Woodcourt among our visitors because he was 
now Caddy's regular attendant.  She soon began to improve under his 
care, but he was so gentle, so skilful, so unwearying in the pains 
he took that it is not to be wondered at, I am sure.  I saw a good 
deal of Mr. Woodcourt during this time, though not so much as might 
be supposed, for knowing Caddy to be safe in his hands, I often 
slipped home at about the hours when he was expected.  We 
frequently met, notwithstanding.  I was quite reconciled to myself 
now, but I still felt glad to think that he was sorry for me, and 
he still WAS sorry for me I believed.  He helped Mr. Badger in his 
professional engagements, which were numerous, and had as yet no 
settled projects for the future.

It was when Caddy began to recover that I began to notice a change 
in my dear girl.  I cannot say how it first presented itself to me, 
because I observed it in many slight particulars which were nothing 
in themselves and only became something when they were pieced 
together.  But I made it out, by putting them together, that Ada 
was not so frankly cheerful with me as she used to be.  Her 
tenderness for me was as loving and true as ever; I did not for a 
moment doubt that; but there was a quiet sorrow about her which she 
did not confide to me, and in which I traced some hidden regret.

Now, I could not understand this, and I was so anxious for the 
happiness of my own pet that it caused me some uneasiness and set 
me thinking often.  At length, feeling sure that Ada suppressed 
this something from me lest it should make me unhappy too, it came 
into my head that she was a little grieved--for me--by what I had 
told her about Bleak House.

How I persuaded myself that this was likely, I don't know.  I had 
no idea that there was any selfish reference in my doing so.  I was 
not grieved for myself: I was quite contented and quite happy.  
Still, that Ada might be thinking--for me, though I had abandoned 
all such thoughts--of what once was, but was now all changed, 
seemed so easy to believe that I believed it.

What could I do to reassure my darling (I considered then) and show 
her that I had no such feelings?  Well! I could only be as brisk 
and busy as possible, and that I had tried to be all along.  
However, as Caddy's illness had certainly interfered, more or less, 
with my home duties--though I had always been there in the morning 
to make my guardian's breakfast, and he had a hundred times laughed 
and said there must be two little women, for his little woman was 
never missing--I resolved to be doubly diligent and gay.  So I went 
about the house humming all the tunes I knew, and I sat working and 
working in a desperate manner, and I talked and talked, morning, 
noon, and night.

And still there was the same shade between me and my darling.

"So, Dame Trot," observed my guardian, shutting up his book one 
night when we were all three together, "so Woodcourt has restored 
Caddy Jellyby to the full enjoyment of life again?"

"Yes," I said; "and to be repaid by such gratitude as hers is to be 
made rich, guardian."

"I wish it was," he returned, "with all my heart."

So did I too, for that matter.  I said so.

"Aye! We would make him as rich as a Jew if we knew how.  Would we 
not, little woman?"

I laughed as I worked and replied that I was not sure about that, 
for it might spoil him, and he might not be so useful, and there 
might be many who could ill spare him.  As Miss Flite, and Caddy 
herself, and many others.

"True," said my guardian.  "I had forgotten that.  But we would 
agree to make him rich enough to live, I suppose?  Rich enough to 
work with tolerable peace of mind?  Rich enough to have his own 
happy home and his own household gods--and household goddess, too, 
perhaps?"

That was quite another thing, I said.  We must all agree in that.

"To be sure," said my guardian.  "All of us.  I have a great regard 
for Woodcourt, a high esteem for him; and I have been sounding him 
delicately about his plans.  It is difficult to offer aid to an 
independent man with that just kind of pride which he possesses.  
And yet I would be glad to do it if I might or if I knew how.  He 
seems half inclined for another voyage.  But that appears like 
casting such a man away."

"It might open a new world to him," said I.

''So it might, little woman," my guardian assented.  ''I doubt if 
he expects much of the old world.  Do you know I have fancied that 
he sometimes feels some particular disappointment or misfortune 
encountered in it.  You never heard of anything of that sort?"

I shook my head.

"Humph," said my guardian.  "I am mistaken, I dare say."  As there 
was a little pause here, which I thought, for my dear girl's 
satisfaction, had better be filled up, I hummed an air as I worked 
which was a favourite with my guardian.

"And do you think Mr. Woodcourt will make another voyage?" I asked 
him when I had hummed it quietly all through.

"I don't quite know what to think, my dear, but I should say it was 
likely at present that he will give a long trip to another 
country."

"I am sure he will take the best wishes of all our hearts with him 
wherever he goes," said I; "and though they are not riches, he will 
never be the poorer for them, guardian, at least."

"Never, little woman," he replied.

I was sitting in my usual place, which was now beside my guardian's 
chair.  That had not been my usual place before the letter, but it 
was now.  I looked up to Ada, who was sitting opposite, and I saw, 
as she looked at me, that her eyes were filled with tears and that 
tears were falling down her face.  I felt that I had only to be 
placid and merry once for all to undeceive my dear and set her 
loving heart at rest.  I really was so, and I had nothing to do but 
to be myself.

So I made my sweet girl lean upon my shoulder--how little thinking 
what was heavy on her mind!--and I said she was not quite well, and 
put my arm about her, and took her upstairs.  When we were in our 
own room, and when she might perhaps have told me what I was so 
unprepared to hear, I gave her no encouragement to confide in me; I 
never thought she stood in need of it.

"Oh, my dear good Esther," said Ada, "if I could only make up my 
mind to speak to you and my cousin John when you are together!"

"Why, my love!" I remonstrated.  "Ada, why should you not speak to 
us!"

Ada only dropped her head and pressed me closer to her heart.

"You surely don't forget, my beauty," said I, smiling, "what quiet, 
old-fashioned people we are and how I have settled down to be the 
discreetest of dames?  You don't forget how happily and peacefully 
my life is all marked out for me, and by whom?  I am certain that 
you don't forget by what a noble character, Ada.  That can never 
be."

"No, never, Esther."

"Why then, my dear," said I, "there can be nothing amiss--and why 
should you not speak to us?"

"Nothing amiss, Esther?" returned Ada.  "Oh, when I think of all 
these years, and of his fatherly care and kindness, and of the old 
relations among us, and of you, what shall I do, what shall I do!"

I looked at my child in some wonder, but I thought it better not to 
answer otherwise than by cheering her, and so I turned off into 
many little recollections of our life together and prevented her 
from saying more.  When she lay down to sleep, and not before, I 
returned to my guardian to say good night, and then I came back to 
Ada and sat near her for a little while.

She was asleep, and I thought as I looked at her that she was a 
little changed.  I had thought so more than once lately.  I could 
not decide, even looking at her while she was unconscious, how she 
was changed, but something in the familiar beauty of her face 
looked different to me.  My guardian's old hopes of her and Richard 
arose sorrowfully in my mind, and I said to myself, "She has been 
anxious about him," and I wondered how that love would end.

When I had come home from Caddy's while she was ill, I had often 
found Ada at work, and she had always put her work away, and I had 
never known what it was.  Some of it now lay in a drawer near her, 
which was not quite closed.  I did not open the drawer, but I still 
rather wondered what the work could he, for it was evidently 
nothing for herself.

And I noticed as I kissed my dear that she lay with one hand under 
her pillow so that it was hidden.

How much less amiable I must have been than they thought me, how 
much less amiable than I thought myself, to be so preoccupied with 
my own cheerfulness and contentment as to think that it only rested 
with me to put my dear girl right and set her mind at peace!

But I lay down, self-deceived, in that belief.  And I awoke in it 
next day to find that there was still the same shade between me and 
my darling.



CHAPTER LI

Enlightened


When Mr. Woodcourt arrived in London, he went, that very same day, 
to Mr. Vholes's in Symond's Inn.  For he never once, from the 
moment when I entreated him to be a friend to Richard, neglected or 
forgot his promise.  He had told me that he accepted the charge as 
a sacred trust, and he was ever true to it in that spirit.

He found Mr. Vholes in his office and informed Mr. Vholes of his 
agreement with Richard that he should call there to learn his 
address.

"Just so, sir," said Mr. Vholes.  "Mr. C.'s address is not a 
hundred miles from here, sir, Mr. C.'s address is not a hundred 
miles from here.  Would you take a seat, sir?"

Mr. Woodcourt thanked Mr. Vholes, but he had no business with him 
beyond what he had mentioned.

"Just so, sir.  I believe, sir," said Mr. Vholes, still quietly 
insisting on the seat by not giving the address, "that you have 
influence with Mr. C.  Indeed I am aware that you have."

"I was not aware of it myself," returned Mr. Woodcourt; "but I 
suppose you know best."

"Sir," rejoined Mr. Vholes, self-contained as usual, voice and all, 
"it is a part of my professional duty to know best.  It is a part 
of my professional duty to study and to understand a gentleman who 
confides his interests to me.  In my professional duty I shall not 
be wanting, sir, if I know it.  I may, with the best intentions, be 
wanting in it without knowing it; but not if I know it, sir."

Mr. Woodcourt again mentioned the address.

"Give me leave, sir," said Mr. Vholes.  "Bear with me for a moment.  
Sir, Mr. C. is playing for a considerable stake, and cannot play 
without--need I say what?"

"Money, I presume?"

"Sir," said Mr. Vholes, "to be honest with you (honesty being my 
golden rule, whether I gain by it or lose, and I find that I 
generally lose), money is the word.  Now, sir, upon the chances of 
Mr. C.'s game I express to you no opinion, NO opinion.  It might be 
highly impolitic in Mr. C., after playing so long and so high, to 
leave off; it might be the reverse; I say nothing.  No, sir," said 
Mr. Vholes, bringing his hand flat down upon his desk in a positive 
manner, "nothing."

"You seem to forget," returned Mr, Woodcourt, "that I ask you to 
say nothing and have no interest in anything you say."

"Pardon me, sir!" retorted Mr. Vholes.  "You do yourself an 
injustice.  No, sir!  Pardon me!  You shall not--shall not in my 
office, if I know it--do yourself an injustice.  You are interested 
in anything, and in everything, that relates to your friend.  I 
know human nature much better, sir, than to admit for an instant 
that a gentleman of your appearance is not interested in whatever 
concerns his friend."

"Well," replied Mr. Woodcourt, "that may be.  I am particularly 
interested in his address."

"The number, sir," said Mr. Vholes parenthetically, "I believe I 
have already mentioned.  If Mr. C. is to continue to play for this 
considerable stake, sir, he must have funds.  Understand me!  There 
are funds in hand at present.  I ask for nothing; there are funds 
in hand.  But for the onward play, more funds must be provided, 
unless Mr. C. is to throw away what he has already ventured, which 
is wholly and solely a point for his consideration.  This, sir, I 
take the opportunity of stating openly to you as the friend of Mr. 
C.  Without funds I shall always be happy to appear and act for Mr. 
C. to the extent of all such costs as are safe to be allowed out of 
the estate, not beyond that.  I could not go beyond that, sir, 
without wronging some one.  I must either wrong my three dear girls 
or my venerable father, who is entirely dependent on me, in the 
Vale of Taunton; or some one.  Whereas, sir, my resolution is (call 
it weakness or folly if you please) to wrong no one."

Mr. Woodcourt rather sternly rejoined that he was glad to hear it.

"I wish, sir," said Mr. Vholes, "to leave a good name behind me.  
Therefore I take every opportunity of openly stating to a friend of 
Mr. C. how Mr. C. is situated.  As to myself, sir, the labourer is 
worthy of his hire.  If I undertake to put my shoulder to the 
wheel, I do it, and I earn what I get.  I am here for that purpose.  
My name is painted on the door outside, with that object."

"And Mr. Carstone's address, Mr. Vholes?"

"Sir," returned Mr. Vholes, "as I believe I have already mentioned, 
it is next door.  On the second story you will find Mr. C.'s 
apartments.  Mr. C. desires to be near his professional adviser, 
and I am far from objecting, for I court inquiry."

Upon this Mr. Woodcourt wished Mr. Vholes good day and went in 
search of Richard, the change in whose appearance he began to 
understand now but too well.

He found him in a dull room, fadedly furnished, much as I had found 
him in his barrack-room but a little while before, except that he 
was not writing but was sitting with a book before him, from which 
his eyes and thoughts were far astray.  As the door chanced to be 
standing open, Mr. Woodcourt was in his presence for some moments 
without being perceived, and he told me that he never could forget 
the haggardness of his face and the dejection of his manner before 
he was aroused from his dream.

"Woodcourt, my dear fellow," cried Richard, starting up with 
extended hands, "you come upon my vision like a ghost."

"A friendly one," he replied, "and only waiting, as they say ghosts 
do, to be addressed.  How does the mortal world go?"  They were 
seated now, near together.

"Badly enough, and slowly enough," said Richard, "speaking at least 
for my part of it."

"What part is that?"

"The Chancery part."

"I never heard," returned Mr. Woodcourt, shaking his head, "of its 
going well yet."

"Nor I," said Richard moodily.  "Who ever did?"  He brightened 
again in a moment and said with his natural openness, "Woodcourt, I 
should be sorry to be misunderstood by you, even if I gained by it 
in your estimation.  You must know that I have done no good this 
long time.  I have not intended to do much harm, but I seem to have 
been capable of nothing else.  It may be that I should have done 
better by keeping out of the net into which my destiny has worked 
me, but I think not, though I dare say you will soon hear, if you 
have not already heard, a very different opinion.  To make short of 
a long story, I am afraid I have wanted an object; but I have an 
object now--or it has me--and it is too late to discuss it.  Take 
me as I am, and make the best of me."

"A bargain," said Mr. Woodcourt.  "Do as much by me in return."

"Oh!  You," returned Richard, "you can pursue your art for its own 
sake, and can put your hand upon the plough and never turn, and can 
strike a purpose out of anything.  You and I are very different 
creatures."

He spoke regretfully and lapsed for a moment into his weary 
condition.

"Well, well!" he cried, shaking it off.  "Everything has an end.  
We shall see!  So you will take me as I am, and make the best of 
me?"

"Aye!  Indeed I will."  They shook hands upon it laughingly, but in 
deep earnestness.  I can answer for one of them with my heart of 
hearts.

"You come as a godsend," said Richard, "for I have seen nobody here 
yet but Vholes.  Woodcourt, there is one subject I should like to 
mention, for once and for all, in the beginning of our treaty.  You 
can hardly make the best of me if I don't.  You know, I dare say, 
that I have an attachment to my cousin Ada?"

Mr. Woodcourt replied that I had hinted as much to him.  "Now 
pray," returned Richard, "don't think me a heap of selfishness.  
Don't suppose that I am splitting my head and half breaking my 
heart over this miserable Chancery suit for my own rights and 
interests alone.  Ada's are bound up with mine; they can't be 
separated; Vholes works for both of us.  Do think of that!"

He was so very solicitous on this head that Mr. Woodcourt gave him 
the strongest assurances that he did him no injustice.

"You see," said Richard, with something pathetic in his manner of 
lingering on the point, though it was off-hand and unstudied, "to 
an upright fellow like you, bringing a friendly face like yours 
here, I cannot bear the thought of appearing selfish and mean.  I 
want to see Ada righted, Woodcourt, as well as myself; I want to do 
my utmost to right her, as well as myself; I venture what I can 
scrape together to extricate her, as well as myself.  Do, I beseech 
you, think of that!"

Afterwards, when Mr. Woodcourt came to reflect on what had passed, 
he was so very much impressed by the strength of Richard's anxiety 
on this point that in telling me generally of his first visit to 
Symond's Inn he particularly dwelt upon it.  It revived a fear I 
had had before that my dear girl's little property would be 
absorbed by Mr. Vholes and that Richard's justification to himself 
would be sincerely this.  It was just as I began to take care of 
Caddy that the interview took place, and I now return to the time 
when Caddy had recovered and the shade was still between me and my 
darling.

I proposed to Ada that morning that we should go and see Richard.  
It a little surprised me to find that she hesitated and was not so 
radiantly willing as I had expected.

"My dear," said I, "you have not had any difference with Richard 
since I have been so much away?"

"No, Esther."

"Not heard of him, perhaps?" said I.

"Yes, I have heard of him," said Ada.

Such tears in her eyes, and such love in her face.  I could not 
make my darling out.  Should I go to Richard's by myself? I said.  
No, Ada thought I had better not go by myself.  Would she go with 
me?  Yes, Ada thought she had better go with me.  Should we go now?  
Yes, let us go now.  Well, I could not understand my darling, with 
the tears in her eyes and the love in her face!

We were soon equipped and went out.  It was a sombre day, and drops 
of chill rain fell at intervals.  It was one of those colourless 
days when everything looks heavy and harsh.  The houses frowned at 
us, the dust rose at us, the smoke swooped at us, nothing made any 
compromise about itself or wore a softened aspect.  I fancied my 
beautiful girl quite out of place in the rugged streets, and I 
thought there were more funerals passing along the dismal pavements 
than I had ever seen before.

We had first to find out Symond's Inn.  We were going to inquire in 
a shop when Ada said she thought it was near Chancery Lane.  "We 
are not likely to be far out, my love, if we go in that direction," 
said I.  So to Chancery Lane we went, and there, sure enough, we 
saw it written up.  Symond's Inn.

We had next to find out the number.  "Or Mr. Vholes's office will 
do," I recollected, "for Mr. Vholes's office is next door."  Upon 
which Ada said, perhaps that was Mr. Vholes's office in the corner 
there.  And it really was.

Then came the question, which of the two next doors?  I was going 
for the one, and my darling was going for the other; and my darling 
was right again.  So up we went to the second story, when we came 
to Richard's name in great white letters on a hearse-like panel.

I should have knocked, but Ada said perhaps we had better turn the 
handle and go in.  Thus we came to Richard, poring over a table 
covered with dusty bundles of papers which seemed to me like dusty 
mirrors reflecting his own mind.  Wherever I looked I saw the 
ominous words that ran in it repeated.  Jarndyce and Jarndyce.

He received us very affectionately, and we sat down.  "If you had 
come a little earlier," he said, "you would have found Woodcourt 
here.  There never was such a good fellow as Woodcourt is.  He 
finds time to look in between-whiles, when anybody else with half 
his work to do would be thinking about not being able to come.  And 
he is so cheery, so fresh, so sensible, so earnest, so--everything 
that I am not, that the place brightens whenever he comes, and 
darkens whenever he goes again."

"God bless him," I thought, "for his truth to me!"

"He is not so sanguine, Ada," continued Richard, casting his 
dejected look over the bundles of papers, "as Vholes and I are 
usually, but he is only an outsider and is not in the mysteries.  
We have gone into them, and he has not.  He can't be expected to 
know much of such a labyrinth."

As his look wandered over the papers again and he passed his two 
hands over his head, I noticed how sunken and how large his eyes 
appeared, how dry his lips were, and how his finger-nails were all 
bitten away.

"Is this a healthy place to live in, Richard, do you think?" said I.

"Why, my dear Minerva," answered Richard with his old gay laugh, 
"it is neither a rural nor a cheerful place; and when the sun 
shines here, you may lay a pretty heavy wager that it is shining 
brightly in an open spot.  But it's well enough for the time.  It's 
near the offices and near Vholes."

"Perhaps," I hinted, "a change from both--"

"Might do me good?" said Richard, forcing a laugh as he finished 
the sentence.  "I shouldn't wonder!  But it can only come in one 
way now--in one of two ways, I should rather say.  Either the suit 
must be ended, Esther, or the suitor.  But it shall be the suit, my 
dear girl, the suit, my dear girl!"

These latter words were addressed to Ada, who was sitting nearest 
to him.  Her face being turned away from me and towards him, I 
could not see it.

"We are doing very well," pursued Richard.  "Vholes will tell you 
so.  We are really spinning along.  Ask Vholes.  We are giving them 
no rest.  Vholes knows all their windings and turnings, and we are 
upon them everywhere.  We have astonished them already.  We shall 
rouse up that nest of sleepers, mark my words!"

His hopefulness had long been more painful to me than his 
despondency; it was so unlike hopefulness, had something so fierce 
in its determination to be it, was so hungry and eager, and yet so 
conscious of being forced and unsustainable that it had long 
touched me to the heart.  But the commentary upon it now indelibly 
written in his handsome face made it far more distressing than it 
used to be.  I say indelibly, for I felt persuaded that if the 
fatal cause could have been for ever terminated, according to his 
brightest visions, in that same hour, the traces of the premature 
anxiety, self-reproach, and disappointment it had occasioned him 
would have remained upon his features to the hour of his death.

"The sight of our dear little woman," said Richard, Ada still 
remaining silent and quiet, "is so natural to me, and her 
compassionate face is so like the face of old days--"

Ah!  No, no.  I smiled and shook my head.

"--So exactly like the face of old days," said Richard in his 
cordial voice, and taking my hand with the brotherly regard which 
nothing ever changed, "that I can't make pretences with her.  I 
fluctuate a little; that's the truth.  Sometimes I hope, my dear, 
and sometimes I--don't quite despair, but nearly.  I get," said 
Richard, relinquishing my hand gently and walking across the room, 
"so tired!"

He took a few turns up and down and sunk upon the sofa.  "I get," 
he repeated gloomily, "so tired.  It is such weary, weary work!"

He was leaning on his arm saying these words in a meditative voice 
and looking at the ground when my darling rose, put off her bonnet, 
kneeled down beside him with her golden hair falling like sunlight 
on his head, clasped her two arms round his neck, and turned her 
face to me.  Oh, what a loving and devoted face I saw!

"Esther, dear," she said very quietly, "I am not going home again."

A light shone in upon me all at once.

"Never any more.  I am going to stay with my dear husband.  We have 
been married above two months.  Go home without me, my own Esther; 
I shall never go home any more!"  With those words my darling drew 
his head down on her breast and held it there.  And if ever in my 
life I saw a love that nothing but death could change, I saw it 
then before me.

"Speak to Esther, my dearest," said Richard, breaking the silence 
presently.  "Tell her how it was."

I met her before she could come to me and folded her in my arms.  
We neither of us spoke, but with her cheek against my own I wanted 
to hear nothing.  "My pet," said I.  "My love.  My poor, poor 
girl!"  I pitied her so much.  I was very fond of Richard, but the 
impulse that I had upon me was to pity her so much.

"Esther, will you forgive me?  Will my cousin John forgive me?"

"My dear," said I, "to doubt it for a moment is to do him a great 
wrong.  And as to me!"  Why, as to me, what had I to forgive!

I dried my sobbing darling's eyes and sat beside her on the sofa, 
and Richard sat on my other side; and while I was reminded of that 
so different night when they had first taken me into their 
confidence and had gone on in their own wild happy way, they told 
me between them how it was.

"All I had was Richard's," Ada said; "and Richard would not take 
it, Esther, and what could I do but be his wife when I loved him 
dearly!"

"And you were so fully and so kindly occupied, excellent Dame 
Durden," said Richard, "that how could we speak to you at such a 
time!  And besides, it was not a long-considered step.  We went out 
one morning and were married."

"And when it was done, Esther," said my darling, "I was always 
thinking how to tell you and what to do for the best.  And 
sometimes I thought you ought to know it directly, and sometimes I 
thought you ought not to know it and keep it from my cousin John; 
and I could not tell what to do, and I fretted very much."

How selfish I must have been not to have thought of this before!  I 
don't know what I said now.  I was so sorry, and yet I was so fond 
of them and so glad that they were fond of me; I pitied them so 
much, and yet I felt a kind of pride in their loving one another.  
I never had experienced such painful and pleasurable emotion at one 
time, and in my own heart I did not know which predominated.  But I 
was not there to darken their way; I did not do that.

When I was less foolish and more composed, my darling took her 
wedding-ring from her bosom, and kissed it, and put it on.  Then I 
remembered last night and told Richard that ever since her marriage 
she had worn it at night when there was no one to see.  Then Ada 
blushingly asked me how did I know that, my dear.  Then I told Ada 
how I had seen her hand concealed under her pillow and had little 
thought why, my dear.  Then they began telling me how it was all 
over again, and I began to be sorry and glad again, and foolish 
again, and to hide my plain old face as much as I could lest I 
should put them out of heart.

Thus the time went on until it became necessary for me to think of 
returning.  When that time arrived it was the worst of all, for 
then my darling completely broke down.  She clung round my neck, 
calling me by every dear name she could think of and saying what 
should she do without me!  Nor was Richard much better; and as for 
me, I should have been the worst of the three if I had not severely 
said to myself, "Now Esther, if you do, I'll never speak to you 
again!"

"Why, I declare," said I, "I never saw such a wife.  I don't think 
she loves her husband at all.  Here, Richard, take my child, for 
goodness' sake."  But I held her tight all the while, and could 
have wept over her I don't know how long.

"I give this dear young couple notice," said I, "that I am only 
going away to come back to-morrow and that I shall be always coming 
backwards and forwards until Symond's Inn is tired of the sight of 
me.  So I shall not say good-bye, Richard.  For what would be the 
use of that, you know, when I am coming back so soon!"

I had given my darling to him now, and I meant to go; but I 
lingered for one more look of the precious face which it seemed to 
rive my heart to turn from.

So I said (in a merry, bustling manner) that unless they gave me 
some encouragement to come back, I was not sure that I could take 
that liberty, upon which my dear girl looked up, faintly smiling 
through her tears, and I folded her lovely face between my hands, 
and gave it one last kiss, and laughed, and ran away.

And when I got downstairs, oh, how I cried!  It almost seemed to me 
that I had lost my Ada for ever.  I was so lonely and so blank 
without her, and it was so desolate to be going home with no hope 
of seeing her there, that I could get no comfort for a little while 
as I walked up and down in a dim corner sobbing and crying.

I came to myself by and by, after a little scolding, and took a 
coach home.  The poor boy whom I had found at St. Albans had 
reappeared a short time before and was lying at the point of death; 
indeed, was then dead, though I did not know it.  My guardian had 
gone out to inquire about him and did not return to dinner.  Being 
quite alone, I cried a little again, though on the whole I don't 
think I behaved so very, very ill.

It was only natural that I should not be quite accustomed to the 
loss of my darling yet.  Three or four hours were not a long time 
after years.  But my mind dwelt so much upon the uncongenial scene 
in which I had left her, and I pictured it as such an overshadowed 
stony-hearted one, and I so longed to be near her and taking some 
sort of care of her, that I determined to go back in the evening 
only to look up at her windows.

It was foolish, I dare say, but it did not then seem at all so to 
me, and it does not seem quite so even now.  I took Charley into my 
confidence, and we went out at dusk.  It was dark when we came to 
the new strange home of my dear girl, and there was a light behind 
the yellow blinds.  We walked past cautiously three or four times, 
looking up, and narrowly missed encountering Mr. Vholes, who came 
out of his office while we were there and turned his head to look 
up too before going home.  The sight of his lank black figure and 
the lonesome air of that nook in the dark were favourable to the 
state of my mind.  I thought of the youth and love and beauty of my 
dear girl, shut up in such an ill-assorted refuge, almost as if it 
were a cruel place.

It was very solitary and very dull, and I did not doubt that I 
might safely steal upstairs.  I left Charley below and went up with 
a light foot, not distressed by any glare from the feeble oil 
lanterns on the way.  I listened for a few moments, and in the 
musty rotting silence of the house believed that I could hear the 
murmur of their young voices.  I put my lips to the hearse-like 
panel of the door as a kiss for my dear and came quietly down 
again, thinking that one of these days I would confess to the 
visit.

And it really did me good, for though nobody but Charley and I knew 
anything about it, I somehow felt as if it had diminished the 
separation between Ada and me and had brought us together again for 
those moments.  I went back, not quite accustomed yet to the 
change, but all the better for that hovering about my darling.

My guardian had come home and was standing thoughtfully by the dark 
window.  When I went in, his face cleared and he came to his seat, 
but he caught the light upon my face as I took mine.

"Little woman," said he, "You have been crying."

"Why, yes, guardian," said I, "I am afraid I have been, a little.  
Ada has been in such distress, and is so very sorry, guardian."

I put my arm on the back of his chair, and I saw in his glance that 
my words and my look at her empty place had prepared him.

"Is she married, my dear?"

I told him all about it and how her first entreaties had referred 
to his forgiveness.

"She has no need of it," said he.  "Heaven bless her and her 
husband!"  But just as my first impulse had been to pity her, so 
was his.  "Poor girl, poor girl!  Poor Rick!  Poor Ada!"

Neither of us spoke after that, until he said with a sigh, "Well, 
well, my dear!  Bleak House is thinning fast."

"But its mistress remains, guardian."  Though I was timid about 
saying it, I ventured because of the sorrowful tone in which he had 
spoken.  "She will do all she can to make it happy," said I.

"She will succeed, my love!"

The letter had made no difference between us except that the seat 
by his side had come to be mine; it made none now.  He turned his 
old bright fatherly look upon me, laid his hand on my hand in his 
old way, and said again, "She will succeed, my dear.  Nevertheless, 
Bleak House is thinning fast, O little woman!"

I was sorry presently that this was all we said about that.  I was 
rather disappointed.  I feared I might not quite have been all I 
had meant to be since the letter and the answer.



CHAPTER LII

Obstinacy


But one other day had intervened when, early in the morning as we 
were going to breakfast, Mr. Woodcourt came in haste with the 
astounding news that a terrible murder had been committed for which 
Mr. George had been apprehended and was in custody.  When he told 
us that a large reward was offered by Sir Leicester Dedlock for the 
murderer's apprehension, I did not in my first consternation 
understand why; but a few more words explained to me that the 
murdered person was Sir Leicester's lawyer, and immediately my 
mother's dread of him rushed into my remembrance.

This unforeseen and violent removal of one whom she had long 
watched and distrusted and who had long watched and distrusted her, 
one for whom she could have had few intervals of kindness, always 
dreading in him a dangerous and secret enemy, appeared so awful 
that my first thoughts were of her.  How appalling to hear of such 
a death and be able to feel no pity!  How dreadful to remember, 
perhaps, that she had sometimes even wished the old man away who 
was so swiftly hurried out of life!

Such crowding reflections, increasing the distress and fear I 
always felt when the name was mentioned, made me so agitated that I 
could scarcely hold my place at the table.  I was quite unable to 
follow the conversation until I had had a little time to recover.  
But when I came to myself and saw how shocked my guardian was and 
found that they were earnestly speaking of the suspected man and 
recalling every favourable impression we had formed of him out of 
the good we had known of him, my interest and my fears were so 
strongly aroused in his behalf that I was quite set up again.

"Guardian, you don't think it possible that he is justly accused?"

"My dear, I CAN'T think so.  This man whom we have seen so open-
hearted and compassionate, who with the might of a giant has the 
gentleness of a child, who looks as brave a fellow as ever lived 
and is so simple and quiet with it, this man justly accused of such 
a crime?  I can't believe it.  It's not that I don't or I won't.  I 
can't!"

"And I can't," said Mr. Woodcourt.  "Still, whatever we believe or 
know of him, we had better not forget that some appearances are 
against him.  He bore an animosity towards the deceased gentleman.  
He has openly mentioned it in many places.  He is said to have 
expressed himself violently towards him, and he certainly did about 
him, to my knowledge.  He admits that he was alone on the scene of 
the murder within a few minutes of its commission.  I sincerely 
believe him to be as innocent of any participation in it as I am, 
but these are all reasons for suspicion falling upon him."

"True," said my guardian.  And he added, turning to me, "It would 
be doing him a very bad service, my dear, to shut our eyes to the 
truth in any of these respects."

I felt, of course, that we must admit, not only to ourselves but to 
others, the full force of the circumstances against him.  Yet I 
knew withal (I could not help saying) that their weight would not 
induce us to desert him in his need.

"Heaven forbid!" returned my guardian.  "We will stand by him, as 
he himself stood by the two poor creatures who are gone."  He meant 
Mr. Gridley and the boy, to both of whom Mr. George had given 
shelter.

Mr. Woodcourt then told us that the trooper's man had been with him 
before day, after wandering about the streets all night like a 
distracted creature.  That one of the trooper's first anxieties was 
that we should not suppose him guilty.  That he had charged his 
messenger to represent his perfect innocence with every solemn 
assurance be could send us.  That Mr. Woodcourt had only quieted 
the man by undertaking to come to our house very early in the 
morning with these representations.  He added that he was now upon 
his way to see the prisoner himself.

My guardian said directly he would go too.  Now, besides that I 
liked the retired soldier very much and that he liked me, I had 
that secret interest in what had happened which was only known to 
my guardian.  I felt as if it came close and near to me.  It seemed 
to become personally important to myself that the truth should be 
discovered and that no innocent people should be suspected, for 
suspicion, once run wild, might run wilder.

In a word, I felt as if it were my duty and obligation to go with 
them.  My guardian did not seek to dissuade me, and I went.

It was a large prison with many courts and passages so like one 
another and so uniformly paved that I seemed to gain a new 
comprehension, as I passed along, of the fondness that solitary 
prisoners, shut up among the same staring walls from year to year, 
have had--as I have read--for a weed or a stray blade of grass.  In 
an arched room by himself, like a cellar upstairs, with walls so 
glaringly white that they made the massive iron window-bars and 
iron-bound door even more profoundly black than they were, we found 
the trooper standing in a corner.  He had been sitting on a bench 
there and had risen when he heard the locks and bolts turn.

When he saw us, he came forward a step with his usual heavy tread, 
and there stopped and made a slight bow.  But as I still advanced, 
putting out my hand to him, he understood us in a moment.

"This is a load off my mind, I do assure you, miss and gentlemen," 
said he, saluting us with great heartiness and drawing a long 
breath.  "And now I don't so much care how it ends."

He scarcely seemed to be the prisoner.  What with his coolness and 
his soldierly bearing, he looked far more like the prison guard.

"This is even a rougher place than my gallery to receive a lady 
in," said Mr. George, "but I know Miss Summerson will make the best 
of it."  As he handed me to the bench on which he had been sitting, 
I sat down, which seemed to give him great satisfaction.

"I thank you, miss," said he.

"Now, George," observed my guardian, "as we require no new 
assurances on your part, so I believe we need give you none on 
ours."

"Not at all, sir.  I thank you with all my heart.  If I was not 
innocent of this crime, I couldn't look at you and keep my secret 
to myself under the condescension of the present visit.  I feel the 
present visit very much.  I am not one of the eloquent sort, but I 
feel it, Miss Summerson and gentlemen, deeply."

He laid his hand for a moment on his broad chest and bent his bead 
to us.  Although he squared himself again directly, he expressed a 
great amount of natural emotion by these simple means.

"First," said my guardian, "can we do anything for your personal 
comfort, George?"

"For which, sir?" he inquired, clearing his throat.

"For your personal comfort.  Is there anything you want that would 
lessen the hardship of this confinement?"

"Well, sir," replied George, after a little cogitation, "I am 
equally obliged to you, but tobacco being against the rules, I 
can't say that there is."

"You will think of many little things perhaps, by and by.  
'Whenever you do, George, let us know."

"Thank you, sir.  Howsoever," observed Mr. George with one of his 
sunburnt smiles, "a man who has been knocking about the world in a 
vagabond kind of a way as long as I have gets on well enough in a 
place like the present, so far as that goes."

"Next, as to your case," observed my guardian.

"Exactly so, sir," returned Mr. George, folding his arms upon his 
breast with perfect self-possession and a little curiosity.

"How does it stand now?"

"Why, sir, it is under remand at present.  Bucket gives me to 
understand that he will probably apply for a series of remands from 
time to time until the case is more complete.  How it is to be made 
more complete I don't myself see, but I dare say Bucket will manage 
it somehow."

"Why, heaven save us, man," exclaimed my guardian, surprised into 
his old oddity and vehemence, "you talk of yourself as if you were 
somebody else!"

"No offence, sir," said Mr. George.  "I am very sensible of your 
kindness.  But I don't see how an innocent man is to make up his 
mind to this kind of thing without knocking his head against the 
walls unless he takes it in that point of view.

"That is true enough to a certain extent," returned my guardian, 
softened.  "But my good fellow, even an innocent man must take 
ordinary precautions to defend himself."

"Certainly, sir.  And I have done so.  I have stated to the 
magistrates, 'Gentlemen, I am as innocent of this charge as 
yourselves; what has been stated against me in the way of facts is 
perfectly true; I know no more about it.'  I intend to continue 
stating that, sir.  What more can I do?  It's the truth."

"But the mere truth won't do," rejoined my guardian.

"Won't it indeed., sir?  Rather a bad look-out for me!" Mr. George 
good-humouredly observed.

"You must have a lawyer," pursued my guardian.  "We must engage a 
good one for you."

"I ask your pardon, sir," said Mr. George with a step backward.  "I 
am equally obliged.  But I must decidedly beg to be excused from 
anything of that sort."

"You won't have a lawyer?"

"No, sir."  Mr. George shook his head in the most emphatic manner.  
"I thank you all the same, sir, but--no lawyer!"

"Why not?"

"I don't take kindly to the breed," said Mr. George.  "Gridley 
didn't.  And--if you'll excuse my saying so much--I should hardly 
have thought you did yourself, sir."

"That's equity," my guardian explained, a little at a loss; "that's 
equity, George."

"Is it, indeed, sir?" returned the trooper in his off-hand manner.  
"I am not acquainted with those shades of names myself, but in a 
general way I object to the breed."

Unfolding his arms and changing his position, he stood with one 
massive hand upon the table and the other on his hip, as complete a 
picture of a man who was not to be moved from a fixed purpose as 
ever I saw.  It was in vain that we all three talked to him and 
endeavoured to persuade him; he listened with that gentleness which 
went so well with his bluff bearing, but was evidently no more 
shaken by our representations that his place of confinement was.

"Pray think, once more, Mr. George," said I.  "Have you no wish in 
reference to your case?"

"I certainly could wish it to be tried, miss," he returned, "by 
court-martial; but that is out of the question, as I am well aware.  
If you will be so good as to favour me with your attention for a 
couple of minutes, miss, not more, I'll endeavour to explain myself 
as clearly as I can."

He looked at us all three in turn, shook his head a little as if he 
were adjusting it in the stock and collar of a tight uniform, and 
after a moment's reflection went on.

"You see, miss, I have been handcuffed and taken into custody and 
brought here.  I am a marked and disgraced man, and here I am.  My 
shooting gallery is rummaged, high and low, by Bucket; such 
property as I have--'tis small--is turned this way and that till it 
don't know itself; and (as aforesaid) here I am!  I don't 
particular complain of that.  Though I am in these present quarters 
through no immediately preceding fault of mine, I can very well 
understand that if I hadn't gone into the vagabond way in my youth, 
this wouldn't have happened.  It HAS happened.  Then comes the 
question how to meet it"

He rubbed his swarthy forehead for a moment with a good-humoured 
look and said apologetically, "I am such a short-winded talker that 
I must think a bit."  Having thought a bit, he looked up again and 
resumed.

"How to meet it.  Now, the unfortunate deceased was himself a 
lawyer and had a pretty tight hold of me.  I don't wish to rake up 
his ashes, but he had, what I should call if he was living, a devil 
of a tight hold of me.  I don't like his trade the better for that.  
If I had kept clear of his trade, I should have kept outside this 
place.  But that's not what I mean.  Now, suppose I had killed him.  
Suppose I really had discharged into his body any one of those 
pistols recently fired off that Bucket has found at my place, and 
dear me, might have found there any day since it has been my place.  
What should I have done as soon as I was hard and fast here?  Got a 
lawyer."

He stopped on hearing some one at the locks and bolts and did not 
resume until the door had been opened and was shut again.  For what 
purpose opened, I will mention presently.

"I should have got a lawyer, and he would have said (as I have 
often read in the newspapers), 'My client says nothing, my client 
reserves his defence': my client this, that, and t'other.  Well, 
'tis not the custom of that breed to go straight, according to my 
opinion, or to think that other men do.  Say I am innocent and I 
get a lawyer.  He would be as likely to believe me guilty as not; 
perhaps more.  What would he do, whether or not?  Act as if I was--
shut my mouth up, tell me not to commit myself, keep circumstances 
back, chop the evidence small, quibble, and get me off perhaps!  
But, Miss Summerson, do I care for getting off in that way; or 
would I rather be hanged in my own way--if you'll excuse my 
mentioning anything so disagreeable to a lady?"

He had warmed into his subject now, and was under no further 
necessity to wait a bit.

"I would rather be hanged in my own way.  And I mean to be!  I 
don't intend to say," looking round upon us with his powerful arms 
akimbo and his dark eyebrows raised, "that I am more partial to 
being hanged than another man.  What I say is, I must come off 
clear and full or not at all.  Therefore, when I hear stated 
against me what is true, I say it's true; and when they tell me, 
'whatever you say will be used,' I tell them I don't mind that; I 
mean it to be used.  If they can't make me innocent out of the 
whole truth, they are not likely to do it out of anything less, or 
anything else.  And if they are, it's worth nothing to me."

Taking a pace or two over the stone floor, he came back to the 
table and finished what he had to say.

"I thank you, miss and gentlemen both, many times for your 
attention, and many times more for your interest.  That's the plain 
state of the matter as it points itself out to a mere trooper with 
a blunt broadsword kind of a mind.  I have never done well in life 
beyond my duty as a soldier, and if the worst comes after all, I 
shall reap pretty much as I have sown.  When I got over the first 
crash of being seized as a murderer--it don't take a rover who has 
knocked about so much as myself so very long to recover from a 
crash--I worked my way round to what you find me now.  As such I 
shall remain.  No relations will be disgraced by me or made unhappy 
for me, and--and that's all I've got to say."

The door had been opened to admit another soldier-looking man of 
less prepossessing appearance at first sight and a weather-tanned, 
bright-eyed wholesome woman with a basket, who, from her entrance, 
had been exceedingly attentive to all Mr. George had said.  Mr. 
George had received them with a familiar nod and a friendly look, 
but without any more particular greeting in the midst of his 
address.  He now shook them cordially by the hand and said, "Miss 
Summerson and gentlemen, this is an old comrade of mine, Matthew 
Bagnet.  And this is his wife, Mrs. Bagnet."

Mr. Bagnet made us a stiff military bow, and Mrs. Bagnet dropped us 
a curtsy.

"Real good friends of mine, they are," sald Mr. George.  "It was at 
their house I was taken."

"With a second-hand wiolinceller," Mr. Bagnet put in, twitching his 
head angrily.  "Of a good tone.  For a friend.  That money was no 
object to."

"Mat," said Mr. George, "you have heard pretty well all I have been 
saying to this lady and these two gentlemen.  I know it meets your 
approval?"

Mr. Bagnet, after considering, referred the point to his wife.  
"Old girl," said he.  "Tell him.  Whether or not.  It meets my 
approval."

"Why, George," exclaimed Mrs. Bagnet, who had been unpacking her 
basket, in which there was a piece of cold pickled pork, a little 
tea and sugar, and a brown loaf, "you ought to know it don't.  You 
ought to know it's enough to drive a person wild to hear you.  You 
won't be got off this way, and you won't be got off that way--what 
do you mean by such picking and choosing?  It's stuff and nonsense, 
George."

"Don't be severe upon me in my misfortunes, Mrs. Bagnet," said the 
trooper lightly.

"Oh! Bother your misfortunes," cried Mrs. Bagnet, "if they don't 
make you more reasonable than that comes to.  I never was so 
ashamed in my life to hear a man talk folly as I have been to hear 
you talk this day to the present company.  Lawyers?  Why, what but 
too many cooks should hinder you from having a dozen lawyers if the 
gentleman recommended them to you"

"This is a very sensible woman," said my guardian.  "I hope you 
will persuade him, Mrs. Bagnet."

"Persuade him, sir?" she returned.  "Lord bless you, no.  You don't 
know George.  Now, there!"  Mrs. Bagnet left her basket to point 
him out with both her bare brown hands.  "There he stands!  As 
self-willed and as determined a man, in the wrong way, as ever put 
a human creature under heaven out of patience!  You could as soon 
take up and shoulder an eight and forty pounder by your own 
strength as turn that man when he has got a thing into his head and 
fixed it there.  Why, don't I know him!" cried Mrs. Bagnet.  "Don't 
I know you, George!  You don't mean to set up for a new character 
with ME after all these years, I hope?"

Her friendly indignation had an exemplary effect upon her husband, 
who shook his head at the trooper several times as a silent 
recommendation to him to yield.  Between whiles, Mrs. Bagnet looked 
at me; and I understood from the play of her eyes that she wished 
me to do something, though I did not comprehend what.

"But I have given up talking to you, old fellow, years and years," 
said Mrs. Bagnet as she blew a little dust off the pickled pork, 
looking at me again; "and when ladies and gentlemen know you as 
well as I do, they'll give up talking to you too.  If you are not 
too headstrong to accept of a bit of dinner, here it is."

"I accept it with many thanks," returned the trooper.

"Do you though, indeed?" said Mrs. Bagnet, continuing to grumble on 
good-humouredly.  "I'm sure I'm surprised at that I wonder you 
don't starve in your own way also.  It would only be like you.  
Perhaps you'll set your mind upon THAT next."  Here she again 
looked at me, and I now perceived from her glances at the door and 
at me, by turns, that she wished us to retire and to await her 
following us outside the prison.  Communicating this by similar 
means to my guardian and Mr. Woodcourt, I rose.

"We hope you will think better of it, Mr. George," said I, "and we 
shall come to see you again, trusting to find you more reasonable."

"More grateful, Miss Summerson, you can't find me," he returned.

"But more persuadable we can, I hope," said I.  "And let me entreat 
you to consider that the clearing up of this mystery and the 
discovery of the real perpetrator of this deed may be of the last 
importance to others besides yourself."

He heard me respectfully but without much heeding these words, 
which I spoke a little turned from him, already on my way to the 
door; he was observing (this they afterwards told me) my height and 
figure, which seemed to catch his attention all at once.

"'Tis curious," said he.  "And yet I thought so at the time!"

My guardian asked him what he meant.

"Why, sir," he answered, "when my ill fortune took me to the dead 
man's staircase on the night of his murder, I saw a shape so like 
Miss Summerson's go by me in the dark that I had half a mind to 
speak to it."

For an instant I felt such a shudder as I never felt before or 
since and hope I shall never feel again.

"It came downstairs as I went up," said the trooper, "and crossed 
the moonlighted window with a loose black mantle on; I noticed a 
deep fringe to it.  However, it has nothing to do with the present 
subject, excepting that Miss Summerson looked so like it at the 
moment that it came into my head."

I cannot separate and define the feelings that arose in me after 
this; it is enough that the vague duty and obligation I had felt 
upon me from the first of following the investigation was, without 
my distinctly daring to ask myself any question, increased, and 
that I was indignantly sure of there being no possibility of a 
reason for my being afraid.

We three went out of the prison and walked up and down at some short 
distance from the gate, which was in a retired place.  We had not 
waited long when Mr. and Mrs. Bagnet came out too and quickly 
joined us.

There was a tear in each of Mrs. Bagnet's eyes, and her face was 
flushed and hurried.  "I didn't let George see what I thought about 
it, you know, miss," was her first remark when she came up, "but 
he's in a bad way, poor old fellow!"

"Not with care and prudence and good help," said my guardian.

"A gentleman like you ought to know best, sir," returned Mrs. 
Bagnet, hurriedly drying her eyes on the hem of her grey cloak, 
"but I am uneasy for him.  He has been so careless and said so much 
that he never meant.  The gentlemen of the juries might not 
understand him as Lignum and me do.  And then such a number of 
circumstances have happened bad for him, and such a number of 
people will be brought forward to speak against him, and Bucket is 
so deep."

"With a second-hand wiolinceller.  And said he played the fife.  
When a boy," Mr. Bagnet added with great solemnity.

"Now, I tell you, miss," said Mrs. Bagnet; "and when I say miss, I 
mean all!  Just come into the corner of the wall and I'll tell 
you!"

Mrs. Bagnet hurried us into a more secluded place and was at first 
too breathless to proceed, occasioning Mr. Bagnet to say, "Old 
girl!  Tell 'em!"

"Why, then, miss," the old girl proceeded, untying the strings of 
her bonnet for more air, "you could as soon move Dover Castle as 
move George on this point unless you had got a new power to move 
him with.  And I have got it!"

"You are a jewel of a woman," said my guardian.  "Go on!"

"Now, I tell you, miss," she proceeded, clapping her hands in her 
hurry and agitation a dozen times in every sentence, "that what he 
says concerning no relations is all bosh.  They don't know of him, 
but he does know of them.  He has said more to me at odd times than 
to anybody else, and it warn't for nothing that he once spoke to my 
Woolwich about whitening and wrinkling mothers' heads.  For fifty 
pounds he had seen his mother that day.  She's alive and must be 
brought here straight!"

Instantly Mrs. Bagnet put some pins into her mouth and began 
pinning up her skirts all round a little higher than the level of 
her grey cloak, which she accomplished with surpassing dispatch and 
dexterity.

"Lignum," said Mrs. Bagnet, "you take care of the children, old 
man, and give me the umbrella!  I'm away to Lincolnshire to bring 
that old lady here."

"But, bless the woman," cried my guardian with his hand in his 
pocket, "how is she going?  What money has she got?"

Mrs. Bagnet made another application to her skirts and brought 
forth a leathern purse in which she hastily counted over a few 
shillings and which she then shut up with perfect satisfaction.

"Never you mind for me, miss.  I'm a soldier's wife and accustomed 
to travel my own way.  Lignum, old boy," kissing him, "one for 
yourself, three for the children.  Now I'm away into Lincolnshire 
after George's mother!"

And she actually set off while we three stood looking at one 
another lost in amazement.  She actually trudged away in her grey 
cloak at a sturdy pace, and turned the corner, and was gone.

"Mr. Bagnet," said my guardian.  "Do you mean to let her go in that 
way?"

"Can't help it," he returned.  "Made her way home once from another 
quarter of the world.  With the same grey cloak.  And same 
umbrella.  Whatever the old girl says, do.  Do it!  Whenever the 
old girl says, I'LL do it.  She does it."

"Then she is as honest and genuine as she looks," rejoined my 
guardian, "and it is impossible to say more for her."

"She's Colour-Sergeant of the Nonpareil battalion," said Mr. 
Bagnet, looking at us over his shoulder as he went his way also.  
"And there's not such another.  But I never own to it before her.  
Discipline must be maintained."



CHAPTER LIII

The Track


Mr. Bucket and his fat forefinger are much in consultation together 
under existing circumstances.  When Mr. Bucket has a matter of this 
pressing interest under his consideration, the fat forefinger seems 
to rise, to the dignity of a familiar demon.  He puts it to his 
ears, and it whispers information; he puts it to his lips, and it 
enjoins him to secrecy; he rubs it over his nose, and it sharpens 
his scent; he shakes it before a guilty man, and it charms him to 
his destruction.  The Augurs of the Detective Temple invariably 
predict that when Mr. Bucket and that finger are in much 
conference, a terrible avenger will be heard of before long.

Otherwise mildly studious in his observation of human nature, on 
the whole a benignant philosopher not disposed to be severe upon 
the follies of mankind, Mr. Bucket pervades a vast number of houses 
and strolls about an infinity of streets, to outward appearance 
rather languishing for want of an object.  He is in the friendliest 
condition towards his species and will drink with most of them.  He 
is free with his money, affable in his manners, innocent in his 
conversation--but through the placid stream of his life there 
glides an under-current of forefinger.

Time and place cannot bind Mr. Bucket.  Like man in the abstract, 
he is here to-day and gone to-morrow--but, very unlike man indeed, 
he is here again the next day.  This evening he will be casually 
looking into the iron extinguishers at the door of Sir Leicester 
Dedlock's house in town; and to-morrow morning he will be walking 
on the leads at Chesney Wold, where erst the old man walked whose 
ghost is propitiated with a hundred guineas.  Drawers, desks, 
pockets, all things belonging to him, Mr. Bucket examines.  A few 
hours afterwards, he and the Roman will be alone together comparing 
forefingers.

It is likely that these occupations are irreconcilable with home 
enjoyment, but it is certain that Mr. Bucket at present does not go 
home.  Though in general he highly appreciates the society of Mrs. 
Bucket--a lady of a natural detective genius, which if it had been 
improved by professional exercise, might have done great things, 
but which has paused at the level of a clever amateur--he holds 
himself aloof from that dear solace.  Mrs. Bucket is dependent on 
their lodger (fortunately an amiable lady in whom she takes an 
interest) for companionship and conversation.

A great crowd assembles in Lincoln's Inn Fields on the day of the 
funeral.  Sir Leicester Dedlock attends the ceremony in person; 
strictly speaking, there are only three other human followers, that 
is to say, Lord Doodle, William Buffy, and the debilitated cousin 
(thrown in as a make-weight), but the amount of inconsolable 
carriages is immense.  The peerage contributes more four-wheeled 
affliction than has ever been seen in that neighbourhood.  Such is 
the assemblage of armorial bearings on coach panels that the 
Herald's College might be supposed to have lost its father and 
mother at a blow.  The Duke of Foodle sends a splendid pile of dust 
and ashes, with silver wheel-boxes, patent axles, all the last 
improvements, and three bereaved worms, six feet high, holding on 
behind, in a bunch of woe.  All the state coachmen in London seem 
plunged into mourning; and if that dead old man of the rusty garb 
be not beyond a taste in horseflesh (which appears impossible), it 
must be highly gratified this day.

Quiet among the undertakers and the equipages and the calves of so 
many legs all steeped in grief, Mr. Bucket sits concealed in one of 
the inconsolable carriages and at his ease surveys the crowd 
through the lattice blinds.  He has a keen eye for a crowd--as for 
what not?--and looking here and there, now from this side of the 
carriage, now from the other, now up at the house windows, now 
along the people's heads, nothing escapes him.

"And there you are, my partner, eh?" says Mr. Bucket to himself, 
apostrophizing Mrs. Bucket, stationed, by his favour, on the steps 
of the deceased's house.  "And so you are.  And so you are!  And 
very well indeed you are looking, Mrs. Bucket!"

The procession has not started yet, but is waiting for the cause of 
its assemblage to be brought out.  Mr. Bucket, in the foremost 
emblazoned carriage, uses his two fat forefingers to hold the 
lattice a hair's breadth open while he looks.

And it says a great deal for his attachment, as a husband, that he 
is still occupied with Mrs. B.  "There you are, my partner, eh?" he 
murmuringly repeats.  "And our lodger with you.  I'm taking notice 
of you, Mrs. Bucket; I hope you're all right in your health, my 
dear!"

Not another word does Mr. Bucket say, but sits with most attentive 
eyes until the sacked depository of noble secrets is brought down--
Where are all those secrets now?  Does he keep them yet?  Did they 
fly with him on that sudden journey?--and until the procession 
moves, and Mr. Bucket's view is changed.  After which he composes 
himself for an easy ride and takes note of the fittings of the 
carriage in case he should ever find such knowledge useful.

Contrast enough between Mr. Tulkinghorn shut up in his dark 
carriage and Mr. Bucket shut up in HIS.  Between the immeasurable 
track of space beyond the little wound that has thrown the one into 
the fixed sleep which jolts so heavily over the stones of the 
streets, and the narrow track of blood which keeps the other in the 
watchful state expressed in every hair of his head!  But it is all 
one to both; neither is troubled about that.

Mr. Bucket sits out the procession in his own easy manner and 
glides from the carriage when the opportunity he has settled with 
himself arrives.  He makes for Sir Leicester Dedlock's, which is at 
present a sort of home to him, where he comes and goes as he likes 
at all hours', where he is always welcome and made much of, where 
he knows the whole establishment, and walks in an atmosphere of 
mysterious greatness.

No knocking or ringing for Mr. Bucket.  He has caused himself to be 
provided with a key and can pass in at his pleasure.  As he is 
crossing the hall, Mercury informs him, "Here's another letter for 
you, Mr. Bucket, come by post," and gives it him.

"Another one, eh?" says Mr. Bucket.

If Mercury should chance to be possessed by any lingering curiosity 
as to Mr. Bucket's letters, that wary person is not the man to 
gratify it.  Mr. Bucket looks at him as if his face were a vista of 
some miles in length and he were leisurely contemplating the same.

"Do you happen to carry a box?" says Mr. Bucket.

Unfortunately Mercury is no snuff-taker.

"Could you fetch me a pinch from anywheres?" says Mr. Bucket.  
"Thankee.  It don't matter what it is; I'm not particular as to the 
kind.  Thankee!"

Having leisurely helped himself from a canister borrowed from 
somebody downstairs for the purpose, and having made a considerable 
show of tasting it, first with one side of his nose and then with 
the other, Mr. Bucket, with much deliberation, pronounces it of the 
right sort and goes on, letter in hand.

Now although Mr. Bucket walks upstairs to the little library within 
the larger one with the face of a man who receives some scores of 
letters every day, it happens that much correspondence is not 
incidental to his life.  He is no great scribe, rather handling his 
pen like the pocket-staff he carries about with him always 
convenient to his grasp, and discourages correspondence with 
himself in others as being too artless and direct a way of doing 
delicate business.  Further, he often sees damaging letters 
produced in evidence and has occasion to reflect that it was a 
green thing to write them.  For these reasons he has very little to 
do with letters, either as sender or receiver.  And yet he has 
received a round half-dozen within the last twenty-four hours.

"And this," says Mr. Bucket, spreading it out on the table, "is in 
the same hand, and consists of the same two words."

What two words?

He turns the key in the door, ungirdles his black pocket-book (book 
of fate to many), lays another letter by it, and reads, boldly 
written in each, "Lady Dedlock."

"Yes, yes," says Mr. Bucket.  "But I could have made the money 
without this anonymous information."

Having put the letters in his book of fate and girdled it up again, 
he unlocks the door just in time to admit his dinner, which is 
brought upon a goodly tray with a decanter of sherry.  Mr. Bucket 
frequently observes, in friendly circles where there is no 
restraint, that he likes a toothful of your fine old brown East 
Inder sherry better than anything you can offer him.  Consequently 
he fills and empties his glass with a smack of his lips and is 
proceeding with his refreshment when an idea enters his mind.

Mr. Bucket softly opens the door of communication between that room 
and the next and looks in.  The library is deserted, and the fire 
is sinking low.  Mr. Bucket's eye, after taking a pigeon-flight 
round the room, alights upon a table where letters are usually put 
as they arrive.  Several letters for Sir Leicester are upon it.  
Mr. Bucket draws near and examines the directions.  "No," he says, 
"there's none in that hand.  It's only me as is written to.  I can 
break it to Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to-morrow."

With that he returns to finish his dinner with a good appetite, and 
after a light nap, is summoned into the drawing-room.  Sir 
Leicester has received him there these several evenings past to 
know whether he has anything to report.  The debilitated cousin 
(much exhausted by the funeral) and Volumnia are in attendance.

Mr. Bucket makes three distinctly different bows to these three 
people.  A bow of homage to Sir Leicester, a bow of gallantry to 
Volumnia, and a bow of recognition to the debilitated Cousin, to 
whom it airily says, "You are a swell about town, and you know me, 
and I know you."  Having distributed these little specimens of his 
tact, Mr. Bucket rubs his hands.

"Have you anything new to communicate, officer?" inquires Sir 
Leicester.  "Do you wish to hold any conversation with me in 
private?"

"Why--not tonight, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."

"Because my time," pursues Sir Leicester, "is wholly at your 
disposal with a view to the vindication of the outraged majesty of 
the law."

Mr. Bucket coughs and glances at Volumnia, rouged and necklaced, as 
though he would respectfully observe, "I do assure you, you're a 
pretty creetur.  I've seen hundreds worse looking at your time of 
life, I have indeed."

The fair Volumnia, not quite unconscious perhaps of the humanizing 
influence of her charms, pauses in the writing of cocked-hat notes 
and meditatively adjusts the pearl necklace.  Mr. Bucket prices 
that decoration in his mind and thinks it as likely as not that 
Volumnia is writing poetry.

"If I have not," pursues Sir Leicester, "in the most emphatic 
manner, adjured you, officer, to exercise your utmost skill in this 
atrocious case, I particularly desire to take the present 
opportunity of rectifying any omission I may have made.  Let no 
expense be a consideration.  I am prepared to defray all charges.  
You can incur none in pursuit of the object you have undertaken 
that I shall hesitate for a moment to bear."

Mr. Bucket made Sir Leicester's bow again as a response to this 
liberality.

"My mind," Sir Leicester adds with a generous warmth, "has not, as 
may be easily supposed, recovered its tone since the late 
diabolical occurrence.  It is not likely ever to recover its tone.  
But it is full of indignation to-night after undergoing the ordeal 
of consigning to the tomb the remains of a faithful, a zealous, a 
devoted adherent."

Sir Leicester's voice trembles and his grey hair stirs upon his 
head.  Tears are in his eyes; the best part of his nature is 
aroused.

"I declare," he says, "I solemnly declare that until this crime is 
discovered and, in the course of justice, punished, I almost feel 
as if there were a stain upon my name.  A gentleman who has devoted 
a large portion of his life to me, a gentleman who has devoted the 
last day of his life to me, a gentleman who has constantly sat at 
my table and slept under my roof, goes from my house to his own, 
and is struck down within an hour of his leaving my house.  I 
cannot say but that he may have been followed from my house, 
watched at my house, even first marked because of his association 
with my house--which may have suggested his possessing greater 
wealth and being altogether of greater importance than his own 
retiring demeanour would have indicated.  If I cannot with my means 
and influence and my position bring all the perpetrators of such a 
crime to light, I fail in the assertion of my respect for that 
gentleman's memory and of my fidelity towards one who was ever 
faithful to me."

While he makes this protestation with great emotion and 
earnestness, looking round the room as if he were addressing an 
assembly, Mr. Bucket glances at him with an observant gravity in 
which there might be, but for the audacity of the thought, a touch 
of compassion.

"The ceremony of to-day," continues Sir Leicester, "strikingly 
illustrative of the respect in which my deceased friend"--he lays a 
stress upon the word, for death levels all distinctions--"was held 
by the flower of the land, has, I say, aggravated the shock I have 
received from this most horrible and audacious crime.  If it were 
my brother who had committed it, I would not spare him."

Mr. Bucket looks very grave.  Volumnia remarks of the deceased that 
he was the trustiest and dearest person!

"You must feel it as a deprivation to you, miss, replies Mr. Bucket 
soothingly, "no doubt.  He was calculated to BE a deprivation, I'm 
sure he was."

Volumnia gives Mr. Bucket to understand, in reply, that her 
sensitive mind is fully made up never to get the better of it as 
long as she lives, that her nerves are unstrung for ever, and that 
she has not the least expectation of ever smiling again.  Meanwhile 
she folds up a cocked hat for that redoubtable old general at Bath, 
descriptive of her melancholy condition.

"It gives a start to a delicate female," says Mr. Bucket 
sympathetically, "but it'll wear off."

Volumnia wishes of all things to know what is doing?  Whether they 
are going to convict, or whatever it is, that dreadful soldier?  
Whether he had any accomplices, or whatever the thing is called in 
the law?  And a great deal more to the like artless purpose.

"Why you see, miss," returns Mr. Bucket, bringing the finger into 
persuasive action--and such is his natural gallantry that he had 
almost said "my dear"--"it ain't easy to answer those questions at 
the present moment.  Not at the present moment.  I've kept myself 
on this case, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," whom Mr. Bucket 
takes into the conversation in right of his importance, "morning, 
noon, and night.  But for a glass or two of sherry, I don't think I 
could have had my mind so much upon the stretch as it has been.  I 
COULD answer your questions, miss, but duty forbids it.  Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, will very soon be made acquainted with 
all that has been traced.  And I hope that he may find it"--Mr. 
Bucket again looks grave--"to his satisfaction."

The debilitated cousin only hopes some fler'll be executed--zample.  
Thinks more interest's wanted--get man hanged presentime--than get 
man place ten thousand a year.  Hasn't a doubt--zample--far better 
hang wrong fler than no fler.

"YOU know life, you know, sir," says Mr. Bucket with a 
complimentary twinkle of his eye and crook of his finger, "and you 
can confirm what I've mentioned to this lady.  YOU don't want to be 
told that from information I have received I have gone to work.  
You're up to what a lady can't be expected to be up to.  Lord!  
Especially in your elevated station of society, miss," says Mr. 
Bucket, quite reddening at another narrow escape from "my dear."

"The officer, Volumnia," observes Sir Leicester, "is faithful to 
his duty, and perfectly right."

Mr. Bucket murmurs, "Glad to have the honour of your approbation, 
Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."

"In fact, Volumnia," proceeds Sir Leicester, "it is not holding up 
a good model for imitation to ask the officer any such questions as 
you have put to him.  He is the best judge of his own 
responsibility; he acts upon his responsibility.  And it does not 
become us, who assist in making the laws, to impede or interfere 
with those who carry them into execution.  Or," says Sir Leicester 
somewhat sternly, for Volumnia was going to cut in before he had 
rounded his sentence, "or who vindicate their outraged majesty."

Volumnia with all humility explains that she had not merely the 
plea of curiosity to urge (in common with the giddy youth of her 
sex in general) but that she is perfectly dying with regret and 
interest for the darling man whose loss they all deplore.

"Very well, Volumnia," returns Sir Leicester.  "Then you cannot be 
too discreet."

Mr. Bucket takes the opportunity of a pause to be heard again.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I have no objections to telling 
this lady, with your leave and among ourselves, that I look upon 
the case as pretty well complete.  It is a beautiful case--a 
beautiful case--and what little is wanting to complete it, I expect 
to be able to supply in a few hours."

"I am very glad indeed to hear it," says Sir Leicester.  "Highly 
creditable to you."

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket very 
seriously, "I hope it may at one and the same time do me credit and 
prove satisfactory to all.  When I depict it as a beautiful case, 
you see, miss," Mr. Bucket goes on, glancing gravely at Sir 
Leicester, "I mean from my point of view.  As considered from other 
points of view, such cases will always involve more or less 
unpleasantness.  Very strange things comes to our knowledge in 
families, miss; bless your heart, what you would think to be 
phenomenons, quite."

Volumnia, with her innocent little scream, supposes so.

"Aye, and even in gen-teel families, in high families, in great 
families," says Mr. Bucket, again gravely eyeing Sir Leicester 
aside.  "I have had the honour of being employed in high families 
before, and you have no idea--come, I'll go so far as to say not 
even YOU have any idea, sir," this to the debilitated cousin, "what 
games goes on!"

The cousin, who has been casting sofa-pillows on his head, in a 
prostration of boredom yawns, "Vayli," being the used-up for "very 
likely."

Sir Leicester, deeming it time to dismiss the officer, here 
majestically interposes with the words, "Very good.  Thank you!" 
and also with a wave of his hand, implying not only that there is 
an end of the discourse, but that if high families fall into low 
habits they must take the consequences.  "You will not forget, 
officer," he adds with condescension, "that I am at your disposal 
when you please."

Mr. Bucket (still grave) inquires if to-morrow morning, now, would 
suit, in case he should be as for'ard as he expects to be.  Sir 
Leicester replies, "All times are alike to me."  Mr. Bucket makes 
his three bows and is withdrawing when a forgotten point occurs to 
him.

"Might I ask, by the by," he says in a low voice, cautiously 
returning, "who posted the reward-bill on the staircase."

"I ordered it to be put up there," replies Sir Leicester.

"Would it be considered a liberty, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, 
if I was to ask you why?"

"Not at all.  I chose it as a conspicuous part of the house.  I 
think it cannot be too prominently kept before the whole 
establishment.  I wish my people to be impressed with the enormity 
of the crime, the determination to punish it, and the hopelessness 
of escape.  At the same time, officer, if you in your better 
knowledge of the subject see any objection--"

Mr. Bucket sees none now; the bill having been put up, had better 
not be taken down.  Repeating his three bows he withdraws, closing 
the door on Volumnia's little scream, which is a preliminary to her 
remarking that that charmingly horrible person is a perfect Blue 
Chamber.

In his fondness for society and his adaptability to all grades, Mr. 
Bucket is presently standing before the hall-fire--bright and warm 
on the early winter night--admiring Mercury.

"Why, you're six foot two, I suppose?" says Mr. Bucket.

"Three," says Mercury.

"Are you so much?  But then, you see, you're broad in proportion 
and don't look it.  You're not one of the weak-legged ones, you 
ain't.  Was you ever modelled now?"  Mr. Bucket asks, conveying the 
expression of an artist into the turn of his eye and head.

Mercury never was modelled.

"Then you ought to be, you know," says Mr. Bucket; "and a friend of 
mine that you'll hear of one day as a Royal Academy sculptor would 
stand something handsome to make a drawing of your proportions for 
the marble.  My Lady's out, ain't she?"

"Out to dinner."

"Goes out pretty well every day, don't she?"

"Yes."

"Not to be wondered at!" says Mr. Bucket.  "Such a fine woman as 
her, so handsome and so graceful and so elegant, is like a fresh 
lemon on a dinner-table, ornamental wherever she goes.  Was your 
father in the same way of life as yourself?"

Answer in the negative.

"Mine was," says Mr. Bucket.  "My father was first a page, then a 
footman, then a butler, then a steward, then an inn-keeper.  Lived 
universally respected, and died lamented.  Said with his last 
breath that he considered service the most honourable part of his 
career, and so it was.  I've a brother in service, AND a brother-
in-law.  My Lady a good temper?"

Mercury replies, "As good as you can expect."

"Ah!" says Mr. Bucket.  "A little spoilt?  A little capricious?  
Lord!  What can you anticipate when they're so handsome as that?  
And we like 'em all the better for it, don't we?"

Mercury, with his hands in the pockets of his bright peach-blossom 
small-clothes, stretches his symmetrical silk legs with the air of 
a man of gallantry and can't deny it.  Come the roll of wheels and 
a violent ringing at the bell.  "Talk of the angels," says Mr. 
Bucket.  "Here she is!"

The doors are thrown open, and she passes through the hall.  Still 
very pale, she is dressed in slight mourning and wears two 
beautiful bracelets.  Either their beauty or the beauty of her arms 
is particularly attractive to Mr. Bucket.  He looks at them with an 
eager eye and rattles something in his pocket--halfpence perhaps.

Noticing him at his distance, she turns an inquiring look on the 
other Mercury who has brought her home.

"Mr. Bucket, my Lady."

Mr. Bucket makes a leg and comes forward, passing his familiar 
demon over the region of his mouth.

"Are you waiting to see Sir Leicester?"

"No, my Lady, I've seen him!"

"Have you anything to say to me?"

"Not just at present, my Lady."

"Have you made any new discoveries?"

"A few, my Lady."

This is merely in passing.  She scarcely makes a stop, and sweeps 
upstairs alone.  Mr. Bucket, moving towards the staircase-foot, 
watches her as she goes up the steps the old man came down to his 
grave, past murderous groups of statuary repeated with their 
shadowy weapons on the wall, past the printed bill, which she looks 
at going by, out of view.

"She's a lovely woman, too, she really is," says Mr. Bucket, coming 
back to Mercury.  "Don't look quite healthy though."

Is not quite healthy, Mercury informs him.  Suffers much from 
headaches.

Really?  That's a pity!  Walking, Mr. Bucket would recommend for 
that.  Well, she tries walking, Mercury rejoins.  Walks sometimes 
for two hours when she has them bad.  By night, too.

"Are you sure you're quite so much as six foot three?" asks Mr. 
Bucket.  "Begging your pardon for interrupting you a moment?"

Not a doubt about it.

"You're so well put together that I shouldn't have thought it.  But 
the household troops, though considered fine men, are built so 
straggling.  Walks by night, does she?  When it's moonlight, 
though?"

Oh, yes.  When it's moonlight!  Of course.  Oh, of course!  
Conversational and acquiescent on both sides.

"I suppose you ain't in the habit of walking yourself?" says Mr. 
Bucket.  "Not much time for it, I should say?"

Besides which, Mercury don't like it.  Prefers carriage exercise.

"To be sure," says Mr. Bucket.  "That makes a difference.  Now I 
think of it," says Mr. Bucket, warming his hands and looking 
pleasantly at the blaze, "she went out walking the very night of 
this business."

"To be sure she did!  I let her into the garden over the way.

"And left her there.  Certainly you did.  I saw you doing it."

"I didn't see YOU," says Mercury.

"I was rather in a hurry," returns Mr. Bucket, "for I was going to 
visit a aunt of mine that lives at Chelsea--next door but two to 
the old original Bun House--ninety year old the old lady is, a 
single woman, and got a little property.  Yes, I chanced to be 
passing at the time.  Let's see.  What time might it be?  It wasn't 
ten."

"Half-past nine."

"You're right.  So it was.  And if I don't deceive myself, my Lady 
was muffled in a loose black mantle, with a deep fringe to it?"

"Of course she was."

Of course she was.  Mr. Bucket must return to a little work he has 
to get on with upstairs, but he must shake hands with Mercury in 
acknowledgment of his agreeable conversation, and will he--this is 
all he asks--will he, when he has a leisure half-hour, think of 
bestowing it on that Royal Academy sculptor, for the advantage of 
both parties?



CHAPTER LIV

Springing a Mine


Refreshed by sleep, Mr. Bucket rises betimes in the morning and 
prepares for a field-day.  Smartened up by the aid of a clean shirt 
and a wet hairbrush, with which instrument, on occasions of 
ceremony, he lubricates such thin locks as remain to him after his 
life of severe study, Mr. Bucket lays in a breakfast of two mutton 
chops as a foundation to work upon, together with tea, eggs, toast, 
and marmalade on a corresponding scale.  Having much enjoyed these 
strengthening matters and having held subtle conference with his 
familiar demon, he confidently instructs Mercury "just to mention 
quietly to Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, that whenever he's ready 
for me, I'm ready for him."  A gracious message being returned that 
Sir Leicester will expedite his dressing and join Mr. Bucket in the 
library within ten minutes, Mr. Bucket repairs to that apartment 
and stands before the fire with his finger on his chin, looking at 
the blazing coals.

Thoughtful Mr. Bucket is, as a man may be with weighty work to do, 
but composed, sure, confident.  From the expression of his face he 
might be a famous whist-player for a large stake--say a hundred 
guineas certain--with the game in his hand, but with a high 
reputation involved in his playing his hand out to the last card in 
a masterly way.  Not in the least anxious or disturbed is Mr. 
Bucket when Sir Leicester appears, but he eyes the baronet aside as 
he comes slowly to his easy-chair with that observant gravity of 
yesterday in which there might have been yesterday, but for the 
audacity of the idea, a touch of compassion.

"I am sorry to have kept you waiting, officer, but I am rather 
later than my usual hour this morning.  I am not well.  The 
agitation and the indignation from which I have recently suffered 
have been too much for me.  I am subject to--gout"--Sir Leicester 
was going to say indisposition and would have said it to anybody 
else, but Mr. Bucket palpably knows all about it--"and recent 
circumstances have brought it on."

As he takes his seat with some difficulty and with an air of pain, 
Mr. Bucket draws a little nearer, standing with one of his large 
hands on the library-table.

"I am not aware, officer," Sir Leicester observes; raising his eyes 
to his face, "whether you wish us to be alone, but that is entirely 
as you please.  If you do, well and good.  If not, Miss Dedlock 
would be interested--"

"Why, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket with his 
head persuasively on one side and his forefinger pendant at one ear 
like an earring, "we can't be too private just at present.  You 
will presently see that we can't be too private.  A lady, under the 
circumstances, and especially in Miss Dedlock's elevated station of 
society, can't but be agreeable to me, but speaking without a view 
to myself, I will take the liberty of assuring you that I know we 
can't be too private."

"That is enough."

"So much so, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," Mr. Bucket resumes, 
"that I was on the point of asking your permission to turn the key 
in the door."

"By all means."  Mr. Bucket skilfully and softly takes that 
precaution, stooping on his knee for a moment from mere force of 
habit so to adjust the key in the lock as that no one shall peep in 
from the outerside.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I mentioned yesterday evening that 
I wanted but a very little to complete this case.  I have now 
completed it and collected proof against the person who did this 
crime."

"Against the soldier?"

"No, Sir Leicester Dedlock; not the soldier."

Sir Leicester looks astounded and inquires, "Is the man in 
custody?"

Mr. Bucket tells him, after a pause, "It was a woman."

Sir Leicester leans back in his chair, and breathlessly ejaculates, 
"Good heaven!"

"Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," Mr. Bucket begins, standing 
over him with one hand spread out on the library-table and the 
forefinger of the other in impressive use, "it's my duty to prepare 
you for a train of circumstances that may, and I go so far as to 
say that will, give you a shock.  But Sir Leicester Dedlock, 
Baronet, you are a gentleman, and I know what a gentleman is and 
what a gentleman is capable of.  A gentleman can bear a shock when 
it must come, boldly and steadily.  A gentleman can make up his 
mind to stand up against almost any blow.  Why, take yourself, Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.  If there's a blow to be inflicted on 
you, you naturally think of your family.  You ask yourself, how 
would all them ancestors of yours, away to Julius Caesar--not to go 
beyond him at present--have borne that blow; you remember scores of 
them that would have borne it well; and you bear it well on their 
accounts, and to maintain the family credit.  That's the way you 
argue, and that's the way you act, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet."

Sir Leicester, leaning back in his chair and grasping the elbows, 
sits looking at him with a stony face.

"Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock," proceeds Mr. Bucket, "thus preparing 
you, let me beg of you not to trouble your mind for a moment as to 
anything having come to MY knowledge.  I know so much about so many 
characters, high and low, that a piece of information more or less 
don't signify a straw.  I don't suppose there's a move on the board 
that would surprise ME, and as to this or that move having taken 
place, why my knowing it is no odds at all, any possible move 
whatever (provided it's in a wrong direction) being a probable move 
according to my experience.  Therefore, what I say to you, Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, is, don't you go and let yourself be 
put out of the way because of my knowing anything of your family 
affairs."

"I thank you for your preparation," returns Sir Leicester after a 
silence, without moving hand, foot, or feature, "which I hope is 
not necessary; though I give it credit for being well intended.  Be 
so good as to go on.  Also"--Sir Leicester seems to shrink in the 
shadow of his figure--"also, to take a seat, if you have no 
objection."

None at all.  Mr. Bucket brings a chair and diminishes his shadow.  
"Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, with this short preface I 
come to the point.  Lady Dedlock--"

Sir Leicester raises himself in his seat and stares at him 
fiercely.  Mr. Bucket brings the finger into play as an emollient.

"Lady Dedlock, you see she's universally admired.  That's what her 
ladyship is; she's universally admired," says Mr. Bucket.

"I would greatly prefer, officer," Sir Leicester returns stiffly, 
"my Lady's name being entirely omitted from this discussion."

"So would I, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, but--it's impossible."

"Impossible?"

Mr. Bucket shakes his relentless head.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it's altogether impossible.  What 
I have got to say is about her ladyship.  She is the pivot it all 
turns on."

"Officer," retorts Sir Leicester with a fiery eye and a quivering 
lip, "you know your duty.  Do your duty, but be careful not to 
overstep it.  I would not suffer it.  I would not endure it.  You 
bring my Lady's name into this communication upon your 
responsibility--upon your responsibility.  My Lady's name is not a 
name for common persons to trifle with!"

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I say what I must say, and no 
more."

"I hope it may prove so.  Very well.  Go on.  Go on, sir!"  
Glancing at the angry eyes which now avoid him and at the angry 
figure trembling from head to foot, yet striving to be still, Mr. 
Bucket feels his way with his forefinger and in a low voice 
proceeds.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it becomes my duty to tell you 
that the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn long entertained mistrusts and 
suspicions of Lady Dedlock."

"If he had dared to breathe them to me, sir--which he never did--I 
would have killed him myself!" exclaims Sir Leicester, striking his 
hand upon the table.  But in the very heat and fury of the act he 
stops, fixed by the knowing eyes of Mr. Bucket, whose forefinger is 
slowly going and who, with mingled confidence and patience, shakes 
his head.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn was deep and 
close, and what he fully had in his mind in the very beginning I 
can't quite take upon myself to say.  But I know from his lips that 
he long ago suspected Lady Dedlock of having discovered, through 
the sight of some handwriting--in this very house, and when you 
yourself, Sir Leicester Dedlock, were present--the existence, in 
great poverty, of a certain person who had been her lover before 
you courted her and who ought to have been her husband."  Mr. 
Bucket stops and deliberately repeats, "Ought to have been her 
husband, not a doubt about it.  I know from his lips that when that 
person soon afterwards died, he suspected Lady Dedlock of visiting 
his wretched lodging and his wretched grave, alone and in secret.  
I know from my own inquiries and through my eyes and ears that Lady 
Dedlock did make such visit in the dress of her own maid, for the 
deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn employed me to reckon up her ladyship--if 
you'll excuse my making use of the term we commonly employ--and I 
reckoned her up, so far, completely.  I confronted the maid in the 
chambers in Lincoln's Inn Fields with a witness who had been Lady 
Dedlock's guide, and there couldn't be the shadow of a doubt that 
she had worn the young woman's dress, unknown to her.  Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I did endeavour to pave the way a 
little towards these unpleasant disclosures yesterday by saying 
that very strange things happened even in high families sometimes.  
All this, and more, has happened in your own family, and to and 
through your own Lady.  It's my belief that the deceased Mr. 
Tulkinghorn followed up these inquiries to the hour of his death 
and that he and Lady Dedlock even had bad blood between them upon 
the matter that very night.  Now, only you put that to Lady 
Dedlock, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and ask her ladyship 
whether, even after he had left here, she didn't go down to his 
chambers with the intention of saying something further to him, 
dressed in a loose black mantle with a deep fringe to it."

Sir Leicester sits like a statue, gazing at the cruel finger that 
is probing the life-blood of his heart.

"You put that to her ladyship, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, from 
me, Inspector Bucket of the Detective.  And if her ladyship makes 
any difficulty about admitting of it, you tell her that it's no 
use, that Inspector Bucket knows it and knows that she passed the 
soldier as you called him (though he's not in the army now) and 
knows that she knows she passed him on the staircase.  Now, Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, why do I relate all this?"

Sir Leicester, who has covered his face with his hands, uttering a 
single groan, requests him to pause for a moment.  By and by he 
takes his hands away, and so preserves his dignity and outward 
calmness, though there is no more colour in his face than in his 
white hair, that Mr. Bucket is a little awed by him.  Something 
frozen and fixed is upon his manner, over and above its usual shell 
of haughtiness, and Mr. Bucket soon detects an unusual slowness in 
his speech, with now and then a curious trouble in beginning, which 
occasions him to utter inarticulate sounds.  With such sounds he 
now breaks silence, soon, however, controlling himself to say that 
he does not comprehend why a gentleman so faithful and zealous as 
the late Mr. Tulkinghorn should have communicated to him nothing of 
this painful, this distressing, this unlooked-for, this 
overwhelming, this incredible intelligence.

"Again, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," returns Mr. Bucket, "put 
it to her ladyship to clear that up.  Put it to her ladyship, if 
you think it right, from Inspector Bucket of the Detective.  You'll 
find, or I'm much mistaken, that the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn had 
the intention of communicating the whole to you as soon as he 
considered it ripe, and further, that he had given her ladyship so 
to understand.  Why, he might have been going to reveal it the very 
morning when I examined the body!  You don't know what I'm going to 
say and do five minutes from this present time, Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet; and supposing I was to be picked off now, you 
might wonder why I hadn't done it, don't you see?"

True.  Sir Leicester, avoiding, with some trouble those obtrusive 
sounds, says, "True."  At this juncture a considerable noise of 
voices is heard in the hall.  Mr. Bucket, after listening, goes to 
the library-door, softly unlocks and opens it, and listens again.  
Then he draws in his head and whispers hurriedly but composedly, 
"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, this unfortunate family affair has 
taken air, as I expected it might, the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn 
being cut down so sudden.  The chance to hush it is to let in these 
people now in a wrangle with your footmen.  Would you mind sitting 
quiet--on the family account--while I reckon 'em up?  And would you 
just throw in a nod when I seem to ask you for it?"

Sir Leicester indistinctly answers, "Officer.  The best you can, 
the best you can!" and Mr. Bucket, with a nod and a sagacious crook 
of the forefinger, slips down into the hall, where the voices 
quickly die away.  He is not long in returning; a few paces ahead 
of Mercury and a brother deity also powdered and in peach-blossomed 
smalls, who bear between them a chair in which is an incapable old 
man.  Another man and two women come behind.  Directing the 
pitching of the chair in an affable and easy manner, Mr. Bucket 
dismisses the Mercuries and locks the door again.  Sir Leicester 
looks on at this invasion of the sacred precincts with an icy 
stare.

"Now, perhaps you may know me, ladies and gentlemen," says Mr. 
Bucket in a confidential voice.  "I am Inspector Bucket of the 
Detective, I am; and this," producing the tip of his convenient 
little staff from his breast-pocket, "is my authority.  Now, you 
wanted to see Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.  Well! You do see 
him, and mind you, it ain't every one as is admitted to that 
honour.  Your name, old gentleman, is Smallweed; that's what your 
name is; I know it well."

"Well, and you never heard any harm of it!" cries Mr. Smallweed in 
a shrill loud voice.

"You don't happen to know why they killed the pig, do you?" retorts 
Mr. Bucket with a steadfast look, but without loss of temper.

"No!"

"Why, they killed him," says Mr. Bucket, "on account of his having 
so much cheek.  Don't YOU get into the same position, because it 
isn't worthy of you.  You ain't in the habit of conversing with a 
deaf person, are you?"

"Yes," snarls Mr. Smallweed, "my wife's deaf."

"That accounts for your pitching your voice so high.  But as she 
ain't here; just pitch it an octave or two lower, will you, and 
I'll not only be obliged to you, but it'll do you more credit," 
says Mr. Bucket.  "This other gentleman is in the preaching line, I 
think?"

"Name of Chadband," Mr. Smallweed puts in, speaking henceforth in a 
much lower key.

"Once had a friend and brother serjeant of the same name," says Mr. 
Bucket, offering his hand, "and consequently feel a liking for it.  
Mrs. Chadband, no doubt?"

"And Mrs. Snagsby," Mr. Smallweed introduces.

"Husband a law-stationer and a friend of my own," says Mr. Bucket.  
"Love him like a brother!  Now, what's up?"

"Do you mean what business have we come upon?" Mr. Smallweed asks, 
a little dashed by the suddenness of this turn.

"Ah! You know what I mean.  Let us hear what it's all about in 
presence of Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.  Come."

Mr. Smallweed, beckoning Mr. Chadband, takes a moment's counsel 
with him in a whisper.  Mr. Chadband, expressing a considerable 
amount of oil from the pores of his forehead and the palms of his 
hands, says aloud, "Yes.  You first!" and retires to his former 
place.

"I was the client and friend of Mr. Tulkinghorn," pipes Grandfather 
Smallweed then; "I did business with him.  I was useful to him, and 
he was useful to me.  Krook, dead and gone, was my brother-in-law.  
He was own brother to a brimstone magpie--leastways Mrs. Smallweed.  
I come into Krook's property.  I examined all his papers and all 
his effects.  They was all dug out under my eyes.  There was a 
bundle of letters belonging to a dead and gone lodger as was hid 
away at the back of a shelf in the side of Lady Jane's bed--his 
cat's bed.  He hid all manner of things away, everywheres.  Mr. 
Tulkinghorn wanted 'em and got 'em, but I looked 'em over first.  
I'm a man of business, and I took a squint at 'em.  They was 
letters from the lodger's sweetheart, and she signed Honoria.  Dear 
me, that's not a common name, Honoria, is it?  There's no lady in 
this house that signs Honoria is there?  Oh, no, I don't think so!  
Oh, no, I don't think so!  And not in the same hand, perhaps?  Oh, 
no, I don't think so!"

Here Mr. Smallweed, seized with a fit of coughing in the midst of 
his triumph, breaks off to ejaculate, "Oh, dear me!  Oh, Lord!  I'm 
shaken all to pieces!"

"Now, when you're ready," says Mr. Bucket after awaiting his 
recovery, "to come to anything that concerns Sir Leicester Dedlock, 
Baronet, here the gentleman sits, you know."

"Haven't I come to it, Mr. Bucket?" cries Grandfather Smallweed.  
"Isn't the gentleman concerned yet?  Not with Captain Hawdon, and 
his ever affectionate Honoria, and their child into the bargain?  
Come, then, I want to know where those letters are.  That concerns 
me, if it don't concern Sir Leicester Dedlock.  I will know where 
they are.  I won't have 'em disappear so quietly.  I handed 'em 
over to my friend and solicitor, Mr. Tulkinghorn, not to anybody 
else."

"Why, he paid you for them, you know, and handsome too," says Mr. 
Bucket.

"I don't care for that.  I want to know who's got 'em.  And I tell 
you what we want--what we all here want, Mr. Bucket.  We want more 
painstaking and search-making into this murder.  We know where the 
interest and the motive was, and you have not done enough.  If 
George the vagabond dragoon had any hand in it, he was only an 
accomplice, and was set on.  You know what I mean as well as any 
man."

"Now I tell you what," says Mr. Bucket, instantaneously altering 
his manner, coming close to him, and communicating an extraordinary 
fascination to the forefinger, "I am damned if I am a-going to have 
my case spoilt, or interfered with, or anticipated by so much as 
half a second of time by any human being in creation.  YOU want 
more painstaking and search-making!  YOU do?  Do you see this hand, 
and do you think that I don't know the right time to stretch it out 
and put it on the arm that fired that shot?"

Such is the dread power of the man, and so terribly evident it is 
that he makes no idle boast, that Mr. Smallweed begins to 
apologize.  Mr. Bucket, dismissing his sudden anger, checks him.

"The advice I give you is, don't you trouble your head about the 
murder.  That's my affair.  You keep half an eye on the newspapers, 
and I shouldn't wonder if you was to read something about it before 
long, if you look sharp.  I know my business, and that's all I've 
got to say to you on that subject.  Now about those letters.  You 
want to know who's got 'em.  I don't mind telling you.  I have got 
'em.  Is that the packet?"

Mr. Smallweed looks, with greedy eyes, at the little bundle Mr. 
Bucket produces from a mysterious part of his coat, and identifles 
it as the same.

"What have you got to say next?" asks Mr. Bucket.  "Now, don't open 
your mouth too wide, because you don't look handsome when you do 
it."

"I want five hundred pound."

"No, you don't; you mean fifty," says Mr. Bucket humorously.

It appears, however, that Mr. Smallweed means five hundred.

"That is, I am deputed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to 
consider (without admitting or promising anything) this bit of 
business," says Mr. Bucket--Sir Leicester mechanically bows his 
head--"and you ask me to consider a proposal of five hundred 
pounds.  Why, it's an unreasonable proposal!  Two fifty would be 
bad enough, but better than that.  Hadn't you better say two 
fifty?"

Mr. Smallweed is quite clear that he had better not.

"Then," says Mr. Bucket, "let's hear Mr. Chadband.  Lord!  Many a 
time I've heard my old fellow-serjeant of that name; and a moderate 
man he was in all respects, as ever I come across!"

Thus invited, Mr. Chadband steps forth, and after a little sleek 
smiling and a little oil-grinding with the palms of his hands, 
delivers himself as follows, "My friends, we are now--Rachael, my 
wife, and I--in the mansions of the rich and great.  Why are we now 
in the mansions of the rich and great, my friends?  Is it because 
we are invited?  Because we are bidden to feast with them, because 
we are bidden to rejoice with them, because we are bidden to play 
the lute with them, because we are bidden to dance with them?  No.  
Then why are we here, my friends?  Air we in possession of a sinful 
secret, and do we require corn, and wine, and oil, or what is much 
the same thing, money, for the keeping thereof?  Probably so, my 
friends."

"You're a man of business, you are," returns Mr. Bucket, very 
attentive, "and consequently you're going on to mention what the 
nature of your secret is.  You are right.  You couldn't do better."

"Let us then, my brother, in a spirit of love," says Mr. Chadband 
with a cunning eye, "proceed unto it. Rachael, my wife, advance!"

Mrs. Chadband, more than ready, so advances as to jostle her 
husband into the background and confronts Mr. Bucket with a hard, 
frowning smile.

"Since you want to know what we know," says she, "I'll tell you.  I 
helped to bring up Miss Hawdon, her ladyship's daughter.  I was in 
the service of her ladyship's sister, who was very sensitive to the 
disgrace her ladyship brought upon her, and gave out, even to her 
ladyship, that the child was dead--she WAS very nearly so--when she 
was born.  But she's alive, and I know her."  With these words, and 
a laugh, and laying a bitter stress on the word "ladyship," Mrs. 
Chadband folds her arms and looks implacably at Mr. Bucket.

"I suppose now," returns that officer, "YOU will he expecting a 
twenty-pound note or a present of about that figure?"

Mrs. Chadband merely laughs and contemptuously tells him he can 
"offer" twenty pence.

"My friend the law-stationer's good lady, over there," says Mr. 
Bucket, luring Mrs. Snagsby forward with the finger.  "What may 
YOUR game be, ma'am?"

Mrs. Snagsby is at first prevented, by tears and lamentations, from 
stating the nature of her game, but by degrees it confusedly comes 
to light that she is a woman overwhelmed with injuries and wrongs, 
whom Mr. Snagsby has habitually deceived, abandoned, and sought to 
keep in darkness, and whose chief comfort, under her afflictions, 
has been the sympathy of the late Mr. Tulkinghorn, who showed so 
much commiseration for her on one occasion of his calling in Cook's 
Court in the absence of her perjured husband that she has of late 
habitually carried to him all her woes.  Everybody it appears, the 
present company excepted, has plotted against Mrs. Snagsby's peace.  
There is Mr. Guppy, clerk to Kenge and Carboy, who was at first as 
open as the sun at noon, but who suddenly shut up as close as 
midnight, under the influence--no doubt--of Mr. Snagsby's suborning 
and tampering.  There is Mr. Weevle, friend of Mr. Guppy, who lived 
mysteriously up a court, owing to the like coherent causes.  There 
was Krook, deceased; there was Nimrod, deceased; and there was Jo, 
deceased; and they were "all in it."  In what, Mrs. Snagsby does 
not with particularity express, but she knows that Jo was Mr. 
Snagsby's son, "as well as if a trumpet had spoken it," and she 
followed Mr. Snagsby when he went on his last visit to the boy, and 
if he was not his son why did he go?  The one occupation of her 
life has been, for some time back, to follow Mr. Snagsby to and 
fro, and up and down, and to piece suspicious circumstances 
together--and every circumstance that has happened has been most 
suspicious; and in this way she has pursued her object of detecting 
and confounding her false husband, night and day.  Thus did it come 
to pass that she brought the Chadbands and Mr. Tulkinghorn 
together, and conferred with Mr. Tulkinghorn on the change in Mr. 
Guppy, and helped to turn up the circumstances in which the present 
company are interested, casually, by the wayside, being still and 
ever on the great high road that is to terminate in Mr. Snagsby's 
full exposure and a matrimonial separation.  All this, Mrs. 
Snagsby, as an injured woman, and the friend of Mrs. Chadband, and 
the follower of Mr. Chadband, and the mourner of the late Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, is here to certify under the seal of confidence, with 
every possible confusion and involvement possible and impossible, 
having no pecuniary motive whatever, no scheme or project but the 
one mentioned, and bringing here, and taking everywhere, her own 
dense atmosphere of dust, arising from the ceaseless working of her 
mill of jealousy.

While this exordium is in hand--and it takes some time--Mr. Bucket, 
who has seen through the transparency of Mrs. Snagsby's vinegar at 
a glance, confers with his familiar demon and bestows his shrewd 
attention on the Chadbands and Mr. Smallweed.  Sir Leicester 
Dedlock remains immovable, with the same icy surface upon him, 
except that he once or twice looks towards Mr. Bucket, as relying 
on that officer alone of all mankind.

"Very good," says Mr. Bucket.  "Now I understand you, you know, and 
being deputed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, to look into this 
little matter," again Sir Leicester mechanically bows in 
confirmation of the statement, "can give it my fair and full 
attention.  Now I won't allude to conspiring to extort money or 
anything of that sort, because we are men and women of the world 
here, and our object is to make things pleasant.  But I tell you 
what I DO wonder at; I am surprised that you should think of making 
a noise below in the hall.  It was so opposed to your interests.  
That's what I look at."

"We wanted to get in," pleads Mr. Smallweed.

"Why, of course you wanted to get in," Mr. Bucket asserts with 
cheerfulness; "but for a old gentleman at your time of life--what I 
call truly venerable, mind you!--with his wits sharpened, as I have 
no doubt they are, by the loss of the use of his limbs, which 
occasions all his animation to mount up into his head, not to 
consider that if he don't keep such a business as the present as 
close as possible it can't be worth a mag to him, is so curious!  
You see your temper got the better of you; that's where you lost 
ground," says Mr. Bucket in an argumentative and friendly way.

"I only said I wouldn't go without one of the servants came up to 
Sir Leicester Dedlock," returns Mr. Smallweed.

"That's it!  That's where your temper got the better of you. Now, 
you keep it under another time and you'll make money by it.  Shall 
I ring for them to carry you down?"

"When are we to hear more of this?" Mrs. Chadband sternly demands.

"Bless your heart for a true woman!  Always curious, your 
delightful sex is!" replies Mr. Bucket with gallantry.  "I shall 
have the pleasure of giving you a call to-morrow or next day--not 
forgetting Mr. Smallweed and his proposal of two fifty."

"Five hundred!" exclaims Mr. Smallweed.

"All right!  Nominally five hundred."  Mr. Bucket has his hand on 
the bell-rope.  "SHALL I wish you good day for the present on the 
part of myself and the gentleman of the house?" he asks in an 
insinuating tone.

Nobody having the hardihood to object to his doing so, he does it, 
and the party retire as they came up.  Mr. Bucket follows them to 
the door, and returning, says with an air of serious business, "Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, it's for you to consider whether or not 
to buy this up.  I should recommend, on the whole, it's being 
bought up myself; and I think it may be bought pretty cheap.  You 
see, that little pickled cowcumber of a Mrs. Snagsby has been used 
by all sides of the speculation and has done a deal more harm in 
bringing odds and ends together than if she had meant it.  Mr. 
Tulkinghorn, deceased, he held all these horses in his hand and 
could have drove 'em his own way, I haven't a doubt; but he was 
fetched off the box head-foremost, and now they have got their legs 
over the traces, and are all dragging and pulling their own ways.  
So it is, and such is life.  The cat's away, and the mice they 
play; the frost breaks up, and the water runs.  Now, with regard to 
the party to be apprehended."

Sir Leicester seems to wake, though his eyes have been wide open, 
and he looks intently at Mr. Bucket as Mr. Bucket refers to his 
watch.

"The party to be apprehended is now in this house," proceeds Mr. 
Bucket, putting up his watch with a steady hand and with rising 
spirits, "and I'm about to take her into custody in your presence.  
Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, don't you say a word nor yet stir.  
There'll be no noise and no disturbance at all.  I'll come back in 
the course of the evening, if agreeable to you, and endeavour to 
meet your wishes respecting this unfortunate family matter and the 
nobbiest way of keeping it quiet.  Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, 
Baronet, don't you be nervous on account of the apprehension at 
present coming off.  You shall see the whole case clear, from first 
to last."

Mr. Bucket rings, goes to the door, briefly whispers Mercury, shuts 
the door, and stands behind it with his arms folded.  After a 
suspense of a minute or two the door slowly opens and a Frenchwoman 
enters.  Mademoiselle Hortense.

The moment she is in the room Mr. Bucket claps the door to and puts 
his back against it.  The suddenness of the noise occasions her to 
turn, and then for the first time she sees Sir Leicester Dedlock in 
his chair.

"I ask you pardon," she mutters hurriedly.  "They tell me there was 
no one here."

Her step towards the door brings her front to front with Mr. 
Bucket.  Suddenly a spasm shoots across her face and she turns 
deadly pale.

"This is my lodger, Sir Leicester Dedlock," says Mr. Bucket, 
nodding at her.  "This foreign young woman has been my lodger for 
some weeks back."

"What do Sir Leicester care for that, you think, my angel?" returns 
mademoiselle in a jocular strain.

"Why, my angel," returns Mr. Bucket, "we shall see."

Mademoiselle Hortense eyes him with a scowl upon her tight face, 
which gradually changes into a smile of scorn, "You are very 
mysterieuse.  Are you drunk?"

"Tolerable sober, my angel," returns Mr. Bucket.

"I come from arriving at this so detestable house with your wife.  
Your wife have left me since some minutes.  They tell me downstairs 
that your wife is here.  I come here, and your wife is not here.  
What is the intention of this fool's play, say then?" mademoiselle 
demands, with her arms composedly crossed, but with something in 
her dark cheek beating like a clock.

Mr. Bucket merely shakes the finger at her.

"Ah, my God, you are an unhappy idiot!" cries mademoiselle with a 
toss of her head and a laugh.  "Leave me to pass downstairs, great 
pig."  With a stamp of her foot and a menace.

"Now, mademoiselle," says Mr. Bucket in a cool determined way, "you 
go and sit down upon that sofy."

"I will not sit down upon nothing," she replies with a shower of 
nods.

"Now, mademoiselle," repeats Mr. Bucket, making no demonstration 
except with the finger, "you sit down upon that sofy."

"Why?"

"Because I take you into custody on a charge of murder, and you 
don't need to be told it.  Now, I want to be polite to one of your 
sex and a foreigner if I can.  If I can't, I must be rough, and 
there's rougher ones outside.  What I am to be depends on you.  So 
I recommend you, as a friend, afore another half a blessed moment 
has passed over your head, to go and sit down upon that sofy."

Mademoiselle complies, saying in a concentrated voice while that 
something in her cheek beats fast and hard, "You are a devil."

"Now, you see," Mr. Bucket proceeds approvingly, "you're 
comfortable and conducting yourself as I should expect a foreign 
young woman of your sense to do.  So I'll give you a piece of 
advice, and it's this, don't you talk too much.  You're not 
expected to say anything here, and you can't keep too quiet a 
tongue in your head.  In short, the less you PARLAY, the better, 
you know."  Mr. Bucket is very complacent over this French 
explanation.

Mademoiselle, with that tigerish expansion of the mouth and her 
black eyes darting fire upon him, sits upright on the sofa in a 
rigid state, with her hands clenched--and her feet too, one might 
suppose--muttering, "Oh, you Bucket, you are a devil!"

"Now, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," says Mr. Bucket, and from 
this time forth the finger never rests, "this young woman, my 
lodger, was her ladyship's maid at the time I have mentioned to 
you; and this young woman, besides being extraordinary vehement and 
passionate against her ladyship after being discharged--"

"Lie!" cries mademoiselle.  "I discharge myself."

"Now, why don't you take my advice?" returns Mr. Bucket in an 
impressive, almost in an imploring, tone.  "I'm surprised at the 
indiscreetness you commit.  You'll say something that'll be used 
against you, you know.  You're sure to come to it.  Never you mind 
what I say till it's given in evidence.  It is not addressed to 
you."

"Discharge, too," cries mademoiselle furiously, "by her ladyship!  
Eh, my faith, a pretty ladyship!  Why, I r-r-r-ruin my character hy 
remaining with a ladyship so infame!"

"Upon my soul I wonder at you!" Mr. Bucket remonstrates.  "I 
thought the French were a polite nation, I did, really.  Yet to 
hear a female going on like that before Sir Leicester Dedlock, 
Baronet!"

"He is a poor abused!" cries mademoiselle.  "I spit upon his house, 
upon his name, upon his imbecility," all of which she makes the 
carpet represent.  "Oh, that he is a great man!  Oh, yes, superb!  
Oh, heaven!  Bah!"

"Well, Sir Leicester Dedlock," proceeds Mr. Bucket, "this 
intemperate foreigner also angrily took it into her head that she 
had established a claim upon Mr. Tulkinghorn, deceased, by 
attending on the occasion I told you of at his chambers, though she 
was liberally paid for her time and trouble."

"Lie!" cries mademoiselle.  "I ref-use his money all togezzer."

"If you WILL PARLAY, you know," says Mr. Bucket parenthetically, 
"you must take the consequences.  Now, whether she became my 
lodger, Sir Leicester Dedlock, with any deliberate intention then 
of doing this deed and blinding me, I give no opinion on; but she 
lived in my house in that capacity at the time that she was 
hovering about the chambers of the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn with a 
view to a wrangle, and likewise persecuting and half frightening 
the life out of an unfortunate stationer."

"Lie!" cries mademoiselle.  "All lie!"

"The murder was commttted, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and you 
know under what circumstances.  Now, I beg of you to follow me 
close with your attention for a minute or two.  I was sent for, and 
the case was entrusted to me.  I examined the place, and the body, 
and the papers, and everything.  From information I received (from 
a clerk in the same house) I took George into custody as having 
been seen hanging about there on the night, and at very nigh the 
time of the murder, also as having been overheard in high words 
with the deceased on former occasions--even threatening him, as the 
witness made out.  If you ask me, Sir Leicester Dedlock, whether 
from the first I believed George to be the murderer, I tell you 
candidly no, but he might be, notwithstanding, and there was enough 
against him to make it my duty to take him and get him kept under 
remand.  Now, observe!"

As Mr. Bucket bends forward in some excitement--for him--and 
inaugurates what he is going to say with one ghostly beat of his 
forefinger in the air, Mademoiselle Hortense fixes her black eyes 
upon him with a dark frown and sets her dry lips closely and firmly 
together.

"I went home, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, at night and found 
this young woman having supper with my wife, Mrs. Bucket.  She had 
made a mighty show of being fond of Mrs. Bucket from her first 
offering herself as our lodger, but that night she made more than 
ever--in fact, overdid it.  Likewise she overdid her respect, and 
all that, for the lamented memory of the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn.  
By the living Lord it flashed upon me, as I sat opposite to her at 
the table and saw her with a knife in her hand, that she had done 
it!"

Mademoiselle is hardly audible in straining through her teeth and 
lips the words, "You are a devil."

"Now where," pursues Mr. Bucket, "had she been on the night of the 
murder?  She had been to the theayter.  (She really was there, I 
have since found, both before the deed and after it.)  I knew I had 
an artful customer to deal with and that proof would be very 
difficult; and I laid a trap for her--such a trap as I never laid 
yet, and such a venture as I never made yet.  I worked it out in my 
mind while I was talking to her at supper.  When I went upstairs to 
bed, our house being small and this young woman's ears sharp, I 
stuffed the sheet into Mrs. Bucket's mouth that she shouldn't say a 
word of surprise and told her all about it.  My dear, don't you 
give your mind to that again, or I shall link your feet together at 
the ankles."  Mr. Bucket, breaking off, has made a noiseless 
descent upon mademoiselle and laid his heavy hand upon her 
shoulder.

"What is the matter with you now?" she asks him.

"Don't you think any more," returns Mr. Bucket with admonitory 
finger, "of throwing yourself out of window.  That's what's the 
matter with me.  Come!  Just take my arm.  You needn't get up; I'll 
sit down by you.  Now take my arm, will you?  I'm a married man, 
you know; you're acquainted with my wife.  Just take my arm."

Vaiuly endeavouring to moisten those dry lips, with a painful sound 
she struggles with herself and complies.

"Now we're all right again.  Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, this 
case could never have been the case it is but for Mrs. Bucket, who 
is a woman in fifty thousand--in a hundred and fifty thousand!  To 
throw this young woman off her guard, I have never set foot in our 
house since, though I've communicated with Mrs. Bucket in the 
baker's loaves and in the milk as often as required.  My whispered 
words to Mrs. Bucket when she had the sheet in her mouth were, 'My 
dear, can you throw her off continually with natural accounts of my 
suspicions against George, and this, and that, and t'other?  Can 
you do without rest and keep watch upon her night and day?  Can you 
undertake to say, "She shall do nothing without my knowledge, she 
shall be my prisoner without suspecting it, she shall no more 
escape from me than from death, and her life shall be my life, and 
her soul my soul, till I have got her, if she did this murder?"'   
Mrs. Bucket says to me, as well as she could speak on account of 
the sheet, 'Bucket, I can!'  And she has acted up to it glorious!"

"Lies!" mademoiselle interposes.  "All lies, my friend!"

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, how did my calculations come out 
under these circumstances?  When I calculated that this impetuous 
young woman would overdo it in new directions, was I wrong or 
right?  I was right.  What does she try to do?  Don't let it give 
you a turn?  To throw the murder on her ladyship."

Sir Leicester rises from his chair and staggers down again.

"And she got encouragement in it from hearing that I was always 
here, which was done a-purpose.  Now, open that pocket-book of 
mine, Sir Leicester Dedlock, if I may take the liberty of throwing 
it towards you, and look at the letters sent to me, each with the 
two words 'Lady Dedlock' in it.  Open the one directed to yourself, 
which I stopped this very morning, and read the three words 'Lady 
Dedlock, Murderess' in it.  These letters have been falling about 
like a shower of lady-birds.  What do you say now to Mrs. Bucket, 
from her spy-place having seen them all 'written by this young 
woman?  What do you say to Mrs. Bucket having, within this half-
hour, secured the corresponding ink and paper, fellow half-sheets 
and what not?  What do you say to Mrs. Bucket having watched the 
posting of 'em every one by this young woman, Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet?"  Mr. Bucket asks, triumphant in his admiration 
of his lady's genius.

Two things are especially observable as Mr. Bucket proceeds to a 
conclusion.  First, that he seems imperceptibly to establish a 
dreadful right of property in mademoiselle.  Secondly, that the 
very atmosphere she breathes seems to narrow and contract about her 
as if a close net or a pall were being drawn nearer and yet nearer 
around her breathless figure.

"There is no doubt that her ladyship was on the spot at the 
eventful period," says Mr. Bucket, "and my foreign friend here saw 
her, I believe, from the upper part of the staircase.  Her ladyship 
and George and my foreign friend were all pretty close on one 
another's heels.  But that don't signify any more, so I'll not go 
into it.  I found the wadding of the pistol with which the deceased 
Mr. Tulkinghorn was shot.  It was a bit of the printed description 
of your house at Chesney Wold.  Not much in that, you'll say, Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet.  No.  But when my foreign friend here 
is so thoroughly off her guard as to think it a safe time to tear 
up the rest of that leaf, and when Mrs. Bucket puts the pieces 
together and finds the wadding wanting, it begins to look like 
Queer Street."

"These are very long lies," mademoiselle interposes.  "You prose 
great deal.  Is it that you have almost all finished, or are you 
speaking always?"

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet," proceeds Mr. Bucket, who delights 
in a full title and does violence to himself when he dispenses with 
any fragment of it, "the last point in the case which I am now 
going to mention shows the necessity of patience in our business, 
and never doing a thing in a hurry.  I watched this young woman 
yesterday without her knowledge when she was looking at the 
funeral, in company with my wife, who planned to take her there; 
and I had so much to convict her, and I saw such an expression in 
her face, and my mind so rose against her malice towards her 
ladyship, and the time was altogether such a time for bringing down 
what you may call retribution upon her, that if I had been a 
younger hand with less experience, I should have taken her, 
certain.  Equally, last night, when her ladyship, as is so 
universally admired I am sure, come home looking--why, Lord, a man 
might almost say like Venus rising from the ocean--it was so 
unpleasant and inconsistent to think of her being charged with a 
murder of which she was innocent that I felt quite to want to put 
an end to the job.  What should I have lost?  Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet, I should have lost the weapon.  My prisoner here 
proposed to Mrs. Bucket, after the departure of the funeral, that 
they should go per bus a little ways into the country and take tea 
at a very decent house of entertainment.  Now, near that house of 
entertainment there's a piece of water.  At tea, my prisoner got up 
to fetch her pocket handkercher from the bedroom where the bonnets 
was; she was rather a long time gone and came back a little out of 
wind.  As soon as they came home this was reported to me by Mrs. 
Bucket, along with her observations and suspicions.  I had the 
piece of water dragged by moonlight, in presence of a couple of our 
men, and the pocket pistol was brought up before it had been there 
half-a-dozen hours.  Now, my dear, put your arm a little further 
through mine, and hold it steady, and I shan't hurt you!"

In a trice Mr. Bucket snaps a handcuff on her wrist.  "That's one," 
says Mr. Bucket.  "Now the other, darling.  Two, and all told!"

He rises; she rises too.  "Where," she asks him, darkening her 
large eyes until their drooping lids almost conceal them--and yet 
they stare, "where is your false, your treacherous, and cursed 
wife?"

"She's gone forrard to the Police Office," returns Mr. Bucket.  
"You'll see her there, my dear."

"I would like to kiss her!" exclaims Mademoiselle Hortense, panting 
tigress-like.

"You'd bite her, I suspect," says Mr. Bucket.

"I would!" making her eyes very large.  "I would love to tear her 
limb from limb."

"Bless you, darling," says Mr. Bucket with the greatest composure, 
"I'm fully prepared to hear that.  Your sex have such a surprising 
animosity against one another when you do differ.  You don't mind 
me half so much, do you?"

"No.  Though you are a devil still."

"Angel and devil by turns, eh?" cries Mr. Bucket.  "But I am in my 
regular employment, you must consider.  Let me put your shawl tidy.  
I've been lady's maid to a good many before now.  Anything wanting 
to the bonnet?  There's a cab at the door."

Mademoiselle Hortense, casting an indignant eye at the glass, 
shakes herself perfectly neat in one shake and looks, to do her 
justice, uncommonly genteel.

"Listen then, my angel," says she after several sarcastic nods.  
"You are very spiritual.  But can you restore him back to life?"

Mr. Bucket answers, "Not exactly."

"That is droll.  Listen yet one time.  You are very spiritual.  Can 
you make a honourahle lady of her?"

"Don't be so malicious," says Mr. Bucket.

"Or a haughty gentleman of HIM?" cries mademoiselle, referring to 
Sir Leicester with ineffable disdain.  "Eh!  Oh, then regard him!  
The poor infant!  Ha! Ha! Ha!"

"Come, come, why this is worse PARLAYING than the other," says Mr. 
Bucket.  "Come along!"

"You cannot do these things?  Then you can do as you please with 
me.  It is but the death, it is all the same.  Let us go, my angel.  
Adieu, you old man, grey.  I pity you, and I despise you!"

With these last words she snaps her teeth together as if her mouth 
closed with a spring.  It is impossible to describe how Mr. Bucket 
gets her out, but he accomplishes that feat in a manner so peculiar 
to himself, enfolding and pervading her like a cloud, and hovering 
away with her as if he were a homely Jupiter and she the object of 
his affections.

Sir Leicester, left alone, remains in the same attitude, as though 
he were still listening and his attention were still occupied.  At 
length he gazes round the empty room, and finding it deserted, 
rises unsteadily to his feet, pushes back his chair, and walks a 
few steps, supporting himself by the table.  Then he stops, and 
with more of those inarticulate sounds, lifts up his eyes and seems 
to stare at something.

Heaven knows what he sees.  The green, green woods of Chesney Wold, 
the noble house, the pictures of his forefathers, strangers 
defacing them, officers of police coarsely handling his most 
precious heirlooms, thousands of fingers pointing at him, thousands 
of faces sneering at him.  But if such shadows flit before him to 
his bewilderment, there is one other shadow which he can name with 
something like distinctness even yet and to which alone he 
addresses his tearing of his white hair and his extended arms.

It is she in association with whom, saving that she has been for 
years a main fibre of the root of his dignity and pride, he has 
never had a selfish thought.  It is she whom he has loved, admired, 
honoured, and set up for the world to respect.  It is she who, at 
the core of all the constrained formalities and conventionalities 
of his life, has been a stock of living tenderness and love, 
susceptible as nothing else is of being struck with the agony he 
feels.  He sees her, almost to the exclusion of himself, and cannot 
bear to look upon her cast down from the high place she has graced 
so well.

And even to the point of his sinking on the ground, oblivious of 
his suffering, he can yet pronounce her name with something like 
distinctness in the midst of those intrusive sounds, and in a tone 
of mourning and compassion rather than reproach.



CHAPTER LV

Flight


Inspector Bucket of the Detective has not yet struck his great 
blow, as just now chronicled, but is yet refreshing himself with 
sleep preparatory to his field-day, when through the night and 
along the freezing wintry roads a chaise and pair comes out of 
Lincolnshire, making its way towards London.

Railroads shall soon traverse all this country, and with a rattle 
and a glare the engine and train shall shoot like a meteor over the 
wide night-landscape, turning the moon paler; but as yet such 
things are non-existent in these parts, though not wholly 
unexpected.  Preparations are afoot, measurements are made, ground 
is staked out.  Bridges are begun, and their not yet united piers 
desolately look at one another over roads and streams like brick 
and mortar couples with an obstacle to their union; fragments of 
embankments are thrown up and left as precipices with torrents of 
rusty carts and barrows tumbling over them; tripods of tall poles 
appear on hilltops, where there are rumours of tunnels; everything 
looks chaotic and abandoned in full hopelessness.  Along the 
freezing roads, and through the night, the post-chaise makes its 
way without a railroad on its mind.

Mrs. Rouncewell, so many years housekeeper at Chesney Wold, sits 
within the chaise; and by her side sits Mrs. Bagnet with her grey 
cloak and umbrella.  The old girl would prefer the bar in front, as 
being exposed to the weather and a primitive sort of perch more in 
accordance with her usual course of travelling, but Mrs. Rouncewell 
is too thoughtful of her comfort to admit of her proposing it.  The 
old lady cannot make enough of the old girl.  She sits, in her 
stately manner, holding her hand, and regardless of its roughness, 
puts it often to her lips.  "You are a mother, my dear soul," says 
she many times, "and you found out my George's mother!"

"Why, George," returns Mrs. Bagnet, "was always free with me, 
ma'am, and when he said at our house to my Woolwich that of all the 
things my Woolwich could have to think of when he grew to be a man, 
the comfortablest would be that he had never brought a sorrowful 
line into his mother's face or turned a hair of her head grey, then 
I felt sure, from his way, that something fresh had brought his own 
mother into his mind.  I had often known him say to me, in past 
times, that he had behaved bad to her."

"Never, my dear!" returns Mrs. Rouncewell, bursting into tears.  
"My blessing on him, never!  He was always fond of me, and loving 
to me, was my George!  But he had a bold spirit, and he ran a 
little wild and went for a soldier.  And I know he waited at first, 
in letting us know about himself, till he should rise to be an 
officer; and when he didn't rise, I know he considered himself 
beneath us, and wouldn't be a disgrace to us.  For he had a lion 
heart, had my George, always from a baby!"

The old lady's hands stray about her as of yore, while she recalls, 
all in a tremble, what a likely lad, what a fine lad, what a gay 
good-humoured clever lad he was; how they all took to him down at 
Chesney Wold; how Sir Leicester took to him when he was a young 
gentleman; how the dogs took to him; how even the people who had 
been angry with him forgave him the moment he was gone, poor boy.  
And now to see him after all, and in a prison too!  And the broad 
stomacher heaves, and the quaint upright old-fashioned figure bends 
under its load of affectionate distress.

Mrs. Bagnet, with the instinctive skill of a good warm heart, 
leaves the old housekeeper to her emotions for a little while--not 
without passing the back of her hand across her own motherly eyes--
and presently chirps up in her cheery manner, "So I says to George 
when I goes to call him in to tea (he pretended to be smoking his 
pipe outside), 'What ails you this afternoon, George, for gracious 
sake?  I have seen all sorts, and I have seen you pretty often in 
season and out of season, abroad and at home, and I never see you 
so melancholy penitent.'  'Why, Mrs. Bagnet,' says George, 'it's 
because I AM melancholy and penitent both, this afternoon, that you 
see me so.'  'What have you done, old fellow?' I says.  'Why, Mrs. 
Bagnet,' says George, shaking his head, 'what I have done has been 
done this many a long year, and is best not tried to be undone now.  
If I ever get to heaven it won't be for being a good son to a 
widowed mother; I say no more.'  Now, ma'am, when George says to me 
that it's best not tried to be undone now, I have my thoughts as I 
have often had before, and I draw it out of George how he comes to 
have such things on him that afternoon.  Then George tells me that 
he has seen by chance, at the lawyer's office, a fine old lady that 
has brought his mother plain before him, and he runs on about that 
old lady till he quite forgets himself and paints her picture to me 
as she used to be, years upon years back.  So I says to George when 
he has done, who is this old lady he has seen?  And George tells me 
it's Mrs. Rouncewell, housekeeper for more than half a century to 
the Dedlock family down at Chesney Wold in Lincolnshire.  George 
has frequently told me before that he's a Lincolnshire man, and I 
says to my old Lignum that night, 'Lignum, that's his mother for 
five and for-ty pound!'"

All this Mrs. Bagnet now relates for the twentieth time at least 
within the last four hours.  Trilling it out like a kind of bird, 
with a pretty high note, that it may be audible to the old lady 
above the hum of the wheels.

"Bless you, and thank you," says Mrs. Rouncewell.  "Bless you, and 
thank you, my worthy soul!"

"Dear heart!" cries Mrs. Bagnet in the most natural manner.  "No 
thanks to me, I am sure.  Thanks to yourself, ma'am, for being so 
ready to pay 'em!  And mind once more, ma'am, what you had best do 
on finding George to be your own son is to make him--for your sake
--have every sort of help to put himself in the right and clear 
himself of a charge of which he is as innocent as you or me.  It 
won't do to have truth and justice on his side; he must have law 
and lawyers," exclaims the old girl, apparently persuaded that the 
latter form a separate establishment and have dissolved partnership 
with truth and justice for ever and a day.

"He shall have," says Mrs. Rouncewell, "all the help that can be 
got for him in the world, my dear.  I will spend all I have, and 
thankfully, to procure it.  Sir Leicester will do his best, the 
whole family will do their best.  I--I know something, my dear; and 
will make my own appeal, as his mother parted from him all these 
years, and finding him in a jail at last."

The extreme disquietude of the old housekeeper's manner in saying 
this, her broken words, and her wringing of her hands make a 
powerful impression on Mrs. Bagnet and would astonish her but that 
she refers them all to her sorrow for her son's condition.  And yet 
Mrs. Bagnet wonders too why Mrs. Rouncewell should murmur so 
distractedly, "My Lady, my Lady, my Lady!" over and over again.

The frosty night wears away, and the dawn breaks, and the post-
chaise comes rolling on through the early mist like the ghost of a 
chaise departed.  It has plenty of spectral company in ghosts of 
trees and hedges, slowly vanishing and giving place to the 
realities of day.  London reached, the travellers alight, the old 
housekeeper in great tribulation and confusion, Mrs. Bagnet quite 
fresh and collected--as she would be if her next point, with no new 
equipage and outfit, were the Cape of Good Hope, the Island of 
Ascension, Hong Kong, or any other military station.

But when they set out for the prison where the trooper is confined, 
the old lady has managed to draw about her, with her lavender-
coloured dress, much of the staid calmness which is its usual 
accompaniment.  A wonderfully grave, precise, and handsome piece of 
old china she looks, though her heart beats fast and her stomacher 
is ruffled more than even the remembrance of this wayward son has 
ruffled it these many years.

Approaching the cell, they find the door opening and a warder in 
the act of coming out.  The old girl promptly makes a sign of 
entreaty to him to say nothing; assenting with a nod, he suffers 
them to enter as he shuts the door.

So George, who is writing at his table, supposing himself to be 
alone, does not raise his eyes, but remains absorbed.  The old 
housekeeper looks at him, and those wandering hands of hers are 
quite enough for Mrs. Bagnet's confirmation, even if she could see 
the mother and the son together, knowing what she knows, and doubt 
their relationship.

Not a rustle of the housekeeper's dress, not a gesture, not a word 
betrays her.  She stands looking at him as he writes on, all 
unconscious, and only her fluttering hands give utterance to her 
emotions.  But they are very eloquent, very, very eloquent.  Mrs. 
Bagnet understands them.  They speak of gratitude, of joy, of 
grief, of hope; of inextinguishable affection, cherished with no 
return since this stalwart man was a stripling; of a better son 
loved less, and this son loved so fondly and so proudly; and they 
speak in such touching language that Mrs. Bagnet's eyes brim up 
with tears and they run glistening down her sun-brown face.

"George Rouncewell!  Oh, my dear child, turn and look at me!"

The trooper starts up, clasps his mother round the neck, and falls 
down on his knees before her.  Whether in a late repentance, 
whether in the first association that comes back upon him, he puts 
his hands together as a child does when it says its prayers, and 
raising them towards her breast, bows down his head, and cries.

"My George, my dearest son!  Always my favourite, and my favourite 
still, where have you been these cruel years and years?  Grown such 
a man too, grown such a fine strong man.  Grown so like what I knew 
he must be, if it pleased God he was alive!"

She can ask, and he can answer, nothing connected for a time.  All 
that time the old girl, turned away, leans one arm against the 
whitened wall, leans her honest forehead upon it, wipes her eyes 
with her serviceable grey cloak, and quite enjoys herself like the 
best of old girls as she is.

"Mother," says the trooper when they are more composed, "forgive me 
first of all, for I know my need of it."

Forgive him!  She does it with all her heart and soul.  She always 
has done it.  She tells him how she has had it written in her will, 
these many years, that he was her beloved son George.  She has 
never believed any ill of him, never.  If she had died without this 
happiness--and she is an old woman now and can't look to live very 
long--she would have blessed him with her last breath, if she had 
had her senses, as her beloved son George.

"Mother, I have been an undutiful trouble to you, and I have my 
reward; but of late years I have had a kind of glimmering of a 
purpose in me too.  When I left home I didn't care much, mother--I 
am afraid not a great deal--for leaving; and went away and 'listed, 
harum-scarum, making believe to think that I cared for nobody, no 
not I, and that nobody cared for me."

The trooper has dried his eyes and put away his handkerchief, but 
there is an extraordinary contrast between his habitual manner of 
expressing himself and carrying himself and the softened tone in 
which he speaks, interrupted occasionally by a half-stifled sob.

"So I wrote a line home, mother, as you too well know, to say I had 
'listed under another name, and I went abroad.  Abroad, at one time 
I thought I would write home next year, when I might be better off; 
and when that year was out, I thought I would write home next year, 
when I might be better off; and when that year was out again, 
perhaps I didn't think much about it.  So on, from year to year, 
through a service of ten years, till I began to get older, and to 
ask myself why should I ever write."

"I don't find any fault, child--but not to ease my mind, George?  
Not a word to your loving mother, who was growing older too?"

This almost overturns the trooper afresh, but he sets himself up 
with a great, rough, sounding clearance of his throat.

"Heaven forgive me, mother, but I thought there would be small 
consolation then in hearing anything about me.  There were you, 
respected and esteemed.  There was my brother, as I read in chance 
North Country papers now and then, rising to be prosperous and 
famous.  There was I a dragoon, roving, unsettled, not self-made 
like him, but self-unmade--all my earlier advantages thrown away, 
all my little learning unlearnt, nothing picked up but what 
unfitted me for most things that I could think of.  What business 
had I to make myself known?  After letting all that time go by me, 
what good could come of it?  The worst was past with you, mother.  
I knew by that time (being a man) how you had mourned for me, and 
wept for me, and prayed for me; and the pain was over, or was 
softened down, and I was better in your mind as it was."

The old lady sorrowfully shakes her head, and taking one of his 
powerful hands, lays it lovingly upon her shoulder.

"No, I don't say that it was so, mother, but that I made it out to 
be so.  I said just now, what good could come of it?  Well, my dear 
mother, some good might have come of it to myself--and there was 
the meanness of it.  You would have sought me out; you would have 
purchased my discharge; you would have taken me down to Chesney 
Wold; you would have brought me and my brother and my brother's 
family together; you would all have considered anxiously how to do 
something for me and set me up as a respectable civilian.  But how 
could any of you feel sure of me when I couldn't so much as feel 
sure of myself?  How could you help regarding as an incumbrance and 
a discredit to you an idle dragooning chap who was an incumbrance 
and a discredit to himself, excepting under discipline?  How could 
I look my brother's children in the face and pretend to set them an 
example--I, the vagabond boy who had run away from home and been 
the grief and unhappiness of my mother's life?  'No, George.'  Such 
were my words, mother, when I passed this in review before me: 'You 
have made your bed.  Now, lie upon it.'"

Mrs. Rouncewell, drawing up her stately form, shakes her head at 
the old girl with a swelling pride upon her, as much as to say, "I 
told you so!"  The old girl relieves her feelings and testifies her 
interest in the conversation by giving the trooper a great poke 
between the shoulders with her umbrella; this action she afterwards 
repeats, at intervals, in a species of affectionate lunacy, never 
failing, after the administration of each of these remonstrances, 
to resort to the whitened wall and the grey cloak again.

"This was the way I brought myself to think, mother, that my best 
amends was to lie upon that bed I had made, and die upon it.  And I 
should have done it (though I have been to see you more than once 
down at Chesney Wold, when you little thought of me) but for my old 
comrade's wife here, who I find has been too many for me.  But I 
thank her for it.  I thank you for it, Mrs. Bagnet, with all my 
heart and might."

To which Mrs. Bagnet responds with two pokes.

And now the old lady impresses upon her son George, her own dear 
recovered boy, her joy and pride, the light of her eyes, the happy 
close of her life, and every fond name she can think of, that he 
must be governed by the best advice obtainable by money and 
influence, that he must yield up his case to the greatest lawyers 
that can be got, that he must act in this serious plight as he 
shall be advised to act and must not be self-willed, however right, 
but must promise to think only of his poor old mother's anxiety and 
suffering until he is released, or he will break her heart.

"Mother, 'tis little enough to consent to," returns the trooper, 
stopping her with a kiss; "tell me what I shall do, and I'll make a 
late beginning and do it.  Mrs. Bagnet, you'll take care of my 
mother, I know?"

A very hard poke from the old girl's umbrella.

"If you'll bring her acquainted with Mr. Jarndyce and Miss 
Summerson, she will find them of her way of thinking, and they will 
give her the best advice and assistance."

"And, George," says the old lady, "we must send with all haste for 
your brother.  He is a sensible sound man as they tell me--out in 
the world beyond Chesney Wold, my dear, though I don't know much of 
it myself--and will be of great service."

"Mother," returns the trooper, "is it too soon to ask a favour?"

"Surely not, my dear."

"Then grant me this one great favour.  Don't let my brother know."

"Not know what, my dear?"

"Not know of me.  In fact, mother, I can't bear it; I can't make up 
my mmd to it.  He has proved himself so different from me and has 
done so much to raise himself while I've been soldiering that I 
haven't brass enough in my composition to see him in this place and 
under this charge.  How could a man like him be expected to have 
any pleasure in such a discovery?  It's impossible.  No, keep my 
secret from him, mother; do me a greater kindness than I deserve 
and keep my secret from my brother, of all men."

"But not always, dear George?"

"Why, mother, perhaps not for good and all--though I may come to 
ask that too--but keep it now, I do entreat you.  If it's ever 
broke to him that his rip of a brother has turned up, I could 
wish," says the trooper, shaking his head very doubtfully, "to 
break it myself and be governed as to advancing or retreating by 
the way in which he seems to take it."

As he evidently has a rooted feeling on this point, and as the 
depth of it is recognized in Mrs. Bagnet's face, his mother yields 
her implicit assent to what he asks.  For this he thanks her 
kindly.

"In all other respects, my dear mother, I'll be as tractable and 
obedient as you can wish; on this one alone, I stand out.  So now I 
am ready even for the lawyers.  I have been drawing up," he glances 
at his writing on the table, "an exact account of what I knew of 
the deceased and how I came to be involved in this unfortunate 
affair.  It's entered, plain and regular, like an orderly-book; not 
a word in it but what's wanted for the facts.  I did intend to read 
it, straight on end, whensoever I was called upon to say anything 
in my defence.  I hope I may be let to do it still; but I have no 
longer a will of my own in this case, and whatever is said or done, 
I give my promise not to have any."

Matters being brought to this so far satisfactory pass, and time 
being on the wane, Mrs. Bagnet proposes a departure.  Again and 
again the old lady hangs upon her son's neck, and again and again 
the trooper holds her to his broad chest.

"Where are you going to take my mother, Mrs. Bagnet?"

"I am going to the town house, my dear, the family house.  I have 
some business there that must be looked to directly," Mrs. 
Rouncewell answers.

"Will you see my mother safe there in a coach, Mrs. Bagnet?  But of 
course I know you will.  Why should I ask it!"

Why indeed, Mrs. Bagnet expresses with the umbrella.

"Take her, my old friend, and take my gratitude along with you.  
Kisses to Quebec and Malta, love to my godson, a hearty shake of 
the hand to Lignum, and this for yourself, and I wish it was ten 
thousand pound in gold, my dear!"  So saying, the trooper puts his 
lips to the old girl's tanned forehead, and the door shuts upon him 
in his cell.

No entreaties on the part of the good old housekeeper will induce 
Mrs. Bagnet to retain the coach for her own conveyance home.  
Jumping out cheerfully at the door of the Dedlock mansion and 
handing Mrs. Rouncewell up the steps, the old girl shakes hands and 
trudges off, arriving soon afterwards in the bosom of the Bagnet 
family and falling to washing the greens as if nothing had 
happened.

My Lady is in that room in which she held her last conference with 
the murdered man, and is sitting where she sat that night, and is 
looking at the spot where he stood upon the hearth studying her so 
leisurely, when a tap comes at the door.  Who is it?  Mrs. 
Rouncewell.  What has brought Mrs. Rouncewell to town so 
unexpectedly?

"Trouble, my Lady.  Sad trouble.  Oh, my Lady, may I beg a word 
with you?"

What new occurrence is it that makes this tranquil old woman 
tremble so?  Far happier than her Lady, as her Lady has often 
thought, why does she falter in this manner and look at her with 
such strange mistrust?

"What is the matter?  Sit down and take your breath."

"Oh, my Lady, my Lady.  I have found my son--my youngest, who went 
away for a soldier so long ago.  And he is in prison."

"For debt?"

"Oh, no, my Lady; I would have paid any debt, and joyful."

"For what is he in prison then?"

"Charged with a murder, my Lady, of which he is as innocent as--as 
I am.  Accused of the murder of Mr. Tulkinghorn."

What does she mean by this look and this imploring gesture?  Why 
does she come so close?  What is the letter that she holds?

"Lady Dedlock, my dear Lady, my good Lady, my kind Lady!  You must 
have a heart to feel for me, you must have a heart to forgive me.  
I was in this family before you were born.  I am devoted to it.  
But think of my dear son wrongfully accused."

"I do not accuse him."

"No, my Lady, no.  But others do, and he is in prison and in 
danger.  Oh, Lady Dedlock, if you can say but a word to help to 
clear him, say it!"

What delusion can this be?  What power does she suppose is in the 
person she petitions to avert this unjust suspicion, if it be 
unjust?  Her Lady's handsome eyes regard her with astonishment, 
almost with fear.

"My Lady, I came away last night from Chesney Wold to find my son 
in my old age, and the step upon the Ghost's Walk was so constant 
and so solemn that I never heard the like in all these years.  
Night after night, as it has fallen dark, the sound has echoed 
through your rooms, but last night it was awfullest.  And as it 
fell dark last night, my Lady, I got this letter."

"What letter is it?"

"Hush!  Hush!"  The housekeeper looks round and answers in a 
frightened whisper, "My Lady, I have not breathed a word of it, I 
don't believe what's written in it, I know it can't be true, I am 
sure and certain that it is not true.  But my son is in danger, and 
you must have a heart to pity me.  If you know of anything that is 
not known to others, if you have any suspicion, if you have any 
clue at all, and any reason for keeping it in your own breast, oh, 
my dear Lady, think of me, and conquer that reason, and let it be 
known!  This is the most I consider possible.  I know you are not a 
hard lady, but you go your own way always without help, and you are 
not familiar with your friends; and all who admire you--and all do
--as a beautiful and elegant lady, know you to be one far away from 
themselves who can't be approached close.  My Lady, you may have 
some proud or angry reasons for disdaining to utter something that 
you know; if so, pray, oh, pray, think of a faithful servant whose 
whole life has been passed in this family which she dearly loves, 
and relent, and help to clear my son!  My Lady, my good Lady," the 
old housekeeper pleads with genuine simplicity, "I am so humble in 
my place and you are by nature so high and distant that you may not 
think what I feel for my child, but I feel so much that I have come 
here to make so bold as to beg and pray you not to be scornful of 
us if you can do us any right or justice at this fearful time!"

Lady Dedlock raises her without one word, until she takes the 
letter from her hand.

"Am I to read this?"

"When I am gone, my Lady, if you please, and then remembering the 
most that I consider possible."

"I know of nothing I can do.  I know of nothing I reserve that can 
affect your son.  I have never accused him."

"My Lady, you may pity him the more under a false accusation after 
reading the letter."

The old housekeeper leaves her with the letter in her hand.  In 
truth she is not a hard lady naturally, and the time has been when 
the sight of the venerable figure suing to her with such strong 
earnestness would have moved her to great compassion.  But so long 
accustomed to suppress emotion and keep down reality, so long 
schooled for her own purposes in that destructive school which 
shuts up the natural feelings of the heart like flies in amber and 
spreads one uniform and dreary gloss over the good and bad, the 
feeling and the unfeeling, the sensible and the senseless, she had 
subdued even her wonder until now.

She opens the letter.  Spread out upon the paper is a printed 
account of the discovery of the body as it lay face downward on the 
floor, shot through the heart; and underneath is written her own 
name, with the word "murderess" attached.

It falls out of her hand.  How long it may have lain upon the 
ground she knows not, but it lies where it fell when a servant 
stands before her announcing the young man of the name of Guppy.  
The words have probably been repeated several times, for they are 
ringing in her head before she begins to understand them.

"Let him come in!"

He comes in.  Holding the letter in her hand, which she has taken 
from the floor, she tries to collect her thoughts.  In the eyes of 
Mr. Guppy she is the same Lady Dedlock, holding the same prepared, 
proud, chilling state.

"Your ladyship may not be at first disposed to excuse this visit 
from one who has never been welcome to your ladyship"--which he 
don't complain of, for he is bound to confess that there never has 
been any particular reason on the face of things why he should be--
"but I hope when I mention my motives to your ladyship you will not 
find fault with me," says Mr. Guppy.

"Do so."

"Thank your ladyship.  I ought first to explain to your ladyship," 
Mr. Guppy sits on the edge of a chair and puts his hat on the 
carpet at his feet, "that Miss Summerson, whose image, as I 
formerly mentioned to your ladyship, was at one period of my life 
imprinted on my 'eart until erased by circumstances over which I 
had no control, communicated to me, after I had the pleasure of 
waiting on your ladyship last, that she particularly wished me to 
take no steps whatever in any manner at all relating to her.  And 
Miss Summerson's wishes being to me a law (except as connected with 
circumstances over which I have no control), I consequently never 
expected to have the distinguished honour of waiting on your 
ladyship again."

And yet he is here now, Lady Dedlock moodily reminds him.

"And yet I am here now," Mr. Guppy admits.  "My object being to 
communicate to your ladyship, under the seal of confidence, why I 
am here."

He cannot do so, she tells him, too plainly or too briefly.  "Nor 
can I," Mr. Guppy returns with a sense of injury upon him, "too 
particularly request your ladyship to take particular notice that 
it's no personal affair of mine that brings me here.  I have no 
interested views of my own to serve in coming here.  If it was not 
for my promise to Miss Summerson and my keeping of it sacred--I, in 
point of fact, shouldn't have darkened these doors again, but 
should have seen 'em further first."

Mr. Guppy considers this a favourable moment for sticking up his 
hair with both hands.

"Your ladyship will remember when I mention it that the last time I 
was here I run against a party very eminent in our profession and 
whose loss we all deplore.  That party certainly did from that time 
apply himself to cutting in against me in a way that I will call 
sharp practice, and did make it, at every turn and point, extremely 
difficult for me to be sure that I hadn't inadvertently led up to 
something contrary to Miss Summerson's wishes.  Self-praise is no 
recommendation, but I may say for myself that I am not so bad a man 
of business neither."

Lady Dedlock looks at him in stern inquiry.  Mr. Guppy immediately 
withdraws his eyes from her face and looks anywhere else.

"Indeed, it has been made so hard," he goes on, "to have any idea 
what that party was up to in combination with others that until the 
loss which we all deplore I was gravelled--an expression which your 
ladyship, moving in the higher circles, will be so good as to 
consider tantamount to knocked over.  Small likewise--a name by 
which I refer to another party, a friend of mine that your ladyship 
is not acquainted with--got to be so close and double-faced that at 
times it wasn't easy to keep one's hands off his 'ead.  However, 
what with the exertion of my humble abilities, and what with the 
help of a mutual friend by the name of Mr. Tony Weevle (who is of a 
high aristocratic turn and has your ladyship's portrait always 
hanging up in his room), I have now reasons for an apprehension as 
to which I come to put your ladyship upon your guard.  First, will 
your ladyship allow me to ask you whether you have had any strange 
visitors this morning?  I don't mean fashionable visitors, but such 
visitors, for instance, as Miss Barbary's old servant, or as a 
person without the use of his lower extremities, carried upstairs 
similarly to a guy?"

"No!"

"Then I assure your ladyship that such visitors have been here and 
have been received here.  Because I saw them at the door, and 
waited at the corner of the square till they came out, and took 
half an hour's turn afterwards to avoid them."

"What have I to do with that, or what have you?  I do not 
understand you.  What do you mean?"

"Your ladyship, I come to put you on your guard.  There may be no 
occasion for it.  Very well.  Then I have only done my best to keep 
my promise to Miss Summerson.  I strongly suspect (from what Small 
has dropped, and from what we have corkscrewed out of him) that 
those letters I was to have brought to your ladyship were not 
destroyed when I supposed they were.  That if there was anything to 
be blown upon, it IS blown upon.  That the visitors I have alluded 
to have been here this morning to make money of it.  And that the 
money is made, or making."

Mr. Guppy picks up his hat and rises.

"Your ladyship, you know best whether there's anything in what I 
say or whether there's nothing.  Something or nothing, I have acted 
up to Miss Summerson's wishes in letting things alone and in 
undoing what I had begun to do, as far as possible; that's 
sufficient for me.  In case I should be taking a liberty in putting 
your ladyship on your guard when there's no necessity for it, you 
will endeavour, I should hope, to outlive my presumption, and I 
shall endeavour to outlive your disapprobation.  I now take my 
farewell of your ladyship, and assure you that there's no danger of 
your ever being waited on by me again."

She scarcely acknowledges these parting words by any look, but when 
he has been gone a little while, she rings her bell.

"Where is Sir Leicester?"

Mercury reports that he is at present shut up in the library alone.

"Has Sir Leicester had any visitors this morning?"

Several, on business.  Mercury proceeds to a description of them, 
which has been anticipated by Mr. Guppy.  Enough; he may go.

So!  All is broken down.  Her name is in these many mouths, her 
husband knows his wrongs, her shame will be published--may be 
spreading while she thinks about it--and in addition to the 
thunderbolt so long foreseen by her, so unforeseen by him, she is 
denounced by an invisible accuser as the murderess of her enemy.

Her enemy he was, and she has often, often, often wished him dead.  
Her enemy he is, even in his grave.  This dreadful accusation comes 
upon her like a new torment at his lifeless hand.  And when she 
recalls how she was secretly at his door that night, and how she 
may be represented to have sent her favourite girl away so soon 
before merely to release herself from observation, she shudders as 
if the hangman's hands were at her neck.

She has thrown herself upon the floor and lies with her hair all 
wildly scattered and her face buried in the cushions of a couch.  
She rises up, hurries to and fro, flings herself down again, and 
rocks and moans.  The horror that is upon her is unutterable.  If 
she really were the murderess, it could hardly be, for the moment, 
more intense.

For as her murderous perspective, before the doing of the deed, 
however subtle the precautions for its commission, would have been 
closed up by a gigantic dilatation of the hateful figure, 
preventing her from seeing any consequences beyond it; and as those 
consequences would have rushed in, in an unimagined flood, the 
moment the figure was laid low--which always happens when a murder 
is done; so, now she sees that when he used to be on the watch 
before her, and she used to think, "if some mortal stroke would but 
fall on this old man and take him from my way!" it was but wishing 
that all he held against her in his hand might be flung to the 
winds and chance-sown in many places.  So, too, with the wicked 
relief she has felt in his death.  What was his death but the key-
stone of a gloomy arch removed, and now the arch begins to fall in 
a thousand fragments, each crushing and mangling piecemeal!

Thus, a terrible impression steals upon and overshadows her that 
from this pursuer, living or dead--obdurate and imperturbable 
before her in his well-remembered shape, or not more obdurate and 
imperturbable in his coffin-bed--there is no escape but in death.  
Hunted, she flies.  The complication of her shame, her dread, 
remorse, and misery, overwhelms her at its height; and even her 
strength of self-reliance is overturned and whirled away like a 
leaf before a mighty wind.

She hurriedly addresses these lines to her husband, seals, and 
leaves them on her table:


If I am sought for, or accused of, his murder, believe that I am 
wholly innocent.  Believe no other good of me, for I am innocent of 
nothing else that you have heard, or will hear, laid to my charge.  
He prepared me, on that fatal night, for his disclosure of my guilt 
to you.  After he had left me, I went out on pretence of walking in 
the garden where I sometimes walk, but really to follow him and 
make one last petition that he would not protract the dreadful 
suspense on which I have been racked by him, you do not know how 
long, but would mercifully strike next morning.

I found his house dark and silent.  I rang twice at his door, but 
there was no reply, and I came home.

I have no home left.  I will encumber you no more.  May you, in 
your just resentment, be able to forget the unworthy woman on whom 
you have wasted a most generous devotion--who avoids you only with 
a deeper shame than that with which she hurries from herself--and 
who writes this last adieu.


She veils and dresses quickly, leaves all her jewels and her money, 
listens, goes downstairs at a moment when the hall is empty, opens 
and shuts the great door, flutters away in the shrill frosty wind.


CHAPTER LVI

Pursuit


Impassive, as behoves its high breeding, the Dedlock town house 
stares at the other houses in the street of dismal grandeur and 
gives no outward sign of anything going wrong within.  Carriages 
rattle, doors are battered at, the world exchanges calls; ancient 
charmers with skeleton throats and peachy cheeks that have a rather 
ghastly bloom upon them seen by daylight, when indeed these 
fascinating creatures look like Death and the Lady fused together, 
dazzle the eyes of men.  Forth from the frigid mews come easily 
swinging carriages guided by short-legged coachmen in flaxen wigs, 
deep sunk into downy hammercloths, and up behind mount luscious 
Mercuries bearing sticks of state and wearing cocked hats 
broadwise, a spectacle for the angels.

The Dedlock town house changes not externally, and hours pass 
before its exalted dullness is disturbed within.  But Volumnia the 
fair, being subject to the prevalent complaint of boredom and 
finding that disorder attacking her spirits with some virulence, 
ventures at length to repair to the library for change of scene.  
Her gentle tapping at the door producing no response, she opens it 
and peeps in; seeing no one there, takes possession.

The sprightly Dedlock is reputed, in that grass-grown city of the 
ancients, Bath, to be stimulated by an urgent curiosity which 
impels her on all convenient and inconvenient occasions to sidle 
about with a golden glass at her eye, peering into objects of every 
description.  Certain it is that she avails herself of the present 
opportunity of hovering over her kinsman's letters and papers like 
a bird, taking a short peck at this document and a blink with her 
head on one side at that document, and hopping about from table to 
table with her glass at her eye in an inquisitive and restless 
manner.  In the course of these researches she stumbles over 
something, and turning her glass in that direction, sees her 
kinsman lying on the ground like a felled tree.

Volumnia's pet little scream acquires a considerable augmentation 
of reality from this surprise, and the house is quickly in 
commotion.  Servants tear up and down stairs, bells are violently 
rung, doctors are sent for, and Lady Dedlock is sought in all 
directions, but not found.  Nobody has seen or heard her since she 
last rang her bell.  Her letter to Sir Leicester is discovered on 
her table, but it is doubtful yet whether he has not received 
another missive from another world requiring to be personally 
answered, and all the living languages, and all the dead, are as 
one to him.

They lay him down upon his bed, and chafe, and rub, and fan, and 
put ice to his head, and try every means of restoration.  Howbeit, 
the day has ebbed away, and it is night in his room before his 
stertorous breathing lulls or his fixed eyes show any consciousness 
of the candle that is occasionally passed before them.  But when 
this change begins, it goes on; and by and by he nods or moves his 
eyes or even his hand in token that he hears and comprehends.

He fell down, this morning, a handsome stately gentleman, somewhat 
infirm, but of a fine presence, and with a well-filled face.  He 
lies upon his bed, an aged man with sunken cheeks, the decrepit 
shadow of himself.  His voice was rich and mellow and he had so 
long been thoroughly persuaded of the weight and import to mankind 
of any word he said that his words really had come to sound as if 
there were something in them.  But now he can only whisper, and 
what he whispers sounds like what it is--mere jumble and jargon.

His favourite and faithful housekeeper stands at his bedside.  It 
is the first act he notices, and he clearly derives pleasure from 
it.  After vainly trying to make himself understood in speech, he 
makes signs for a pencil.  So inexpressively that they cannot at 
first understand him; it is his old housekeeper who makes out what 
he wants and brings in a slate.

After pausing for some time, he slowly scrawls upon it in a hand 
that is not his, "Chesney Wold?"

No, she tells him; he is in London.  He was taken ill in the 
library this morning.  Right thankful she is that she happened to 
come to London and is able to attend upon him.

"It is not an illness of any serious consequence, Sir Leicester.  
You will be much better to-morrow, Sir Leicester.  All the 
gentlemen say so."  This, with the tears coursing down her fair old 
face.

After making a survey of the room and looking with particular 
attention all round the bed where the doctors stand, he writes, "My 
Lady."

"My Lady went out, Sir Leicester, before you were taken ill, and 
don't know of your illness yet."

He points again, in great agitation, at the two words.  They all 
try to quiet him, but he points again with increased agitation.  On 
their looking at one another, not knowing what to say, he takes the 
slate once more and writes "My Lady.  For God's sake, where?"  And 
makes an imploring moan.

It is thought better that his old housekeeper should give him Lady 
Dedlock's letter, the contents of which no one knows or can 
surmise.  She opens it for him and puts it out for his perusal.  
Having read it twice by a great effort, he turns it down so that it 
shall not be seen and lies moaning.  He passes into a kind of 
relapse or into a swoon, and it is an hour before he opens his 
eyes, reclining on his faithful and attached old servant's arm.  
The doctors know that he is best with her, and when not actively 
engaged about him, stand aloof.

The slate comes into requisition again, but the word he wants to 
write he cannot remember.  His anxiety, his eagerness, and 
affliction at this pass are pitiable to behold.  It seems as if he 
must go mad in the necessity he feels for haste and the inability 
under which he labours of expressing to do what or to fetch whom.  
He has written the letter B, and there stopped.  Of a sudden, in 
the height of his misery, he puts Mr. before it.  The old 
housekeeper suggests Bucket.  Thank heaven!  That's his meaning.

Mr. Bucket is found to be downstairs, by appointment.  Shall he 
come up?

There is no possibility of misconstruing Sir Leicester's burning 
wish to see him or the desire he signifies to have the room cleared 
of every one but the housekeeper.  It is speedily done, and Mr. 
Bucket appears.  Of all men upon earth, Sir Leicester seems fallen 
from his high estate to place his sole trust and reliance upon this 
man.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I'm sorry to see you like this.  I 
hope you'll cheer up.  I'm sure you will, on account of the family 
credit."

Leicester puts her letter in his hands and looks intently in his 
face while he reads it.  A new intelligence comes into Mr. Bucket's 
eye as he reads on; with one hook of his finger, while that eye is 
still glancing over the words, he indicates, "Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet, I understand you."

Sir Leicester writes upon the slate.  "Full forgiveness.  Find--"  
Mr. Bucket stops his hand.

"Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I'll find her.  But my search 
after her must be begun out of hand.  Not a minute must be lost."

With the quickness of thought, he follows Sir Leicester Dedlock's 
look towards a little box upon a table.

"Bring it here, Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet?  Certainly.  Open 
it with one of these here keys?  Certainly.  The littlest key?  TO 
be sure.  Take the notes out?  So I will.  Count 'em?  That's soon 
done.  Twenty and thirty's fifty, and twenty's seventy, and fifty's 
one twenty, and forty's one sixty.  Take 'em for expenses?  That 
I'll do, and render an account of course.  Don't spare money?  No I 
won't."

The velocity and certainty of Mr. Bucket's interpretation on all 
these heads is little short of miraculous.  Mrs. Rouncewell, who 
holds the light, is giddy with the swiftness of his eyes and hands 
as he starts up, furnished for his journey.

"You're George's mother, old lady; that's about what you are, I 
believe?" says Mr. Bucket aside, with his hat already on and 
buttoning his coat.

"Yes, sir, I am his distressed mother."

"So I thought, according to what he mentioned to me just now.  
Well, then, I'll tell you something.  You needn't be distressed no 
more.  Your son's all right.  Now, don't you begin a-crying, 
because what you've got to do is to take care of Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet, and you won't do that by crying.  As to your son, 
he's all right, I tell you; and he sends his loving duty, and 
hoping you're the same.  He's discharged honourable; that's about 
what HE is; with no more imputation on his character than there is 
on yours, and yours is a tidy one, I'LL bet a pound.  You may trust 
me, for I took your son.  He conducted himself in a game way, too, 
on that occasion; and he's a fine-made man, and you're a fine-made 
old lady, and you're a mother and son, the pair of you, as might be 
showed for models in a caravan.  Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, 
what you've trusted to me I'll go through with.  Don't you be 
afraid of my turing out of my way, right or left, or taking a 
sleep, or a wash, or a shave till I have found what I go in search 
of.  Say everything as is kind and forgiving on your part?  Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, I will.  And I wish you better, and 
these family affairs smoothed over--as, Lord, many other family 
affairs equally has been, and equally wlll be, to the end of time."

With this peroration, Mr. Bucket, buttoned up, goes quietly out, 
looking steadily before him as if he were already piercing the 
night in quest of the fugitive.

His first step is to take himself to Lady Dedlock's rooms and look 
all over them for any trifling indication that may help him.  The 
rooms are in darkness now; and to see Mr. Bucket with a wax-light 
in his hand, holding it above his head and taking a sharp mental 
inventory of the many delicate objects so curiously at variance 
with himself, would be to see a sight--which nobody DOES see, as he 
is particular to lock himself in.

"A spicy boudoir, this," says Mr. Bucket, who feels in a manner 
furbished up in his French by the blow of the morning.  "Must have 
cost a sight of money.  Rum articles to cut away from, these; she 
must have been hard put to it!"

Opening and shutting table-drawers and looking into caskets and 
jewel-cases, he sees the reflection of himself in various mirrors, 
and moralizes thereon.

"One might suppose I was a-moving in the fashionable circles and 
getting myself up for almac's," says Mr. Bucket.  "I begin to think 
I must be a swell in the Guards without knowing it."

Ever looking about, he has opened a dainty little chest in an inner 
drawer.  His great hand, turning over some gloves which it can 
scarcely feel, they are so light and soft within it, comes upon a 
white handkerchief.

"Hum!  Let's have a look at YOU," says Mr. Bucket, putting down the 
light.  "What should YOU be kept by yourself for?  What's YOUR 
motive?  Are you her ladyship's property, or somebody else's?  
You've got a mark upon you somewheres or another, I suppose?"

He finds it as he speaks, "Esther Summerson."

"Oh!" says Mr. Bucket, pausing, with his finger at his ear.  "Come, 
I'll take YOU."

He completes his observations as quietly and carefully as he has 
carried them on, leaves everything else precisely as he found it, 
glides away after some five minutes in all, and passes into the 
street.  With a glance upward at the dimly lighted windows of Sir 
Leicester's room, he sets off, full-swing, to the nearest coach-
stand, picks out the horse for his money, and directs to be driven 
to the shooting gallery.  Mr. Bucket does not claim to be a 
scientific judge of horses, but he lays out a little money on the 
principal events in that line, and generally sums up his knowledge 
of the subject in the remark that when he sees a horse as can go, 
he knows him.

His knowledge is not at fault in the present instance.  Clattering 
over the stones at a dangerous pace, yet thoughtfully bringing his 
keen eyes to bear on every slinking creature whom he passes in the 
midnight streets, and even on the lights in upper windows where 
people are going or gone to bed, and on all the turnings that he 
rattles by, and alike on the heavy sky, and on the earth where the 
snow lies thin--for something may present itself to assist him, 
anywhere--he dashes to his destination at such a speed that when he 
stops the horse half smothers him in a cloud of steam.

"Unbear him half a moment to freshen him up, and I'll be back."

He runs up the long wooden entry and finds the trooper smoking his 
pipe.

"I thought I should, George, after what you have gone through, my 
lad.  I haven't a word to spare.  Now, honour!  All to save a 
woman.  Miss Summerson that was here when Gridley died--that was 
the name, I know--all right--where does she live?"

The trooper has just come from there and gives him the address, 
near Oxford Street.

"You won't repent it, George.  Good night!"

He is off again, with an impression of having seen Phil sitting by 
the frosty fire staring at him open-mouthed, and gallops away 
again, and gets out in a cloud of steam again.

Mr. Jarndyce, the only person up in the house, is just going to 
bed, rises from his book on hearing the rapid ringing at the bell, 
and comes down to the door in his dressing-gown.

"Don't be alarmed, sir."  In a moment his visitor is confidential 
with him in the hall, has shut the door, and stands with his hand 
upon the lock.  "I've had the pleasure of seeing you before.  
Inspector Bucket.  Look at that handkerchief, sir, Miss Esther 
Summerson's.  Found it myself put away in a drawer of Lady 
Dedlock's, quarter of an hour ago.  Not a moment to lose.  Matter 
of life or death.  You know Lady Dedlock?"

"Yes."

"There has been a discovery there to-day.  Family affairs have come 
out.  Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, has had a fit--apoplexy or 
paralysis--and couldn't be brought to, and precious time has been 
lost.  Lady Dedlock disappeared this afternoon and left a letter 
for him that looks bad.  Run your eye over it.  Here it is!"

Mr. Jarndyce, having read it, asks him what he thinks.

"I don't know.  It looks like suicide.  Anyways, there's more and 
more danger, every minute, of its drawing to that.  I'd give a 
hundred pound an hour to have got the start of the present time.  
Now, Mr. Jarndyce, I am employed by Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, 
to follow her and find her, to save her and take her his 
forgiveness.  I have money and full power, but I want something 
else.  I want Miss Summerson."

Mr. Jarndyce in a troubled voice repeats, "Miss Summerson?"

"Now, Mr. Jarndyce"--Mr. Bucket has read his face with the greatest 
attention all along--"I speak to you as a gentleman of a humane 
heart, and under such pressing circumstances as don't often happen.  
If ever delay was dangerous, it's dangerous now; and if ever you 
couldn't afterwards forgive yourself for causing it, this is the 
time.  Eight or ten hours, worth, as I tell you, a hundred pound 
apiece at least, have been lost since Lady Dedlock disappeared.  I 
am charged to find her.  I am Inspector Bucket.  Besides all the 
rest that's heavy on her, she has upon her, as she believes, 
suspicion of murder.  If I follow her alone, she, being in 
ignorance of what Sir Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, has communicated 
to me, may be driven to desperation.  But if I follow her in 
company with a young lady, answering to the description of a young 
lady that she has a tenderness for--I ask no question, and I say no 
more than that--she will give me credit for being friendly.  Let me 
come up with her and be able to have the hold upon her of putting 
that young lady for'ard, and I'll save her and prevail with her if 
she is alive.  Let me come up with her alone--a hard matter--and 
I'll do my best, but I don't answer for what the best may be.  Time 
flies; it's getting on for one o'clock.  When one strikes, there's 
another hour gone, and it's worth a thousand pound now instead of a 
hundred."

This is all true, and the pressing nature of the case cannot be 
questioned.  Mr. Jarndyce begs him to remain there while he speaks 
to Miss Summerson.  Mr. Bucket says he will, but acting on his 
usual principle, does no such thing, following upstairs instead and 
keeping his man in sight.  So he remains, dodging and lurking about 
in the gloom of the staircase while they confer.  In a very little 
time Mr. Jarndyce comes down and tells him that Miss Summerson will 
join him directly and place herself under his protection to 
accompany him where he pleases.  Mr. Bucket, satisfied, expresses 
high approval and awaits her coming at the door.

There he mounts a high tower in his mind and looks out far and 
wide.  Many solitary figures he perceives creeping through the 
streets; many solitary figures out on heaths, and roads, and lying 
under haystacks.  But the figure that he seeks is not among them.  
Other solitaries he perceives, in nooks of bridges, looking over; 
and in shadowed places down by the river's level; and a dark, dark, 
shapeless object drifting with the tide, more solitary than all, 
clings with a drowning hold on his attention.

Where is she?  Living or dead, where is she?  If, as he folds the 
handkerchief and carefully puts it up, it were able with an 
enchanted power to bring before him the place where she found it 
and the night-landscape near the cottage where it covered the 
little child, would he descry her there?  On the waste where the 
brick-kilns are burning with a pale blue flare, where the straw-
roofs of the wretched huts in which the bricks are made are being 
scattered by the wind, where the clay and water are hard frozen and 
the mill in which the gaunt blind horse goes round all day looks 
like an instrument of human torture--traversing this deserted, 
blighted spot there is a lonely figure with the sad world to 
itself, pelted by the snow and driven by the wind, and cast out, it 
would seem, from all companionship.  It is the figure of a woman, 
too; but it is miserably dressed, and no such clothes ever came 
through the hall and out at the great door of the Dedlock mansion.



CHAPTER LVII

Esther's Narrative


I had gone to bed and fallen asleep when my guardian knocked at the 
door of my room and begged me to get up directly.  On my hurrying 
to speak to him and learn what had happened, he told me, after a 
word or two of preparation, that there had been a discovery at Sir 
Leicester Dedlock's.  That my mother had fled, that a person was 
now at our door who was empowered to convey to her the fullest 
assurances of affectionate protection and forgiveness if he could 
possibly find her, and that I was sought for to accompany him in 
the hope that my entreaties might prevail upon her if his failed.  
Something to this general purpose I made out, but I was thrown into 
such a tumult of alarm, and hurry and distress, that in spite of 
every effort I could make to subdue my agitation, I did not seem, 
to myself, fully to recover my right mind until hours had passed.

But I dressed and wrapped up expeditiously without waking Charley 
or any one and went down to Mr. Bucket, who was the person 
entrusted with the secret.  In taking me to him my guardian told me 
this, and also explained how it was that he had come to think of 
me.  Mr. Bucket, in a low voice, by the light of my guardian's 
candle, read to me in the hall a letter that my mother had left 
upon her table; and I suppose within ten minutes of my having been 
aroused I was sitting beside him, rolling swiftly through the 
streets.

His manner was very keen, and yet considerate when he explained to 
me that a great deal might depend on my being able to answer, 
without confusion, a few questions that he wished to ask me.  These 
were, chiefly, whether I had had much communication with my mother 
(to whom he only referred as Lady Dedlock), when and where I had 
spoken with her last, and how she had become possessed of my 
handkerchief.  When I had satisfied him on these points, he asked 
me particularly to consider--taking time to think--whether within 
my knowledge there was any one, no matter where, in whom she might 
be at all likely to confide under circumstances of the last 
necessity.  I could think of no one but my guardian.  But by and by 
I mentioned Mr. Boythorn.  He came into my mind as connected with 
his old chivalrous manner of mentioning my mother's name and with 
what my guardian had informed me of his engagement to her sister 
and his unconscious connexion with her unhappy story.

My companion had stopped the driver while we held this 
conversation, that we might the better hear each other.  He now 
told him to go on again and said to me, after considering within 
himself for a few moments, that he had made up his mind how to 
proceed.  He was quite willing to tell me what his plan was, but I 
did not feel clear enough to understand it.

We had not driven very far from our lodgings when we stopped in a 
by-street at a public-looking place lighted up with gas.  Mr. 
Bucket took me in and sat me in an armchair by a bright fire.  It 
was now past one, as I saw by the clock against the wall.  Two 
police officers, looking in their perfectly neat uniform not at all 
like people who were up all night, were quietly writing at a desk; 
and the place seemed very quiet altogether, except for some beating 
and calling out at distant doors underground, to which nobody paid 
any attention.

A third man in uniform, whom Mr. Bucket called and to whom he 
whispered his instructions, went out; and then the two others 
advised together while one wrote from Mr. Bucket's subdued 
dictation.  It was a description of my mother that they were busy 
with, for Mr. Bucket brought it to me when it was done and read it 
in a whisper.  It was very accurate indeed.

The second officer, who had attended to it closely, then copied it 
out and called in another man in uniform (there were several in an 
outer room), who took it up and went away with it.  All this was 
done with the greatest dispatch and without the waste of a moment; 
yet nobody was at all hurried.  As soon as the paper was sent out 
upon its travels, the two officers resumed their former quiet work 
of writing with neatness and care.  Mr. Bucket thoughtfully came 
and warmed the soles of his boots, first one and then the other, at 
the fire.

"Are you well wrapped up, Miss Summerson?" he asked me as his eyes 
met mine.  "It's a desperate sharp night for a young lady to be out 
in."

I told him I cared for no weather and was warmly clothed.

"It may be a long job," he observed; "but so that it ends well, 
never mind, miss."

"I pray to heaven it may end well!" said I.

He nodded comfortingly.  "You see, whatever you do, don't you go 
and fret yourself.  You keep yourself cool and equal for anything 
that may happen, and it'll be the better for you, the better for 
me, the better for Lady Dedlock, and the better for Sir Leicester 
Dedlock, Baronet."

He was really very kind and gentle, and as he stood before the fire 
warming his boots and rubbing his face with his forefinger, I felt 
a confidence in his sagacity which reassured me.  It was not yet a 
quarter to two when I heard horses' feet and wheels outside.  "Now, 
Miss Summerson," said he, "we are off, if you please!"

He gave me his arm, and the two officers courteously bowed me out, 
and we found at the door a phaeton or barouche with a postilion and 
post horses.  Mr. Bucket handed me in and took his own seat on the 
box.  The man in uniform whom he had sent to fetch this equipage 
then handed him up a dark lantern at his request, and when he had 
given a few directions to the driver, we rattled away.

I was far from sure that I was not in a dream.  We rattled with 
great rapidity through such a labyrinth of streets that I soon lost 
all idea where we were, except that we had crossed and re-crossed 
the river, and still seemed to be traversing a low-lying, 
waterside, dense neighbourhood of narrow thoroughfares chequered by 
docks and basins, high piles of warehouses, swing-bridges, and 
masts of ships.  At length we stopped at the corner of a little 
slimy turning, which the wind from the river, rushing up it, did 
not purify; and I saw my companion, by the light of his lantern, in 
conference with several men who looked like a mixture of police and 
sailors.  Against the mouldering wall by which they stood, there 
was a bill, on which I could discern the words, "Found Drowned"; 
and this and an inscription about drags possessed me with the awful 
suspicion shadowed forth in our visit to that place.

I had no need to remind myself that I was not there by the 
indulgence of any feeling of mine to increase the difficulties of 
the search, or to lessen its hopes, or enhance its delays.  I 
remained quiet, but what I suffered in that dreadful spot I never 
can forget.  And still it was like the horror of a dream.  A man 
yet dark and muddy, in long swollen sodden boots and a hat like 
them, was called out of a boat and whispered with Mr. Bucket, who 
went away with him down some slippery steps--as if to look at 
something secret that he had to show.  They came back, wiping their 
hands upon their coats, after turning over something wet; but thank 
God it was not what I feared!

After some further conference, Mr. Bucket (whom everybody seemed to 
know and defer to) went in with the others at a door and left me in 
the carriage, while the driver walked up and down by his horses to 
warm himself.  The tide was coming in, as I judged from the sound 
it made, and I could hear it break at the end of the alley with a 
little rush towards me.  It never did so--and I thought it did so, 
hundreds of times, in what can have been at the most a quarter of 
an hour, and probably was less--but the thought shuddered through 
me that it would cast my mother at the horses' feet.

Mr. Bucket came out again, exhorting the others to be vigilant, 
darkened his lantern, and once more took his seat.  "Don't you be 
alarmed, Miss Summerson, on account of our coming down here," he 
said, turning to me.  "I only want to have everything in train and 
to know that it is in train by looking after it myself.  Get on, my 
lad!"

We appeared to retrace the way we had come.  Not that I had taken 
note of any particular objects in my perturbed state of mind, but 
judging from the general character of the streets.  We called at 
another office or station for a minute and crossed the river again.  
During the whole of this time, and during the whole search, my 
companion, wrapped up on the box, never relaxed in his vigilance a 
single moment; but when we crossed the bridge he seemed, if 
possible, to be more on the alert than before.  He stood up to look 
over the parapet, he alighted and went back after a shadowy female 
figure that flitted past us, and he gazed into the profound black 
pit of water with a face that made my heart die within me.  The 
river had a fearful look, so overcast and secret, creeping away so 
fast between the low flat lines of shore--so heavy with indistinct 
and awful shapes, both of substance and shadow; so death-like and 
mysterious.  I have seen it many times since then, by sunlight and 
by moonlight, but never free from the impressions of that journey.  
In my memory the lights upon the bridge are always burning dim, the 
cutting wind is eddying round the homeless woman whom we pass, the 
monotonous wheels are whirling on, and the light of the carriage-
lamps reflected back looks palely in upon me--a face rising out of 
the dreaded water.

Clattering and clattering through the empty streets, we came at 
length from the pavement on to dark smooth roads and began to leave 
the houses behind us.  After a while I recognized the familiar way 
to Saint Albans.  At Barnet fresh horses were ready for us, and we 
changed and went on.  It was very cold indeed, and the open country 
was white with snow, though none was falling then.

"An old acquaintance of yours, this road, Miss Summerson," said Mr. 
Bucket cheerfully.

"Yes," I returned.  "Have you gathered any intelligence?"

"None that can be quite depended on as yet," he answered, "but it's 
early times as yet."

He had gone into every late or early public-house where there was a 
light (they were not a few at that time, the road being then much 
frequented by drovers) and had got down to talk to the turnpike-
keepers.  I had heard him ordering drink, and chinking money, and 
making himself agreeable and merry everywhere; but whenever he took 
his seat upon the box again, his face resumed its watchful steady 
look, and he always said to the driver in the same business tone, 
"Get on, my lad!"

With all these stoppages, it was between five and six o'clock and 
we were yet a few miles short of Saint Albans when he came out of 
one of these houses and handed me in a cup of tea.

"Drink it, Miss Summerson, it'll do you good.  You're beginning to 
get more yourself now, ain't you?"

I thanked him and said I hoped so.

"You was what you may call stunned at first," he returned; "and 
Lord, no wonder!  Don't speak loud, my dear.  It's all right.  
She's on ahead."

I don't know what joyful exclamation I made or was going to make, 
but he put up his finger and I stopped myself.

"Passed through here on foot this evening about eight or nine.  I 
heard of her first at the archway toll, over at Highgate, but 
couldn't make quite sure.  Traced her all along, on and off.  
Picked her up at one place, and dropped her at another; but she's 
before us now, safe.  Take hold of this cup and saucer, ostler.  
Now, if you wasn't brought up to the butter trade, look out and see 
if you can catch half a crown in your t'other hand.  One, two, 
three, and there you are!  Now, my lad, try a gallop!"

We were soon in Saint Albans and alighted a little before day, when 
I was just beginning to arrange and comprehend the occurrences of 
the night and really to believe that they were not a dream.  
Leaving the carriage at the posting-house and ordering fresh horses 
to be ready, my companion gave me his arm, and we went towards 
home.

"As this is your regular abode, Miss Summerson, you see," he 
observed, "I should like to know whether you've been asked for by 
any stranger answering the description, or whether Mr. Jarndyce 
has.  I don't much expect it, but it might be."

As we ascended the hill, he looked about him with a sharp eye--the 
day was now breaking--and reminded me that I had come down it one 
night, as I had reason for remembering, with my little servant and 
poor Jo, whom he called Toughey.

I wondered how he knew that.

"When you passed a man upon the road, just yonder, you know," said 
Mr. Bucket.

Yes, I remembered that too, very well.

"That was me," said Mr. Bucket.

Seeing my surprise, he went on, "I drove down in a gig that 
afternoon to look after that boy.  You might have heard my wheels 
when you came out to look after him yourself, for I was aware of 
you and your little maid going up when I was walking the horse 
down.  Making an inquiry or two about him in the town, I soon heard 
what company he was in and was coming among the brick-fields to 
look for him when I observed you bringing him home here."

"Had he committed any crime?" I asked.

"None was charged against him," said Mr. Bucket, coolly lifting off 
his hat, "but I suppose he wasn't over-particular.  No.  What I 
wanted him for was in connexion with keeping this very matter of 
Lady Dedlock quiet.  He had been making his tongue more free than 
welcome as to a small accidental service he had been paid for by 
the deceased Mr. Tulkinghorn; and it wouldn't do, at any sort of 
price, to have him playing those games.  So having warned him out 
of London, I made an afternoon of it to warn him to keep out of it 
now he WAS away, and go farther from it, and maintain a bright 
look-out that I didn't catch him coming back again."

"Poor creature!" said I.

"Poor enough," assented Mr. Bucket, "and trouble enough, and well 
enough away from London, or anywhere else.  I was regularly turned 
on my back when I found him taken up by your establishment, I do 
assure you.

I asked him why.  "Why, my dear?" said Mr. Bucket.  "Naturally 
there was no end to his tongue then.  He might as well have been 
born with a yard and a half of it, and a remnant over."

Although I remember this conversation now, my head was in confusion 
at the time, and my power of attention hardly did more than enable 
me to understand that he entered into these particulars to divert 
me.  With the same kind intention, manifestly, he often spoke to me 
of indifferent things, while his face was busy with the one object 
that we had in view.  He still pursued this subject as we turned in 
at the garden-gate.

"Ah!" said Mr. Bucket.  "Here we are, and a nice retired place it 
is.  Puts a man in mind of the country house in the Woodpecker-
tapping, that was known by the smoke which so gracefully curled.  
They're early with the kitchen fire, and that denotes good 
servants.  But what you've always got to be careful of with 
servants is who comes to see 'em; you never know what they're up to 
if you don't know that.  And another thing, my dear.  Whenever you 
find a young man behind the kitchen-door, you give that young man 
in charge on suspicion of being secreted in a dwelling-house with 
an unlawful purpose."

We were now in front of the house; he looked attentively and 
closely at the gravel for footprints before he raised his eyes to 
the windows.

"Do you generally put that elderly young gentleman in the same room 
when he's on a visit here, Miss Summerson?" he inquired, glancing 
at Mr. Skimpole's usual chamber.

"You know Mr. Skimpole!" said I.

"What do you call him again?" returned Mr. Bucket, bending down his 
ear.  "Skimpole, is it?  I've often wondered what his name might 
be.  Skimpole.  Not John, I should say, nor yet Jacob?"

"Harold," I told him.

"Harold.  Yes.  He's a queer bird is Harold," said Mr. Bucket, 
eyeing me with great expression.

"He is a singular character," said I.

"No idea of money," observed Mr. Bucket.  "He takes it, though!"

I involuntarily returned for answer that I perceived Mr. Bucket 
knew him.

"Why, now I'll tell you, Miss Summerson," he replied.  "Your mind 
will be all the better for not running on one point too 
continually, and I'll tell you for a change.  It was him as pointed 
out to me where Toughey was.  I made up my mind that night to come 
to the door and ask for Toughey, if that was all; but willing to 
try a move or so first, if any such was on the board, I just 
pitched up a morsel of gravel at that window where I saw a shadow.  
As soon as Harold opens it and I have had a look at him, thinks I, 
you're the man for me.  So I smoothed him down a bit about not 
wanting to disturb the family after they was gone to bed and about 
its being a thing to be regretted that charitable young ladies 
should harbour vagrants; and then, when I pretty well understood 
his ways, I said I should consider a fypunnote well bestowed if I 
could relieve the premises of Toughey without causing any noise or 
trouble.  Then says he, lifting up his eyebrows in the gayest way, 
'It's no use menfioning a fypunnote to me, my friend, because I'm a 
mere child in such matters and have no idea of money.'  Of course I 
understood what his taking it so easy meant; and being now quite 
sure he was the man for me, I wrapped the note round a little stone 
and threw it up to him.  Well! He laughs and beams, and looks as 
innocent as you like, and says, 'But I don't know the value of 
these things.  What am I to DO with this?'  'Spend it, sir,' says 
I.  'But I shall be taken in,' he says, 'they won't give me the 
right change, I shall lose it, it's no use to me.'  Lord, you never 
saw such a face as he carried it with!  Of course he told me where 
to find Toughey, and I found him."

I regarded this as very treacherous on the part of Mr. Skimpole 
towards my guardian and as passing the usual bounds of his childish 
innocence.

"Bounds, my dear?" returned Mr. Bucket.  "Bounds?  Now, Miss 
Summerson, I'll give you a piece of advice that your husband will 
find useful when you are happily married and have got a family 
about you.  Whenever a person says to you that they are as innocent 
as can be in all concerning money, look well after your own money, 
for they are dead certain to collar it if they can.  Whenever a 
person proclaims to you 'In worldly matters I'm a child,' you 
consider that that person is only a-crying off from being held 
accountable and that you have got that person's number, and it's 
Number One.  Now, I am not a poetical man myself, except in a vocal 
way when it goes round a company, but I'm a practical one, and 
that's my experience.  So's this rule.  Fast and loose in one 
thing, fast and loose in everything.  I never knew it fail.  No 
more will you.  Nor no one.  With which caution to the unwary, my 
dear, I take the liberty of pulling this here bell, and so go back 
to our business."

I believe it had not been for a moment out of his mind, any more 
than it had been out of my mind, or out of his face.  The whole 
household were amazed to see me, without any notice, at that time 
in the morning, and so accompanied; and their surprise was not 
diminished by my inquiries.  No one, however, had been there.  It 
could not be doubted that this was the truth.

"Then, Miss Summerson," said my companion, "we can't be too soon at 
the cottage where those brickmakers are to be found.  Most 
inquiries there I leave to you, if you'll be so good as to make 
'em.  The naturalest way is the best way, and the naturalest way is 
your own way."

We set off again immediately.  On arriving at the cottage, we found 
it shut up and apparently deserted, but one of the neighbours who 
knew me and who came out when I was trying to make some one hear 
informed me that the two women and their husbands now lived 
together in another house, made of loose rough bricks, which stood 
on the margin of the piece of ground where the kilns were and where 
the long rows of bricks were drying.  We lost no time in repairing 
to this place, which was within a few hundred yards; and as the 
door stood ajar, I pushed it open.

There were only three of them sitting at breakfast, the child lying 
asleep on a bed in the corner.  It was Jenny, the mother of the 
dead child, who was absent.  The other woman rose on seeing me; and 
the men, though they were, as usual, sulky and silent, each gave me 
a morose nod of recognition.  A look passed between them when Mr. 
Bucket followed me in, and I was surprised to see that the woman 
evidently knew him.

I had asked leave to enter of course.  Liz (the only name by which 
I knew her) rose to give me her own chair, but I sat down on a 
stool near the fire, and Mr. Bucket took a corner of the bedstead.  
Now that I had to speak and was among people with whom I was not 
familiar, I became conscious of being hurried and giddy.  It was 
very difficult to begin, and I could not help bursting into tears.

"Liz," said I, "I have come a long way in the night and through the 
snow to inquire after a lady--"

"Who has been here, you know," Mr. Bucket struck in, addressing the 
whole group with a composed propitiatory face; "that's the lady the 
young lady means.  The lady that was here last night, you know."

"And who told YOU as there was anybody here?" inquired Jenny's 
husband, who had made a surly stop in his eating to listen and now 
measured him with his eye.

"A person of the name of Michael Jackson, with a blue welveteen 
waistcoat with a double row of mother of pearl buttons," Mr. Bucket 
immediately answered.

"He had as good mind his own business, whoever he is," growled the 
man.

"He's out of employment, I believe," said Mr. Bucket apologetically 
for Michael Jackson, "and so gets talking."

The woman had not resumed her chair, but stood faltering with her 
hand upon its broken back, looking at me.  I thought she would have 
spoken to me privately if she had dared.  She was still in this 
attitude of uncertainty when her husband, who was eating with a 
lump of bread and fat in one hand and his clasp-knife in the other, 
struck the handle of his knife violently on the table and told her 
with an oath to mind HER own business at any rate and sit down.

"I should like to have seen Jenny very much," said I, "for I am 
sure she would have told me all she could about this lady, whom I 
am very anxious indeed--you cannot think how anxious--to overtake.  
Will Jenny be here soon?  Where is she?"

The woman had a great desire to answer, but the man, with another 
oath, openly kicked at her foot with his heavy boot.  He left it to 
Jenny's husband to say what he chose, and after a dogged silence 
the latter turned his shaggy head towards me.

"I'm not partial to gentlefolks coming into my place, as you've 
heerd me say afore now, I think, miss.  I let their places be, and 
it's curious they can't let my place be.  There'd be a pretty shine 
made if I was to go a-wisitin THEM, I think.  Howsoever, I don't so 
much complain of you as of some others, and I'm agreeable to make 
you a civil answer, though I give notice that I'm not a-going to be 
drawed like a badger.  Will Jenny be here soon?  No she won't.  
Where is she?  She's gone up to Lunnun."

"Did she go last night?" I asked.

"Did she go last night?  Ah! She went last night," he answered with 
a sulky jerk of his head.

"But was she here when the lady came?  And what did the lady say to 
her?  And where is the lady gone?  I beg and pray you to be so kind 
as to tell me," said I, "for I am in great distress to know."

"If my master would let me speak, and not say a word of harm--" the 
woman timidly began.

"Your master," said her husband, muttering an imprecation with slow 
emphasis, "will break your neck if you meddle with wot don't 
concern you."

After another silence, the husband of the absent woman, turning to 
me again, answered me with his usual grumbling unwillingness.

"Wos Jenny here when the lady come?  Yes, she wos here when the 
lady come.  Wot did the lady say to her?  Well, I'll tell you wot 
the lady said to her.  She said, 'You remember me as come one time 
to talk to you about the young lady as had been a-wisiting of you?  
You remember me as give you somethink handsome for a handkercher 
wot she had left?'  Ah, she remembered.  So we all did.  Well, 
then, wos that young lady up at the house now?  No, she warn't up 
at the house now.  Well, then, lookee here.  The lady was upon a 
journey all alone, strange as we might think it, and could she rest 
herself where you're a setten for a hour or so.  Yes she could, and 
so she did.  Then she went--it might be at twenty minutes past 
eleven, and it might be at twenty minutes past twelve; we ain't got 
no watches here to know the time by, nor yet clocks.  Where did she 
go?  I don't know where she go'd.  She went one way, and Jenny went 
another; one went right to Lunnun, and t'other went right from it.  
That's all about it.  Ask this man.  He heerd it all, and see it 
all.  He knows."

The other man repeated, "That's all about it."

"Was the lady crying?" I inquired.

"Devil a bit," returned the first man.  "Her shoes was the worse, 
and her clothes was the worse, but she warn't--not as I see."

The woman sat with her arms crossed and her eyes upon the ground.  
Her husband had turned his seat a little so as to face her and kept 
his hammer-like hand upon the table as if it were in readiness to 
execute his threat if she disobeyed him.

"I hope you will not object to my asking your wife," said I, "how 
the lady looked."

"Come, then!" he gruffly cried to her.  "You hear what she says.  
Cut it short and tell her."

"Bad," replied the woman.  "Pale and exhausted.  Very bad."

"Did she speak much?"

"Not much, but her voice was hoarse."

She answered, looking all the while at her husband for leave.

"Was she faint?" said I.  "Did she eat or drink here?"

"Go on!" said the husband in answer to her look.  "Tell her and cut 
it short."

"She had a little water, miss, and Jenny fetched her some bread and 
tea.  But she hardly touched it."

"And when she went from here," I was proceeding, when Jenny's 
husband impatiently took me up.

"When she went from here, she went right away nor'ard by the high 
road.  Ask on the road if you doubt me, and see if it warn't so.  
Now, there's the end.  That's all about it."

I glanced at my companion, and finding that he had already risen 
and was ready to depart, thanked them for what they had told me, 
and took my leave.  The woman looked full at Mr. Bucket as he went 
out, and he looked full at her.

"Now, Miss Summerson," he said to me as we walked quickly away.  
"They've got her ladyship's watch among 'em.  That's a positive 
fact."

"You saw it?" I exclaimed.

"Just as good as saw it," he returned.  "Else why should he talk 
about his 'twenty minutes past' and about his having no watch to 
tell the time by?  Twenty minutes!  He don't usually cut his time 
so fine as that.  If he comes to half-hours, it's as much as HE 
does.  Now, you see, either her ladyship gave him that watch or he 
took it.  I think she gave it him.  Now, what should she give it 
him for?  What should she give it him for?"

He repeated this question to himself several times as we hurried 
on, appearing to balance between a variety of answers that arose in 
his mind.

"If time could be spared," said Mr. Bucket, "which is the only 
thing that can't be spared in this case, I might get it out of that 
woman; but it's too doubtful a chance to trust to under present 
circumstances.  They are up to keeping a close eye upon her, and 
any fool knows that a poor creetur like her, beaten and kicked and 
scarred and bruised from head to foot, will stand by the husband 
that ill uses her through thick and thin.  There's something kept 
back.  It's a pity but what we had seen the other woman."

I regretted it exceedingly, for she was very grateful, and I felt 
sure would have resisted no entreaty of mine.

"It's possible, Miss Summerson," said Mr. Bucket, pondering on it, 
"that her ladyship sent her up to London with some word for you, 
and it's possible that her husband got the watch to let her go.  It 
don't come out altogether so plain as to please me, but it's on the 
cards.  Now, I don't take kindly to laying out the money of Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, on these roughs, and I don't see my way 
to the usefulness of it at present.  No!  So far our road, Miss 
Summerson, is for'ard--straight ahead--and keeping everything 
quiet!"

We called at home once more that I might send a hasty note to my 
guardian, and then we hurried back to where we had left the 
carriage.  The horses were brought out as soon as we were seen 
coming, and we were on the road again in a few minutes.

It had set in snowing at daybreak, and it now snowed hard.  The air 
was so thick with the darkness of the day and the density of the 
fall that we could see but a very little way in any direction.  
Although it was extremely cold, the snow was but partially frozen, 
and it churned--with a sound as if it were a beach of small shells
--under the hoofs of the horses into mire and water.  They sometimes 
slipped and floundered for a mile together, and we were obliged to 
come to a standstill to rest them.  One horse fell three times in 
this first stage, and trembled so and was so shaken that the driver 
had to dismount from his saddle and lead him at last.

I could eat nothing and could not sleep, and I grew so nervous 
under those delays and the slow pace at which we travelled that I 
had an unreasonable desire upon me to get out and walk.  Yielding 
to my companion's better sense, however, I remained where I was.  
All this time, kept fresh by a certain enjoyment of the work in 
which he was engaged, he was up and down at every house we came to, 
addressing people whom he had never beheld before as old 
acquaintances, running in to warm himself at every fire he saw, 
talking and drinking and shaking hands at every bar and tap, 
friendly with every waggoner, wheelwright, blacksmith, and toll-
taker, yet never seeming to lose time, and always mounting to the 
box again with his watchful, steady face and his business-like "Get 
on, my lad!"

When we were changing horses the next time, he came from the 
stable-yard, with the wet snow encrusted upon him and dropping off 
him--plashing and crashing through it to his wet knees as he had 
been doing frequently since we left Saint Albans--and spoke to me 
at the carriage side.

"Keep up your spirits.  It's certainly true that she came on here, 
Miss Summerson.  There's not a doubt of the dress by this time, and 
the dress has been seen here."

"Still on foot?" said I.

"Still on foot.  I think the gentleman you mentioned must be the 
point she's aiming at, and yet I don't like his living down in her 
own part of the country neither."

"I know so little," said I.  "There may be some one else nearer 
here, of whom I never heard."

"That's true.  But whatever you do, don't you fall a-crying, my 
dear; and don't you worry yourself no more than you can help.  Get 
on, my lad!"

The sleet fell all that day unceasingly, a thick mist came on 
early, and it never rose or lightened for a moment.  Such roads I 
had never seen.  I sometimes feared we had missed the way and got 
into the ploughed grounds or the marshes.  If I ever thought of the 
time I had been out, it presented itself as an indefinite period of 
great duration, and I seemed, in a strange way, never to have been 
free from the anxiety under which I then laboured.

As we advanced, I began to feel misgivings that my companion lost 
confidence.  He was the same as before with all the roadside 
people, but he looked graver when he sat by himself on the box.  I 
saw his finger uneasily going across and across his mouth during 
the whole of one long weary stage.  I overheard that he began to 
ask the drivers of coaches and other vehicles coming towards us 
what passengers they had seen in other coaches and vehicles that 
were in advance.  Their replies did not encourage him.  He always 
gave me a reassuring beck of his finger and lift of his eyelid as 
he got upon the box again, but he seemed perplexed now when he 
said, "Get on, my lad!"

At last, when we were changing, he told me that he had lost the 
track of the dress so long that he began to be surprised.  It was 
nothing, he said, to lose such a track for one while, and to take 
it up for another while, and so on; but it had disappeared here in 
an unaccountable manner, and we had not come upon it since.  This 
corroborated the apprehensions I had formed, when he began to look 
at direction-posts, and to leave the carriage at cross roads for a 
quarter of an hour at a time while he explored them.  But I was not 
to be down-hearted, he told me, for it was as likely as not that 
the next stage might set us right again.

The next stage, however, ended as that one ended; we had no new 
clue.  There was a spacious inn here, solitary, but a comfortable 
substantial building, and as we drove in under a large gateway 
before I knew it, where a landlady and her pretty daughters came to 
the carriage-door, entreating me to alight and refresh myself while 
the horses were making ready, I thought it would be uncharitable to 
refuse.  They took me upstairs to a warm room and left me there.

It was at the corner of the house, I remember, looking two ways.  
On one side to a stable-yard open to a by-road, where the ostlers 
were unharnessing the splashed and tired horses from the muddy 
carriage, and beyond that to the by-road itself, across which the 
sign was heavily swinging; on the other side to a wood of dark 
pine-trees.  Their branches were encumbered with snow, and it 
silently dropped off in wet heaps while I stood at the window.  
Night was setting in, and its bleakness was enhanced by the 
contrast of the pictured fire glowing and gleaming in the window-
pane.  As I looked among the stems of the trees and followed the 
discoloured marks in the snow where the thaw was sinking into it 
and undermining it, I thought of the motherly face brightly set off 
by daughters that had just now welcomed me and of MY mother lying 
down in such a wood to die.

I was frightened when I found them all about me, but I remembered 
that before I fainted I tried very hard not to do it; and that was 
some little comfort.  They cushioned me up on a large sofa by the 
fire, and then the comely landlady told me that I must travel no 
further to-night, but must go to bed.  But this put me into such a 
tremble lest they should detain me there that she soon recalled her 
words and compromised for a rest of half an hour.

A good endearing creature she was.  She and her three fair girls, 
all so busy about me.  I was to take hot soup and broiled fowl, 
while Mr. Bucket dried himself and dined elsewhere; but I could not 
do it when a snug round table was presently spread by the fireside, 
though I was very unwilling to disappoint them.  However, I could 
take some toast and some hot negus, and as I really enjoyed that 
refreshment, it made some recompense.

Punctual to the time, at the half-hour's end the carriage came 
rumbling under the gateway, and they took me down, warmed, 
refreshed, comforted by kindness, and safe (I assured them) not to 
faint any more.  After I had got in and had taken a grateful leave 
of them all, the youngest daughter--a blooming girl of nineteen, 
who was to be the first married, they had told me--got upon the 
carriage step, reached in, and kissed me.  I have never seen her, 
from that hour, but I think of her to this hour as my friend.

The transparent windows with the fire and light, looking so bright 
and warm from the cold darkness out of doors, were soon gone, and 
again we were crushing and churning the loose snow.  We went on 
with toil enough, but the dismal roads were not much worse than 
they had been, and the stage was only nine miles.  My companion 
smoking on the box--I had thought at the last inn of begging him to 
do so when I saw him standing at a great fire in a comfortable 
cloud of tobacco--was as vigilant as ever and as quickly down and 
up again when we came to any human abode or any human creature.  He 
had lighted his little dark lantern, which seemed to be a favourite 
with him, for we had lamps to the carriage; and every now and then 
he turned it upon me to see that I was doing well.  There was a 
folding-window to the carriage-head, but I never closed it, for it 
seemed like shutting out hope.

We came to the end of the stage, and still the lost trace was not 
recovered.  I looked at him anxiously when we stopped to change, 
but I knew by his yet graver face as he stood watching the ostlers 
that he had heard nothing.  Almost in an instant afterwards, as I 
leaned back in my seat, he looked in, with his lighted lantern in 
his hand, an excited and quite different man.

"What is it?" said I, starting.  "Is she here?"

"No, no.  Don't deceive yourself, my dear.  Nobody's here.  But 
I've got it!"

The crystallized snow was in his eyelashes, in his hair, lying in 
ridges on his dress.  He had to shake it from his face and get his 
breath before he spoke to me.

"Now, Miss Summerson," said he, beating his finger on the apron, 
"don't you be disappointed at what I'm a-going to do.  You know me.  
I'm Inspector Bucket, and you can trust me.  We've come a long way; 
never mind.  Four horses out there for the next stage up!  Quick!"

There was a commotion in the yard, and a man came running out of 
the stables to know if he meant up or down.

"Up, I tell you!  Up!  Ain't it English?  Up!"

"Up?" said I, astonished.  "To London!  Are we going back?"

"Miss Summerson," he answered, "back.  Straight back as a die.  You 
know me.  Don't be afraid.  I'll follow the other, by G--"

"The other?" I repeated.  "Who?"

"You called her Jenny, didn't you?  I'll follow her.  Bring those 
two pair out here for a crown a man.  Wake up, some of you!"

"You will not desert this lady we are in search of; you will not 
abandon her on such a night and in such a state of mind as I know 
her to be in!" said I, in an agony, and grasping his hand.

"You are right, my dear, I won't.  But I'll follow the other.  Look 
alive here with them horses.  Send a man for'ard in the saddle to 
the next stage, and let him send another for'ard again, and order 
four on, up, right through.  My darling, don't you be afraid!"

These orders and the way in which he ran about the yard urging them 
caused a general excitement that was scarcely less bewildering to 
me than the sudden change.  But in the height of the confusion, a 
mounted man galloped away to order the relays, and our horses were 
put to with great speed.

"My dear," said Mr. Bucket, jumping to his seat and looking in 
again, "--you'll excuse me if I'm too familiar--don't you fret and 
worry yourself no more than you can help.  I say nothing else at 
present; but you know me, my dear; now, don't you?"

I endeavoured to say that I knew he was far more capable than I of 
deciding what we ought to do, but was he sure that this was right?  
Could I not go forward by myself in search of--I grasped his hand 
again in my distress and whispered it to him--of my own mother.

"My dear," he answered, "I know, I know, and would I put you wrong, 
do you think?  Inspector Bucket.  Now you know me, don't you?"

What could I say but yes!

"Then you keep up as good a heart as you can, and you rely upon me 
for standing by you, no less than by Sir Leicester Dedlock, 
Baronet.  Now, are you right there?"

"All right, sir!"

"Off she goes, then.  And get on, my lads!"

We were again upon the melancholy road by which we had come, 
tearing up the miry sleet and thawing snow as if they were torn up 
by a waterwheel.



CHAPTER LVIII

A Wintry Day and Night


Still impassive, as behoves its breeding, the Dedlock town house 
carries itself as usual towards the street of dismal grandeur.  
There are powdered heads from time to time in the little windows of 
the hall, looking out at the untaxed powder falling all day from 
the sky; and in the same conservatory there is peach blossom 
turning itself exotically to the great hall fire from the nipping 
weather out of doors.  It is given out that my Lady has gone down 
into Lincolnshire, but is expected to return presently.

Rumour, busy overmuch, however, will not go down into Lincolnshire.  
It persists in flitting and chattering about town.  It knows that 
that poor unfortunate man, Sir Leicester, has been sadly used.  It 
hears, my dear child, all sorts of shocking things.  It makes the 
world of five miles round quite merry.  Not to know that there is 
something wrong at the Dedlocks' is to augur yourself unknown.  One 
of the peachy-cheeked charmers with the skeleton throats is already 
apprised of all the principal circumstances that will come out 
before the Lords on Sir Leicester's application for a bill of 
divorce.

At Blaze and Sparkle's the jewellers and at Sheen and Gloss's the 
mercers, it is and will be for several hours the topic of the age, 
the feature of the century.  The patronesses of those 
establishments, albeit so loftily inscrutable, being as nicely 
weighed and measured there as any other article of the stock-in-
trade, are perfectly understood in this new fashion by the rawest 
hand behind the counter.  "Our people, Mr. Jones," said Blaze and 
Sparkle to the hand in question on engaging him, "our people, sir, 
are sheep--mere sheep.  Where two or three marked ones go, all the 
rest follow.  Keep those two or three in your eye, Mr. Jones, and 
you have the flock."  So, likewise, Sheen and Gloss to THEIR Jones, 
in reference to knowing where to have the fashionable people and 
how to bring what they (Sheen and Gloss) choose into fashion.  On 
similar unerring principles, Mr. Sladdery the librarian, and indeed 
the great farmer of gorgeous sheep, admits this very day, "Why yes, 
sir, there certainly ARE reports concerning Lady Dedlock, very 
current indeed among my high connexion, sir.  You see, my high 
connexion must talk about something, sir; and it's only to get a 
subject into vogue with one or two ladies I could name to make it 
go down with the whole.  Just what I should have done with those 
ladies, sir, in the case of any novelty you had left to me to bring 
in, they have done of themselves in this case through knowing Lady 
Dedlock and being perhaps a little innocently jealous of her too, 
sir.  You'll find, sir, that this topic will be very popular among 
my high connexion.  If it had been a speculation, sir, it would 
have brought money.  And when I say so, you may trust to my being 
right, sir, for I have made it my business to study my high 
connexion and to be able to wind it up like a clock, sir."

Thus rumour thrives in the capital, and will not go down into 
Lincolnshire.  By half-past five, post meridian, Horse Guards' 
time, it has even elicited a new remark from the Honourable Mr. 
Stables, which bids fair to outshine the old one, on which he has 
so long rested his colloquial reputation.  This sparkling sally is 
to the effect that although he always knew she was the best-groomed 
woman in the stud, he had no idea she was a bolter.  It is 
immensely received in turf-circles.

At feasts and festivals also, in firmaments she has often graced, 
and among constellations she outshone but yesterday, she is still 
the prevalent subject.  What is it?  Who is it?  When was it?  
Where was it?  How was it?  She is discussed by her dear friends 
with all the genteelest slang in vogue, with the last new word, the 
last new manner, the last new drawl, and the perfection of polite 
indifference.  A remarkable feature of the theme is that it is 
found to be so inspiring that several people come out upon it who 
never came out before--positively say things!  William Buffy 
carries one of these smartnesses from the place where he dines down 
to the House, where the Whip for his party hands it about with his 
snuff-box to keep men together who want to be off, with such effect 
that the Speaker (who has had it privately insinuated into his own 
ear under the corner of his wig) cries, "Order at the bar!" three 
times without making an impression.

And not the least amazing circumstance connected with her being 
vaguely the town talk is that people hovering on the confines of 
Mr. Sladdery's high connexion, people who know nothing and ever did 
know nothing about her, think it essential to their reputation to 
pretend that she is their topic too, and to retail her at second-
hand with the last new word and the last new manner, and the last 
new drawl, and the last new polite indifference, and all the rest 
of it, all at second-hand but considered equal to new in inferior 
systems and to fainter stars.  If there be any man of letters, art, 
or science among these little dealers, how noble in him to support 
the feeble sisters on such majestic crutches!

So goes the wintry day outside the Dedlock mansion.  How within it?

Sir Leicester, lying in his bed, can speak a little, though with 
difficulty and indistinctness.  He is enjoined to silence and to 
rest, and they have given him some opiate to lull his pain, for his 
old enemy is very hard with him.  He is never asleep, though 
sometimes he seems to fall into a dull waking doze.  He caused his 
bedstead to be moved out nearer to the window when he heard it was 
such inclement weather, and his head to be so adjusted that he 
could see the driving snow and sleet.  He watches it as it falls, 
throughout the whole wintry day.

Upon the least noise in the house, which is kept hushed, his hand 
is at the pencil.  The old housekeeper, sitting by him, knows what 
he would write and whispers, "No, he has not come back yet, Sir 
Leicester.  It was late last night when he went.  He has been but a 
little time gone yet."

He withdraws his hand and falls to looking at the sleet and snow 
again until they seem, by being long looked at, to fall so thick 
and fast that he is obliged to close his eyes for a minute on the 
giddy whirl of white flakes and icy blots.

He began to look at them as soon as it was light.  The day is not 
yet far spent when he conceives it to be necessary that her rooms 
should be prepared for her.  It is very cold and wet.  Let there be 
good fires.  Let them know that she is expected.  Please see to it 
yourself.  He writes to this purpose on his slate, and Mrs. 
Rouncewell with a heavy heart obeys.

"For I dread, George," the old lady says to her son, who waits 
below to keep her company when she has a little leisure, "I dread, 
my dear, that my Lady will never more set foot within these walls."

"That's a bad presentiment, mother."

"Nor yet within the walls of Chesney Wold, my dear."

"That's worse.  But why, mother?"

"When I saw my Lady yesterday, George, she looked to me--and I may 
say at me too--as if the step on the Ghost's Walk had almost walked 
her down."

"Come, come!  You alarm yourself with old-story fears, mother."

"No I don't, my dear.  No I don't.  It's going on for sixty year 
that I have been in this family, and I never had any fears for it 
before.  But it's breaking up, my dear; the great old Dedlock 
family is breaking up."

"I hope not, mother."

"I am thankful I have lived long enough to be with Sir Leicester in 
this illness and trouble, for I know I am not too old nor too 
useless to be a welcomer sight to him than anybody else in my place 
would be.  But the step on the Ghost's Walk will walk my Lady down, 
George; it has been many a day behind her, and now it will pass her 
and go on."

"Well, mother dear, I say again, I hope not."

"Ah, so do I, George," the old lady returns, shaking her head and 
parting her folded hands.  "But if my fears come true, and he has 
to know it, who will tell him!"

"Are these her rooms?"

"These are my Lady's rooms, just as she left them."

"Why, now," says the trooper, glancing round him and speaking in a 
lower voice, "I begin to understand how you come to think as you do 
think, mother.  Rooms get an awful look about them when they are 
fitted up, like these, for one person you are used to see in them, 
and that person is away under any shadow, let alone being God knows 
where."

He is not far out.  As all partings foreshadow the great final one, 
so, empty rooms, bereft of a familiar presence, mournfully whisper 
what your room and what mine must one day be.  My Lady's state has 
a hollow look, thus gloomy and abandoned; and in the inner 
apartment, where Mr. Bucket last night made his secret 
perquisition, the traces of her dresses and her ornaments, even the 
mirrors accustomed to reflect them when they were a portion of 
herself, have a desolate and vacant air.  Dark and cold as the 
wintry day is, it is darker and colder in these deserted chambers 
than in many a hut that will barely exclude the weather; and though 
the servants heap fires in the grates and set the couches and the 
chairs within the warm glass screens that let their ruddy light 
shoot through to the furthest corners, there is a heavy cloud upon 
the rooms which no light will dispel.

The old housekeeper and her son remain until the preparations are 
complete, and then she returns upstairs.  Volumnia has taken Mrs. 
Rouncewell's place in the meantime, though pearl necklaces and 
rouge pots, however calculated to embellish Bath, are but 
indifferent comforts to the invalid under present circumstances.  
Volumnia, not being supposed to know (and indeed not knowing) what 
is the matter, has found it a ticklish task to offer appropriate 
observations and consequently has supplied their place with 
distracting smoothings of the bed-linen, elaborate locomotion on 
tiptoe, vigilant peeping at her kinsman's eyes, and one 
exasperating whisper to herself of, "He is asleep."  In disproof of 
which superfluous remark Sir Leicester has indignantly written on 
the slate, "I am not."

Yielding, therefore, the chair at the bedside to the quaint old 
housekeeper, Volumnia sits at a table a little removed, 
sympathetically sighing.  Sir Leicester watches the sleet and snow 
and listens for the returning steps that he expects.  In the ears 
of his old servant, looking as if she had stepped out of an old 
picture-frame to attend a summoned Dedlock to another world, the 
silence is fraught with echoes of her own words, "who will tell 
him!"

He has been under his valet's hands this morning to be made 
presentable and is as well got up as the circumstances will allow.  
He is propped with pillows, his grey hair is brushed in its usual 
manner, his linen is arranged to a nicety, and he is wrapped in a 
responsible dressing-gown.  His eye-glass and his watch are ready 
to his hand.  It is necessary--less to his own dignity now perhaps 
than for her sake--that he should be seen as little disturbed and 
as much himself as may be.  Women will talk, and Volumnia, though a 
Dedlock, is no exceptional case.  He keeps her here, there is 
little doubt, to prevent her talking somewhere else.  He is very 
ill, but he makes his present stand against distress of mind and 
body most courageously.

The fair Volumnia, being one of those sprightly girls who cannot 
long continue silent without imminent peril of seizure by the 
dragon Boredom, soon indicates the approach of that monster with a 
series of undisguisable yawns.  Finding it impossible to suppress 
those yawns by any other process than conversation, she compliments 
Mrs. Rouncewell on her son, declaring that he positively is one of 
the finest figures she ever saw and as soldierly a looking person, 
she should think, as what's his name, her favourite Life Guardsman
--the man she dotes on, the dearest of creatures--who was killed at 
Waterloo.

Sir Leicester hears this tribute with so much surprise and stares 
about him in such a confused way that Mrs. Rouncewell feels it 
necesary to explain.

"Miss Dedlock don't speak of my eldest son, Sir Leicester, but my 
youngest.  I have found him.  He has come home."

Sir Leicester breaks silence with a harsh cry.  "George?  Your son 
George come home, Mrs. Rouncewell?"

The old housekeeper wipes her eyes.  "Thank God.  Yes, Sir 
Leicester."

Does this discovery of some one lost, this return of some one so 
long gone, come upon him as a strong confirmation of his hopes?  
Does he think, "Shall I not, with the aid I have, recall her safely 
after this, there being fewer hours in her case than there are 
years in his?"

It is of no use entreating him; he is determined to speak now, and 
he does.  In a thick crowd of sounds, but still intelligibly enough 
to be understood.

"Why did you not tell me, Mrs. Rouncewell?"

"It happened only yesterday, Sir Leicester, and I doubted your 
being well enough to be talked to of such things."

Besides, the giddy Volumnia now remembers with her little scream 
that nobody was to have known of his being Mrs. Rouncewell's son 
and that she was not to have told.  But Mrs. Rouncewell protests, 
with warmth enough to swell the stomacher, that of course she would 
have told Sir Leicester as soon as he got better.

"Where is your son George, Mrs. Rouncewell?" asks Sir Leicester,

Mrs. Rouncewell, not a little alarmed by his disregard of the 
doctor's injunctions, replies, in London.

"Where in London?"

Mrs. Rouncewell is constrained to admit that he is in the house.

"Bring him here to my room.  Bring him directly."

The old lady can do nothing but go in search of him.  Sir 
Leicester, with such power of movement as he has, arranges himself 
a little to receive him.  When he has done so, he looks out again 
at the falling sleet and snow and listens again for the returning 
steps.  A quantity of straw has been tumbled down in the street to 
deaden the noises there, and she might be driven to the door 
perhaps without his hearing wheels.

He is lying thus, apparently forgetful of his newer and minor 
surprise, when the housekeeper returns, accompanied by her trooper 
son.  Mr. George approaches softly to the bedside, makes his bow, 
squares his chest, and stands, with his face flushed, very heartily 
ashamed of himself.

"Good heaven, and it is really George Rouncewell!" exclaims Sir 
Leicester.  "Do you remember me, George?"

The trooper needs to look at him and to separate this sound from 
that sound before he knows what he has said, but doing this and 
being a little helped by his mother, he replies, "I must have a 
very bad memory, indeed, Sir Leicester, if I failed to remember 
you."

"When I look at you, George Rouncewell," Sir Leicester observes 
with difficulty, "I see something of a boy at Chesney Wold--I 
remember well--very well."

He looks at the trooper until tears come into his eyes, and then he 
looks at the sleet and snow again.

"I ask your pardon, Sir Leicester," says the trooper, "but would 
you accept of my arms to raise you up?  You would lie easier, Sir 
Leicester, if you would allow me to move you."

"If you please, George Rouncewell; if you will be so good."

The trooper takes him in his arms like a child, lightly raises him, 
and turns him with his face more towards the window.  "Thank you.  
You have your mother's gentleness," returns Sir Leicester, "and 
your own strength.  Thank you."

He signs to him with his hand not to go away.  George quietly 
remains at the bedside, waiting to be spoken to.

"Why did you wish for secrecy?"  It takes Sir Leicester some time 
to ask this.

"Truly I am not much to boast of, Sir Leicester, and I--I should 
still, Sir Leicester, if you was not so indisposed--which I hope 
you will not be long--I should still hope for the favour of being 
allowed to remain unknown in general.  That involves explanations 
not very hard to be guessed at, not very well timed here, and not 
very creditable to myself.  However opinions may differ on a 
variety of subjects, I should think it would be universally agreed, 
Sir Leicester, that I am not much to boast of."

"You have been a soldier," observes Sir Leicester, "and a faithful 
one."

George makes his military how.  "As far as that goes, Sir 
Leicester, I have done my duty under discipline, and it was the 
least I could do."

"You find me," says Sir Leicester, whose eyes are much attracted 
towards him, "far from well, George Rouncewell."

"I am very sorry both to hear it and to see it, Sir Leicester."

"I am sure you are.  No.  In addition to my older malady, I have 
had a sudden and bad attack.  Something that deadens," making an 
endeavour to pass one hand down one side, "and confuses," touching 
his lips.

George, with a look of assent and sympathy, makes another bow.  The 
different times when they were both young men (the trooper much the 
younger of the two) and looked at one another down at Chesney Wold 
arise before them both and soften both.

Sir Leicester, evidently with a great determination to say, in his 
own manner, something that is on his mind before relapsing into 
silence, tries to raise himself among his pillows a little more.  
George, observant of the action, takes him in his arms again and 
places him as he desires to be.  "Thank you, George.  You are 
another self to me.  You have often carried my spare gun at Chesney 
Wold, George.  You are familiar to me in these strange 
circumstances, very familiar."  He has put Sir Leicester's sounder 
arm over his shoulder in lifting him up, and Sir Leicester is slow 
in drawing it away again as he says these words.

"I was about to add," he presently goes on, "I was about to add, 
respecting this attack, that it was unfortunately simultaneous with 
a slight misunderstanding between my Lady and myself.  I do not 
mean that there was any difference between us (for there has been 
none), but that there was a misunderstanding of certain 
circumstances important only to ourselves, which deprives me, for a 
little while, of my Lady's society.  She has found it necessary to 
make a journey--I trust will shortly return.  Volumnia, do I make 
myself intelligible?  The words are not quite under my command in 
the manner of pronouncing them."

Volumnia understands him perfectly, and in truth be delivers 
himself with far greater plainness than could have been supposed 
possible a minute ago.  The effort by which he does so is written 
in the anxious and labouring expression of his face.  Nothing but 
the strength of his purpose enables him to make it.

"Therefore, Volumnia, I desire to say in your presence--and in the 
presence of my old retainer and friend, Mrs. Rouncewell, whose 
truth and fidelity no one can question, and in the presence of her 
son George, who comes back like a familiar recollection of my youth 
in the home of my ancestors at Chesney Wold--in case I should 
relapse, in case I should not recover, in case I should lose both 
my speech and the power of writing, though I hope for better 
things--"

The old housekeeper weeping silently; Volumnia in the greatest 
agitation, with the freshest bloom on her cheeks; the trooper with 
his arms folded and his head a little bent, respectfully attentive.

"Therefore I desire to say, and to call you all to witness--
beginning, Volumnia, with yourself, most solemnly--that I am on 
unaltered terms with Lady Dedlock.  That I assert no cause whatever 
of complaint against her.  That I have ever had the strongest 
affection for her, and that I retain it undiminished.  Say this to 
herself, and to every one.  If you ever say less than this, you 
will be guilty of deliberate falsehood to me."

Volumnia tremblingly protests that she will observe his injunctions 
to the letter.

"My Lady is too high in position, too handsome, too accomplished, 
too superior in most respects to the best of those by whom she is 
surrounded, not to have her enemies and traducers, I dare say.  Let 
it be known to them, as I make it known to you, that being of sound 
mind, memory, and understanding, I revoke no disposition I have 
made in her favour.  I abridge nothing I have ever bestowed upon 
her.  I am on unaltered terms with her, and I recall--having the 
full power to do it if I were so disposed, as you see--no act I 
have done for her advantage and happiness."

His formal array of words might have at any other time, as it has 
often had, something ludicrous in it, but at this time it is 
serious and affecting.  His noble earnestness, his fidelity, his 
gallant shielding of her, his generous conquest of his own wrong 
and his own pride for her sake, are simply honourable, manly, and 
true.  Nothing less worthy can be seen through the lustre of such 
qualities in the commonest mechanic, nothing less worthy can be 
seen in the best-born gentleman.  In such a light both aspire 
alike, both rise alike, both children of the dust shine equally.

Overpowered by his exertions, he lays his head back on his pillows 
and closes his eyes for not more than a minute, when he again 
resumes his watching of the weather and his attention to the 
muffled sounds.  In the rendering of those little services, and in 
the manner of their acceptance, the trooper has become installed as 
necessary to him.  Nothing has been said, but it is quite 
understood.  He falls a step or two backward to be out of sight and 
mounts guard a little behind his mother's chair.

The day is now beginning to decline.  The mist and the sleet into 
which the snow has all resolved itself are darker, and the blaze 
begins to tell more vividly upon the room walls and furniture.  The 
gloom augments; the bright gas springs up in the streets; and the 
pertinacious oil lamps which yet hold their ground there, with 
their source of life half frozen and half thawed, twinkle gaspingly 
like fiery fish out of water--as they are.  The world, which has 
been rumbling over the straw and pulling at the bell, "to inquire," 
begins to go home, begins to dress, to dine, to discuss its dear 
friend with all the last new modes, as already mentioned.

Now does Sir Leicester become worse, restless, uneasy, and in great 
pain.  Volumnia, lighting a candle (with a predestined aptitude for 
doing something objectionable), is bidden to put it out again, for 
it is not yet dark enough.  Yet it is very dark too, as dark as it 
will be all night.  By and by she tries again.  No!  Put it out.  
It is not dark enough yet.

His old housekeeper is the first to understand that he is striving 
to uphold the fiction with himself that it is not growing late.

"Dear Sir Leicester, my honoured master," she softly whispers, "I 
must, for your own good, and my duty, take the freedom of begging 
and praying that you will not lie here in the lone darkness 
watching and waiting and dragging through the time.  Let me draw 
the curtains, and light the candles, and make things more 
comfortable about you.  The church-clocks will strike the hours 
just the same, Sir Leicester, and the night will pass away just the 
same.  My Lady will come back, just the same."

"I know it, Mrs. Rouncewell, but I am weak--and he has been so long 
gone."

"Not so very long, Sir Leicester.  Not twenty-four hours yet."

"But that is a long time.  Oh, it is a long time!"

He says it with a groan that wrings her heart.

She knows that this is not a period for bringing the rough light 
upon him; she thinks his tears too sacred to be seen, even by her.  
Therefore she sits in the darkness for a while without a word, then 
gently begins to move about, now stirring the fire, now standing at 
the dark window looking out.  Finally he tells her, with recovered 
self-command, "As you say, Mrs. Rouncewell, it is no worse for 
being confessed.  It is getting late, and they are not come.  Light 
the room!"  When it is lighted and the weather shut out, it is only 
left to him to listen.

But they find that however dejected and ill he is, he brightens 
when a quiet pretence is made of looking at the fires in her rooms 
and being sure that everything is ready to receive her.  Poor 
pretence as it is, these allusions to her being expected keep up 
hope within him.

Midnight comes, and with it the same blank.  The carriages in the 
streets are few, and other late sounds in that neighbourhood there 
are none, unless a man so very nomadically drunk as to stray into 
the frigid zone goes brawling and bellowing along the pavement.  
Upon this wintry night it is so still that listening to the intense 
silence is like looking at intense darkness.  If any distant sound 
be audible in this case, it departs through the gloom like a feeble 
light in that, and all is heavier than before.

The corporation of servants are dismissed to bed (not unwilling to 
go, for they were up all last night), and only Mrs. Rouncewell and 
George keep watch in Sir Leicester's room.  As the night lags 
tardily on--or rather when it seems to stop altogether, at between 
two and three o'clock--they find a restless craving on him to know 
more about the weather, now he cannot see it.  Hence George, 
patrolling regularly every half-hour to the rooms so carefully 
looked after, extends his march to the hall-door, looks about him, 
and brings back the best report he can make of the worst of nights, 
the sleet still falling and even the stone footways lying ankle-
deep in icy sludge.

Volumnia, in her room up a retired landing on the stair-case--the 
second turning past the end of the carving and gilding, a cousinly 
room containing a fearful abortion of a portrait of Sir Leicester 
banished for its crimes, and commanding in the day a solemn yard 
planted with dried-up shrubs like antediluvian specimens of black 
tea--is a prey to horrors of many kinds.  Not last nor least among 
them, possibly, is a horror of what may befall her little income in 
the event, as she expresses it, "of anything happening" to Sir 
Leicester.  Anything, in this sense, meaning one thing only; and 
that the last thing that can happen to the consciousness of any 
baronet in the known world.

An effect of these horrors is that Volumnia finds she cannot go to 
bed in her own room or sit by the fire in her own room, but must 
come forth with her fair head tied up in a profusion of shawl, and 
her fair form enrobed in drapery, and parade the mansion like a 
ghost, particularly haunting the rooms, warm and luxurious, 
prepared for one who still does not return.  Solitude under such 
circumstances being not to be thought of, Volumnia is attended by 
her maid, who, impressed from her own bed for that purpose, 
extremely cold, very sleepy, and generally an injured maid as 
condemned by circumstances to take office with a cousin, when she 
had resolved to be maid to nothing less than ten thousand a year, 
has not a sweet expression of countenance.

The periodical visits of the trooper to these rooms, however, in 
the course of his patrolling is an assurance of protection and 
company both to mistress and maid, which renders them very 
acceptable in the small hours of the night.  Whenever he is heard 
advancing, they both make some little decorative preparation to 
receive him; at other times they divide their watches into short 
scraps of oblivion and dialogues not wholly free from acerbity, as 
to whether Miss Dedlock, sitting with her feet upon the fender, was 
or was not falling into the fire when rescued (to her great 
displeasure) by her guardian genius the maid.

"How is Sir Leicester now, Mr. George?" inquires Volumnia, 
adjusting her cowl over her head.

"Why, Sir Leicester is much the same, miss.  He is very low and 
ill, and he even wanders a little sometimes."

"Has he asked for me?" inquires Volumnia tenderly.

"Why, no, I can't say he has, miss.  Not within my hearing, that is 
to say."

"This is a truly sad time, Mr. George."

"It is indeed, miss.  Hadn't you better go to bed?"

"You had a deal better go to bed, Miss Dedlock," quoth the maid 
sharply.

But Volumnia answers No! No!  She may be asked for, she may be 
wanted at a moment's notice.  She never should forgive herself "if 
anything was to happen" and she was not on the spot.  She declines 
to enter on the question, mooted by the maid, how the spot comes to 
be there, and not in her room (which is nearer to Sir Leicester's), 
but staunchly declares that on the spot she will remain.  Volumnia 
further makes a merit of not having "closed an eye"--as if she had 
twenty or thirty--though it is hard to reconcile this statement 
with her having most indisputably opened two within five minutes.

But when it comes to four o'clock, and still the same blank, 
Volumnia's constancy begins to fail her, or rather it begins to 
strengthen, for she now considers that it is her duty to be ready 
for the morrow, when much may be expected of her, that, in fact, 
howsoever anxious to remain upon the spot, it may be required of 
her, as an act of self-devotion, to desert the spot.  So when the 
trooper reappears with his, "Hadn't you better go to bed, miss?" 
and when the maid protests, more sharply than before, "You had a 
deal better go to bed, Miss Dedlock!" she meekly rises and says, 
"Do with me what you think best!"

Mr. George undoubtedly thinks it best to escort her on his arm to 
the door of her cousinly chamber, and the maid as undoubtedly 
thinks it best to hustle her into bed with mighty little ceremony.  
Accordingly, these steps are taken; and now the trooper, in his 
rounds, has the house to himself.

There is no improvement in the weather.  From the portico, from the 
eaves, from the parapet, from every ledge and post and pillar, 
drips the thawed snow.  It has crept, as if for shelter, into the 
lintels of the great door--under it, into the corners of the 
windows, into every chink and crevice of retreat, and there wastes 
and dies.  It is falling still; upon the roof, upon the skylight, 
even through the skylight, and drip, drip, drip, with the 
regularity of the Ghost's Walk, on the stone floor below.

The trooper, his old recollections awakened by the solitary 
grandeur of a great house--no novelty to him once at Chesney Wold--
goes up the stairs and through the chief rooms, holding up his 
light at arm's length.  Thinking of his varied fortunes within the 
last few weeks, and of his rustic boyhood, and of the two periods 
of his life so strangely brought together across the wide 
intermediate space; thinking of the murdered man whose image is 
fresh in his mind; thinking of the lady who has disappeared from 
these very rooms and the tokens of whose recent presence are all 
here; thinking of the master of the house upstairs and of the 
foreboding, "Who will tell him!" he looks here and looks there, and 
reflects how he MIGHT see something now, which it would tax his 
boldness to walk up to, lay his hand upon, and prove to be a fancy.  
But it is all blank, blank as the darkness above and below, while 
he goes up the great staircase again, blank as the oppressive 
silence.

"All is still in readiness, George Rouncewell?"

"Quite orderly and right, Sir Leicester."

"No word of any kind?"

The trooper shakes his head.

"No letter that can possibly have been overlooked?"

But he knows there is no such hope as that and lays his head down 
without looking for an answer.

Very familiar to him, as he said himself some hours ago, George 
Rouncewell lifts him into easier positions through the long 
remainder of the blank wintry night, and equally familiar with his 
unexpressed wish, extinguishes the light and undraws the curtains 
at the first late break of day.  The day comes like a phantom.  
Cold, colourless, and vague, it sends a warning streak before it of 
a deathlike hue, as if it cried out, "Look what I am bringing you 
who watch there!  Who will tell him!"



CHAPTER LIX

Esther's Narrative


It was three o'clock in the morning when the houses outside London 
did at last begin to exclude the country and to close us in with 
streets.  We had made our way along roads in a far worse condition 
than when we had traversed them by daylight, both the fall and the 
thaw having lasted ever since; but the energy of my companion never 
slackened.  It had only been, as I thought, of less assistance than 
the horses in getting us on, and it had often aided them.  They had 
stopped exhausted halfway up hills, they had been driven through 
streams of turbulent water, they had slipped down and become 
entangled with the harness; but he and his little lantern had been 
always ready, and when the mishap was set right, I had never heard 
any variation in his cool, "Get on, my lads!"

The steadiness and confidence with which he had directed our 
journey back I could not account for.  Never wavering, he never 
even stopped to make an inquiry until we were within a few miles of 
London.  A very few words, here and there, were then enough for 
him; and thus we came, at between three and four o'clock in the 
morning, into Islington.

I will not dwell on the suspense and anxiety with which I reflected 
all this time that we were leaving my mother farther and farther 
behind every minute.  I think I had some strong hope that he must 
be right and could not fail to have a satisfactory object in 
following this woman, but I tormented myself with questioning it 
and discussing it during the whole journey.  What was to ensue when 
we found her and what could compensate us for this loss of time 
were questions also that I could not possibly dismiss; my mind was 
quite tortured by long dwelling on such reflections when we 
stopped.

We stopped in a high-street where there was a coach-stand.  My 
companion paid our two drivers, who were as completely covered with 
splashes as if they had been dragged along the roads like the 
carriage itself, and giving them some brief direction where to take 
it, lifted me out of it and into a hackney-coach he had chosen from 
the rest.

"Why, my dear!" he said as he did this.  "How wet you are!"

I had not been conscious of it.  But the melted snow had found its 
way into the carriage, and I had got out two or three times when a 
fallen horse was plunging and had to be got up, and the wet had 
penetrated my dress.  I assured him it was no matter, but the 
driver, who knew him, would not be dissuaded by me from running 
down the street to his stable, whence he brought an armful of clean 
dry straw.  They shook it out and strewed it well about me, and I 
found it warm and comfortable.

"Now, my dear," said Mr. Bucket, with his head in at the window 
after I was shut up.  "We're a-going to mark this person down.  It 
may take a little time, but you don't mind that.  You're pretty 
sure that I've got a motive.  Ain't you?"

I little thought what it was, little thought in how short a time I 
should understand it better, but I assured him that I had 
confidence in him.

"So you may have, my dear," he returned.  "And I tell you what!  If 
you only repose half as much confidence in me as I repose in you 
after what I've experienced of you, that'll do.  Lord!  You're no 
trouble at all.  I never see a young woman in any station of 
society--and I've seen many elevated ones too--conduct herself like 
you have conducted yourself since you was called out of your bed.  
You're a pattern, you know, that's what you are," said Mr. Bucket 
warmly; "you're a pattern."

I told him I was very glad, as indeed I was, to have been no 
hindrance to him, and that I hoped I should be none now.

"My dear," he returned, "when a young lady is as mild as she's 
game, and as game as she's mild, that's all I ask, and more than I 
expect.  She then becomes a queen, and that's about what you are 
yourself."

With these encouraging words--they really were encouraging to me 
under those lonely and anxious circumstances--he got upon the box, 
and we once more drove away.  Where we drove I neither knew then 
nor have ever known since, but we appeared to seek out the 
narrowest and worst streets in London.  Whenever I saw him 
directing the driver, I was prepared for our descending into a 
deeper complication of such streets, and we never failed to do so.

Sometimes we emerged upon a wider thoroughfare or came to a larger 
building than the generality, well lighted.  Then we stopped at 
offices like those we had visited when we began our journey, and I 
saw him in consultation with others.  Sometimes he would get down 
by an archway or at a street corner and mysteriously show the light 
of his little lantern.  This would attract similar lights from 
various dark quarters, like so many insects, and a fresh 
consultation would be held.  By degrees we appeared to contract our 
search within narrower and easier limits.  Single police-officers 
on duty could now tell Mr. Bucket what he wanted to know and point 
to him where to go.  At last we stopped for a rather long 
conversation between him and one of these men, which I supposed to 
be satisfactory from his manner of nodding from time to time.  When 
it was finished he came to me looking very busy and very attentive.

"Now, Miss Summerson, he said to me, "you won't be alarmed whatever 
comes off, I know.  It's not necessary for me to give you any 
further caution than to tell you that we have marked this person 
down and that you may be of use to me before I know it myself.  I 
don't like to ask such a thing, my dear, but would you walk a 
little way?"

Of course I got out directly and took his arm.

"It ain't so easy to keep your feet," said Mr. Bucket, "but take 
time."

Although I looked about me confusedly and hurriedly as we crossed 
the street, I thought I knew the place.  "Are we in Holborn?" I 
asked him.

"Yes," said Mr. Bucket.  "Do you know this turning?"

"It looks like Chancery Lane."

"And was christened so, my dear," said Mr. Bucket.

We turned down it, and as we went shuffling through the sleet, I 
heard the clocks strike half-past five.  We passed on in silence 
and as quickly as we could with such a foothold, when some one 
coming towards us on the narrow pavement, wrapped in a cloak, 
stopped and stood aside to give me room.  In the same moment I 
heard an exclamation of wonder and my own name from Mr. Woodcourt.  
I knew his voice very well.

It was so unexpected and so--I don't know what to call it, whether 
pleasant or painful--to come upon it after my feverish wandering 
journey, and in the midst of the night, that I could not keep back 
the tears from my eyes.  It was like hearing his voice in a strange 
country.

"My dear Miss Summerson, that you should be out at this hour, and 
in such weather!"

He had heard from my guardian of my having been called away on some 
uncommon business and said so to dispense with any explanation.  I 
told him that we had but just left a coach and were going--but then 
I was obliged to look at my companion.

"Why, you see, Mr. Woodcourt"--he had caught the name from me--"we 
are a-going at present into the next street.  Inspector Bucket."

Mr. Woodcourt, disregarding my remonstrances, had hurriedly taken 
off his cloak and was putting it about me.  "That's a good move, 
too," said Mr. Bucket, assisting, "a very good move."

"May I go with you?" said Mr. Woodcourt.  I don't know whether to 
me or to my companion.

"Why, Lord!" exclaimed Mr. Bucket, taking the answer on himself.  
"Of course you may."

It was all said in a moment, and they took me between them, wrapped 
in the cloak.

"I have just left Richard," said Mr. Woodcourt.  "I have been 
sitting with him since ten o'clock last night."

"Oh, dear me, he is ill!"

"No, no, believe me; not ill, but not quite well.  He was depressed 
and faint--you know he gets so worried and so worn sometimes--and 
Ada sent to me of course; and when I came home I found her note and 
came straight here.  Well! Richard revived so much after a little 
while, and Ada was so happy and so convinced of its being my doing, 
though God knows I had little enough to do with it, that I remained 
with him until he had been fast asleep some hours.  As fast asleep 
as she is now, I hope!"

His friendly and familiar way of speaking of them, his unaffected 
devotion to them, the grateful confidence with which I knew he had 
inspired my darling, and the comfort he was to her; could I 
separate all this from his promise to me?  How thankless I must 
have been if it had not recalled the words he said to me when he 
was so moved by the change in my appearance: "I will accept him as 
a trust, and it shall be a sacred one!"

We now turned into another narrow street.  "Mr. Woodcourt," said 
Mr. Bucket, who had eyed him closely as we came along, "our 
business takes us to a law-stationer's here, a certain Mr. 
Snagsby's.  What, you know him, do you?"  He was so quick that he 
saw it in an instant.

"Yes, I know a little of him and have called upon him at this 
place."

"Indeed, sir?" said Mr. Bucket.  "Then you will be so good as to 
let me leave Miss Summerson with you for a moment while I go and 
have half a word with him?"

The last police-officer with whom he had conferred was standing 
silently behind us.  I was not aware of it until he struck in on my 
saying I heard some one crying.

"Don't be alarmed, miss," he returned.  "It's Snagsby's servant."

"Why, you see," said Mr. Bucket, "the girl's subject to fits, and 
has 'em bad upon her to-night.  A most contrary circumstance it is, 
for I want certain information out of that girl, and she must be 
brought to reason somehow."

"At all events, they wouldn't be up yet if it wasn't for her, Mr. 
Bucket," said the other man.  "She's been at it pretty well all 
night, sir."

"Well, that's true," he returned.  "My light's burnt out.  Show 
yours a moment."

All this passed in a whisper a door or two from the house in which 
I could faintly hear crying and moaning.  In the little round of 
light produced for the purpose, Mr. Bucket went up to the door and 
knocked.  The door was opened after he had knocked twice, and he 
went in, leaving us standing in the street.

"Miss Summerson," said Mr. Woodcourt, "if without obtruding myself 
on your confidence I may remain near you, pray let me do so."

"You are truly kind," I answered.  "I need wish to keep no secret 
of my own from you; if I keep any, it is another's."

"I quite understand.  Trust me, I will remain near you only so long 
as I can fully respect it."

"I trust implicitly to you," I said.  "I know and deeply feel how 
sacredly you keep your promise.

After a short time the little round of light shone out again, and 
Mr. Bucket advanced towards us in it with his earnest face.  
"Please to come in, Miss Summerson," he said, "and sit down by the 
fire.  Mr. Woodcourt, from information I have received I understand 
you are a medical man.  Would you look to this girl and see if 
anything can be done to bring her round.  She has a letter 
somewhere that I particularly want.  It's not in her box, and I 
think it must be about her; but she is so twisted and clenched up 
that she is difficult to handle without hurting."

We all three went into the house together; although it was cold and 
raw, it smelt close too from being up all night.  In the passage 
behind the door stood a scared, sorrowful-looking little man in a 
grey coat who seemed to have a naturally polite manner and spoke 
meekly.

"Downstairs, if you please, Mr. Bucket," said he.  "The lady will 
excuse the front kitchen; we use it as our workaday sitting-room.  
The back is Guster's bedroom, and in it she's a-carrying on, poor 
thing, to a frightful extent!"

We went downstairs, followed by Mr. Snagsby, as I soon found the 
little man to be.  In the front kitchen, sitting by the fire, was 
Mrs. Snagsby, with very red eyes and a very severe expression of 
face.

"My little woman," said Mr. Snagsby, entering behind us, "to wave--
not to put too fine a point upon it, my dear--hostilities for one 
single moment in the course of this prolonged night, here is 
Inspector Bucket, Mr. Woodcourt, and a lady."

She looked very much astonished, as she had reason for doing, and 
looked particularly hard at me.

"My little woman," said Mr. Snagsby, sitting down in the remotest 
corner by the door, as if he were taking a liberty, "it is not 
unlikely that you may inquire of me why Inspector Bucket, Mr. 
Woodcourt, and a lady call upon us in Cook's Court, Cursitor 
Street, at the present hour.  I don't know.  I have not the least 
idea.  If I was to be informed, I should despair of understanding, 
and I'd rather not be told."

He appeared so miserable, sitting with his head upon his hand, and 
I appeared so unwelcome, that I was going to offer an apology when 
Mr. Bucket took the matter on himself.

"Now, Mr. Snagsby," said he, "the best thing you can do is to go 
along with Mr. Woodcourt to look after your Guster--"

"My Guster, Mr. Bucket!" cried Mr. Snagsby.  "Go on, sir, go on.  I 
shall be charged with that next."

"And to hold the candle," pursued Mr. Bucket without correcting 
himself, "or hold her, or make yourself useful in any way you're 
asked.  Which there's not a man alive more ready to do, for you're 
a man of urbanity and suavity, you know, and you've got the sort of 
heart that can feel for another.  Mr. Woodcourt, would you be so 
good as see to her, and if you can get that letter from her, to let 
me have it as soon as ever you can?"

As they went out, Mr. Bucket made me sit down in a corner by the 
fire and take off my wet shoes, which he turned up to dry upon the 
fender, talking all the time.

"Don't you be at all put out, miss, by the want of a hospitable 
look from Mrs. Snagsby there, because she's under a mistake 
altogether.  She'll find that out sooner than will be agreeable to 
a lady of her generally correct manner of forming her thoughts, 
because I'm a-going to explain it to her."  Here, standing on the 
hearth with his wet hat and shawls in his hand, himself a pile of 
wet, he turned to Mrs. Snagsby.  "Now, the first thing that I say 
to you, as a married woman possessing what you may call charms, you 
know--'Believe Me, if All Those Endearing,' and cetrer--you're well 
acquainted with the song, because it's in vain for you to tell me 
that you and good society are strangers--charms--attractions, mind 
you, that ought to give you confidence in yourself--is, that you've 
done it."

Mrs. Snagsby looked rather alarmed, relented a little and faltered, 
what did Mr. Bucket mean.

"What does Mr. Bucket mean?" he repeated, and I saw by his face 
that all the time he talked he was listening for the discovery of 
the letter, to my own great agitation, for I knew then how 
important it must be; "I'll tell you what he means, ma'am.  Go and 
see Othello acted.  That's the tragedy for you."

Mrs. Snagsby consciously asked why.

"Why?" said Mr. Bucket.  "Because you'll come to that if you don't 
look out.  Why, at the very moment while I speak, I know what your 
mind's not wholly free from respecting this young lady.  But shall 
I tell you who this young lady is?  Now, come, you're what I call 
an intellectual woman--with your soul too large for your body, if 
you come to that, and chafing it--and you know me, and you 
recollect where you saw me last, and what was talked of in that 
circle.  Don't you?  Yes!  Very well.  This young lady is that 
young lady."

Mrs. Snagsby appeared to understand the reference better than I did 
at the time.

"And Toughey--him as you call Jo--was mixed up in the same 
business, and no other; and the law-writer that you know of was 
mixed up in the same business, and no other; and your husband, with 
no more knowledge of it than your great grandfather, was mixed up 
(by Mr. Tulkinghorn, deceased, his best customer) in the same 
business, and no other; and the whole bileing of people was mixed 
up in the same business, and no other.  And yet a married woman, 
possessing your attractions, shuts her eyes (and sparklers too), 
and goes and runs her delicate-formed head against a wall.  Why, I 
am ashamed of you!  (I expected Mr. Woodcourt might have got it by 
this time.)"

Mrs. Snagsby shook her head and put her handkerchief to her eyes.

"Is that all?" said Mr. Bucket excitedly.  "No.  See what happens.  
Another person mixed up in that business and no other, a person in 
a wretched state, comes here to-night and is seen a-speaking to 
your maid-servant; and between her and your maid-servant there 
passes a paper that I would give a hundred pound for, down.  What 
do you do?  You hide and you watch 'em, and you pounce upon that 
maid-servant--knowing what she's subject to and what a little thing 
will bring 'em on--in that surprising manner and with that severity 
that, by the Lord, she goes off and keeps off, when a life may be 
hanging upon that girl's words!"

He so thoroughly meant what he said now that I involuntarily 
clasped my hands and felt the room turning away from me.  But it 
stopped.  Mr. Woodcourt came in, put a paper into his hand, and 
went away again.

"Now, Mrs, Snagsby, the only amends you can make," said Mr. Bucket, 
rapidly glancing at it, "is to let me speak a word to this young 
lady in private here.  And if you know of any help that you can 
give to that gentleman in the next kitchen there or can think of 
any one thing that's likelier than another to bring the girl round, 
do your swiftest and best!"  In an instant she was gone, and he had 
shut the door.  "Now my dear, you're steady and quite sure of 
yourself?"

"Quite," said I.

"Whose writing is that?"

It was my mother's.  A pencil-writing, on a crushed and torn piece 
of paper, blotted with wet.  Folded roughly like a letter, and 
directed to me at my guardian's.

"You know the hand," he said, "and if you are firm enough to read 
it to me, do!  But be particular to a word."

It had been written in portions, at different times.  I read what 
follows:


"I came to the cottage with two objects.  First, to see the dear 
one, if I could, once more--but only to see her--not to speak to 
her or let her know that I was near.  The other object, to elude 
pursuit and to be lost.  Do not blame the mother for her share.  
The assistance that she rendered me, she rendered on my strongest 
assurance that it was for the dear one's good.  You remember her 
dead child.  The men's consent I bought, but her help was freely 
given."


"'I came.'  That was written," said my companion, "when she rested 
there.  It bears out what I made of it.  I was right."

The next was written at another time:


"I have wandered a long distance, and for many hours, and I know 
that I must soon die.  These streets!  I have no purpose but to 
die.  When I left, I had a worse, but I am saved from adding that 
guilt to the rest.  Cold, wet, and fatigue are sufficient causes 
for my being found dead, but I shall die of others, though I suffer 
from these.  It was right that all that had sustained me should 
give way at once and that I should die of terror and my conscience.


"Take courage," said Mr. Bucket.  "There's only a few words more."

Those, too, were written at another time.  To all appearance, 
almost in the dark:


"I have done all I could do to be lost.  I shall be soon forgotten 
so, and shall disgrace him least.  I have nothing about me by which 
I can be recognized.  This paper I part with now.  The place where 
I shall lie down, if I can get so far, has been often in my mind.  
Farewell.  Forgive."


Mr. Bucket, supporting me with his arm, lowered me gently into my 
chair.  "Cheer up!  Don't think me hard with you, my dear, but as 
soon as ever you feel equal to it, get your shoes on and be ready."

I did as he required, but I was left there a long time, praying for 
my unhappy mother.  They were all occupied with the poor girl, and 
I heard Mr. Woodcourt directing them and speaking to her often.  At 
length he came in with Mr. Bucket and said that as it was important 
to address her gently, he thought it best that I should ask her for 
whatever information we desired to obtain.  There was no doubt that 
she could now reply to questions if she were soothed and not 
alarmed.  The questions, Mr. Bucket said, were how she came by the 
letter, what passed between her and the person who gave her the 
letter, and where the person went.  Holding my mind as steadily as 
I could to these points, I went into the next room with them.  Mr. 
Woodcourt would have remained outside, but at my solicitation went 
in with us.

The poor girl was sitting on the floor where they had laid her 
down.  They stood around her, though at a little distance, that she 
might have air.  She was not pretty and looked weak and poor, but 
she had a plaintive and a good face, though it was still a little 
wild.  I kneeled on the ground beside her and put her poor head 
upon my shoulder, whereupon she drew her arm round my neck and 
burst into tears.

"My poor girl," said I, laying my face against her forehead, for 
indeed I was crying too, and trembling, "it seems cruel to trouble 
you now, but more depends on our knowing something about this 
letter than I could tell you in an hour."

She began piteously declaring that she didn't mean any harm, she 
didn't mean any harm, Mrs. Snagsby!

"We are all sure of that," said I.  "But pray tell me how you got 
it."

"Yes, dear lady, I will, and tell you true.  I'll tell true, 
indeed, Mrs. Snagsby."

"I am sure of that," said I.  "And how was it?"

"I had been out on an errand, dear lady--long after it was dark--
quite late; and when I came home, I found a common-looking person, 
all wet and muddy, looking up at our house.  When she saw me coming 
in at the door, she called me back and said did I live here.  And I 
said yes, and she said she knew only one or two places about here, 
but had lost her way and couldn't find them.  Oh, what shall I do, 
what shall I do!  They won't believe me!  She didn't say any harm 
to me, and I didn't say any harm to her, indeed, Mrs. Snagsby!"

It was necessary for her mistress to comfort her--which she did, I 
must say, with a good deal of contrition--before she could be got 
beyond this.

"She could not find those places," said I.

"No!" cried the girl, shaking her head.  "No!  Couldn't find them.  
And she was so faint, and lame, and miserable, Oh so wretched, that 
if you had seen her, Mr. Snagsby, you'd have given her half a 
crown, I know!"

"Well, Guster, my girl," said he, at first not knowing what to say.  
"I hope I should."

"And yet she was so well spoken," said the girl, looking at me with 
wide open eyes, "that it made a person's heart bleed.  And so she 
said to me, did I know the way to the burying ground?  And I asked 
her which burying ground.  And she said, the poor burying ground.  
And so I told her I had been a poor child myself, and it was 
according to parishes.  But she said she meant a poor burying 
ground not very far from here, where there was an archway, and a 
step, and an iron gate."

As I watched her face and soothed her to go on, I saw that Mr. 
Bucket received this with a look which I could not separate from 
one of alarm.

"Oh, dear, dear!" cried the girl, pressing her hair back with her 
hands.  "What shall I do, what shall I do!  She meant the burying 
ground where the man was buried that took the sleeping-stuff--that 
you came home and told us of, Mr. Snagsby--that frightened me so, 
Mrs. Snagsby.  Oh, I am frightened again.  Hold me!"

"You are so much better now," sald I.  "Pray, pray tell me more."

"Yes I will, yes I will!  But don't be angry with me, that's a dear 
lady, because I have been so ill."

Angry with her, poor soul!

"There!  Now I will, now I will.  So she said, could I tell her how 
to find it, and I said yes, and I told her; and she looked at me 
with eyes like almost as if she was blind, and herself all waving 
back.  And so she took out the letter, and showed it me, and said 
if she was to put that in the post-office, it would be rubbed out 
and not minded and never sent; and would I take it from her, and 
send it, and the messenger would be paid at the house.  And so I 
said yes, if it was no harm, and she said no--no harm.  And so I 
took it from her, and she said she had nothing to give me, and I 
said I was poor myself and consequently wanted nothing.  And so she 
said God bless you, and went."

"And did she go--"

"Yes," cried the girl, anticipating the inquiry.  "Yes!  She went 
the way I had shown her.  Then I came in, and Mrs. Snagsby came 
behind me from somewhere and laid hold of me, and I was 
frightened."

Mr. Woodcourt took her kindly from me.  Mr. Bucket wrapped me up, 
and immediately we were in the street.  Mr. Woodcourt hesitated, 
but I said, "Don't leave me now!" and Mr. Bucket added, "You'll be 
better with us, we may want you; don't lose time!"

I have the most confused impressions of that walk.  I recollect 
that it was neither night nor day, that morning was dawning but the 
street-lamps were not yet put out, that the sleet was still falling 
and that all the ways were deep with it.  I recollect a few chilled 
people passing in the streets.  I recollect the wet house-tops, the 
clogged and bursting gutters and water-spouts, the mounds of 
blackened ice and snow over which we passed, the narrowness of the 
courts by which we went.  At the same time I remember that the poor 
girl seemed to be yet telling her story audibly and plainly in my 
hearing, that I could feel her resting on my arm, that the stained 
house-fronts put on human shapes and looked at me, that great 
water-gates seemed to be opening and closing in my head or in the 
air, and that the unreal things were more substantial than the 
real.

At last we stood under a dark and miserable covered way, where one 
lamp was burning over an iron gate and where the morning faintly 
struggled in.  The gate was closed.  Beyond it was a burial ground
--a dreadful spot in which the night was very slowly stirring, but 
where I could dimly see heaps of dishonoured graves and stones, 
hemmed in by filthy houses with a few dull lights in their windows 
and on whose walls a thick humidity broke out like a disease.  On 
the step at the gate, drenched in the fearful wet of such a place, 
which oozed and splashed down everywhere, I saw, with a cry of pity 
and horror, a woman lying--Jenny, the mother of the dead child.

I ran forward, but they stopped me, and Mr. Woodcourt entreated me 
with the greatest earnestness, even with tears, before I went up to 
the figure to listen for an instant to what Mr. Bucket said.  I did 
so, as I thought.  I did so, as I am sure.

"Miss Summerson, you'll understand me, if you think a moment.  They 
changed clothes at the cottage."

They changed clothes at the cottage.  I could repeat the words in 
my mind, and I knew what they meant of themselves, but I attached 
no meaning to them in any other connexion.

"And one returned," said Mr. Bucket, "and one went on.  And the one 
that went on only went on a certain way agreed upon to deceive and 
then turned across country and went home.  Think a moment!"

I could repeat this in my mind too, but I had not the least idea 
what it meant.  I saw before me, lying on the step, the mother of 
the dead child.  She lay there with one arm creeping round a bar of 
the iron gate and seeming to embrace it.  She lay there, who had so 
lately spoken to my mother.  She lay there, a distressed, 
unsheltered, senseless creature.  She who had brought my mother's 
letter, who could give me the only clue to where my mother was; 
she, who was to guide us to rescue and save her whom we had sought 
so far, who had come to this condition by some means connected with 
my mother that I could not follow, and might be passing beyond our 
reach and help at that moment; she lay there, and they stopped me!  
I saw but did not comprehend the solemn and compassionate look in 
Mr. Woodcourt's face.  I saw but did not comprehend his touching 
the other on the breast to keep him back.  I saw him stand 
uncovered in the bitter air, with a reverence for something.  But 
my understanding for all this was gone.

I even heard it said between them, "Shall she go?"

"She had better go.  Her hands should be the first to touch her.  
They have a higher right than ours."

I passed on to the gate and stooped down.  I lifted the heavy head, 
put the long dank hair aside, and turned the face.  And it was my 
mother, cold and dead.



CHAPTER LX

Perspective


I proceed to other passages of my narrative.  From the goodness of 
all about me I derived such consolation as I can never think of 
unmoved.  I have already said so much of myself, and so much still 
remains, that I will not dwell upon my sorrow.  I had an illness, 
but it was not a long one; and I would avoid even this mention of 
it if I could quite keep down the recollection of their sympathy.

I proceed to other passages of my narrative.

During the time of my illness, we were still in London, where Mrs. 
Woodcourt had come, on my guardian's invitation, to stay with us.  
When my guardian thought me well and cheerful enough to talk with 
him in our old way--though I could have done that sooner if he 
would have believed me--I resumed my work and my chair beside his.  
He had appointed the time himself, and we were alone.

"Dame Trot," said he, receiving me with a kiss, "welcome to the 
growlery again, my dear.  I have a scheme to develop, little woman.  
I propose to remain here, perhaps for six months, perhaps for a 
longer time--as it may be.  Quite to settle here for a while, in 
short."

"And in the meanwhile leave Bleak House?" said I.

"Aye, my dear?  Bleak House," he returned, "must learn to take care 
of itself."

I thought his tone sounded sorrowful, but looking at him, I saw his 
kind face lighted up by its pleasantest smile.

"Bleak House," he repeated--and his tone did NOT sound sorrowful, I 
found--"must learn to take care of itself.  It is a long way from 
Ada, my dear, and Ada stands much in need of you."

"It's like you, guardian," said I, "to have been taking that into 
consideration for a happy surprise to both of us."

"Not so disinterested either, my dear, if you mean to extol me for 
that virtue, since if you were generally on the road, you could be 
seldom with me.  And besides, I wish to hear as much and as often 
of Ada as I can in this condition of estrangement from poor Rick.  
Not of her alone, but of him too, poor fellow."

"Have you seen Mr. Woodcourt, this morning, guardian?"

"I see Mr. Woodcourt every morning, Dame Durden."

"Does he still say the same of Richard?"

"Just the same.  He knows of no direct bodily illness that he has; 
on the contrary, he believes that he has none.  Yet he is not easy 
about him; who CAN be?"

My dear girl had been to see us lately every day, some times twice 
in a day.  But we had foreseen, all along, that this would only 
last until I was quite myself.  We knew full well that her fervent 
heart was as full of affection and gratitude towards her cousin 
John as it had ever been, and we acquitted Richard of laying any 
injunctions upon her to stay away; but we knew on the other hand 
that she felt it a part of her duty to him to be sparing of her 
visits at our house.  My guardian's delicacy had soon perceived 
this and had tried to convey to her that he thought she was right.

"Dear, unfortunate, mistaken Richard," said I.  "When will he awake 
from his delusion!"

"He is not in the way to do so now, my dear," replied my guardian.  
"The more he suffers, the more averse he will be to me, having made 
me the principal representative of the great occasion of his 
suffering."

I could not help adding, "So unreasonably!"

"Ah, Dame Trot, Dame Trot," returned my guardian, "what shall we 
find reasonable in Jarndyce and Jarndyce!  Unreason and injustice 
at the top, unreason and injustice at the heart and at the bottom, 
unreason and injustice from beginning to end--if it ever has an 
end--how should poor Rick, always hovering near it, pluck reason 
out of it?  He no more gathers grapes from thorns or figs from 
thistles than older men did in old times."

His gentleness and consideration for Richard whenever we spoke of 
him touched me so that I was always silent on this subject very 
soon.

"I suppose the Lord Chancellor, and the Vice Chancellors, and the 
whole Chancery battery of great guns would be infinitely astonished 
by such unreason and injustice in one of their suitors," pursued my 
guardian.  "When those learned gentlemen begin to raise moss-roses 
from the powder they sow in their wigs, I shall begin to be 
astonished too!"

He checked himself in glancing towards the window to look where the 
wind was and leaned on the back of my chair instead.

"Well, well, little woman!  To go on, my dear.  This rock we must 
leave to time, chance, and hopeful circumstance.  We must not 
shipwreck Ada upon it.  She cannot afford, and he cannot afford, 
the remotest chance of another separation from a friend.  Therefore 
I have particularly begged of Woodcourt, and I now particularly beg 
of you, my dear, not to move this subject with Rick.  Let it rest.  
Next week, next month, next year, sooner or later, he will see me 
with clearer eyes.  I can wait."

But I had already discussed it with him, I confessed; and so, I 
thought, had Mr. Woodcourt.

"So he tells me," returned my guardian.  "Very good.  He has made 
his protest, and Dame Durden has made hers, and there is nothing 
more to be said about it.  Now I come to Mrs. Woodcourt.  How do 
you like her, my dear?"

In answer to this question, which was oddly abrupt, I said I liked 
her very much and thought she was more agreeable than she used to 
be.

"I think so too," said my guardian.  "Less pedigree?  Not so much 
of Morgan ap--what's his name?"

That was what I meant, I acknowledged, though he was a very 
harmless person, even when we had had more of him.

"Still, upon the whole, he is as well in his native mountains," 
said my guardian.  "I agree with you.  Then, little woman, can I do 
better for a time than retain Mrs. Woodcourt here?"

No.  And yet--

My guardian looked at me, waiting for what I had to say.

I had nothing to say.  At least I had nothing in my mind that I 
could say.  I had an undefined impression that it might have been 
better if we had had some other inmate, but I could hardly have 
explained why even to myself.  Or, if to myself, certainly not to 
anybody else.

"You see," said my guardian, "our neighbourhood is in Woodcourt's 
way, and he can come here to see her as often as he likes, which is 
agreeable to them both; and she is familiar to us and fond of you."

Yes.  That was undeniable.  I had nothing to say against it.  I 
could not have suggested a better arrangement, but I was not quite 
easy in my mind.  Esther, Esther, why not?  Esther, think!

"It is a very good plan indeed, dear guardian, and we could not do 
better."

"Sure, little woman?"

Quite sure.  I had had a moment's time to think, since I had urged 
that duty on myself, and I was quite sure.

"Good," said my guardian.  "It shall be done.  Carried 
unanimously."

"Carried unanimously," I repeated, going on with my work.

It was a cover for his book-table that I happened to be 
ornamenting.  It had been laid by on the night preceding my sad 
journey and never resumed.  I showed it to him now, and he admired 
it highly.  After I had explained the pattern to him and all the 
great effects that were to come out by and by, I thought I would go 
back to our last theme.

"You said, dear guardian, when we spoke of Mr. Woodcourt before Ada 
left us, that you thought he would give a long trial to another 
country.  Have you been advising him since?"

"Yes, little woman, pretty often."

"Has he decided to do so?"

"I rather think not."

"Some other prospect has opened to him, perhaps?" said I.

"Why--yes--perhaps," returned my guardian, beginning his answer in 
a very deliberate manner.  "About half a year hence or so, there is 
a medical attendant for the poor to be appointed at a certain place 
in Yorkshire.  It is a thriving place, pleasantly situated--streams 
and streets, town and country, mill and moor--and seems to present 
an opening for such a man.  I mean a man whose hopes and aims may 
sometimes lie (as most men's sometimes do, I dare say) above the 
ordinary level, but to whom the ordinary level will be high enough 
after all if it should prove to be a way of usefulness and good 
service leading to no other.  All generous spirits are ambitious, I 
suppose, but the ambition that calmly trusts itself to such a road, 
instead of spasmodically trying to fly over it, is of the kind I 
care for.  It is Woodcourt's kind."

"And will he get this appointment?" I asked.

"Why, little woman," returned my guardian, smiling, "not being an 
oracle, I cannot confidently say, but I think so.  His reputation 
stands very high; there were people from that part of the country 
in the shipwreck; and strange to say, I believe the best man has 
the best chance.  You must not suppose it to be a fine endowment.  
It is a very, very commonplace affair, my dear, an appointment to a 
great amount of work and a small amount of pay; but better things 
will gather about it, it may be fairly hoped."

"The poor of that place will have reason to bless the choice if it 
falls on Mr. Woodcourt, guardian."

"You are right, little woman; that I am sure they will."

We said no more about it, nor did he say a word about the future of 
Bleak House.  But it was the first time I had taken my seat at his 
side in my mourning dress, and that accounted for it, I considered.

I now began to visit my dear girl every day in the dull dark corner 
where she lived.  The morning was my usual time, but whenever I 
found I had an hour or so to spare, I put on my bonnet and bustled 
off to Chancery Lane.  They were both so glad to see me at all 
hours, and used to brighten up so when they heard me opening the 
door and coming in (being quite at home, I never knocked), that I 
had no fear of becoming troublesome just yet.

On these occasions I frequently found Richard absent.  At other 
times he would be writing or reading papers in the cause at that 
table of his, so covered with papers, which was never disturbed.  
Sometimes I would come upon him lingering at the door of Mr. 
Vholes's office.  Sometimes I would meet him in the neighbourhood 
lounging about and biting his nails.  I often met him wandering in 
Lincoln's Inn, near the place where I had first seen him, oh how 
different, how different!

That the money Ada brought him was melting away with the candles I 
used to see burning after dark in Mr. Vholes's office I knew very 
well.  It was not a large amount in the beginning, he had married 
in debt, and I could not fail to understand, by this time, what was 
meant by Mr. Vholes's shoulder being at the wheel--as I still heard 
it was.  My dear made the best of housekeepers and tried hard to 
save, but I knew that they were getting poorer and poorer every 
day.

She shone in the miserable corner like a beautiful star.  She 
adorned and graced it so that it became another place.  Paler than 
she had been at home, and a little quieter than I had thought 
natural when she was yet so cheerful and hopeful, her face was so 
unshadowed that I half believed she was blinded by her love for 
Richard to his ruinous career.

I went one day to dine with them while I was under this impression.  
As I turned into Symond's Inn, I met little Miss Flite coming out.  
She had been to make a stately call upon the wards in Jarndyce, as 
she still called them, and had derived the highest gratification 
from that ceremony.  Ada had already told me that she called every 
Monday at five o'clock, with one little extra white bow in her 
bonnet, which never appeared there at any other time, and with her 
largest reticule of documents on her arm.

"My dear!" she began.  "So delighted!  How do you do!  So glad to 
see you.  And you are going to visit our interesting Jarndyce 
wards?  TO be sure!  Our beauty is at home, my dear, and will be 
charmed to see you."

"Then Richard is not come in yet?" said I.  "I am glad of that, for 
I was afraid of being a little late."

"No, he is not come in," returned Miss Flite.  "He has had a long 
day in court.  I left him there with Vholes.  You don't like 
Vholes, I hope?  DON'T like Vholes.  Dan-gerous man!"

"I am afraid you see Richard oftener than ever now," said I.

"My dearest," returned Miss Flite, "daily and hourly.  You know 
what I told you of the attraction on the Chancellor's table?  My 
dear, next to myself he is the most constant suitor in court.  He 
begins quite to amuse our little party.  Ve-ry friendly little 
party, are we not?"

It was miserable to hear this from her poor mad lips, though it was 
no surprise.

"In short, my valued friend," pursued Miss Flite, advancing her 
lips to my ear with an air of equal patronage and mystery, "I must 
tell you a secret.  I have made him my executor.  Nominated, 
constituted, and appointed him.  In my will.  Ye-es."

"Indeed?" said I.

"Ye-es," repeated Miss Flite in her most genteel accents, "my 
executor, administrator, and assign.  (Our Chancery phrases, my 
love.)  I have reflected that if I should wear out, he will be able 
to watch that judgment.  Being so very regular in his attendance."

It made me sigh to think of him.

"I did at one time mean," said Miss Flite, echoing the sigh, "to 
nominate, constitute, and appoint poor Gridley.  Also very regular, 
my charming girl.  I assure you, most exemplary!  But he wore out, 
poor man, so I have appointed his successor.  Don't mention it.  
This is in confidence."

She carefully opened her reticule a little way and showed me a 
folded piece of paper inside as the appointment of which she spoke.

"Another secret, my dear.  I have added to my collection of birds."

"Really, Miss Flite?" said I, knowing how it pleased her to have 
her confidence received with an appearance of interest.

She nodded several times, and her face became overcast and gloomy.  
"Two more.  I call them the Wards in Jarndyce.  They are caged up 
with all the others.  With Hope, Joy, Youth, Peace, Rest, Life, 
Dust, Ashes, Waste, Want, Ruin, Despair, Madness, Death, Cunning, 
Folly, Words, Wigs, Rags, Sheepskin, Plunder, Precedent, Jargon, 
Gammon, and Spinach!"

The poor soul kissed me with the most troubled look I had ever seen 
in her and went her way.  Her manner of running over the names of 
her birds, as if she were afraid of hearing them even from her own 
lips, quite chilled me.

This was not a cheering preparation for my visit, and I could have 
dispensed with the company of Mr. Vholes, when Richard (who arrived 
within a minute or two after me) brought him to share our dinner.  
Although it was a very plain one, Ada and Richard were for some 
minutes both out of the room together helping to get ready what we 
were to eat and drink.  Mr. Vholes took that opportunity of holding 
a little conversation in a low voice with me.  He came to the 
window where I was sitting and began upon Symond's Inn.

"A dull place, Miss Summerson, for a life that is not an official 
one," said Mr. Vholes, smearing the glass with his black glove to 
make it clearer for me.

"There is not much to see here," said I.

"Nor to hear, miss," returned Mr. Vholes.  "A little music does 
occasionally stray in, but we are not musical in the law and soon 
eject it.  I hope Mr. Jarndyce is as well as his friends could wish 
him?"

I thanked Mr. Vholes and said he was quite well.

"I have not the pleasure to be admitted among the number of his 
friends myself," said Mr. Vholes, "and I am aware that the 
gentlemen of our profession are sometimes regarded in such quarters 
with an unfavourable eye.  Our plain course, however, under good 
report and evil report, and all kinds of prejudice (we are the 
victims of prejudice), is to have everything openly carried on.  
How do you find Mr. C. looking, Miss Summerson?"

"He looks very ill.  Dreadfully anxious."

"Just so," said Mr. Vholes.

He stood behind me with his long black figure reaching nearly to 
the ceiling of those low rooms, feeling the pimples on his face as 
if they were ornaments and speaking inwardly and evenly as though 
there were not a human passion or emotion in his nature.

"Mr. Woodcourt is in attendance upon Mr. C., I believe?" he 
resumed.

"Mr. Woodcourt is his disinterested friend," I answered.

"But I mean in professional attendance, medical attendance."

"That can do little for an unhappy mind," said I.

"Just so," said Mr. Vholes.

So slow, so eager, so bloodless and gaunt, I felt as if Richard 
were wasting away beneath the eyes of this adviser and there were 
something of the vampire in him.

"Miss Summerson," said Mr. Vholes, very slowly rubbing his gloved 
hands, as if, to his cold sense of touch, they were much the same 
in black kid or out of it, "this was an ill-advised marriage of Mr. 
C.'s."

I begged he would excuse me from discussing it.  They had been 
engaged when they were both very young, I told him (a little 
indignantly) and when the prospect before them was much fairer and 
brighter.  When Richard had not yielded himself to the unhappy 
influence which now darkened his life.

"Just so," assented Mr. Vholes again.  "Still, with a view to 
everything being openly carried on, I will, with your permission, 
Miss Summerson, observe to you that I consider this a very ill-
advised marriage indeed.  I owe the opinion not only to Mr. C.'s 
connexions, against whom I should naturally wish to protect myself, 
but also to my own reputation--dear to myself as a professional man 
aiming to keep respectable; dear to my three girls at home, for 
whom I am striving to realize some little independence; dear, I 
will even say, to my aged father, whom it is my privilege to 
support."

"It would become a very different marriage, a much happier and 
better marriage, another marriage altogether, Mr. Vholes," said I, 
"if Richard were persuaded to turn his back on the fatal pursuit in 
which you are engaged with him."

Mr. Vholes, with a noiseless cough--or rather gasp--into one of his 
black gloves, inclined his head as if he did not wholly dispute 
even that.

"Miss Summerson," he said, "it may be so; and I freely admit that 
the young lady who has taken Mr. C.'s name upon herself in so ill-
advised a manner--you will I am sure not quarrel with me for 
throwing out that remark again, as a duty I owe to Mr. C.'s 
connexions--is a highly genteel young lady.  Business has prevented 
me from mixing much with general society in any but a professional 
character; still I trust I am competent to perceive that she is a 
highly genteel young lady.  As to beauty, I am not a judge of that 
myself, and I never did give much attention to it from a boy, but I 
dare say the young lady is equally eligible in that point of view.  
She is considered so (I have heard) among the clerks in the Inn, 
and it is a point more in their way than in mine.  In reference to 
Mr. C.'s pursult of his interests--"

"Oh! His interests, Mr. Vholes!"

"Pardon me," returned Mr. Vholes, going on in exactly the same 
inward and dispassionate manner.  "Mr. C. takes certain interests 
under certain wills disputed in the suit.  It is a term we use.  In 
reference to Mr. C,'s pursuit of his interests, I mentioned to you, 
Miss Summerson, the first time I had the pleasure of seeing you, in 
my desire that everything should he openly carried on--I used those 
words, for I happened afterwards to note them in my diary, which is 
producible at any time--I mentioned to you that Mr. C. had laid 
down the principle of watching his own interests, and that when a 
client of mine laid down a principle which was not of an immoral 
(that is to say, unlawful) nature, it devolved upon me to carry it 
out.  I HAVE carried it out; I do carry it out.  But I will not 
smooth things over to any connexion of Mr. C.'s on any account.  As 
open as I was to Mr. Jarndyce, I am to you.  I regard it in the 
light of a professional duty to be so, though it can be charged to 
no one.  I openly say, unpalatable as it may be, that I consider 
Mr. C.'s affairs in a very bad way, that I consider Mr. C. himself 
in a very bad way, and that I regard this as an exceedingly ill-
advised marriage.  Am I here, sir?  Yes, I thank you; I am here, 
Mr. C., and enjoying the pleasure of some agreeable conversation 
with Miss Summerson, for which I have to thank you very much, sir!"

He broke off thus in answer to Richard, who addressed him as he 
came into the room.  By this time I too well understood Mr. 
Vholes's scrupulous way of saving himself and his respectability 
not to feel that our worst fears did but keep pace with his 
client's progress.

We sat down to dinner, and I had an opportunity of observing 
Richard, anxiously.  I was not disturbed by Mr. Vholes (who took 
off his gloves to dine), though he sat opposite to me at the small 
table, for I doubt if, looking up at all, he once removed his eyes 
from his host's face.  I found Richard thin and languid, slovenly 
in his dress, abstracted in his manner, forcing his spirits now and 
then, and at other intervals relapsing into a dull thoughtfulness.  
About his large bright eyes that used to be so merry there was a 
wanness and a restlessness that changed them altogether.  1 cannot 
use the expression that he looked old.  There is a ruin of youth 
which is not like age, and into such a ruin Richard's youth and 
youthful beauty had all fallen away.

He ate little and seemed indifferent what it was, showed himself to 
be much more impatient than he used to be, and was quick even with 
Ada.  I thought at first that his old light-hearted manner was all 
gone, but it shone out of him sometimes as I had occasionally known 
little momentary glimpses of my own old face to look out upon me 
from the glass.  His laugh had not quite left him either, but it 
was like the echo of a joyful sound, and that is always sorrowful.

Yet he was as glad as ever, in his old affectionate way, to have me 
there, and we talked of the old times pleasantly.  These did not 
appear to be interesting to Mr. Vholes, though he occasionally made 
a gasp which I believe was his smile.  He rose shortly after dinner 
and said that with the permission of the ladies he would retire to 
his office.

"Always devoted to business, Vholes!" cried Richard.

"Yes, Mr. C.," he returned, "the interests of clients are never to 
be neglected, sir.  They are paramount in the thoughts of a 
professional man like myself, who wishes to preserve a good name 
among his fellow-practitioners and society at large.  My denying 
myself the pleasure of the present agreeable conversation may not 
be wholly irrespective of your own interests, Mr. C."

Richard expressed himself quite sure of that and lighted Mr. Vholes 
out.  On his return he told us, more than once, that Vholes was a 
good fellow, a safe fellow, a man who did what he pretended to do, 
a very good fellow indeed!  He was so defiant about it that it 
struck me he had begun to doubt Mr. Vholes.

Then he threw himself on the sofa, tired out; and Ada and I put 
things to rights, for they had no other servant than the woman who 
attended to the chambers.  My dear girl had a cottage piano there 
and quietly sat down to sing some of Richard's favourites, the lamp 
being first removed into the next room, as he complained of its 
hurting his eyes.

I sat between them, at my dear girl's side, and felt very 
melancholy listening to her sweet voice.  I think Richard did too; 
I think he darkened the room for that reason.  She had been singing 
some time, rising between whiles to bend over him and speak to him, 
when Mr. Woodcourt came in.  Then he sat down by Richard and half 
playfully, half earnestly, quite naturally and easily, found out 
how he felt and where he had been all day.  Presently he proposed 
to accompany him in a short walk on one of the bridges, as it was a 
moonlight airy night; and Richard readily consenting, they went out 
together.

They left my dear girl still sitting at the piano and me still 
sitting beside her.  When they were gone out, I drew my arm round 
her waist.  She put her left hand in mine (I was sitting on that 
side), but kept her right upon the keys, going over and over them 
without striking any note.

"Esther, my dearest," she said, breaking silence, "Richard is never 
so well and I am never so easy about him as when he is with Allan 
Woodcourt.  We have to thank you for that."

I pointed out to my darling how this could scarcely be, because Mr. 
Woodcourt had come to her cousin John's house and had known us all 
there, and because he had always liked Richard, and Richard had 
always liked him, and--and so forth.

"All true," said Ada, "but that he is such a devoted friend to us 
we owe to you."

I thought it best to let my dear girl have her way and to say no 
more about it.  So I said as much.  I said it lightly, because I 
felt her trembling.

"Esther, my dearest, I want to be a good wife, a very, very good 
wife indeed.  You shall teach me."

I teach!  I said no more, for I noticed the hand that was 
fluttering over the keys, and I knew that it was not I who ought to 
speak, that it was she who had something to say to me.

"When I married Richard I was not insensible to what was before 
him.  I had been perfectly happy for a long time with you, and I 
had never known any trouble or anxiety, so loved and cared for, but 
I understood the danger he was in, dear Esther."

"I know, I know, my darling."

"When we were married I had some little hope that I might be able 
to convince him of his mistake, that he might come to regard it in 
a new way as my husband and not pursue it all the more desperately 
for my sake--as he does.  But if I had not had that hope, I would 
have married him just the same, Esther.  Just the same!"

In the momentary firmness of the hand that was never still--a 
firmness inspired by the utterance of these last words, and dying 
away with them--I saw the confirmation of her earnest tones.

"You are not to think, my dearest Esther, that I fail to see what 
you see and fear what you fear.  No one can understand him better 
than I do.  The greatest wisdom that ever lived in the world could 
scarcely know Richard better than my love does."

She spoke so modestly and softly and her trembling hand expressed 
such agitation as it moved to and fro upon the silent notes!  My 
dear, dear girl!

"I see him at his worst every day.  I watch him in his sleep.  I 
know every change of his face.  But when I married Richard I was 
quite determined, Esther, if heaven would help me, never to show 
him that I grieved for what he did and so to make him more unhappy.  
I want him, when he comes home, to find no trouble in my face.  I 
want him, when he looks at me, to see what he loved in me.  I 
married him to do this, and this supports me."

I felt her trembling more.  I waited for what was yet to come, and 
I now thought I began to know what it was.

"And something else supports me, Esther."

She stopped a minute.  Stopped speaking only; her hand was still in 
motion.

"I look forward a little while, and I don't know what great aid may 
come to me.  When Richard turns his eyes upon me then, there may be 
something lying on my breast more eloquent than I have been, with 
greater power than mine to show him his true course and win him 
back."

Her hand stopped now.  She clasped me in her arms, and I clasped 
her in mine.

"If that little creature should fail too, Esther, I still look 
forward.  I look forward a long while, through years and years, and 
think that then, when I am growing old, or when I am dead perhaps, 
a beautiful woman, his daughter, happily married, may be proud of 
him and a blessing to him.  Or that a generous brave man, as 
handsome as he used to be, as hopeful, and far more happy, may walk 
in the sunshine with him, honouring his grey head and saying to 
himself, 'I thank God this is my father!  Ruined by a fatal 
inheritance, and restored through me!'"

Oh, my sweet girl, what a heart was that which beat so fast against 
me!

"These hopes uphold me, my dear Esther, and I know they will.  
Though sometimes even they depart from me before a dread that 
arises when I look at Richard."

I tried to cheer my darling, and asked her what it was.  Sobbing 
and weeping, she replied, "That he may not live to see his child."



CHAPTER LXI

A Discovery


The days when I frequented that miserable corner which my dear girl 
brightened can never fade in my remembrance.  I never see it, and I 
never wish to see it now; I have been there only once since, but in 
my memory there is a mournful glory shining on the place which will 
shine for ever.

Not a day passed without my going there, of course.  At first I 
found Mr. Skimpole there, on two or three occasions, idly playing 
the piano and talking in his usual vivacious strain.  Now, besides 
my very much mistrusting the probability of his being there without 
making Richard poorer, I felt as if there were something in his 
careless gaiety too inconsistent with what I knew of the depths of 
Ada's life.  I clearly perceived, too, that Ada shared my feelings.  
I therefore resolved, after much thinking of it, to make a private 
visit to Mr. Skimpole and try delicately to explain myself.  My 
dear girl was the great consideration that made me bold.

I set off one morning, accompanied by Charley, for Somers Town.  As 
I approached the house, I was strongly inclined to turn back, for I 
felt what a desperate attempt it was to make an impression on Mr. 
Skimpole and how extremely likely it was that he would signally 
defeat me.  However, I thought that being there, I would go through 
with it.  I knocked with a trembling hand at Mr. Skimpole's door--
literally with a hand, for the knocker was gone--and after a long 
parley gained admission from an Irishwoman, who was in the area 
when I knocked, breaking up the lid of a water-butt with a poker to 
light the fire with.

Mr. Skimpole, lying on the sofa in his room, playing the flute a 
little, was enchanted to see me.  Now, who should receive me, he 
asked.  Who would I prefer for mistress of the ceremonies?  Would I 
have his Comedy daughter, his Beauty daughter, or his Sentiment 
daughter?  Or would I have all the daughters at once in a perfect 
nosegay?

I replied, half defeated already, that I wished to speak to himself 
only if he would give me leave.

'My dear Miss Summerson, most joyfully!  Of course," he said, 
bringing his chair nearer mine and breaking into his fascinating 
smile, of course it's not business.  Then it's pleasure!"

I said it certainly was not business that I came upon, but it was 
not quite a pleasant matter.

"Then, my dear Miss Summerson," said he with the frankest gaiety, 
"don't allude to it.  Why should you allude to anything that is NOT 
a pleasant matter?  I never do.  And you are a much pleasanter 
creature, in every point of view, than I.  You are perfectly 
pleasant; I am imperfectly pleasant; then, if I never allude to an 
unpleasant matter, how much less should you!  So that's disposed 
of, and we will talk of something else."

Although I was embarrassed, I took courage to intimate that I still 
wished to pursue the subject.

"I should think it a mistake," said Mr. Skimpole with his airy 
laugh, "if I thought Miss Summerson capable of making one.  But I 
don't!"

"Mr. Skimpole," said I, raising my eyes to his, "I have so often 
heard you say that you are unacquainted with the common affairs of 
life--"

"Meaning our three banking-house friends, L, S, and who's the 
junior partner?  D?" said Mr. Skimpole, brightly.  "Not an idea of 
them!"

"--That perhaps," I went on, "you will excuse my boldness on that 
account.  I think you ought most seriously to know that Richard is 
poorer than he was."

"Dear me!" said Mr. Skimpole.  "So am I, they tell me."

"And in very embarrassed circumstances."

"Parallel case, exactly!" said Mr. Skimpole with a delighted 
countenance.

"This at present naturally causes Ada much secret anxiety, and as I 
think she is less anxious when no claims are made upon her by 
visitors, and as Richard has one uneasiness always heavy on his 
mind, it has occurred to me to take the liberty of saying that--if 
you would--not--"

I was coming to the point with great difficulty when he took me by 
both hands and with a radiant face and in the liveliest way 
anticipated it.

"Not go there?  Certainly not, my dear Miss Summerson, most 
assuredly not.  Why SHOULD I go there?  When I go anywhere, I go 
for pleasure.  I don't go anywhere for pain, because I was made for 
pleasure.  Pain comes to ME when it wants me.  Now, I have had very 
little pleasure at our dear Richard's lately, and your practical 
sagacity demonstrates why.  Our young friends, losing the youthful 
poetry which was once so captivating in them, begin to think, 'This 
is a man who wants pounds.'  So I am; I always want pounds; not for 
myself, but because tradespeople always want them of me.  Next, our 
young friends begin to think, becoming mercenary, 'This is the man 
who HAD pounds, who borrowed them,' which I did.  I always borrow 
pounds.  So our young friends, reduced to prose (which is much to 
be regretted), degenerate in their power of imparting pleasure to 
me.  Why should I go to see them, therefore?  Absurd!"

Through the beaming smile with which he regarded me as he reasoned 
thus, there now broke forth a look of disinterested benevolence 
quite astonishing.

"Besides," he said, pursuing his argument in his tone of light-
hearted conviction, "if I don't go anywhere for pain--which would 
be a perversion of the intention of my being, and a monstrous thing 
to do--why should I go anywhere to be the cause of pain?  If I went 
to see our young friends in their present ill-regulated state of 
mind, I should give them pain.  The associations with me would be 
disagreeable.  They might say, 'This is the man who had pounds and 
who can't pay pounds,' which I can't, of course; nothing could be 
more out of the question!  Then kindness requires that I shouldn't 
go near them--and I won't."

He finished by genially kissing my hand and thanking me.  Nothing 
but Miss Summerson's fine tact, he said, would have found this out 
for him.

I was much disconcerted, but I reflected that if the main point 
were gained, it mattered little how strangely he perverted 
everything leading to it.  I had determined to mention something 
else, however, and I thought I was not to be put off in that.

"Mr. Skimpole," said I, "I must take the liberty of saying before I 
conclude my visit that I was much surprised to learn, on the best 
authority, some little time ago, that you knew with whom that poor 
boy left Bleak House and that you accepted a present on that 
occasion.  I have not mentioned it to my guardian, for I fear it 
would hurt him unnecessarily; but I may say to you that I was much 
surprised."

"No?  Really surprised, my dear Miss Summerson?" he returned 
inquiringly, raising his pleasant eyebrows.

"Greatly surprised."

He thought about it for a little while with a highly agreeable and 
whimsical expression of face, then quite gave it up and said in his 
most engaging manner, "You know what a child I am.  Why surprised?"

I was reluctant to enter minutely into that question, but as he 
begged I would, for he was really curious to know, I gave him to 
understand in the gentlest words I could use that his conduct 
seemed to involve a disregard of several moral obligations.  He was 
much amused and interested when he heard this and said, "No, 
really?" with ingenuous simplicity.

"You know I don't intend to be responsible.  I never could do it.  
Responsibility is a thing that has always been above me--or below 
me," said Mr. Skimpole.  "I don't even know which; but as I 
understand the way in which my dear Miss Summerson (always 
remarkable for her practical good sense and clearness) puts this 
case, I should imagine it was chiefly a question of money, do you 
know?"

I incautiously gave a qualified assent to this.

"Ah!  Then you see," said Mr. Skimpole, shaking his head, "I am 
hopeless of understanding it."

I suggested, as I rose to go, that it was not right to betray my 
guardian's confidence for a bribe.

"My dear Miss Summerson," he returned with a candid hilarity that 
was all his own, "I can't be bribed."

"Not by Mr. Bucket?" said I.

"No," said he.  "Not by anybody.  I don't attach any value to 
money.  I don't care about it, I don't know about it, I don't want 
it, I don't keep it--it goes away from me directly.  How can I be 
bribed?"

I showed that I was of a different opinion, though I had not the 
capacity for arguing the question.

"On the contrary," said Mr. Skimpole, "I am exactly the man to be 
placed in a superior position in such a case as that.  I am above 
the rest of mankind in such a case as that.  I can act with 
philosophy in such a case as that.  I am not warped by prejudices, 
as an Italian baby is by bandages.  I am as free as the air.  I 
feel myself as far above suspicion as Caesar's wife."

Anything to equal the lightness of his manner and the playful 
impartiality with which he seemed to convince himself, as he tossed 
the matter about like a ball of feathers, was surely never seen in 
anybody else!

"Observe the case, my dear Miss Summerson.  Here is a boy received 
into the house and put to bed in a state that I strongly object to.  
The boy being in bed, a man arrives--like the house that Jack 
built.  Here is the man who demands the boy who is received into 
the house and put to bed in a state that I strongly object to.  
Here is a bank-note produced by the man who demands the boy who is 
received into the house and put to bed in a state that I strongly 
object to.  Here is the Skimpole who accepts the bank-note produced 
by the man who demands the boy who is received into the house and 
put to bed in a state that I strongly object to.  Those are the 
facts.  Very well.  Should the Skimpole have refused the note?  WHY 
should the Skimpole have refused the note?  Skimpole protests to 
Bucket, 'What's this for?  I don't understand it, it is of no use 
to me, take it away.'  Bucket still entreats Skimpole to accept it.  
Are there reasons why Skimpole, not being warped by prejudices, 
should accept it?  Yes.  Skimpole perceives them.  What are they?  
Skimpole reasons with himself, this is a tamed lynx, an active 
police-officer, an intelligent man, a person of a peculiarly 
directed energy and great subtlety both of conception and 
execution, who discovers our friends and enemies for us when they 
run away, recovers our property for us when we are robbed, avenges 
us comfortably when we are murdered.  This active police-officer 
and intelligent man has acquired, in the exercise of his art, a 
strong faith in money; he finds it very useful to him, and he makes 
it very useful to society.  Shall I shake that faith in Bucket 
because I want it myself; shall I deliberately blunt one of 
Bucket's weapons; shall I positively paralyse Bucket in his next 
detective operation?  And again.  If it is blameable in Skimpole to 
take the note, it is blameable in Bucket to offer the note--much 
more blameable in Bucket, because he is the knowing man.  Now, 
Skimpole wishes to think well of Bucket; Skimpole deems it 
essential, in its little place, to the general cohesion of things, 
that he SHOULD think well of Bucket.  The state expressly asks him 
to trust to Bucket.  And he does.  And that's all he does!"

I had nothing to offer in reply to this exposition and therefore 
took my leave.  Mr. Skimpole, however, who was in excellent 
spirits, would not hear of my returning home attended only by 
"Little Coavinses," and accompanied me himself.  He entertained me 
on the way with a variety of delightful conversation and assured 
me, at parting, that he should never forget the fine tact with 
which I had found that out for him about our young friends.

As it so happened that I never saw Mr. Skimpole again, I may at 
once finish what I know of his history.  A coolness arose between 
him and my guardian, based principally on the foregoing grounds and 
on his having heartlessly disregarded my guardian's entreaties (as 
we afterwards learned from Ada) in reference to Richard.  His being 
heavily in my guardian's debt had nothing to do with their 
separation.  He died some five years afterwards and left a diary 
behind him, with letters and other materials towards his life, 
which was published and which showed him to have been the victim of 
a combination on the part of mankind against an amiable child.  It 
was considered very pleasant reading, but I never read more of it 
myself than the sentence on which I chanced to light on opening the 
book.  It was this: "Jarndyce, in common with most other men I have 
known, is the incarnation of selfishness."

And now I come to a part of my story touching myself very nearly 
indeed, and for which I was quite unprepared when the circumstance 
occurred.  Whatever little lingerings may have now and then revived 
in my mind associated with my poor old face had only revived as 
belonging to a part of my life that was gone--gone like my infancy 
or my childhood.  I have suppressed none of my many weaknesses on 
that subject, but have written them as faithfully as my memory has 
recalled them.  And I hope to do, and mean to do, the same down to 
the last words of these pages, which I see now not so very far 
before me.

The months were gliding away, and my dear girl, sustained by the 
hopes she had confided in me, was the same beautiful star in the 
miserable corner.  Richard, more worn and haggard, haunted the 
court day after day, listlessly sat there the whole day long when 
he knew there was no remote chance of the suit being mentioned, and 
became one of the stock sights of the place.  I wonder whether any 
of the gentlemen remembered him as he was when he first went there.

So completely was he absorbed in his fixed idea that he used to 
avow in his cheerful moments that he should never have breathed the 
fresh air now "but for Woodcourt."  It was only Mr. Woodcourt who 
could occasionally divert his attention for a few hours at a time 
and rouse him, even when he sunk into a lethargy of mind and body 
that alarmed us greatly, and the returns of which became more 
frequent as the months went on.  My dear girl was right in saying 
that he only pursued his errors the more desperately for her sake.  
I have no doubt that his desire to retrieve what he had lost was 
rendered the more intense by his grief for his young wife, and 
became like the madness of a gamester.

I was there, as I have mentioned, at all hours.  When I was there 
at night, I generally went home with Charley in a coach; sometimes 
my guardian would meet me in the neighbourhood, and we would walk 
home together.  One evening he had arranged to meet me at eight 
o'clock.  I could not leave, as I usually did, quite punctually at 
the time, for I was working for my dear girl and had a few stitches 
more to do to finish what I was about; but it was within a few 
minutes of the hour when I bundled up my little work-basket, gave 
my darling my last kiss for the night, and hurried downstairs.  Mr. 
Woodcourt went with me, as it was dusk.

When we came to the usual place of meeting--it was close by, and 
Mr. Woodcourt had often accompanied me before--my guardian was not 
there.  We waited half an hour, walking up and down, but there were 
no signs of him.  We agreed that he was either prevented from 
coming or that he had come and gone away, and Mr. Woodcourt 
proposed to walk home with me.

It was the first walk we had ever taken together, except that very 
short one to the usual place of meeting.  We spoke of Richard and 
Ada the whole way.  I did not thank him in words for what he had 
done--my appreciation of it had risen above all words then--but I 
hoped he might not be without some understanding of what I felt so 
strongly.

Arriving at home and going upstairs, we found that my guardian was 
out and that Mrs. Woodcourt was out too.  We were in the very same 
room into which I had brought my blushing girl when her youthful 
lover, now her so altered husband, was the choice of her young 
heart, the very same room from which my guardian and I had watched 
them going away through the sunlight in the fresh bloom of their 
hope and promise.

We were standing by the opened window looking down into the street 
when Mr. Woodcourt spoke to me.  I learned in a moment that he 
loved me.  I learned in a moment that my scarred face was all 
unchanged to him.  I learned in a moment that what I had thought 
was pity and compassion was devoted, generous, faithful love.  Oh, 
too late to know it now, too late, too late.  That was the first 
ungrateful thought I had.  Too late.

"When I returned," he told me, "when I came back, no richer than 
when I went away, and found you newly risen from a sick bed, yet so 
inspired by sweet consideration for others and so free from a 
selfish thought--"

"Oh, Mr. Woodcourt, forbear, forbear!" I entreated him.  "I do not 
deserve your high praise.  I had many selfish thoughts at that 
time, many!"

"Heaven knows, beloved of my life," said he, "that my praise is not 
a lover's praise, but the truth.  You do not know what all around 
you see in Esther Summerson, how many hearts she touches and 
awakens, what sacred admiration and what love she wins."

"Oh, Mr. Woodcourt," cried I, "it is a great thing to win love, it 
is a great thing to win love!  I am proud of it, and honoured by 
it; and the hearing of it causes me to shed these tears of mingled 
joy and sorrow--joy that I have won it, sorrow that I have not 
deserved it better; but I am not free to think of yours."

I said it with a stronger heart, for when he praised me thus and 
when I heard his voice thrill with his belief that what he said was 
true, I aspired to be more worthy of it.  It was not too late for 
that.  Although I closed this unforeseen page in my life to-night, 
I could be worthier of it all through my life.  And it was a 
comfort to me, and an impulse to me, and I felt a dignity rise up 
within me that was derived from him when I thought so.

He broke the silence.

"I should poorly show the trust that I have in the dear one who 
will evermore be as dear to me as now"--and the deep earnestness 
with which he said it at once strengthened me and made me weep--
"if, after her assurance that she is not free to think of my love, 
I urged it.  Dear Esther, let me only tell you that the fond idea 
of you which I took abroad was exalted to the heavens when I came 
home.  I have always hoped, in the first hour when I seemed to 
stand in any ray of good fortune, to tell you this.  I have always 
feared that I should tell it you in vain.  My hopes and fears are 
both fulfilled to-night.  I distress you.  I have said enough."

Something seemed to pass into my place that was like the angel he 
thought me, and I felt so sorrowful for the loss he had sustained!  
I wished to help him in his trouble, as I had wished to do when he 
showed that first commiseration for me.

"Dear Mr. Woodcourt," said I, "before we part to-night, something 
is left for me to say.  I never could say it as I wish--I never 
shall--but--"

I had to think again of being more deserving of his love and his 
affliction before I could go on.

"--I am deeply sensible of your generosity, and I shall treasure 
its remembrance to my dying hour.  I know full well how changed I 
am, I know you are not unacquainted with my history, and I know 
what a noble love that is which is so faithful.  What you have said 
to me could have affected me so much from no other lips, for there 
are none that could give it such a value to me.  It shall not be 
lost.  It shall make me better."

He covered his eyes with his hand and turned away his head.  How 
could I ever be worthy of those tears?

"If, in the unchanged intercourse we shall have together--in 
tending Richard and Ada, and I hope in many happier scenes of life
--you ever find anything in me which you can honestly think is 
better than it used to be, believe that it will have sprung up from 
to-night and that I shall owe it to you.  And never believe, dear 
dear Mr. Woodcourt, never believe that I forget this night or that 
while my heart beats it can be insensible to the pride and joy of 
having been beloved by you."

He took my hand and kissed it.  He was like himself again, and I 
felt still more encouraged.

"I am induced by what you said just now," said I, "to hope that you 
have succeeded in your endeavour."

"I have," he answered.  "With such help from Mr. Jarndyce as you 
who know him so well can imagine him to have rendered me, I have 
succeeded."

"Heaven bless him for it," said I, giving him my hand; "and heaven 
bless you in all you do!"

"I shall do it better for the wish," he answered; "it will make me 
enter on these new duties as on another sacred trust from you."

"Ah!  Richard!" I exclaimed involuntarily, "What will he do when 
you are gone!"

"I am not required to go yet; I would not desert him, dear Miss 
Summerson, even if I were."

One other thing I felt it needful to touch upon before he left me.  
I knew that I should not be worthier of the love I could not take 
if I reserved it.

"Mr. Woodcourt," said I, "you will be glad to know from my lips 
before I say good night that in the future, which is clear and 
bright before me, I am most happy, most fortunate, have nothing to 
regret or desire."

It was indeed a glad hearing to him, he replied.

"From my childhood I have been," said I, "the object of the 
untiring goodness of the best of human beings, to whom I am so 
bound by every tie of attachment, gratitude, and love, that nothing 
I could do in the compass of a life could express the feelings of a 
single day."

"I share those feelings," he returned.  "You speak of Mr. 
Jarndyce."

"You know his virtues well," said I, "but few can know the 
greatness of his character as I know it.  All its highest and best 
qualities have been revealed to me in nothing more brightly than in 
the shaping out of that future in which I am so happy.  And if your 
highest homage and respect had not been his already--which I know 
they are--they would have been his, I think, on this assurance and 
in the feeling it would have awakened in you towards him for my 
sake."

He fervently replied that indeed indeed they would have been.  I 
gave him my hand again.

"Good night," I said, "Good-bye."

"The first until we meet to-morrow, the second as a farewell to 
this theme between us for ever."

"Yes."

"Good night; good-bye."

He left me, and I stood at the dark window watching the street.  
His love, in all its constancy and generosity, had come so suddenly 
upon me that he had not left me a minute when my fortitude gave way 
again and the street was blotted out by my rushing tears.

But they were not tears of regret and sorrow.  No.  He had called 
me the beloved of his life and had said I would be evermore as dear 
to him as I was then, and I felt as if my heart would not hold the 
triumph of having heard those words.  My first wild thought had 
died away.  It was not too late to hear them, for it was not too 
late to be animated by them to be good, true, grateful, and 
contented.  How easy my path, how much easier than his!



CHAPTER LXII

Another Discovery


I had not the courage to see any one that night.  I had not even 
the courage to see myself, for I was afraid that my tears might a 
little reproach me.  I went up to my room in the dark, and prayed 
in the dark, and lay down in the dark to sleep.  I had no need of 
any light to read my guardian's letter by, for I knew it by heart.  
I took it from the place where I kept it, and repeated its contents 
by its own clear light of integrity and love, and went to sleep 
with it on my pillow.

I was up very early in the morning and called Charley to come for a 
walk.  We bought flowers for the breakfast-table, and came back and 
arranged them, and were as busy as possible.  We were so early that 
I had a good time still for Charley's lesson before breakfast; 
Charley (who was not in the least improved in the old defective 
article of grammar) came through it with great applause; and we 
were altogether very notable.  When my guardian appeared he said, 
"Why, little woman, you look fresher than your flowers!"  And Mrs. 
Woodcourt repeated and translated a passage from the 
Mewlinnwillinwodd expressive of my being like a mountain with the 
sun upon it.

This was all so pleasant that I hope it made me still more like the 
mountain than I had been before.  After breakfast I waited my 
opportunity and peeped about a little until I saw my guardian in 
his own room--the room of last night--by himself.  Then I made an 
excuse to go in with my housekeeping keys, shutting the door after 
me.

"Well, Dame Durden?" said my guardian; the post had brought him 
several letters, and he was writing.  "You want money?"

"No, indeed, I have plenty in hand."

"There never was such a Dame Durden," said my guardian, "for making 
money last."

He had laid down his pen and leaned back in his chair looking at 
me.  I have often spoken of his bright face, but I thought I had 
never seen it look so bright and good.  There was a high happiness 
upon it which made me think, "He has been doing some great kindness 
this morning."

"There never was," said my guardian, musing as he smiled upon me, 
"such a Dame Durden for making money last."

He had never yet altered his old manner.  I loved it and him so 
much that when I now went up to him and took my usual chair, which 
was always put at his side--for sometimes I read to him, and 
sometimes I talked to him, and sometimes I silently worked by him--
I hardly liked to disturb it by laying my hand on his breast.  But 
I found I did not disturb it at all.

"Dear guardian," said I, "I want to speak to you.  Have I been 
remiss in anything?"

"Remiss in anything, my dear!"

"Have I not been what I have meant to be since--I brought the 
answer to your letter, guardian?"

"You have been everything I could desire, my love."

"I am very glad indeed to hear that," I returned.  "You know, you 
said to me, was this the mistress of Bleak House.  And I said, 
yes."

"Yes," said my guardian, nodding his head.  He had put his arm 
about me as if there were something to protect me from and looked 
in my face, smiling.

"Since then," said I, "we have never spoken on the subject except 
once."

"And then I said Bleak House was thinning fast; and so it was, my 
dear."

"And I said," I timidly reminded him, "but its mistress remained."

He still held me in the same protecting manner and with the same 
bright goodness in his face.

"Dear guardian," said I, "I know how you have felt all that has 
happened, and how considerate you have been.  As so much time has 
passed, and as you spoke only this morning of my being so well 
again, perhaps you expect me to renew the subject.  Perhaps I ought 
to do so.  I will be the mistress of Bleak House when you please."

"See," he returned gaily, "what a sympathy there must be between 
us!  I have had nothing else, poor Rick excepted--it's a large 
exception--in my mind.  When you came in, I was full of it.  When 
shall we give Bleak House its mistress, little woman?"

"When you please."

"Next month?"

"Next month, dear guardian."

"The day on which I take the happiest and best step of my life--the 
day on which I shall be a man more exulting and more enviable than 
any other man in the world--the day on which I give Bleak House its 
little mistress--shall be next month then," said my guardian.

I put my arms round his neck and kissed him just as I had done on 
the day when I brought my answer.

A servant came to the door to announce Mr. Bucket, which was quite 
unnecessary, for Mr. Bucket was already looking in over the 
servant's shoulder.  "Mr. Jarndyce and Miss Summerson," said he, 
rather out of breath, "with all apologies for intruding, WILL you 
allow me to order up a person that's on the stairs and that objects 
to being left there in case of becoming the subject of observations 
in his absence?  Thank you.  Be so good as chair that there member 
in this direction, will you?" said Mr. Bucket, beckoning over the 
banisters.

This singular request produced an old man in a black skull-cap, 
unable to walk, who was carried up by a couple of bearers and 
deposited in the room near the door.  Mr. Bucket immediately got 
rid of the bearers, mysteriously shut the door, and bolted it.

"Now you see, Mr. Jarndyce," he then began, putting down his hat 
and opening his subject with a flourish of his well-remembered 
finger, "you know me, and Miss Summerson knows me.  This gentleman 
likewise knows me, and his name is Smallweed.  The discounting line 
is his line principally, and he's what you may call a dealer in 
bills.  That's about what YOU are, you know, ain't you?" said Mr. 
Bucket, stopping a little to address the gentleman in question, who 
was exceedingly suspicious of him.

He seemed about to dispute this designation of himself when he was 
seized with a violent fit of coughing.

"Now, moral, you know!" said Mr. Bucket, improving the accident.  
"Don't you contradict when there ain't no occasion, and you won't 
be took in that way.  Now, Mr. Jarndyce, I address myself to you.  
I've been negotiating with this gentleman on behalf of Sir 
Leicester Dedlock, Baronet, and one way and another I've been in 
and out and about his premises a deal.  His premises are the 
premises formerly occupied by Krook, marine store dealer--a 
relation of this gentleman's that you saw in his life-time if I 
don't mistake?"

My guardian replied, "Yes."

"Well! You are to understand," said Mr. Bucket, "that this 
gentleman he come into Krook's property, and a good deal of magpie 
property there was.  Vast lots of waste-paper among the rest.  Lord 
bless you, of no use to nobody!"

The cunning of Mr. Bucket's eye and the masterly manner in which he 
contrived, without a look or a word against which his watchful 
auditor could protest, to let us know that he stated the case 
according to previous agreement and could say much more of Mr. 
Smallweed if he thought it advisable, deprived us of any merit in 
quite understanding him.  His difficulty was increased by Mr. 
Smallweed's being deaf as well as suspicious and watching his face 
with the closest attention.

"Among them odd heaps of old papers, this gentleman, when he comes 
into the property, naturally begins to rummage, don't you see?" 
said Mr. Bucket.

"To which?  Say that again," cried Mr. Smallweed in a shrill, sharp 
voice.

"To rummage," repeated Mr. Bucket.  "Being a prudent man and 
accustomed to take care of your own affairs, you begin to rummage 
among the papers as you have come into; don't you?"

"Of course I do," cried Mr. Smallweed.

"Of course you do," said Mr. Bucket conversationally, "and much to 
blame you would be if you didn't.  And so you chance to find, you 
know," Mr. Bucket went on, stooping over him with an air of 
cheerful raillery which Mr. Smallweed by no means reciprocated, 
"and so you chance to find, you know, a paper with the signature of 
Jarndyce to it.  Don't you?"

Mr. Smallweed glanced with a troubled eye at us and grudgingly 
nodded assent.

"And coming to look at that paper at your full leisure and 
convenience--all in good time, for you're not curious to read it, 
and why should you be?--what do you find it to be but a will, you 
see.  That's the drollery of it," said Mr. Bucket with the same 
lively air of recalling a joke for the enjoyment of Mr. Smallweed, 
who still had the same crest-fallen appearance of not enjoying it 
at all; "what do you find it to be but a will?"

"I don't know that it's good as a will or as anything else," 
snarled Mr. Smallweed.

Mr. Bucket eyed the old man for a moment--he had slipped and shrunk 
down in his chair into a mere bundle--as if he were much disposed 
to pounce upon him; nevertheless, he continued to bend over him 
with the same agreeable air, keeping the corner of one of his eyes 
upon us.

"Notwithstanding which," said Mr. Bucket, "you get a little 
doubtful and uncomfortable in your mind about it, having a very 
tender mind of your own."

"Eh?  What do you say I have got of my own?" asked Mr. Smallweed 
with his hand to his ear.

"A very tender mind."

"Ho!  Well, go on," said Mr. Smallweed.

"And as you've heard a good deal mentioned regarding a celebrated 
Chancery will case of the same name, and as you know what a card 
Krook was for buying all manner of old pieces of furniter, and 
books, and papers, and what not, and never liking to part with 'em, 
and always a-going to teach himself to read, you begin to think--
and you never was more correct in your born days--'Ecod, if I don't 
look about me, I may get into trouble regarding this will.'"

"Now, mind how you put it, Bucket," cried the old man anxiously 
with his hand at his ear.  "Speak up; none of your brimstone 
tricks.  Pick me up; I want to hear better.  Oh, Lord, I am shaken 
to bits!"

Mr. Bucket had certainly picked him up at a dart.  However, as soon 
as he could be heard through Mr. Smallweed's coughing and his 
vicious ejaculations of "Oh, my bones!  Oh, dear!  I've no breath 
in my body!  I'm worse than the chattering, clattering, brimstone 
pig at home!" Mr. Bucket proceeded in the same convivial manner as 
before.

"So, as I happen to be in the habit of coming about your premises, 
you take me into your confidence, don't you?"

I think it would be impossible to make an admission with more ill 
will and a worse grace than Mr. Smallweed displayed when he 
admitted this, rendering it perfectly evident that Mr. Bucket was 
the very last person he would have thought of taking into his 
confidence if he could by any possibility have kept him out of it.

"And I go into the business with you--very pleasant we are over it; 
and I confirm you in your well-founded fears that you will get 
yourself into a most precious line if you don't come out with that 
there will," said Mr. Bucket emphatically; "and accordingly you 
arrange with me that it shall be delivered up to this present Mr. 
Jarndyce, on no conditions.  If it should prove to be valuable, you 
trusting yourself to him for your reward; that's about where it is, 
ain't it?"

"That's what was agreed," Mr. Smallweed assented with the same bad 
grace.

"In consequence of which," said Mr. Bucket, dismissing his 
agreeable manner all at once and becoming strictly businesslike, 
"you've got that will upon your person at the present time, and the 
only thing that remains for you to do is just to out with it!"

Having given us one glance out of the watching corner of his eye, 
and having given his nose one triumphant rub with his forefinger, 
Mr. Bucket stood with his eyes fastened on his confidential friend 
and his hand stretched forth ready to take the paper and present it 
to my guardian.  It was not produced without much reluctance and 
many declarations on the part of Mr. Smallweed that he was a poor 
industrious man and that he left it to Mr. Jarndyce's honour not to 
let him lose by his honesty.  Little by little he very slowly took 
from a breast-pocket a stained, discoloured paper which was much 
singed upon the outside and a little burnt at the edges, as if it 
had long ago been thrown upon a fire and hastily snatched off 
again.  Mr. Bucket lost no time in transferring this paper, with 
the dexterity of a conjuror, from Mr. Smallweed to Mr. Jarndyce.  
As he gave it to my guardian, he whispered behind his fingers, 
"Hadn't settled how to make their market of it.  Quarrelled and 
hinted about it.  I laid out twenty pound upon it.  First the 
avaricious grandchildren split upon him on account of their 
objections to his living so unreasonably long, and then they split 
on one another.  Lord!  There ain't one of the family that wouldn't 
sell the other for a pound or two, except the old lady--and she's 
only out of it because she's too weak in her mind to drive a 
bargain."

"Mr Bucket," said my guardian aloud, "whatever the worth of this 
paper may be to any one, my obligations are great to you; and if it 
be of any worth, I hold myself bound to see Mr. Smallweed 
remunerated accordingly."

"Not according to your merits, you know," said Mr. Bucket in 
friendly explanation to Mr. Smallweed.  "Don't you be afraid of 
that.  According to its value."

"That is what I mean," said my guardian.  "You may observe, Mr. 
Bucket, that I abstain from examining this paper myself.  The plain 
truth is, I have forsworn and abjured the whole business these many 
years, and my soul is sick of it.  But Miss Summerson and I will 
immediately place the paper in the hands of my solicitor in the 
cause, and its existence shall be made known without delay to all 
other parties interested."

"Mr. Jarndyce can't say fairer than that, you understand," observed 
Mr. Bucket to his fellow-visitor.  "And it being now made clear to 
you that nobody's a-going to be wronged--which must be a great 
relief to YOUR mind--we may proceed with the ceremony of chairing 
you home again."

He unbolted the door, called in the bearers, wished us good 
morning, and with a look full of meaning and a crook of his finger 
at parting went his way.

We went our way too, which was to Lincoln's Inn, as quickly as 
possible.  Mr. Kenge was disengaged, and we found him at his table 
in his dusty room with the inexpressive-looking books and the piles 
of papers.  Chairs having been placed for us by Mr. Guppy, Mr. 
Kenge expressed the surprise and gratification he felt at the 
unusual sight of Mr. Jarndyce in his office.  He turned over his 
double eye-glass as he spoke and was more Conversation Kenge than 
ever.

"I hope," said Mr. Kenge, "that the genial influence of Miss 
Summerson," he bowed to me, "may have induced Mr. Jarndyce," he 
bowed to him, "to forego some little of his animosity towards a 
cause and towards a court which are--shall I say, which take their 
place in the stately vista of the pillars of our profession?"

"I am inclined to think," returned my guardian, "that Miss 
Summerson has seen too much of the effects of the court and the 
cause to exert any influence in their favour.  Nevertheless, they 
are a part of the occasion of my being here.  Mr. Kenge, before I 
lay this paper on your desk and have done with it, let me tell you 
how it has come into my hands."

He did so shortly and distinctly.

"It could not, sir," said Mr. Kenge, "have been stated more plainly 
and to the purpose if it had been a case at law."

"Did you ever know English law, or equity either, plain and to the 
purpose?" said my guardian.

"Oh, fie!" said Mr. Kenge.

At first he had not seemed to attach much importance to the paper, 
but when he saw it he appeared more interested, and when he had 
opened and read a little of it through his eye-glass, he became 
amazed.  "Mr. Jarndyce," he said, looking off it, "you have perused 
this?"

"Not I!" returned my guardian.

"But, my dear sir," said Mr. Kenge, "it is a will of later date 
than any in the suit.  It appears to be all in the testator's 
handwriting.  It is duly executed and attested.  And even if 
intended to be cancelled, as might possibly be supposed to be 
denoted by these marks of fire, it is NOT cancelled.  Here it is, a 
perfect instrument!"

"Well!" said my guardian.  "What is that to me?"

"Mr. Guppy!" cried Mr. Kenge, raising his voice.  "I beg your 
pardon, Mr. Jarndyce."

"Sir."

"Mr. Vholes of Symond's Inn.  My compliments.  Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce.  Glad to speak with him."

Mr. Guppy disappeared.

"You ask me what is this to you, Mr. Jarndyce.  If you had perused 
this document, you would have seen that it reduces your interest 
considerably, though still leaving it a very handsome one, still 
leaving it a very handsome one," said Mr. Kenge, waving his hand 
persuasively and blandly.  "You would further have seen that the 
interests of Mr. Richard Carstone and of Miss Ada Clare, now Mrs. 
Richard Carstone, are very materially advanced by it."

"Kenge," said my guardian, "if all the flourishing wealth that the 
suit brought into this vile court of Chancery could fall to my two 
young cousins, I should be well contented.  But do you ask ME to 
believe that any good is to come of Jarndyce and Jarndyce?"

"Oh, really, Mr. Jarndyce!  Prejudice, prejudice.  My dear sir, 
this is a very great country, a very great country.  Its system of 
equity is a very great system, a very great system.  Really, 
really!"

My guardian said no more, and Mr. Vholes arrived.  He was modestly 
impressed by Mr. Kenge's professional eminence.

"How do you do, Mr. Vholes?  Willl you be so good as to take a 
chair here by me and look over this paper?"

Mr. Vholes did as he was asked and seemed to read it every word.  
He was not excited by it, but he was not excited by anything.  When 
he had well examined it, he retired with Mr. Kenge into a window, 
and shading his mouth with his black glove, spoke to him at some 
length.  I was not surprised to observe Mr. Kenge inclined to 
dispute what he said before he had said much, for I knew that no 
two people ever did agree about anything in Jarndyce and Jarndyce.  
But he seemed to get the better of Mr. Kenge too in a conversation 
that sounded as if it were almost composed of the words "Receiver-
General," "Accountant-General," "report," "estate," and "costs."  
When they had finished, they came back to Mr. Kenge's table and 
spoke aloud.

"Well!  But this is a very remarkable document, Mr. Vholes," said 
Mr. Kenge.

Mr. Vholes said, "Very much so."

"And a very important document, Mr. Vholes," said Mr. Kenge.

Again Mr. Vholes said, "Very much so."

"And as you say, Mr. Vholes, when the cause is in the paper next 
term, this document will be an unexpected and interesting feature 
in it," said Mr. Kenge, looking loftily at my guardian.

Mr. Vholes was gratified, as a smaller practitioner striving to 
keep respectable, to be confirmed in any opinion of his own by such 
an authority.

"And when," asked my guardian, rising after a pause, during which 
Mr. Kenge had rattled his money and Mr. Vholes had picked his 
pimples, "when is next term?"

"Next term, Mr. Jarndyce, will be next month," said Mr. Kenge.  "Of 
course we shall at once proceed to do what is necessary with this 
document and to collect the necessary evidence concerning it; and 
of course you will receive our usual notification of the cause 
being in the paper."

"To which I shall pay, of course, my usual attention."

"Still bent, my dear sir," said Mr. Kenge, showing us through the 
outer office to the door, "still bent, even with your enlarged 
mind, on echoing a popular prejudice?  We are a prosperous 
community, Mr. Jarndyce, a very prosperous community.  We are a 
great country, Mr. Jarndyce, we are a very great country.  This is 
a great system, Mr. Jarndyce, and would you wish a great country to 
have a little system?  Now, really, really!"

He said this at the stair-head, gently moving his right hand as if 
it were a silver trowel with which to spread the cement of his 
words on the structure of the system and consolidate it for a 
thousand ages.



CHAPTER LXIII

Steel and Iron


George's Shooting Gallery is to let, and the stock is sold off, and 
George himself is at Chesney Wold attending on Sir Leicester in his 
rides and riding very near his bridle-rein because of the uncertain 
hand with which he guides his horse.  But not to-day is George so 
occupied.  He is journeying to-day into the iron country farther 
north to look about him.

As he comes into the iron country farther north, such fresh green 
woods as those of Chesney Wold are left behind; and coal pits and 
ashes, high chimneys and red bricks, blighted verdure, scorching 
fires, and a heavy never-lightening cloud of smoke become the 
features of the scenery.  Among such objects rides the trooper, 
looking about him and always looking for something he has come to 
find.

At last, on the black canal bridge of a busy town, with a clang of 
iron in it, and more fires and more smoke than he has seen yet, the 
trooper, swart with the dust of the coal roads, checks his horse 
and asks a workman does he know the name of Rouncewell thereabouts.

"Why, master," quoth the workman, "do I know my own name?"

"'Tis so well known here, is it, comrade?" asks the trooper.

"Rouncewell's?  Ah!  You're right."

"And where might it be now?" asks the trooper with a glance before 
him.

"The bank, the factory, or the house?" the workman wants to know.

"Hum!  Rouncewell's is so great apparently," mutters the trooper, 
stroking his chin, "that I have as good as half a mind to go back 
again.  Why, I don't know which I want.  Should I find Mr. 
Rouncewell at the factory, do you think?"

"Tain't easy to say where you'd find him--at this time of the day 
you might find either him or his son there, if he's in town; but 
his contracts take him away."

And which is the factory?  Why, he sees those chimneys--the tallest 
ones!  Yes, he sees THEM.  Well!  Let him keep his eye on those 
chimneys, going on as straight as ever he can, and presently he'll 
see 'em down a turning on the left, shut in by a great brick wall 
which forms one side of the street.  That's Rouncewell's.

The trooper thanks his informant and rides slowly on, looking about 
him.  He does not turn back, but puts up his horse (and is much 
disposed to groom him too) at a public-house where some of 
Rouncewell's hands are dining, as the ostler tells him.  Some of 
Rouncewell's hands have just knocked off for dinner-time and seem 
to be invading the whole town.  They are very sinewy and strong, 
are Rouncewell's hands--a little sooty too.

He comes to a gateway in the brick wall, looks in, and sees a great 
perplexity of iron lying about in every stage and in a vast variety 
of shapes--in bars, in wedges, in sheets; in tanks, in boilers, in 
axles, in wheels, in cogs, in cranks, in rails; twisted and 
wrenched into eccentric and perverse forms as separate parts of 
machinery; mountains of it broken up, and rusty in its age; distant 
furnaces of it glowing and bubbling in its youth; bright fireworks 
of it showering about under the blows of the steam-hammer; red-hot 
iron, white-hot iron, cold-black iron; an iron taste, an iron 
smell, and a Babel of iron sounds.

"This is a place to make a man's head ache too!" says the trooper, 
looking about him for a counting-house.  "Who comes here?  This is 
very like me before I was set up.  This ought to be my nephew, if 
likenesses run in families.  Your servant, sir."

"Yours, sir.  Are you looking for any one?"

"Excuse me.  Young Mr. Rouncewell, I believe?"

"Yes."

"I was looking for your father, sir.  I wish to have a word with 
him."

The young man, telling him he is fortunate in his choice of a time, 
for his father is there, leads the way to the office where he is to 
be found.  "Very like me before I was set up--devilish like me!" 
thinks the trooper as he follows.  They come to a building in the 
yard with an office on an upper floor.  At sight of the gentleman 
in the office, Mr. George turns very red.

"What name shall I say to my father?" asks the young man.

George, full of the idea of iron, in desperation answers "Steel," 
and is so presented.  He is left alone with the gentleman in the 
office, who sits at a table with account-books before him and some 
sheets of paper blotted with hosts of figures and drawings of 
cunning shapes.  It is a bare office, with bare windows, looking on 
the iron view below.  Tumbled together on the table are some pieces 
of iron, purposely broken to be tested at various periods of their 
service, in various capacities.  There is iron-dust on everything; 
and the smoke is seen through the windows rolling heavily out of 
the tall chimneys to mingle with the smoke from a vaporous Babylon 
of other chimneys.

"I am at your service, Mr. Steel," says the gentleman when his 
visitor has taken a rusty chair.

"Well, Mr. Rouncewell," George replies, leaning forward with his 
left arm on his knee and his hat in his hand, and very chary of 
meeting his brother's eye, "I am not without my expectations that 
in the present visit I may prove to be more free than welcome.  I 
have served as a dragoon in my day, and a comrade of mine that I 
was once rather partial to was, if I don't deceive myself, a 
brother of yours.  I believe you had a brother who gave his family 
some trouble, and ran away, and never did any good but in keeping 
away?"

"Are you quite sure," returns the ironmaster in an altered voice, 
"that your name is Steel?"

The trooper falters and looks at him.  His brother starts up, calls 
him by his name, and grasps him by both hands.

"You are too quick for me!" cries the trooper with the tears 
springing out of his eyes.  "How do you do, my dear old fellow?  I 
never could have thought you would have been half so glad to see me 
as all this.  How do you do, my dear old fellow, how do you do!"

They shake hands and embrace each other over and over again, the 
trooper still coupling his "How do you do, my dear old fellow!" 
with his protestation that he never thought his brother would have 
been half so glad to see him as all this!

"So far from it," he declares at the end of a full account of what 
has preceded his arrival there, "I had very little idea of making 
myself known.  I thought if you took by any means forgivingly to my 
name I might gradually get myself up to the point of writing a 
letter.  But I should not have been surprised, brother, if you had 
considered it anything but welcome news to hear of me."

"We will show you at home what kind of news we think it, George," 
returns his brother.  "This is a great day at home, and you could 
not have arrived, you bronzed old soldier, on a better.  I make an 
agreement with my son Watt to-day that on this day twelvemonth he 
shall marry as pretty and as good a girl as you have seen in all 
your travels.  She goes to Germany to-morrow with one of your 
nieces for a little polishing up in her education.  We make a feast 
of the event, and you will be made the hero of it."

Mr. George is so entirely overcome at first by this prospect that 
he resists the proposed honour with great earnestness.  Being 
overborne, however, by his brother and his nephew--concerning whom 
he renews his protestations that he never could have thought they 
would have been half so glad to see him--he is taken home to an 
elegant house in all the arrangements of which there is to be 
observed a pleasant mixture of the originally simple habits of the 
father and mother with such as are suited to their altered station 
and the higher fortunes of their children.  Here Mr. George is much 
dismayed by the graces and accomplishments of his nieces that are 
and by the beauty of Rosa, his niece that is to be, and by the 
affectionate salutations of these young ladies, which he receives 
in a sort of dream.  He is sorely taken aback, too, by the dutiful 
behaviour of his nephew and has a woeful consciousness upon him of 
being a scapegrace.  However, there is great rejoicing and a very 
hearty company and infinite enjoyment, and Mr. George comes bluff 
and martial through it all, and his pledge to be present at the 
marriage and give away the bride is received with universal favour.  
A whirling head has Mr. George that night when he lies down in the 
state-bed of his brother's house to think of all these things and 
to see the images of his nieces (awful all the evening in their 
floating muslins) waltzing, after the German manner, over his 
counterpane.

The brothers are closeted next morning in the ironmaster's room, 
where the elder is proceeding, in his clear sensible way, to show 
how he thinks he may best dispose of George in his business, when 
George squeezes his hand and stops him.

"Brother, I thank you a million times for your more than brotherly 
welcome, and a million times more to that for your more than 
brotherly intentions.  But my plans are made.  Before I say a word 
as to them, I wish to consult you upon one family point.  How," 
says the trooper, folding his arms and looking with indomitable 
firmness at his brother, "how is my mother to be got to scratch 
me?"

"I am not sure that I understand you, George," replies the 
ironmaster.

"I say, brother, how is my mother to be got to scratch me?  She 
must be got to do it somehow."

"Scratch you out of her will, I think you mean?"

"Of course I do.  In short," says the trooper, folding his arms 
more resolutely yet, "I mean--TO--scratch me!"

"My dear George," returns his brother, "is it so indispensable that 
you should undergo that process?"

"Quite!  Absolutely!  I couldn't be guilty of the meanness of 
coming back without it.  I should never be safe not to be off 
again.  I have not sneaked home to rob your children, if not 
yourself, brother, of your rights.  I, who forfeited mine long ago!  
If I am to remain and hold up my head, I must be scratched.  Come.  
You are a man of celebrated penetration and intelligence, and you 
can tell me how it's to be brought about."

"I can tell you, George," replies the ironmaster deliberately, "how 
it is not to be brought about, which I hope may answer the purpose 
as well.  Look at our mother, think of her, recall her emotion when 
she recovered you.  Do you believe there is a consideration in the 
world that would induce her to take such a step against her 
favourite son?  Do you believe there is any chance of her consent, 
to balance against the outrage it would be to her (loving dear old 
lady!) to propose it?  If you do, you are wrong.  No, George!  You 
must make up your mind to remain UNscratched, I think."  There is 
an amused smile on the ironmaster's face as he watches his brother, 
who is pondering, deeply disappointed.  "I think you may manage 
almost as well as if the thing were done, though."

"How, brother?"

"Being bent upon it, you can dispose by will of anything you have 
the misfortune to inherit in any way you like, you know."

"That's true!" says the trooper, pondering again.  Then he 
wistfully asks, with his hand on his brother's, "Would you mind 
mentioning that, brother, to your wife and family?"

"Not at all."

"Thank you.  You wouldn't object to say, perhaps, that although an 
undoubted vagabond, I am a vagabond of the harum-scarum order, and 
not of the mean sort?"

The ironmaster, repressing his amused smile, assents.

"Thank you.  Thank you.  It's a weight off my mind," says the 
trooper with a heave of his chest as he unfolds his arms and puts a 
hand on each leg, "though I had set my heart on being scratched, 
too!"

The brothers are very like each other, sitting face to face; but a 
certain massive simplicity and absence of usage in the ways of the 
world is all on the trooper's side.

"Well," he proceeds, throwing off his disappointment, "next and 
last, those plans of mine.  You have been so brotherly as to 
propose to me to fall in here and take my place among the products 
of your perseverance and sense.  I thank you heartily.  It's more 
than brotherly, as I said before, and I thank you heartily for it," 
shaking him a long time by the hand.  "But the truth is, brother, I 
am a--I am a kind of a weed, and it's too late to plant me in a 
regular garden."

"My dear George," returns the elder, concentrating his strong 
steady brow upon him and smiling confidently, "leave that to me, 
and let me try."

George shakes his head.  "You could do it, I have not a doubt, if 
anybody could; but it's not to be done.  Not to be done, sir!  
Whereas it so falls out, on the other hand, that I am able to be of 
some trifle of use to Sir Leicester Dedlock since his illness--
brought on by family sorrows--and that he would rather have that 
help from our mother's son than from anybody else."

"Well, my dear George," returns the other with a very slight shade 
upon his open face, "if you prefer to serve in Sir Leicester 
Dedlock's household brigade--"

"There it is, brother," cries the trooper, checking him, with his 
hand upon his knee again; "there it is!  You don't take kindly to 
that idea; I don't mind it.  You are not used to being officered; I 
am.  Everything about you is in perfect order and discipline; 
everything about me requires to be kept so.  We are not accustomed 
to carry things with the same hand or to look at 'em from the same 
point.  I don't say much about my garrison manners because I found 
myself pretty well at my ease last night, and they wouldn't be 
noticed here, I dare say, once and away.  But I shall get on best 
at Chesney Wold, where there's more room for a weed than there is 
here; and the dear old lady will be made happy besides.  Therefore 
I accept of Sir Leicester Dedlock's proposals.  When I come over 
next year to give away the bride, or whenever I come, I shall have 
the sense to keep the household brigade in ambuscade and not to 
manoeuvre it on your ground.  I thank you heartily again and am 
proud to think of the Rouncewells as they'll be founded by you."

"You know yourself, George," says the elder brother, returning the 
grip of his hand, "and perhaps you know me better than I know 
myself.  Take your way.  So that we don't quite lose one another 
again, take your way."

"No fear of that!" returns the trooper.  "Now, before I turn my 
horse's head homewards, brother, I will ask you--if you'll be so 
good--to look over a letter for me.  I brought it with me to send 
from these parts, as Chesney Wold might be a painful name just now 
to the person it's written to.  I am not much accustomed to 
correspondence myself, and I am particular respecting this present 
letter because I want it to be both straightforward and delicate."

Herewith he hands a letter, closely written in somewhat pale ink 
but in a neat round hand, to the ironmaster, who reads as follows:


Miss Esther Summerson, 

A communication having been made to me by Inspector Bucket of a 
letter to myself being found among the papers of a certain person, 
I take the liberty to make known to you that it was but a few lines 
of instruction from abroad, when, where, and how to deliver an 
enclosed letter to a young and beautiful lady, then unmarried, in 
England.  I duly observed the same.

I further take the liberty to make known to you that it was got 
from me as a proof of handwriting only and that otherwise I would 
not have given it up, as appearing to be the most harmless in my 
possession, without being previously shot through the heart.

I further take the liberty to mention that if I could have supposed 
a certain unfortunate gentleman to have been in existence, I never 
could and never would have rested until I had discovered his 
retreat and shared my last farthing with him, as my duty and my 
inclination would have equally been.  But he was (officially) 
reported drowned, and assuredly went over the side of a transport-
ship at night in an Irish harbour within a few hours of her arrival 
from the West Indies, as I have myself heard both from officers and 
men on board, and know to have been (officially) confirmed.

I further take the liberty to state that in my humble quality as 
one of the rank and file, I am, and shall ever continue to be, your 
thoroughly devoted and admiring servant and that I esteem the 
qualities you possess above all others far beyond the limits of the 
present dispatch.

I have the honour to be,

GEORGE


"A little formal," observes the elder brother, refolding it with a 
puzzled face.

"But nothing that might not be sent to a pattern young lady?" asks 
the younger.

"Nothing at all."

Therefore it is sealed and deposited for posting among the iron 
correspondence of the day.  This done, Mr. George takes a hearty 
farewell of the family party and prepares to saddle and mount.  His 
brother, however, unwilling to part with him so soon, proposes to 
ride with him in a light open carriage to the place where he will 
bait for the night, and there remain with him until morning, a 
servant riding for so much of the journey on the thoroughbred old 
grey from Chesney Wold.  The offer, being gladly accepted, is 
followed by a pleasant ride, a pleasant dinner, and a pleasant 
breakfast, all in brotherly communion.  Then they once more shake 
hands long and heartily and part, the ironmaster turning his face 
to the smoke and fires, and the trooper to the green country.  
Early in the afternoon the subdued sound of his heavy military trot 
is heard on the turf in the avenue as he rides on with imaginary 
clank and jingle of accoutrements under the old elm-trees.



CHAPTER LXIV

Esther's Narrative


Soon after I had that convertion with my guardian, he put a sealed 
paper in my hand one morning and said, "This is for next month, my 
dear."  I found in it two hundred pounds.

I now began very quietly to make such preparations as I thought 
were necessary.  Regulating my purchases by my guardian's taste, 
which I knew very well of course, I arranged my wardrobe to please 
him and hoped I should be highly successful.  I did it all so 
quietly because I was not quite free from my old apprehension that 
Ada would be rather sorry and because my guardian was so quiet 
himself.  I had no doubt that under all the circumstances we should 
be married in the most private and simple manner.  Perhaps I should 
only have to say to Ada, "Would you like to come and see me married 
to-morrow, my pet?"  Perhaps our wedding might even be as 
unpretending as her own, and I might not find it necessary to say 
anything about it until it was over.  I thought that if I were to 
choose, I would like this best.

The only exception I made was Mrs. Woodcourt.  I told her that I 
was going to be married to my guardian and that we had been engaged 
some time.  She highly approved.  She could never do enough for me 
and was remarkably softened now in comparison with what she had 
been when we first knew her.  There was no trouble she would not 
have taken to have been of use to me, but I need hardly say that I 
only allowed her to take as little as gratified her kindness 
without tasking it.

Of course this was not a time to neglect my guardian, and of course 
it was not a time for neglecting my darling.  So I had plenty of 
occupation, which I was glad of; and as to Charley, she was 
absolutely not to be seen for needlework.  To surround herself with 
great heaps of it--baskets full and tables full--and do a little, 
and spend a great deal of time in staring with her round eyes at 
what there was to do, and persuade herself that she was going to do 
it, were Charley's great dignities and delights.

Meanwhile, I must say, I could not agree with my guardian on the 
subject of the will, and I had some sanguine hopes of Jarndyce and 
Jarndyce.  Which of us was right will soon appear, but I certainly 
did encourage expectations.  In Richard, the discovery gave 
occasion for a burst of business and agitation that buoyed him up 
for a little time, but he had lost the elasticity even of hope now 
and seemed to me to retain only its feverish anxieties.  From 
something my guardian said one day when we were talking about this, 
I understood that my marriage would not take place until after the 
term-time we had been told to look forward to; and I thought the 
more, for that, how rejoiced I should be if I could be married when 
Richard and Ada were a little more prosperous.

The term was very near indeed when my guardian was called out of 
town and went down into Yorkshire on Mr. Woodcourt's business.  He 
had told me beforehand that his presence there would be necessary.  
I had just come in one night from my dear girl's and was sitting in 
the midst of all my new clothes, looking at them all around me and 
thinking, when a letter from my guardian was brought to me.  It 
asked me to join him in the country and mentioned by what stage-
coach my place was taken and at what time in the morning I should 
have to leave town.  It added in a postscript that I would not be 
many hours from Ada.

I expected few things less than a journey at that tinae, but I was 
ready for it in half an hour and set off as appointed early next 
morning.  I travelled all day, wondering all day what I could be 
wanted for at such a distance; now I thought it might be for this 
purpose, and now I thought it might be for that purpose, but I was 
never, never, never near the truth.

It was night when I came to my journey's end and found my guardian 
waiting for me.  This was a great relief, for towards evening I had 
begun to fear (the more so as his letter was a very short one) that 
he might be ill.  However, there he was, as well as it was possible 
to be; and when I saw his genial face again at its brightest and 
best, I said to myself, he has been doing some other great 
kindness.  Not that it required much penetration to say that, 
because I knew that his being there at all was an act of kindness.

Supper was ready at the hotel, and when we were alone at table he 
said, "Full of curiosity, no doubt, little woman, to know why I 
have brought you here?"

"Well, guardian," said I, "without thinking myself a Fatima or you 
a Blue Beard, I am a little curious about it."

"Then to ensure your night's rest, my love," he returned gaily, "I 
won't wait until to-morrow to tell you.  I have very much wished to 
express to Woodcourt, somehow, my sense of his humanity to poor 
unfortunate Jo, his inestimable services to my young cousins, and 
his value to us all.  When it was decided that he should settle 
here, it came into my head that I might ask his acceptance of some 
unpretending and suitable little place to lay his own head in.  I 
therefore caused such a place to be looked out for, and such a 
place was found on very easy terms, and I have been touching it up 
for him and making it habitable.  However, when I walked over it 
the day before yesterday and it was reported ready, I found that I 
was not housekeeper enough to know whether things were all as they 
ought to be.  So I sent off for the best little housekeeper that 
could possibly be got to come and give me her advice and opinion.  
And here she is," said my guardian, "laughing and crying both 
together!"

Because he was so dear, so good, so admirable.  I tried to tell him 
what I thought of him, but I could not articulate a word.

"Tut, tut!" said my guardian.  "You make too much of it, little 
woman.  Why, how you sob, Dame Durden, how you sob!"

"It is with exquisite pleasure, guardian--with a heart full of 
thanks."

"Well, well," said he.  "I am delighted that you approve.  I 
thought you would.  I meant it as a pleasant surprise for the 
little mistress of Bleak House."

I kissed him and dried my eyes.  "I know now!" said I.  "I have 
seen this in your face a long while."

"No; have you really, my dear?" said he.  "What a Dame Durden it is 
to read a face!"

He was so quaintly cheerful that I could not long be otherwise, and 
was almost ashamed of having been otherwise at all.  When I went to 
bed, I cried.  I am bound to confess that I cried; but I hope it 
was with pleasure, though I am not quite sure it was with pleasure.  
I repeated every word of the letter twice over.

A most beautiful summer morning succeeded, and after breakfast we 
went out arm in arm to see the house of which I was to give my 
mighty housekeeping opinion.  We entered a flower-garden by a gate 
in a side wall, of which he had the key, and the first thing I saw 
was that the beds and flowers were all laid out according to the 
manner of my beds and flowers at home.

"You see, my dear," observed my guardian, standing still with a 
delighted face to watch my looks, "knowing there could be no better 
plan, I borrowed yours."

We went on by a pretty little orchard, where the cherries were 
nestling among the green leaves and the shadows of the apple-trees 
were sporting on the grass, to the house itself--a cottage, quite a 
rustic cottage of doll's rooms; but such a lovely place, so 
tranquil and so beautiful, with such a rich and smiling country 
spread around it; with water sparkling away into the distance, here 
all overhung with summer-growth, there turning a humming mill; at 
its nearest point glancing through a meadow by the cheerful town, 
where cricket-players were assembling in bright groups and a flag 
was flying from a white tent that rippled in the sweet west wind.  
And still, as we went through the pretty rooms, out at the little 
rustic verandah doors, and underneath the tiny wooden colonnades 
garlanded with woodbine, jasmine, and honey-suckle, I saw in the 
papering on the walls, in the colours of the furniture, in the 
arrangement of all the pretty objects, MY little tastes and 
fancies, MY little methods and inventions which they used to laugh 
at while they praised them, my odd ways everywhere.

I could not say enough in admiration of what was all so beautiful, 
but one secret doubt arose in my mind when I saw this, I thought, 
oh, would he be the happier for it!  Would it not have been better 
for his peace that I should not have been so brought before him?  
Because although I was not what he thought me, still he loved me 
very dearly, and it might remind him mournfully of what be believed 
he had lost.  I did not wish him to forget me--perhaps he might not 
have done so, without these aids to his memory--but my way was 
easier than his, and I could have reconciled myself even to that so 
that he had been the happier for it.

"And now, little woman," said my guardian, whom I had never seen so 
proud and joyful as in showing me these things and watching my 
appreciation of them, "now, last of all, for the name of this 
house."

"What is it called, dear guardian?"

"My child," said he, "come and see,"

He took me to the porch, which he had hitherto avoided, and said, 
pausing before we went out, "My dear child, don't you guess the 
name?"

"No!" said I.

We went out of the porch and he showed me written over it, Bleak 
House.

He led me to a seat among the leaves close by, and sitting down 
beside me and taking my hand in his, spoke to me thus, "My darling 
girl, in what there has been between us, I have, I hope, been 
really solicitous for your happiness.  When I wrote you the letter 
to which you brought the answer," smiling as he referred to it, "I 
had my own too much in view; but I had yours too.  Whether, under 
different circumstances, I might ever have renewed the old dream I 
sometimes dreamed when you were very young, of making you my wife 
one day, I need not ask myself.  I did renew it, and I wrote my 
letter, and you brought your answer.  You are following what I say, 
my child?"

I was cold, and I trembled violently, but not a word he uttered was 
lost.  As I sat looking fixedly at him and the sun's rays 
descended, softly shining through the leaves upon his bare head, I 
felt as if the brightness on him must be like the brightness of the 
angels.

"Hear me, my love, but do not speak.  It is for me to speak now.  
When it was that I began to doubt whether what I had done would 
really make you happy is no matter.  Woodcourt came home, and I 
soon had no doubt at all."

I clasped him round the neck and hung my bead upon his breast and 
wept.  "Lie lightly, confidently here, my child," said he, pressing 
me gently to him.  "I am your guardian and your father now.  Rest 
confidently here."

Soothingly, like the gentle rustling of the leaves; and genially, 
like the ripening weather; and radiantly and beneficently, like the 
sunshine, he went on.

"Understand me, my dear girl.  I had no doubt of your being 
contented and happy with me, being so dutiful and so devoted; but I 
saw with whom you would be happier.  That I penetrated his secret 
when Dame Durden was blind to it is no wonder, for I knew the good 
that could never change in her better far than she did.  Well! I 
have long been in Allan Woodcourt's confidence, although he was 
not, until yesterday, a few hours before you came here, in mine.  
But I would not have my Esther's bright example lost; I would not 
have a jot of my dear girl's virtues unobserved and unhonoured; I 
would not have her admitted on sufferance into the line of Morgan 
ap-Kerrig, no, not for the weight in gold of all the mountains in 
Wales!"

He stopped to kiss me on the forehead, and I sobbed and wept 
afresh.  For I felt as if I could not bear the painful delight of 
his praise.

"Hush, little woman!  Don't cry; this is to be a day of joy.  I 
have looked forward to it," he said exultingly, "for months on 
months!  A few words more, Dame Trot, and I have said my say.  
Determined not to throw away one atom of my Esther's worth, I took 
Mrs. Woodcourt into a separate confidence.  'Now, madam,' said I, 
'I clearly perceive--and indeed I know, to boot--that your son 
loves my ward.  I am further very sure that my ward loves your son, 
but will sacrifice her love to a sense of duty and affection, and 
will sacrifice it so completely, so entirely, so religiously, that 
you should never suspect it though you watched her night and day.'  
Then I told her all our story--ours--yours and mine.  'Now, madam,' 
said I, 'come you, knowing this, and live with us.  Come you, and 
see my child from hour to hour; set what you see against her 
pedigree, which is this, and this'--for I scorned to mince it--'and 
tell me what is the true legitimacy when you shall have quite made 
up your mind on that subject.'  Why, honour to her old Welsh blood, 
my dear," cried my guardian with enthusiasm, "I believe the heart 
it animates beats no less warmly, no less admiringly, no less 
lovingly, towards Dame Durden than my own!"

He tenderly raised my head, and as I clung to him, kissed me in his 
old fatherly way again and again.  What a light, now, on the 
protecting manner I had thought about!

"One more last word.  When Allan Woodcourt spoke to you, my dear, 
he spoke with my knowledge and consent--but I gave him no 
encouragement, not I, for these surprises were my great reward, and 
I was too miserly to part with a scrap of it.  He was to come and 
tell me all that passed, and he did.  I have no more to say.  My 
dearest, Allan Woodcourt stood beside your father when he lay dead
--stood beside your mother.  This is Bleak House.  This day I give 
this house its little mistress; and before God, it is the brightest 
day in all my life!"

He rose and raised me with him.  We were no longer alone.  My 
husband--I have called him by that name full seven happy years now
--stood at my side.

"Allan," said my guardian, "take from me a willing gift, the best 
wife that ever man had.  What more can I say for you than that I 
know you deserve her!  Take with her the little home she brings 
you.  You know what she will make it, Allan; you know what she has 
made its namesake.  Let me share its felicity sometimes, and what 
do I sacrifice?  Nothing, nothing."

He kissed me once again, and now the tears were in his eyes as he 
said more softly, "Esther, my dearest, after so many years, there 
is a kind of parting in this too.  I know that my mistake has 
caused you some distress.  Forgive your old guardian, in restoring 
him to his old place in your affections; and blot it out of your 
memory.  Allan, take my dear."

He moved away from under the green roof of leaves, and stopping in 
the sunlight outside and turning cheerfully towards us, said, "I 
shall be found about here somewhere.  It's a west wind, little 
woman, due west!  Let no one thank me any more, for I am going to 
revert to my bachelor habits, and if anybody disregards this 
warning, I'll run away and never come back!"

What happiness was ours that day, what joy, what rest, what hope, 
what gratitude, what bliss!  We were to be married before the month 
was out, but when we were to come and take possession of our own 
house was to depend on Richard and Ada.

We all three went home together next day.  As soon as we arrived in 
town, Allan went straight to see Richard and to carry our joyful 
news to him and my darling.  Late as it was, I meant to go to her 
for a few minutes before lying down to sleep, but I went home with 
my guardian first to make his tea for him and to occupy the old 
chair by his side, for I did not like to think of its being empty 
so soon.

When we came home we found that a young man had called three times 
in the course of that one day to see me and that having been told 
on the occasion of his third call that I was not expected to return 
before ten o'clock at night, he had left word that he would call 
about then.  He had left his card three times.  Mr. Guppy.

As I naturally speculated on the object of these visits, and as I 
always associated something ludicrous with the visitor, it fell out 
that in laughing about Mr. Guppy I told my guardian of his old 
proposal and his subsequent retraction.  "After that," said my 
guardian, "we will certainly receive this hero."  So instructions 
were given that Mr. Guppy should be shown in when he came again, 
and they were scarcely given when he did come again.

He was embarrassed when he found my guardian with me, but recovered 
himself and said, "How de do, sir?"

"How do you do, sir?" returned my guardian.

"Thank you, sir, I am tolerable," returned Mr. Guppy.  "Will you 
allow me to introduce my mother, Mrs. Guppy of the Old Street Road, 
and my particular friend, Mr. Weevle.  That is to say, my friend 
has gone by the name of Weevle, but his name is really and truly 
Jobling."

My guardian begged them to be seated, and they all sat down.

"Tony," said Mr. Guppy to his friend after an awkward silence.  
"Will you open the case?"

"Do it yourself," returned the friend rather tartly.

"Well, Mr. Jarndyce, sir," Mr. Guppy, after a moment's 
consideration, began, to the great diversion of his mother, which 
she displayed by nudging Mr. Jobling with her elbow and winking at 
me in a most remarkable manner, "I had an idea that I should see 
Miss Summerson by herself and was not quite prepared for your 
esteemed presence.  But Miss Summerson has mentioned to you, 
perhaps, that something has passed between us on former occasions?"

"Miss Summerson," returned my guardian, smiling, "has made a 
communication to that effect to me."

"That," said Mr. Guppy, "makes matters easier.  Sir, I have come 
out of my articles at Kenge and Carboy's, and I believe with 
satisfaction to all parties.  I am now admitted (after undergoing 
an examination that's enough to badger a man blue, touching a pack 
of nonsense that he don't want to know) on the roll of attorneys 
and have taken out my certificate, if it would be any satisfaction 
to you to see it."

"Thank you, Mr. Guppy," returned my guardian.  "I am quite willing
--I believe I use a legal phrase--to admit the certificate."

Mr. Guppy therefore desisted from taking something out of his 
pocket and proceeded without it.

I have no capital myself, but my mother has a little property which 
takes the form of an annuity"--here Mr. Guppy's mother rolled her 
head as if she never could sufficiently enjoy the observation, and 
put her handkerchief to her mouth, and again winked at me--"and a 
few pounds for expenses out of pocket in conducting business will 
never be wanting, free of interest, which is an advantage, you 
know," said Mr. Guppy feelingly.

"Certainly an advantage," returned my guardian.

"I HAVE some connexion," pursued Mr. Guppy, "and it lays in the 
direction of Walcot Square, Lambeth.  I have therefore taken a 
'ouse in that locality, which, in the opinion of my friends, is a 
hollow bargain (taxes ridiculous, and use of fixtures included in 
the rent), and intend setting up professionally for myself there 
forthwith."

Here Mr. Guppy's mother fell into an extraordinary passion of 
rolling her head and smiling waggishly at anybody who would look at 
her.

"It's a six-roomer, exclusive of kitchens," said Mr. Guppy, "and in 
the opinion of my friends, a commodious tenement.  When I mention 
my friends, I refer principally to my friend Jobling, who I believe 
has known me," Mr. Guppy looked at him with a sentimental air, 
"from boyhood's hour."

Mr. Jobling confirmed this with a sliding movement of his legs.

"My friend Jobling will render me his assistance in the capacity of 
clerk and will live in the 'ouse," said Mr. Guppy.  "My mother will 
likewise live in the 'ouse when her present quarter in the Old 
Street Road shall have ceased and expired; and consequently there 
will be no want of society.  My friend Jobling is naturally 
aristocratic by taste, and besides being acquainted with the 
movements of the upper circles, fully backs me in the intentions I 
am now developing."

Mr. Jobling said "Certainly" and withdrew a little from the elbow 
of Mr Guppy's mother.

"Now, I have no occasion to mention to you, sir, you being in the 
confidence of Miss Summerson," said Mr. Guppy, "(mother, I wish 
you'd be so good as to keep still), that Miss Summerson's image was 
formerly imprinted on my 'eart and that I made her a proposal of 
marriage."

"That I have heard," returned my guardian.

"Circumstances," pursued Mr. Guppy, "over which I had no control, 
but quite the contrary, weakened the impression of that image for a 
time.  At which time Miss Summerson's conduct was highly genteel; I 
may even add, magnanimous."

My guardian patted me on the shoulder and seemed much amused.

"Now, sir," said Mr. Guppy, "I have got into that state of mind 
myself that I wish for a reciprocity of magnanimous behaviour.  I 
wish to prove to Miss Summerson that I can rise to a heighth of 
which perhaps she hardly thought me capable.  I find that the image 
which I did suppose had been eradicated from my 'eart is NOT 
eradicated.  Its influence over me is still tremenjous, and 
yielding to it, I am willing to overlook the circumstances over 
which none of us have had any control and to renew those proposals 
to Miss Summerson which I had the honour to make at a former 
period.  I beg to lay the 'ouse in Walcot Square, the business, and 
myself before Miss Summerson for her acceptance."

"Very magnanimous indeed, sir," observed my guardian.

"Well, sir," replied Mr. Guppy with candour, "my wish is to BE 
magnanimous.  I do not consider that in making this offer to Miss 
Summerson I am by any means throwing myself away; neither is that 
the opinion of my friends.  Still, there are circumstances which I 
submit may be taken into account as a set off against any little 
drawbacks of mine, and so a fair and equitable balance arrived at."

"I take upon myself, sir," said my guardian, laughing as he rang 
the bell, "to reply to your proposals on behalf of Miss Summerson.  
She is very sensible of your handsome intentions, and wishes you 
good evening, and wishes you well."

"Oh!" said Mr. Guppy with a blank look.  "Is that tantamount, sir, 
to acceptance, or rejection, or consideration?"

"To decided rejection, if you please," returned my guardian.

Mr. Guppy looked incredulously at his friend, and at his mother, 
who suddenly turned very angry, and at the floor, and at the 
ceiling.

"Indeed?" said he.  "Then, Jobling, if you was the friend you 
represent yourself, I should think you might hand my mother out of 
the gangway instead of allowing her to remain where she ain't 
wanted."

But Mrs. Guppy positively refused to come out of the gangway.  She 
wouldn't hear of it.  "Why, get along with you," said she to my 
guardian, "what do you mean?  Ain't my son good enough for you?  
You ought to be ashamed of yourself.  Get out with you!"

"My good lady," returned my guardian, "it is hardly reasonable to 
ask me to get out of my own room."

"I don't care for that," said Mrs. Guppy.  "Get out with you.  If 
we ain't good enough for you, go and procure somebody that is good 
enough.  Go along and find 'em."

I was quite unprepared for the rapid manner in which Mrs. Guppy's 
power of jocularity merged into a power of taking the profoundest 
offence.

"Go along and find somebody that's good enough for you," repeated 
Mrs. Guppy.  "Get out!"  Nothing seemed to astonish Mr. Guppy's 
mother so much and to make her so very indignant as our not getting 
out.  "Why don't you get out?" said Mrs. Guppy.  "What are you 
stopping here for?"

"Mother," interposed her son, always getting before her and pushing 
her back with one shoulder as she sidled at my guardian, "WILL you 
hold your tongue?"

"No, William," she returned, "I won't!  Not unless he gets out, I 
won't!"

However, Mr. Guppy and Mr. Jobling together closed on Mr. Guppy's 
mother (who began to be quite abusive) and took her, very much 
against her will, downstairs, her voice rising a stair higher every 
time her figure got a stair lower, and insisting that we should 
immediately go and find somebody who was good enough for us, and 
above all things that we should get out.



CHAPTER LXV

Beginning the World


The term had commenced, and my guardian found an intimation from 
Mr. Kenge that the cause would come on in two days.  As I had 
sufficient hopes of the will to be in a flutter about it, Allan and 
I agreed to go down to the court that morning.  Richard was 
extremely agitated and was so weak and low, though his illness was 
still of the mind, that my dear girl indeed had sore occasion to be 
supported.  But she looked forward--a very little way now--to the 
help that was to come to her, and never drooped.

It was at Westminster that the cause was to come on.  It had come 
on there, I dare say, a hundred times before, but I could not 
divest myself of an idea that it MIGHT lead to some result now.  We 
left home directly after breakfast to be at Westminster Hall in 
good time and walked down there through the lively streets--so 
happily and strangely it seemed!--together.

As we were going along, planning what we should do for Richard and 
Ada, I heard somebody calling "Esther!  My dear Esther!  Esther!"  
And there was Caddy Jellyby, with her head out of the window of a 
little carriage which she hired now to go about in to her pupils 
(she had so many), as if she wanted to embrace me at a hundred 
yards' distance.  I had written her a note to tell her of all that 
my guardian had done, but had not had a moment to go and see her.  
Of course we turned back, and the affectionate girl was in that 
state of rapture, and was so overjoyed to talk about the night when 
she brought me the flowers, and was so determined to squeeze my 
face (bonnet and all) between her hands, and go on in a wild manner 
altogether, calling me all kinds of precious names, and telling 
Allan I had done I don't know what for her, that I was just obliged 
to get into the little carriage and caln her down by letting her 
say and do exactly what she liked.  Allan, standing at the window, 
was as pleased as Caddy; and I was as pleased as either of them; 
and I wonder that I got away as I did, rather than that I came off 
laughing, and red, and anything but tidy, and looking after Caddy, 
who looked after us out of the coach-window as long as she could 
see us.

This made us some quarter of an hour late, and when we came to 
Westminster Hall we found that the day's business was begun.  Worse 
than that, we found such an unusual crowd in the Court of Chancery 
that it was full to the door, and we could neither see nor hear 
what was passing within.  It appeared to be something droll, for 
occasionally there was a laugh and a cry of "Silence!"  It appeared 
to be something interesting, for every one was pushing and striving 
to get nearer.  It appeared to be something that made the 
professional gentlemen very merry, for there were several young 
counsellors in wigs and whiskers on the outside of the crowd, and 
when one of them told the others about it, they put their hands in 
their pockets, and quite doubled themselves up with laughter, and 
went stamping about the pavement of the Hall.

We asked a gentleman by us if he knew what cause was on.  He told 
us Jarndyce and Jarndyce.  We asked him if he knew what was doing 
in it.  He said really, no he did not, nobody ever did, but as well 
as he could make out, it was over.  Over for the day? we asked him.  
No, he said, over for good.

Over for good!

When we heard this unaccountable answer, we looked at one another 
quite lost in amazement.  Could it be possible that the will had 
set things right at last and that Richard and Ada were going to be 
rich?  It seemed too good to be true.  Alas it was!

Our suspense was short, for a break-up soon took place in the 
crowd, and the people came streaming out looking flushed and hot 
and bringing a quantity of bad air with them.  Still they were all 
exceedingly amused and were more like people coming out from a 
farce or a juggler than from a court of justice.  We stood aside, 
watching for any countenance we knew, and presently great bundles 
of paper began to be carried out--bundles in bags, bundles too 
large to be got into any bags, immense masses of papers of all 
shapes and no shapes, which the bearers staggered under, and threw 
down for the time being, anyhow, on the Hall pavement, while they 
went back to bring out more.  Even these clerks were laughing.  We 
glanced at the papers, and seeing Jarndyce and Jarndyce everywhere, 
asked an official-looking person who was standing in the midst of 
them whether the cause was over.  Yes, he said, it was all up with 
it at last, and burst out laughing too.

At this juncture we perceived Mr. Kenge coming out of court with an 
affable dignity upon him, listening to Mr. Vholes, who was 
deferential and carried his own bag.  Mr. Vholes was the first to 
see us.  "Here is Miss Summerson, sir," he said.  "And Mr. 
Woodcourt."

"Oh, indeed!  Yes.  Truly!" said Mr. Kenge, raising his hat to me 
with polished politeness.  "How do you do?  Glad to see you.  Mr. 
Jarndyce is not here?"

No.  He never came there, I reminded him.

"Really," returned Mr. Kenge, "it is as well that he is NOT here 
to-day, for his--shall I say, in my good friend's absence, his 
indomitable singularity of opinion?--might have been strengthened, 
perhaps; not reasonably, but might have been strengthened."

"Pray what has been done to-day?" asked Allan.

"I beg your pardon?" said Mr. Kenge with excessive urbanity.

"What has been done to-day?"

"What has been done," repeated Mr. Kenge.  "Quite so.  Yes.  Why, 
not much has been done; not much.  We have been checked--brought up 
suddenly, I would say--upon the--shall I term it threshold?"

"Is this will considered a genuine document, sir?" said Allan.  
"Will you tell us that?"

"Most certainly, if I could," said Mr. Kenge; "but we have not gone 
into that, we have not gone into that."

"We have not gone into that," repeated Mr. Vholes as if his low 
inward voice were an echo.

"You are to reflect, Mr. Woodcourt," observed Mr. Kenge, using his 
silver trowel persuasively and smoothingly, "that this has been a 
great cause, that this has been a protracted cause, that this has 
been a complex cause.  Jarndyce and Jarndyce has been termed, not 
inaptly, a monument of Chancery practice."

"And patience has sat upon it a long time," said Allan.

"Very well indeed, sir," returned Mr. Kenge with a certain 
condeseending laugh he had.  "Very well!  You are further to 
reflect, Mr. Woodcourt," becoming dignified almost to severity, 
"that on the numerous difficulties, contingencies, masterly 
fictions, and forms of procedure in this great cause, there has 
been expended study, ability, eloquence, knowledge, intellect, Mr. 
Woodcourt, high intellect.  For many years, the--a--I would say the 
flower of the bar, and the--a--I would presume to add, the matured 
autumnal fruits of the woolsack--have been lavished upon Jarndyce 
and Jarndyce.  If the public have the benefit, and if the country 
have the adornment, of this great grasp, it must be paid for in 
money or money's worth, sir."

"Mr. Kenge," said Allan, appearing enlightened all in a moment.  
"Excuse me, our time presses.  Do I understand that the whole 
estate is found to have been absorbed in costs?"

"Hem!  I believe so," returned Mr. Kenge.  "Mr. Vholes, what do YOU 
say?"

"I believe so," said Mr. Vholes.

"And that thus the suit lapses and melts away?"

"Probably," returned Mr. Kenge.  "Mr. Vholes?"

"Probably," said Mr. Vholes.

"My dearest life," whispered Allan, "this will break Richard's 
heart!"

There was such a shock of apprehension in his face, and he knew 
Richard so perfectly, and I too had seen so much of his gradual 
decay, that what my dear girl had said to me in the fullness of her 
foreboding love sounded like a knell in my ears.

"In case you should be wanting Mr. C., sir," said Mr. Vholes, 
coming after us, "you'll find him in court.  I left him there 
resting himself a little.  Good day, sir; good day, Miss 
Summerson."  As he gave me that slowly devouring look of his, while 
twisting up the strings of his bag before he hastened with it after 
Mr. Kenge, the benignant shadow of whose conversational presence he 
seemed afraid to leave, he gave one gasp as if he had swallowed the 
last morsel of his client, and his black buttoned-up unwholesome 
figure glided away to the low door at the end of the Hall.

"My dear love," said Allan, "leave to me, for a little while, the 
charge you gave me.  Go home with this intelligence and come to 
Ada's by and by!"

I would not let him take me to a coach, but entreated him to go to 
Richard without a moment's delay and leave me to do as he wished.  
Hurrying home, I found my guardian and told him gradually with what 
news I had returned.  "Little woman," said he, quite unmoved for 
himself, "to have done with the suit on any terms is a greater 
blessing than I had looked for.  But my poor young cousins!"

We talked about them all the morning and discussed what it was 
possible to do.  In the afternoon my guardian walked with me to 
Symond's Inn and left me at the door.  I went upstairs.  When my 
darling heard my footsteps, she came out into the small passage and 
threw her arms round my neck, but she composed herself direcfly and 
said that Richard had asked for me several times.  Allan had found 
him sitting in the corner of the court, she told me, like a stone 
figure.  On being roused, he had broken away and made as if he 
would have spoken in a fierce voice to the judge.  He was stopped 
by his mouth being full of blood, and Allan had brought him home.

He was lying on a sofa with his eyes closed when I went in.  There 
were restoratives on the table; the room was made as airy as 
possible, and was darkened, and was very orderly and quiet.  Allan 
stood behind him watching him gravely.  His face appeared to me to 
be quite destitute of colour, and now that I saw him without his 
seeing me, I fully saw, for the first time, how worn away he was.  
But he looked handsomer than I had seen him look for many a day.

I sat down by his side in silence.  Opening his eyes by and by, he 
said in a weak voice, but with his old smile, "Dame Durden, kiss 
me, my dear!"

It was a great comfort and surprise to me to find him in his low 
state cheerful and looking forward.  He was happier, he said, in 
our intended marriage than he could find words to tell me.  My 
husband had been a guardian angel to him and Ada, and he blessed us 
both and wished us all the joy that life could yield us.  I almost 
felt as if my own heart would have broken when I saw him take my 
husband's hand and hold it to his breast.

We spoke of the future as much as possible, and he said several 
times that he must be present at our marriage if he could stand 
upon his feet.  Ada would contrive to take him, somehow, he said.  
"Yes, surely, dearest Richard!"  But as my darling answered him 
thus hopefully, so serene and beautiful, with the help that was to 
come to her so near--I knew--I knew!

It was not good for him to talk too much, and when he was silent, 
we were silent too.  Sitting beside him, I made a pretence of 
working for my dear, as he had always been used to joke about my 
being busy.  Ada leaned upon his pillow, holding his head upon her 
arm.  He dozed often, and whenever he awoke without seeing him, 
said first of all, "Where is Woodcourt?"

Evening had come on when I lifted up my eyes and saw my guardian 
standing in the little hall.  "Who is that, Dame Durden?" Richard 
asked me.  The door was behind him, but he had observed in my face 
that some one was there.

I looked to Allan for advice, and as he nodded "Yes," bent over 
Richard and told him.  My guardian saw what passed, came softly by 
me in a moment, and laid his hand on Richard's.  "Oh, sir," said 
Richard, "you are a good man, you are a good man!" and burst into 
tears for the first time.

My guardian, the picture of a good man, sat down in my place, 
keeping his hand on Richard's.

"My dear Rick," said he, "the clouds have cleared away, and it is 
bright now.  We can see now.  We were all bewildered, Rick, more or 
less.  What matters!  And how are you, my dear boy?"

"I am very weak, sir, but I hope I shall be stronger.  I have to 
begin the world."

"Aye, truly; well said!" cried my guardian.

"I will not begin it in the old way now," said Richard with a sad 
smile.  "I have learned a lesson now, sir.  It was a hard one, but 
you shall be assured, indeed, that I have learned it."

"Well, well," said my guardian, comforting him; "well, well, well, 
dear boy!"

"I was thinking, sir," resumed Richard, "that there is nothing on 
earth I should so much like to see as their house--Dame Durden's 
and Woodcourt's house.  If I could be removed there when I begin to 
recover my strength, I feel as if I should get well there sooner 
than anywhere."

"Why, so have I been thinking too, Rick," said my guardian, "and 
our little woman likewise; she and I have been talking of it this 
very day.  I dare say her husband won't object.  What do you 
think?"

Richard smiled and lifted up his arm to touch him as he stood 
behind the head of the couch.

"I say nothing of Ada," said Richard, "but I think of her, and have 
thought of her very much.  Look at her!  See her here, sir, bending 
over this pillow when she has so much need to rest upon it herself, 
my dear love, my poor girl!"

He clasped her in his arms, and none of us spoke.  He gradually 
released her, and she looked upon us, and looked up to heaven, and 
moved her lips.

"When I get down to Bleak House," said Richard, "I shall have much 
to tell you, sir, and you will have much to show me.  You will go, 
won't you?"

"Undoubtedly, dear Rick."

"Thank you; like you, like you," said Richard.  "But it's all like 
you.  They have been telling me how you planned it and how you 
remembered all Esther's familiar tastes and ways.  It will be like 
coming to the old Bleak House again."

"And you will come there too, I hope, Rick.  I am a solitary man 
now, you know, and it will be a charity to come to me.  A charity 
to come to me, my love!" he repeated to Ada as he gently passed his 
hand over her golden hair and put a lock of it to his lips.  (I 
think he vowed within himself to cherish her if she were left 
alone.)

"It was a troubled dream?" said Richard, clasping both my 
guardian's hands eagerly.

"Nothing more, Rick; nothing more."

"And you, being a good man, can pass it as such, and forgive and 
pity the dreamer, and be lenient and encouraging when he wakes?"

"Indeed I can.  What am I but another dreamer, Rick?"

"I will begin the world!" said Richard with a light in his eyes.

My husband drew a little nearer towards Ada, and I saw him solemnly 
lift up his hand to warn my guardian.

"When shall I go from this place to that pleasant country where the 
old times are, where I shall have strength to tell what Ada has 
been to me, where I shall be able to recall my many faults and 
blindnesses, where I shall prepare myself to be a guide to my 
unborn child?" said Richard.  "When shall I go?"

"Dear Rick, when you are strong enough," returned my guardian.

"Ada, my darling!"

He sought to raise himself a little.  Allan raised him so that she 
could hold him on her bosom, which was what he wanted.

"I have done you many wrongs, my own.  I have fallen like a poor 
stray shadow on your way, I have married you to poverty and 
trouble, I have scattered your means to the winds.  You will 
forgive me all this, my Ada, before I begin the world?"

A smile irradiated his face as she bent to kiss him.  He slowly 
laid his face down upon her bosom, drew his arms closer round her 
neck, and with one parting sob began the world.  Not this world, 
oh, not this!  The world that sets this right.

When all was still, at a late hour, poor crazed Miss Flite came 
weeping to me and told me she had given her birds their liberty.



CHAPTER LXVI

Down in Lincolnshire


There is a hush upon Chesney Wold in these altered days, as there 
is upon a portion of the family history.  The story goes that Sir 
Leicester paid some who could have spoken out to hold their peace; 
but it is a lame story, feebly whispering and creeping about, and 
any brighter spark of life it shows soon dies away.  It is known 
for certain that the handsome Lady Dedlock lies in the mausoleum in 
the park, where the trees arch darkly overhead, and the owl is 
heard at night making the woods ring; but whence she was brought 
home to be laid among the echoes of that solitary place, or how she 
died, is all mystery.  Some of her old friends, principally to be 
found among the peachy-cheeked charmers with the skeleton throats, 
did once occasionally say, as they toyed in a ghastly manner with 
large fans--like charmers reduced to flirting with grim death, 
after losing all their other beaux--did once occasionally say, when 
the world assembled together, that they wondered the ashes of the 
Dedlocks, entombed in the mausoleum, never rose against the 
profanation of her company.  But the dead-and-gone Dedlocks take it 
very calmly and have never been known to object.

Up from among the fern in the hollow, and winding by the bridle-
road among the trees, comes sometimes to this lonely spot the sound 
of horses' hoofs.  Then may be seen Sir Leicester--invalided, bent, 
and almost blind, but of worthy presence yet--riding with a 
stalwart man beside him, constant to his bridle-rein.  When they 
come to a certain spot before the mausoleum-door, Sir Leicester's 
accustomed horse stops of his own accord, and Sir Leicester, 
pulling off his hat, is still for a few moments before they ride 
away.

War rages yet with the audacious Boythorn, though at uncertain 
intervals, and now hotly, and now coolly, flickering like an 
unsteady fire.  The truth is said to be that when Sir Leicester 
came down to Lincolnshire for good, Mr. Boythorn showed a manifest 
desire to abandon his right of way and do whatever Sir Leicester 
would, which Sir Leicester, conceiving to be a condescension to his 
illness or misfortune, took in such high dudgeon, and was so 
magnificently aggrieved by, that Mr. Boythorn found himself under 
the necessity of committing a flagrant trespass to restore his 
neighbour to himself.  Similarly, Mr. Boythorn continues to post 
tremendous placards on the disputed thoroughfare and (with his bird 
upon his head) to hold forth vehemently against Sir Leicester in 
the sanctuary of his own home; similarly, also, he defies him as of 
old in the little church by testifying a bland unconsciousness of 
his existence.  But it is whispered that when he is most ferocious 
towards his old foe, he is really most considerate, and that Sir 
Leicester, in the dignity of being implacable, little supposes how 
much he is humoured.  As little does he think how near together he 
and his antagonist have suffered in the fortunes of two sisters, 
and his antagonist, who knows it now, is not the man to tell him.  
So the quarrel goes on to the satisfaction of both.

In one of the lodges of the park--that lodge within sight of the 
house where, once upon a time, when the waters were out down in 
Lincolnshire, my Lady used to see the keeper's child--the stalwart 
man, the trooper formerly, is housed.  Some relics of his old 
calling hang upon the walls, and these it is the chosen recreation 
of a little lame man about the stable-yard to keep gleaming bright.  
A busy little man he always is, in the polishing at harness-house 
doors, of stirrup-irons, bits, curb-chains, harness bosses, 
anything in the way of a stable-yard that will take a polish, 
leading a life of friction.  A shaggy little damaged man, withal, 
not unlike an old dog of some mongrel breed, who has been 
considerably knocked about.  He answers to the name of Phil.

A goodly sight it is to see the grand old housekeeper (harder of 
hearing now) going to church on the arm of her son and to observe--
which few do, for the house is scant of company in these times--the 
relations of both towards Sir Leicester, and his towards them.  
They have visitors in the high summer weather, when a grey cloak 
and umbrella, unknown to Chesney Wold at other periods, are seen 
among the leaves; when two young ladies are occasionally found 
gambolling in sequestered saw-pits and such nooks of the park; and 
when the smoke of two pipes wreathes away into the fragrant evening 
air from the trooper's door.  Then is a fife heard trolling within 
the lodge on the inspiring topic of the "British Grenadiers"; and 
as the evening closes in, a gruff inflexible voice is heard to say, 
while two men pace together up and down, "But I never own to it 
before the old girl.  Discipline must be maintained."

The greater part of the house is shut up, and it is a show-house no 
longer; yet Sir Leicester holds his shrunken state in the long 
drawing-room for all that, and reposes in his old place before my 
Lady's picture.  Closed in by night with broad screens, and 
illumined only in that part, the light of the drawing-room seems 
gradually contracting and dwindling until it shall be no more.  A 
little more, in truth, and it will be all extinguished for Sir 
Leicester; and the damp door in the mausoleum which shuts so tight, 
and looks so obdurate, will have opened and received him.

Volumnia, growing with the flight of time pinker as to the red in 
her face, and yellower as to the white, reads to Sir Leicester in 
the long evenings and is driven to various artifices to conceal her 
yawns, of which the chief and most efficacious is the insertion of 
the pearl necklace between her rosy lips.  Long-winded treatises on 
the Buffy and Boodle question, showing how Buffy is immaculate and 
Boodle villainous, and how the country is lost by being all Boodle 
and no Buffy, or saved by being all Buffy and no Boodle (it must be 
one of the two, and cannot be anything else), are the staple of her 
reading.  Sir Leicester is not particular what it is and does not 
appear to follow it very closely, further than that he always comes 
broad awake the moment Volumnia ventures to leave off, and 
sonorously repeating her last words, begs with some displeasure to 
know if she finds herself fatigued.  However, Volumnia, in the 
course of her bird-like hopping about and pecking at papers, has 
alighted on a memorandum concerning herself in the event of 
"anything happening" to her kinsman, which is handsome compensation 
for an extensive course of reading and holds even the dragon 
Boredom at bay.

The cousins generally are rather shy of Chesney Wold in its 
dullness, but take to it a little in the shooting season, when guns 
are heard in the plantations, and a few scattered beaters and 
keepers wait at the old places of appointment for low-spirited twos 
and threes of cousins.  The debilitated cousin, more debilitated by 
the dreariness of the place, gets into a fearful state of 
depression, groaning under penitential sofa-pillows in his gunless 
hours and protesting that such fernal old jail's--nough t'sew fler 
up--frever.

The only great occasions for Volumnia in this changed aspect of the 
place in Lincolnshire are those occasions, rare and widely 
separated, when something is to be done for the county or the 
country in the way of gracing a public ball.  Then, indeed, does 
the tuckered sylph come out in fairy form and proceed with joy 
under cousinly escort to the exhausted old assembly-room, fourteen 
heavy miles off, which, during three hundred and sixty-four days 
and nights of every ordinary year, is a kind of antipodean lumber-
room full of old chairs and tables upside down.  Then, indeed, does 
she captivate all hearts by her condescension, by her girlish 
vivacity, and by her skipping about as in the days when the hideous 
old general with the mouth too full of teeth had not cut one of 
them at two guineas each.  Then does she twirl and twine, a 
pastoral nymph of good family, through the mazes of the dance.  
Then do the swains appear with tea, with lemonade, with sandwiches, 
with homage.  Then is she kind and cruel, stately and unassuming, 
various, beautifully wilful.  Then is there a singular kind of 
parallel between her and the little glass chandeliers of another 
age embellishing that assembly-room, which, with their meagre 
stems, their spare little drops, their disappointing knobs where no 
drops are, their bare little stalks from which knobs and drops have 
both departed, and their little feeble prismatic twinkling, all 
seem Volumnias.

For the rest, Lincolnshire life to Volumnia is a vast blank of 
overgrown house looking out upon trees, sighing, wringing their 
hands, bowing their heads, and casting their tears upon the window-
panes in monotonous depressions.  A labyrinth of grandeur, less the 
property of an old family of human beings and their ghostly 
likenesses than of an old family of echoings and thunderings which 
start out of their hundred graves at every sound and go resounding 
through the building.  A waste of unused passages and staircases in 
which to drop a comb upon a bedroom floor at night is to send a 
stealthy footfall on an errand through the house.  A place where 
few people care to go about alone, where a maid screams if an ash 
drops from the fire, takes to crying at all times and seasons, 
becomes the victim of a low disorder of the spirits, and gives 
warning and departs.

Thus Chesney Wold.  With so much of itself abandoned to darkness 
and vacancy; with so little change under the summer shining or the 
wintry lowering; so sombre and motionless always--no flag flying 
now by day, no rows of lights sparkling by night; with no family to 
come and go, no visitors to be the souls of pale cold shapes of 
rooms, no stir of life about it--passion and pride, even to the 
stranger's eye, have died away from the place in Lincolnshire and 
yielded it to dull repose.



CHAPTER LXVII

The Close of Esther's Narrative


Full seven happy years I have been the mistress of Bleak House.  
The few words that I have to add to what I have written are soon 
penned; then I and the unknown friend to whom I write will part for 
ever.  Not without much dear remembrance on my side.  Not without 
some, I hope, on his or hers.

They gave my darling into my arms, and through many weeks I never 
left her.  The little child who was to have done so much was born 
before the turf was planted on its father's grave.  It was a boy; 
and I, my husband, and my guardian gave him his father's name.

The help that my dear counted on did come to her, though it came, 
in the eternal wisdom, for another purpose.  Though to bless and 
restore his mother, not his father, was the errand of this baby, 
its power was mighty to do it.  When I saw the strength of the weak 
little hand and how its touch could heal my darling's heart and 
raised hope within her, I felt a new sense of the goodness and the 
tenderness of God.

They throve, and by degrees I saw my dear girl pass into my country 
garden and walk there with her infant in her arms.  I was married 
then.  I was the happiest of the happy.

It was at this time that my guardian joined us and asked Ada when 
she would come home.

"Both houses are your home, my dear," said he, "but the older Bleak 
House claims priority.  When you and my boy are strong enough to do 
it, come and take possession of your home."

Ada called him "her dearest cousin, John."  But he said, no, it 
must be guardian now.  He was her guardian henceforth, and the 
boy's; and he had an old association with the name.  So she called 
him guardian, and has called him guardian ever since.  The children 
know him by no other name.  I say the children; I have two little 
daughters.

It is difficult to believe that Charley (round-eyed still, and not 
at all grammatical) is married to a miller in our neighbourhood; 
yet so it is; and even now, looking up from my desk as I write 
early in the morning at my summer window, I see the very mill 
beginning to go round.  I hope the miller will not spoil Charley; 
but he is very fond of her, and Charley is rather vain of such a 
match, for he is well to do and was in great request.  So far as my 
small maid is concerned, I might suppose time to have stood for 
seven years as still as the mill did half an hour ago, since little 
Emma, Charley's sister, is exactly what Charley used to be.  As to 
Tom, Charley's brother, I am really afraid to say what he did at 
school in ciphering, but I think it was decimals.  He is 
apprenticed to the miller, whatever it was, and is a good bashful 
fellow, always falling in love with somebody and being ashamed of 
it.

Caddy Jellyby passed her very last holidays with us and was a 
dearer creature than ever, perpetually dancing in and out of the 
house with the children as if she had never given a dancing-lesson 
in her life.  Caddy keeps her own little carriage now instead of 
hiring one, and lives full two miles further westward than Newman 
Street.  She works very hard, her husband (an excellent one) being 
lame and able to do very little.  Still, she is more than contented 
and does all she has to do with all her heart.  Mr. Jellyby spends 
his evenings at her new house with his head against the wall as he 
used to do in her old one.  I have heard that Mrs. Jellyby was 
understood to suffer great mortification from her daughter's 
ignoble marriage and pursuits, but I hope she got over it in time.  
She has been disappointed in Borrioboola-Gha, which turned out a 
failure in consequence of the king of Boorioboola wanting to sell 
everybody--who survived the climate--for rum, but she has taken up 
with the rights of women to sit in Parliament, and Caddy tells me 
it is a mission involving more correspondence than the old one.  I 
had almost forgotten Caddy's poor little girl.  She is not such a 
mite now, but she is deaf and dumb.  I believe there never was a 
better mother than Caddy, who learns, in her scanty intervals of 
leisure, innumerable deaf and dumb arts to soften the affliction of 
her child.

As if I were never to have done with Caddy, I am reminded here of 
Peepy and old Mr. Turveydrop.  Peepy is in the Custom House, and 
doing extremely well.  Old Mr. Turveydrop, very apoplectic, still 
exhibits his deportment about town, still enjoys himself in the old 
manner, is still believed in in the old way.  He is constant in his 
patronage of Peepy and is understood to have bequeathed him a 
favourite French clock in his dressing-room--which is not his 
property.

With the first money we saved at home, we added to our pretty house 
by throwing out a little growlery expressly for my guardian, which 
we inaugurated with great splendour the next time he came down to 
see us.  I try to write all this lightly, because my heart is full 
in drawing to an end, but when I write of him, my tears will have 
their way.

I never look at him but I hear our poor dear Richard calling him a 
good man.  To Ada and her pretty boy, he is the fondest father; to 
me he is what he has ever been, and what name can I give to that?  
He is my husband's best and dearest friend, he is our children's 
darling, he is the object of our deepest love and veneration.  Yet 
while I feel towards him as if he were a superior being, I am so 
familiar with him and so easy with him that I almost wonder at 
myself.  I have never lost my old names, nor has he lost his; nor 
do I ever, when he is with us, sit in any other place than in my 
old chair at his side, Dame Trot, Dame Durden, Little Woman--all 
just the same as ever; and I answer, "Yes, dear guardian!" just the 
same.

I have never known the wind to be in the east for a single moment 
since the day when he took me to the porch to read the name.  I 
remarked to him once that the wind seemed never in the east now, 
and he said, no, truly; it had finally departed from that quarter 
on that very day.

I think my darling girl is more beautiful than ever.  The sorrow 
that has been in her face--for it is not there now--seems to have 
purified even its innocent expression and to have given it a 
diviner quality.  Sometimes when I raise my eyes and see her in the 
black dress that she still wears, teaching my Richard, I feel--it 
is difficult to express--as if it were so good to know that she 
remembers her dear Esther in her prayers.

I call him my Richard!  But he says that he has two mamas, and I am 
one.

We are not rich in the bank, but we have always prospered, and we 
have quite enough.  I never walk out with my husband but I hear the 
people bless him.  I never go into a house of any degree but I hear 
his praises or see them in grateful eyes.  I never lie down at 
night but I know that in the course of that day he has alleviated 
pain and soothed some fellow-creature in the time of need.  I know 
that from the beds of those who were past recovery, thanks have 
often, often gone up, in the last hour, for his patient 
ministration.  Is not this to be rich?

The people even praise me as the doctor's wife.  The people even 
like me as I go about, and make so much of me that I am quite 
abashed.  I owe it all to him, my love, my pride!  They like me for 
his sake, as I do everything I do in life for his sake.

A night or two ago, after bustling about preparing for my darling 
and my guardian and little Richard, who are coming to-morrow, I was 
sitting out in the porch of all places, that dearly memorable 
porch, when Allan came home.  So he said, "My precious little 
woman, what are you doing here?"  And I said, "The moon is shining 
so brightly, Allan, and the night is so delicious, that I have been 
sitting here thinking."

"What have you been thinking about, my dear?" said Allan then.

"How curious you are!" said I.  "I am almost ashamed to tell you, 
but I will.  I have been thinking about my old looks--such as they 
were."

"And what have you been thinking about THEM, my busy bee?" said 
Allan.

"I have been thinking that I thought it was impossible that you 
COULD have loved me any better, even if I had retained them."

"'Such as they were'?" said Allan, laughing.

"Such as they were, of course."

"My dear Dame Durden," said Allan, drawing my arm through his, "do 
you ever look in the glass?"

"You know I do; you see me do it."

"And don't you know that you are prettier than you ever were?"

"I did not know that; I am not certain that I know it now.  But I 
know that my dearest little pets are very pretty, and that my 
darling is very beautiful, and that my husband is very handsome, 
and that my guardian has the brightest and most benevolent face 
that ever was seen, and that they can very well do without much 
beauty in me--even supposing--.